summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-02-07 16:53:44 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-02-07 16:53:44 -0800
commit85850a0266b01c9f1e9a1e0a40a1cb9cab947be3 (patch)
tree511dbac99be1e4f939d56b00feb77c1328184f61
parentac758097f1a4e738d851421bb9e68491b752b495 (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/55709-0.txt8091
-rw-r--r--old/55709-0.zipbin139679 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55709-h.zipbin162381 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55709-h/55709-h.htm10085
-rw-r--r--old/55709-h/images/title_page.jpgbin19383 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/old/55709-0_2017-10-08.txt8113
-rw-r--r--old/old/55709-h_2017-10-08.htm10003
10 files changed, 17 insertions, 36292 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..fe1d22c
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #55709 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/55709)
diff --git a/old/55709-0.txt b/old/55709-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 3eb9e2a..0000000
--- a/old/55709-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,8091 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Crimson Azaleas, by H. De Vere
-(Henry De Vere) Stacpoole
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States
-and most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
-restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
-under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
-eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
-United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where you
-are located before using this eBook.
-
-Title: The Crimson Azaleas
-
-Author: H. De Vere (Henry De Vere) Stacpoole
-
-Release Date: October 8, 2017 [eBook #55709]
-[Most recently updated: April 22, 2023]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-Produced by: Roger Frank, Ernest Schaal, and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team (http://www.pgdp.net) from page images
-generously made available by the Google Books Library Project
-(https://books.google.com) Revised by Richard Tonsing.
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CRIMSON AZALEAS ***
-
-
-
-
-Note: Images of the original pages are available through
- the Google Books Library Project. See
- https://books.google.com/books?id=nxgNAAAAYAAJ&hl=en
-
-Transcriber’s note:
-
- Text enclosed by underscores is in italics (_italics_).
-
- Small capitals were replaced with ALL CAPITALS.
-
-
-
-
-THE CRIMSON AZALEAS
-
-A Novel
-
-
-by
-
-H. DE VERE STACPOOLE
-
-Author of “The Blue Lagoon”
-
-[Illustration]
-
-New York
-Duffield & Co.
-1910
-
-
-
-
- CONTENTS
-
-
- PART ONE
-
- THE TRAGEDY OF THE NIKKO ROAD
-
- CHAPTER PAGE
-
- I. THE ROAD TO NIKKO 5
-
- II. THE BLIND ONE 11
-
- III. THE LOST ONE 20
-
- IV. AMIDST THE HILLS 25
-
- V. THE TEA HOUSE OF THE TORTOISE 31
-
- VI. THE DREAMER AND THE DRAGON 44
-
- VII. HOW CAMPANULA BROUGHT FORTUNE TO THE
- HOUSE OF THE TORTOISE—AND OTHER
- THINGS 54
-
- VIII. THE SURPRISING STORY OF MOMOTARO—AKUDOGI
- AND SPOTTED DOG 61
-
- IX. THE HOUSE OF THE CLOUDS 71
-
- X. OF MOUSMÉS AND OTHER THINGS 82
-
-
- PART TWO
-
- THE MASSACRE OF THE BLUE-BELLS
-
- XI. THE DREAM 91
-
- XII. THE FOREIGN DEVILS 101
-
- XIII. THE MONASTERY GARDEN 107
-
- XIV. NAGASAKI BY NIGHT 119
-
- XV. M’GOURLEY’S LOVE AFFAIR 124
-
- XVI. THE PHILOSOPHY OF EVIL 135
-
- XVII. THE HOUSE BY NIGHT 141
-
- XVIII. MOSTLY ABOUT FLOWERS 151
-
- XIX. THE STORK AND THE TORTOISE 172
-
- XX. THE SONG OF THE MUSHI 183
-
- XXI. M’GOURLEY’S LOVE AFFAIR 194
-
- XXII. THE COMPLETE GEOGRAPHER 206
-
- XXIII. THE STRUGGLE 213
-
- XXIV. GEORGE DU TELLE 223
-
- XXV. RETROSPECTION 232
-
-
- PART THREE
-
- THE BROKEN LATH
-
- XXVI. THE BROKEN LATH 241
-
- XXVII. THE “EMPRESS OF JAPAN” 247
-
- XXVIII. M’GOURLEY’S LOVE AFFAIR 262
-
- XXIX. THE GARDEN-PARTY 268
-
- XXX. THE FALSE REPORT 280
-
- XXXI. FAREWELL 284
-
- XXXII. HER HOUSE IN ORDER 292
-
- XXXIII. THE “LA FRANCE” 296
-
- XXXIV. AMIDST THE AZALEAS 302
-
- XXXV. BON MATSURI 307
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER I
-
- THE ROAD TO NIKKO
-
- “Upon the road to Nikko,
- Where the pilgrims pray,
- Along the road to Nikko
- Either side the way,
- Thundering great camellia trees
- Decked with blossoms gay,
- Adorn the road to Nikko,
- The mountain road to Nikko,
- In the month of May.”
-
-
-The singer stopped singing and began to whistle. Then he broke out into
-prose.
-
-“Damn boots! I’ll be lame in another mile. Why can’t we be content with
-sandals like our ‘brithers’ the Japs!”
-
-“Dinna damn boots, but their makers,” replied his companion, a sandy
-Scot of fifty or more, dressed in broadcloth and a bowler, a figure at
-once a blot upon the lonely road and a blasphemy against Japan—a blot
-whose name was M’Gourley. “I vara well remember when I was in Gleska—”
-
-“Oh, don’t!” said the poet of the Nikko road, Dick Leslie by name, a
-young man, or rather a man still young, very tall, straight, dark, and
-good-looking, and a gentleman from the crown of his close-clipped, curly
-black head to the soles of the boots that were torturing him. “Don’t
-haul up your factory chimneys, your smoke and whisky bottles in this
-place of places. I believe if a Scot ever gets into heaven he’ll start
-his first conversation with his first angel by making some reference to
-Gleska: Look there!”
-
-“Whaur?”
-
-“There!” cried Leslie, turning from the direction of Fubasami and the
-beginning of the great Nikko valley before them, and pointing backwards
-away towards Kureise over an expanse of distant country where the clouds
-were drawing soft shadows across the rice fields and the sinuous hills;
-over little woods of fir and cryptomeria trees, lakes where the lotus
-flowers spread in summer, and the king-fisher flashed like a jewel; over
-occasional fields of flowers, flowers that grew by the million and the
-million.
-
-Many of these details were absorbed and dulled by distance, yet still
-lent their spirit to the scene, producing a landscape most strange and
-quaint.
-
-Nearly every other country seems flung together by nature, but Japan
-seems to have been imagined by some great artist of the ancient
-days—imagined and constructed.
-
-“Look there,” said Leslie, “saw you ever anything better than that in
-Clackmannan?”
-
-“Ay, have I,” replied M’Gourley, contemplating the view before him,
-“many’s the time. What sort of country do you call that? Man! I’d as
-soon live on a tea-tray if I had ma choice.”
-
-“Well, you’ve lived in Japan long enough to be used to it. It’s always
-the way; put a man in a paradise like this where there are all sorts of
-flowers and jolly things around him, and he starts grumbling and
-growling and pining after rain, and misery, and cold, and sleet, and
-peat smoke—if he’s a Scotchman. How long have you been in Japan, Mac,
-did you say?”
-
-“Near ever since the Samurai took off their swords and turned
-policemen.”
-
-“What kept you in the East so long if you don’t like it?”
-
-“Trade, like the wind, blaweth where it listeth, and a man must e’en
-follow his trade,” said M’Gourley; and they resumed their road.
-
-They were walking to Nikko together, this strangely assorted pair,
-strangely assorted though they were both Scotchmen. They were
-approaching the place, not by that splendid avenue of cryptomeria trees
-that leads from Utso-no-Miya, but by the wild hill road, which runs from
-Kureise, or rather by the higher hill road, for there are two, and they
-had taken the loneliest and the longest by mistake (M’Gourley’s fault,
-though he swore that he knew the country like the palm of his hand).
-
-They had come twenty or twenty-five miles of the way by riksha, and were
-now hoofing the remainder, their luggage having been sent on to Nikko by
-train.
-
-“And talking of trade,” said M’Gourley, “let’s go back to the matter we
-were on a moment ago; there’s money in it, and I know the beesiness. I
-ken it fine; never a man knows better the Jap Rubbish trade.”
-
-“You were talking of starting at Nagasaki.”
-
-“Ay, Nagasaki’s best.”
-
-“Well, I’ll plank the money,” said Leslie. “I’ll put up a thousand
-against a thousand of yours.”
-
-M’Gourley stopped and held out a hand sheathed in a mournful-looking
-black dogskin glove.
-
-“Is’t a bargain?” said he.
-
-“It’s a bargain. Funny that we should have only met the other day in
-Tokyo, and that you should have come along to Nikko to show me the
-sights. I believe all the time you were bent on trepanning me into this
-business.”
-
-“I was that,” said M’Gourley, with charming frankness; “for your own
-good. A man without a beesiness is a man astray, and when you told me in
-the hotel in Tokyo you were a boddie with money, and nothing to do with
-it, I said: ‘Here’s my chance.’”
-
-“If I had met you two months ago,” said Leslie bitterly, “I wouldn’t
-have been much use, for my father would not have been dead, and I would
-not have come into his money. Do you know what I have been?—I have been
-a remittance man.”
-
-“I’ve met vera much worse people than some of _them_,” said Mac, who if
-his newly found partner had declared himself a demon out of Hades would
-perhaps have made the same glossatory remark—the capital being assured.
-
-“I’m hanged if I have,” said Leslie bitterly. “Give me a Sydney
-Larrikin, a Dago, a Chinee, before your remittance man. I know what I’m
-talking about for I have been one—see?”
-
-“What, may I ask—” began M’Gourley, then he paused.
-
-“You mean what was the reason of my being flung off by my father?
-Youthful indiscretions. Let’s sit down; I want to take my boot off.”
-
-The road just here took a bend, and became wilder and more lovely, a
-stream gushed from the bank on which they took their seats, and before
-them lay a little valley, a valley hedged on either side by cypress
-trees, and thronged with crimson azaleas.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II
-
- THE BLIND ONE
-
-
-Crimson azaleas in wild profusion, here struck with sun, here shadowed
-by the cypress trees—a sight to gladden the heart of a poet. Between
-the cypress trees, beyond the azaleas, beyond country broken by sunlight
-and cloud shadows, lay the sea hills of Tanagura in the dimmest bluest
-distance.
-
-“If I could get that into a gold frame,” said Leslie, as he inhaled the
-delicious perfume of the azaleas and bathed his naked foot in the tiny
-cascade breaking from the bank on which they sat, “I’d take it to London
-and send it to the Academy—and they’d reject it.”
-
-“Vara likely,” replied Mac. “It is no fit for a peecture. Who ever saw
-the like of yon out of Japan? It’s nought but a fakement.”
-
-“I say,” said Leslie, “talking of fakements—in this business of ours I
-hope we’ll steer clear of all that.”
-
-“In this beesiness of oors,” said Mac, “I thought you distinctly
-understood my friend Danjuro will be the nominal head of the firrm—we
-are but the sleeping pairtners.”
-
-Mac’s Scotch bubbled in him when he grew excited, or when he forgot
-himself. Ordinarily he talked pretty ordinary English, but when the
-stopper was off the Scotch came out, and you could tell by the
-pronunciation of the word “money” whether he was mentioning the article
-casually or deep in a deal.
-
-“Well,” said Leslie, “I don’t want my dreams troubled by visions of
-Danjuro swindling unfortunate tourists; you say we’re to export things,
-but I don’t want to have him roping in people, selling them
-five-shilling pagodas at five pounds a-piece.”
-
-Mac sighed as if with regret at the impossibility of such a delightful
-deal as that.
-
-“It’s rather jolly going into business,” continued Leslie, dreamily
-gazing at the azaleas. “Only crime I’ve never committed, except murder
-and a few others. Good God! when I started in life I never thought I’d
-end my days peddling paper lanterns, and cheating people into buying
-penny-a-dozen kakemonos for a shilling a-piece. Don’t talk to me; all
-trade is cheating.”
-
-“You should have known Macbean,” said M’Gourley, who had also taken off
-his boots and stockings and was bathing his broad splay feet in the
-pretty little torrent.
-
-“Who was he?”
-
-“Forty year ago I was his ’prentice. Mummies, and idols, and pagods, and
-scarabeuses was the output of the firm, and Icknield Street, Birmingham,
-its habitation.”
-
-“Idols?”
-
-“Ay, idols. Some the size of your thumb, and some the size of bedposts,
-which they were derived from; some with teeth, and some with hair, and
-some bald as a bannock. We stocked half West Africa with idols, and the
-South Seas absorbed the balance.”
-
-“Well, you certainly take the cake,” said Leslie.
-
-“I took three pun ten a week at Macbean’s, and learnt more eelementary
-theology than’s taught in the schules of Edinboro’. Macbean said
-artistical idols was what the savages wanted, and what they would get as
-long as old bedposteses were to be bought at knockdown prices, and sold
-for the waurth of elephants’ tusks.”
-
-“You disgust me,” said Leslie, “upon my word you do.”
-
-“That’s what Macbean said one day to the boddie I had in mind when I
-began telling you of this. The boddie came in grumbling about a mummy—a
-vara fine mummy it was, too—that had been sold to him for export. The
-mummy had been stuftit with newspapers, but the _sachrum ustum_ used for
-coloring the stuffing matter being omitted, the printed matter remained
-in eevidence when the American who bought the article in Cairo opened it
-to hunt for amulets and scarabeuses. ‘Newspapers!’ said Macbean. ‘And
-what more do you expect in a fifty-shullin’ mummy? Did y’ expect it
-stuffed wi’ dimonds?’”
-
-“Well?” said Leslie.
-
-“That’s all, and that’s the whole of beesiness in a walnut shell; y’
-canna expect a fifty-shullin’ mummy to be stuffed with—”
-
-“Rubbish! the whole of swindling, you mean. Anyhow, we’ll keep straight,
-if you please; a fair profit I don’t mind, but I object to rank
-trickery—by the way, what’s the time? my watch has stopped; and how far
-is Nikko off?”
-
-“It’s after two,” said Mac, who had no very definite idea of how far
-Nikko might be off, having led his companion by the wrong road and
-concealed the fact. “And Nikko is maybe twarree miles, maybe a bit
-more—wull we go?”
-
-For all answer Leslie took some bar-chocolate from his pocket, gave some
-to his companion, and proceeded to lunch.
-
-“I daresay you think it funny,” said he at last, “my chumming up, and in
-your heart of hearts—that is, your business heart (excuse me for being
-frank)—you must think it strange I should put up my money with a man
-whom I don’t know in the least. But, man! the truth of the matter is I’m
-weary for a friend. I have money enough and to spare, but—I’m weary for
-a friend.
-
-“I’m the lonest man in the world,” went on Leslie, munching his
-chocolate and gazing at the beautiful scene before him; “the lonest man
-on God’s earth. What is the matter with me that I should never have
-found and kept a friend? If God had ever given me anything to love I’d
-have cherished it, but—there is no God that I can see.”
-
-“Whisht, man,” said Mac. “Dinna talk like that.”
-
-“I know I was wild,” went on Leslie, “before I left England, but other
-men have been as bad. I quarreled with my father, but other men’s
-fathers are different from what mine was. He drove me beyond the sea to
-be an alien and an outcast. I’ve seen drunken loafers in the bars of
-Sydney, where I was stuck as a remittance man three years; they had
-friends of a sort—friends who stuck them, but friend or dog never stuck
-to me.”
-
-“No wumman?” asked M’Gourley, spitting out the remains of the chocolate
-he was eating, and lighting a vile-looking Hankow cigar.
-
-“I loved a woman once,” said Leslie, staring before him with eyes that
-saw not Japan or the cypress trees or the azaleas. “Her name was Jane
-Deering; we were boy and girl together, cousins, and her people lived
-quite close to mine. We got engaged, and were to have been married,
-and—she threw me over.”
-
-“For why?” asked Mac.
-
-“Said she didn’t want to get married.”
-
-“Well, that was deefinite.”
-
-“Damned definite. What’s that noise?”
-
-“Tap, tap, tap.” It was the tapping of a stick upon the ground, and a
-man in the dress of a coolie, with a saucer-shaped hat upon his head,
-turned the corner of the road, coming in the direction of Nikko. He was
-tapping the ground before him with a staff. He was blind.
-
-“What an awful-looking face!” said Leslie, as the figure approached.
-“Look, Mac! Did you ever see the like of that?”
-
-One sees many extraordinary and sinister faces in the East, but the face
-of the on-comer would have been hard to match, even in the stews of
-Shanghai.
-
-The nose seemed to have been smashed flat by a blow. The face was flat
-and possessed an awful stolidity, so that at a little distance one could
-have sworn that it was carved from stone. It impressed one as the
-countenance of a creature long in communion with evil.
-
-The two Scotchmen held motionless to let this undesirable pass, but he
-must have possessed some sixth sense, for instead of passing he stopped
-and begun to whine.
-
-He spoke in a light, flighty, chanting voice, like the voice of a man
-either insane or delirious.
-
-“What’s he say?” asked Leslie.
-
-“He’s a Chinee, and wants money.”
-
-“Tell the beast to go.”
-
-“Says he knows we’re foreigners.”
-
-“Clever that; why, even I can hear your Scotch sticking out of the
-gibberish you’re talking.”
-
-“Says he wants opium—hasn’t had any the whole day, and if we will give
-him opium, or money to buy it, he’ll show us things.”
-
-“What things?”
-
-“Lord sakes! the creeture’s daft; says he can make great magic—snakes
-out of mud or flowers out of nothing.”
-
-“Why doesn’t he make some opium if he’s so clever?”
-
-“Says the woods around here are full of devils.”
-
-“Tell him to show us a devil, then.”
-
-Mac translated and the person so well acquainted with devils made
-answer.
-
-“For a piece of gold he will show us one. Why, Leslie, man, don’t you be
-a fule.”
-
-Leslie had taken half a sovereign from his pocket.
-
-“Give it him and tell him to show us a devil, and if he plays any tricks
-I’ll chivy him into Nikko, and give him up to the police.”
-
-“Don’t be a fule,” said Mac testily. “A’weel!”
-
-Leslie put the piece of gold into the creature’s hand, who put it to his
-ear for a moment, and then hid it in his rags. Then he bent his head
-sideways to the road.
-
-“What’s he doing now?”
-
-“He’s listening if the road’s clear; he says there’s nothing on it for
-two ri on either side, but he hears seven rikshas coming in the
-direction of Nikko, but he’ll have time to do what he wants before they
-arrive.”
-
-The Blind One bent down rapidly and traced an almost perfect circle
-around himself in the dust of the road; then hurriedly outside this he
-traced what an initiate might have taken for the form of the Egg, the
-horns of Simara, and another form needless to describe. Then he said
-something to Mac.
-
-“He says, we’re not to speak, or touch the circle or go near it. I have
-not paid for this entertainment, and I juist think I’ll take a bit walk
-doon the road.”
-
-“Sit down, you old coward,” said Leslie. “I’m the one that has paid, and
-I’m the one the ‘deevil’ will carry off if there is a deevil. Look!”
-
-The Blind One took from his rags a cane pipe such as blind men use in
-Japan, only larger, and began to blow mournful notes out of it. It was
-as strange a sound as ever left human lips, now ear-piercing, now low,
-low and soothing; his face flushed and swelled; he seemed enraptured,
-entranced with his own music, and the searching sound of it caused
-things to move disturbedly in the trees around, and a low croaking, as
-if from some feathered creature disturbed, to come from the cypress
-wood.
-
-As he played, he turned north, south, east, and west, lingering, at
-last, with the reed pipe pointing between the cypress trees, as though
-he were calling to the blue hills in the distance.
-
-As he stood thus, Leslie, who had been looking at the mysterious symbols
-around the circle, was seized with an impish impulse, and leaning
-forward with his walking-stick, he made in the dust inside the circle,
-and just behind the Blind One’s heel, the form of a cross.
-
-In doing this, the point of the stick touched the Blind One’s heel.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III
-
- THE LOST ONE
-
-
-A congreve rocket incautiously touched by a match could not have given a
-more surprising result.
-
-Flinging the pipe from him with a yell, the Blind One sprang clear over
-the circle, and stood for an instant panting and blowing at the sun.
-
-He seemed blowing away things that were trying to enter his mouth; then,
-the staff attached by a thong to his wrist flying about wildly, he began
-to tear at himself all over his body and fling things away from him, as
-though he were attacked by a hundred thousand scorpions; then as if
-bitten by some more serious enemy, he seized his staff, and striking
-about him wildly, began to run. Hither and thither, hitting right and
-left, dashing against trees and seeming utterly regardless of them,
-bleeding, torn, and all the time fighting his phantom pursuers he ran
-till he vanished round the bend leading towards Nikko. The two Scotchmen
-ran to the bend of the road, and there down the road they saw him still
-running, and fighting as if for his life; striking above him as if at
-things in the air, and around him as if at things leaping at him from
-the ground. Suddenly he vanished round a further bend, and was lost to
-view.
-
-“He’s gone gyte!” said Mac as they returned.
-
-“Well, I’m damned!” said Leslie.
-
-“I touched his heel, and I suppose he thought it was one of the
-devils—mad fool!”
-
-“’Tis no madness,” said Mac. “If ever I saw a man chased by deevils I’ve
-seen one now. ’Twas that mark you made let them loose, or my name’s not
-Tod M’Gourley. Did you no ken you were makin’ the sign of the cross in
-yon damned circle of his? Hech, man! _Look there!_”
-
-“Where?”
-
-“My God!” said M’Gourley, “look you there, _there_! There’s a bairn
-amongst the azaleas!”
-
-“So there is!” said Leslie. “By Jove, a little Jap girl come out of the
-wood.”
-
-“Dom it, man,” roared M’Gourley, “she wasn’t there twarree seconds ago.
-She’s come out of no wood; she’s been _fetched_.”
-
-“Well, of all the superstitious idiots!” said Leslie, gazing from the
-perspiring M’Gourley to the figure of the quaint and pretty little
-Japanese girl who was busy amidst the azaleas plucking the blossoms.
-“Why, it wouldn’t take her more than ‘twarree seconds’ to come out of
-the wood. Anyhow, I’ll go and see if she’s real.”
-
-“Man! man! hauld back!” cried the agonized M’Gourley as his partner
-plunged amidst the bushes. “Ye’ll be had; she’s a bogle. Lord’s sake!
-Lord’s sake! Well, gang your own gate, I’m off to Nikko.”
-
-Yet he waited.
-
-The bogle was plucking blossoms as hard as she could and in the profuse
-manner of childhood. She and the azaleas made a sight for sore eyes.
-
-She might have been seven or eight, dressed in a blue kimono with a
-scarlet obi, hair black as ebony shavings, tightly drawn off the
-forehead and held up with a tortoiseshell comb—the “germ of a woman.”
-
-Her back was turned to Leslie, and as he got within arm’s length of the
-quaint and delicious little figure he did just what you or I might have
-done—bent down, seized her up, and kissed her.
-
-The bogle dropped her flowers and gave a shriek, a most distinctly human
-shriek.
-
-“He’s kessed her!” cried M’Gourley, addressing the azaleas, the cypress
-trees, and all Japan.
-
-Then he stood in agony, held to the spot by the sight of Leslie and the
-bogle making friends.
-
-It didn’t seem to take long, for presently he returned through the
-azaleas triumphant, carrying her in his arms.
-
-“Here’s your bogle,” said he, placing her on the dusty road where, with
-all the gravity of the Japanese child, she made a deep obeisance to
-M’Gourley. That gentleman returned the compliment with a short, sharp
-nod.
-
-“I’m awa’ to Nikko,” said he in the hard, irritable voice of a person
-who is desirous of avoiding an undesirable acquaintance, gazing at
-Leslie and steadily ignoring the lady in blue who was now holding on to
-Leslie’s right leg, contemplating M’Gourley, and sucking the tip of a
-taper and tiny forefinger all at the same time. “I’m awa’ to Nikko. ’Tis
-no place for a mon like me. Never was I used to the company of fules—”
-
-“Don’t be an ass! Speak to her; you have the tongue, and I haven’t.”
-
-“I winna.”
-
-“Well, of all the old women I ever met,” said Leslie, addressing a
-“thundering great camellia tree” that stood opposite, “this partner of
-mine takes the bun!—don’t he, Popsums?” bending down and looking into
-the small face, the left cheek of which was now resting against his
-knee.
-
-Popsums, in reply to the smile and interrogative tone in the question
-she did not understand, smiled gravely back and murmured something that
-sounded like “Hei.”
-
-M’Gourley snorted, and Leslie broke out laughing; he had little of the
-Japanese, but he knew that “Hei” meant “Yes.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV
-
- AMIDST THE HILLS
-
-
-Just then a ripple of laughter came down the breeze, and round the
-corner of the road, heading for Nikko, came at full trot seven rikshas
-streaming out like a scarf of color; a dream of color—for each riksha
-contained a lady most beautiful to behold under the splendor of her
-umbrella.
-
-They were a party of girls returning to Nikko after some sylvan freak,
-and they drew up as if by common assent to admire the azaleas.
-
-Leslie, removing his hat and lifting his treasure trove, held her up for
-exhibition.
-
-The girls laughed and spoke to her; had they been English girls she
-would have been promptly handed round and kissed; and she, with becoming
-gravity, replied gracefully in a few half-lisped words.
-
-Then, leaving behind them on the air a cloud of dust, a perfume of
-camellia oil, and a long drawn “Sayonara,” the bevy of beauties passed
-in a gorgeous flight of mixed colors round the bend of the road and were
-gone.
-
-“Ye mind he said seven rikshas were coming,” cried Mac.
-
-“Bother!” answered Leslie. “He’d come the same direction and passed
-them. Do you think they’d have laughed and spoken to her if there was
-anything wrong and they’re Japs, and ought to know. Come! buck up, man!
-You’re not afraid to do what a girl has done?”
-
-“A’weel!” said M’Gourley, half ashamed of himself; and dour as any
-Procurator Fiscal, he set to the examination of the being who was now on
-the ground again, her hand clasped in that of Leslie.
-
-This was the result of the examination. Deponent lived with her father.
-Where? She did not know.—Just beyond there somewhere. What was the
-house like she lived in? It had a plum-tree growing before it. What did
-her father do? He hammered things with a hammer. Had she any brothers
-and sisters? No; but—sudden thought—she had a sugar-candy dragon, and
-she had lost it. (Here deponent wept slightly and with reserve.)
-
-Pause in the interrogations whilst a snub nose was wiped with Leslie’s
-pocket handkerchief.
-
-And a kite, but that was at home. She had gone that day with a little
-boy—a neighbor—to hunt for the saccharine dragon, and they had lost
-themselves, then they had lost each other, then _she_ had lost herself.
-How was that possible? Well, she had gone to sleep. Where? In the wood.
-
-Here the examinate went off into a tale about an impossible tom-cat with
-wings, which she had once seen on an umbrella, and beheld once again in
-the wood, but was suppressed by the court and asked to keep to facts.
-
-Whilst asleep in the wood she was awakened, so she declared, by a sound
-like the passage of a flight of storks, and, coming out of the wood,
-fearful of meeting a dragon, she began to pick the pretty flowers; then
-she was seized by the honorable gentleman, whose height was greater than
-a poplar tree.
-
-How old was she? Eight times the cherry blossom had blown since her
-humble self had come into the world.
-
-Then she volunteered the entirely unsolicited statement that it was
-likely her little boy companion had been lost in the snow. But that was
-impossible—well, it was a field of lilies then—and he had been most
-possibly devoured by a dragon.
-
-What did she propose about going home? Did she know the way, and could
-she go alone?
-
-Here she declared herself utterly at a loss. Her home was somewhere near
-by, but where, she could not exactly say.
-
-“Well, well!” said M’Gourley, when he had finished his examination. “It
-seems to me that bogle or no bogle you’ve saddled yoursel’ wi’ a lost
-child. Whaur’s your common sense now?”
-
-“Just where it always was.—Question is—what are we to do? Can _you_
-suggest anything?”
-
-“Na, na! it’s not for me to say,” said the other, with that vile sense
-of satisfaction a brither Scot feels when a brither Scot has made a
-cubby of himself. Then, remembering the bond of partnership, “If I were
-the party responsible, I’d just pop her back where I fund her first, and
-rin.”
-
-“Well, you _are_ a beast! Why, you benighted old mummy-stuffer, I
-believe you’ve got a scarab in your bosom instead of a heart! I’ll take
-her along to Nikko, and get the police to hunt out her home. Stay, we
-haven’t asked her what’s her name.”
-
-M’Gourley asked the question, and the Lost One declared her name to be
-“Bell-flower.”
-
-“Bell-flower!” said Leslie, who had a smattering of botany, “that’s a
-campanula. We’ll call her—‘Campanula.’”
-
-She also made declaration that she was quite satisfied to go with the
-honorable gentleman, whose height exceeded the tallest of trees. Leslie
-lifted her up and seated her upon his shoulder, and, as they started, he
-turned and looked back at the loveliness of the perfumed azalea
-valley—a sight that was yet to haunt him in the time to come.
-
-“It’s my opeenion,” said M’Gourley, as they took the road, “that there
-was something forming in yon wood, something dom bad, and you flung it
-out of the forming eelement, and she was just suckid in.”
-
-“What d’you mean?”
-
-“The wraith of some dead bairn was wanderin’ aboot, and the forming
-eelement seized it.”
-
-“What forming element? Rubbish! That chap was a lunatic; well, when he
-felt me touch him it set his lunacy off, that’s all. Why, I once went to
-a big asylum in Scotland, and I saw a man cutting just the same capers,
-fighting devils. He’s an opium taker, and the opium is out of his brain,
-that’s all. Drink does the same thing—Hi! By Jove, look up there! He’s
-at it still.”
-
-Away up in the wild mountain gorge they saw a figure. It was the Blind
-One still pursued, still running, and apparently fighting for his life.
-If his actions were not the outcome of insanity they gave food to the
-mind for the most terrible suppositions.
-
-Streaming with blood from his mad dashes against the trees, he seemed
-surrounded on all sides, hemmed in, fighting furiously like a man
-surrounded by wolves. If a tree chanced to be near, an opening seemed to
-be made for him by his tormentors towards it, and he would rush at it
-and dash himself against it, falling back bleeding but fighting still,
-screaming and all the time being steadily shepherded further and further
-into the loneliness of the hills.
-
-“Sirs! Sirs!” cried Mac, throwing up his hands as the horrible spectacle
-vanished round a distant bend of the gorge. “This is no sight for a
-Christian mon!”
-
-“It’s pretty rotten,” said Leslie who looked rather pale and sick.
-“Fetch out that flask of yours, Mac. Thanks. Poor devil! would there be
-any use following him?”
-
-“Not for twanty thousand pounds would I follow him,” said Mac, gurgling
-at the flask. “He’s in ither hands than ours.”
-
-And, indeed, not for a very great sum would Leslie have gone up that
-desolate gorge to see the finish of the tragedy.
-
-“Let’s go on,” said Leslie, “and don’t let’s speak of it again. I want
-to forget it—ugh!”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V
-
- THE TEA HOUSE OF THE TORTOISE
-
-
-It was at the next turn that Nikko broke upon them, a long way off,
-lying in its valley amidst the high hills, hills fledged with greenery
-to their summit.
-
-There are sights that strike the eye and the heart at the same time, and
-the sight of Nikko where the Shoguns sleep, Nikko the beautiful in the
-silent valley, amidst the silent hills, is one of these.
-
-The delicate colors, the exquisite tracery of the temple roofs, the
-crystal clearness of the air through which the eye can pick out detail
-after detail, the atmosphere of tranquillity of the mountains, and the
-green cryptomeria trees, make up a picture, leaving little for the heart
-to desire, or the imagination to conceive.
-
-“Why,” cried Leslie, turning to his companion (Campanula was seated
-aloft in solitary state upon his shoulder clutching his hair tight,
-whilst he held in one big hand her two little sandal-shod, tabi-clad
-feet), “if that’s Nikko, it’s ten miles off if it’s a foot. What’ve you
-got to say for yourself, hey?”
-
-“A’weel,” said M’Gourley, glowering at Nikko, “if you want my candid
-opeenion, we’ve juist gone astray; the country I know well, but these
-dom roads lead one like a Jack o’Lanthorn. It’s my opeenion that a
-Japanese road—”
-
-“I don’t want your opinion on Japanese roads, I want your concise
-opinion about yourself—ain’t you a fool?”
-
-“Ay, ay,” said M’Gourley, as if considering the matter, “a fule I may
-be, but it’s my candit opeenion that I’m not the only fule in Japan.”
-
-“Well,” said Leslie, “fool or no fool, we’ll have to tramp it, and
-you’ll have to take your turn to carry the kid, so—_Marchons_!”
-
-Campanula, so far from being frightened at her awful elevation from the
-earth, seemed to enjoy the situation, and to find food for a sort of
-muse of her own, for she began to hum as Leslie took the road with his
-long stride, and to sing in a lisping sort of way.
-
-“What’s she singing?” demanded her bearer of the sweating Scot at his
-side.
-
-“Lord knows! ’tis an eldritch chune, and I dinna like to listen to the
-words. Man, Leslie, but your legs are longer than mine, and I canna keep
-the pace.”
-
-“Well, I’ll go slower if you’ll listen, and tell me what she’s singing.”
-
-“She’s singing,” gasped M’Gourley, “s’ far as I can make out, some
-diddering noensense aboot a sugar-candy dragon that a man like a poplar
-tree is goin’ to hunt, he and a man like a corbie.”
-
-“That’s you.”
-
-“More like some bogle from the wood that’s maybe after us now. I am not
-a supersteetious man—na, na! ye may laugh or not—but would y’ like to
-know what in my humble opeenion you are cartin’ on your shoulders?”
-
-“Yes?”
-
-“Some bairn that has been lost and dead these years, and has been
-whustled up by that blind deevil with the pipe. What did she mean by
-that reeference to the snaw—answer me that!”
-
-“When I can get into the mind of a Japanese child, and see the world as
-it sees it, I’ll answer you; you know what children’s minds are, how
-they mix and imagine things.”
-
-“What did she mean by that reeference to the snaw?” grimly went on
-M’Gourley. “Mix or no mix, what did she mean by the other bairn being
-lost in the snaw?”
-
-“Well,” said Leslie, “I don’t care a button whether she’s a bogle or
-not. If she is, she’s the prettiest bogle that was ever bogled, and
-about the heaviest, I should think. Here, you take a turn with her, I’m
-about done.”
-
-They took it turn about, M’Gourley vastly loth, to carry the Lost One;
-and the Lost One stopped them to gather flowers for her by the wayside,
-to give her drinks from rivulets, to help her admire and wonder at
-herons and other marvels of the way, so that it was after six of the
-clock when two of the most dusty and perspiring Scotchmen in the Eastern
-Hemisphere entered the happy village of Nikko from the mountain side,
-Campanula this time on Leslie’s shoulder, grave, triumphant, and holding
-a huge lily in her hand.
-
-Nikko and its surroundings just now was ablaze with scarlet japonica.
-The lamps of the camellias were lit, the soaring wistaria vines had
-broken into clusters of pale lilac blossoms, the iris beautified the
-field, and the wild cherry the thicket. It was as if spring had called
-from the tomb of Iyeyasu and her faithful had come to pray.
-
-There are two hotels at Nikko known to the globe-trotter, “Kanayas” and
-the “New Nikko,” but M’Gourley knew a better place than these.
-
-As they passed down the long inclined street a baby with a shaved head,
-a baby that was half a baby and half an obi, tied behind in a stiff and
-preposterous bow, spied Campanula being borne aloft, dropped his
-immediate business—the attempt to fly a kite shaped like a moth—and
-followed the newcomers with a shout.
-
-The shout, as if by magic, brought half a dozen children from nowhere in
-particular; girl children with dolls on their backs, older girl children
-with babies on their backs, boys battledore in hand, and all with clogs
-on their feet, clogs that went clipper-clapper, waking up the echoes and
-calling forth more children, so that when they had got half-way down the
-mile-long street from the upper village Campanula had a “following,” the
-like of which had never been seen, perhaps, since the pied piper passed
-through Hamelin.
-
-A colored, laughing, murmuring, rippling throng following with every eye
-fixed on the Lost One borne sky-high on the shoulder of the tall
-stranger; a throng, the half of which could have walked under a
-dinner-table without much inconvenience; some empty-handed, some still
-grasping their implements of play, all agog, yet of decent and orderly
-behavior. A throng, in fact, of ladies and gentlemen in the making.
-
-Backward over the summit of Leslie gazed Campanula upon this crowd,
-whilst the stall-keepers and the stray riksha men, the pilgrims and the
-paupers, the priest and the policeman, stood by the way to watch the
-procession pass.
-
-“I say,” called Leslie to his companion, who was limping behind dead
-beat, yet in an agony at the “splurge” they were making, “this is gay,
-isn’t it?”
-
-“Dod rot the child!” cried M’Gourley, nearly tumbling over a fat baby
-with a tufted head, who was running in front of him and trying to look
-up in his face.
-
-“I dinna ken whoat ye mean by gay. I have no immeediate particular use
-for the waurd. Never before have I been held up to public reedicule. I’m
-a decent livin’ man, ye ken, an’ I ha’na any use for such gayeties. I
-leave them to ithers who care for makin’ assinine eediots of
-theirselves; but, thank the Laird, we’re nearly there noo.”
-
-They turned a corner and entered a gate that led to a garden.
-
-At the gate M’Gourley turned and addressed the camp followers, telling
-them with forced politeness that there was nothing more to be seen; that
-the show was over, in fact, and asking them honorably to excuse him the
-pleasure of being followed any more.
-
-The crowd murmured, and dissolved, the earth seemed to take it up like
-blotting-paper, and M’Gourley, turning his back upon its remnants, led
-the way through the garden, past a tiny lake in the midst of which stood
-an island, inhabited by a huge frog, and so, by a path, to the front of
-a long, low, white-washed house.
-
-This was the Tea House of the Tortoise, a place well known to M’Gourley,
-as (to use his own abominable expression) being “cheap and clean.”
-
-A panel of the front was drawn back, revealing cream-white matting and
-lamp light.
-
-M’Gourley sat down with a sigh on the side of the veranda, and began to
-pull off his elastic side boots. Leslie sat down also, with Campanula in
-his lap; he could not put her down for she had literally tumbled into
-sleep.
-
-“Pull off my boots, Mac,” said he. “I can’t let go of this blessed
-child.”
-
-“Na!” said Mac mysteriously, and somewhat viciously, as he knelt down
-and unlaced his partner’s boots, “ye cannot let her go, ye cannot let
-her go; forby, she wullna let _you_ go.”
-
-“You think she’s going to stick to me?”
-
-“Imphim,” replied Mac.
-
-Imphim is not Japanese, it is the double Scotch grunt, which has
-twenty-two separate meanings, mostly unpleasant. Shut your mouth tight
-and try to say “Hum, hum,” and you will achieve “Imphim,” but never do
-it again, please.
-
-Leslie was about to answer, when a sound behind made him turn, and
-there, like a pinned-down butterfly, was a Mousmé on the mat, crying,
-“Irashi, condescend to enter.”
-
-M’Gourley—a most unengaging figure in his stocking feet—rose and
-addressed the Mousmé.
-
-He told her things in language unknown to Leslie; things about the
-sleeping Campanula evidently, for he pump-handled with his arm in the
-direction where Leslie, bootless now, sat holding her.
-
-The Mousmé on her knees, a camellia blossom in her hair and her eyes
-fixed upon M’Gourley, seemed fascinated. Then she called out and....
-
-“Hai tadaima,” came a soft voice from somewhere in the back premises,
-and a second Mousmé appeared, made obeisance, and listened whilst the
-tale, whatever it was, was laid before her.
-
-Deep astonishment, exclamations of wonder, a call:
-
-“Hai tadaima!” and an old lady appeared, and made obeisance, and
-listened whilst the thrice-told tale was told her by the two Mousmés and
-M’Gourley all together.
-
-Meanwhile Leslie, feeling ridiculously like a nursemaid, sat holding the
-Lost One, whose soul was wandering in the vain land of dreams.
-
-“What are you stuffing those creatures up with?” he suddenly broke out.
-“Blessed if you oughtn’t to be dressed in a kimono and a petticoat;
-you’re the biggest old woman of the lot. Ask one of them to take the
-kid, or I’ll go off to the hotel with her.”
-
-“One minit,” said Mac. “They’re conseedrin’ the matter.”
-
-Scarce had he spoken when the old lady called out, and entered on the
-scene, an old gentleman, the proprietor of the tea house, a black cat,
-and two more Mousmés.
-
-“Oh, _do_ call a few more!” said Leslie. “And call in a couple of
-musicians and make the comic opera complete.”
-
-“There are no more to call,” replied Mac. “They are conseedrin’ the
-matter. The Japanese are a very supersteetious people, and these are
-good friends of mine, and I would not spring a pairson upon them with
-dootful anticeedents. You see, Leslie, man, the presence of the bairn
-must be explained. She is not a bale of goods we can dump in a corner.
-Bide a wee; I will talk them over yut.”
-
-The Areopagus was considering the question as to whether Campanula, if
-admitted to the Tea House of the Tortoise, would bring ruin and
-destruction or a blessing on the premises, when Hedgehog San, the black
-cat, settled the matter by coming up to Leslie and rubbing against his
-leg.
-
-Then the Hon. Hedgehog—may his ashes rest in peace!—jumped on Leslie’s
-knee and rubbed himself against Campanula.
-
-That clinched the business.
-
-The old lady herself advanced, and, taking the Lost One from the Weary
-One, carried her bodily into the house, whilst Leslie, yawning and
-stretching himself, followed.
-
-Inside, in the bare, clean room, the little Mousmé with the camellia in
-her hair addressed herself to Leslie in a soft and beseeching voice.
-
-“What does she want?” he asked of Mac.
-
-“She wants to know if you require anything.”
-
-“A bath—that’s what I want more than anything—don’t you?”
-
-“I am not given to promeescuous bathing,” said M’Gourley, “being greatly
-subject to the siatickee; but a bath you wull have, and I’ll e’en sit
-here and smoke a pipe whilst you bathe yourself.”
-
-“I want also a sugar-candy dragon for the bairn,” said Leslie. “Ask ’em
-to send out and get one. I suppose you can get such things?”
-
-M’Gourley gave the message to the maid, and she departed.
-
-The travelers’ luggage—a frightful-looking old mid-Victorian carpet bag
-belonging to M’Gourley, and a Gladstone of Leslie’s—had already arrived
-at the tea house, having been sent on by rail _via_ Utsu-no-Miya, and
-the two sat down on small square cushions, placed on the cream-colored
-matting, to smoke a pipe, whilst dinner and the bath were preparing.
-
-“The police will be here the morn about that bairn,” said Mac in his
-cheerful way, “and we’ll have to acoont for her.”
-
-“Of course we will.”
-
-“Ay, ay,” said Mac, “but have you ever acoonted for a thing to the
-Japanese police?”
-
-“Well, considering I’ve only been in Japan ten days, I haven’t had much
-time, you see, to fall foul of the police.”
-
-“I found a scairf pin once,” said this comforter of Job, “on the Bund at
-Nagasaki. Twa-and-sax-pence it was worth, or maybe three shullin’, and I
-took it to the police office and began to acoont for it.”
-
-He stopped and sighed and sucked his pipe.
-
-“Well?”
-
-“Well, I’m acoontin’ for it still, and that’s three months ago; letters
-and papers, and papers and letters enough to drive a man daft! Well, I’m
-thinkin’ if a twa-and-saxpenny scairf pin can cause such a wully waugh,
-what’s a live bairn going to do? Now, I’m thinking—”
-
-“May I give you a piece of advice, Mac?”
-
-“I am always open to judeecious advice,” answered the unsuspecting Mac.
-
-“Well, don’t think too much or you’ll hurt yourself.”
-
-M’Gourley grunted, and at that moment the Mousmé with the camellia in
-her hair entered with the announcement that the bath was ready in the
-room above, and Leslie departed.
-
-“When you have shown the honorable gentleman the bath, come down; I wish
-to speak to you,” said M’Gourley to the lady of the camellia. She obeyed
-the request and M’Gourley held her in light conversation, till he knew
-by the sounds above that his partner was in the tub. Then he released
-the handmaiden, and she departed upstairs.
-
-He listened, and presently he heard Leslie’s voice.
-
-“Go away, please. Good heavens I say, I _wish_ you’d go away! No, I
-don’t want soap. I say, Mac! Hi, McGourley!—leave my back
-alone—_M’Gourley_!”
-
-But M’Gourley, like an Indian Sachem, smoked on and answered not.
-
-He was having his revenge for the Nikko road.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI
-
- THE DREAMER AND THE DRAGON
-
-
-They had finished dinner; a dinner which began with tea and bean flour
-cakes, passed on to fish served on little mats of grass, went on to soup
-served in lacquered bowls, proceeded to prawns; halted, hesitated, and
-went back to soup, scratched its head, so to speak, and then, as if with
-an after-thought, served up a quail, apologized for the substantiality
-of the quail by presenting a salted plum on a little plate, and then
-harked shamelessly back to soup, ending deliriously with a shower of
-little dishes containing everything inconceivable, and a big bowl of
-rice.
-
-This is an impressionist picture of a Japanese dinner. I have eaten
-many, but I have never carried away more than an impression, and whether
-kuchi-tori comes before hachiz-a-kana, I cannot say, or where the
-seaweed or salted fish come in—but come in they do, they and other
-things stranger than themselves.
-
-A _chamécen_ was thrumming somewhere in the house as they dined, sitting
-on the soft white matting, and waited upon by two Mousmés crouched on
-the matting like little panthers preparing to spring.
-
-A slid back panel of the front wall made a doorway through which they
-could see the moon wandering over Nikko, casting her cool white light
-upon the blazing japonica flowers, the glory of the camellias, the roofs
-of the temples, and the sad dark beauty of the cryptomeria trees.
-
-Nikko by day is fair, but by night, when the moon is overhead, when the
-air is full of the sounds of wandering waters, and the wind is heavy
-with the perfume of the wild azaleas, Nikko is a dream.
-
-When the tea and bean cakes had been served, the moon was in the act of
-washing weakly a house gable across the garden, and a pale lilac-colored
-flower of the wistaria, which projected above the extemporized doorway;
-but by the time the quail had made its appearance, the garden was solid
-in moonlight, the pond was a mirror, and the frog self-marooned on the
-little island, was as distinct as if seen by daylight.
-
-“I must learn Japanese,” said Leslie, taking a cigarette-case from his
-pocket and lighting a cigarette at the tobacco-mono that stood at his
-elbow. “My lines are cast in Japan, that’s clear, but a man without the
-language is a helpless baby.”
-
-“Ay, ay,” said M’Gourley. “You can easily get instruction in the
-Japanese: take a wumman to live with you.”
-
-“I haven’t looked at a woman for ten years, and I don’t want to look at
-one again.” Then suddenly bursting out: “Why, you old scamp, talking
-like that—you told me you were a member of the Free Kirk.”
-
-“The Wee Kirk,” corrected Mac, leisurely lighting his pipe with an ember
-from the hibachi.
-
-“Well, Free Kirk or Wee Kirk, you ought to be jolly well ashamed of
-yourself; and were you a member of the Wee Kirk when you were
-constructing idols in Birmingham with old What’s-his-name?”
-
-“Na, na; those were my godless days. I got my releegion late in life,
-and a vara good releegion it is; a waurkable releegion, one that does
-not heat in the bearings, but runs smooth.”
-
-“And what is this wonderful religion, if I may ask?”
-
-“It is noet so much wonderful as waurkable, and it may be compreezed in
-the sentence: ‘Do unto ithers as ithers would do unto you.’”
-
-“O good Lord! and you call that a religion! Why, you precious old
-humbug, that means you can rob, and plunder, and murder, and cheat—that
-is to say, you can act like a beast towards people who would act so to
-you.”
-
-“Just so.”
-
-“Well, there’s one thing I like about you, you’re frank, to say the
-least of it.”
-
-This remark seemed greatly to incense Mac, who, perhaps, misunderstood
-the meaning of the word frank.
-
-“When y’ve been in the waurld as long as I have, surrounded on ivry side
-by scoondrels and robbers, y’ll maybee be as fraunk as mysel’.
-Fraunk.—wid ye give me a defineetion of the waurd—fraunk! I wid have
-ye to understand I’m an hoenest mon with hoenest men, but _I’m a
-scoondrel wi’ scoondrels_. Fraunk!” And so he went on, his Scotch accent
-deepening as deepened his excitement, till at last he broke down into
-Gaelic, and thundered his remarks at the hibachi, slapping his thigh as
-he did so, and wakening the echoes of the house, which was resonant as a
-fiddle. So that by the time he had got to the end of his exordium,
-Leslie saw a panel waver back an inch, and the lady of the camellia
-peeping in to see what the Learned One was shouting about.
-
-“Keep your hair on,” said Leslie, when Mac, with a final “Fraunk!”
-delivered in English, began to refill and light his pipe. “I didn’t mean
-to insult you; I only meant to say I like your open-heartedness.”
-
-“Ay, I was ever that to those I had a liking for.”
-
-“I meant more precisely your open-mindedness—but no matter, let’s talk
-of something else. I wonder where they’ve put the kid, and oh, by Jove!
-I wonder if they’ve got that dragon. Sing out and ask, like a good
-chap.”
-
-Mac clapped his hands, and “Hai tadaima!” came as a response.
-
-It was worth the trouble of clapping one’s hands to hear that sweet
-reply.
-
-A moment later, a panel slid back and the camellia lady appeared.
-
-Campanula San was asleep, and at that very moment Wild-cherry-bud was in
-search of the Hon. Dragon, with orders to leave no confectioner’s stall
-unvisited till she had secured him.
-
-This with immovable gravity and deep, sweet earnestness of tone.
-
-“Well,” said Leslie when she had withdrawn, “of all the people I have
-struck yet, give me the Japanese.”
-
-“Wait till you’ve had beesiness transactions with them,” said Mac
-darkly. “I am no so unfreenly to the Japs in or’nary life, but in
-beesiness the Jap’s a wrugglin’ sairpent—all but one—Danjuro—the man
-we’re going to join in partnership; he’s as straight as a Chinee.”
-
-“He must be damn crooked then!”
-
-“Cruik’d enough to make his way in Japan, but straight enough to a
-freend; but you’re a poet, man, Leslie, and no beesiness man. I kent y’
-for a poet when you sang that bit song on the road—the song aboot the
-camellia trees.”
-
-Leslie laughed.
-
-“That rubbish! It’s not mine; I read it in the Sydney _Bulletin_. Funny
-enough, too, it was the first thing that made me think of coming to
-Japan! Poetry! Good God! Put a man through the remittance mill in Sydney
-and see all the poetry that will be left in him! Put a butterfly through
-a sausage machine and then see how beautifully it will fly! Yes, I was
-once a poet; years and years ago I was a poet—a poet who never wrote
-anything, but a poet for all that. I could see the beauty of the world;
-and then they blinded me. Who? I don’t know—the world. Maybe it was
-myself, maybe not. Maybe it was my father, maybe not. I only state the
-fact that something in me is dead—the something that took joy in life
-and found beauty in innocence—or was dead till I came to Japan. Oh,
-M’Gourley, man, the years I’ve spent in Sydney under a cloud, mixing
-with bar loafers, cursing my father and myself; the years I’ve spent in
-Sydney have broken my soul in me!”
-
-“Why did ye not waurk?”
-
-“Work! I had just enough money to keep me from starvation and decently
-dressed. I might have got a clerkship; for what good? To make another
-hundred a year. To spend on what? Can you not understand, man, that my
-mainspring was gone, that I was put out of the world I knew, tied by the
-leg to Sydney, bound to appear every quarter-day at the double-damned
-lawyer’s office, or starve? Two things only kept me alive—tobacco and
-books—saved me from myself and from drink.”
-
-“What sort of a mon was your faither?”
-
-“A hard, dour, just man—a man who could make no allowance for folly.”
-
-“Ay, ay! Had y’ any brithers and sisters?”
-
-“Never a one, and my mother died when I was two; and he used to leather
-me. Well, you can fancy my joy when old Bloomfield, the lawyer, sent for
-me one day and said: ‘I’ve bad news for you, Mr. Leslie.’ ‘What’s that?’
-said I. ‘Your father is dead. He died intestate, and you have inherited
-his property. I am advised it amounts to over twenty-one thousand
-pounds.’”
-
-“Twenty-one thousand?” said Mac in admiration.
-
-“Yes; and I said to Bloomfield: ‘You must be either a fool or a
-hypocrite, for that’s the best news I ever heard in my life, and you
-know it.’ Then some instinct took me over here to Japan. I was thinking
-of going to England, but I found all at once I had a horror of England
-and the English, so I came to Japan; and glad I am I came. Can you fancy
-what these people here are to me after the population of Sydney—those
-raucous, horse-racing, drink-swilling beasts? Then I fell in with you at
-Tokyo, and took a fancy to your old Scotch mug—and here we are.”
-
-At this moment a little figure crossed the garden, bearing a lantern on
-the end of a stick. It was Wild-cherry-bud; and presently she appeared
-with the much-sought-for dragon wrapped in rice paper.
-
-It was a wonderful creation with a twisted tail, rather stumpy wings,
-but with a mouth that made up for all defects; nothing so ferocious had
-ever perhaps before been done in sugar candy.
-
-When the thing had been inspected and approved, Wild-cherry-bud led the
-way to where Campanula slept, for Leslie wished his present to be placed
-beside her, so that she might find it when she awoke.
-
-The Lost One, looking very much lost indeed on a huge futon (a quilt
-thicker than a muffin), and covered by a blue mosquito-net with red
-bound edges, was so profoundly asleep that the clicking of the net being
-pulled aside and the light of the night lantern borne by Wild-cherry-bud
-did not disturb her. She was sleeping on her back, the top futon only
-drawn to her waist, and her little perfectly shaped white hands were
-crossed pathetically on her breast.
-
-Leslie knelt down, and lifting one little hand placed the long-sought
-monster beneath it. The hand clasped the dragon, the long-sought dragon,
-and across the sleeper’s face passed what seemed the ghost of a smile.
-
-“A’weel!” thought Mac as he looked on, “had he a bairn he’d make a
-better faither to it than his own faither made to him.”
-
-Then the mosquito-net was drawn and they departed, leaving Campanula to
-the possession of her dreams.
-
-Up in their room Leslie steadily refused to undress till the waiting
-Mousmé had “cleared out.” He had already refused to allow her to rub his
-back when he was in his tub and now this—
-
-The Tea House of the Tortoise people, good old-fashioned, Japanese inn
-people, unused to foreign follies, could not make it out.
-
-The Areopagus convened itself again, and held council by the light of an
-andon, or night lantern.
-
-“What could it mean?” There was simply no meaning in it. Such a thing
-had never happened before, and the general conclusion was that Leslie
-had “gone gyte.”
-
-Then the Areopagus went to bed all together under the same mosquito-net,
-and silence reigned with the moon over the Tea House of the Tortoise.
-The moon wandering over Nikko touching temple and tea-house pointed a
-pallid finger between the window chinks of the room where the Lost One
-lay asleep, as if to show her to the night. Clasping the candy dragon
-whose ferocious eyes shone carbuncle-like in the placid moonlight she
-made a strange picture, veiled by the blue gauze of the mosquito-net.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VII
-
- HOW CAMPANULA BROUGHT FORTUNE TO THE
- HOUSE OF THE TORTOISE—AND OTHER
- THINGS
-
-
-The sun rose up and struck Nikko; struck the sacred red lacquered bridge
-that crosses the foaming river, and the common bridge that you and I may
-use, the potter’s shop, and the golden shrine of Iyeyasu.
-
-Then temple after temple broke up from shadow as the sun reached for
-them and found them, and the hills took on a momentary splendor, an
-ethereal loveliness, evanescent as youth and never to be recaptured by
-the day.
-
-In the garden of the Tea House of the Tortoise a bomb-shell full of
-bickering sparrows seemed suddenly to burst above the pond, the sun
-looked over the wall upon the dwarf maples in their blue porcelain
-flowerpots, a panel of the white house front slid back and a Mousmé
-appeared, her head tied up in a blue cotton duster; appeared another
-Mousmé, dragging a futon to air in the morning brightness, and yet
-another who came out and yawned at the sun, showing him the full extent
-of her pink gullet, and every one of her thirty-two white teeth.
-
-Then Hedgehog San, a cat honored and beloved, came forth with tail
-erect, and a grasshopper hanging by the veranda in a tiny cage creaked
-forth a thin hymn of praise.
-
-Thus started the day at the Tea House of the Tortoise.
-
-When Leslie and M’Gourley came downstairs—a stair like a ship’s
-companion-way but without any balustrade—they found Campanula having
-her obi tied by Fir-branch (she who had yawned at the sun), and Leslie
-was informed through his partner that the dragon had been found and that
-he had grown; this statement, with some confidential information
-concerning a thunder-cat of which she had dreamed, Mac translated from
-the original with a serious face.
-
-Up to this he had treated the Lost One as an adult, and as a most
-undesirable adult, with whom he wished to have nothing to do. But
-Campanula, fresh and spruce in the light of morning, chattering over her
-shoulder to you about thunder-cats, whilst Fir-branch tied her obi in a
-huge bow, was a person whose charm was not to be denied, and Mac began
-to thaw.
-
-“What’s a thunder-cat?” asked Leslie.
-
-“Lord only knows! some contraption in the shape of an animal that makes
-thunder. The Japs are full of supersteetions about animals. Wull we out
-before breakfast?”
-
-Leslie the night before had declared his intention of sending for the
-police next morning before the police sent for him, and had given a
-message to the landlord accordingly. But he might have saved his breath.
-
-Nikko was agog. Whether the tale had leaked through the chinks of the
-Tea House of the Tortoise, whether Wild-cherry-bud had distributed it
-during her peregrinations in search of the dragon, no one will ever
-know; the fact remains that the story of Campanula had gone abroad with
-additions—all sorts of weird and wonderful additions. Half Nikko had
-seen her borne aloft on the shoulders of Leslie, the other half had
-heard extraordinary statements concerning her origin; the result was
-that the whole of Nikko ached inwardly with a great ache of curiosity.
-
-By seven o’clock fifteen Mousmés or maybe twenty, had arrived singly and
-in couples, not to ask questions, but to borrow things, or to offer the
-loan of things, or to ask after the health of old mother Ranunculus, the
-landlady of the “Tortoise.” Incidentally they learned about Campanula.
-
-A juggler had made her on the Nikko road. Out of what, for goodness’
-sake? Out of a wild azalea bush!
-
-No!
-
-Yes, assuredly, the Learned One had said so.
-
-And what had become of the juggler? He had vanished in a clap of
-thunder—turned into a dragon.
-
-Surprising!
-
-And they went off to spread the news.
-
-At half-past eight, or thereabouts, a little man in white, the chief of
-the Nikko police, arrived. He had come officially, but he also was
-aching to get to the truth of this marvelous tale.
-
-Now the Japanese police is the most perfect police force in the world in
-every respect. They are recruited from the Samurai or fighting-class,
-and they are gentlemen to a man.
-
-The chief of the Nikko police made profound apologies for disturbing the
-peace of the strangers, then he heard the story told by M’Gourley.
-
-He agreed that it was strange, but opined that the Lost One might simply
-be a lost child. Where exactly was she found? In a valley of crimson
-azaleas on the road from Kureise. Ah, yes! there was such a valley well
-known, for the azaleas were crimson, and differed from the wild scarlet
-azaleas so common hereabouts. There were also villages around there, and
-tea houses; it might possibly be that she belonged to one of these. As
-to the mad man they had seen running away, no one else had seen him.
-
-Then Campanula was brought in and questioned, the whole of the
-“Tortoise” people squatting round in a ring, even down to Hedgehog San,
-who sat with judicial gravity, and seemed to be taking mental notes.
-
-She told her little tale about the house with the plum tree in front of
-it, and the kite, and the sugar-candy dragon which she had lost and
-found again. How the said dragon had grown very much, and seemed
-different, but tasted all right. Here she hastened to explain that she
-had not eaten him, only touched him with her tongue.
-
-She could not possibly say what men called her father. He hammered
-things. What sort of things? She did not know, but they went pong, pong,
-pong, when he struck them.
-
-“Tinsmith,” murmured M’Gourley.
-
-She was sure of one thing, that her father’s house was quite close to
-the wood and the azalea valley.
-
-How old was she?
-
-Seven times had the cherry blossoms blown since her humble self—
-
-“Hauld there,” said M’Gourley. Then in Japanese he explained that
-yesterday she had declared that eight times the cherry blossoms had
-blown since her humble self, etc.
-
-Ah, yes! but how was she to know? a lump of mud like her!
-
-In conclusion, she took back her statement about the snow. She must have
-dreamt that in the wood.
-
-Then the court began to consult, the “lump of mud” sitting in their
-midst pensive and rather sad, a scarlet flower in her black hair, and
-the bow of her obi looking very stiff and huge.
-
-“Look here,” said Leslie at last. “Tell him I’ll look after her, and pay
-all expenses till she’s found. Tell him to have the place searched, all
-that wood and country, and I’ll pay for it; and if they can’t find her
-people I’ll adopt her. I will, begad!”
-
-Mac translated.
-
-At first the chief of police seemed to think that the “lump of mud”
-should be hauled off to the police office—impounded, in short; then
-M’Gourley intervened. M’Gourley was a power in Japan just then, for the
-astute Scot had made himself very useful to the government in past
-years, and the chief of police, when he heard what Mac had to say,
-agreed to leave matters where they were whilst the country was being
-searched, and the chief of police at Tokyo communicated with.
-
-Then he took his departure, and here began the prosperity of the Tea
-House of the Tortoise.
-
-Three elderly gentlemen in kimonos were the first to arrive; after them
-a youth in a bowler hat, and with the face of an uninspired idiot. These
-sat round and sipped saki and smoked little pipes, and talked to
-Wild-cherry-bud and Fir-branch, and listened to the grasshopper singing
-in his cage, whilst more guests arrived, and still more. So that
-Fir-branch, Wild-cherry-bud, & Co., were full of business, so full
-indeed that mother Ranunculus, driven to her wits’ end, sent out for
-hired help.
-
-At eleven, when M’Gourley and his companion went out to inspect the
-golden Shrines, the Tea House of the Tortoise was humming like a
-bee-hive.
-
-“It’s a funny business,” said Leslie, as they turned the corner into the
-street.
-
-“I’m thinkin’,” said Mac, “that you’ll no find it so funny a beesiness
-in the end.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII
-
- THE SURPRISING STORY OF MOMOTARO—AKUDOGI
- AND SPOTTED DOG
-
-
-“I don’t care a button,” said Leslie, on the third morning of their stay
-in Nikko. “Danjuro may go be hanged. I’m not going to leave here till
-I’ve settled about the kid.”
-
-“Ay, ay!” said Mac. “The man who will to Cupar maun to Cupar. I would
-only imprees upon you this, that time is going and time is money.”
-
-“I know; but it won’t take more than a few days now. They say they’ve
-hunted the whole country round there, and can’t find trace of her
-people.”
-
-“Na, and never will. If she has onny real people they won’t fash
-themselves aboot her; girls in Japan are as plentiful as blaeberries in
-Lorne—you’re sadlit with her.”
-
-“Well, I want her, that’s the truth. I’ve taken a fancy to her; she’s
-not the sort of thing one picks every day—she and her thunder-cats and
-dragons.”
-
-“I won’t say she is not an attractif wee boddie,” said Mac, “but think
-of the future, mon, when she’s graun up.”
-
-“Bother the future! I’m rich enough to see after her. D’y know, Mac—”
-
-“Weel?”
-
-“I wonder did she come out of those azaleas?”
-
-Mac gave a grunt.
-
-Curiously enough, his point of view had changed, and he was now
-convinced, or pretended to be convinced, that the treasure trove was a
-solid body and no bogle.
-
-“Because,” went on Leslie, “it may be fact or fancy, but when I picked
-her up she seemed slipping away into thin air till I kissed her, and
-then she became solid.”
-
-“Imphim,” said Mac, using a variation of the sound that was simply
-stuffed with meanings all uncomplimentary to Leslie’s intelligence.
-
-“They used to tell me when I was a kid that babies came out of parsley
-beds. Well, I’m half inclined to believe the tale has come true at last,
-and she came out of those azalea bushes. Of course,” said Leslie
-suddenly, and as if apologizing to his own common sense, “I don’t really
-believe it, but I like to fancy it; it’s so much nicer than thinking she
-came into the world the other way.”
-
-The prosperity of the Tea House of the Tortoise still continued, people
-coming from far and near to get a glimpse of the foundling.
-
-Every day Mac and Leslie would take her out for a walk, and she clopped
-beside them in her little clogs delightfully grave, and seemingly
-unmindful of the polite following of children that always tailed after
-them without appearing quite to do so. Children bouncing colored balls,
-playing hop scotch or what not, yet always with an eye on the child that
-had come out of the azaleas.
-
-Shopping with Campanula Leslie found to be a new pleasure; a present, no
-matter what, was received with such deep thankfulness, such quaint
-expressions of gratitude.
-
-He ordered Mother Ranunculus—requested her, rather—to get a complete
-new outfit for his charge, everything that money could buy, from tabi to
-hairpins, from kimonos to clogs. As for toys, she simply wallowed in
-them: bouncing balls and battledores fell round her as if from the sky,
-not to mention a doll as big as a baby of three, which she instantly
-became a mother to, carting it about on her back tucked under her
-kimono.
-
-The one thing that disturbed Leslie was her seeming indifference to her
-own strange position. Beyond the bald statement that she had a father,
-she never referred to that enigmatical gentleman, nor did she grieve,
-outwardly at least, about her separation from him.
-
-By the end of the week the two Scotchmen and their charge began to be
-welded into a corporate body—a little quaint family party. It was
-strange the influence of this child upon these two men whom fate had
-drawn together from the corners of the earth. Leslie, with newly
-acquired interest in life, had grown five years younger in mind, and as
-for Mac, he had grown ten degrees more human. His withered fatherly
-instincts were awakened—at least they opened one eye—and it was pretty
-to see him with his gnarled, horny hands and intent, weather-beaten face
-making chickens for the Lost One out of orange pips.
-
-They would go out, all three, and wander about Nikko and its temples,
-and they would sit on grassy banks in the gardens of Dai Nichi Do, just
-as a father and an uncle and niece might sit on seats in Kensington
-Gardens, and then Leslie and his partner would discuss the future and
-trade, whilst Campanula played with her doll or bounced a ball.
-
-Here one day, whilst the sun shone on the little lake and the pink and
-copper maples, the tiny islands and bridges and pagodas, Campanula,
-weary of play, told, in a sing-song voice and broken manner, the story
-of Momotaro, otherwise called Peachboy, and his wonderful deeds. She
-told it standing before them, and striking attitudes suitable to the
-phases of the tale.
-
-One day, it appears, an old woman found a huge peach, and she was just
-going to cut it in two with a knife when the peach broke open, and out
-tumbled a baby. This very surprising thing happened a long time ago, but
-exactly when Campanula could not possibly say.
-
-Then Peachboy grew up, and every day he grew fatter and stronger, till
-at last he grew so big that he determined to fight Akudogi, the king of
-the Ogres, who lived on an island—somewhere. And he started out, said
-Campanula, with a sword and a bag full of millet dumplings, each with a
-salted plum in the center, to fight the Ogres.
-
-Here she took from her sleeve a paper of sweets, and gravely presented
-it to her companions, who each took one. She took one herself, consumed
-it, and resumed the narrative.
-
-On the way he met a spotted dog, a monkey, and a crow, and to each he
-gave a dumpling, and they followed him to the attack on Akudogi, the
-king of the Ogres.
-
-The narrator’s voice became deeper in tone, and she spread out her
-fingers as if in fear.
-
-The crow flew first to the castle of Akudogi and held him in talk,
-whilst Peachboy, spotted dog, and the monkey, got over the castle wall.
-
-Campanula was now standing before her auditors in a most dramatic
-attitude, her hands uplifted, the fallen back sleeves of her kimono
-showing her arms, and her brown eyes full of fear. She did not seem to
-see either Leslie or M’Gourley. Her eyes were fixed on the frightful
-Akudogi, and Peachboy, the spotted dog and the monkey, who were about to
-attack him.
-
-The crow, when he saw that his companions had gained an entrance to the
-castle, flew away with a laugh, and Akudogi turned and beheld Peachboy
-and his brave companions. He gnashed his teeth, pulled out his sword,
-and oh!
-
-Frightened to death with her own imaginations, she rushed with a little
-shriek into Mac’s arms for protection.
-
-“Hauld yourself taegether; I winna let them catch ye! I winna let them
-catch ye!” cried Mac, as he clasped the perfumed bundle that had flung
-itself into his arms.
-
-“What’s all that she was telling?” asked Leslie, who felt rather jealous
-that Mac should have been chosen as the harbor of refuge.
-
-“Only a daft tale about ogres an’ spotted dogs. She’s clean crackit on
-all sorts of queer beasties. Only last night she told me a tale aboot a
-rat that played the fiddle an’ a tortoise that came to listen, and she
-told what the tortoise speired an’ what the rat made answer, till you
-could have sworn you heard the rat and the tortoise claverin’
-taegither.”
-
-“Well, hand her over here,” said Leslie; “she’s not yours.” And he took
-Campanula from Mac and placed her on his knee. “She’s mine. I paid ten
-shillings to that chap with the reed-pipe to whistle her up.”
-
-“I’ll tell you what,” said Mac.
-
-“Well?”
-
-“I’ll gi’ you ten shullin’ for a half share, and pay half the expeenses
-of her upbringing.”
-
-“No, she’s mine; you can play with her as much as you like, but I’m
-going to keep her. She’s the jolliest thing I ever struck, and I’m going
-to stick to her. I saw that policeman Johnnie this morning, and he’s
-quite given up hope of finding her people. They’ve hunted everywhere. I
-offered him a fiver to cover the business, but he would not touch the
-money. He says the chief of police at Tokyo knows you.”
-
-“Weel does he know me, seven year and more.”
-
-“And he says there’s no objection to our taking her along to Nagasaki if
-you give your bond that she will be looked after, so I was thinking of
-starting to-morrow.”
-
-“Wull you take her with us?”
-
-“I was thinking of leaving her with the ‘Tortoise’ people till I settle
-about a place to live in at Nagasaki, and then coming back to fetch her.
-She’ll be all right with them, I suppose?”
-
-“Ay, she’ll be right enough,” said Mac, and they left the gardens of Dai
-Nichi Do, and headed for the hostelry.
-
-That night the Areopagus convened itself again, and M’Gourley explained
-matters. It was necessary that he and his honorable friend should go to
-Nagasaki, and they proposed that the Lost One should be left behind at
-the Tea House of the Tortoise, to be kept till called for, warehoused,
-in short, and, of course, paid for accordingly. Was Madame Ranunculus
-willing?
-
-Most willing.
-
-A sum of money would be placed in the landlord’s hands as guarantee.
-
-Oh, that was perfectly unnecessary!
-
-Still, the Hon. Leslie wished it.
-
-Accordingly, a sum equivalent almost to the value of the Tea House of
-the Tortoise, was placed in the landlord’s hands, who placed it in
-numerous folds of rice paper, and handed it to his wife, who engulfed it
-in her kimono.
-
-These matters having been satisfactorily settled, Campanula was led off
-to bed and dinner was served.
-
-Next morning at eight o’clock two rikshas arrived to take the travelers
-to the station. The whole of the “Tortoise” folk, Hedgehog San included,
-came to the front of the house. The cry, “Sayonara—come again quickly,”
-followed them as they swept round the pond and out at the gate, a cry
-made up of the landlord’s croaking basso, the sweet voices of the
-Mousmés, and Campanula’s childish treble.
-
-“She seemed sorrier to part with old Mac than me,” thought Leslie as
-they span along. “Ugh!” He turned his head in disgust from an English
-tourist in tweeds, who was engaged in kodaking a temple.
-
-In the train, with a pipe in his mouth and M’Gourley opposite to him, he
-felt as if he had just stepped out of a dream; a dream of sun and
-splendor, a dream in which figured camellia trees twenty feet high, and
-the form of the Lost One standing amidst the glory of crimson azaleas.
-
-But another picture obtruded itself upon this pleasant dream.
-
-Away in the mountains not far from Lake Chuzenji, a green thing had been
-discovered, a thing that had once been a man. Mac had been to view it at
-the request of the police, but he could not identify it as the body of
-the Blind One of the Nikko Road. It was green from the chlorophyll of
-the cryptomerias. In the quaint language of the Japanese police, it was
-the body of a man whom “the trees had beaten to death.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IX
-
- THE HOUSE OF THE CLOUDS
-
-
-Danjuro, the curio dealer of Jinrikisha Street, Nagasaki (no relation of
-Danjuro the actor), was a gentleman of uncertain age, with a face which
-seemed the relic of a thousand years of debauchery.
-
-It was probably only opium, but the awful weary look with which he
-swindled you, when you were once in the trap he called his shop, would
-have given Dante points for the construction of a new circle in his
-_Inferno_.
-
-He had spent years in China, had Danjuro, hence, perhaps, the expression
-on his face; also the fact that he did his calculations not by aid of
-the so-ro-ba, or calculating machine used by the Japanese tradesmen. He
-did his calculations in his head, and with that far-away look so filled
-with the poetry of the horrible, he would calculate the difference
-between the price he had paid for the okimono he was selling you and
-your offer for it, contrasting them with your own personality, and from
-these three factors calculating to a nicety how much money he could
-swindle out of you.
-
-He had a hand in the selling of the Great Tung Jade to the Empress of
-China, or rather to her ambassador the Mandarin Li, the shadiest
-transaction that ever emerged from darkness; and could you place end to
-end the globe trotters swindled and chiseled and fleeced by him, they
-would reach in a noxious line from London to Newcastle, and maybe
-further. He had long, polished finger nails that shone like plate glass,
-and when you entered his establishment he advanced, bowed, and hissed at
-you by way of welcome.
-
-He was a rogue, yet he was straight in his way. To be a perfect rogue,
-at least to succeed in the art, you must be straight in some ways. The
-bandit who betrays his brethren never goes far without a dagger sticking
-in his back.
-
-M’Gourley had “discovered” Danjuro years ago. M’Gourley had twice come
-to financial smash, once because of an earthquake, and again in the
-upheaval caused by the breaking of the Barings. Danjuro had helped him
-twice, and he had helped Danjuro many times; helped him with his Western
-craft, Scotch cuteness, and knowledge of Europeans.
-
-In every city of the East, in every city of the world, you will find a
-fixed Scot always prospering; M’Gourley was a floating Scot. Navigating
-Japan from end to end, now at Tokyo, now at Kioto, now at Nagasaki,
-crossing to Corea and pottering about there, meeting brither Scotchmen
-and helping them in trade speculations, selling, or assisting in the
-sale, of everything sellable from coals to kakemonos, went M’Gourley, a
-busy man, but somehow a rather unfortunate one.
-
-Suddenly Japan rose and smashed China, Russia stepped in and robbed her
-of the pieces, and Japan sat down, drew her kimono round her, and began
-to think about Russia.
-
-M’Gourley just then (it was some two years before he met Leslie) was on
-the Lao-Tung peninsula, a black wandering dot, innocuous to governments,
-one would imagine, as a beetle.
-
-Suddenly M’Gourley returned to Japan, and the day after his return a
-sheaf of documents addressed by a gentleman named Lessar to a gentleman
-named Mouravieff was in the hands of the Japanese Council of Elders.
-
-I don’t say anything about the transaction at all; it is not for me to
-take away the characters of my characters. I only know this, that if the
-Russian Government had caught Mac just then, they, laboring under,
-perhaps, a fantastically wrong impression, would have done something
-decidedly unpleasant to him.
-
-At all events, Mac bought a new suit of reach-me-down clothes at a
-native shop in the Honcho Dori at Yokohama, and got so drunk that three
-Mousmés had put him to bed, whilst a fourth fanned him, and a fifth
-played soothing tunes on a moon-fiddle to exorcise the demon; and a
-piece of priceless gold lacquer presented to Mac by a high official was
-sold by him to an American week later for five thousand dollars gold
-coin—gold coin being much more useful than gold lacquer to a man in
-Mac’s way of life.
-
-Thus it came about that Mac was a persona grata with the Japanese
-Government, and had many little privileges not enjoyed by ordinary
-Europeans.
-
-Danjuro’s shop was situated in Jinriksha Street, a street like a picture
-slashed out of the “Arabian Nights,” a picture that a child had made
-additions to with a lead pencil and half spoiled.
-
-A bowler hat in Jinriksha Street, for instance, is a thing very much out
-of place, yet you see many of them, mostly potted down on the back of
-Japanese heads, and making the wearers both frightful and
-ridiculous-looking.
-
-Here passes a Mousmé under an umbrella, a figure fashioned seemingly
-from a rainbow, a figure to bless the eye and make the heart feel glad.
-Here stumps along a thing that once was a Mousmé, a thing in European
-dress—alas!
-
-Here you turn from a shop sign in the vernacular, and across the way,
-over the booth where cakes reposing on myrtle branches are sold, “Englis
-here is spoke,” blasts your sight.
-
-Jinrikisha Street, and for Jinrikisha Street read nearly every other
-street in sea-board Japan, is a picture, as I have said, spoiled as if
-by a meddlesome English child.
-
-Danjuro’s shop was all open in front so that you could come right in
-past the bronze stork on the tortoise, past the leaping dragon made of
-jointed steel, a dragon hard as adamant yet flexible as india-rubber.
-Then you met Danjuro, and he sank towards the floor and hissed at you by
-way of welcome. The chief treasures were in the cellar below, but here
-was quite enough to feast the eye of a not too wise amateur, and make
-the purse jump in his pocket.
-
-Danjuro had the art of shop-dressing at his finger-ends. Things always
-looked better in his establishment than they did when fetched home.
-
-People would cry: “Is _that_ the Owari vase I bought? Why, _what has
-happened to it_?”
-
-It would be the same vase, but divorced from its surroundings.
-
-You cannot imagine the effect of a dwarf plum tree in a green tile pot
-upon a dragon of steel until you see them in juxtaposition, nor the
-strange difference certain backgrounds make in an Owari vase till you
-try them. Danjuro was well up in these subtleties, and this knowledge,
-combined with his own personality, lent an added value to his
-wares—twenty per cent. at least.
-
-Here in the shop of Danjuro, in a semi-twilight, glimmer demons and
-beasts in porcelain and bronze. The frightful face of Akudogi shouts at
-you from the wall, the lotus expands over pools in the silent land of
-lacquer, and the hundred guinea ivory Mousmé, ten inches high, trips
-beneath her ivory umbrella, ever on the way to some fanciful pageant
-that had once existed in her creator’s dreams.
-
-Here is a Jap baby, about as big and as round as a tangerine orange,
-feeding ducks. Here a little box a size larger than a walnut. Open it;
-inside are seated a man and boy playing some game with dice. The man is
-holding the dice cup up preparing to cast; in it are the dice, every
-cube separate and real, and each marked with the proper pips.
-
-In the shop of Danjuro you are gazing, not upon bronzes and lacquers,
-but upon the mind of Japan, partly made visible. There is here evidence
-of patience and labor sufficient to conquer the world, beauty enough to
-charm the world, and ferocity enough to terrify it.
-
-There is nothing so strange on earth as this art that reveals in
-glimpses the exquisite and the awful, where the lily blossoms and the
-dragon tramples it under foot.
-
-That baby feeding the ducks, could anything be more laughable or
-lovable? But do not open the drawers of the cabinet he is standing on:
-they are filled with ivory obscenities carved with just as loving care.
-
-No, the kakemonos and bronzes that adorn the drawing-rooms of Bayswater
-and Bedford Park do not disclose the whole of Japanese art. If you don’t
-believe me, then go to Japan and become a friend of Danjuro the
-curio-dealer, who lives in Jinrikisha Street, in the quaint city of
-Nagasaki.
-
-“There’s no use talking,” said Leslie, the second day after his arrival
-at Nagasaki. “I don’t want to live in the European quarter. I want that
-white house up on the hill there you said was empty, and I want to buy
-it.”
-
-“Weel,” said Mac—they were standing in Danjuro’s shop consulting—“I’m
-thinking you want more than it’s likely y’ll get. You cannot buy the
-house—rent it, maybe. Stay till I ask Dan.”
-
-Dan and he had a consultation, the upshot of which was that the
-curio-dealer, after a cynical declaration to the effect that anything
-could be obtained for money, offered his services as an intermediary.
-
-A friend of his, a brother dealer, a Mr. Initogo, or some such name,
-owned the house up there on the heights; he would probably let it. It
-was named the House of the Clouds, warranted rainproof and free from
-ghosts.
-
-Mr. Initogo was fetched from across the way—a gentleman in horn
-spectacles, who looked as wise as Confucius but was a little bit deaf.
-After some five minutes’ polite bawling on the part of Mac and Danjuro,
-Mr. Initogo came to understand the matter, and at once declared with a
-thousand protestations of regret that the thing was impossible.
-
-Why?
-
-Well, he could not allege any specific reason. The House of the Clouds
-was empty, but he had not considered the matter of letting it. The
-proposition came as an honorable shock to him.
-
-Then Mac and Danjuro tackled Mr. Initogo, tea was brought forth, and
-after half an hour’s wavering Mr. Initogo began to give in.
-
-He sent for his son, and piloted by the son, the two Scotchmen went off
-to inspect the House of the Clouds.
-
-They passed up a by-street and then up a steep path, till they came to a
-gate shadowed by lilac trees. The gate led to a tiny demesne, a long,
-white, two-storied house, before which lay a grass plot, at the far end
-of the house some cherry trees, and a space that might be used as a
-garden.
-
-From the veranda of the House of the Clouds one could look down on
-Nagasaki and the harbor that pierces the land like a crooked sword. The
-hum of Jinrikisha Street came up, mixed with the eternal song of the
-cicalas.
-
-Across the harbor, where the junks and sampans contrasted strangely with
-the foreign shipping, hills rose up, green near the water, brown further
-off; over the hills a few white fleecy clouds passed on the light wind.
-It was the sky of an English summer.
-
-“I like this,” said Leslie, turning from the view. “Now let’s look at
-the house.”
-
-It was furnished with primrose-colored matting, nothing else, and it was
-about as substantial as a bandbox. There were two stories connected by a
-flight of steps without a balustrade, and you could make as many rooms
-as you liked with sliding panels.
-
-“I’ll take it,” said Leslie, and they returned to the shop of Danjuro.
-Mr. Initogo was fetched, and after more wriggling and haggling and
-tea-drinking and the smoking of tiny pipes, he consented to let the
-place—the authorities willing.
-
-Mac undertook to make everything right in that respect, though it would
-cost him a good deal of trouble, as the government have a holy horror of
-foreigners spreading beyond the allotted quarters; and then a Chinese
-comprador was obtained, and received orders from Leslie to furnish the
-place with the necessary futons (he determined to live in the native
-way), pots, tins, kettles, Mousmés, and a decent cook; also screens and
-mosquito-nets, plum trees in pots, and everything else that might be
-necessary for comfort and adornment.
-
-Three days later the comprador appeared at the Nagasaki hotel, where
-Leslie was staying, and declared that everything was in order—even to
-the last tea-cup. He had hired servants, made a most advantageous
-bargain: he had hired a whole family.
-
-“But, bless my soul! I don’t want a family,” said Leslie. “I only want a
-cook and a couple of girls.”
-
-Just so. This family consisted of a cook—her name was Fir-cone—and
-three daughters. They would all come together or not at all; he had got
-them at a bargain. The names of the daughters were: Moon, Plum-blossom,
-and Snow. Sixteen shillings a month a-piece was the wages they were
-promised. There was also a cat belonging to this family—
-
-“Oh, well, I’ll take them,” said Leslie, “and if they don’t suit I can
-get others.”
-
-That afternoon, preceded by the comprador and followed by two coolies
-carrying his luggage he went up to take formal possession, and was
-received by his new servants all on their knees—the three Mousmés in
-front and mother Fir-cone in the background.
-
-Next day he started on the long journey to Nikko to fetch Campanula.
-When he returned with his charge the first person to meet him on the
-quay was Mac. Mac in a stove pipe hat he had bought cheap and which did
-not fit him but of which he seemed proud. Campanula instantly recognized
-Mac with a smile and an attempt to kow-tow before him, which Leslie
-frustrated, on account of the dirty state of the quay. It was a pretty
-little incident, and went to the old fellow’s heart.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER X
-
- OF MOUSMÉS AND OTHER THINGS
-
-
-Plum-blossom was a Mousmé with a broad face, ever lit by a half smile.
-Moon was a girl with a serious expression, but gorgeous of dress as any
-girl of Kioto. Snow looked shrunk—not withered, you understand, fresh
-as a daisy, in fact; but something had happened in her development: she
-was preternaturally small, and looked like a Mousmé seen through a
-diminishing glass.
-
-The three Mousmés and old mother Fir-cone took almost entire possession
-of Campanula San when she arrived, and Campanula San seemed quite
-content.
-
-Mixed with her charming childishness there was a philosophical calm that
-would have done honour to a sage of the Stoic school. Riding on
-Leslie’s shoulder through Nikko, under examination at the Tea House of
-the Tortoise, playing with Plum-blossom in the veranda of the House of
-the Clouds, she was just the same. Life was a pageant at which she was
-an humble spectator, whose duty was to be amiable and submissive, and
-accept things just as they came.
-
-She did not say this, but she acted it, or rather expressed it in her
-actions and ways.
-
-Down on the Bund an office had been rented by M’Gourley. He slept there
-and lived there, ascending occasionally at night to the House of the
-Clouds to smoke a pipe with his partner and talk business, and give
-advice on things Japanese, advice often needful enough to the
-uninitiated Leslie.
-
-House-keeping in Japan is full of surprises. One day, for instance,
-Leslie met a figure coming from the back part of the premises—a figure
-like a rag-doll that had spent its life in a coal-scuttle. Interrogated,
-the figure turned out to be the mother of Moon, and by profession—well,
-her profession was helping to coal the Canadian Pacific boats.
-
-“But,” said Leslie, “it is impossible, for Moon already has a mother
-whose name is Fir-cone.”
-
-He was just going to send for the police when the whole truth came out
-on the veranda, in the form of Moon herself.
-
-She explained in indifferent English, kneeling as she spoke with the
-backs of her little hands held upwards to her face, that the comprador
-had lied; that there was no particular connection between her and her
-fellow-servants; that the comprador had made a bunch of them just as he
-might make a bunch of weeds, picking one up here and the other there,
-and pretending they were all the one family. Why had he done this thing?
-Who could say? For some dark reason of his own. She said also that her
-mother was not always as dirty as that, but was going home now to wash.
-Would Leslie San like to see her washed so that Moon’s words might be
-proved to him true? Leslie San would not.
-
-M’Gourley was had up, and managed to arrange matters without the
-disruption of the household, which seemed imminent.
-
-M’Gourley mixed a good deal in the affairs of the House of the Clouds.
-Six months had not passed before the member of the Wee Kirk declared
-that Campanula should be sent to the missionary day school near the
-Bund, and brought up a Christian.
-
-Leslie at first demurred. The state of Campanula’s mind, as revealed by
-her in conversations mostly translated by Mac, but often conducted
-limpingly by Leslie himself (he was beginning to pick up the native),
-did not argue a good foundation for a structure like the Christian
-religion.
-
-Her mind, as far as he could get at it, was the mind of a sensitive and
-cultured lady who was slightly mad—mad on the subject of demons and
-strange beasts.
-
-Tortoises who talked, storks whose language was the acme of politeness,
-and toads of polished speech, seemed as real to her as ordinary folk.
-
-Whether the tin-smith, her supposed father, had filled her head with
-these things, no one can say, but the fact remained that she was a
-perfect Uncle Remus as far as animal-tale construction was concerned,
-and had a Mrs. Radcliffe touch in the weird, so that it was a not
-uncommon thing for her to be marched off to bed, the triumvirate of
-Mousmés—Moon, Plum-blossom, and Snow—acting as a body-guard to protect
-her from her own extraordinary fancies.
-
-Then the self-abasement, the absolute self-abasement with which she
-would kow-tow with both tiny hands backs upward before your august self,
-and next minute she would be spinning a top on the veranda, or playing
-just like an ordinary child with Kiku San, a dot about her own size, and
-only daughter of Mr. Initogo, the landlord.
-
-She had a whole host of baldheaded Pagan friends, male and female, and
-Leslie, taking a siesta of an afternoon, would hear their clogs rattling
-on the veranda, or their naked feet pattering in the kitchen, and half
-fancy himself the proprietor of a kindergarten.
-
-Quaint kites were often to be seen flying above the House of the Clouds,
-kites shaped like hawks and butterflies, and M’Gourley down in the
-street below would sometimes glance up and see these evidences of
-Campanula’s existence, and nod his head and say, “A’weel!” and hurry on
-to Danjuro’s to meet him about some perhaps questionable transaction,
-revolving in his mind the while the question of Campanula’s conversion
-to Christianity.
-
-He was a strange mixture. He would spend a whole morning in trade. That
-is to say, he would get to the office on the Bund early, do his
-correspondence and what not with regard to the export of cheap curios,
-go to the hotel and have a cocktail, and fish round for victims; find
-some well-to-do stranger and lead him into Danjuro’s shop, deliver him
-up as a dripping roast into Danjuro’s hands, receive his commission, and
-go off and have tiffin. Then as likely as not he would go up to the
-House of the Clouds and fetch Campanula out for a walk, and buy her
-toys, or sweets, or flowers.
-
-And once a week or so he would tackle Leslie about the Christianity
-business, till Leslie at last gave in.
-
-Campanula went to the missionary day school, the prettiest school child
-in the world under her scarlet umbrella pictured with flying storks.
-
-Leslie went away sometimes for weeks, leaving her in charge of the
-Mousmés and leaving Mac with instructions to keep an eye on her welfare.
-
-For the first eight months or so of this new life he was amused and
-interested, the beauty of the country, the quaintness of the people, the
-new conditions of life, kept him from thinking much about the past or
-troubling about the future.
-
-Then came reaction. A craving came on him to see England once again, a
-veritable home-sickness that was not to be denied.
-
-He made a journey to London. He only spent a fortnight there; every one
-he had known in the past was either gone or dead. He belonged to no
-club. It was a miserable fortnight, and every day of it Japan called him
-back.
-
-When he returned, he told himself that he had done with the West for
-ever. Just as men sometimes tell themselves they have done for ever with
-sin, folly, or love.
-
-
-
-
- PART TWO
-
- THE MASSACRE OF THE BLUE-BELLS
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XI
-
- THE DREAM
-
-
-The “Jap Rubbish trade” was prospering mildly.
-
-During the first two years it seemed likely to languish and die, but in
-the third year it woke up, got on its legs, and, to use M’Gourley’s
-phrase, “began to pick a bit.” In the fourth year it was bringing Leslie
-in some two hundred a year, a fair amount considering the capital
-originally invested in it.
-
-Not that he wanted the money, he kept his interest in the thing just for
-something to do—a toy business to play with when he was otherwise
-disengaged.
-
-As for Mac, he was getting rich, not out of the Rubbish trade, but in a
-manner we will hint at later on.
-
-The House of the Clouds remained unaltered, save for a tiny landscape
-garden not much bigger than a dining-table which Leslie had laid out for
-Campanula. It lay beyond the garden walk in front of the veranda, and it
-had mountains and rivers and savannas of moss, and old oak trees,
-fierce-looking, but not much bigger than your thumb, and twisted fir
-trees that reflected themselves gloomily in lakes the size of
-hand-mirrors, and a Shinto temple about the size of a Buszard’s Dundee
-cake; there were also bridges across the rivers.
-
-The thing had been laid out as a New Year’s gift for Campanula, and it
-had cost Leslie about the price of a Steinway Grand.
-
-Azalea bushes grew right up to it, azaleas bordered the house, and there
-was a wilderness of azaleas in the open space near the cherry trees.
-
-Crimson azaleas, imported all the way from the azalea valley at Nikko in
-the very first year of Leslie’s residence in Nagasaki. It was a pretty
-thought, and it had cost a good penny, and caused much grumbling from
-Mac, and great admiration in Mr. Initogo, who had turned out the most
-delightful of landlords, a good hand at whist, and most adaptable about
-repairs. He was a modern Japanese agnostic when he was well, was Mr.
-Initogo, and a Shinto when he was ill or in trouble; but he was an
-all-round good landlord at all times.
-
-One bright afternoon Leslie was seated beneath the cherry trees in a
-deck chair, his hat tilted back, and the pipe he had just been smoking
-lying on the ground at his feet. He was asleep. Lately he had been
-suffering from a touch of fever and chills caught on a duck-shooting
-expedition down the coast; he had been taking opium for it, and now as
-he sat beneath the cherry trees the opium was troubling his dreams.
-
-Just before dropping off, his eye had fallen on a single azalea blossom
-that had burst into flame, as if spring had just touched off with her
-torch the fire of crimson flowers that soon would blaze round the house.
-
-Then he fell asleep, and Opium plucked the crimson blossom, and followed
-him with it into the land of dreams.
-
-He was in a Hongwanji temple, and there were people there, Europeans
-seemingly, dressed in European clothes; but though in a specious
-disguise, they were soon perceived to be not the people of this earth.
-They had strange and distorted faces, and forms that surely never were
-made in God’s image. One man, who suddenly hid himself behind a screen
-of lacquer, Leslie could have sworn was made of stone.
-
-Then in great tribulation of spirit he was escaping from the company of
-these people, passing down a corridor where soft matting took the foot;
-but something was following him with a hissing sound, a sound such as
-Danjuro made by way of welcome when you entered his shop. Of a sudden
-the opium spirit touched the corridor wall with the flower he had been
-patiently carrying, the Hongwanji temple vanished, and Leslie found
-himself on the Nikko road.
-
-The valley of azaleas lay before him and the mournful cypress trees, the
-country where the moving clouds cast their shadows, and the far blue
-hills beyond.
-
-There was something moving amidst the azaleas. He knew it was a child,
-but, by some curious and subtle freak of the opium fiend, the child was
-hidden from him, all but vague glimpses; were it to make itself half
-visible for a second a phantom azalea bush would come before it, but he
-could see a tiny white hand busy plucking the crimson blossoms.
-
-Then from somewhere far away through the dream came the mournful toot,
-toot, of a blind man’s reed-pipe. At first it seemed beyond the bend of
-the road, and then it seemed amidst the azaleas, and then in the wood of
-cypress trees. It grew more insistent and piercing, and changed subtly
-into the sound he had once heard on the Nikko road when, sitting with
-M’Gourley, he had listened to the tune of the blind juggler with the
-pipe.
-
-As he listened, shuddering, he saw something which he at once knew to be
-the reason of the music and the soul of the opium drama that was
-unfolding before him.
-
-A tiny black dot was visible in the sky away over the distant hills. It
-expanded and grew, dilated as if in response to the enchanted music. And
-then he saw that it was a bird; a vast bird, larger than an eagle, a
-ferocious and awful bird, a tragic apparition called up from the lands
-of night. It poised above the valley, seeming to float and be upborne,
-not on air, but on the music welling from the wood.
-
-He knew that if he could get to the half-seen child amidst the azaleas
-he could save it from its fate. But he could make no movement nor utter
-a sound, but stood paralyzed, watching the tiny white hand plucking the
-crimson flowers and the Horror above preparing to strike.
-
-The music had now turned to a drone, a sound like the spinning sound of
-a vast top. The thing in the air circled and span. He knew it was
-preparing to fall like a thunderbolt.
-
-Then he awoke.
-
-He saw the garden, the cherry trees, the house. Opium land had vanished,
-but the music remained, ringing in his ears; or was it real?
-
-He sprang to his feet and staggered along the path leading to the gate
-looking wildly round him and listening. As he came, the sound died off;
-died and turned to the sound of ordinary life, the hum from the city
-below, the sound of the wind in the lilac trees, the tune of ceaseless
-cicalas.
-
-“My God! what a dream!” he muttered as he grasped the gate and stared
-down the lilac-shadowed path. Then he returned slowly to the seat
-beneath the cherry trees, and lit a cigarette.
-
-Opium had played a trick upon him like this before. He had taken it
-first months ago for fever; since then he had taken it occasionally for
-the slightest ache. He reacted well to it sensually speaking, and found
-it at once soothing and stimulating. Once before it had pushed him into
-dreamland, but a dreamland without plot or plan, and unstained by a
-horror such as he had just witnessed.
-
-He was seated half drowsing, when suddenly some influence made him look
-up and he saw before him a lovely thing. It was Campanula. She had just
-come out of the house by way of the veranda, and was approaching him.
-Campanula, far removed from the child he had carried on his shoulder
-into Nikko five years ago.
-
-The child had turned into a girl with that rapidity of transformation
-characteristic of the women of Japan. She was taller than the ordinary
-Mousmé of fourteen or fifteen; her face, even to Western eyes, was
-beautiful with a sad and mysterious beauty of its own, and her every
-movement was graceful as the movement of a bluebell when touched by the
-wind.
-
-She had ceased to attend the mission school after nearly four years’
-instruction, during which she had grasped the art of speaking and almost
-of thinking in English, and was now Leslie’s housekeeper, his adopted
-daughter, and absolute ruler of the small domain known as the House of
-the Clouds—as far, that is to say, as the household affairs went.
-
-She still retained her childishness of mind, and for all the Christian
-endeavor of the missionaries, she still retained much of her pristine
-belief in “things”—things with wings as well as hoofs, things that
-lived in woods, birds that talked, and beasts that made answer.
-
-Though she could speak English, she never spoke in long sentences, or
-told a connected tale in that language, always falling back on the
-vernacular when her imagination was roused, or a long and connected
-statement had to be made.
-
-She was approaching Leslie now with a porcelain bowl figured with storks
-in her hand, and a smile upon her face. There was little mat on the
-ground near his chair, and on this she sat down—kneeling fashion—with
-the bowl before her.
-
-“See!” said she, producing some things like small gun wads from the
-sleeve of her kimono, “I bought these to-day to give you pleasure. Oh,
-so beautiful! Watch!”
-
-She cast one of the ugly discs upon the surface of the water. It lay
-there for a moment unchanged, and then, as if by magic, began to expand
-as it sucked up the fluid, and break up, growing bigger and broader till
-at last on the surface of the water floated three pink-tinted
-lotus-flowers, a most delicate and perfect resemblance of the real
-things.
-
-She folded her hands and looked up at him with a happy smile.
-
-“Where did you get them?” asked Leslie.
-
-“M’Gourley San told me of them, he wished to buy them for me—but I
-bought them for you.”
-
-She removed the lotus-flowers and cast another disc on the water.
-
-Leslie watched her. During the last few months Campanula’s attitude to
-him had changed. From a happy, humble, and somewhat heedless thing—a
-creature that regarded him with affection—an affection of about the
-same strength as she exhibited for M’Gourley, Sweetbriar San, the cat,
-and her children schoolmates; she had become a follower of his alone,
-always striving to please him, forestalling his wants, always happy in
-his presence, and drooping—unknown to him—when he was away.
-
-The second wad under the influence of the water broke up and began to
-form the branch of a cherry tree covered with blossom.
-
-“Arashiyama,” murmured she, folding her small hands and speaking
-dreamily, as if communing with herself. Then she sat watching the branch
-of the cherry tree expanding over the surface of the water.
-
-From the house came a somewhat discordant voice singing a song about a
-bee and a lilac bough.
-
-It was Pine-breeze singing at her work. Moon, Plum-blossom, and Snow,
-with their fictitious mother Fir-cone, had vanished from the House of
-the Clouds two years and more, giving place to Pine-breeze, a miracle of
-daintiness and prettiness, and two other Mousmés, one “rather old,” the
-cook, Lotus-bud by name, and the other named Cherry-blossom, as pretty
-as Pine-breeze.
-
-“Listen!” said Campanula, suddenly looking up from the bowl and its
-contents. “There is some one at the gate.”
-
-Leslie half turned.
-
-A man and woman had passed through the gateway shadowed by lilac, a
-short, stout man dressed in tweed and a tall woman in blue serge.
-
-Leslie could see them only indistinctly from where he sat, and they, not
-looking in his direction, failed to see him at all.
-
-They were coming up to the veranda when the woman turned to the little
-picture garden, laughed, and pointed it out to her companion. Then she
-left the path, stepped gingerly right into the middle of the landscape
-garden country, and tried to pluck up an oak tree, a gnarled and
-ancient-looking oak tree eight inches high.
-
-“Who?” asked Campanula, turning from the sight of this outrage with
-uplifted forefinger.
-
-“They are Foreign Devils,” said Leslie using the Chinese idiom. He was
-very pale, leaning forward in chair. “Look, Campanula! I verily believe
-she is trying to tear up your mountains to see how they grow. That’s
-what they call in England ‘cheek,’ Campanula.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XII
-
- THE FOREIGN DEVILS
-
-
-The female Foreign Devil having failed to uproot the oak, which clung to
-its native soil with a tenacity highly Japanese, returned to the garden
-path. And then came the voice of Pine-breeze kow-towing to the
-strangers, bidding them welcome, and imploring them to make the
-honorable entrance.
-
-They passed from view into the house, and Leslie rose from his chair.
-
-“Wait here awhile, Campanula,” he said, “and then follow me in. I think
-I know them, but I will go and see.”
-
-“Yes,” said Campanula.
-
-He walked to the house and kicked his garden shoes off in the veranda,
-noting the fact that the Foreign Devils had committed the unspeakable
-outrage of entering with their shoes on.
-
-“_Richard!_” cried the tall woman, advancing to him with outstretched
-hand as he entered the room where they were. “Why, you’ve grown!” She
-spoke as though they had parted yesterday, but her voice had an
-hysterical quaver, then she presented her cheek to him for a cousinly
-kiss.
-
-“This is Richard Leslie,” said the woman, turning to the little stout
-man in tweed. “We grew up together; that’s why I’m so tall, I suppose.
-Dick—my husband George. Gracious, Dick, where are your chairs and
-things? Have you nothing to sit down on?”
-
-“Only the floor,” said Leslie, fetching some square cushions and placing
-them on the matting. “See, this is how it’s done,” and he sat down on
-one of the cushions, whilst his companions followed suit.
-
-Jane du Telle, once Jane Deering, was, despite her vivacity and
-carelessness of manner, evidently in a state of high nervous tension.
-
-Leslie, notwithstanding the years that had passed since their last
-meeting, saw in her mentally little change. She was the same Jane who
-had once hacked his shins, when they were boy and girl together, up in
-Scotland, and then flung herself on his neck in a burst of repentance
-and tears. Emotional, good-hearted, selfish—giving herself away one
-moment, but always saved the next by a latent discretion that was to her
-flighty nature as a gyroscope. The same Jane with whom he had fished for
-salmon and played at tennis in the past, seated before him now on a
-floor in Japan, chattering of everything and nothing just in the old
-familiar way.
-
-“And that’s the fellow she has married!” thought he, as he glanced
-across at George du Telle, a podgy, red-headed little man, a
-globe-trotting Briton of the most blatant description.
-
-“How did you know I was here?” asked he, after Jane had somewhat talked
-her hysterical feelings off.
-
-“Mr. Channing told us last night at the hotel. He’s a friend of yours.
-He told us he knew an Englishman named Richard Leslie living in the
-native fashion, and I asked him if he was good-looking and tall and
-dark, and he said, ‘Yes.’ He said you lived at the House of the
-Clouds—sounds like an address in a dream, doesn’t it?—so we took
-rikshas and came.”
-
-She put her hand to her back, where the “floor stitch” had seized her.
-The floor may be a convenient enough resting-place for a Mousmé who
-sinks down upon it quite naturally in the likeness of a compressed and
-joyously colored Z, but for an English woman of five feet eight or more,
-dressed in a tailor-made gown, and laced in a _corset parfait_ it is at
-first rather difficult.
-
-“I would have got chairs,” said Leslie, “if I had known you were coming;
-but of all the people of the world, you were the last I expected to see.
-Where did you come from? I mean, how did you strike Nagasaki?”
-
-“We came from Colombo.”
-
-“Beastly hole,” put in her husband, who was stroking Sweetbriar San, the
-cat of the establishment, who had just come in to inspect the strangers.
-“We stayed at the Beach Hotel two nights, and d’you know what they
-charged us? Just think.”
-
-“Don’t think,” said Jane, who had wriggled into a more comfortable
-attitude. “Give me that cat, George; and I wish you would try to repress
-your hotel bills. Dick, I was so sorry to hear the news about your
-father.”
-
-“What news?”
-
-“About his death.”
-
-“Well, you were sorrier than I was.”
-
-“Oh, Dick! but don’t let us talk about it, it’s all so sad. And have you
-been living here in Japan ever since?”
-
-“Ever since.”
-
-“Just like this on the floor?”
-
-“Just like this on the floor.”
-
-“You must find it rather flat, I should think,” said the carroty-headed
-George.
-
-“Richard,” said Jane suddenly, ignoring her husband, “you’re not married
-to a Japanese—or anything—are you?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“Do you live here alone?”
-
-“Well, I have three servant girls, and a daughter, if you call that
-‘alone.’”
-
-“A daughter!” said Jane.
-
-“Yes; and she’s Japanese, too.”
-
-“Japanese!”
-
-“Yes; I adopted her.”
-
-George du Telle snorted, and fortunately at that moment a panel slid
-back, and Pine-breeze appeared with the tea, followed by Lotus-bud with
-an hibachi and Cherry-blossom with a heap of tiny plates.
-
-“Are these your—I mean is one of these your—”
-
-“Daughter? No. Turn round, and you will see her,”
-
-Jane was seated with her back to the drawn-back panel that made a
-doorway on to the veranda. She turned, and there in the sunlit space
-stood Campanula in her blue kimono, broad scarlet obi, and with a
-scarlet flower in her hair. Behind her, as a background, lay the picture
-garden, antique hills, spun-glass torrents, and tiny, twisted fir trees,
-that looked, oh, so old, and tired of the world, and tormented by the
-wind.
-
-Campanula went right down on her knees upon the matting, and murmured
-the usual Japanese welcome.
-
-Now this was a practice that Leslie disliked. He had tried to break her
-of it, and in the attempt he had come across a strange fact.
-
-Campanula in her heart of hearts was a real child of Old Japan. She
-might have been a sister to the seven-and-forty Ronins in the time
-before Osaka was defiled by factory chimneys, and the monastery of
-Kotoku-in by the presence of Cook’s tourists.
-
-She tried honestly to be modern, as it was the wish of Leslie, but in
-times of emotion, back her intellect would go to Old Japan, and she
-would act as her ancestors had acted in who knows what lotus-strewn and
-blossom-scented ages.
-
-“What does she say?” asked Jane, as George du Telle rose to his feet.
-“Tell me, and ask her to excuse me for not getting up, for when I get
-up, I’ll have to be _pulled_ up.”
-
-“She is bidding you welcome and at the same time apologizing for the
-fact of her own miserable existence.”
-
-“I accept the apology,” said Jane, as Campanula, her devotions over,
-sank down before the tea-service, and prepared to act as hostess.
-“Freely and frankly, Dick, I must congratulate you on your taste—she is
-lovely.”
-
-Campanula looked up with a faint, apologetic smile.
-
-“I speak English,” she said.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII
-
- THE MONASTERY GARDEN
-
-
-Jane gazed over Nagasaki, the blue water, the green hills, to the blue
-beyond, and sighed. They were standing near the gate; tea was over, and
-they were waiting for Campanula, who had gone into the house to make
-some alteration in her dress before accompanying them “down town.”
-
-“Richard,” she said, “take us somewhere where we can talk, you and I. I
-have such a heap of things to ask you and talk about. Twelve years—can
-it be twelve years since we last saw each other? Did you get my last
-letter?”
-
-George du Telle was standing near smoking a cigar, and staring at the
-beautiful view with about the same amount of interest he would have felt
-had it been a soap advertisement, but she did not lower her voice. She
-was perfectly frank with the world and her husband.
-
-This frankness carried her far, and enabled her sometimes to skate on
-ice that would have given under many a woman of half her weight, for it
-was a genuine frankness, not a thing put on.
-
-She was a person whom women called nice-looking on first acquaintance,
-and men mentally registered as plain. Tall, pale, with an excellent
-figure, and gray eyes. A man met her and spoke to her, and found her
-plain but very jolly, increased the acquaintanceship and found her
-plainness vanishing, and then, all of a sudden, his foolish soul was
-caught in a trap.
-
-It was the magic of her lips, perhaps. They formed the true Cupid’s bow,
-full, and seemingly cut by a chisel wielded by a master hand, sensitive
-and sensuous. Gazing at them one came to understand how in the ancient
-world tall Troy fell before a kiss.
-
-“Which letter?” asked Leslie, plucking a lilac spray and strewing the
-ground with the tiny petals.
-
-“The one I wrote six years ago telling you I was married. I sent it care
-of your father.”
-
-“No,” said Leslie gloomily. “I have heard from no one for eight years
-and more. I cut the world, you know—or it cut me rather; but I’ll tell
-you some other time, here’s Campanula.”
-
-Then they started, Leslie and his companion leading the way.
-
-“Where are you going to take us?” asked Jane, when they had reached the
-street.
-
-“Through the city to a place I know on a hill,” replied Leslie.
-
-He had called four rikshas from the stand, and he gave some directions
-to the riksha men, and they started.
-
-You cannot imagine the size of Nagasaki till you drive through it in a
-swift-running riksha, nor the quaintness, nor the terror that causes
-your heart to fly upwards as your riksha man shaves a baby, not with a
-razor, but with the off wheel.
-
-Boy babies fighting tops, girls bouncing colored balls, flights of
-children whose clogs clatter like the dominoes in an Italian restaurant
-as they pursue each other in some mysterious game—everywhere children,
-a shifting, colored maze in which the eye gets tangled and lost. Babies,
-temples, tea-houses, streets upon streets of houses that look as if you
-could flatten them out with the blows of a shovel, bursts of
-cherry-blossoms, tripping Mousmés, stone monsters, awful, yet pathetic
-with the gray of lichen and the green of moss, a courtyard with a
-twisted fir tree leaning across it, laughter, and the tune of a
-_chamécen_ running through it all, that is the impression that a riksha
-ride through Nagasaki in spring would leave on the mind, were not the
-picture blurred by the European element.
-
-Street after street they passed through, and still the mysterious city
-kept building up streets before them. Leslie had thought of taking his
-companions to the O Suwa, but he had changed his mind and given other
-directions to the riksha men.
-
-They passed up a steep incline, dark with fir trees, and drew up at a
-great gateway consisting of two joists of wood supporting a vast beam,
-the whole making a figure something in the fashion of the Greek II.
-
-Beyond the gateway lay an inclined path, bordered by cryptomeria trees,
-leading to the façade of a temple.
-
-“It’s a place I sometimes come to,” said Leslie, as he helped Jane to
-descend. “It’s quiet, and worth seeing in its way.”
-
-Campanula and George du Telle led the way this time, Leslie and his
-companion leisurely following.
-
-“Come down this path,” said Jane, turning to a side alley. “Oh, how
-pretty! and how mournful too, with those rows of dark trees. Dick, this
-is not a cemetery you have brought us to?”
-
-“No; it’s a Shinto monastery. Few people know it, and it’s out of the
-run of the general sight-seeing bounders.”
-
-“Things with kodaks?”
-
-“And without—but see here, Jane.”
-
-“Yes?”
-
-“What’s your husband?”
-
-“George?”
-
-“Yes, I suppose his name is George. What is he?”
-
-“He’s in the wool trade—he’s the richest man in the wool trade, they
-say. He thinks and talks of nothing else but wool. He got off the
-subject to-day with you for awhile; wasn’t he brilliant? But we get on
-all right together; he has his set, and I have mine.”
-
-“What is his set?”
-
-“The very best—I mean the very worst; the poor old Smart Set that every
-one is always beating as if it were a donkey—which it is,” said Jane,
-taking her seat on the plinth supporting the prancing figure of Ama-ino,
-fronted across the walk by the equally fantastic figure of Koma-ino, a
-veritable Lion and Unicorn. “Sit down beside me, Dick, and tell me—”
-
-“Yes?”
-
-“What have you been doing all these years?”
-
-“I—I’ve been keeping alive—”
-
-“Dick,” suddenly broke out Jane, as if she had not been listening, “I
-have often thought you must have thought me a heartless wretch; but I’m
-not.”
-
-“There is no use in going over the past,” he said. “What is done is
-done, and never can be undone. I can only say that I have never in the
-past had a friend to stick to me, or a woman to love me, or a father to
-care for me.”
-
-“May it not have been your own fault, Dick? Think for a moment. I don’t
-want to reproach you, but you know how wild you were—you know that was
-one of the reasons we couldn’t get married. Oh, it wasn’t ‘my
-heartlessness,’ as you told me in your last letter but one. I have heart
-enough—at least I hope so,” said Jane, looking at Koma-ino as if for
-confirmation, “and I wouldn’t have done what I did if you’d been
-different. Never mind, Dick, cheer up!—buck up! as they used to say in
-the poor old Smart Set, till the respectable folk took the expression
-away from them. What’ve you been doing all these long years, Dick?”
-
-“Oh, I’ve been in Australia.”
-
-“What were you doing there?”
-
-“Curse Australia!” suddenly broke out Leslie, digging his heel in the
-ground. “Don’t speak to me about it; let’s talk of something else.”
-
-“Well, what are you doing here? I mean, what have you been doing all
-these years—playing the guitar, or what?”
-
-“I’m a shopman.”
-
-“I beg your pardon?”
-
-“I and a man named M’Gourley are in business.”
-
-“Two Scotchmen?” sneered Jane.
-
-“Two Scotchmen.”
-
-“And what are you selling—paper umbrellas?”
-
-“Yes; and hats and kakemonos, and every other sort of a mono that the
-European trade will swallow. We export them.”
-
-“Then you’re a merchant, _not_ a shopman,” said Jane in a half-angry,
-half-relieved voice. “I _wish_ you would not give me these sort of
-horrible shocks. I thought at first you were serving in some place
-behind the counter—”
-
-“Oh, I don’t want to make money in business much; I do it more for
-interest and to have an object in life. I’m well off; my father’s money
-all came to me—he died well off.”
-
-“And wasn’t it queer?” said Jane. “George is awfully rich, you know;
-well, directly I was married, old Aunt Keziah died, and every penny of
-her money came to me. Fifty thousand. No, forty-eight thousand, four
-hundred and eighty-two pounds, ten and sixpence. It seemed so sweet, the
-little sixpence following at the end. I sent for it, and had a hole
-drilled through it, and I always wear it on this bangle—look!”
-
-He looked; there were many things hanging on the bangle. He touched a
-tiny gold pig swinging by a ring.
-
-“Good heavens!”
-
-“_You_ gave me that,” said Jane, “and I’ve never parted with it.”
-
-“What’s this?” said he, fingering a cabalistic-looking blue stone.
-
-“That’s an inkh, I think; I’m not sure of the name. It’s lucky, or
-supposed to be.”
-
-“Who gave it to you?”
-
-“A boy at Cairo last winter.”
-
-“How old was he?”
-
-“Oh, about twenty.”
-
-“And this?” said Leslie, picking out another charm in the form of a
-heart.
-
-“Look here,” said Jane, pulling her wrist away, “I don’t want to waste
-time like this, I want you to tell me more about yourself; I want you to
-tell me about that child Campanula. _Why_ did you adopt her?”
-
-“I found her on the road going to Nikko.”
-
-“Where’s that?”
-
-“It’s away up in Shimotsuke, beyond Tokyo. I and M’Gourley were on the
-tramp. We were sitting by the roadside resting, when a blind man came
-along. He was half mad, and talked wild. Said he was a juggler, and
-offered to fetch devils out of a wood near by, if we gave him gold.”
-
-“Why didn’t you try him?” said Jane in an interested voice.
-
-“I did try him,” said Leslie; “gave him some money. He made a circle in
-the dust, with signs round the rim of it, told us not to touch it or
-come near it, got into the middle of it, and fetched out a reed-pipe.
-Then he began to play a tune that would make you shiver to hear, and
-things croaked in the wood.”
-
-“Go on,” said Jane shivering pleasantly.
-
-“I took my walking-stick and made a mark in the dust just near his foot.
-I touched his heel by accident, and—whew!”
-
-“Yes?”
-
-“He went off like a rocket; bounded out of the circle, rushed this way
-and that, knocking against trees and striking right and left with his
-stick, as if dogs were about him. He got round the bend of the road and
-vanished. We were pretty much astonished, but that wasn’t the end of it.
-In front of us was a valley of the most beautiful crimson azaleas.”
-
-“Wait a moment, Dick; you’re a very bad story-teller. You should always
-stage your characters: you should have described the azaleas first and
-the scenery. Well, go on.”
-
-“Bother the azaleas!” said Dick. They were fast getting into the old
-boy-and-girl way of talking to each other, a somewhat dangerous language
-at thirty. “It doesn’t matter whether they come in first or last. Where
-was I? Oh yes. Mac suddenly said: ‘Look there!’ I looked, and there sure
-enough was a child amidst the azaleas. She hadn’t been there a few
-seconds before, and Mac would have it that she had been ‘fetched’; it
-was a pretty wild country and no houses around, and there she was, just
-as if she had stepped out of a house, plucking away at the azalea
-blossoms for all she was worth, a tiny dot in a blue kimono and scarlet
-obi. I stole up behind her.”
-
-“I’d have caught her up and kissed her.”
-
-“Just what I did, in fact; and it may have been fancy, but she seemed
-slipping through my fingers like—grease till I kissed her, and she
-became solid.”
-
-“There’s one thing, Dick, you’ll never make a poet. Well, go on; it’s
-awfully interesting.”
-
-“We carried her off to Nikko. No parents could be found to own her, so I
-adopted her.”
-
-“What became of the juggler?”
-
-“That was a funny thing. As we turned the bend of the road we saw him
-away up in a gorge of the hills. He was still running for all he was
-worth, beating about him with his stick as if hitting off devils, and
-dashing himself against trees in a quite regardless manner.”
-
-“How awful!”
-
-“Well, frankly, it was, and it had a sequel, for his dead body was found
-miles away some days after, and the Japanese police said the trees had
-beaten him to death, which they practically had.”
-
-“But, Dick, what was the meaning of it?”
-
-“Who knows! When I touched him on the heel perhaps he may have thought
-it was a devil seizing him, and his imagination did the rest. Mac
-thinks, or, at least, he once thought—”
-
-“Yes?”
-
-“That there was something developing in the wood, something bad; that
-Campanula’s ghost was wandering in the wood; that when I made the mark I
-did inside the circle, the bad thing was flung out of the developing
-medium and Campanula’s ghost sucked into it, and so she became
-materialized.”
-
-“And the bad thing went for the juggler man?”
-
-“It and perhaps others.”
-
-“I never heard anything half so horrible, if it’s true.”
-
-“It’s true enough. I was forgetting it almost, but I had a horrid dream
-to-day that brought it all back. I was sitting in the garden smoking and
-I dropped off to sleep; and I heard the sound of that beast’s pipe, and
-I saw the place on the Nikko road, and there was a child amongst the
-flowers. Then a frightful bird came along and was going to attack the
-child, and I awoke—it was just before you came.”
-
-“Dick, what was the mark you made on the road?”
-
-“The sign of the cross,” said Leslie.
-
-Jane was silent for a moment then—
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV
-
- NAGASAKI BY NIGHT
-
-
-“I wish you wouldn’t tell me stories like that,” she suddenly broke out.
-“I’ll be dreaming about it all to-night.” She shuddered, and gazed at
-Koma-ino. “Japan seems a horribly creepy sort of place; I think I’ll
-make George come away to-morrow.”
-
-“One side of it,” said Leslie, “is simply crawling; you have no idea,
-and I who have lived here five years have only a glimmering of the mind
-of the people. Do you know what I think?”
-
-“Yes?”
-
-“I think that in the sleeves of their kimonos—I mean their frock coats,
-for they’ve put off their kimonos for a while for business
-purposes—they are simply laughing at us.”
-
-“At whom?”
-
-“At the English—at Europe.”
-
-“Like their impudence!”
-
-“Perhaps it’s impudence, perhaps not, anyhow—I distrust them—”
-
-“Dick,” said his companion, “look! It’s getting dusk: let’s go and look
-for George and your ‘adoptive daughter.’ Mercy! What’s that!”
-
-A deep hum filled the air; it seemed to come at first from the statue of
-Koma-ino—a soul-disturbing hum that deepened and swelled and then
-leapt, leapt into a deafening roar that rushed over Nagasaki, to die on
-the distant sea.
-
-Jane clung to her companion like a child, hugged him as a child might
-hug a nurse; her straw hat was pushed sideways, and he found his face
-buried in the masses of her perfumed hair. His arm had slipped round her
-waist, her arm was over his shoulder, and her fingers pressing his neck;
-for a moment he felt as if he were absorbing her being—drinking her.
-
-Then the sound died away.
-
-“_What_ was it?” gasped she, pushing away from him and gazing at him
-with a white, drawn face. “Why, you seem half dazed; you were more
-frightened than I. Dick, what was it?”
-
-“I’m all right,” said Leslie, in the voice of a man waking from the
-effect of an opiate. “I wasn’t frightened. It was only the big gong of
-the monastery; I’ve heard it lots of times.”
-
-“Then why couldn’t you have told me?” cried Jane, flying from fright to
-fury. “Think what it must have looked like, you hugging me like that.”
-She sprang to her feet. “You bring me here and tell me ghost stories,
-and frighten me to death with gongs and things, and then—I believe
-you’re half a Japanese already, you’ve grown so horrid.”
-
-“There wasn’t any one to see,” said Leslie, rising to his feet. “And
-talking about hugging—”
-
-“I don’t want to talk about hugging—talk about hugging! Do you fancy
-yourself on Hampstead Heath? Come, let us find George. I want something
-common-place after all this.”
-
-They found George and Campanula—the most strangely matched pair in the
-world—waiting for them at the gates.
-
-“You’ll come and dine with us at the hotel, won’t you?” asked Jane as
-they got into the rikshas.
-
-“I’ll come right enough,” said Leslie. “Wait, please.”
-
-He went to Campanula’s riksha and asked her, but she prayed to be
-honorably excused—she had a headache.
-
-She passed her hand across her forehead as if in confirmation of her
-words. Leslie tucked the riksha blanket round her knees, and explained
-to the Du Telles, and they started.
-
-The quaint city they had come through had changed to a quainter city
-still. Night had blotted out the traces of Europe on Nagasaki—at least,
-in the purely native streets. All sorts of strange little trades that
-sleep in the daytime had awakened with the dusk. Things queer in the
-daytime were now mysterious, and things common, quaint. The fish shop,
-with its huge paper lantern, besides the fish and the sea-weed on its
-slabs, disposed of dreams which it flung away gratis to the passing
-traveler in the running riksha, and the booth of the sandal merchant,
-with the tiny potted rose tree in front of the wares, became at once an
-apology and atonement for all the commonplace villainy condensed in the
-word “shop.”
-
-Mousmés passed, now half Mousmés, half glowworms, each bearing a
-colored lantern on the end of a little stick; and then the shadows
-half lit by lamp-light, where a cherry tree was attempting to peep
-into the street: the light of lamps glimmering through paper shutters,
-the light of lanterns swinging in the wind—red, blue, white, and
-yellow, some pictured with chrysanthemums; the stork that stands so
-boldly forth in Japanese pictures but is nearly gone from Japan,
-cherry-blossoms, and fish that seem swimming vigorously in a bowl of
-water lambent and green; and then the sounds, ten _chamécens_ for one
-in the day. The riksha whisks by a booth, whence comes the squalling of
-cats—seemingly. It is the gaku, Japanese poetry set to music and flung
-into the lamp-lit street to make things stranger, and heighten, if
-possible, the charm. At the corner of the by-street leading to the
-House of the Clouds they met Pine-breeze simply laden with all sorts of
-weird and wonderful paper boxes, and lighting herself on her way with a
-lantern pictured with a cuttle-fish and carried on the end of a short
-bamboo rod. She had been marketing. It was a fortunate meeting, for she
-could escort Campanula home.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XV
-
- M’GOURLEY’S LOVE AFFAIR
-
-
-Following Pine-breeze, who went before her like a fantastically colored
-glowworm, Campanula ascended to the house.
-
-As she stepped onto the veranda she heard the voice of M’Gourley San
-addressing Lotus-bed, and asking when she thought Leslie San would be
-back. Mac’s elastic-side boots were in the veranda, and his gamp was
-propped against the wall.
-
-He was sitting on the floor smoking a pipe and reading the _Japan Mail_
-through a pair of spectacles when Campanula entered.
-
-Mac often came up of nights like this. He was a vivid Radical, and
-Leslie was a hide-bound Conservative, so they had a splendid time
-together when they got on politics; or they would play chess, or Mr.
-Initogo would drop in and they would have a rubber of dummy whist.
-
-But what Mac really came for, though he scarcely knew it himself, was
-Campanula.
-
-Campanula was a lot to Mac; much more than one can express in prose, and
-M’Gourley is scarcely the figure to make a ballad of. Yet the poem was
-there round about him, unsung, unuttered, unguessed by any one, least of
-all by himself.
-
-When he had made chickens out of orange-pips for her at Nikko, she just
-as cunningly had made him her slave.
-
-She had taken this dull, hard-grained, and shady old business man into a
-byway, of life, and made him spin tops and fly kites. She had made him
-admire flowers and listen to fairy tales, and all as naturally and as
-peacefully as though these things had been matters of everyday
-occurrence with him the whole long length of his arid life.
-
-“_Einst, O wunder!_”—that ballad might have been inspired by Mac—had
-the writer ever met him in business or seen him in the flesh.
-
-“Hech!” said Mac. “There you are; and where have you been trapsing to
-this hour of the evening?”
-
-Campanula explained that Leslie had met friends, and that he had gone to
-dine with them at the hotel.
-
-“Wonder who they can be?” soliloquized Mac, as Campanula clapped her
-little hands together for Pine-breeze to bring refreshments. “Some
-people he has picked up at the hotel, maybe.”
-
-They sat opposite to each other on the matting, this strangely assorted
-pair. A panel in the front was open, for the night was warm, and the
-lamplight fell on the veranda and the garden path beyond.
-
-And they ate salted plums and crystallized prawns, soup with seaweed in
-it, and rice with fish sauce, whilst the perfume of the cherry blossoms
-stole in from the night outside, and the twang of a _chamécen_ came from
-somewhere in the mysterious depths of the house.
-
-It was Lotus-bud relieving her soul with music, mournful as the sound of
-the wind blowing over the wet fields of millet in the rainy weather.
-
-The things having been removed, Campanula brought forth a chess-board,
-which she laid on the matting before Mac.
-
-He had taught her chess, and had found her an apt pupil, a veritable
-Zukertort, a female Nogi, who attacked his positions with her ivory
-army, stormed his fortifications, and put him to rout when she chose.
-
-Yet he often won. She would make amazing blunders just in time to save
-him from defeat, and Mac would chuckle and say—
-
-“There you are, there you are—thrown a pawn away that might have given
-you back your queen in two more moves. Never mind, you’re getting on;
-I’ll noat say ye aren’t im—” long pause—“proving. Check—and how’s
-that for mate?”
-
-Then Campanula would throw her hands up in assumed horror at her own
-stupidity, and Mac would chuckle over his own supposed cleverness, and
-all would be harmony and peace.
-
-To-night, however, Campanula’s mind was somewhat astray, and the
-chess-player who lived in her brain took advantage of the fact, and beat
-Mac thoroughly in the course of a dozen moves.
-
-“I’m getting auld,” said Mac testily. “Here, put the things away. Na,
-na, I’ll play no more the night.”
-
-He lit his pipe at the tobacco-mono and moodily smoked it. He could not
-bear being beaten at chess, and now he looked as if he would be sour for
-the whole evening.
-
-She reached for a long-necked _chamécen_ that lay near her on the
-matting, and tuned it, striking a few somber notes.
-
-“Ay, sing us something,” said Mac, and as the night wind sighed and the
-cherry blossoms filled the room with their faint, faint fragrance,
-Campanula, her eyes fixed across illimitable distance, sang in a voice
-like the ripple of a mountain brook, a song telling of the Miakodori,
-and the sunlit slopes of Maruyama, where the great old Gion cherry tree
-blooms at the foot of Yaamis lane. And then an old love-song strayed in
-from the night and was caught by the strings of the _chamécen_ and made
-articulate by her voice.
-
-It told the fate of a maiden named Pine-bough, who lived by the sea at
-Hamada where the foam and the sand are as snow.
-
-She loved a noble, this maiden named Pine-bough—you can guess the rest.
-Mac listened, soothed; it was the case of David and Saul over again—a
-very inferior sort of Saul, it is true.
-
-“Now,” said the Charmed One as the rafters absorbed the last echoes of
-the fate of Pine-bough, “tell us a story.”
-
-Campanula, with the _chamécen_ lying across her lap, knitted her brows
-in thought. She was evidently pursuing strange beasts across the fields
-of Fancy, and undetermined as to which she would mark down and serve up
-to her guest. Then she solved the matter by suddenly clearing her brow
-and telling a tale without any beasts in it at all.
-
-“There is a garden,” declared Campanula, “where every one may enter; the
-Mikado himself goes there, and the riksha man, the Mousmé and the
-Mousko, Bo Chan, and Kiku San. Even Campanula herself, lowly as she is,
-may enter there. And there the Mousko pulls the beard of the Emperor
-unafraid, and the riksha man forgets his riksha and drinks tea at the
-tea houses, where no money is paid and no money is asked for.”
-
-“What’s this garden you’re telling me of?” demanded Mac, his business
-instincts and common sense in arms at the latter statement.
-
-“It is the garden of sleep,” answered Campanula cunningly. She had been
-waiting for the question and now she paused, gently plucking a string of
-the _chamécen_, filling the air with a faint throbbing sound as if to
-summon around her the tale-bearers of the night.
-
-“Here in the garden of sleep,” pursued the dreamy voice, as the
-vibrations died away, “every tree bears a lighted lantern swinging in
-the wind and painting the grass beneath with its color—red lanterns
-painted with storks, and blue lanterns pictured with the blossoms of the
-cherry; lanterns on which dragons fly pursuing each other, and lanterns
-disported upon by my lord the Bat.
-
-“A wanderer in the garden has but to pluck a lantern from a tree, and
-his dreams will at once turn in a happy direction, and by the light of
-the lantern he will see before him the object of his desire, be it what
-it may.”
-
-“I’ll remember that,” said Mac grimly, “next time I find myself there.”
-
-“One has no memory there,” said Campanula, “and few people know of the
-secret of that place, else every one would be happy in their dreams.
-
-“One night entered the garden Taro San, a child no higher than one’s
-knee. He was the son of a tea-house keeper, and he had plucked a
-glowworm from a bush, by which feeble light he was lighting himself
-through the darkness of the garden.
-
-“All at once he found himself beneath a tree, from the lowest branch of
-which swung a huge lantern of wistaria-blue.
-
-“It was the lantern of Spring, and the painted butterflies upon it, by
-some magic, moved their wings in flight, yet remained always in the same
-place, and the painted cherry-blossoms upon it waved in some magic wind,
-yet never faded or lost a petal, and the bird upon it pursuing the
-dragon fly was always gaining upon the dragon fly, yet the dragon fly,
-oh mystery! always outstripped the bird.”
-
-Campanula paused in thought, and a faintly plucked string of the
-_chamécen_ filled the air with the hum of the dragon fly’s wings as it
-flew by reed and iris, by mere and pond, by the unblown lotus and the
-blue of the river in the country of eternal spring.
-
-“O Taro San,” continued the story-teller, “gazing up and beholding this
-fair thing, strove to reach it, and failing, he began to weep.
-
-“Now, there was passing by at that moment the Daimiyo of his province,
-and the great lord walked with his gaze fixed upon the ground overcome
-as he was by the reverie of sleep; but hearing the sound of Taro San
-weeping, he paused and asked the child what ailed him, and hearing the
-trouble, he lifted him upon his shoulder; and Taro San grasped the
-lantern and waved it in the air and laughed, for its light showed him a
-pleasant path beset with roses and leading to a sea, blue as the sea of
-Harima, and in the path stood a little girl plucking the amber and
-crimson flowers.
-
-“Taro cried out to the Daimiyo to take him to the little girl, but the
-Daimiyo did not heed, for to him the lantern had shown Osaka Castle
-stormed by knights in armor, and the spears of the Samurai all bent
-towards its walls under a roof of flying arrows. Towards this sight he
-ran, and Taro dropping the lantern, it went out, and the Daimiyo awoke
-in his palace and Taro awoke in the tea house upon the futon, where he
-slept beside his father.
-
-“Another night stood Taro beneath the lantern which hung beyond his
-reach, but a beggar man who chanced to pass lifting him upon his
-shoulder, the child seized the lantern and waved it in the air, and
-instantly before him appeared the flower-set path and the form of the
-Mousmé, more beautiful now and attired in a kimono of palest amber
-embroidered with silver bats.
-
-“But the beggar man saw nothing but a purse of silver lying before him
-on the ground, and, stooping to pick it up, Taro fell from his shoulder,
-the lantern went out, and the beggar man awoke by the roadside where he
-had fallen asleep, and Taro on the futon beside his father.
-
-“Many times did Taro stand beneath the lantern of spring and many people
-raised him towards it, but never one of them saw what Taro saw, all
-their dreams being of things other than flowers and the time of spring.
-
-“One night,” resumed Campanula after a pause, “Taro entered the garden,
-and beneath the lantern there stood a child, and the child implored him
-to lift him upon his shoulder, and being there the child seized the
-lantern and laughed aloud with pleasure at the vision of the roses, and
-the Mousmé, and the sea. But Taro saw nothing of this. He only saw a tea
-house where customers were waiting to be served, for Taro,” said
-Campanula, “Had now grown up, and was a man.”
-
-She finished her little tale with three mournful notes drawn from the
-bass string of the _chamécen_.
-
-“Humph!” said Mac.
-
-He tapped the ashes out of his pipe into the little receptacle of the
-tobacco-mono, refilled it, and lit it with a glowing ember.
-
-Whilst he was thus engaged, Campanula rose and went to the open panel
-space leading on to the veranda. He heard her addressing some one in her
-low, sweet voice, then there was a pause, then she spoke again as if in
-answer to some remark, then she returned.
-
-“Blind man,” said Campanula, putting the _chamécen_ away.
-
-“I heard nobody,” said Mac, looking up as he finished lighting his pipe.
-“What did you say? Blind man? Was it he you were speaking to?”
-
-“Yes; he said he had come from a great way, and he looked oh, so ugly
-and tired! He has gone to the back entrance, and they will give him
-food.”
-
-“It’s these blessed paper houses,” said Mac.
-
-“They either swallow a sound or magnify it, so’s you can’t hear yourself
-speak if a man sneezes in the next room.”
-
-He smoked for a while, and then rose to go.
-
-“There!” said Campanula, as she too rose. “He’s gone away again down the
-path towards the gate.”
-
-“I’ll just follow him,” said Mac, “and see what he’s like.”
-
-He bade Campanula good night and departed.
-
-The gate was closed, and there was no one on the garden path; no one on
-the hill path either, he found as he descended it slowly, peering
-through the gloom before him.
-
-“It’s dom queer!” muttered Mac to himself as he reached the street. “I’d
-have staked my life she was talking to herself.”
-
-He felt vaguely uneasy, and thought of returning. Then he decided not.
-The path looked gloomy and mysterious viewed from down below, and its
-descent without meeting any one had already given him a slight attack of
-the “creeps.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVI
-
- THE PHILOSOPHY OF EVIL
-
-
-Dinner was served in the Du Telles’ private room. Channing dined with
-them—the man who had informed Jane of Leslie’s whereabouts—a young,
-clean shaven man, member of the Shanghai Jockey Club and practically
-head of the great silk firm of Channing, Matheson & Co.
-
-At dessert Jane asked Leslie’s permission to tell of Campanula’s
-finding. Leslie at first demurred. No one knew anything about it except
-the far-away folk in Nikko and the secretive Japanese police. It seemed
-scarcely fair to Campanula to give the tale away, but at last he
-consented, for George du Telle had eaten and drunk himself into a state
-of torpor. He was staring at a pineapple before him with a flushed face,
-from which protruded a great cigar, and as for Channing he was off to
-Shanghai next day. So Jane told the story, and Channing listened.
-
-“Well, what do you think?” said Jane when she had finished her tale.
-
-“I never think about these matters,” said Channing, “I simply accept
-them. My dear lady, were you to live a long time in the East you would
-come to believe in things that Western people would rank as nursery
-tales. The Tokyo fire-walkers can walk barefoot over a bed of live
-charcoal as thick as a mattress. I have seen them. How do they do it? I
-don’t know.
-
-“It is very curious how the Western people, Christians, and so forth,
-treat the unknown. They look upon it as the unknowable. The Easterns
-don’t. I had a missionary man in at my office the other day over at
-Shanghai subscription hunting. I gave him what he wanted, and then,
-without scarcely saying ‘Thank you,’ he asked me did I believe in God. I
-asked him did he believe in the devil. He said ‘Yes.’ I asked him did he
-believe in devils, and he said ‘No.’ I asked him did he believe in the
-Bible. He said ‘Yes.’ Then I recalled to his mind the story of the
-Gadarene swine, and his reply was that times are changed since then.
-Then I suppose, I said, all the devils are dead? He walked away in a
-huff—with my check in his pocket, though.
-
-“Now the juggler man”—turning to Leslie—“may have been chivied to
-death by devils just as the Gadarene swine were chased into the sea—who
-knows?
-
-“Of course it may have been that his madness, if he were mad, took an
-acute turn, who knows? But I have lived a good time in the East, and I
-am very well assured of this, that there are men here hand in glove with
-evil. I have seen things done in China, and for money too, that could
-not possibly have been done by trickery, and could not, I think, have
-been done by permission of the powers of Good. I’m not what you call a
-Christian, and what’s more, I think the Christian religion has done a
-great deal of harm—not to speak of other what you call ‘religions’—Am
-I wearying you, Mrs. du Telle?”
-
-“Not in the least; please go on.”
-
-“In this way. It has robbed us of our terror of evil. It paints a vague
-devil that no man really believes in. Now take that much-read book, ‘The
-Sorrows of Satan,’ where the Devil sits down and plays the piano and
-sings a song.”
-
-“I thought it was a guitar he played,” said Jane.
-
-“Well, a guitar; it’s all the same. People read that with a grave face.
-He’s quite a good sort and so forth.” Channing paused for a moment and
-gazed reflectively at the wine in his glass, took a sip and went on:
-“Don’t you think the thousands of people who read that stuff, and admire
-it, must have lost all sense of the horrible thing that evil is? The
-sense that evil is a reality, a thing to fill us with the wildest horror
-if one could only appreciate it, a very real thing, and a very
-determined thing, and a thing all black; yet we get people playing in
-fancy with, and even laughing about, this horror. And writers painting
-the cuttle-fish center of it as a semi-sentimental idiot capable of
-assuming evening clothes and talking twaddle, or criticizing plays as he
-does in Satan Montgomery’s poem. We don’t play with a thing we loathe
-even in fancy. But we—I mean Christians—play with the idea of the
-devil as if it were a poodle dog. The truth is that Christians don’t
-fear the Power of Evil, they fear the Power of Good. They praise him,
-propitiate and worship him in a most fulsome manner, and say they love
-him. I tell you this for a fact that no man can love good who does not
-abhor evil, and you can’t abhor a thing that you play with.”
-
-“Do you abhor evil, Mr. Channing?” asked Jane.
-
-“Honestly, I do. Any one with eyes and the capacity for thought who
-lives in China _must_.”
-
-“Then you must love good?”
-
-“One does not ‘love’ the sun, one worships it, so to speak—but this is
-all very strange my talking like this; my business in life is mainly
-silk and racehorses.”
-
-“’Scuse me,” said George du Telle, who was swaying slightly in his
-chair, the gone-out cigar still stuck in the side of his mouth, his face
-bulged and red, and his eye a fixity. “’Scuse me.”
-
-“One moment, George—Well, I think, Mr. Channing, there are worse
-Christians in the world than you are.”
-
-“Perhaps there are worse men, but I don’t claim to be a Christian. Only
-a man who recognizes fearfully the existence of evil as well as good.”
-
-“’Scuse me,” said George du Telle, speaking loudly now as if he were
-calling a servant or railway porter. “I’m not going to have this sort of
-thing at my table. _I’m_ a Christian, brought up a Christian, die one.
-’M not going to—”
-
-“George!” said his wife in a mild voice, but a voice very steady and
-full of command.
-
-The Christian, who had raised himself in his chair, subsided.
-
-Jane rose from the table.
-
-“Shall we go into the drawing-room and have some music?” she said. “You
-sing, Dick—or used to.”
-
-As they passed to the drawing-room she said to Channing: “Did I tell you
-the mark my cousin Dick made—you know what I mean—was the Christian
-emblem?”
-
-“My dear lady,” said Channing, “I especially dread hurting another
-person’s religious feelings, and I, what am I? Just a man who thinks his
-own thoughts, but—”
-
-“Well?”
-
-“Well, if there were anything in it at all, may it not be that the cause
-of the disturbance was the fact that he touched him?”
-
-“How is that?”
-
-“You have never touched the wire in connection with a running dynamo?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“No,” said Channing, “for if you had you would not be here. The metaphor
-is a bad one. I only mean to say that the touch of a stick or a hand may
-disturb the play of great forces with most surprising results.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVII
-
- THE HOUSE BY NIGHT
-
-
-It was late when Leslie left the hotel. The moon was rising over
-Nagasaki, and he required no lamp to light him up the hill path leading
-to the house.
-
-In the veranda he sat down to rest a moment and pull off his boots. The
-landscape garden, looking very antique in the moonlight, lay before him,
-the moon lighting its tiny hills and melancholy groves with the same
-particular care that presently he would bestow on the forests of Scindia
-and the Himalayas. On one of its verdurous swards lay a mark. It was the
-mark of Jane du Telle’s footstep imprinted on Campanula’s garden.
-
-He sat for a while in thought, then he unlatched a panel with a sort of
-gridiron-shaped key, then he searched in his pocket for matches, and
-found he had none.
-
-Determining to grope his way up and go to bed by moonlight, he closed
-and fastened the panel, leaving himself in darkness, caught his toe
-against an hibachi, left as if on purpose for him to tumble over, swore,
-knocked himself against a screen, which fell crash on Sweetbriar San,
-the household cat, who had once made part of the Fir-cone, Plum-blossom,
-Moon, and Snow ministry, and the intelligent animal, conceiving that
-robbers had entered, rushed wildly round and round in the dark till a
-panel slid back revealing Pine-breeze with a wan and weary smile on her
-face, and an andon or night lantern in her hand. She handed Leslie a
-candle and box of matches, and, still smiling, slid back, closing the
-panel as she went, like a figure in a trick toy, Sweetbriar San
-bristling and glowering on her shoulder like a fiend.
-
-The upper part of the House of the Clouds was divided by panels into a
-passage and three rooms. One for Leslie, one for the Mousmés, and the
-third for Campanula.
-
-Pine-breeze, with her arm full of towels, or what not, would often come
-into Leslie’s bedroom through the wall. He might be in his bath, he
-might be—anything, it was all the same to Pine-Breeze, she was thinking
-of her duties, not of him.
-
-One night, long ago, he had awakened in the arms of Mother Fir-cone, who
-was jibbering with fright. There was a mosquito-net between them, for
-she had rushed through the wall, and literally flung herself upon him,
-tearing the mosquito-net from its attachments. I do not wonder at her
-fright. Also San was in eruption, and a fearful earthquake was roaring
-and billowing under Nagasaki.
-
-Several times had the Mousmés rushed into his room all clinging
-together, and crying “Dorobo!” (Robbers). Robbers had tried to burgle
-the house twice, in fact. He had shot one the second time, and they
-never came again. Yet he always slept with a Smith and Wesson
-convenient, for a Japanese robber is a business man, without a heart,
-but with a desire for plunder keen as the edge of a sword.
-
-Leslie’s bedroom was a very bare apartment, furnished mostly with a
-nothing. A futon and pile of pillows—he had tried the makura or
-Japanese pillow, but given it up in disgust—under a mosquito-net, a
-wash-stand, a stick-rack, and some pegs to hang clothes on, constituted
-the remainder of the furniture. The window was a wide open space crossed
-by lattice slats, through which the moon was now shining, her light
-partly intercepted by the dance of a cherry bough waving in the wind.
-
-Leslie undressed and got into bed. Seen through the blue gauze of a
-mosquito-net, the room had a character all its own.
-
-The House of the Clouds by night was not the place for a person
-afflicted with insomnia. There were so many noises only waiting to tell
-strange tales to the strained ear. Tales of mystery and exaggeration.
-Lying awake you would hear some one leaning close against the attenuated
-house wall; it was the wind. And now, a scratching sound as of a panther
-trying to commit a burglary; it was the wind; and now a whisper like the
-whisper of a lover to his mistress—or maybe of a robber to his mate; it
-was the wind.
-
-Then the owl sitting on the roof, staring with saucer eyes at the moon,
-would give one low, whistling cry, and his mate beyond somewhere, would
-make cautious answer.
-
-Then “tap, tap, tap.” It would be the wind—making the skeleton finger
-of a dead Samurai out of a loose lattice.
-
-Then a thunder of cats and a yell on the veranda roof, and the drowsy
-one, just off to goblin land with the dead Samurai, would be brought up
-all standing, and half rise for a boot, or a boot-jack, or anything
-hurlable, and sink back with a sigh, remembering that he was in Japan.
-
-The wind played upon the House of the Clouds just as a maestro plays on
-a fiddle, but with a more distressing result. Sometimes of an autumn or
-winter night you might have sworn the place was surrounded by a company
-of old Japanese ghosts escaped from the clutches of Emma O[1] and
-requestful of succor and safety.
-
- [1] The Guardian of the Buddhistic hells.
-
-Leslie could not sleep. This eruption of his past into the present
-disturbed him deeply.
-
-He had been getting acclimatized, losing little by little that horrible
-sense of exile and home-sickness that had driven him once across half
-the world to London, and now it was all coming back.
-
-And she was married to that little beast, and, worst of all, she seemed
-content.
-
-For eight years he had looked upon her as a thing dead to him, and now
-she had returned with sevenfold power, for she brought the past with
-her. The golden past, golden despite that dour father, Colonel Leslie of
-Glenbruach, that just man unacquainted with folly. She brought the river
-in spate and the leaping salmon, the heather-scented wind from the
-purple hills, Glenbruach in the midst of a world of snow, the ripple of
-the mountain burn and the faint reek of peat.
-
-Worse than all these, she brought herself. She was the same spiritually
-and mentally as the slim girl of long ago—a slip of a girl straight as
-a wand and as full of laughter and movement and brightness as a mountain
-brook.
-
-But materially she had vastly altered. She was now a woman, divinely
-formed, a creature appealing to every sensual fiber in a man’s nature.
-
-And George du Telle owned all this!
-
-Leslie, I daresay you have perceived, was a man who did not take what
-one may call a dry-light view of things, past or present, when they had
-relation to himself; as a matter of fact, he saw the shortcomings of
-others tremendously clearly. The shortcomings of his father, of
-Bloomfield the lawyer, of the Sydney bar loafers, of Danjuro the curio
-dealer, and of poor old sinful, grubbing M’Gourley—too clearly, in
-fact.
-
-His own shortcomings he acknowledged by word of mouth. He knew they were
-there, just as a merchant knows a bale of damaged and unsaleable goods
-is in his cellar, but he did not go down and rake them out and examine
-them carefully.
-
-No one ever had cared for him, he said, but he never asked himself if he
-ever had permitted any one to care for him. With this outlook on life, a
-semi-poetical nature, and passions that slept long and deeply only to
-awake rejuvenated and with the strength of demons, he might before this
-have gone entirely to the devil, only for a lodger he had.
-
-An old Scotch ancestor lived with him. This “pairson,” who had
-once worn a long upper lip and had been a writer to the signet, a
-just, hard, God-fearing, and straight man, had a chamber in a
-convolution of Leslie’s brain, where he sat—he, or his attenuated
-personality—twiddling his thumbs like a night watchman and waiting for
-alarms.
-
-It was this gentleman who had saved his descendant from the weak man’s
-form of suicide—drink.
-
-He now came out in his old carpet slippers and read his descendant a
-lecture on the text: “Thou shalt not lust after another man’s wife.”
-
-And he spoke hard and strong, taking almost entirely the “wumman’s” side
-of the question; pointing out that society, as we know it, imperfect as
-it may be, is ruled by a number of laws whose aim is the common weal and
-the individual’s comfort and happiness.
-
-He pointed out that the life of a “wumman” is composed, not of grand
-passions and Italian opera scenes, but of a hundred thousand trifles,
-each one insignificant enough, yet each helping to form that grand
-masterpiece, a pure woman’s life.
-
-That a woman might be pure in mind, even if married to a “red-headed
-runt” like George du Telle. That if that was so she was a happy woman,
-and that if a man loved her, loved he never so madly, it would be a
-strange expression of that love to blast her happiness, and soil her
-soul.
-
-It would not be love, but lust—the passion of those devils which Mr.
-Channing had hinted at that evening, those people of the night who
-slumber not nor sleep.
-
-Having finished, he went into his chamber and shut the door.
-
-And Leslie lay reflecting on his words, also on the words of Channing.
-
-Evil made manifest. The face of the creature on the Nikko road came
-before his mental eye. That was evil made manifest. He had seen the
-thing. He had known the devil by hearsay since a child. He had heard the
-“Deevil” thundered at from Scotch pulpits, tracts about the devil had
-been put into his hand; he had heard people make laughing remarks about
-him: he was so familiar with the vague personality called Satan that he
-felt no interest in him, neither interest nor aversion. Never a shudder.
-
-But that thing in the sky of the opium dream, the music that had brought
-it—that, indeed, was evil painted by the hand of an artist; worth all
-the sermons ever thundered from pulpits, all the tracts ever printed.
-
-Then his weary brain grew drowsy, and there strayed across it the fair
-figure of the Lost One, the very antithesis of all things evil.
-
-Only last night before going to bed she had murmured a story half to
-herself, half to him, with her eyes fixed on the glowing embers of the
-hibachi, and he retold it to himself now to put himself to sleep.
-
-It was about the great battle between the beasts and the birds—the real
-reason why the owl was reduced to shame and forced to cover himself with
-night.
-
-“And they came from the North and the South and the East and the West in
-flight, oh, many ri broad. The quails from the millet, the stork from
-the river, and from the pond the king-fisher, flashing like a blue jewel
-in the sunlight.
-
-“Then said the stork, who led all these people of the air:
-
-“‘Behold! we are all assembled but where tarries Sir Owl?’”
-
-“Then a sparrow made answer and said:
-
-“‘As I paused to rest on a cherry bough, for my wings be little though
-my heart is big, I heard Sir Owl in treasonable conversation with a rat.
-And said he, “Come forth from thy burrow, O Rat, that I may feast my
-eyes upon thee; and the empire of the beasts shall be thine, and also
-the empire of the birds.”’”
-
-“And the voice of the Hidden One replied—”
-
-But what the Hidden One made answer, Leslie did not remember, for the
-artless story had lulled him to sleep.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVIII
-
- MOSTLY ABOUT FLOWERS
-
-
-O Japan! Spring! Dawn! what an exquisite and roseate mystery surrounds
-the meeting of ye three!
-
-Night, and the owls, and the ghosts, have vanished, day and the sparrows
-have come.
-
-Up from Nagasaki rise the murmurs of life, mists are vanishing from the
-hills across the harbor, where the lateen sails of junks are rising to
-find the wind, and the sampans dart about like attenuated water-beetles.
-
-The far, faint sound of a bugle from the man-of-war anchorage crosses
-the far, shrill crowing of a cock owned by Mr. Pinecape, the cobbler of
-Jinriksha Street—two rapiers of sound crossing each other in the now
-brilliant air. Then the noises of the day deepen, and the whirr of the
-cicala mixes with all sorts of faint domestic noises, a _mélange_ from
-which the ear can pick out notes just as the eye points in an
-impressionist’s picture: the clatter of a pair of clogs, the call of a
-watercress seller, the clash of a tin pan dropped somewhere, and then
-cock-crow after cock-crow from far and near, some loud and defiant,
-others defiant enough but faint, as if coming through a pin-pole half a
-mile away.
-
-The kitchen of the House of the Clouds is a square apartment, with no
-matting on the floor, and just now flooded with sunshine.
-
-Leslie, in the early days, had caused to be constructed by a stranded
-ship’s carpenter, a solid English kitchen-table of white pine. He wanted
-to give the man a job, and he thought the thing would prove useful; and
-it did.
-
-To begin with, it smelt deliciously, and Mother Fir-cone amidst her
-avocations would take a sniff at it now and then, just as a snufftaker
-takes a pinch of snuff; she would also sit under it preparing sweet
-potatoes, stringing beans or what not; but as for using it as a table,
-such an idea never occurred to her. In fact, she had no ideas at all
-about a table, and was quite convinced that this gift of Leslie San’s
-was a sort of pine-wood temple, constructed for the purpose of being sat
-under.
-
-It was also a place of refuge in time of earthquakes, when the whole
-household, saving Leslie and Campanula, got under it for fear of the
-roof falling. It received the title of “Honorable,” and was altogether a
-thing very much respected, and even vaguely beloved.
-
-Under it this morning sat Lotus-bud, preparing fish for breakfast; on it
-(these new Mousmés used it as a shelf) reposed various paper boxes
-containing eggs and groceries, weird-looking boxes suggesting that a
-conjurer was about to commence operations, not a cook.
-
-The sun laid a great square of light like a burning mat upon the floor
-near the table, and on her knees in the center of this mat of light sat
-Pine-breeze cleaning an hibachi. Cherry-blossom, the third Mousmé,
-squatted right before Pine-breeze doing nothing.
-
-From under the table was escaping a faint blue haze of smoke. Lotus-bud
-had just taken a few whiffs from a tiny pipe.
-
-They all smoked, these Mousmés, pinches of stuff like chopped hay in
-pipe bowls the size of a child’s thimble; but Campanula had never
-acquired the art, though all her friends were ardent tobacco lovers.
-Leslie San had said “No,” and that was enough.
-
-As Pine-breeze cleaned the hibachi and made it spick and span, she was
-telling the others a yarn, mostly to do with her doings when down the
-town marketing last evening. How she had bought this or that, what had
-been said to her, and so forth—a tale simple enough, but a miracle of
-genius considering the tongue in which it was told. For in the Japanese
-there are but two parts of speech, the noun and the verb; these, and
-splinters and scraps of broken-up nouns and verbs, which, in the form of
-particles and suffixes, help to shore up the meaning and pin together
-the common sense, have to do all the talking.
-
-The learner of Japanese feels at first like a person condemned to eat
-gravy soup with chop-sticks. Oh, for even a pronoun! Imagine talking to
-a person without being able to use the word “You,” without being able to
-use the word “I”! Imagine the horrible tortures of a Japanese egoist on
-his death-bed making, or attempting to make, his dying speech!
-
-But there are no egoists in Japan—can’t be with such a language—and
-there are no purse-proud snobs, or if there are, they hide themselves
-very closely.
-
-For self-depreciation is the key-note of Japanese conversation and
-manners.
-
-So she goes on with her story, in a voice sweet to listen to as the
-ripple of a mountain brook, and Lotus-bud listens under the table,
-fish-knife held in air, for the tale is reaching an interesting point.
-
-Then Campanula’s voice is heard speaking to Sweetbriar San. She is
-coming to the kitchen to superintend things and—crack! the fish’s head
-is cut off, and three Mousmés are working like one.
-
-Campanula San is younger than any of these Mousmés, and she treats them
-like sisters, yet strangely enough, they do not encroach, but treat her
-as their mistress—a condition of things impossible in Europe, and
-presently, perhaps, impossible in Japan.
-
-The sun has leapt now over the hills, and Leslie is heard moving
-upstairs. Pine-breeze claps her hands with horror, and rises to her
-feet: she has forgotten to fill his bath.
-
-She goes to do so, and Campanula wanders out the front way to the
-balcony, where she pauses to gaze at the azaleas, shading her eyes with
-her hand.
-
-The fire is spreading; another crimson blossom is almost unfolded, and
-others are soon to be born. Every spring the coming of the azaleas is an
-event in Campanula’s life.
-
-A wealth of crimson azaleas is one of her first recollections. Away
-beyond that crimson fire of flowers lies the land of her earliest
-childhood. The house with the plum tree, very vague indeed; the father
-who hit things with a hammer, still vaguer; the sugar-candy dragon lost,
-and so miraculously recovered; the little boy who went to sleep in the
-snow—or was it in a field of lilies?
-
-Her real life, it seemed to her, began as she was reaching for a crimson
-blossom one day in a field of crimson blossoms, and was suddenly caught
-up sky-high by a thing taller than a tree, who did something to the side
-of her neck, just under her left ear, that was not hurtful or
-particularly unpleasant, but which, nevertheless, made her scream.
-
-Then, behold, she saw that the thing was a man, though in strange
-clothes, but he did not frighten her in the least, and she gave him her
-hand at once, and with confidence, whereupon he took her in his arms and
-carried her to a road where stood another man, all black, even to his
-hands, but his face was white, and he had a red beard.
-
-Then this man, who was also unfrightful, began to make her remember
-things that she had for the moment forgotten. To remember her father,
-and the fact that she had lost her way, and other things too, including
-the errant dragon. He made her remember that she wished to get back to
-her father, but she did not remember this so very clearly. In fact she
-was quite content to go with these two men over the hills and far away,
-feeling sure she was safe with them, went they where they would.
-
-The scenes on the road to Nikko she remembered: a funny man away in the
-distance dancing amongst trees, and the entry into Nikko borne sky-high
-above all the other children, the Tea House of the Tortoise,
-and—grandest remembrance of all!—the miraculous awakening with the
-long-lost dragon in her hand. He was so full of mystery that she never
-had even dreamt of eating him, and she still possessed him. He was
-upstairs in the drawer of a lacquered cabinet, cracked, it is true, by
-changes of temperature and warped in the back, for age touched all
-things, even sugar-candy dragons.
-
-Then there was her life at the House of the Clouds, the mission school;
-rainy days when she splashed through the mud under a broad paper
-umbrella; fine days when she flew kites with M’Gourley San, played
-hop-scotch with Kiku San and Kitsune Ken, with all sorts of other Sans,
-mostly with shaved heads.
-
-This was Campanula’s childhood as she remembered it. But as you cannot
-remember your childhood till you have stepped over the line where the
-child becomes a boy or girl, Campanula had not begun remembering it till
-about six months ago.
-
-Up till then M’Gourley San, and Leslie San, and Sweetbriar San, and a
-host of other honorable people surrounded her, one as important as the
-other, Mac perhaps more important than any.
-
-Then all at once—in a week or so, to be more precise—a host of new
-ideas came to her, bothersome, formless ideas, as ungraspable yet as
-insistent as the great Boyg himself.
-
-Then the ideas began to take form. It was in the garden one day. Her
-eyes fell on one of the flowerless azalea bushes, and she remembered how
-it had been covered with crimson flowers last year, and how beautiful
-they were, beautiful above every other flower, even the lordly peony,
-who seems to hold the whole glory and mystery of summer in the gloom of
-his splendid heart. And her mind wandered back from spring to spring,
-led by the crimson blossoms, till she called to mind the valley where
-Leslie had found her.
-
-It was he who had found her wandering alone there, and he had picked her
-up.
-
-She had never forgotten the valley; it had lain in the distance in her
-mind, but she had no use for it till now. Now it came to her in all its
-splendor, and explained to her why the azalea was the flower she loved
-above the peony, the lotus, or even that glorious mystery, the
-dragon-spume chrysanthemum.
-
-Flowers are so bound up with the lives of the children of Japan that
-they have a meaning and speak a language to them almost unknown to us.
-
-So Campanula sat immersed in her dream, and Leslie, who had swung a
-hammock between two cherry trees and was lying in it, little knew what
-was going on in the small head of the person seated near him on the
-square of matting. She had been doing some needlework, but her work had
-dropped in her lap, her hands were folded, and her eyes were fixed on
-the azalea bush.
-
-Next day, or perhaps the day after, for a man’s perceptions in these
-matters are sometimes dull, he noticed a change in her. He could not say
-what it was, but the submissive and humble person, the very fact of
-whose existence was a theme for perpetual self-excuse, had somehow
-changed. She was just as submissive and humble, but there was a subdued
-joyousness in her manner when excusing her existence as though she
-thought that somehow it might not be such a frightful crime after all,
-and perhaps capable of condonation some day.
-
-Then, when he called for his cigar-case Pine-breeze did not appear with
-it, though Pine-breeze loved to be the carrier of it, because it was a
-foreign thing, and the leather smelt deliciously.
-
-Campanula brought it _and_ a match-box, a thing that Pine-breeze’s
-flighty little mind nearly always forgot.
-
-A few days before, Leslie had possessed three servants and what he
-called an adoptive daughter. Then he suddenly found himself in the
-possession of four servants, one of them more attentive than the other
-three put together. He put it down to the fact that her housewifely
-instincts were awakening, and as the change in her wrought for his
-comfort and ease he did not speculate on the cause as he would have done
-had the reverse been the case.
-
-Women are curious creatures, as the philosophic Mac once said. But on
-the whole, in their way, I think men are just as strange.
-
-Kite-flying had now been put aside with other childish things, and the
-tiny hands that had grasped the sugar-candy dragon were now preparing to
-grasp the real business of life: a business whose main objective was the
-happiness and comfort of “He who is taller than the tallest of trees.”
-
-Pine-breeze, Lotus-bud, and Cherry-blossom. Looking at them in a row,
-you might have thought them pretty much alike, as far as mind and spirit
-were concerned, just as three sleek, well-groomed ponies may seem
-identical—until you try to drive them.
-
-It was not till Campanula took the reins that she found the three
-underlings were each afflicted with a special infirmity, or rather
-special infirmities.
-
-Pine-breeze was such a scatterbrain that if you sent her down town in a
-hurry for eggs she would, as likely as not, dawdle home in an hour with
-tomatoes and some wild tale picked up on the way, pleasant and
-interesting enough, no doubt, but useless for the purpose of making an
-omelette. She would leave Leslie’s bath unprepared, and then, sitting in
-her own tub, would clap her hands with horror at the remembrance of her
-own forgetfulness, and as likely as not attempt to rectify her error
-attired in a bath towel; and she would smash things—crockery ware
-understood—with almost the facility of your Western parlor-maid. To
-make up for these bad points, she was literary above her class; had a
-passion for flowers above her fellows, and had composed a poem about a
-grasshopper.
-
-Lotus-bud was the cook; her infirmity was weakness. She would sit and
-listen to Pine-breeze’s idle chatter and let the bread burn. Pine-breeze
-could work and talk, but Lotus-bud could not even work and listen. So
-she would sit with her hands in her lap, listening. She made a splendid
-audience but a somewhat indifferent cook.
-
-As for Cherry-blossom, she was purely and simply an idler, a
-lotus-eater, a hobboe in the guise of a butterfly. A thing so fragile
-and pretty, so perfectly dressed and so seemingly boneless, that you
-felt to expect work from her would be absurd; which, indeed, it would
-have been.
-
-For she never worked, she dreamed.
-
-She was enamored of a riksha man, and she would go out and meet him
-under the lilacs at the gate, and then vanish with him to goodness knows
-where for the evening.
-
-He was the strangest natural phenomenon, this lover of Cherry-blossom’s,
-for he was always changing in size, and his face was never scarcely
-twice alike, and his number—rikshas are numbered just like hansom
-cabs—was
-
-
- 255.
- 66.
- 7.
- 103.
- and 42.
-
-
-At least Pine-breeze, who was an observant body, got that far in her
-notation, and then gave it up as a bad job.
-
-All these things, and more, Campanula had to cope with, and she did so
-with more or less success, gaining in her experience much that a girl of
-her age is supposed not to know, but losing nothing either in gentleness
-or modesty.
-
-She brought Pine-breeze to a vague sense of the wrongfulness of flighty
-ways, and with her own little hands she made new bread to replace a
-batch of loaves burnt to cinders by Lotus-bud (bread that gave Leslie
-indigestion for a week).
-
-As for Cherry-blossom, she told her, missionary fashion, that she would
-certainly go to hell and be burnt like Lotus-bud’s loaves if she did not
-stop vanishing down town with riksha men; and Cherry-blossom ground her
-nose on the matting and wept, and promised reformation, and went out two
-nights afterwards with No. 173 to a grand blaze up at the O Suwa temple,
-where she devoured candied beans and comfits, and bowed before graven
-images, and had a general good time with a host of “heathen” people like
-herself.
-
-Cherry-blossom’s rikshas never cost her anything. Love lent them to her.
-
-Leslie’s socks up to this had always been vanishing, and the ones that
-remained, were always, or generally, in holes. The Mousmés said it must
-be the mice. Campanula, however, found Pine-breeze one morning cleaning
-a kettle with a silk dress-sock. It seemed silk socks at half a guinea a
-pair gave a polish nothing else would give.
-
-The kettles were duller after that, but the depredations of the mice
-ceased.
-
-Having looked at the promise of the azaleas, she went in to see how
-things were getting on.
-
-Presently she and Leslie were seated at breakfast opposite to one
-another on the floor. Leslie, attired in a suit of faultlessly fitting
-pale gray tweed, looked much more like an Indian cavalry officer on
-leave than an umbrella merchant, as he called himself. He had arranged
-to call for Jane du Telle at ten o’clock to take her out shopping; the
-gloomy thoughts of the night before, the effect of the opium, and the
-effect of the dream, had vanished.
-
-He was sipping his tea, and glancing over the _Japan Mail_, when
-Campanula interrupted him.
-
-“What iss Dick?” she suddenly asked; she prolonged her s’s in the
-faintest degree, difficult to reproduce in print, for there is no type
-capable of representing an s and a quarter.
-
-“What is what?” asked Leslie, lowering the _Japan Mail_, and staring at
-his pretty _vis-â-vis_.
-
-“Dick—she called you Dick.”
-
-“Who?”
-
-“She who gave you the flower,” said Campanula, lowering ever so little
-her head.
-
-“Which flower?”
-
-“The one in your coat—yesterday.”
-
-“Oh,” said Leslie, remembering a bluebell that Jane had plucked and
-given him as they went down hill the day before, and remembering also
-that George du Telle and Campanula had been walking behind and must have
-seen the transaction. “She calls me Dick because that is short for my
-name.”
-
-“Dick,” murmured she, in a meditative voice.
-
-She seemed turning the name over in her mind. Tasting it mentally, so to
-speak.
-
-“She is an old friend of mine,” continued Leslie. “I knew her,
-Campanula, before you were born, away over in another part of the world,
-where half the year it snows and where the wind blows just as hard as it
-does in Nippon, but the wind never brings flowers as it does here.”
-
-“No flowers,” she murmured, incapable of imagining such a land.
-
-“Only flowers like that blue one, and wild roses and a few others, but
-you never see camellia trees growing by the roads, nor lotus flowers on
-the ponds.”
-
-“Nor azaleas?”
-
-“Nor azaleas—at least, as they grow here.”
-
-A shadow crossed the open doorway.
-
-“M’Gourley San,” said Campanula, who was seated facing the door.
-
-“Dinna rise,” said M’Gourley. “I’ve had ma breakfast, and I’ll juist tak
-a seat on the verandy till y’ve done.”
-
-“I’m done,” said Leslie, forgetful of grammar, and rising up, he came
-out, the _Japan Mail_ under his arm, and a briar root in his hand.
-
-They talked business a while, and then Leslie said:
-
-“I say.”
-
-“Weel?”
-
-“You remember that woman I told you of on the Nikko road?”
-
-“Which wumman?” asked Mac, taking up a pebble from the path just by the
-veranda, and shying it at one of the hills of the landscape garden.
-
-“Girl, I meant; you remember the girl I told you of?”
-
-“Oh ay; the lass that flung you ower board—what of her?”
-
-“She’s here with her husband.”
-
-“Whaur?” said Mac, turning his head as though he fancied Jane and her
-spouse were camping out in the garden.
-
-“She’s staying at the Nagasaki Hotel with her husband.”
-
-“Whoat’s their names?”
-
-“Du Telle.”
-
-Mac doubled himself up for a moment, alleging for reason a touch of the
-stomach-ache, as a matter of fact it was a touch of internal laughter.
-
-The day before yesterday he had found the newly-arrived George du Telle
-in the smoke-room of the Nagasaki Hotel, stood him drinks, and conducted
-him to Danjuro.
-
-There they had saki and pipes, and George du Telle had bought a
-Pickford’s van-full of rubbish, and parted with a fat green check on
-Cox’s. An exceedingly fat check written with one eye shut, it is true,
-but quite in order.
-
-“I dined with them.”
-
-“Ye whoat!” cried Mac, coming back from a vision of the victorious
-Danjuro doing the cake-walk amidst his bronzes and lacquers, kimono
-pinched up on either side between finger and thumb, his nose in the air,
-and on his face an assumption of stiff and haughty pride enough to kill
-one with laughter.
-
-“Weel! weel!” said Mac, addressing the hills of the landscape garden.
-
-“What are you weel-weeling about?” asked Leslie irritably.
-
-“I am not a puncteelious man,” said Mac, still addressing the hills, “in
-the small concairns of life, but if a lassie had treated me same’s she
-you, _I’d a seen her dammit before I’d ha’ dined wi’ her_.” He shouted
-the last words, and brought his big fist down on his knee with a bang.
-
-“Don’t shout,” said Leslie, “and make an ass of yourself. We didn’t
-quarrel when we parted; we parted good friends. She didn’t want to marry
-me—well, that was her look-out.”
-
-“I wish they hadna’ come,” said Mac gloomily.
-
-“What on earth is the matter with you _now_?”
-
-“I’ve seen the waurld,” said the Gloomy One, “and I’ve seen wummen. And
-I’ve seen _her_—saw her in the smoke-room—” He stopped.
-
-“What smoke-room?”
-
-“Of the hotel. I was havin’ a crack wi’ her husband day-fore yesterday,
-and in she come to speak a word to him; and I know wummen—and, weel, I
-know, fixed between that chap with a head like a blazin’ whin-bush and
-you, which way she’ll run.”
-
-“I wish you wouldn’t be such a fool,” said Leslie, now really annoyed
-and therefore keeping himself in check; “she’s nothing to me.”
-
-Mac turned, and under his bushy, half-grizzled eyebrows stared in
-Leslie’s face, and Leslie did not support his gaze, but turned away
-irritably, and flung stones at a brown hawk that was circling in the air
-before them.
-
-Mac got up, tapped the ashes out of his pipe, and made off.
-
-“See ye the morn?” he called back as he got to the gate.
-
-“Maybe,” said Leslie, looking at his watch and rising to go into the
-house.
-
-He went down at ten, and shortly after his departure, out came
-Campanula, a basket in her hand and sandals on her feet, for the weather
-was dry. She came along the path towards the cherry trees, examining the
-ground and the interstices of the bushes.
-
-At last she saw what she wanted, a bluebell.
-
-She plucked it with tender care and put it in her basket, then she saw
-another and treated it the same, and another; so went she on till it
-became perfectly plain that her object was not gardening, or the
-gathering of a bunch of flowers, but the extermination of every bluebell
-on the premises.
-
-When the place had been cleared and the basket was half full of victims,
-the question came how to dispose of them. Impossible to throw them away
-or burn them; she would as soon, almost, have treated children so.
-
-She stood at the gate undecided, till suddenly there came the solution
-of the problem, and opening the gate she passed down the lilac-shaded
-path to Nagasaki. On the way she saw more bluebells and stopped to pluck
-them, so that when the lane at the bottom was reached the basket was
-nearly full.
-
-In a rabbit-hutch of a house off the lane lay a tragedy, or the remains
-of one, in the form of O Toku San, a poor work-girl. She had loved a
-man, and he had not even betrayed her in the ordinary way. He had simply
-changed his mind, and gone off with another girl.
-
-She tried to kill herself, not in the native way, but with some
-abominable sort of foreign poison—Oxalic acid, most likely; but they
-saved her life, and she lay in the hospital nearly a month with her
-hands tied, to prevent her trying to kill herself again.
-
-When she came out of the hospital she made no more attempts to obtain
-peace. She was in the clutches of pernicious anæmia, and she now lay
-dying, a despairing shadow, the ghost of what had once been a pretty and
-happy girl.
-
-Campanula turned to the tiny house, and that day O Toku San had a whole
-silver yen to give to her mother on her return, and a bunch of
-freshly-gathered blue flowers to charm her eye: things to the dying
-better than all music and poetry, and far above the greatest
-masterpieces of art.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIX
-
- THE STORK AND THE TORTOISE
-
-
-They were in the street running parallel with Jinrikisha Street, a
-street truly of the old time, narrow with the house-tops, when the
-houses had upper stories over-leaning the way.
-
-Jane seemed fascinated by the contents of the little shops, that sold
-everything from cuttle-fish to paper lanterns. Shops that were, most of
-them, simply raised platforms, matted and roofed.
-
-Here abounded the tortoise-shell carvers, and the men who can make a
-netsuké to charm the eye out of anything: a knot of wood, a shark’s
-tooth, a useless bit of ivory.
-
-“I’m going to buy things,” said Jane, looking with a lustful eye on the
-cheap, or seemingly cheap, curios exposed for sale in some of the shops:
-old bronze gongs, kettles, sword guards, broken crockery were carefully
-mended, lamps, such as the Chinese magician might have hawked at the
-back entrance of the palace of Aladdin, fans, trick toys, and tiny boxes
-for holding rouge; tobacco-monos and opium pipes, broken-down English
-umbrellas, lacquer trays, and a heap of other dust-traps utterly
-useless, and some of them not very ornamental.
-
-“If you _will_ waste your money,” said Leslie, “I’d advise you to come
-to Danjuro’s. We can get to it by this lane, and I won’t let him swindle
-you beyond the ordinary tourist pitch.”
-
-“Very well,” said Jane, turning from a booth bearing this cabalistic
-inscription on its front, “Come rightin!”[2] “The things look pretty
-dusty, and I don’t see anything I very much want—I’d like to buy
-_that_, though.” She pointed to a mite in the colored kimono, playing
-battledore and shuttlecock in the gutter with another mite of its own
-size. “They seem so happy and jolly, these Japanese children, and clean,
-and I read somewhere they never give any trouble, or break things, or
-annoy people—Bless the child!”
-
- [2] I presume “Come right in!” was the artist’s intention.
-
-A shuttlecock hit her a slap in the face, and the shuttlecock hitter
-laughed, and trotted after it, without any semblance of apology to his
-target.
-
-“There’s another illusion shattered,” said Jane, wiping her face with
-her handkerchief.
-
-“Have you—” began Leslie.
-
-“What?”
-
-“Any children?”
-
-“No,” said Jane; “I have not.”
-
-The stork on the tortoise, emblem of eternal life, and a “supposed”
-masterpiece of the great Miochin family of metal-workers, still stood on
-guard in the fore-front of Danjuro’s wares. It was the same stork that
-Leslie had seen five years ago—at least, in appearance. In reality it
-had been sold five or six times during the last five years.
-
-The selling of the thing always brought forth Danjuro’s latent sense of
-humor, and could Danjuro the actor have seen his namesake at these
-supreme moments of trade, he would certainly have claimed him as a
-brother in art.
-
-It would be an American woman, perhaps, in a blue veil, and with a
-smattering of knowledge picked up from artistic books about Japan. Mac
-would be the go-between, translating the desires of the female into
-Japanese for the edification of Dan, who spoke English, by the way, as
-well as Mac, and even, perhaps, better.
-
-“Sell it!” Danjuro would cry. “I would as soon think of selling my own
-mother. Tell her Augustness to ask of me anything else. It is a piece of
-true Miochin, owned by my father, and his father before him. It has
-always brought my family luck, etc.”
-
-All of which M’Gourley would faithfully translate with the addition:
-
-“He’s the greatest auld scamp in the waurld; he’s only puttin’ up the
-price. Bide a wee, and let him simmer doon. It is not a true Miochin,
-but it’s a vara excellent imitation, made, mayhap, by some pupil of the
-Miochins. Would y’ be wullin’ to pay twanty poonds?”
-
-The Blue-veiled One assenting, Mac and Danjuro would go for each other
-in Japanese, and after five minutes’ ferocious wrangling, and five
-minutes more of interpretations, the thing would change hands at
-twenty-five pounds, to be replaced next day, or, at least, the day after
-the departure of the Blue-veiled One from Nagasaki, by its twin image. A
-man at Osaka made them by the gross, and he charged two pounds ten
-a-piece for them to the trade.
-
-Fortunately, the dead know not the doings of the living, else would the
-artistic Miochin family be turning eternally in their uneasy graves,
-with the rapidity of spinning bobbins.
-
-Danjuro came out with his usual profound salute and low hiss.
-
-Hiss is perhaps not the proper word, for the sound is made by the intake
-of air between closed teeth, and is intended to represent delight beyond
-words.
-
-And, indeed, when Danjuro beheld M’Gourley entering with a client ready
-to be shorn, the sound came from him as no empty compliment, but as a
-natural expression of his true feelings.
-
-It was different as regards Leslie. Danjuro looked on Leslie with the
-nervous dread with which you or I might look upon a mischievous lunatic.
-
-Leslie had once nearly spoiled a bargain—a delightful bargain from the
-dealer’s point of view, a disgraceful swindle viewed by the cold light
-of English ethics.
-
-An English Member of Parliament had been trepanned into paying two
-hundred pounds for a pair of vases worth, maybe, twenty. Mac in his
-jubilation boasted before Leslie, and Leslie had “put the stopper on,”
-caused the money to be returned, with a note to the effect that the jars
-were now discovered (from some documents connected with them) to be
-imitation, and not as represented when bought.
-
-The Member of Parliament, instantly concluding that _this_ was a
-swindle, and that he had obtained priceless articles by accident,
-refused to accept the money, or return the jars.
-
-And thus was he done brown on his own spit, and basted by his own right
-hand, for in his book of travels, “Amongst the Japs,” he mentioned the
-transaction, and, worse still, sent a copy of the book to Danjuro, with
-the passage marked with blue pencil.
-
-Dan read the passage with the aid of a pair of horn-rimmed spectacles,
-and with a face mirthless as a shovel.
-
-But the soul in him bubbled. He could quite understand the Member of
-Parliament’s point of view, but Leslie’s was quite beyond his power to
-grasp.
-
-Honesty for the sake of honesty, and without any ulterior reason, even
-Art for Art’s sake was more understandable than that.
-
-So he hissed without pleasure as he bowed before Leslie and Jane,
-imploring them to condescend to make the honorable entrance, and
-intimating that everything in the place was theirs.
-
-Jane nodded to him, and looked round.
-
-“There’s one of the monstrosities I told you of that George bought the
-other day,” said she, pointing to a bronze frog half as big as an
-ordinary coal-box. “Oh, look at _that_!”
-
-She pointed to a furious struggle in bronze between a man and a monster.
-The monster had opened its mouth to devour the man, and the man had
-caught it by the tongue, which he was tearing out.
-
-It was the climax of the fight, and the conclusion one could read in the
-triumphant ferocity of the man’s face—a thing to make one shudder.
-
-“Danjuro San,” said Leslie grimly, speaking in Japanese, whilst Jane
-gazed at the fighting group, “this is the lady whose husband you and
-M’Gourley San entertained the other day—the Red-headed One. She is a
-friend of mine, and I pray you to entertain her differently.”
-
-This is a vague interpretation of the Japanese for “This is the lady
-whose husband you swindled the other day, but if you play any of your
-tricks with _her_, I’ll make you sit up—see?”
-
-To fight with a Japanese you must come to blows, for you can’t possibly
-do it in words properly. The old Japanese who made the language had no
-use for terms of abuse: swords were good enough for them.
-
-“I’ll have that,” said Jane, suddenly seizing the fat baby, the size of
-a tangerine orange, done in ivory and engaged in feeding ivory ducks on
-top of a lacquer cabinet, “and the ducks. Tell him to send them to the
-hotel; you can fight with him about the price afterwards—and those two
-vases; and oh, that ivory Mousmé with the umbrella—isn’t she sweet! I
-don’t see anything else I want. _You_ have something, I want to make you
-a present.”
-
-“I don’t want anything, I’m tired of curios.”
-
-“Well, you’ll just have to want something, for I’m going to make you a
-present. I’ll give you this.”
-
-She took up a short sword in a carved ivory scabbard. On the ivory
-handle of it was figured a grimacing god, dancing apparently. She drew
-the blade, polished and razor-sharp, and then returned it to its sheath.
-
-“Take it; it will come in handy when those robbers you told us of last
-night at dinner come again.”
-
-“I don’t want the thing; it’s unlucky to give knives.”
-
-“It’s not a knife, it’s a sword!”
-
-“All right,” said Leslie, “anything for peace;” and he took a great
-sheet of rice paper from Danjuro and wrapped the thing carefully up.
-
-“Now,” said Jane, “I want something for langn-yappe, as they say in New
-Orleans—something thrown in.”
-
-Danjuro declared that the whole shop was hers to do what she liked with.
-
-“I don’t want the whole shop,” said Jane, “but I’ll have that.” She took
-possession of a tiny rose tree in the pot, a rose tree with blossoms the
-size of farthings.
-
-“Now come.”
-
-“One moment,” said Leslie.
-
-His ear had caught a familiar sound. It came from the cellar where many
-of Danjuro’s goods were stowed; it was the voice of Mac, and it came up
-like the voice of the Hidden One in Campanula’s story. Mac evidently had
-a victim in the cellar. Leslie went to the cellar stairs and listened.
-
-“I would not let him see you’re wanting it. Juist assume a casual
-expreesion as if ye were na so vary carin’ whether ye got it or no’.
-He’ll be sure to tell ye it’s a piece o’ Miochin—it is _not_.”
-
-“How much do you think it’s worth?” (A burly English voice, suggestive
-of shepherd’s plaid trousers, a corporation, gold albert, and double
-chin.)
-
-“All of fifty pounds, but not a penny more, not a penny more. Show him
-the money; there’s not a Jap in Nagasaki can withstaund the sight of
-goud—or notes.”
-
-“Look here, if you get it for forty, I’ll give you a ten per cent.
-commission.”
-
-“Am no so very carin’ about commeesions; stull, as you offer it, I’ll
-not say ‘No.’”
-
-The stork and tortoise were being sold again.
-
-Leslie turned away in disgust.
-
-“Come,” he said to Jane, “let’s go.” And they passed out into the sunlit
-street, he carrying the parcel containing the sword, she the rose tree
-done up in rice paper pictured vaguely with the forms of storks.
-
-“She has given him a wakizashi,” murmured Danjuro, and he retired into a
-corner to smoke a whiff or two of hay-colored tobacco, and think
-inscrutable thoughts, before addressing himself to the victim that Mac
-was preparing down in the cellar.
-
-“What shall we do now?” asked Jane when they were in the street.
-
-Leslie thought for a moment.
-
-“I’ll tell you,” said he. “We’ll get rikshas and go to the cemetery—”
-
-“I’ll do no such thing,” said Jane promptly.
-
-“If you will allow me one moment—I’m not proposing to take you to a
-place like Kensal Green. A Japanese cemetery is worth seeing, just as
-much worth seeing as a Japanese town. Then we can go and have luncheon.”
-
-“Where?”
-
-“Would you like to go to an eel-house?”
-
-“Gracious, no! I hate eels. First a cemetery, and then an eel-house! I
-have half a mind to go back to the hotel.”
-
-“Well, a tea house, then; we can go to the Tea House of a Thousand
-Joys.”
-
-“Oh, that quite decides the matter,” said she, assuming an outraged air,
-and hailing one of two rikshas that were passing.
-
-Leslie hailed the other, and quietly directed the riksha boys to the
-cemetery.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XX
-
- THE SONG OF THE MUSHI
-
-
-“It almost makes one wish one were dead,” sighed Jane. They were sitting
-on a moss-grown tussock near a grave adorned with a fresh spray of
-cherry-blossom, contained in a joint of bamboo. Beneath them the hill
-stretched downwards, terrace after terrace, casting before their eyes
-the cold color of marble, and the mournful green of cryptomeria trees,
-the delicate tracery of ferns, and the glory of the wild camellias.
-Beyond lay the blue of the harbor, black-blue where the wooded cliffs
-met the water; from the water the hills led the eye past camphor woods
-and the green of the young bamboo, up and away to where the brown of
-their summits cut the dazzling azure of the sky. “I have never seen
-anything so beautiful, so peaceful. What are you thinking of, Dick?”
-
-“I was thinking,” said Leslie, rousing himself, “that we might have
-luncheon at my place.”
-
-“You are perfectly disgusting!” said Jane. “I’ll never go to a cemetery
-with you again. Luncheon! Who wants luncheon here?”
-
-“Very few,” said he grimly, gazing over the tombs.
-
-“Now you’re trying to be smart—at the expense of these poor things. Ah!
-look at that tiny grave with the white flower in the little vase.”
-
-“Some child.”
-
-“Yes; a thing with a great sash that was flying its kite or spinning its
-top the other day, and now it’s here.”
-
-“Or hitting shuttlecocks about the street.”
-
-“Yes,” wiping her cheek where the shuttlecock had hit her—then
-suddenly: “I think men are beasts,” addressing the distant hills.
-
-“I’m with you there.”
-
-“No, you’re not; all men are just the same.”
-
-“I suppose you mean to infer in a roundabout way that I’m a beast.
-Thanks.”
-
-“There’s nothing to be thankful for, only—they don’t understand.”
-
-He took her hand in his as if to make friends, and she let him hold it
-for a moment, then she suddenly drew it away.
-
-“Had not we better be going? What’s the time?”
-
-“Twelve.”
-
-“Will you come and have luncheon at the hotel?”
-
-“No, thanks; why not come and lunch at my place? I’ll give you all sorts
-of funny Japanese things to eat. Luncheon won’t be till half-past one,
-but you can have a talk with Campanula. It will only take us ten minutes
-or so to get there from here.”
-
-They came down to where the rikshas were waiting; he helped her in,
-tucked the linen apron round her, and gave the men their direction.
-
-Campanula San had not yet returned, declared Pine-breeze, as she
-kow-towed before them on the matting.
-
-“Well, she won’t be long,” said Leslie. “Shall we go into the house or
-the garden?”
-
-“The house,” replied Jane. “I’m tired of the sunlight; let’s go in, and
-sit on the floor and talk.”
-
-“Right. But do you mind—”
-
-“What?”
-
-“Well, as a matter of fact, there’s a clause in the lease that no one is
-to go in with their boots on.”
-
-“Why, for goodness sake?”
-
-“They say it spoils the matting.”
-
-“All right,” said Jane, holding up a small foot, and trying to unbutton
-the shoe on it.
-
-“Let me,” said Leslie, going down on his knees.
-
-The shoe came off, and the little foot in its bronze silk stocking lay
-in his hands for half a second—half a second during which he was seized
-with a wild desire to kiss it. Next moment it was out of his hands, and
-the other was presented to him.
-
-“You are all thumbs!” said Jane. “Do be quick! I’m not a stork to stand
-on one leg for an hour. There, you’ve burst a button off! I knew you
-would. Stupid!”
-
-“Pine-breeze will sew it on,” said he, hunting for the button on his
-knees.
-
-“No, she won’t. It doesn’t in the least matter. Gracious, Dick! when I
-see you just like that, crawling about on your knees—”
-
-“What?”
-
-“I can’t help remembering—Do you remember the rainy day at Glenbruach,
-when you and I were playing marbles in the pistol gallery, and I said
-you cheated, and you said you didn’t, and I said you did, and you called
-me a liar?”
-
-“And you hacked my shins?”
-
-“Yes; and old Mrs. Johnstone, the housekeeper, came in and saw me and
-said I was an ‘awfu’ lassie!’ Can it be that all that really happened,
-and that we are the same people? Imagine me hacking your shins now!
-Imagine us both playing marbles on the veranda!”
-
-“And we didn’t speak to each other for a day,” said he, following her
-into the house. “And you looked so stiff and sour, and all of a sudden
-you came up from behind and flung your arms round my neck.”
-
-“And you shouted: ‘Oh, get away, you little brute!’”
-
-“Yes; because I thought you were making another attack on me, and all
-the time you only wanted to k—”
-
-“I didn’t. I only wanted to apologize.”
-
-“Well, apologize, then!” said he, arranging the cushions on the floor,
-and placing the rose tree and the parcel containing the sword in a
-corner.
-
-“It is sad to look so far away,” said she, taking as comfortable a
-position as she could upon the cushions. “Life was so jolly then. Oh! a
-good old day’s trout-fishing is worth all the money in the world. Money
-is no use; what’s the good of it? It just makes one not care for the
-simple pleasures of life. Do you remember the picnic you and I and those
-American children, who were staying at Callander, had, when the
-soda-water bottle burst, and we found we’d left everything behind but
-the jam and the eggs? Dick, I—I—want to ask you something.”
-
-It was one of the peculiarities of Jane’s mind that a question
-formulating there would work its way along like a worm, under, maybe,
-ten minutes of conversation, and then come out at the end of a
-paragraph, rise for air, so to speak, in a manner irrelevant and
-sometimes startling.
-
-“Yes?”
-
-“What became of you all those three years before you came here to
-Japan?—you vanished. You told me the other day you were in Australia;
-were you?”
-
-“I was in prison.”
-
-She turned deathly pale, and stared at him as if he had struck her.
-
-“Oh, you need not be so alarmed; it was not a criminal but a social
-prison. My father allowed me a hundred and fifty a year, paid quarterly,
-as long as I lived in Sydney, and as I had no trade and no money I lived
-in Sydney for three years—tied by the leg.”
-
-“I think you take a pleasure in frightening me; first you told me you
-were a shopman, now a prisoner. Dick, why do you _always_ make your own
-case out worse than it really is? Tell me, what was the last quarrel
-with your father about?”
-
-“Debts.”
-
-“And, Dick—you know you used to—”
-
-“I know I used to drink, but I don’t drink now.”
-
-They were silent for a while, then he began to speak and tell her the
-story of his life as a remittance man, and he did not spare black in the
-composition of his picture.
-
-She listened at first interested and amused by the thought of Dick tied
-by the leg in Sydney, hobbled, so to speak, and made to behave.
-
-Then her amusement gave way to compassion. She saw him wandering in the
-Domain, by the sea-shore, in the streets, a lonely figure, a man with no
-interest in life, an exile banned by society.
-
-She thought of all the men she knew and the number of them who were just
-as wicked and foolish as Dick had ever been, yet who by keeping on the
-right side of their bank balance retained their social position and the
-respect of all men.
-
-And thinking of all this the heart in her was moved. A most dangerous
-condition just now, for Jane, Bessemer steel in her everyday laughing
-mood, became wax when her compassion was aroused.
-
-“Why didn’t you write and tell me?” said she. “I’d have gone and seen
-your father. Oh, it was wicked to send you off like that, away from
-every one. _How_ could a father treat his child so!”
-
-They were silent again for a moment.
-
-“Poor Dick!” said Jane suddenly, and she took his hand in both hers and
-stroked it. A little shiver went through him.
-
-Then, all at once, she felt an arm around her waist and his breath upon
-her cheek, and she did not try to take her hand from his or struggle,
-nor, after the first second of troubled alarm, did she feel the wish to
-struggle.
-
-She had ceased for the moment to be Jane du Telle, a married woman, a
-person with a stainless reputation. All these facts were swept away by
-nature, just as shrubs and fir trees are swept away by the rush of the
-avalanche.
-
-A great faintness came over her. She clung to him, and sinking
-backwards, fell upon the matting; his arms were around her, his breath
-on her cheek, her lips were returning his kisses, yet all the time her
-lips were murmuring: “Don’t—don’t—don’t!”
-
- * * * * *
-
-At this supreme moment came a sound strangely alien to the
-situation—the jingling of tea-cups no less—and through the wall, or at
-least the opening of a panel, entered Pine-breeze, followed by
-Cherry-blossom, with the luncheon.
-
- * * * * *
-
-“Dick!” she cried, sitting up with her cheeks raging red, “tell them to
-go away.”
-
-But Dick was not heeding her. He was sitting up with his hands to the
-side of his head, and an expression on his face that made her almost
-forget her own position before the Mousmés.
-
-“Do you hear it?” said he.
-
-“What?”
-
-“That noise, my God, that noise.”
-
-A tiny cage was hanging from a hook on the wall. In it was a thing much
-beloved by Campanula—an insect like a grasshopper that sang a buzzing
-and tremulous sort of song. The mushi was a creature that only sang by
-night as a rule, but some spirit had moved its poetic soul, for it was
-singing now.
-
-“It’s that thing in the cage,” said Jane, pointing to it tremulously,
-thankful for any excuse to escape the glances of the Mousmés.
-
-He looked up, sprang to his feet, went to the cage, and tore it from its
-hook.
-
-The Mousmés screamed out, for from his furious manner and the expression
-of his face they felt he was about to dash cage and mushi on the
-matting, and trample them underfoot.
-
-And he was, for one horrible moment. Then something in him
-prevailed—the something that had made him pick the Lost One up and kiss
-her, and carry her all the way to Nikko; the spirit of good that had
-made him always not so bad as he might have been.
-
-He rehung the little cage on the hook, and the thing in it became dumb;
-the sound in his head that troubled him had died away, and he returned
-to where Jane was sitting, and resumed his position on the cushions near
-her.
-
-Then he told the Mousmés to leave what they had brought on the floor,
-and to go away till he called them.
-
-“Oh,” said Jane, when they were alone again, “to think they should have
-seen me like that. Oh, _Dick_! How could we—how could I—”
-
-“_They_ don’t matter,” said he gloomily.
-
-“Oh, don’t _talk_ to me!” She wrung her hands.
-
-“For goodness sake,” said Leslie, “don’t make mountains out of
-molehills. They saw me kiss you, well, what of that? and they don’t talk
-English—at least, English that any one can understand.”
-
-“But like that on the floor,” murmured Jane, comforted somewhat by the
-last statement.
-
-“Well, what of that? We are in Japan, where people live on the floor. I
-admit if a servant in England came in and saw—”
-
-“_Don’t!_” screamed she; “don’t speak about it again. It was a moment of
-weakness; let us forget it. I mean, let us _remember_ it as a
-warning.”
-
-“Do you feel like eating luncheon?” he asked, looking at the pathetic
-little dishes and tea-cups, each on its sea-green mat.
-
-“No; I feel like nothing. I only want to go and bury myself.”
-
-He poured her out some tea and took some himself.
-
-“You frightened me,” she said in a tremulous voice after they had sat
-for a moment in silence. “I thought you were going to do something
-dreadful.”
-
-“When?”
-
-“When you took that cage down with the buzzing thing in it that annoyed
-you—poor atom!”
-
-“It didn’t annoy me; that was not the sound I heard. It was the sound I
-heard in the dream I told you of—that devil—”
-
-A figure stood in the doorway: it was Campanula returned.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXI
-
- M’GOURLEY’S LOVE AFFAIR
-
-
-Mac had gone down to the office that morning in a temper.
-
-The staff consisted of himself and Ah Hop Sing, the Chinese office boy.
-He could not quarrel with himself, so he quarreled with Ah Hop Sing,
-using a rattan cane to enforce the argument, till Ah Hop Sing hopped and
-sang in a fashion that justified his title.
-
-Then Mac wrote business letters and whilst he wrote, the thoughts of
-this dusty and unlovable-looking Scot went far astray on pleasant and
-picturesque roads, under blue skies, by brakes all gay with the crimson
-japonica flowers and the glorious beauty of the red camellias, and
-beneath the solemn darkness of the cryptomeria woods of Nikko.
-
-That is to say, they would stray to these places, and then he would
-recall them to indite letters of advice to Maconochie of Glasgow, a
-letter of abuse to Mr. Oyama—a gentleman who never fulfilled his
-contracts when they threatened loss, sheltering his business self behind
-the ample kimono of the Tokyo guild—and letters to divers other people
-in trade.
-
-And still his thoughts would stray whilst he gummed and stamped the
-envelopes, and they would be buying dolls now at booths in Jinrikisha
-Street, or helping to fly kites at the House of the Clouds.
-
-They would stand watching a small person playing kitsune-ken with
-another person of her own age; and the same small person laboring up the
-Hill to the House of the Clouds, burdened with a bundle of books, and
-sheltered beneath a many-ribbed crimson umbrella.
-
-Then they would glance at the same person, bigger grown, and suddenly
-become beautiful; then they would heave their shoulders and sigh, and
-all come back to help in the addressing of a letter to M’Clintock of
-Osaka, or some other magnate of the Jap Rubbish Trade.
-
-Mac was in love, as I have before indicated: in love with three people.
-A tiny dot in a blue kimono and stiff sash; a person somewhat similarly
-dressed, whom he had sometimes helped of evenings with her lessons, or
-watched as she pricked her fingers over needlework; and a Mousmé as
-pretty as seven.
-
-He had been in love for years without knowing it; a flower had been
-growing in this dusty soil, where one could not fancy any green thing
-finding nutriment, unless, perhaps, a weed. A white flower, pure and
-without stain.
-
-Nothing could be more ideal than this love, nothing with legs and arms
-attached to it could be more un-ideal than Mac. And the strange thing
-was that this pure blossom of the soul did not improve the soul it grew
-from a bit, at least as far as human eye could see, for the man of the
-Great Tung Jade and the Lessar papers incidents was, morally, just the
-same—worse, if anything—as the wailing clients of Danjuro could
-testify.
-
-When Campanula was alone with Leslie in these later days, she wore a
-grave and thoughtful air. Watching her, one could perceive that he alone
-possessed her mind; all the quaint and charming ways of her childhood,
-all things frivolous and light, she seemed to have dropped and left
-behind her with her toys.
-
-When Campanula was quite alone with M’Gourley, a subtle change came over
-her. The child came out and played.
-
-Though Leslie had adopted her as a daughter, she had by no means adopted
-him as a father.
-
-Tod M’Gourley was her adoptive father, or, at least, she treated him as
-such. He acted also as uncle, aunt, grandmother, brother and general
-playmate all combined; and any half-holiday during the last few years,
-you might have seen Campanula and her family strolling along Jinrikisha
-Street, or on the Bund: the family in an old top hat, black broadcloth
-suit, and bearing a gamp umbrella in its hard fist.
-
-They would stray together through the wonders of the town, Mac and she,
-and pause and gaze in at shops like two children, buy sweets and eat
-them unashamed and openly. Stop to look at performing monkeys, or listen
-to street ballad-singers, or criticize passing funerals.
-
-He had never seen so much of life round town as Campanula showed him,
-clapping beside him in her little clogs when the streets were damp, or
-gliding beside him sandal-shod in the warm, dry days of spring.
-
-Where Campanula was concerned, this dour and dusty Scot had all the
-delicate and instinctive feelings of a woman; he had noticed “fine” the
-change that had come over her of late, and the change in her manner
-towards Leslie.
-
-The thing pleased him, yet it made him sigh—and frown, when he called
-to mind “that wumman,” the mental label he had attached to Jane du
-Telle.
-
-When he had finished business he went to Danjuro’s shop, where he had an
-appointment, as we have seen, with an Englishman. The Englishman having
-been duly plundered, Mac looked at his watch, found it was nearly
-twelve, and was struck by a bright idea.
-
-He would go to the House of the Clouds, fetch Campanula out, and have
-luncheon with her.
-
-Ten minutes later found him on the veranda.
-
-Campanula had just returned, having left O Toku San.
-
-M’Gourley sat down on the veranda, and Campanula sat down beside him on
-a little fur rug made from the skin of an Ounce, or some such small
-animal. She looked sad and depressed, and her eyes wandered about the
-landscape garden as if questioning its hills, its streams, its old, old
-forests.
-
-“Campanula,” said Mac, taking her little hand between his great rough,
-red paws, “what ails you, child? You look sad and fashed, what’s been
-worrying you?”
-
-“I have been to see O Toku San,” replied Campanula, speaking in
-Japanese. “She is dying. Her heart is dead,” said Campanula, putting her
-other little hand over her own heart. “I am—oh, so sad! for to-day the
-thought of death has come to me, a thought that I never knew before.”
-
-“Child, child,” said M’Gourley, “dinna speak like that. We must all die
-soon or later—ay, ay, we must all die, sure enough.”
-
-“But not so sadly as she,” replied Campanula with a little sob.
-
-M’Gourley looked at her; she was in tears.
-
-He drew her close to him just as a mother might have done, and held her
-to him whilst she rested her head against his old coat, and sobbed and
-wept like a little child, gazing at the landscape garden through the
-veil of her tears.
-
-He rocked her gently to soothe her, but said nothing, holding her just
-as he had held her that day in the gardens of Dai Nichi Do, as if to
-protect her against Death, as he had that day protected her against the
-vision of the terrible Akudogi.
-
-Her sobs slowly ceased, but still she kept her cheek rested against his
-coat.
-
-“What is Death?” she suddenly asked. The question was quite beyond
-M’Gourley.
-
-“Dinna ask me,” he said. “It’s what we all must come to some day.”
-
-“And will O Toku San see him she loved when she goes—there?” continued
-she, as if unheeding his reply. “Perhaps”—after a long pause—“he will
-know her love for him when he too is there, and make her happy.”
-
-“Mayhap,” said M’Gourley, who did not know the facts of the case, or
-perhaps he would not have taken so cheerful a view of O Toku San’s
-lover’s future state. “Mayhap.” He looked down at her little face. Her
-eyes were dry, but a tear was still wet on her cheek. He took out his
-handkerchief and dried it.
-
-Campanula smiled faintly, pressed her cheek ever so slightly against his
-arm as if in thanks, and drew away from him, resuming her position on
-the little rug.
-
-M’Gourley took out his pipe, lit it, and began to smoke.
-
-“Now,” said he, “just put on those sandal shoes of yours again, for I am
-going to take you out with me.”
-
-“Where?” asked Campanula.
-
-“No matter where,” replied Mac, rising from the veranda. “A nice place
-where you and I’ll go—you and I together, as we did along the Nikko
-road, only not on my shoulder. Na, na! you’re ower big for that. Do you
-remember the sugar-candy dragon?”
-
-“Ah! the Hon. Dragon!” replied she in the vernacular, as she bent to
-pass the sandal-strap past the great toe of her white tabi. “He is
-upstairs with—other things, but the Hon. Dragon is very old now.”
-
-Then she took her umbrella and opened it, and M’Gourley and she passed
-down the path to the gate.
-
-He held the gate open for her, and she passed through with a murmured
-word of thanks, and then she led the way down hill under the perfumed
-beauty of the lilac boughs.
-
-About half-way down, Campanula stepped aside as if to let some one pass.
-M’Gourley, close on her heels, and in a reverie, did the same thing
-unconsciously. If someone had passed, that someone must have effaced
-himself amidst the lilac trees on the left of the path.
-
-“Poor blind man!” said Campanula, looking back up the path.
-
-“Whoat?” cried Mac. “Whoat did y’ say?”
-
-“Blind man,” replied Campanula; “he who came last night—you remember!”
-
-M’Gourley took off his old top hat, and drew his coat sleeve across his
-forehead. Beads of sweat had sprung there all of a sudden.
-
-He stood for a second or two looking at Campanula, and then for a second
-or two looking up the path, pied with sunshine and shadow, the pretty
-path that for him had suddenly been made horrible. There was nothing to
-be seen, nothing but the sunshine and shadow.
-
-“My eyes are growing auld,” he said at length. “Do you see him still,
-Campanula?”
-
-She had turned away to look at a fern that was growing on the bank.
-
-“I do not see him now,” she replied. “He has gone through the gate.”
-
-“Are you sure,” said Mac, speaking in a subdued voice, “that he was the
-same man that came last night?”
-
-Campanula was quite sure.
-
-“Wait for me,” said Mac, “and I’ll run up and tell them to give him some
-food.”
-
-He came hurriedly back up the path, very much against his will.
-
-There was nobody in front of the house, he went round to the kitchen.
-The Mousmés were there, preparing luncheon—at least, preparing to
-prepare it in a leisurely way.
-
-Had they seen anyone about the house, a blind man?
-
-No, they had seen nobody, only the poulterer, who had been with eggs an
-hour ago.
-
-Had they seen a blind man last night—had a blind man called round at
-the kitchen to ask for food?
-
-No; nobody had been for food to the kitchen last night, least of all a
-blind man.
-
-Then Mac hurried off, and the Mousmés dropped everything to discuss the
-meaning of all these questions asked by the Learned One; and Pine-breeze
-embarked on a story about two blind men and a frog, and the fox-faced
-representative of the rice god, a story that put the luncheon back half
-an hour.
-
-Campanula was plucking flowers when Mac returned. Just three or four
-with a delicate fern frond, such a charming little bouquet, a veritable
-work of art made in a moment with unerring taste and a few turns of her
-deft fingers. She made Mac bend, and fixed the tiny bouquet in his
-coat-lapel.
-
-Then they pursued their way, Mac vastly perturbed in his mind.
-
-There was just now living in the pleasant city of Nagasaki an inn-keeper
-of the name of Yamagata, who owned a tea house named “The Full-blown
-Peony Flower.”
-
-Mr. Yamagata was a Progressive. He believed that a tea house where a
-real English luncheon or dinner could be obtained would, judging from
-his compatriots’ passion for things European, be a success.
-
-And it was, till half Jinrikisha Street nearly died of indigestion.
-
-His tea house was a tiny affair situated up an entry near Danjuro’s
-shop, and surrounded by a little courtyard, wherein grew
-dyspeptic-looking plum trees in pale amber-colored pots.
-
-Danjuro, who was a friend of Yamagata’s, had been chanting the praises
-of the place so long, that Mac had become obsessed by the idea of it;
-and casting about for somewhere new to take Campanula, the idea had
-turned up like a horrible sort of trump card.
-
-The tea house was on its last legs, and practically deserted, so they
-had the place to themselves; and having ordered the meal they sat on the
-matting of a desolate room and waited for it to come.
-
-“Campanula,” said Mac, “you have never seen that blind man before?”
-
-She shook her head.
-
-“Never; nor one so ugly as he.”
-
-“Campanula,” said Mac earnestly, “if you see him again dinna speak with
-him; he’s an ill man and bodes no good.”
-
-Oh, indeed, she did not wish to speak with him, but he was so old and
-poor and ugly she could not but feel sorrow for him; and he said last
-night that he had come such a long way off, and must soon return.
-
-M’Gourley shuddered.
-
-“Ay,” said he to himself, “a dom long way off;” then to Campanula: “Said
-he anything else?”
-
-“No,” replied Campanula, “for I told him to go to the back entrance, and
-he went.”
-
-At this moment the soup was brought in by three somewhat faded-looking
-Mousmés, each armed with a plate, a real English soup plate.
-
-The soup was thin and not exuberantly hot, but it seemed vastly to amuse
-Campanula when it was put before her. “A,” said she, pointing with her
-spoon-tip to something at the bottom of the plate, “B—C”—she was
-pointing to the little Italian paste letters floating, or rather sunk,
-in the mixture. “D—and look—a cow!”
-
-Mac looked over to admire.
-
-“Ay, ay, it’s a coo, right enough, an’ there’s a cock and hen; but eat
-it up before it gets cold.”
-
-Campanula ate her alphabet, and the next course appeared. A boot sole
-labeled a beef-steak, which vanished, uneaten, and was replaced by what
-seemed to be an old stone cannon-ball, such as they used to fire out of
-Mons Meg. The O.S.C.B. was labeled a pudding.
-
-It was the caricature of an ordinary English middle-class country
-luncheon.
-
-But it was an amazingly clever caricature: a perfect work of art.
-
-After luncheon, M’Gourley returned to business, and Campanula to the
-House of the Clouds.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXII
-
- THE COMPLETE GEOGRAPHER
-
-
-On the way, she stopped at the shop of Mr. Initogo to pay a visit to her
-friend Kiku.
-
-Campanula in her school-days had shown both qualities and defects of
-mind. At languages, at least in learning the English language, she was a
-success; a very moderate success where mathematics were concerned,
-though she knew enough to do long division, and to keep household
-accounts. They teach a lot of useful things at the mission
-schools—needlework, and so forth, and in some of these branches
-Campanula shone, but at geography she was a dismal failure. She had been
-always lacking in the power of location. Witness her first statements as
-to the whereabouts of the house with the plum tree in front of it.
-
-The long sea voyage from Tokyo, or rather from Yokohama, had brought
-into her mind the impression that she had traveled to the end of things,
-yet they told her there were things beyond.
-
-They showed her maps and globes. The maps were flat, and the globes were
-round, yet they said they were the same thing, or were pictures of the
-same thing. How a flat thing could be round or the converse, she could
-not say, but Howard San, the missionary, said they were. Was it for her
-to contradict him? So, instead of setting up her own wits against Howard
-San, and questioning him, she accepted his words just as you or I accept
-the words of mathematicians or physiologists concerning subjects on
-which we are ignorant. And thus on geography she got hopelessly muddled,
-and remained so.
-
-This morning she was lamenting her want of geography, and casting about
-for some friend learned in the art. Of course she might have gone to
-Howard San, but she would have to wait till school was over, and,
-besides she felt a certain diffidence in approaching him on the subject,
-so she turned to the shop of Mr. Initogo.
-
-Mr. Initogo was sitting on his heels on the floor of his shop, engaged
-in the gentle art of making tea; it was one of his fads that he always
-made his own tea with his own hands. Beside him stood an hibachi, on
-which a kettle was coming to the boil; before him, a tea-cup without a
-handle on a tray, and a microscopic tea-pot.
-
-He warmed the tea-cup with a few drops of hot water; then, from a
-cylindrical tea-canister, with a thing like a snuff-scoop, he took a
-small quantity of green tea—tea of the color that an old black coat
-turns after years of sun and rain—this he popped into the tea-pot.
-
-Then the honorable hot water being ready, he poured it into a porcelain
-dish to let it cool slightly, which it did, becoming converted during
-the act into the honorable old hot water.
-
-The honorable old hot water being now ready, he poured it into the
-tea-pot, popped on the lid, looked up, and saw Campanula.
-
-So immersed in his darling employment had he been, that he had not
-observed her entrance.
-
-She wished to see Kiku? She was upstairs; this with a thousand apologies
-for his own blindness, and comparisons of himself with worms and other
-sightless things.
-
-Campanula knew the way up; she had been up often enough before, and up
-she went.
-
-Kiku San, since we hinted at her as a playmate of Campanula, had grown.
-The tumbling tot that Leslie had once caught by the “scruff” of her obi
-and held out at arm’s length wriggling, for the amusement of M’Gourley,
-had become a Mousmé with a face at once heavy and flighty-looking; a
-broad face, pretty enough, but with a maddeningly irresponsible
-expression.
-
-Pine-breeze was bad enough in the irresponsible line, but she could have
-learnt much from Kiku.
-
-She was the dunce, or, rather, had been the dunce at the mission school;
-this is not saying very much against her, for Japanese girls are
-amazingly quick in the “uptake,” learning coming to them as easily as
-ignorance to English girls; all the same she had been the dunce. She had
-never been able to conquer the letter “l” in English; and would say
-“raidy” for “lady;” yet she had a memory of sorts, blocks of facts swam
-in the ocean of her unintelligence like those houses that float about
-after an inundation of the Mississippi.
-
-But the place left vacant in her skull by want of learning was by no
-means devoid of a tenant; therein dwelt a colossal impudence, a supreme
-self-assurance that sheltered and helped to hide the nakedness of her
-mind, and even obtained for her, amongst her girl friends, a sort of
-fungoid reputation for cleverness.
-
-For when Kiku San said a thing, she said it with such assurance that it
-seemed true—the assurance of the absolutely untrustworthy intellect,
-which of all assurances is the greatest.
-
-She was sitting now on her heels in a bare room on the upper floor, a
-tobacco-mono at her side, and in her hands a round flat box with a glass
-lid. She was playing at Pigs-in-Clover.
-
-The two Mousmés bowed to one another with great ceremony, enquiring
-after each other’s honorific health, and then Campanula came to rest
-upon the matting opposite to her friend.
-
-They formed a pretty picture in the bare room with its chess-board
-matting, against the bare walls, whose only ornament was a kakemono
-representing Fuji San crested with snow.
-
-Kiku was soon to be married—married to a government clerk to whom she
-had been engaged nearly since birth; and she entertained Campanula with
-long and uninteresting descriptions of her husband-to-be, his mother,
-his father, his grandfather, who lived at Nagoya, his brothers and
-sisters, how old they were and all about them.
-
-Kiku was a bore, a female bore of the first water, and in this respect
-she could have given any old member of the Rag or Carlton points, and
-beaten him.
-
-She told all these things looking up from under her thick eyelids, and
-with a half-smile, and Campanula listened, half mesmerized, wholly
-weary, but with all her courteous soul awake to do honor to the tale.
-
-At last an hiatus occurred of which Campanula took advantage to ask the
-question in her mind.
-
-Did Kiku, so learned on all subjects, know of any land where the snow
-lay for half the year?
-
-Oh, certainly Kiku did, and she told about it.
-
-Describing her future husband and his relations she had been vague and
-uninteresting, lacking, as she did, the gifts of perception and
-narration. But now, plunging into the empire of pure lies, she spoke
-with an assurance that made her words sound like gospel.
-
-Such a country existed; as a matter of fact, she had it all in a book
-somewhere, but she did not need the book, as she never forgot anything.
-It lay in the sea beyond Nankin two hundred and sixty-seven ri beyond,
-and the snow lay there half a year, sometimes more.
-
-“Is it a country where blue flowers grow, and roses—sometimes?” said
-Campanula.
-
-“Just so, sometimes;” and Kiku, searching in the capacious bag of her
-ignorance, began to produce old broken-up facts that had been lying
-there like rubbish in the basket of a chiffonier.
-
-The sea all round that place was frozen most of the year, and the sun
-shone once a month or so.
-
-Then she painted a graphic picture of this desolate land which she
-declared to be divided into four parts, Unster, Munster, Rinster and
-Comit; and Campanula sat listening and receiving it all as truth.
-
-Liars, somehow, are always sure of an audience; you and I, who speak the
-truth, the whole truth, and nothing but the truth, languish in
-conversation and are not heard, whilst your mendacity-monger holds the
-floor and absorbs the interest.
-
-So Kiku San went on spinning her tale, and Campanula San sat opposite to
-her and listened, shivering at the dismal pictures being raised before
-her.
-
-Then, all at once, from below came the irate voice of Mr. Initogo
-calling Kiku the “Heedless One.” If he could have used a stronger
-expression he would have used it, for the dinner ought to be cooking at
-this moment, and the fish and seaweed had not arrived. The Heedless One
-had been, as a matter of fact, playing at Pigs-in-Clover all the morning
-instead of marketing.
-
-The Complete Geographer rose to her feet in a hurry, for filial
-obedience resided in her breast, not so much as a virtue, but rather as
-a sort of mainspring put in by nature—or rather, I should say,
-heredity.
-
-They went out together, and Kiku bought the fish and the seaweed and a
-few other important items, and then they parted, Kiku returned home
-laden with marketings, and Campanula to the House of the Clouds.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIII
-
- THE STRUGGLE
-
-
-Leslie walked back to the hotel that day with Jane. When he left her he
-was vastly troubled in his mind. Troubled about Jane, troubled about
-Campanula, troubled about himself, and troubled about a vast, vague,
-tragic something: a shadow stealing up from his past and already
-tingeing his future with the twilight that comes before eclipse.
-
-What demon had called Jane up from the past?
-
-Unconsciously during the last five years he had been altering for the
-better. The friendliness and kindness of Japan, the frank friendliness
-of M’Gourley, that most unconscionable Scot, the beauty of the flowers
-and seasons, and Campanula—above all, Campanula—these things had
-worked upon him with slow but sure effect.
-
-Slowly, he had learnt the great, great secret that happiness is to be
-found, not in grand palaces, not in wealth, not in success, but amongst
-the lowly and little things of life, the things that no man can
-appreciate who has not a free and untroubled conscience.
-
-The new book, the pipe of tobacco smoked beneath the cherry trees of a
-morning, the home-coming of Campanula from school of an evening laden
-with books and perplexities, the rubber of whist with Mr. Initogo, the
-quaint, funny things that are always happening in a Japanese
-household—these and a thousand other trifles had made up the sum of his
-life, and the addition of them made happiness.
-
-And Campanula—he little knew how much she had entered into his
-being—what a multitude of impalpable threads bound her to him, threads
-that had been spinning from the very first day, when he found her lost
-amidst the crimson azaleas!
-
-He had eaten the lotus for nearly five years; he had been preparing a
-future of happiness and peace, and who knows what boundless
-possibilities of love?
-
-Suddenly, Satan had appeared before him with the command, “Get up and
-fight, fight me for this future you have been preparing for yourself;
-fight me for the beauty of it, the happiness you will have in it, the
-happiness you will make for others in it; get it if you can, for my
-weapon is Lust.”
-
-That night, when the moon, now waxing stronger, laid her patient square
-of pure white light on the floor of his room, the battle began in
-earnest.
-
-He had determined on going to Arita on the morrow to get away for a
-while from the woman against whom he felt fate was driving him with
-ruinous intent.
-
-Now, as he lay alone, with the powers of good and evil on either side of
-him, he reviewed his position clearly for the first time.
-
-The cold, calculating, sneaking, pickpocket form of adultery, which is
-the canker at the heart of English society—to put it in plain English,
-the bestial use of another man’s wife behind his back—was a form of
-crime as unthinkable to Leslie as the crime of cheating at cards, or
-forging a check.
-
-To obtain the woman he wanted, there was only one way. The open way.
-
-That meant the smashing up of everything around him. He must leave
-Japan, leave Campanula, for, deep in his heart, something told him that
-Campanula could have no place in that new life. It meant the social ruin
-of Jane du Telle.
-
-Here, alone, away from the object of his passion, all this was very
-clear.
-
-Then that same old Scotch ancestor, with the long upper lip, and the
-crude common sense, and the rigid belief in God and the law, came out of
-his cell and spoke to this effect. There is no excuse before God or man
-for adultery. Love, the child of God, has no part therein, but Lust, the
-child of the devil, and the end of Lust is Hell.
-
-All this, with the thoughts that went before it, was edifying and made
-for good, and the devil said nothing, for the devil, like the great
-Boyg, has a method with some natures. He does not strike, but lets the
-victim do the striking, hedging him gently, gently, letting him hit out
-widely till he is exhausted, or beats himself to death as the Blind One
-beat himself against the trees.
-
-Early in the morning Leslie rose, white and haggard, and dressed, and
-went off to the station without waiting for breakfast.
-
-“Tell Campanula San I am going to Arita on business, but will be back
-to-night. Tell her I am going alone,” he said to Pine-breeze.
-
-“Kashko marimashta,” murmured Pine-breeze, in a voice of devotion, and
-he departed.
-
-He was going to Arita to get beyond the reach of Jane, and lo! when he
-got into the railway carriage, she was there—not in the flesh, but in
-the spirit. And when he alighted at Arita, she was on the platform, and
-in the street she walked at his side.
-
-The tones of her voice thrilled him, and he smelt the perfume of her
-hair, he felt the curve of her waist, and his lips felt the satin of her
-throat, but the physical desire was small compared with the terrible
-sentiment that was born of it, the heart-breaking longing inspired by
-her idealized image.
-
-Passion, when it rises to this dimension in the mind of a man, has
-beautiful attributes as well as vile, it holds in its hands pictures of
-perfect innocence, besides the others.
-
-The devil takes care of that!
-
-He saw Jane not only as she was, but as she had been, fair, and fresh,
-and innocent, against the background of the beeches round Glenbruach,
-and the sea lochs, and the purple hills.
-
-What he did with his body that day in Arita, or where he wandered, he
-could never tell, for his mind was fighting a battle so fierce that all
-intelligent perception of outward things was blurred.
-
-At the end of it he found himself in a tea house sitting before some
-food which he had apparently ordered, and the battle was won. So he told
-himself.
-
-As a matter of fact, he was worn out. Passion was exhausted, fighting
-against fate, attempting to escape from the pursuing devils, beating
-himself against the trees, he had fallen beneath them, telling himself
-that the battle was won, wondering at himself that he ever could have
-even dreamed of the ruinous course of action which lust had urged him
-to.
-
-But the trees remained steadfast and unharmed, waiting only for the
-renewal of the madman’s strength and the inevitable end.
-
-It was dark when he reached the Nagasaki station. He picked a riksha
-from a row of them standing outside with hoods up, for it had been
-raining slightly, and looking absurdly like a row of tiny, unhorsed
-hansom cabs, and told the man to take him to the House of the Clouds.
-
-He came up the hill-path, and as he came the wind, blowing against him,
-brought a perfume with it, the perfume of rain-wet azaleas. During the
-day and the previous night dozens of blossoms had broken forth, filling
-the garden with their fragrance and beauty; dozens more would be born
-ere the morrow under the light of the silvery moon now gliding up over
-the hill-tops behind a tracery of flying, fleecy clouds.
-
-As he approached the house, he saw through the open panel space the
-silhouettes of Pine-breeze and Cherry-blossom.
-
-They were sitting opposite to each other on their heels upon the lamplit
-matting, and seemed at first to be engaged in the game of kitsune-ken,
-but almost instantly he perceived that they were playing at no game, but
-were engaged in conversation. Alarmed conversation, to judge by the
-movements of their hands, now up-flung, now flung out sideways.
-Sweetbriar San was promenading the matting with tail fluffed out, now
-rubbing against Pine-breeze, now against Cherry-blossom, attempting
-apparently to join in the conversation, and seeming to share in the
-excitement.
-
-Something had happened of a tragic nature—but what? Two steps brought
-him on to the veranda two more into the house with his boots on, despite
-the clause in the lease.
-
-The Mousmés gave two little shrieks, wheeled round, and kow-towed before
-the August One.
-
-“What is the matter?” he asked. “Has anything happened? Is Campanula San
-safe?”
-
-Campanula San was quite safe.
-
-Then why all this? What had they been conversing about with so many
-exclamations?
-
-Confused replies.
-
-“Go,” he said, “and bring me some tea, and ask Lotus-bud to come
-hither.”
-
-In a few moments Lotus-bud, wearing a very white face, appeared, and
-kow-towed.
-
-He questioned her. At first her answers were vague, and then it all came
-out.
-
-Things had happened. Campanula San had gone into the town that day, and
-had met he whose head was like the rising sun (George du Telle in plain
-prose); and he with the sun-bright head had walked with her, and had
-spoken dishonorable words. Oh, shame!—he had offered her gold.
-
-“God!” said Leslie, staring at the bent figure on the matting before
-him.
-
-He remained speechless for a moment, then he took out his watch and
-looked at it: it was eleven o’clock.
-
-He turned furiously and strode out of the room: on the veranda he
-stopped like a horse suddenly reined in.
-
-Jane’s image had appeared before him, turning him back.
-
-Suppose he were to go to the hotel now and drag George du Telle out and
-beat him within an inch of his life, as was his intention a moment ago?
-
-The idea of Jane in the midst of that scene brought his fury down from
-boiling point.
-
-He returned to the room, where Lotus-bud was still on her knees, with
-her hands clasped.
-
-Where was Campanula San now?
-
-In bed and asleep. She had returned, it seems, greatly troubled at noon,
-and had confided her trouble to Lotus-bud, making her promise to tell no
-one—Leslie San especially—and Lotus-bud had promised—with the result
-we have already seen.
-
-For a moment he thought of waking Campanula, but he dismissed the
-thought. The thing had occurred and was irremediable, the question now
-remained, what was he to do about George du Telle.
-
-He went up to bed. In times past he could have obtained his remedy.
-
-Where lay his remedy now? The law could do nothing; there remained only
-physical force.
-
-A wheezy pug dog protected by a woman’s skirts, that is what George du
-Telle was. Leslie knew that if once he could catch the brute by the
-scruff of the neck, the only struggle would be with himself as to the
-limits of chastisement to be inflicted.
-
-If he could only get him away from Jane up a back street anywhere, just
-for five minutes! The thing was to be done. With the help of the astute
-M’Gourley he felt it was to be done, and would be done on the morrow.
-
-He got up and went to a rack on the wall where he kept his sticks, and
-took down a whangee cane half an inch thick, a most efficient instrument
-for the chastisement of a brute. He made it sing through the air, then
-he put it on the rack again and returned to bed, and slept soundly, far
-more soundly than he had slept the night before.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIV
-
- GEORGE DU TELLE
-
-
-He was awakened by voices. Sunlight was streaming into the room, the
-sparrows were bickering round the trees, and from below came the voice
-of Pine-breeze crying, “Irashi, condescend to enter!”
-
-Then Jane’s voice: “I don’t understand what you say. Stop rubbing the
-matting with your nose. I want your master.” Then an octave higher,
-“Richard!”
-
-“Hullo!” cried Leslie, leaning on his elbow, and scarcely able to credit
-his ears.
-
-“Oh, you are there! Come down at once, I must speak to you. Quick!”
-
-“What on earth has happened?”
-
-“All sorts of things.”
-
-“I’ll be down in two minutes, but for goodness sake tell me what _is_
-the matter.”
-
-“Can I speak without any one understanding?”
-
-“Oh, that’s all right.”
-
-“Well, then, George has bolted.”
-
-“George has _what_?”
-
-“Gone away.”
-
-“Where has he gone to?”
-
-“Oh! come down and I’ll tell you everything. Dick! Dick! is that a bath
-I hear you dragging over the floor? Dick, if you dare to have the
-impudence to keep me waiting whilst you take a bath, I’ll—I’ll come up
-and pull you out of it. Do come on!”
-
-“Directly!”
-
-“Well, don’t be long,” grumbled Jane; and she apparently took her seat
-on the cushions upon the matting, for he could hear her grumbling about
-the absence of chairs.
-
-This was a new development of affairs. George bolted! It was just what
-one might have expected of the man, to insult a girl and then fly from
-the wrath to come.
-
-It was rather a relief, too, viewed by the light of morning. No man
-likes the task of thrashing a dog that has misbehaved: the thing has to
-be done, but it is unpleasant, and if the creature runs away and hides,
-so much the better. And the thrashing of a fat, wheezy pug without teeth
-or means of defense was what the punishment of George du Telle would
-amount to.
-
-He dressed rapidly and came down to the room where Jane was sitting on a
-cushion, trying to read the _Japan Mail_.
-
-“Oh, there you are! Come and sit down. No, not beside me; right
-opposite, if you please.”
-
-“Tell me all about it.”
-
-“Oh, there’s not much to tell. I was in bed nearly all yesterday with a
-headache, and George went off for a walk in the afternoon; said he was
-going to call on _you_. I told him you had gone to Nagoya.”
-
-“Arita.”
-
-“It’s all the same—then he went out, I don’t know where, and that is
-the last I’ve seen of him. At nine yesterday evening they brought me a
-note saying he had gone to Osaka, and to follow with our luggage.”
-
-Leslie whistled.
-
-“What are you whistling about?”
-
-“Osaka! Why, that’s over three hundred miles away!”
-
-“Where is it?”
-
-“On the Inland Sea.”
-
-“Where’s that?”
-
-“Oh, it runs from here up to—well, practically to Osaka. At least, it
-doesn’t exactly reach from here, you have to go through the Straits of
-Tsu-shima.”
-
-“Well, I don’t care what Straits you have to go through; he’s gone to
-Osaka on important business the note said. Now, what business can have
-taken him there. What do they do at Osaka?”
-
-“Make all sorts of things, from machinery to tea-pots, and so on.”
-
-“Well, he can’t have gone to buy machinery or tea-pots—what can it
-_mean_? He was so good, too, yesterday; brought me up some antipyrine,
-and wanted to fetch a doctor, and plumped up my pillows, and then went
-out and off to Osaka without a word, and how did he get there? He says
-follow by next boat to-morrow. I was going to ask the hotel people, but
-I didn’t like to. I just told them I knew he was going, and I was going
-to follow him to-morrow.”
-
-“There’s no railway to Osaka,” said Leslie, “for this bit of Japan is an
-island. He must have gone by a Holt liner; one started last evening. The
-Canadian Pacific boats don’t stop at Osaka, they go right on to
-Yokohama. I suppose he means for you to follow by the Messagerie boat
-that leaves to-morrow evening.”
-
-“I’ll give him tea-pots,” said Jane gloomily, “when I catch him! The
-idea of his leaving me like that! In a strange country, too. I wonder
-_what_ is the meaning of it all!”
-
-“Perhaps he went away—because of a girl.”
-
-“You mean he’s run away with some girl!” flashed Jane. “Why don’t you
-say so if you mean it?”
-
-“Because I don’t mean it. I said ‘because of a girl,’ not ‘with a
-girl.’”
-
-“Dick, you know something!”
-
-“Yes, I do.”
-
-Jane turned pale, and he hated to see her like that, but he had suddenly
-made up his mind to tell her all.
-
-“He met Campanula yesterday afternoon, and, not to put too fine a point
-upon it, insulted her.”
-
-“Oh, Dick!” said Jane, turning, if possible, paler than before. She
-stared at him in a frightened way, then she recovered herself. “There
-must be some mistake; she must have misunderstood him. He couldn’t have
-done such a thing; however foolish he may be, he’s a gentleman.”
-
-“Yes, a gentleman in England, but not a gentleman in Japan. He—God damn
-it!” blazed out Leslie suddenly, bringing his fist down with a bang on
-the matting—“he offered her money.”
-
-“I must go to him at once,” said Jane, making as if to rise, “and ask
-him if this thing is true.”
-
-“Sit down for a while; you can’t possibly get to Osaka to-day. Oh, it’s
-true enough. I was in a boiling rage last night when I came home and
-heard it all. I was going down to the hotel with a stick to have it out,
-and then I thought of you, and the disgrace and uproar there would be,
-so I just bit on the bullet and went to bed. Honestly, I was going to
-have got him somewhere by himself to-day, and have it out with him, but
-it seems he prefers insulting women to facing men. Forgive me, Jane, for
-all this; I feel bitter about it, but I hate to have to say these things
-to you.”
-
-“It was good of you to think of me last night,” said Jane in a broken
-voice, gazing at the matting as she spoke, then looking up full in his
-face, “very good of you.”
-
-“Oh, I suppose it’s really nothing, after all,” he said. “Those
-confounded fools that write books about Japan have got it into English
-people’s heads that every ‘Jap-girl,’ as they call them, is a
-what’s-its-name at heart. Let’s say no more on the matter, the affair is
-closed. Have some breakfast?”
-
-“No, thanks; I’m too much troubled and worried,” said Jane, sighing and
-folding her hands in her lap.
-
-“Oh, don’t trouble about it. I told you because—well, I thought you
-ought to know.”
-
-“Richard,” said she, looking up, “if you meet George again—”
-
-“Don’t be a bit alarmed. I will do nothing to him except to cut him. He
-has run away; that closes the affair entirely. A man can only be really
-angry with a man.”
-
-“Richard,” said she, now half tearfully, “I’m going to say something I
-want to say. Men don’t understand women. I’m fond of George. Men are
-always talking about love, and so are novels. I never loved George that
-way. I don’t think I ever loved any one really in that way, but I have
-an affection for George; I suppose that is the best name to give it. I
-know he’s ugly, I know he’s a lot of things he ought not to be, yet I
-feel he belongs to me.
-
-“It’s the sort of feeling one has for an—for an animal. I’m just
-telling you what I feel. An animal may be terribly ugly, yet one may
-love it. George has been very good to me, and he has grown into my life;
-that is the only way I can express it.
-
-“Do you know, Dick, when you have your face very close to another
-person’s face you cannot tell what they are like. Well, it’s just the
-same with marriage. After people have been married some time they don’t
-see each other as they saw each other before; they have lost their
-identity—each is part of the other. And, Dick, I know George has been
-wicked, but ought we not to remember, the day before yesterday—”
-
-“Yes,” he said; “the day before yesterday I kissed you.”
-
-“It was a moment of weakness on my part,” continued Jane. “We are all
-very weak and wicked, but I have always been faithful to my husband—I
-should say, to myself. It is strange to talk like this.”
-
-“The whole affair is closed,” he said. “Let us wipe the slate clean and
-begin again.”
-
-Sitting opposite to her here in the morning light he was a very
-different person from the man wandering about Arita yesterday, pursued
-by her image.
-
-The course of a great passion like his is not a high level line. If a
-man were to live through such a phase of existence at Italian opera
-heights he would be mad or dead in a very few days.
-
-Its course is most like the temperature chart of a typhoid fever case:
-tremendous ups and downs, fever point now, a few hours later almost
-normal.
-
-He clapped his hands, and Pine-breeze appeared.
-
-“Breakfast,” he said. “You’ll stay to breakfast,” turning to Jane. “And
-there is something I forgot day before yesterday. You have come to see
-Japan—well, look here—”
-
-He went to a big lacquer cabinet where he kept his papers, and returned
-with a large, square, cream-colored card covered with Chinese
-ideographs.
-
-“What is it?” said Jane, turning it over.
-
-“An invitation to a garden-party. A man named Kamamura is giving it
-to-morrow at O-Mura.”
-
-“A Japanese garden-party!” said Jane, with interest in her voice.
-
-“Yes, very Japanese. He told me to bring any of my friends.”
-
-“But to-morrow,” said Jane—“I am going away to-morrow.”
-
-The words went through him like a pang.
-
-“Never mind,” he said. “Your boat does not start till evening; you will
-have plenty of time to get back.”
-
-“I’d love to go,” she said; “but—are you sure it’s all right for me to
-go without an invitation?”
-
-“Perfectly, or I would not bring you.”
-
-Pine-breeze entered with a tray.
-
-“Where,” enquired Leslie, “is Campanula San?” Campanula San had not
-risen yet; she had a headache.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXV
-
- RETROSPECTION
-
-
-“I’ll go up and see her,” said Jane, when they had finished breakfast.
-“May I?”
-
-“Yes, if you like; Pine-breeze will show you the way—but, Jane, say
-nothing to her of what occurred yesterday; she thinks nobody knows
-except one of the servants here.”
-
-“I’ll say nothing,” replied Jane; “but I’ve got some antikamnia tabloids
-in my pocket, fortunately, and I’ll just make her take one.”
-
-“All right,” said Leslie; “but for goodness sake don’t poison her.”
-
-This was another point on which Jane had not altered. As a girl she had
-been possessed by a passion for drugs, and would swallow anything in the
-way of medicine she came across or was given. She had always been
-doctoring rabbits and other unfortunate animals, and had once nearly
-poisoned herself by taking half a bottle of pain-killer for a dose. And
-now here she was, nearly fifteen years after, in Japan, going upstairs
-to doctor Campanula, with just the same manner and seriousness of face
-with which long ago, medicine bottle in hand, she would give the order:
-“Prize its mouth open, Dick; don’t hurt it. Steady now, I’m going to
-pour.”
-
-Quarter of an hour later she came down triumphant.
-
-“She took it like a lamb. She’s the dearest child! Now I’m off. I have a
-hundred things to do. Will you walk down with me as far as the hotel?”
-
-He accompanied her to the hotel, and neither of them spoke much on the
-way.
-
-“I won’t ask you in,” said Jane, when they reached the door, “because it
-wouldn’t be proper. Now let me see. To-morrow is the garden-party; we
-might do something to-day, you and Campanula and I—might not we?”
-
-“We could run over to Mogi,” he said. “We can get rikshas, have luncheon
-there, and come back to tea at my place; and to-night there’s an affair
-on at the O Suwa temple, we might go there. Shall I call for you at
-twelve or so?”
-
-“Yes,” said Jane, “if you’ll bring a chaperon. You see, now George is
-away I must be awfully ‘propindicular,’ like that person in Uncle
-Remus—the Terrapin—wasn’t it?”
-
-“I’ll bring Campanula—or one of the Mousmés, at a pinch.”
-
-“Campanula chaperoning me!” said Jane with a laugh. “Well, I don’t care.
-It’s only for the sake of Mrs. Grundy.”
-
-“There is no Japanese Mrs. Grundy.”
-
-“No, but there is an English one.”
-
-They parted, and Jane entered the hotel.
-
-She went to her bedroom, got her writing-case out of a portmanteau, and
-began to write. She was writing a letter to George.
-
-The first began:
-
- “Your abominable conduct has been discovered. You have heaped
- shame on me, you have heaped shame on yourself—”
-
-When she got as far as this she found that it was too melodramatic,
-somehow, and the “heaped shames” did not ring true, so she tore it up
-and began again:
-
- “My cousin, Richard Leslie, sent for me this morning in great
- distress. _How_ you could have acted as you did towards that
- sweet child surpasses me. Fortunately for yourself you have run
- away—”
-
-She tore this up too, flew into a temper with herself, and then wrote as
-follows:
-
- “GEORGE,—I’ve heard everything. Dick is furious, but he’s not
- going to do anything, so just stay at Osaka till I come, and
- don’t go bolting off anywhere else. And don’t drink too much
- port, for if you get another attack of gout _I_ won’t nurse
- you.—JANE.
-
- “_P.S._—You ought to be ashamed of yourself.”
-
-She sealed this classical epistle and addressed it. Then she remembered
-that she might just as well have left it unwritten, for there was no
-communication to be had with Osaka till the morrow; and if she posted
-it, it would go by the same boat as herself. So she tore it up.
-
-Then she sat down on the side of her bed and bit a corner of her
-handkerchief.
-
-She was thinking.
-
-To-morrow she would never see Dick again, most probably, after that.
-
-She had never loved Dick, that is to say in the good old _Family Herald_
-way. Their boy and girl relationship had been anything but sentimental.
-
-Recalling the past she could conjure up no tender pictures.
-
-She could see herself clinging to a rod bent like a bow, and shouting to
-Dick: “Now then, chucklehead, gaff him!”
-
-She could see herself tramping after him like a squaw after a chief on
-rabbiting expeditions—dozens of pictures like this, but none of them
-sentimental. She had never thought of marriage till the day she received
-a letter from Dick, asking her to marry him; to which she replied by
-writing half a dozen letters refusing him, which letters she tore up one
-after the other, and then wrote a seventh accepting him, which she
-posted.
-
-Now one of the worst evils in an accepted proposal of marriage is this.
-That directly they hear of it, the girl’s relations, male and female,
-take their implements—nets, ferrets, and so on—and go off rabbiting in
-your past.
-
-Dick had not much of a past as far as size goes, but it was well stocked
-with game for hunters such as these.
-
-So well stocked that old Mr. Deering, a retired London wine merchant who
-had taken a country seat in Scotland, near Glenbruach, put his foot down
-and forbade Jane to have anything more to do with her cousin: an order
-which would have driven her straight into his arms, had not the
-unfortunate Dick, hearing of the inquisition that had been made, come
-North inflamed with rage and whisky.
-
-Men drank harder even in the ‘eighties than they do now, and Scotland
-was never the home of abstinence; yet the scene Dick Leslie created in
-Callander went beyond the bounds of even Scottish convention, and
-utterly destroyed any chance of his marriage with Jane du Telle.
-
-Remembering his description of the affair which he gave to M’Gourley on
-the Nikko road, you will agree with me that he was not a man who viewed
-his own acts—well, as others viewed them.
-
-In this, however, he was by no means singular.
-
-Jane, sitting on her bed and biting the corner of her handkerchief, was
-at the same time looking back over the past. She was a person with
-an infinite capacity for affection, with no capacity at all for a Grand
-Passion. Her life was made up of a bundle of petty interests, and her
-history was the history of a pure and somewhat commonplace soul.
-
-She had loved Dick as a brother in the past, and now that he had come
-into her life again after all those years (even after that terrible
-scene long ago), bringing with him so much from the happy days that were
-for ever gone, her heart went out to him as it had never gone to human
-being before.
-
-And to-morrow she must say good-bye to him, and never, perhaps, see him
-again.
-
-They must part; there was no other thing to be done. She was her own
-mistress, with plenty of money at her command; she could have flown in
-the face of society, and made Dick forever her own. Such a course did
-not even occur to her, for she was a creature bound by the laws of
-convention, almost as rigidly as you or I by the laws of gravity.
-
-Out of very light-heartedness she would do things and say things that
-would have been dangerous symptoms in a woman of a sterner mold; and men
-had often pursued her, led on by this laughing spirit that vanished
-behind a veil, which, being lifted, disclosed an adamant door.
-
-Her great danger lay in her compassionate emotions, and all the womanly
-nature that lay behind them. Her great danger lay in Richard Leslie, for
-he was the only being that had ever aroused them to their full strength.
-
-All at once she cast herself upon the bed, and after the fashion of her
-childhood, buried her face in a pillow, and sobbed, and “grat.”
-
-When she had occupied herself thus for some ten minutes, she rose and
-looked at herself in the glass, and wondered at her own distorted image,
-and how she could possibly be such a fool. But she felt better; the pain
-of parting with Dick was not quite so bad, and she felt kindlier towards
-George.
-
-If his conduct had taken place in England, I doubt if her anger would
-have been so soon assuaged. But they were in Japan—and the Japs, you
-know!—
-
-
-
-
- PART THREE
-
- THE BROKEN LATH
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVI
-
- THE BROKEN LATH
-
-
-A heat wave from the Pacific had stolen over Nagasaki, and the windless
-night was filled with stars and lights.
-
-Stars in the sky, and stars in the harbor, long wavy reflections of
-light from the ships in the anchorage, and ten thousand lanterns
-spangling the mysterious city.
-
-A spangle of colored lamps that spread away to the base of the O Suwa
-hill which they stormed, covering it with a thousand sparkles like
-phosphoric sea-spray, and cresting its summit with a burning zone,
-bright as the snow crest of Fuji.
-
-It was a gala night, and the O Suwa, that galaxy of temples, had called
-the true believers in love and beauty to worship in the name of
-religion.
-
-From the great double temple, which is the crowning glory of the hill,
-Leslie and his companions looked down upon shrine after shrine, broad
-flights of steps stained with the soft amber and pink of lantern light,
-and the colored crowd ever shifting, and murmurous as the sea.
-
-The shadow spaces and the vagueness of night made great distances in
-this dim but splendid picture, till the moon, rising over the hill-top,
-chased the shadows away, paled the lamps, and drew the distances
-together.
-
-Touched by her light the crowd below became sonorous as a musical glass
-touched by the finger; the murmur of voices, the ripple of laughter, the
-sigh of moving silk and the flutter of a thousand fans intensified, rose
-blended and mixed, and dwelt in the air a nimbus of sound. The native
-city beyond grew more distinct, yet more unreal in the moonlight, which
-strengthened the black shadows of the wooded cliffs and converted the
-harbor into a trembling mirror.
-
-“We shall never see anything again so beautiful as that,” said Jane, “so
-mysterious, so strange.”
-
-He did not reply. A small hand had stolen into his; it was Campanula’s.
-She, too, was gazing at the scene around and below them, filled with who
-knows what thoughts.
-
-They were not alone here on the utmost heights; women, gayly dressed,
-were passing into the temple behind them to pray and clap their hands
-before their gods. Women surrounded them, laughing, chattering,
-dispelling quaint perfumes on the air from large incessantly-waving
-fans. From the tea houses behind the temple came the thready music of
-_chamécens_ and sounds of unseen festivity; and from the great park
-beyond, through the hot night, the perfume of azaleas and the odor of
-the dew-wet cryptomeria trees.
-
-“Come,” said Jane, “let us go and take the picture with us before it
-gets dulled. I will never forget this night—there is something in the
-air of this place I have never felt before. No, thanks, I don’t want to
-see the tea houses, I am quite content with this; let us go down right
-through it, and home.”
-
-They descended the broad flights of steps through the murmuring,
-laughing, and perfumed crowd. There was something in the air indeed,
-something as intoxicating as wine, yet far more subtle, subtle as a
-poison or a love philter.
-
-They found rikshas to take them back, and the whole party returned to
-the hotel, where they left Jane.
-
-“To-morrow at noon,” she said to Leslie, as she turned to enter.
-
-“Yes, or even a little later; the train doesn’t start till after one.”
-
-“Good-night!” She waved her hand in the lamplit portico and vanished.
-
-They had no need of lanterns to show the way up the hill-path to the
-House of the Clouds; the path was a tangle of moonlight and lilac-bough
-shadows, a tremulous carpet upon which above them they perceived a
-creeping and colored thing.
-
-It was Cherry-blossom. She, too, had been at the festival at the O Suwa,
-and was now returning, wearied out and walking like a somnambulist, a
-lantern painted with butterflies held before her nodding at the end of a
-bamboo cane.
-
-In the house, when he had fastened the shoji and taken his night lantern
-from Pine-breeze, he turned to where Campanula was standing, a vague
-figure in the dimly-lit room. Yielding to a sudden impulse he picked her
-up from the ground, just as he might have picked up a child, and kissed
-her—kissed her just as he had kissed her when she was a child that day,
-years ago, in the valley by the Nikko road.
-
-That night sleep was impossible. The lights of the O Suwa burned before
-him, the perfume of the azaleas and cryptomerias pursued him, lighting
-always and leading him always to the same image—Jane.
-
-He lay considering what the future would be when Jane was gone; the
-rainy season would soon be upon them, and then the autumn and the winter
-and the spring again after that, and the years to come.
-
-Whilst thus torturing his soul his mind was steadfastly making a
-resolve. A resolve that, come what might, Jane must not go out of his
-life. That to-morrow he must act in such a way as to make her for ever
-his own.
-
-Come what might!
-
-There was no time left for thought, scarcely enough for action.
-
-He had quite ceased to battle with himself, to say this is right or this
-is wrong. Time had cut all these arguments short with the command: “Act
-now, now, in the next twenty-four hours! for after that your chance is
-gone.”
-
-Then he began to sketch out the plan that had been vaguely forming in
-his brain all the evening—a plan that the villainous conduct of George
-du Telle made possible and practicable, and, to Leslie’s mind, almost
-plausible.
-
-As he lay thus, a faint sigh came through the lattice of the window. The
-wind had risen, and was moving the cherry branches and the azaleas.
-
-Then came another sound—the sound of a stick tapping on the garden
-path, as if some blind person were cautiously feeling their way round
-the house.
-
-Up along the garden path, pausing now, now advancing, now dying away,
-now returning, somebody was promenading in front of the house, keeping
-watch and ward like a sentry, somebody whose feet made no sound,
-somebody blind.
-
-A feeling of sick terror came over him—terror not to be borne.
-
-He pulled the mosquito-net aside, and rose, shivering and trembling,
-feeling that he must look out at all hazards—even at the worst.
-
-He pulled the slats aside and looked out. Nobody. The moonlight lay on
-the azaleas and the garden path, but of the prowler there was no sign.
-
-Then he saw the cause of the sound. A lath broken from the house wall
-was hanging with tip touching the path, and tapping upon it as the wind
-shook it.
-
-He returned to bed, and tried to snatch a few hours’ sleep, but the
-sound of the blind man tapping his way continued all night long—now
-faint, now loud, and insistent as the wind rose and fell.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVII
-
- THE “EMPRESS OF JAPAN”
-
-
-If Mr. Kamamura had sent a special messenger to Paradise to pick from
-the aviary there a blue-winged and bright-eyed day for his garden-party,
-he would not have obtained a better one than that which came by chance.
-
-A haze hid its coming. Just after sunrise, looking from Leslie’s garden
-one could scarcely see Nagasaki down below—a toy town, seen through
-faint blue gauze, it seemed. The wind came in puffs, hot from the
-Pacific, shaking the cherry branches.
-
-The great double cherry-blossoms were falling. The close, even moss
-under the trees was white, like ground after a mild snowstorm.
-
-There was something in the atmosphere which loosened the petals this
-morning. At each puff of wind a fresh shower fell, sifting through the
-air to scatter softly on the ground. It was a ghostly sight in the gray
-and silent dawn; the trees seemed despoiling themselves, casting their
-blossoms from them in sorrow or fear.
-
-In the veranda stood the crimson garden umbrella, all damp with dew, and
-four pairs of clogs in a row. The house was deathly still; and one might
-have likened it to a tomb, had it not possessed so much the appearance
-of a bandbox, looped and latticed.
-
-Presently a faint sound might have been heard. A panel slid back, and a
-figure appeared, holding in its hand a lighted paper lantern.
-
-It was Campanula, clad in blue, her feet peeping from beneath her skirt
-like two white mice.
-
-She put out the lantern, and hung it on a hook. Then she put on a pair
-of clogs, and clicked down the steps. She went down the path, through
-the little gate, and vanished from sight; and as her footsteps died
-away, silence returned to the house and the garden.
-
-Then in a few minutes a glorious transformation scene took place. The
-haze turned to a golden mist; it became sundered by rivers of clear air,
-and from it leaped the sun, like Helios from the sea.
-
-Instantly the silence of the orchard became broken by the bickering of
-birds; a cock crowed somewhere in the back premises, and he was answered
-by the cock that lived half-way down the hill at the cooper’s shop—who
-was answered, a minute later, by all the roosters in Nagasaki.
-
-The mist vanished entirely now, the sun began steadily to mount into the
-vault of perfect blue; his slanting rays shot through the cherry
-orchard, striking here the bole of a tree glistening with great tears of
-fragrant gum, and there on the ground besnowed with blossom, even the
-fierce old hills of the landscape garden lost something of their
-ruggedness in the warm and mellow light.
-
-Then the house began to awaken. Pine-breeze appeared on the veranda, and
-after Pine-breeze the other Mousmés all busy, or appearing so, dragging
-out futon to air for a moment in the morning brightness, and lacquer
-screens to be dusted.
-
-“Summer has come in the night,” said Lotus-bud, pointing out the fallen
-cherry-blossoms.
-
-“Yes,” chimed in Pine-breeze, “but spring has gone.”
-
-“I dreamt last night of frost.” This from Cherry-blossom, who was busily
-engaged watching the others at work.
-
-Frost is a bad dream in Japan, and the Mousmés conferred in murmurs as
-to what it might mean.
-
-“I know,” said Lotus-bud suddenly, with an air of conviction.
-
-“What?”
-
-“The riksha man will die.”
-
-“Which?” asked Pine-breeze.
-
-Then the two Mousmés began to “guy” Cherry-blossom as to the number of
-the riksha man destined to die.
-
-“Ichi-ban, Ni-ban, San-ban,”[3] murmured Lotus-bud.
-
- [3] Number one, number two, number three.
-
-“Shi-ban, Go-ban, Roku-ban,” rippled Pine-breeze.
-
-“Hachi-ban!” suddenly cried Lotus-bud, with an air of inspiration.
-
-“Ku-ban!” replied Pine-breeze, with the air of going one better.
-
-“Leslie San!” said Cherry-blossom: and Pine-breeze got up and scuttered
-into the house, where Leslie San was calling for his bath to be heated.
-
-An hour later he appeared on the veranda, fully dressed.
-
-He noticed the promise of heat in the air; he noted the great fall of
-cherry-blossoms that had occurred during the night; he noted the lantern
-that Campanula had hung on the hook.
-
-Then he left the veranda, came down into the garden path, and through
-the gate.
-
-Outside the gate there was a little by-path that led upwards and to the
-left, between a double bank of bushes to an open space like a natural
-platform, from which a splendid view of the harbor and hills could be
-obtained, A great camellia tree forty feet high grew here, alone in its
-splendor, and beneath it he stood gazing at the harbor.
-
-He could hear the faint monosyllabic cry of the brown hawks ever
-circling above the blue water, and the distant sound of a drum from the
-_Rurik_ where she lay at anchor. He could see the sampans shooting
-hither and thither, carrying fruit and what not to the ships in the
-anchorage, and the Junks floating like brown phantoms past the shadow of
-the opposite cliffs.
-
-But his eye was searching for something that was not there.
-
-He looked at his watch, put it back in his pocket with an impatient
-gesture, and continued to gaze.
-
-Suddenly—Hrr-’mph!—Haa-aar!—the blast of a syren came shouting up the
-harbor, and chasing the echoes through the hills. The brown hawks rose
-and circled in wild flight, and past a bend came a great, white,
-double-funneled steamer.
-
-It was the Canadian Pacific boat, the _Empress of Japan_, touching at
-Nagasaki, and due to leave the morning following for Yokohama and
-Vancouver.
-
-He watched her for a moment as she swam to her berth, beautiful and
-graceful as a swan. Then he turned to the house.
-
-To-morrow morning he and Jane would be on board that boat, bound
-northward up the Inland Sea, past Tsu-shima, past Osaka, past Yokohama,
-and away across the blue Pacific to Vancouver.
-
-The whole plan was cut and dried. Jane had given no consent; that did
-not matter. She would consent; he felt the power in himself to _make_
-her consent.
-
-Men of his stamp, lazy, neurotic, yet strong-willed, stung into action
-by love or hate, sometimes assume momentary but terrible command over
-events; they infect with their passion, infuriate with their hate, or
-paralyze with their love.
-
-He entered the house, ordered breakfast, and enquired for Campanula.
-
-She had gone down at dawn, said Pine-breeze, to see O Toku San, the poor
-girl who was so ill, and was now dying. He was glad Campanula was out,
-and determined if possible to get his preparations over before her
-return. Jane and he would return from Mr. Kamamura’s about six that
-evening. It would be time enough then to tell Campanula of his journey.
-
-As he breakfasted, he completed that part of his plans which had
-reference to Campanula.
-
-She would be safe and well looked after by M’Gourley, till—he came
-back. He told himself he would come back some day; perhaps in six months
-or so he would come back.
-
-And why should he worry about leaving Campanula for a time? He had often
-gone away before, once as far as London; he had always come back.
-
-Why should Campanula mind his going away again?
-
-Why, indeed!
-
-He tried to forget how her little hand had stolen into his on the
-evening before as if for protection. How, when he had kissed her, she
-had suddenly flung aside her timid reserve, and with her arms around his
-neck, but without a word, had told him what only a woman can tell
-without speech.
-
-Perhaps it was because he loved her far more than he knew, that his mind
-was filled with gloom and apprehension.
-
-But it was the time for action, not for thought; only a few hours lay
-before him in which to prepare for this journey—the journey from which
-he would return quite soon perhaps.
-
-He would leave the house just as it was to Campanula and the Mousmés
-till he came back and made other arrangements. M’Gourley, as his agent,
-would supply them with all the money needful just as he had done before.
-
-Then he called Pine-breeze and told her to get his portmanteau up to his
-room, as he was going on a journey.
-
-He packed hurriedly, whilst Lotus-bud handed him things. He wanted to
-get the packing over and done with.
-
-The strong sunlight reflected from the matting lit up the room with a
-golden glow. Pine-breeze in the kitchen below was singing a song about a
-lilac bough—the same song he had heard in the orchard that day when
-Campanula had cried: “Hist, some one at the gate!”
-
-He leaned back sitting on his heels to listen. He heard the end of the
-song now. He did not hear it that day, for Jane, knocking at the
-veranda, had cut it short.
-
-This was the gist of the last verse:
-
-
- “_The bee comes no more
- When the lilac’s white blossom is dead_.”
-
-Then he went on with his packing at a furious rate, stuffing in shirts,
-collars, handkerchiefs, his mind wandering over all sorts of subjects.
-
-His packing finished, he went to the window, took out his pocketbook,
-and examined its contents. Three hundred and ten pounds, half in
-circular notes, half in notes of the Bank of England.
-
-Then he took out a check-book and a stylograph pen, and wrote a check
-for five hundred, payable to himself.
-
-Ten minutes later he was in a riksha making for the Bund, where he
-stopped at Holme & Ringers, the shipping agents, bought two first-class
-tickets for Vancouver, and changed his check, receiving part in cash,
-and part in a check upon the National Specie Bank of Yokohama.
-
-It was now eleven o’clock, and he had practically completed his
-preparations. He had now to see Mac, and he turned his steps to the
-office, which was only a stone’s throw from the shipping agents. Mac was
-writing letters.
-
-“Morning,” said he, glancing up, and seeming surprised to see his
-partner at that hour.
-
-“What’s agate?”
-
-“I am,” said Leslie, trying to assume a jovial manner. “I’m off for a
-holiday, and I want you to look after things same as you’ve done
-before.”
-
-“This is sudden,” said Mac, going on with his correspondence without
-looking up.
-
-“Oh, it’s never too sudden for a holiday. And see here, I’d better leave
-you some ready cash: here’s a check for two fifty. I want you to look
-after the bairn whilst I’m away.”
-
-“Keep the money,” said Mac, “and pay me—when y’ come back. Ay, ay,
-it’ll be soon enough then—soon enough then.”
-
-“I’d sooner leave you the money.”
-
-“Weel, put it in that drawer.”
-
-“Well, you _are_ a bear this morning. See here, I’ve put it in the
-drawer, but I’ll see you again before I go: I’m not off till to-morrow.”
-
-“Imphim!” replied the Dour One, and Leslie went off.
-
-Your true Scot has a very nasty habit of expressing his bad opinion of a
-man. He does it in a round-about way, using hints and innuendoes,
-instead of coming to the matter by a direct route.
-
-What Mac suspected or what he knew, Leslie could not tell; judging from
-his manner, however, he knew or suspected a lot.
-
-However, he had no time to trouble about Mac. He had one thing more to
-do before meeting Jane, Mr. Initogo the landlord had to be interviewed,
-and the rent paid.
-
-There was a fair of a sort on in the street that formed the shortest cut
-to Mr. Initogo’s. It was filled with a many-colored crowd, flags were
-fluttering, awnings flapping in the wind; every shop had some extra
-advertisement to attract customers, and during the past night, like
-mushrooms, extra booths had sprung into being.
-
-A roaring trade was going forward; here, all kinds of fruit, there all
-kinds of fish, some with bunches of violets in their mouths; cakes
-reposing on branches of cherry or myrtle; cakes in the form of donkeys
-and monkeys and goats; cakes shaped like spinning-tops; cakes in the
-shape of suns, moons and stars; candied beans, beans mixed with comfits,
-kites, masks, and paper dragons. Paper fish shaped like carp for the
-Little-boys’ Festival of the 5th of May.
-
-The noise and bustle somehow pleased Leslie, and soothed him; and he
-drifted along with the chattering stream of men, women, Mousmés, little
-boys and mere babies. Some of the children had long, curved trumpets of
-glass, from which they blew the most horrible of hobgoblin sounds. Here
-a man was frying pancakes, wrapping them in rice paper, and flinging
-them to unseen customers in the crowd, who flung him back the money.
-Here a person in spectacles, who looked like a professor of chemistry
-gone mad, was blowing from a glass-blower’s tube dragons and fish in
-sugar-candy. Apothecaries, with great golden eyes painted on their
-booths, were selling little rice paper charms, one to be taken dissolved
-in water for the stomach-ache, two for lumbago, three for migraine. Here
-stood a man who would pull your teeth out with his fingers, three sen a
-tooth.
-
-The cheap curio dealers were in evidence with their wares cheap and bad;
-those quaint perambulating curio dealers, who, as a rule, only start
-business at sundown, and whose stock-in-trade include old top hats, old
-boots, old—anything—European. “Caw—caw—caw!” You look up, and see a
-great kite straining at its strings.
-
-And then the umbrellas! Leslie had a good view of them, for he was head
-and shoulders taller than any one in the crowd. Red, pink, gray,
-gray-green, pink-and-white, blossom-bestrewn, stork-bestrewn, a shifting
-mass of color reflecting the sunlight.
-
-But though he saw all this, and though the noise and bustle and laughter
-and general atmosphere of festivity fell in with his humor, his thoughts
-were far away at Osaka; he was wondering what George du Telle was doing,
-and what George du Telle would say in a day or so, and how he would
-look. He had never hated George du Telle really till now that he had
-determined to rob him of his wife.
-
-Now that he was about to commit, or attempt to commit, a vile and
-abominable act against George du Telle, that person seemed to him the
-acme of all things vile and abominable.
-
-Suddenly, through an opening in the crowd, Leslie caught a glimpse of a
-face, the face of a blind man, stolid, stony, with a flattened nose and
-wearing an indescribable expression of eld, weariness, and misfortune.
-
-It was only a momentary glimpse, but revealed just for a moment, and
-contrasted with the shifting colored mass around him, with the noise and
-laughter, the sunlight and the movement of life, it was like a vision of
-death.
-
-Leslie stood for a moment startled and chilled; the joyous exaltation in
-his mind a moment ago had vanished: it was as if a cloud had come
-between him and the sun.
-
-Why were these things always occurring to fret his soul and trouble his
-imagination? This blind man was nothing but an ordinary blind man of
-Japan such as one might see any day. The broken lath that had troubled
-him all night was but a broken lath; the song of the mushi that had
-started that infernal sound in his head was but the sound of an insect
-buzzing; the azalea that had caused that frightful dream was but a
-flower.
-
-These slight things, he told himself, acting on a brain made
-over-sensitive by opium, were not warnings, but simple causes of complex
-effects. And he passed on his way, cursing himself for a fool, till he
-reached the shop of Mr. Initogo.
-
-That gentleman, for a wonder, was not making tea, but the sight of
-Leslie San instantly inspired the desire for his favorite beverage,
-caused him to clap his hands, and the tea-tray to appear in the hands of
-his wife almost instantly upon the sound.
-
-He received his rent, which he put away with an appearance of
-indifference, expressed sorrow on hearing that Leslie was going away for
-even a short time, but joy at the thought that the journey might benefit
-his honorable health.
-
-He was really fond of Leslie, this old Japanese gentleman; but the worst
-of the flowery Japanese language is that it remains always, so to speak,
-at boiling point, and towards friend or perfect stranger is the same.
-You can’t cool it, and you can’t warm it.
-
-Whilst they were talking Kiku came in; her eyes were red and she had a
-snuffle in her voice.
-
-She had been, it seems, to see the poor girl who was dying, O Toku San;
-Campanula was with her.
-
-“Ah, yes,” said Mr. Initogo, as his daughter retired upstairs. “Most
-sad, poor girl. A man whom she loved left her, and she is dying of it,
-just as a flower dies from want of water.”
-
-Leslie looked at his watch: it was after twelve. He hastened from the
-shop of Mr. Initogo, and securing a riksha drove to the Nagasaki Hotel
-on the Bund.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVIII
-
- M’GOURLEY’S LOVE AFFAIR
-
-
-At about three o’clock on that eventful day M’Gourley met one of Holme &
-Ringer’s clerks in the street.
-
-“So your partner’s off for a holiday,” said the clerk.
-
-“So he tells me,” replied Mac.
-
-“He’s going pretty far afield,” went on the clerk; “Vancouver isn’t—”
-
-“Where did you say?” cut in M’Gourley.
-
-“Well, he’s bought two tickets for Vancouver this morning, one for his
-cousin and one for himself. She is married, and they are going to pick
-her husband up at Yokohama,” he went on, smiling slightly.
-
-“Vancouver!” said Mac. He stood for a moment in astonishment, then
-hailing a passing riksha he jumped into it, and told the driver to take
-him to the House of the Clouds.
-
-Campanula had just returned, she was in the garden; and when she heard
-his step coming up the hill path she came to the gate to meet him.
-
-She greeted him with a smile, but there was something about her that
-struck M’Gourley strangely.
-
-She had a far-away look in her face, and she wore an abstracted air.
-Away from the world her mind seemed wandering in some far, strange
-country, whilst her little body walked beside him, and her lips answered
-his questions, and told him things.
-
-“O Toku San is dead,” said she; “I have just left her.” She spoke
-gravely, but without any sorrow in her voice; one might even have
-imagined that she was referring to some good fortune that had fallen on
-O Toku San; and perhaps, indeed, she was.
-
-“Ay! puir thing, is she?” said Mac, whose mind was also astray.
-
-He asked had Leslie returned, and Campanula told him that he had gone to
-a garden-party at Omura, and would not return till evening.
-
-“He is going away,” finished Campanula, pausing on the veranda steps and
-unlatching the strap of her sandal.
-
-“Oh! so he’s told you?” said Mac.
-
-Campanula said nothing; possibly she did not hear the question, so
-absorbed was she by her own ideas and thoughts. Suddenly she said,
-turning to Mac, who was leaning his shoulder against the veranda post
-and feeling in his pocket for his tobacco-pouch:
-
-“I saw the Blind One to-day as I was leaving O Toku San’s. I did not
-speak to him; he spoke to me. He said the master of the house on the
-heights is going on a journey from whence he will not return. Then he
-went away. A wind from the hill blew my kimono apart and a chill came to
-my breast. I do not know who the Blind One is—perhaps he is Death.”
-
-M’Gourley, as she spoke, noticed that she had refolded her kimono from
-right to left instead of from left to right.
-
-Now in Japan, the only people who wear their kimonos folded from right
-to left are the dead.
-
-He felt sick and shivery at the words she had just spoken, and he could
-not reply to them or ask questions; he was filled with a horror of the
-subject, a dead, blind terror of it. He looked down and said gruffly:
-
-“What way is that you’ve folded your kimono? Just run into the house and
-put it right. I’ll bide here on the verandy and smoke my pipe.”
-
-She vanished into the house, and Mac sat down, but he did not light his
-pipe. What could be the meaning of all this? Surely he was dead, and
-laid long ago in the green woods of Nikko—could it be possible that the
-dead return?
-
-Why was it that she alone could see him, hear him, and speak to him?
-
-His eye caught the crimson azaleas as they bloomed in their beauty and
-splendor, and the Nikko road rose before him, the mysterious valley,
-peopled by the crimson flowers, the cypress trees, the far-off country,
-and the distant sea hills beyond Tanagura.
-
-He heard Leslie’s voice as it denied the existence of God, and declared
-that if he had ever been given a creature that loved him, he would have
-cared for and loved it.
-
-Then he felt something touch his shoulder, and, turning with a start,
-found it was Campanula.
-
-“Come,” said she, in the manner of a person who would say, “I wish to
-show you something.”
-
-He rose and followed her into the house. She led the way upstairs, and
-down the narrow passage to Leslie’s room.
-
-At the door she paused and pointed to an object on the floor. It was a
-portmanteau packed and strapped.
-
-They both looked at it without saying a word: a silence, that spoke of
-the deep, unconscious understanding between them.
-
-“Come,” said Mac in his turn, and taking her by the hand he led her
-downstairs.
-
-Had the portmanteau been a coffin, containing some being beloved by
-Campanula, he could not have spoken more gently, or led her away from it
-more tenderly.
-
-Downstairs the old, rough, gruff M’Gourley seemed very much perturbed.
-
-Could he have found Leslie alone at that moment, a very regrettable
-scene might have ensued.
-
-And yet at the bottom of all his anger and perturbation lay a golden
-gleam. If Leslie went off like this, Campanula would be all his (Mac’s)
-own.
-
-He had no idea of marrying her, or anything of that sort; but he had an
-immense idea of possessing her all for himself.
-
-He had, proposed to buy a half share in her at Nikko, and he would have
-made a bad bargain, for during the last five years he had possessed a
-full half share without paying a cent, unless we count the pounds and
-pounds expended on dolls, sweets, and so forth.
-
-But this was not like having her all to himself: a creature to feed and
-clothe, to buy hairpins for and tabis, fans and sweets; to listen to of
-an evening, as her fingers strayed over the strings of a _chamécen_, or
-her tongue told fabulous tales of folk clad in fur or feathers.
-
-All at once, as he paced the room, he turned to her, literally picked
-her up, hugged her, gave her a kiss, and said: “He’ll come back to you.
-Dinna greet; I canna stand it. I’ll be back and see you the morrow morn
-before he goes.”
-
-He hurried out of the house, and went raging down the hill.
-
-To be in anger with one whom one loves works, indeed, like madness in
-the blood.
-
-Mac, as he plunged down the hill, was lashing himself into a fury
-against Leslie. He turned into a saki shop and drank half a pint of that
-seemingly innocuous liquor; then he went to the office, took a whisky
-bottle from a cupboard, and poured himself out a liberal peg.
-
-He was an abstemious man as a rule, but once he took the bit between his
-teeth nothing on God’s earth except death would stop him, till the next
-morning’s headache came.
-
-At five he recognized that he was hopelessly embarked on a grand drunk,
-and determined to take a riksha over to Mogi; there complete the
-business, and return in time next morning to see Leslie before he
-started.
-
-Just before starting from the hotel a waiter brought him out a cablegram
-from Shanghai, which had come round from the office. It was relative to
-a bank disaster that had occurred in India. He read it, stuffed it into
-his pocket, and ordered the Djin to proceed.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIX
-
- THE GARDEN-PARTY
-
-
-Within an hour of the great city of Nagasaki, in the midst of a park
-that was at the same time half a garden, lay the country residence of
-Mr. Kamamura; once a man who carried two swords, with the longer of
-which he would have beheaded you for two words and have done it with
-neatness and despatch, now a gentleman in a frock-coat and tall hat,
-wearing gold-rimmed glasses and a smile.
-
-The long, low house, white as snow and surrounded by a narrow veranda,
-faced west, and was surrounded by a garden recalling the gardens of Dai
-Nichi Do: a garden filled with the music of fountains and the poetry of
-birds.
-
-Alas! on the day of his garden-party Mr. Kamamura, seized with the
-spirit of modernity and the savagery of civilization, not content with
-the music of heaven, and prompted, no doubt, by the devil, had hired a
-brass band and placed it in a little kiosk, with orders to bray Strauss
-in the face of Nature from three o’clock till dusk.
-
-There were many guests, and the gardens soon presented an animated
-appearance. Many of the ladles had retained the national dress, and
-marvelous were the fabrics to be seen in the form of the obi or flowing
-loose in the graceful kimono.
-
-Some of the guests surrounded a pair of jugglers, two terrible men
-dressed in red, who fenced with and transfixed one another with long
-swords, swallowed fire, and belched it like dragons.
-
-In another corner of the grounds fireworks were whizzing and cracking,
-filling the clear air above with a thin blue haze through which, just as
-Jane and Leslie entered the grounds, there rose a wonderful fire balloon
-made of colored paper and fashioned in the form of a turkey cock.
-
-“It’s like a party in the lunatic asylum,” whispered Jane, as they
-threaded the maze of guests in search of their host and hostess. “And,
-Dick, you _do_ look perfectly awful in that panama amongst all these men
-in tall hats—I mean they look awful beside you, but they are _de
-rigueur_; and it’s better to be _de rigueur_ and look frightful, than to
-be not _de rigueur_ and look nice. How d’y’ do?” and Jane extended her
-arm, pump-handle fashion, to the little gentleman with the sallow face
-to whom Leslie was introducing her.
-
-“Much pleasure, much pleasure,” said Mr. Kamamura, whose English was
-mixed and limited, and who, like Kiku San, had not completely mastered
-the letter “l.” “Will the honorable rady so make equal health Nagysaki
-(the proper way to pronounce Nagasaki) you stay? So good. Over there
-Mrs. Kamamura; you make known;” and Mr. Kamamura presenting his arm Jane
-was led away through the crowd like some tall and graceful frigate
-threading a maze of painted cock-boats.
-
-Leslie, left to himself, turned with a gloomy expression of countenance
-to where the jugglers were dislocating each other’s necks. He did not
-see them; he was looking out of the side of his eyes at Jane.
-
-She had been led across one of the willow-pattern bridges, and he could
-see her now standing at one of the kiosks, a tea-cup in her hand. She
-was talking to Mr. Kamamura and a little lady in European dress—Mrs.
-Kamamura, probably.
-
-What could they be talking about? Conversation, probably, sufficient to
-dislocate the gravity of a Socrates.
-
-He turned his head impatiently and tried to take an interest in the
-jugglers, without success. There was something deeply irritating about
-the scene of frivolity in which Fate had staged the last scenes of the
-most important act in his life.
-
-The _Empress of Japan_ sailed at eight on the morrow morning, and as yet
-he had made no movement as regards Jane. All this trifling was but a bad
-prelude to those words so soon to be spoken.
-
-He little knew that Tragedy stood at his elbow in the form of James
-Anderson, manager to M’Cormick, the great silk dealers on the Bund.
-
-“Why, Leslie, man! I thought I knew the nape of your neck. How are you?”
-
-“Hullo, Anderson!” said Leslie, returning the other’s hand-grip. “What
-are you doing here?”
-
-“I’m just looking round,” said Anderson. “I’m just looking round, and
-you’ll admit it’s worth the turning of one’s head. I shouldn’t mind
-exchanging places with Kamamura. It’s not a bad life, his, by a long
-penny. This affair will bang a hole through a good pile of ten pun
-notes. They tell me those balloons made like dicky-birds cost—I forget
-now, but it’s a good pile of dollars a-piece, for every feather is
-painted correct, and that’s just like the Japs—make a pretty thing, and
-then stick it away in some hidey-hole where no one can see it, or burn
-it—What’s agate now?”
-
-The crowd was in motion, flooding towards a part of the grounds where a
-little stage had been erected, backed and half surrounded by cypress
-trees. On the stage, against the dark-green background, could be seen
-the graceful figure of a girl.
-
-She was dancing. It was a dance that at first insipid, became after a
-few moments fascinating, lulling, exquisite to watch as the movements of
-a flower blown by the wind.
-
-They drew close and stood to look. The girl was dressed in amber and
-scarlet, with a scarlet flower in the night of her hair—a _bijou rose
-et noir_, recalling Baudelaire’s Lola de Vallence.
-
-Her supple body seemed inspired by the mysterious music we hear
-wandering through the land of spring, and expressing itself in the
-voices of the wind and the birds and the streams.
-
-She seemed to have learned her art in the academy where the daffodils
-are taught to dance and the bluebells to make their bow.
-
-“It’s the Geisha Kamamura has hired—paid her something like two hundred
-to dance that fan-dance, or whatever they call it. She was a Tokyo girl,
-and had left the business to get married, but she couldn’t withstand the
-two hundred; the best Geisha in Japan, they say. What’s this her name? O
-something San. Hoots! but my memory is gone fishing to-day. Listen!
-she’s talking.”
-
-The dance had ceased, and the girl, in the silence that followed the
-tinkling of the three accompanying _chamécens_, had commenced one of
-those poetical recitals in favor with an intellectual Japanese audience.
-
-Her recitation was sad; it bemoaned the thing we call change. The
-cherry-blossom is fair, ran this untranslatable poem, but it must die
-and give place to the lotus.
-
-“I cannot understand this depression in trade,” murmured the muted voice
-of Anderson, as he stood beside Leslie. “It’s been spreading and
-spreading, and there’s nothing it hasn’t spread into.”
-
-And the lotus parts with its petals to give place to the chrysanthemum,
-the Royal chrysanthemum.
-
-“We’ve had a good year till now, ourselves, but hech! man, there’s a
-matter of fifteen thousand gone over the breaking of the Bombay and
-Benares bank—clean gone, never to come back—and that takes the sugar
-off the cake—ay, the devil himself won’t whistle it home again.”
-
-And the gray winter sky and the snowflakes, like ghosts of flowers,
-finished the poem of the Geisha, whilst Leslie stood transfixed for a
-second, frozen by the news he had just heard, and unable to turn. He
-turned round full on Anderson.
-
-“The breaking of _what_?”
-
-“The Bombay and Benares. Have you not heard the news? It came by cable
-to-day at one o’clock. Good God! man, you hadn’t much money in it, had
-you?”
-
-“Everything—everything,” said Leslie in a stammering voice. “I’m
-smashed.”
-
-He linked his arm in Anderson’s, and dragged him along hurriedly. He
-wanted to go, nowhere in particular, but just get away from the spot
-where Anderson had sentenced his future to death.
-
-“Man, I’m sorry! Man, I’m sorry!” said his companion. “I should not have
-told you so sudden, but how was I to know?”
-
-“Smashed—smashed—smashed!” said the other, talking as a man talks in
-his sleep.
-
-He held Anderson by the arm as he spoke. All around spread the
-many-colored crowd; fans were fluttering, umbrellas bobbing, tongues
-chattering, soft women’s voices inlaid like music of gold on the silvery
-music of the fountains and cascades.
-
-“Anderson, man, are you sure they’ve broken—sure?”
-
-“Ay, ay, sure. Better to tell you straight. Sure as my name’s James
-Anderson.”
-
-Boom! Boom! Boom! the band broke into a march by Gungl, and Leslie,
-releasing Anderson, ran after a figure in the crowd some twenty paces
-distant.
-
-“Jane! I must speak to you at once.”
-
-Jane looked up from the little Japanese gentleman who was escorting her,
-saw the distress in her countryman’s face, and dismissed Asia with a
-bow.
-
-“I have just had frightful news. Come with me to some quiet place till I
-tell you about it. Anywhere. No matter where. See! there are no people
-across that bridge where the trees are; let us go there.”
-
-Jane spoke not a word, but he saw that she was very pale and trembling.
-That weakness of Jane’s gave him a strange sensation. It said something
-that her lips had never uttered.
-
-They passed over the little bridge. They passed over another bridge;
-there were no people here, only trees; they went no further.
-
-They were in a small forest. The garden was lost to sight; only the
-music of the band, muted by distance, told of the festivity so near, yet
-apparently so far away.
-
-The trunk of a felled tree lay in the path; they sat down upon it by
-common consent. Leslie took out his watch, and looked at it attentively.
-Then, still holding it open in his hand, he spoke.
-
-“I want you to listen to me for five minutes—only five minutes; you can
-hold the watch, and measure the time yourself. Jane, when a man is going
-to be hanged, they will give him a glass of brandy to help him along to
-the drop. Will you do the same by me—give me five minutes’ clear
-speech, and let me say just what I please without interruption; will
-you?”
-
-“Yes,” said Jane, and she shivered as she spoke the word. She had
-maintained a strange silence; impulsive as she was, one might have
-expected her to implore him to tell her the worst, and have it over.
-Perhaps she understood dimly that Leslie’s disaster was personal to
-herself, a cataclysm the effect of which would reach her future as well
-as his.
-
-“You remember,” he said, after a moment’s pause, “how I asked you to
-marry me long ago, and everything that happened after? Well, when I
-think of all that, it seems to me that I must have passed through life
-in a state of insanity, and only awakened to consciousness now. Jane, I
-am feeling now as a man must feel when he wakes in hell, and
-remembers—No matter, it is all done with now; and even if you loved me
-as well as I love you, it’s all over and done with and useless now.”
-
-He leaned forward with his face in his hands. Jane did not speak; the
-music of the band had ceased, and the only sound to be heard was the
-weary sighing of the warm wind in the pine-tops.
-
-“I’m broken utterly, I have just heard the news. Don’t think I brought
-you here to listen to me whining about my misfortunes. I brought you
-here to tell you I love you. I meant to have carried you off in the
-steamer that sails to-morrow morning for the north-west. With the money
-I had yesterday, I would have supported you, I would have torn you out
-of society, and made you love me. I would have made you a Paradise. Yes,
-by the living God, a Paradise, or there’s no such thing as love. But now
-I’m a beggar, and I love you too well to drag you into my ruin, and it’s
-Fate, Fate, Fate that has done it all, and cursed be its name!”
-
-Again silence, broken only by a faint, dreary sound. Jane was weeping.
-
-“Don’t, for the love of God!” cried Leslie. “Don’t cry, or you’ll make
-me cry too. Oh, miserable life! why was I ever born into it?” And he
-moved his hands in the air, as blind Samson might have done amidst the
-pillars of the temple.
-
-A bird piped three times in the recesses of the wood, three flute-like
-notes sweet as the notes of a bell-bird. They were answered by its mate
-in the branches above.
-
-Leslie put his hands to his ears, as if to shut out the happy sounds.
-
-Jane’s tears had ceased, but she did not speak, she did not breathe;
-only a deep sigh occasionally escaped from her.
-
-“And now, we can only say good-bye. Let us part here for ever. We will
-meet again in—Heaven,” said Leslie, with a horrible shuddering laugh.
-
-He stretched out his hand and took hers. She let him have it without
-seeming to know that he had taken it.
-
-She was murmuring his name in a whisper, staring at him and through him,
-and as if her gaze was fixed on some terrible catastrophe beyond.
-
-“Dick! Dick! Dick!” All poetry could not express the helpless, hopeless
-sorrow she put into those three little whispered words.
-
-Suddenly, filtering through the wood, came a sound, a voice, a spirit,
-that unrolled around them a panorama of loch, moor, and sky, hills
-purple with heather, lakes dark with shadow. “Auld Lang Syne.”
-
-The band was playing it, villainously enough, but the distance smoothed
-away the defects.
-
-It broke Jane down. She leaned against his shoulder and sobbed like a
-child, and then, with both hands upstretched, she drew his face down to
-hers and murmured—no matter what.
-
-Then all at once—heedless of ruin, forgetting all things, carried away
-on the dumb tide of passion, the wave that had retreated before
-disaster, only to come shoreward again resistless and gigantic—all at
-once, and without a word, he took her in his arms.
-
-It was the eloquence of passion and despair, the speech without tongue
-of a soul tormented and _in extremis_.
-
-It broke Jane down utterly. Hopeless, haggard, and pale as a person in
-the midst of some terrible disaster, she clung to him, whispering in his
-ear words repeated over and over again, with that reiteration which
-forms the rhetoric of the dying and the lost.
-
-She had cast everything aside, the world, her position in society, her
-husband, her wealth. Passion and pity, that strange combination, had for
-the moment blinded her eyes to everything but the man beside her—but
-did she love him? Fate had not yet disclosed the answer to that old
-fatal question, that sphinx-like question whose answer forms the plot of
-each man’s story.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXX
-
- THE FALSE REPORT
-
-
-Mr. Kamamura never again saw his two tall English guests.
-
-As a matter of fact, they sought for and found a means of leaving his
-garden by a back way that brought them to a road which in its turn
-brought them to the station.
-
-And the native gentlefolk in the train, which brought them back to
-Nagasaki by six o’clock, could not imagine what great grief it was that
-made the tall English lady so pallid, and so like the very picture of
-woe.
-
-At the Nagasaki station Leslie helped his companion into a riksha.
-
-“Don’t come back with me to the hotel,” she murmured; “I will drive
-there alone. I want to be alone, quite alone for a while. All our
-arrangements are made, and there is nothing more to be said. God help
-me!—God help us both! Good-bye, Dick, for the present.”
-
-He watched her drive off. Then he took a riksha himself, and ordered the
-man to take him to the House of the Clouds.
-
-Everything was arranged. Jane was to be his for ever. But there was no
-triumph in the thought. The battle had been won by his own weakness, not
-by his strength. Jane’s compassion for him had betrayed her.
-
-They were to sail to-morrow by the _Empress of Japan_. He was to stay
-the night at the hotel, for he could not possibly remain the night at
-the House of the Clouds having once bidden good-bye to Campanula.
-
-Beyond Vancouver lay the scheme traced out by him, accepted by Jane.
-They were to buy a farm in the Canadian North-west, and live there for
-ever happily. He would not touch a penny of her money; he had jewelry
-worth at least four hundred pounds, which would be amply sufficient to
-start on. His share in M’Gourley’s business was to be left for
-Campanula.
-
-It is true he knew little about farming, but—love can do anything.
-
-Viewed from a natural standpoint the whole arrangement was not only
-natural but praiseworthy. That a woman, fond of a natural life in the
-open air, should leave a creature like George du Telle, and cast herself
-into the arms of a man like Leslie. What could be more in keeping with
-the grand aim of Nature, the propagation of the fit in body?
-
-Viewed from a social standpoint the whole arrangement was wickedly
-absurd. And from a moral standpoint simply wicked.
-
-Nature stood decidedly on Leslie’s side; God (according to the
-theologians) and society stood against him.
-
-These problems are occurring every day and every minute of the day,
-perplexing the thinker and confounding his belief, unless he looks upon
-the world as a higher thing than a breeding ground for animals. And it
-is generally by their side issues they are to be solved, and the side
-issue in Leslie’s case was Campanula.
-
-He was nearing Danjuro’s shop when he saw a riksha with a disguised
-figure in it.
-
-It was Mac, and Mac was disguised with whisky.
-
-He was flushed, and his hat was on the back of his head, and he was so
-obviously fuddled that the gentle Japanese who passed smiled and passed
-on, without looking back.
-
-“Stop!” cried Leslie to his man, then jumping out he ran to M’Gourley’s
-riksha, which had also stopped.
-
-“Have you heard the news?”
-
-“News?” said Mac. “News—what news?”
-
-“The Bombay and Benares bank is broken.”
-
-“It is not,” replied the other, fumbling in his pocket. “Na, na—false
-report. Bombay and Ta-Lien, you mean.” Then, drawing a paper from his
-pocket, and with ferocity: “Canna ye read?”
-
-Leslie took the paper; it was a cablegram from Shanghai.
-
- “False report. Bombay and Ta-Lien suspended. Bombay and Benares
- safe.
-
- JARDINE MATHESON.”
-
-“Good Heavens!” said Leslie. “When did you get this?”
-
-“Hoor ago. Drive on, you—wheel me awa’.”
-
-“Where are you going?”
-
-“Mogi—to forget I was ever such a fule as to go into partnership with a
-man like—_wheel me awa’_!”
-
-“Steady on, steady on,” said Leslie.
-
-“I’ll be back the morrow morn and see y’ before you’re awa’ to
-Vancouver.” Then, leaning back as the riksha started: “I may be a fule,
-but I’m not a blind fule, and I’m not a—(_hic!_).”
-
-The riksha joggled over a stone and he collapsed like a shut-down opera
-hat.
-
-Leslie continued his way.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXI
-
- FAREWELL
-
-
-It was seven o’clock; the birds were taking their nests in the cherry
-orchard with one final burst of chattering. The sky in the west,
-wave-green melting into vaguest blue, held one solitary cloud floating
-like a rose-leaf beneath the evening star. Leslie stood at his gate,
-looking for the last time at the twilight stealing over Nagasaki. He had
-just arrived.
-
-M’Gourley’s words were still ringing in his ears, and his mind was in a
-turmoil.
-
-He was in exactly the position of the man who has cheated unwittingly at
-cards, who has found out his mistake, and who has still time to save his
-honor.
-
-If the Bombay and Benares bank was safe, it was his plain duty to go at
-once to Jane du Telle and inform her of the fact. She was laboring under
-the impression that he was a ruined man. Half of her sympathy, the whole
-of the present situation, had arisen from that misconception. To leave
-her under this delusion would amount to fraud—the meanest of all
-frauds.
-
-He was feeling this keenly, but unfortunately his mind, instead of
-grappling with the situation, and forcing his body to act, was engaged
-in cursing Fate, and the tangled net in which he found himself taken.
-
-Was it his fault that the false news had come just at the psychological
-moment, the news that had actually thrown Jane into his arms? He kept
-asking himself this, as he gazed across the dusk-eyed harbor to the
-hills now becoming dimmed by the twilight.
-
-This last touch of Fate would, if he accepted it without resistance, rob
-him of the last remnants of honor and all self-respect.
-
-His hand was upon the stakes, he had a moment to decide whether to take
-them or leave them: to be a thief or an honest man.
-
-Suddenly, as if silence had placed her finger upon their throats, the
-birds in the orchard ceased their chatter.
-
-The warm day dying seemed to have called all the spirits of beauty from
-air and earth and sea, to stain the skies above its death-bed with the
-tints of the ocean and the dawn. Over the tomb of light Color, Light’s
-firstborn child hovered like some exquisite ephemera whose wings change
-from beauty to beauty before dissolving for ever in darkness and death.
-
-The silence that had come over the orchard was broken occasionally by
-little outbursts of squabbling from over-full nests, sounds like the
-flirting of a fan amongst the leaves, chirrupings that told of
-differences made up. Then final and complete silence that would last
-till night woke the owls.
-
-Leslie at the gate suddenly made a gesture as if he were flinging
-something away, turned on his heel, and came towards the house.
-
-He entered just as Cherry-blossom, with a white flower in her hair, her
-amber sleeves fallen back and exposing her fore-arms, her body stretched
-to its fullest height on the tips of her tabis, was in the act of
-lighting the big hall-lamp. She looked like a little cat stretching
-herself.
-
-A pang went through his heart. He would never see Cherry-blossom light
-the big hall-lamp again, never again see Pine-breeze bring in the
-tea-cups, nor Lotus-bud carrying off Sweetbriar San to his box in the
-kitchen.
-
-You cannot possibly live in Japan without loving your maid-servants. I
-mean by love that sort of passion which was inspired in Matthew Prior by
-the lady of fashion aged five.
-
-It was a feature of the House of the Clouds that sometimes on the lower
-floor you would find a hall with two rooms on either side of it, and
-sometimes two rooms and no hall, and sometimes, in very hot weather, one
-huge room. The sliding paper partitions made this possible; nay, very
-easy, for Mr. Initogo had improved upon the ordinary Japanese method,
-being of an inventive turn of mind.
-
-He looked into the room on the right of the hall. A _chamécen_ lay on
-the floor, an hibachi showed a crimson spark, and a dwarf maple in a pot
-of Arita ware displayed its pretty form vaguely in the twilight.
-
-He looked into the room on the left: no one.
-
-Where was Campanula? She must have returned by this, surely. Perhaps she
-was upstairs.
-
-He went up, making little noise in his stocking-feet. At the door of his
-room he peeped in.
-
-There was Campanula. Oh, desolate sight! She was sitting on his big
-portmanteau all alone in the dusk. Her head was bent.
-
-She looked so forlorn and so small, and the sash of her obi so huge in
-comparison with the wearer, that he could not but recall how she sat
-that morning in the Tea House of the Tortoise. That morning, when she
-had likened herself to a lump of mud; the morning he had proposed to
-adopt her, and care for her, and make her a chattel of his own.
-
-A moment later, he had caught her up in his arms. She did not resist,
-but he seemed to have taken up a lifeless thing.
-
-As he carried her downstairs, had he known, it might have seemed strange
-to him that so great a grief should be so light a burden.
-
-He brought her to the room on the right, where Cherry-blossom had just
-lit the lamp, and sat down beside her on the matting.
-
-He took a cigarette from his pocket, and approached the tobacco-mono
-with it. Then, without lighting it, he flung the cigarette away.
-
-“Campanula, I am going on a journey. I did not tell you last night, for
-I had not made up my mind.”
-
-“I have heard it,” she replied. She sat there beside him, a small figure
-with head bowed and hands folded in her lap; and the sadness and
-sorrowful sweetness of those four words pierced his heart.
-
-To get this terrible interview over, to tear himself away at once, he
-would have sold years of his life. But it had to be gone through with.
-
-Whether she loved him as a woman loves a man, or a child loves a father,
-she loved him, loved him as no person had ever loved him before—and he
-knew it.
-
-Then he talked to her, telling her that he would come back.
-
-“I have been away before, Campanula, and I have returned. Will you not
-believe me that I will return?”
-
-“Ah yes,” she answered, “but you did not go with her.”
-
-He said nothing for a moment. There was a sound outside; it was the
-coolie he had ordered to take his portmanteau to the hotel. He heard
-Pine-breeze accosting him, he heard him go upstairs and come down again,
-walking heavily. It was like the sound of a man carrying out a coffin.
-
-He heard his steps on the garden walk dying towards the gate.
-
-How had she discovered with whom he was going?
-
-If she would only weep or cry out, or move, or break in some way this
-terrible stillness. If she would only reproach him. But she said
-nothing, nor even sighed. She seemed like a person stricken not by
-grief, but death. Then he began to talk again, telling her of the
-arrangements he had made. How M’Gourley San would look after her, just
-as he had done before, till he came back. And he would write every
-week—till he came back. And they would all be happy together again, as
-happy as ever they had been—when he came back.
-
-To which she replied:
-
-“If you are going away to find happiness, my happiness is great.”
-
-Fancy a white house, lantern-lit, and steeped in dusk, a tall man
-walking away from it rapidly, three Mousmés on their knees on the
-veranda crying after the vanishing form: “Come again, oh, condescend to
-come again quickly!”
-
-The sound of their voices rings in his ears as he passes through the
-little gate. He hears it pursuing him like the faint murmur of bees,
-until a puff of wind blows it away and replaces it by the faint sound of
-the city below.
-
-Come again! He will never come again to lie in the hammock beneath the
-cherry trees. Never more shall Lotus-bud hand him the night lantern to
-light him to his bed, nor thy small hands, O Pine-breeze, bear him the
-brown leather cigar-case that thy small nose loved to smell!
-
-As he came down hill towards Nagasaki he felt as though he were leaving
-spring for ever behind him.
-
-Thrice he stopped as if to return, and stood gazing into the darkness of
-the uphill path, listening to the wind in the branches of the lilac
-trees.
-
-The last of these pauses ended more abruptly than the others, and he
-plunged on again down hill through the gloom.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXII
-
- HER HOUSE IN ORDER
-
-
-Left alone, Campanula sat, her hands folded in her lap—a Lost One
-indeed.
-
-Before her mental vision, beyond Japan, beyond that desolate country
-always surrounded with ice, the country where the bluebells grew—beyond
-all this lay the land where O Toku San had gone that day, the land where
-one never regrets, one never forgets, one never remembers.
-
-He had gone to find happiness. Not one word had she spoken to hold him
-back or keep him by her, this true daughter of Dai Nippon, soul sister
-of O Gozen San, daughter in spirit of the immortal Hirose.
-
-Cleopatra with the asp and all the mouthing heroines of history would
-seem cheap indeed beside this small and faithful figure to whom death
-was nothing, passion and personal happiness nothing beside the happiness
-of the being she loved.
-
-She sat for an hour scarce moving; then she rose up. She had no more
-time for personal thoughts; all things had to be left in order, and her
-trust to the least detail faithfully fulfilled.
-
-She called the Mousmés to her, and told them that now Leslie San had
-left, they would be discharged until he came back. They could go that
-evening to their homes in the city below. She would pay them their wages
-and a month in advance, and a little present for each out of money of
-her own. And the three kow-towed, delighted at the prospect of change
-and the month’s money for doing nothing, and the little present besides.
-They never thought to ask her what she would do herself in the house
-alone, their butterfly brains were so filled with the thoughts of
-pleasure.
-
-Then she made Lotus-bud bring all the bills owing, bills yard long and
-extraordinarily minute in detail. These she discharged. There were chits
-out, but these were Leslie’s affair, and he had no doubt settled them.
-
-She thought of Sweetbriar San the cat, and as he was fondest of
-Pine-breeze, she gave Pine-breeze a small sum to take him home and keep
-him, applying to M’Gourley San if more money were needful.
-
-Then she went upstairs to her own room and folded neatly the obis and
-kimonos in the drawers of the great lacquer cabinet. In one of these
-drawers were things she had only, as it were, dropped from her hand; the
-toys she had played with as a child. Here was the doll bought in Nikko,
-and bouncing balls, ever so many; and in a piece of rice paper, still
-ferocious, but terribly old and warped, the famous dragon.
-
-She took him out and tried to remove the paper from his sugar-candy
-sides, but it was stuck too tight. She put him back, and, holding the
-drawer with both hands, pressed her forehead against them.
-
-As she stood like this, mute and utterly motionless, the night breeze
-came through the window, bearing the perfume of the azaleas.
-
-It was as if they were calling to her, and she closed the drawer gently
-and turned, as if to say, “I hear.”
-
-Then she came down and found the three Mousmés waiting, each with a
-lighted lamp on the end of a stick, and her frail belongings on her
-back, luggage consisting of cardboard boxes, except in the case of
-Pine-breeze, who was also burdened with a basket containing Sweetbriar
-San.
-
-They had received their wages, and there was nothing left for them now
-to do but go; which they did, after profound salaams, murmurs and
-declarations of personal unworthiness.
-
-Then Campanula found herself standing alone. The only living thing
-beside herself in the house was the mushi, that musician of the night,
-already saluting its mistress with a thin stream of song. She went to
-the doorway where it hung, and unhooked the little cage.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXIII
-
- THE “LA FRANCE”
-
-
-The fair that had been going on all day in the street leading to the
-Bund was still in full swing. A lurid sight the street presented, lit by
-lanterns of all colors, and flare lamps near the booths.
-
-Leslie was glad of the noise and bustle around him; one cannot think
-much when pressing one’s way through a Japanese fair, colored lamps
-dancing, Mousmés laughing, and showmen shouting, rikshas passing at a
-trot, or attempting so to do, children blowing trumpets, babies whirling
-rattles, men-of-war’s men from the ships in harbor walking four abreast
-and arm in arm, singing “Jean Francis de Nantes,” or “We won’t go Home
-till Morning.” _Chamécens_ and moon fiddles buzzing and tinkling, dogs
-barking, and gakunin wailing.
-
-It was ten when he reached the hotel. In the entrance-hall, where the
-orange trees in tubs reflected the lamp-light from their glossy leaves,
-a Chinese hall porter in a blue silk blouse sat on guard. From the
-half-open door of the _salle à manger_, where a party of Russian
-officers were at dinner, came the sound of laughter and the clinking of
-glasses.
-
-As he entered the hotel the whole world around him changed. Campanula
-vanished from his mind. He was no longer in Japan. He was in the same
-house with Jane, and in a few more hours she would be his.
-
-The Chinaman rose from his seat when he saw Leslie enter and led him
-down a corridor to the door of the private sitting-room where he had
-dined with Du Telles. He had promised Jane to wait for her there till
-the morning.
-
-The sphinx-like Celestial closed the door, and Leslie found himself
-alone.
-
-The windows were open on account of the warmth, and they gave a view of
-the narrow mysterious harbor that seems to have been cut in the old
-heroic days by some giant who was also a poet. The high cliffs cast
-their shadows like sable robes upon the water, jeweled with the lights
-of the shipping. The sky all silence and stars, paling now in the
-moonlight, was almost the sky of Europe. Orion was there, and the
-Pleiades, and Cassiopæa dreaming in her diamond-studded chair.
-
-The room itself was a strange mixture of Japan and Europe. The floor was
-the matted floor of Japan, the cane sofas might have been bought at
-Shoolbred’s. The walls were as plain and unadorned as the walls of a
-Japanese house are wont to be—that is to say, under the fans which the
-hotel proprietor had fastened to them—fans from Kioto, Tokyo, and Nara
-crucified against the white paneling and looking like great butterflies
-in some giant’s collection.
-
-He lit a pipe. Jane was upstairs in some room, but there were still nine
-hours of waiting to be done; and he had promised that he would not go
-upstairs if permitted to pass the night in the hotel, but wait patiently
-for her to come to him at the hour of starting.
-
-He felt that if he thought about her he would break his oath, so he
-drove her from his mind.
-
-He watched the twinkling lights in the harbor; those darting about like
-fire-flies were the sampans; that long hulk all crusted with light was
-the _La France_, the ship in which Jane had intended to sail for Osaka.
-It was after ten now, and she was overdue to leave. That sister-hulk,
-equally gemmed, was the Nord Deutscher Lloyd boat leaving at dawn for
-Colombo. Those three lights in a triangle were the anchor lights of the
-great Russian cruiser _Rurik_—the ill-fated _Rurik_.
-
-Suddenly a horn of light shot out from the bow of the _La France_, and
-she began to move like a glittering town towards the sea, and the wind
-from the west brought the faint music of a band. The _La France_ had
-unbuoyed and was away.
-
-He watched her as she picked her course through the shipping stealthily
-like a robber. Now with all side lights showing, now with them half
-extinguished as she veered to avoid the bell-buoy of the Atraska shoal;
-now a vague phantom swallowed by the shadows of the night.
-
-The hotel was silent now, the Russians had gone off to their ship.
-Somewhere outside, somewhere in the gloom of the mysterious night, a
-_chamécen_ was tinkling to the muttering of a little drum. What dancing
-girl was setting her steps to that tune—and where?
-
-He rose to his feet and began to pace the room, then he turned the lamp
-up till it smoked, and turned it down till it was nearly out, and cursed
-the burner for his own stupidity.
-
-Still the distant _chamécen_ kept up its buzzing to the devil’s tattoo
-of the distant drum.
-
-He walked to the window and shut it. Result—absolute silence and
-stifling heat. No matter; anything was better than that infernal drum.
-
-He had shut out the drum, but he had shut in a mosquito. It was in the
-lace curtain, and its twang brought him again to his feet. He tried to
-find it in the curtain, failed, pulled the whole curtain down from its
-attachment, and trampled it under-foot.
-
-Silence, this time unbroken, until one of the fans upon the wall
-rustled, and from beneath it crept a frightful-looking spider as brown
-and as broad as a penny.
-
-He did not see it; he was sitting in the arm-chair with his head between
-his hands, breaking his promise to Jane.
-
-When it was broken he got up, crossed the room, opened the door, and
-went into the hall.
-
-The Chinese night-porter was sitting like a figure of stone in a blouse
-of blue silk. Leslie went up to him, spoke some words in a low tone, and
-handed him some money.
-
-The Chinaman rose and led the way upstairs. Down a passage they went
-till the guide stopped, pointed to a door, turned, and vanished as
-silently as he had come.
-
-Leslie went to the door and knocked softly. No answer. He turned the
-handle, the door opened and he entered—an empty room.
-
-A lamp was burning on a table in one corner, a bed stood close to the
-window: the bed was empty.
-
-It was Jane’s room, for there lay her trunks. A glove lay on the floor.
-He picked it up, looked at it, smelt it, and then threw it down. The
-dressing-table held none of those articles of the toilet one might have
-expected to see. Beside the lamp on the side-table lay a letter.
-
-He had seen the letter almost on the first moment of his entering the
-room, with that vague, half-terrified comprehension which we may imagine
-in the brain of the bull when the sun-light flashes on the sword of the
-matadore.
-
-He approached it now, and read the superscription: “Richard Leslie, Esq.
-Important.”
-
-He opened it, and a number of bank notes came out. These he laid on one
-side, took the letter that was with them, and began to read.
-
-He read the letter, not as if he were reading a letter, but the face of
-some scoundrel he had dragged by the ears into the zone of lamplight. He
-envisaged it, took whole sentences in _en bloc_. He read first at the
-end, then in the middle, then at the beginning.
-
-“And now good-bye for ever. Oh, Dick, don’t think badly of me for this;
-I have only done what was right.
-
-“When you get this I shall be gone. I am leaving by the _La France_ to
-meet George.
-
-“I leave you money. Half what I have is yours; remember we are cousins,
-and ought to help one another.
-
-“Oh, Dick! Dick! I _can’t_ do what you want. I am not thinking of myself
-but of my people. Imagine the disgrace and ruin it would bring them. My
-dear old father, it would kill him.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXIV
-
- AMIDST THE AZALEAS
-
-
-It was very late at night; clouds from the Pacific were rolling over
-Nagasaki, and it was evident that the hot weather of the last two days
-had been the prelude of a storm.
-
-The House of the Clouds, lamp-lit and deserted, cast from the opening in
-the shoji a long parallelogram of light that cut the darkness like a
-sword; a sword of light lying upon the veranda, the graveled walk, and
-the landscape garden.
-
-With the darkness outside had come a great silence broken only by the
-wind.
-
-Had you been standing on the veranda you would have sworn that some
-blind person was prowling before the house, soundless of foot and
-cautiously feeling his way by tapping on the ground with a stick.
-
-It was only the lath shaken by the wind, the tireless lath that all day
-and all the night before had kept the echoes of the garden answering its
-summons, and still kept up the unwearied sound-semblance of a blind man
-who walked without footstep, a patient sentinel, now advancing, now
-retreating, now at the garden gate, now near the azaleas, and ever
-waiting.
-
-The garden gate clicked, and hurried footsteps came up the path.
-
-It was Leslie, hatless, bright and wild of eye, walking rapidly, but in
-a tottering manner. His lips were of a dull purple color, and he had the
-aspect of a man heavily drugged with opium.
-
-He crossed the veranda and entered the deserted hall. He looked into the
-rooms on either side—they were both empty. Then he came back to the
-hall, and cried out, “Campanula!” The rafters returned the sound of his
-voice, but she did not answer.
-
-He was perfectly clear of mind, but his breathing was affected, and a
-deadly torpor hung over him which his will alone prevented falling.
-
-He took in all the details around him with extraordinary clearness,
-amongst others the fact that the mushi’s cage had been removed.
-
-Having waited for a moment, straining his ears to catch the faintest
-sound, he seized the swinging paper lantern that lit the hall, and with
-it in his hand went into the kitchen. It was deserted. Then he went
-upstairs—every room was empty. It was like a house from which the
-people had fled in terror, and he came down again, wild with the
-apprehension of some unknown tragedy.
-
-He brought the lamp into the room on the right of the passage, and
-placed it on the floor. Something crimson lay on the primrose-colored
-matting. He picked it up; it was Campanula’s obi. Why had she cast it
-there?
-
-He was looking round him as if for a person to explain all these things,
-when his eye caught an open drawer of the great lacquer cabinet that
-contained his papers. He looked into the drawer, and it was empty. It
-was the drawer in which he had placed the waki-zashi—the suicide sword,
-given to him by Jane.
-
-From the open drawer his eyes turned to the obi, which he had dropped,
-and then he looked round him, as Dives looks round him in that picture
-of Teniers, where Dives wakes in Hell.
-
-As he stood, the wind shook the broken lath outside, and played with it.
-“Tap! tap! tap!”
-
-He saw the sunlit Nikko road, the valley of the crimson azaleas, the
-Lost One who had loved him as no other being had loved him—the one he
-had lost for ever.
-
-She was dead, yet it was denied to him to find her, and clasp her in his
-arms, and die with her.
-
-Death was nothing, but never to find her again, never to see her again,
-or touch her small body, that was an agony far beyond death.
-
-He left the room, feeling by the walls like a man without sight.
-
-Outside, the world was in utter darkness. More clouds had rolled up over
-the sky, as if called by the Blind One, the tapping of whose stick
-betrayed him, as he walked, waiting for his prey.
-
-If he could find her, what cared he for the Blind One! If he could not
-find her he felt that he would be for ever lost. But he could never find
-her more, for the opium sleep was falling upon him now. He had no more
-strength to fight it, and the darkness of the pit lay around him.
-
-Suddenly, the night wind changed, and brought him the perfume of the
-unseen azaleas, and with the perfume a thin thread of song.
-
-It was the song of the mushi—the atom of life he had spared that day in
-his fury, even as God might now be sparing him—the mushi she had loved
-so well. Feeling by the veranda wall, he followed the song like a man
-led by a thread, and as he came he crushed something beneath his foot:
-it was the lath, whose sound would never trouble him again.
-
-He felt the azalea bushes around his knees, and advanced amongst them,
-still led by the tremulous song, till his foot touched something soft,
-and his hand a tiny cage, hanging to one of the crimson-flowering boughs.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXV
-
- BON MATSURI
-
-
-It was the 18th of August—the last night of Bon Matsuri.
-
-Under a sky splendid with stars, the hills about Nagasaki were gemmed
-with colored lights. Ten thousand colored lanterns adorned the terraced
-cemeteries, and towards dawn each lantern would be fixed to a tiny boat
-of straw, freighted with a few small coins, and some small offering of
-fruit, to stay the souls of the dead on their long journey home.
-
-M’Gourley had come out to see the fairy-like spectacle, for he knew that
-Mr. Initogo, that faithful old Pagan gentleman, was amidst the rejoicers
-on the hillsides, and had lit two lanterns, and freighted two small
-boats, for the souls of two friends he had known on earth.
-
-Just as the morning breeze began to blow, and before the first star had
-paled in the dawn breaking over the Pacific, the gazers from the ships
-and the shore drew their breath, for suddenly the whole hillsides seemed
-in motion, shifting and glittering down to the water’s edge, till the
-ripples became surrounded by a zone of rose-colored fire.
-
-Then the water itself became dyed with the glow of ten thousand
-lanterns, each bravely upborne on its little ship of straw, whose sails
-took the Eastern breeze.
-
-As the fairy flotilla sailed away, spreading the harbor with light and
-color, ship after ship took fire, and ship after ship was lost.
-
-M’Gourley, hat in hand, stood watching till the last spark had vanished
-in the lilac of the dawn; then, with a sigh that spoke of things that
-were not, but might have been, he turned slowly home.
-
-
-
-
- * * * * * *
-
-
-
-
-Transcriber’s note:
-
-Throughout the dialogues, there were words used to mimic accents of the
-speakers. Those words were retained as-is.
-
-Errors in punctuations and inconsistent hyphenation were not corrected
-unless otherwise noted.
-
-On page 17, a quotation mark was removed after “Lord sakes!”
-
-On page 29, a superfluous quotation mark was deleted.
-
-On page 29, a quotation mark was moved one space to the correct
-position.
-
-On page 47, a period was added after “as fraunk as mysel’”.
-
-On page 81, “Lesile” was replaced with “Leslie”.
-
-On page 120, “perfumed hair” was replaced with “perfumed hair”.
-
-On page 128, “acros” was replaced with “across”.
-
-On page 150, a quotation mark was added after “Lord and also
-the empire of the birds.”
-
-On page 243, “though” was replaced with “through”.
-
-On page 264, “horor” was replaced with “horror”.
-
-On page 272, “Baudelaires” was replaced with “Baudelaire’s”.
-
-On page 281, “jewelery” was replaced with “jewelry”.
-
-
-
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CRIMSON AZALEAS ***
-
-***** This file should be named 55709-0.txt or 55709-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- https://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/5/5/7/0/55709
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one—the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG™
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away—you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
-Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg™ License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg™ electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg™
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the
-Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg™
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg™ name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg™ License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work
-on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the
-phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase “Project
-Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg™
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg™ License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg™
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg™.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg™ License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format
-other than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain
-Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
-provided that:
-
-• You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.”
-
-• You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by email) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™
- works.
-
-• You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-• You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg™ collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain “Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
-of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you “AS-IS”, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg™ work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg™
-
-Project Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg™’s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws.
-
-The Foundation’s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation’s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg™ concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg™,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/55709-0.zip b/old/55709-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 334bbf5..0000000
--- a/old/55709-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55709-h.zip b/old/55709-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 33d06a0..0000000
--- a/old/55709-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55709-h/55709-h.htm b/old/55709-h/55709-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 7da3446..0000000
--- a/old/55709-h/55709-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,10085 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html>
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta charset="UTF-8">
- <title>The Crimson Azaleas | Project Gutenberg</title>
- <link rel="icon" href="images/title_page.jpg" type="image/x-cover">
-<style>
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
- }
-
-h1 {
- margin-top: 7%;
- text-indent: 0%;
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-h2 {
- margin-top: 4%;
- text-indent: 0%;
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-/* paragraphs */
-
-p {
- margin-top: 3%;
- margin-bottom: 3%;
- text-align: justify;
-} /* general paragraph */
-
-p.h2 {
- margin-top: 7%;
- text-indent: 0%;
- text-align: center;
- font-size: 150%;
- font-weight: bold;
-}
-
-p.indent {
- text-indent: 4%;
-} /* indented paragraph */
-
-.center
-{
- text-align: center;
-}
-
-.hr2
-{
- width: 90%;
- max-width: 90%;
- color: #CCCCCC;
- background-color: #FFFFFF;
- border: none;
- border-bottom: 6px double black;
- margin: 8% auto;
-} /* horizontal rule for chapter divisions */
-
-.pagenum {
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
-} /* page numbers */
-
-.center {
- text-indent: 0%;
- text-align: center;
-}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-/* Links attributes */
-
-a:link { color:#000000; text-decoration: none; border-bottom: 1px dashed #808080;}
-
-a:visited { color:#25383C; text-decoration: none; border-bottom: 1px dashed #808080;}
-
-a:hover { color:#008000; text-decoration: none; border-bottom: 1px dashed #808080;}
-
-a:active { color:#000000; text-decoration: none; border-bottom: 1px dashed #808080;}
-
-ins {text-decoration: none; border-bottom: 1px dashed #dcdcdc;}
-
-/* Images */
-
-img {
- padding: 6px;
-} /* without border */
-
-img.border{
- border: 1px solid black;
- padding: 6px;
-} /* with border */
-
-.image-center
-{
- text-align: center;
- margin: 1em auto;
-}
-
-/* Poetry */
-.poem {
- margin-left:10%;
- margin-right:10%;
- text-align: left;
-}
-
-.poem br {display: none;}
-
-.poem .stanza {margin: 4% 0% 4% 0%;}
-
-.poem span.i0 {
- display: block;
- margin-left: 0%;
- padding-left: 12%;
- text-indent: -12%;
-}
-
-.poem span.i2 {
- display: block;
- margin-left: 8%;
- padding-left: 12%;
- text-indent: -12%;
-}
-
-.poem span.i4 {
- display: block;
- margin-left: 16%;
- padding-left: 12%;
- text-indent: -12%;
-}
-
-/* Other */
-
-span.ralign {
- position: absolute;
- right: 10%;
- top: auto;
-}
-
-div.tnote {
- background-color: #CCCCCC;
- border-style: dotted;
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
- padding: 1%;
- font-style: normal;
- font-size: 90%;
- text-align: justify;
-}
-
- h3,h4 { text-align: center;
- clear: both; }
- hr.full { width: 100%;
- margin-top: 3em;
- margin-bottom: 0em;
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
- height: 4px;
- border-width: 4px 0 0 0; /* remove all borders except the top one */
- border-style: solid;
- border-color: #000000;
- clear: both; }
-
-
-.cellpadding10 {padding: 10px;}
-.valigntop {vertical-align: top;}
-div.chapter {page-break-before: always;}
- </style>
- </head>
- <body>
-<div style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold;'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Crimson Azaleas, by H. De Vere (Henry De Vere) Stacpoole</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: The Crimson Azaleas</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: H. De Vere (Henry De Vere) Stacpoole</div>
-<div style='display:block;margin:1em 0'>Release Date: October 8, 2017 [eBook #55709]<br>
-[Most recently updated: April 22, 2023]</div>
-<div style='display:block;margin:1em 0'>Language: English</div>
-<div style='display:block;margin:1em 0'>Character set encoding: UTF-8</div>
-<div style='display:block; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Produced by: Roger Frank, Ernest Schaal,<br>
- and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team<br>
- (<a href="http://www.pgdp.net">http://www.pgdp.net</a>)<br>
- from page images generously made available by<br>
- the Google Books Library Project<br>
- (<a href="https://books.google.com">https://books.google.com</a>)
-<br>Revised by Richard Tonsing.</div>
-<div style='margin-top:2em;margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CRIMSON AZALEAS ***</div>
-
-
-<table style="background-color: #ccccff;margin: 0 auto;" class="cellpadding10">
- <tr>
- <td class="valigntop">
- Note:
- </td>
- <td>
- Images of the original pages are available through
- the Google Books Library Project. See
- <a href="https://books.google.com/books?id=nxgNAAAAYAAJ&amp;hl=en">
- https://books.google.com/books?id=nxgNAAAAYAAJ&amp;hl=en</a>
- </td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-<p> </p>
-<hr class="full">
-
-<h1>THE CRIMSON AZALEAS</h1>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<div class="image-center">
-<img class="border" src="images/title_page.jpg" width="472" height="700" alt="" title="">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="pagev"></a>[pg v]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CONTENTS</h2></div>
-
-<blockquote>
-<p class="center">PART ONE</p>
-
-<p class="center">THE TRAGEDY OF THE NIKKO ROAD</p>
-
-<p>CHAPTER <span class="ralign">PAGE</span></p>
-
-<p>I. <span class="smcap">The Road to Nikko</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page5">5</a></span></p>
-
-<p>II. <span class="smcap">The Blind One</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page11">11</a></span></p>
-
-<p>III. <span class="smcap">The Lost One</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page20">20</a></span></p>
-
-<p>IV. <span class="smcap">Amidst the Hills</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page25">25</a></span></p>
-
-<p>V. <span class="smcap">The Tea House of the Tortoise</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page31">31</a></span></p>
-
-<p>VI. <span class="smcap">The Dreamer and the Dragon</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page44">44</a></span></p>
-
-<p>VII. <span class="smcap">How Campanula Brought Fortune to the
-House of the Tortoise—and Other Things</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page54">54</a></span></p>
-
-<p>VIII. <span class="smcap">The Surprising Story of Momotaro—Akudogi
-and Spotted Dog</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page61">61</a></span></p>
-
-<p>IX. <span class="smcap">The House of the Clouds</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page71">71</a></span></p>
-
-<p>X. <span class="smcap">Of Mousmés and Other Things</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page82">82</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="center">PART TWO</p>
-
-<p class="center">THE MASSACRE OF THE BLUE-BELLS</p>
-
-<p>XI. <span class="smcap">The Dream</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page91">91</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XII. <span class="smcap">The Foreign Devils</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page101">101</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XIII. <span class="smcap">The Monastery Garden</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page107">107</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="pagevi"></a>[pg vi]</span></p>
-
-<p>XIV. <span class="smcap">Nagasaki by Night</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page119">119</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XV. <span class="smcap">M’Gourley’s Love Affair</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page124">124</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XVI. <span class="smcap">The Philosophy of Evil</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page135">135</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XVII. <span class="smcap">The House by Night</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page141">141</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XVIII. <span class="smcap">Mostly about Flowers</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page151">151</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XIX. <span class="smcap">The Stork and the Tortoise</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page172">172</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XX. <span class="smcap">The Song of the Mushi</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page183">183</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXI. <span class="smcap">M’Gourley’s Love Affair</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page194">194</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXII. <span class="smcap">The Complete Geographer</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page206">206</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXIII. <span class="smcap">The Struggle</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page213">213</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXIV. <span class="smcap">George Du Telle</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page223">223</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXV. <span class="smcap">Retrospection</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page232">232</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="center">PART THREE</p>
-
-<p class="center">THE BROKEN LATH</p>
-
-<p>XXVI. <span class="smcap">The Broken Lath</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page241">241</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXVII. <span class="smcap">The “Empress of Japan”</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page247">247</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXVIII. <span class="smcap">M’Gourley’s Love Affair</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page262">262</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXIX. <span class="smcap">The Garden-Party</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page268">268</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXX. <span class="smcap">The False Report</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page280">280</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXXI. <span class="smcap">Farewell</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page284">284</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXXII. <span class="smcap">Her House in Order</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page292">292</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXXIII. <span class="smcap">The “La France”</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page296">296</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXXIV. <span class="smcap">Amidst the Azaleas</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page302">302</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXXV. <span class="smcap">Bon Matsuri</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page307">307</a></span></p>
-</blockquote>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page5"></a>[pg 5]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER I</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">THE ROAD TO NIKKO</p>
-
-<div class="poem">
-<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">“Upon the road to Nikko,</span><br>
-<span class="i0">Where the pilgrims pray,</span><br>
-<span class="i0">Along the road to Nikko</span><br>
-<span class="i0">Either side the way,</span><br>
-<span class="i0">Thundering great camellia trees</span><br>
-<span class="i0">Decked with blossoms gay,</span><br>
-<span class="i0">Adorn the road to Nikko,</span><br>
-<span class="i0">The mountain road to Nikko,</span><br>
-<span class="i0">In the month of May.”</span><br>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="indent">The singer stopped singing and began to whistle.
-Then he broke out into prose.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Damn boots! I’ll be lame in another mile. Why
-can’t we be content with sandals like our ‘brithers’ the
-Japs!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Dinna damn boots, but their makers,” replied his
-companion, a sandy Scot of fifty or more, dressed in
-broadcloth and a bowler, a figure at once a blot upon
-the lonely road and a blasphemy against Japan—a blot
-whose name was M’Gourley. “I vara well remember
-when I was in Gleska—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page6"></a>[pg 6]</span>
-“Oh, don’t!” said the poet of the Nikko road, Dick
-Leslie by name, a young man, or rather a man still
-young, very tall, straight, dark, and good-looking, and
-a gentleman from the crown of his close-clipped, curly
-black head to the soles of the boots that were torturing
-him. “Don’t haul up your factory chimneys, your
-smoke and whisky bottles in this place of places. I
-believe if a Scot ever gets into heaven he’ll start his first
-conversation with his first angel by making some reference
-to Gleska: Look there!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Whaur?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“There!” cried Leslie, turning from the direction of
-Fubasami and the beginning of the great Nikko valley
-before them, and pointing backwards away towards
-Kureise over an expanse of distant country where the
-clouds were drawing soft shadows across the rice fields
-and the sinuous hills; over little woods of fir and
-cryptomeria trees, lakes where the lotus flowers spread in
-summer, and the king-fisher flashed like a jewel; over
-occasional fields of flowers, flowers that grew by the
-million and the million.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Many of these details were absorbed and dulled by
-distance, yet still lent their spirit to the scene, producing
-a landscape most strange and quaint.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Nearly every other country seems flung together by
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page7"></a>[pg 7]</span>
-nature, but Japan seems to have been imagined by some
-great artist of the ancient days—imagined and constructed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Look there,” said Leslie, “saw you ever anything
-better than that in Clackmannan?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ay, have I,” replied M’Gourley, contemplating the
-view before him, “many’s the time. What sort of
-country do you call that? Man! I’d as soon live on a
-tea-tray if I had ma choice.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, you’ve lived in Japan long enough to be used
-to it. It’s always the way; put a man in a paradise like
-this where there are all sorts of flowers and jolly things
-around him, and he starts grumbling and growling and
-pining after rain, and misery, and cold, and sleet, and
-peat smoke—if he’s a Scotchman. How long have you
-been in Japan, Mac, did you say?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Near ever since the Samurai took off their swords
-and turned policemen.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What kept you in the East so long if you don’t like
-it?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Trade, like the wind, blaweth where it listeth, and a
-man must e’en follow his trade,” said M’Gourley; and
-they resumed their road.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They were walking to Nikko together, this strangely
-assorted pair, strangely assorted though they were both
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page8"></a>[pg 8]</span>
-Scotchmen. They were approaching the place, not by
-that splendid avenue of cryptomeria trees that leads
-from Utso-no-Miya, but by the wild hill road, which runs
-from Kureise, or rather by the higher hill road, for there
-are two, and they had taken the loneliest and the longest
-by mistake (M’Gourley’s fault, though he swore that he
-knew the country like the palm of his hand).</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They had come twenty or twenty-five miles of the
-way by riksha, and were now hoofing the remainder,
-their luggage having been sent on to Nikko by train.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“And talking of trade,” said M’Gourley, “let’s go
-back to the matter we were on a moment ago; there’s
-money in it, and I know the beesiness. I ken it fine;
-never a man knows better the Jap Rubbish trade.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“You were talking of starting at Nagasaki.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ay, Nagasaki’s best.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, I’ll plank the money,” said Leslie. “I’ll put
-up a thousand against a thousand of yours.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M’Gourley stopped and held out a hand sheathed in
-a mournful-looking black dogskin glove.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Is’t a bargain?” said he.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It’s a bargain. Funny that we should have only met
-the other day in Tokyo, and that you should have come
-along to Nikko to show me the sights. I believe all the
-time you were bent on trepanning me into this business.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page9"></a>[pg 9]</span>
-“I was that,” said M’Gourley, with charming frankness;
-“for your own good. A man without a beesiness
-is a man astray, and when you told me in the hotel in
-Tokyo you were a boddie with money, and nothing to
-do with it, I said: ‘Here’s my chance.’”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“If I had met you two months ago,” said Leslie bitterly,
-“I wouldn’t have been much use, for my father
-would not have been dead, and I would not have come
-into his money. Do you know what I have been?—I
-have been a remittance man.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’ve met vera much worse people than some of
-<i>them</i>,” said Mac, who if his newly found partner had
-declared himself a demon out of Hades would perhaps
-have made the same glossatory remark—the capital
-being assured.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’m hanged if I have,” said Leslie bitterly. “Give
-me a Sydney Larrikin, a Dago, a Chinee, before your
-remittance man. I know what I’m talking about for I
-have been one—see?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What, may I ask—” began M’Gourley, then he
-paused.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“You mean what was the reason of my being flung
-off by my father? Youthful indiscretions. Let’s sit
-down; I want to take my boot off.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The road just here took a bend, and became wilder
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page10"></a>[pg 10]</span>
-and more lovely, a stream gushed from the bank on
-which they took their seats, and before them lay a little
-valley, a valley hedged on either side by cypress trees,
-and thronged with crimson azaleas.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page11"></a>[pg 11]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER II</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">THE BLIND ONE</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Crimson azaleas in wild profusion, here struck
-with sun, here shadowed by the cypress trees—a
-sight to gladden the heart of a poet. Between the cypress
-trees, beyond the azaleas, beyond country broken
-by sunlight and cloud shadows, lay the sea hills of Tanagura
-in the dimmest bluest distance.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“If I could get that into a gold frame,” said Leslie,
-as he inhaled the delicious perfume of the azaleas and
-bathed his naked foot in the tiny cascade breaking from
-the bank on which they sat, “I’d take it to London and
-send it to the Academy—and they’d reject it.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Vara likely,” replied Mac. “It is no fit for a
-peecture. Who ever saw the like of yon out of Japan?
-It’s nought but a fakement.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I say,” said Leslie, “talking of fakements—in this
-business of ours I hope we’ll steer clear of all that.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“In this beesiness of oors,” said Mac, “I thought
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page12"></a>[pg 12]</span>
-you distinctly understood my friend Danjuro will be
-the nominal head of the firrm—we are but the sleeping
-pairtners.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac’s Scotch bubbled in him when he grew excited, or
-when he forgot himself. Ordinarily he talked pretty
-ordinary English, but when the stopper was off the
-Scotch came out, and you could tell by the pronunciation
-of the word “money” whether he was mentioning the
-article casually or deep in a deal.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well,” said Leslie, “I don’t want my dreams troubled
-by visions of Danjuro swindling unfortunate tourists;
-you say we’re to export things, but I don’t want
-to have him roping in people, selling them five-shilling
-pagodas at five pounds a-piece.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac sighed as if with regret at the impossibility of
-such a delightful deal as that.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It’s rather jolly going into business,” continued
-Leslie, dreamily gazing at the azaleas. “Only crime
-I’ve never committed, except murder and a few others.
-Good God! when I started in life I never thought I’d
-end my days peddling paper lanterns, and cheating people
-into buying penny-a-dozen kakemonos for a shilling
-a-piece. Don’t talk to me; all trade is cheating.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“You should have known Macbean,” said M’Gourley,
-who had also taken off his boots and stockings and
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page13"></a>[pg 13]</span>
-was bathing his broad splay feet in the pretty little
-torrent.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Who was he?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Forty year ago I was his ’prentice. Mummies, and
-idols, and pagods, and scarabeuses was the output of the
-firm, and Icknield Street, Birmingham, its habitation.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Idols?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ay, idols. Some the size of your thumb, and some
-the size of bedposts, which they were derived from; some
-with teeth, and some with hair, and some bald as a bannock.
-We stocked half West Africa with idols, and the
-South Seas absorbed the balance.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, you certainly take the cake,” said Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I took three pun ten a week at Macbean’s, and
-learnt more eelementary theology than’s taught in the
-schules of Edinboro’. Macbean said artistical idols was
-what the savages wanted, and what they would get as
-long as old bedposteses were to be bought at knockdown
-prices, and sold for the waurth of elephants’ tusks.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“You disgust me,” said Leslie, “upon my word you
-do.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“That’s what Macbean said one day to the boddie I
-had in mind when I began telling you of this. The
-boddie came in grumbling about a mummy—a vara fine
-mummy it was, too—that had been sold to him for export.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page14"></a>[pg 14]</span>
-The mummy had been stuftit with newspapers, but
-the <i>sachrum ustum</i> used for coloring the stuffing matter
-being omitted, the printed matter remained in eevidence
-when the American who bought the article in Cairo
-opened it to hunt for amulets and scarabeuses. ‘Newspapers!’
-said Macbean. ‘And what more do you expect
-in a fifty-shullin’ mummy? Did y’ expect it stuffed wi’
-dimonds?’”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well?” said Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“That’s all, and that’s the whole of beesiness in a
-walnut shell; y’ canna expect a fifty-shullin’ mummy to
-be stuffed with—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Rubbish! the whole of swindling, you mean. Anyhow,
-we’ll keep straight, if you please; a fair profit I
-don’t mind, but I object to rank trickery—by the way,
-what’s the time? my watch has stopped; and how far
-is Nikko off?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It’s after two,” said Mac, who had no very definite
-idea of how far Nikko might be off, having led his companion
-by the wrong road and concealed the fact.
-“And Nikko is maybe twarree miles, maybe a bit more—wull
-we go?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">For all answer Leslie took some bar-chocolate from his
-pocket, gave some to his companion, and proceeded to
-lunch.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page15"></a>[pg 15]</span>
-“I daresay you think it funny,” said he at last, “my
-chumming up, and in your heart of hearts—that is,
-your business heart (excuse me for being frank)—you
-must think it strange I should put up my money with a
-man whom I don’t know in the least. But, man! the
-truth of the matter is I’m weary for a friend. I have
-money enough and to spare, but—I’m weary for a
-friend.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’m the lonest man in the world,” went on Leslie,
-munching his chocolate and gazing at the beautiful
-scene before him; “the lonest man on God’s earth.
-What is the matter with me that I should never have
-found and kept a friend? If God had ever given me
-anything to love I’d have cherished it, but—there is no
-God that I can see.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Whisht, man,” said Mac. “Dinna talk like that.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I know I was wild,” went on Leslie, “before I left
-England, but other men have been as bad. I quarreled
-with my father, but other men’s fathers are different
-from what mine was. He drove me beyond the sea to be
-an alien and an outcast. I’ve seen drunken loafers in the
-bars of Sydney, where I was stuck as a remittance man
-three years; they had friends of a sort—friends who
-stuck them, but friend or dog never stuck to me.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“No wumman?” asked M’Gourley, spitting out the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page16"></a>[pg 16]</span>
-remains of the chocolate he was eating, and lighting a
-vile-looking Hankow cigar.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I loved a woman once,” said Leslie, staring before
-him with eyes that saw not Japan or the cypress trees
-or the azaleas. “Her name was Jane Deering; we were
-boy and girl together, cousins, and her people lived
-quite close to mine. We got engaged, and were to have
-been married, and—she threw me over.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“For why?” asked Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Said she didn’t want to get married.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, that was deefinite.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Damned definite. What’s that noise?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Tap, tap, tap.” It was the tapping of a stick upon
-the ground, and a man in the dress of a coolie, with a
-saucer-shaped hat upon his head, turned the corner of
-the road, coming in the direction of Nikko. He was
-tapping the ground before him with a staff. He was
-blind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What an awful-looking face!” said Leslie, as the
-figure approached. “Look, Mac! Did you ever see the
-like of that?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">One sees many extraordinary and sinister faces in the
-East, but the face of the on-comer would have been hard
-to match, even in the stews of Shanghai.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The nose seemed to have been smashed flat by a blow.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page17"></a>[pg 17]</span>
-The face was flat and possessed an awful stolidity, so
-that at a little distance one could have sworn that it was
-carved from stone. It impressed one as the countenance
-of a creature long in communion with evil.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The two Scotchmen held motionless to let this undesirable
-pass, but he must have possessed some sixth
-sense, for instead of passing he stopped and begun to
-whine.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He spoke in a light, flighty, chanting voice, like the
-voice of a man either insane or delirious.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What’s he say?” asked Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“He’s a Chinee, and wants money.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Tell the beast to go.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Says he knows we’re foreigners.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Clever that; why, even I can hear your Scotch sticking
-out of the gibberish you’re talking.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Says he wants opium—hasn’t had any the whole
-day, and if we will give him opium, or money to buy it,
-he’ll show us things.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What things?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Lord sakes! the creeture’s daft; says he can make
-great magic—snakes out of mud or flowers out of nothing.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Why doesn’t he make some opium if he’s so clever?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Says the woods around here are full of devils.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page18"></a>[pg 18]</span>
-“Tell him to show us a devil, then.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac translated and the person so well acquainted with
-devils made answer.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“For a piece of gold he will show us one. Why, Leslie,
-man, don’t you be a fule.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie had taken half a sovereign from his pocket.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Give it him and tell him to show us a devil, and if
-he plays any tricks I’ll chivy him into Nikko, and give
-him up to the police.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Don’t be a fule,” said Mac testily. “A’weel!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie put the piece of gold into the creature’s hand,
-who put it to his ear for a moment, and then hid it in
-his rags. Then he bent his head sideways to the road.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What’s he doing now?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“He’s listening if the road’s clear; he says there’s
-nothing on it for two ri on either side, but he hears seven
-rikshas coming in the direction of Nikko, but he’ll have
-time to do what he wants before they arrive.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Blind One bent down rapidly and traced an almost
-perfect circle around himself in the dust of the
-road; then hurriedly outside this he traced what an initiate
-might have taken for the form of the Egg, the
-horns of Simara, and another form needless to describe.
-Then he said something to Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“He says, we’re not to speak, or touch the circle or
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page19"></a>[pg 19]</span>
-go near it. I have not paid for this entertainment, and
-I juist think I’ll take a bit walk doon the road.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Sit down, you old coward,” said Leslie. “I’m the
-one that has paid, and I’m the one the ‘deevil’ will
-carry off if there is a deevil. Look!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Blind One took from his rags a cane pipe such
-as blind men use in Japan, only larger, and began to
-blow mournful notes out of it. It was as strange a sound
-as ever left human lips, now ear-piercing, now low, low
-and soothing; his face flushed and swelled; he seemed enraptured,
-entranced with his own music, and the searching
-sound of it caused things to move disturbedly in the
-trees around, and a low croaking, as if from some feathered
-creature disturbed, to come from the cypress wood.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As he played, he turned north, south, east, and west,
-lingering, at last, with the reed pipe pointing between
-the cypress trees, as though he were calling to the blue
-hills in the distance.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As he stood thus, Leslie, who had been looking at the
-mysterious symbols around the circle, was seized with an
-impish impulse, and leaning forward with his walking-stick,
-he made in the dust inside the circle, and just behind
-the Blind One’s heel, the form of a cross.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In doing this, the point of the stick touched the Blind
-One’s heel.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page20"></a>[pg 20]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER III</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">THE LOST ONE</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A congreve rocket incautiously touched by a
-match could not have given a more surprising result.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Flinging the pipe from him with a yell, the Blind
-One sprang clear over the circle, and stood for an instant
-panting and blowing at the sun.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He seemed blowing away things that were trying to
-enter his mouth; then, the staff attached by a thong to
-his wrist flying about wildly, he began to tear at himself
-all over his body and fling things away from him, as
-though he were attacked by a hundred thousand scorpions;
-then as if bitten by some more serious enemy, he
-seized his staff, and striking about him wildly, began to
-run. Hither and thither, hitting right and left, dashing
-against trees and seeming utterly regardless of them,
-bleeding, torn, and all the time fighting his phantom pursuers
-he ran till he vanished round the bend leading
-towards Nikko. The two Scotchmen ran to the bend of
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page21"></a>[pg 21]</span>
-the road, and there down the road they saw him still running,
-and fighting as if for his life; striking above him
-as if at things in the air, and around him as if at things
-leaping at him from the ground. Suddenly he vanished
-round a further bend, and was lost to view.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“He’s gone gyte!” said Mac as they returned.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, I’m damned!” said Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I touched his heel, and I suppose he thought it was
-one of the devils—mad fool!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“’Tis no madness,” said Mac. “If ever I saw a man
-chased by deevils I’ve seen one now. ’Twas that mark
-you made let them loose, or my name’s not Tod M’Gourley.
-Did you no ken you were makin’ the sign of the
-cross in yon damned circle of his? Hech, man! <i>Look
-there!</i>”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Where?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“My God!” said M’Gourley, “look you there, <i>there</i>!
-There’s a bairn amongst the azaleas!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“So there is!” said Leslie. “By Jove, a little Jap
-girl come out of the wood.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Dom it, man,” roared M’Gourley, “she wasn’t there
-twarree seconds ago. She’s come out of no wood; she’s
-been <i>fetched</i>.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, of all the superstitious idiots!” said Leslie,
-gazing from the perspiring M’Gourley to the figure of
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page22"></a>[pg 22]</span>
-the quaint and pretty little Japanese girl who was busy
-amidst the azaleas plucking the blossoms. “Why,
-it wouldn’t take her more than ‘twarree seconds’ to
-come out of the wood. Anyhow, I’ll go and see if she’s
-real.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Man! man! hauld back!” cried the agonized
-M’Gourley as his partner plunged amidst the bushes.
-“Ye’ll be had; she’s a bogle. Lord’s sake! Lord’s sake!
-Well, gang your own gate, I’m off to Nikko.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Yet he waited.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The bogle was plucking blossoms as hard as she could
-and in the profuse manner of childhood. She and the
-azaleas made a sight for sore eyes.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She might have been seven or eight, dressed in a blue
-kimono with a scarlet obi, hair black as ebony shavings,
-tightly drawn off the forehead and held up with a tortoiseshell
-comb—the “germ of a woman.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Her back was turned to Leslie, and as he got within
-arm’s length of the quaint and delicious little figure he
-did just what you or I might have done—bent down,
-seized her up, and kissed her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The bogle dropped her flowers and gave a shriek, a
-most distinctly human shriek.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“He’s kessed her!” cried M’Gourley, addressing the
-azaleas, the cypress trees, and all Japan.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page23"></a>[pg 23]</span>
-Then he stood in agony, held to the spot by the sight
-of Leslie and the bogle making friends.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It didn’t seem to take long, for presently he returned
-through the azaleas triumphant, carrying her in his
-arms.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Here’s your bogle,” said he, placing her on the
-dusty road where, with all the gravity of the Japanese
-child, she made a deep obeisance to M’Gourley. That
-gentleman returned the compliment with a short, sharp
-nod.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’m awa’ to Nikko,” said he in the hard, irritable
-voice of a person who is desirous of avoiding an undesirable
-acquaintance, gazing at Leslie and steadily ignoring
-the lady in blue who was now holding on to
-Leslie’s right leg, contemplating M’Gourley, and sucking
-the tip of a taper and tiny forefinger all at the same
-time. “I’m awa’ to Nikko. ’Tis no place for a mon like
-me. Never was I used to the company of fules—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Don’t be an ass! Speak to her; you have the tongue,
-and I haven’t.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I winna.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, of all the old women I ever met,” said Leslie,
-addressing a “thundering great camellia tree” that
-stood opposite, “this partner of mine takes the bun!—don’t
-he, Popsums?” bending down and looking into the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page24"></a>[pg 24]</span>
-small face, the left cheek of which was now resting
-against his knee.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Popsums, in reply to the smile and interrogative tone
-in the question she did not understand, smiled gravely
-back and murmured something that sounded like “Hei.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M’Gourley snorted, and Leslie broke out laughing; he
-had little of the Japanese, but he knew that “Hei”
-meant “Yes.”</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page25"></a>[pg 25]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER IV</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">AMIDST THE HILLS</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Just then a ripple of laughter came down the breeze,
-and round the corner of the road, heading for
-Nikko, came at full trot seven rikshas streaming out like
-a scarf of color; a dream of color—for each riksha contained
-a lady most beautiful to behold under the splendor
-of her umbrella.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They were a party of girls returning to Nikko after
-some sylvan freak, and they drew up as if by common
-assent to admire the azaleas.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie, removing his hat and lifting his treasure trove,
-held her up for exhibition.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The girls laughed and spoke to her; had they been
-English girls she would have been promptly handed
-round and kissed; and she, with becoming gravity, replied
-gracefully in a few half-lisped words.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then, leaving behind them on the air a cloud of dust,
-a perfume of camellia oil, and a long drawn “Sayonara,”
-the bevy of beauties passed in a gorgeous flight of
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page26"></a>[pg 26]</span>
-mixed colors round the bend of the road and were gone.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ye mind he said seven rikshas were coming,” cried
-Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Bother!” answered Leslie. “He’d come the same direction
-and passed them. Do you think they’d have
-laughed and spoken to her if there was anything wrong
-and they’re Japs, and ought to know. Come! buck up,
-man! You’re not afraid to do what a girl has done?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“A’weel!” said M’Gourley, half ashamed of himself;
-and dour as any Procurator Fiscal, he set to the examination
-of the being who was now on the ground again,
-her hand clasped in that of Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This was the result of the examination. Deponent
-lived with her father. Where? She did not know.—Just
-beyond there somewhere. What was the house like she
-lived in? It had a plum-tree growing before it. What
-did her father do? He hammered things with a hammer.
-Had she any brothers and sisters? No; but—sudden
-thought—she had a sugar-candy dragon, and she had
-lost it. (Here deponent wept slightly and with reserve.)</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Pause in the interrogations whilst a snub nose was
-wiped with Leslie’s pocket handkerchief.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And a kite, but that was at home. She had gone that
-day with a little boy—a neighbor—to hunt for the saccharine
-dragon, and they had lost themselves, then they
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page27"></a>[pg 27]</span>
-had lost each other, then <i>she</i> had lost herself. How was
-that possible? Well, she had gone to sleep. Where? In
-the wood.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Here the examinate went off into a tale about an impossible
-tom-cat with wings, which she had once seen on
-an umbrella, and beheld once again in the wood, but was
-suppressed by the court and asked to keep to facts.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Whilst asleep in the wood she was awakened, so she
-declared, by a sound like the passage of a flight of
-storks, and, coming out of the wood, fearful of meeting
-a dragon, she began to pick the pretty flowers; then
-she was seized by the honorable gentleman, whose height
-was greater than a poplar tree.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">How old was she? Eight times the cherry blossom had
-blown since her humble self had come into the world.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then she volunteered the entirely unsolicited statement
-that it was likely her little boy companion had been
-lost in the snow. But that was impossible—well, it was
-a field of lilies then—and he had been most possibly devoured
-by a dragon.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">What did she propose about going home? Did she
-know the way, and could she go alone?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Here she declared herself utterly at a loss. Her home
-was somewhere near by, but where, she could not exactly
-say.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page28"></a>[pg 28]</span>
-“Well, well!” said M’Gourley, when he had finished
-his examination. “It seems to me that bogle or no bogle
-you’ve saddled yoursel’ wi’ a lost child. Whaur’s your
-common sense now?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Just where it always was.—Question is—what are
-we to do? Can <i>you</i> suggest anything?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Na, na! it’s not for me to say,” said the other, with
-that vile sense of satisfaction a brither Scot feels when a
-brither Scot has made a cubby of himself. Then, remembering
-the bond of partnership, “If I were the
-party responsible, I’d just pop her back where I fund
-her first, and rin.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, you <i>are</i> a beast! Why, you benighted old
-mummy-stuffer, I believe you’ve got a scarab in your
-bosom instead of a heart! I’ll take her along to Nikko,
-and get the police to hunt out her home. Stay, we
-haven’t asked her what’s her name.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M’Gourley asked the question, and the Lost One declared
-her name to be “Bell-flower.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Bell-flower!” said Leslie, who had a smattering of
-botany, “that’s a campanula. We’ll call her—‘Campanula.’”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She also made declaration that she was quite satisfied
-to go with the honorable gentleman, whose height exceeded
-the tallest of trees. Leslie lifted her up and seated
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page29"></a>[pg 29]</span>
-her upon his shoulder, and, as they started, he turned
-and looked back at the loveliness of the perfumed azalea
-valley—a sight that was yet to haunt him in the time to
-come.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It’s my opeenion,” said M’Gourley, as they took the
-road, “that there was something forming in yon wood,
-something dom bad, and you flung it out of the forming
-eelement, and she was just suckid in.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What d’you mean?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“The wraith of some dead bairn was wanderin’ aboot,
-and the forming eelement seized it.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What forming element? Rubbish! That chap was a
-lunatic; well, when he felt me touch him it set his lunacy
-off, that’s all. Why, I once went to a big asylum in
-Scotland, and I saw a man cutting just the same capers,
-fighting devils. He’s an opium taker, and the opium is
-out of his brain, that’s all. Drink does the same thing—Hi!
-By Jove, look up there! He’s at it still.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Away up in the wild mountain gorge they saw a
-figure. It was the Blind One still pursued, still running,
-and apparently fighting for his life. If his actions were
-not the outcome of insanity they gave food to the mind
-for the most terrible suppositions.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Streaming with blood from his mad dashes against the
-trees, he seemed surrounded on all sides, hemmed in,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page30"></a>[pg 30]</span>
-fighting furiously like a man surrounded by wolves. If
-a tree chanced to be near, an opening seemed to be made
-for him by his tormentors towards it, and he would rush
-at it and dash himself against it, falling back bleeding
-but fighting still, screaming and all the time being
-steadily shepherded further and further into the loneliness
-of the hills.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Sirs! Sirs!” cried Mac, throwing up his hands as
-the horrible spectacle vanished round a distant bend of
-the gorge. “This is no sight for a Christian mon!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It’s pretty rotten,” said Leslie who looked rather
-pale and sick. “Fetch out that flask of yours, Mac.
-Thanks. Poor devil! would there be any use following
-him?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Not for twanty thousand pounds would I follow
-him,” said Mac, gurgling at the flask. “He’s in ither
-hands than ours.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And, indeed, not for a very great sum would Leslie
-have gone up that desolate gorge to see the finish of the
-tragedy.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Let’s go on,” said Leslie, “and don’t let’s speak of
-it again. I want to forget it—ugh!”</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page31"></a>[pg 31]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER V</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">THE TEA HOUSE OF THE TORTOISE</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was at the next turn that Nikko broke upon them,
-a long way off, lying in its valley amidst the high
-hills, hills fledged with greenery to their summit.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There are sights that strike the eye and the heart at
-the same time, and the sight of Nikko where the Shoguns
-sleep, Nikko the beautiful in the silent valley, amidst
-the silent hills, is one of these.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The delicate colors, the exquisite tracery of the temple
-roofs, the crystal clearness of the air through which
-the eye can pick out detail after detail, the atmosphere
-of tranquillity of the mountains, and the green cryptomeria
-trees, make up a picture, leaving little
-for the heart to desire, or the imagination to conceive.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Why,” cried Leslie, turning to his companion (Campanula
-was seated aloft in solitary state upon his shoulder
-clutching his hair tight, whilst he held in one big
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page32"></a>[pg 32]</span>
-hand her two little sandal-shod, tabi-clad feet), “if
-that’s Nikko, it’s ten miles off if it’s a foot. What’ve
-you got to say for yourself, hey?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“A’weel,” said M’Gourley, glowering at Nikko, “if
-you want my candid opeenion, we’ve juist gone astray;
-the country I know well, but these dom roads lead one
-like a Jack o’Lanthorn. It’s my opeenion that a Japanese
-road—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I don’t want your opinion on Japanese roads, I
-want your concise opinion about yourself—ain’t you
-a fool?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ay, ay,” said M’Gourley, as if considering the matter,
-“a fule I may be, but it’s my candit opeenion that
-I’m not the only fule in Japan.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well,” said Leslie, “fool or no fool, we’ll have to
-tramp it, and you’ll have to take your turn to carry the
-kid, so—<i>Marchons</i>!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula, so far from being frightened at her awful
-elevation from the earth, seemed to enjoy the situation,
-and to find food for a sort of muse of her own, for
-she began to hum as Leslie took the road with his long
-stride, and to sing in a lisping sort of way.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What’s she singing?” demanded her bearer of the
-sweating Scot at his side.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Lord knows! ’tis an eldritch chune, and I dinna like
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page33"></a>[pg 33]</span>
-to listen to the words. Man, Leslie, but your legs are
-longer than mine, and I canna keep the pace.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, I’ll go slower if you’ll listen, and tell me what
-she’s singing.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“She’s singing,” gasped M’Gourley, “s’ far as I can
-make out, some diddering noensense aboot a sugar-candy
-dragon that a man like a poplar tree is goin’ to hunt, he
-and a man like a corbie.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“That’s you.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“More like some bogle from the wood that’s maybe
-after us now. I am not a supersteetious man—na, na!
-ye may laugh or not—but would y’ like to know what in
-my humble opeenion you are cartin’ on your shoulders?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Some bairn that has been lost and dead these years,
-and has been whustled up by that blind deevil with the
-pipe. What did she mean by that reeference to the snaw—answer
-me that!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“When I can get into the mind of a Japanese child,
-and see the world as it sees it, I’ll answer you; you know
-what children’s minds are, how they mix and imagine
-things.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What did she mean by that reeference to the snaw?”
-grimly went on M’Gourley. “Mix or no mix, what did
-she mean by the other bairn being lost in the snaw?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page34"></a>[pg 34]</span>
-“Well,” said Leslie, “I don’t care a button whether
-she’s a bogle or not. If she is, she’s the prettiest bogle
-that was ever bogled, and about the heaviest, I should
-think. Here, you take a turn with her, I’m about done.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They took it turn about, M’Gourley vastly loth, to
-carry the Lost One; and the Lost One stopped them to
-gather flowers for her by the wayside, to give her drinks
-from rivulets, to help her admire and wonder at herons
-and other marvels of the way, so that it was after six of
-the clock when two of the most dusty and perspiring
-Scotchmen in the Eastern Hemisphere entered the happy
-village of Nikko from the mountain side, Campanula
-this time on Leslie’s shoulder, grave, triumphant, and
-holding a huge lily in her hand.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Nikko and its surroundings just now was ablaze with
-scarlet japonica. The lamps of the camellias were lit,
-the soaring wistaria vines had broken into clusters of
-pale lilac blossoms, the iris beautified the field, and the
-wild cherry the thicket. It was as if spring had called
-from the tomb of Iyeyasu and her faithful had come to
-pray.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There are two hotels at Nikko known to the globe-trotter,
-“Kanayas” and the “New Nikko,” but M’Gourley
-knew a better place than these.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As they passed down the long inclined street a baby
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page35"></a>[pg 35]</span>
-with a shaved head, a baby that was half a baby and
-half an obi, tied behind in a stiff and preposterous bow,
-spied Campanula being borne aloft, dropped his immediate
-business—the attempt to fly a kite shaped like a
-moth—and followed the newcomers with a shout.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The shout, as if by magic, brought half a dozen children
-from nowhere in particular; girl children with dolls
-on their backs, older girl children with babies on their
-backs, boys battledore in hand, and all with clogs on
-their feet, clogs that went clipper-clapper, waking up
-the echoes and calling forth more children, so that when
-they had got half-way down the mile-long street from
-the upper village Campanula had a “following,” the
-like of which had never been seen, perhaps, since the pied
-piper passed through Hamelin.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A colored, laughing, murmuring, rippling throng
-following with every eye fixed on the Lost One borne sky-high
-on the shoulder of the tall stranger; a throng, the
-half of which could have walked under a dinner-table
-without much inconvenience; some empty-handed, some
-still grasping their implements of play, all agog, yet
-of decent and orderly behavior. A throng, in fact, of
-ladies and gentlemen in the making.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Backward over the summit of Leslie gazed Campanula
-upon this crowd, whilst the stall-keepers and the stray
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page36"></a>[pg 36]</span>
-riksha men, the pilgrims and the paupers, the priest and
-the policeman, stood by the way to watch the procession
-pass.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I say,” called Leslie to his companion, who was limping
-behind dead beat, yet in an agony at the “splurge”
-they were making, “this is gay, isn’t it?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Dod rot the child!” cried M’Gourley, nearly tumbling
-over a fat baby with a tufted head, who was running
-in front of him and trying to look up in his face.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I dinna ken whoat ye mean by gay. I have no immeediate
-particular use for the waurd. Never before have
-I been held up to public reedicule. I’m a decent livin’
-man, ye ken, an’ I ha’na any use for such gayeties. I
-leave them to ithers who care for makin’ assinine eediots
-of theirselves; but, thank the Laird, we’re nearly there
-noo.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They turned a corner and entered a gate that led to
-a garden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At the gate M’Gourley turned and addressed the camp
-followers, telling them with forced politeness that there
-was nothing more to be seen; that the show was over,
-in fact, and asking them honorably to excuse him the
-pleasure of being followed any more.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The crowd murmured, and dissolved, the earth seemed
-to take it up like blotting-paper, and M’Gourley, turning
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page37"></a>[pg 37]</span>
-his back upon its remnants, led the way through the
-garden, past a tiny lake in the midst of which stood an
-island, inhabited by a huge frog, and so, by a path, to
-the front of a long, low, white-washed house.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This was the Tea House of the Tortoise, a place well
-known to M’Gourley, as (to use his own abominable expression)
-being “cheap and clean.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A panel of the front was drawn back, revealing cream-white
-matting and lamp light.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M’Gourley sat down with a sigh on the side of the
-veranda, and began to pull off his elastic side boots.
-Leslie sat down also, with Campanula in his lap; he
-could not put her down for she had literally tumbled
-into sleep.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Pull off my boots, Mac,” said he. “I can’t let go of
-this blessed child.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Na!” said Mac mysteriously, and somewhat viciously,
-as he knelt down and unlaced his partner’s boots,
-“ye cannot let her go, ye cannot let her go; forby, she
-wullna let <i>you</i> go.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“You think she’s going to stick to me?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Imphim,” replied Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Imphim is not Japanese, it is the double Scotch grunt,
-which has twenty-two separate meanings, mostly unpleasant.
-Shut your mouth tight and try to say “Hum,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page38"></a>[pg 38]</span>
-hum,” and you will achieve “Imphim,” but never do it
-again, please.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie was about to answer, when a sound behind made
-him turn, and there, like a pinned-down butterfly, was a
-Mousmé on the mat, crying, “Irashi, condescend to enter.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M’Gourley—a most unengaging figure in his stocking
-feet—rose and addressed the Mousmé.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He told her things in language unknown to Leslie;
-things about the sleeping Campanula evidently, for he
-pump-handled with his arm in the direction where Leslie,
-bootless now, sat holding her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Mousmé on her knees, a camellia blossom in her
-hair and her eyes fixed upon M’Gourley, seemed fascinated.
-Then she called out and....</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Hai tadaima,” came a soft voice from somewhere in
-the back premises, and a second Mousmé appeared, made
-obeisance, and listened whilst the tale, whatever it was,
-was laid before her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Deep astonishment, exclamations of wonder, a call:</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Hai tadaima!” and an old lady appeared, and
-made obeisance, and listened whilst the thrice-told tale
-was told her by the two Mousmés and M’Gourley all
-together.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Meanwhile Leslie, feeling ridiculously like a nursemaid,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page39"></a>[pg 39]</span>
-sat holding the Lost One, whose soul was wandering
-in the vain land of dreams.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What are you stuffing those creatures up with?”
-he suddenly broke out. “Blessed if you oughtn’t to be
-dressed in a kimono and a petticoat; you’re the biggest
-old woman of the lot. Ask one of them to take the kid,
-or I’ll go off to the hotel with her.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“One minit,” said Mac. “They’re conseedrin’ the
-matter.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Scarce had he spoken when the old lady called out,
-and entered on the scene, an old gentleman, the proprietor
-of the tea house, a black cat, and two more
-Mousmés.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh, <i>do</i> call a few more!” said Leslie. “And call in
-a couple of musicians and make the comic opera complete.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“There are no more to call,” replied Mac. “They are
-conseedrin’ the matter. The Japanese are a very supersteetious
-people, and these are good friends of mine, and
-I would not spring a pairson upon them with dootful
-anticeedents. You see, Leslie, man, the presence of the
-bairn must be explained. She is not a bale of goods we
-can dump in a corner. Bide a wee; I will talk them over
-yut.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Areopagus was considering the question as to
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page40"></a>[pg 40]</span>
-whether Campanula, if admitted to the Tea House of
-the Tortoise, would bring ruin and destruction or a blessing
-on the premises, when Hedgehog San, the black cat,
-settled the matter by coming up to Leslie and rubbing
-against his leg.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the Hon. Hedgehog—may his ashes rest in
-peace!—jumped on Leslie’s knee and rubbed himself
-against Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">That clinched the business.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The old lady herself advanced, and, taking the Lost
-One from the Weary One, carried her bodily into the
-house, whilst Leslie, yawning and stretching himself,
-followed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Inside, in the bare, clean room, the little Mousmé with
-the camellia in her hair addressed herself to Leslie in a
-soft and beseeching voice.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What does she want?” he asked of Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“She wants to know if you require anything.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“A bath—that’s what I want more than anything—don’t
-you?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I am not given to promeescuous bathing,” said
-M’Gourley, “being greatly subject to the siatickee; but
-a bath you wull have, and I’ll e’en sit here and smoke a
-pipe whilst you bathe yourself.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I want also a sugar-candy dragon for the bairn,”
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page41"></a>[pg 41]</span>
-said Leslie. “Ask ’em to send out and get one. I suppose
-you can get such things?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M’Gourley gave the message to the maid, and she departed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The travelers’ luggage—a frightful-looking old mid-Victorian
-carpet bag belonging to M’Gourley, and a
-Gladstone of Leslie’s—had already arrived at the tea
-house, having been sent on by rail <i>via</i> Utsu-no-Miya,
-and the two sat down on small square cushions, placed
-on the cream-colored matting, to smoke a pipe, whilst
-dinner and the bath were preparing.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“The police will be here the morn about that bairn,”
-said Mac in his cheerful way, “and we’ll have to acoont
-for her.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Of course we will.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ay, ay,” said Mac, “but have you ever acoonted for
-a thing to the Japanese police?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, considering I’ve only been in Japan ten days,
-I haven’t had much time, you see, to fall foul of the
-police.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I found a scairf pin once,” said this comforter of
-Job, “on the Bund at Nagasaki. Twa-and-sax-pence it
-was worth, or maybe three shullin’, and I took it to the
-police office and began to acoont for it.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He stopped and sighed and sucked his pipe.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page42"></a>[pg 42]</span>
-“Well?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, I’m acoontin’ for it still, and that’s three
-months ago; letters and papers, and papers and letters
-enough to drive a man daft! Well, I’m thinkin’ if a
-twa-and-saxpenny scairf pin can cause such a wully
-waugh, what’s a live bairn going to do? Now, I’m
-thinking—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“May I give you a piece of advice, Mac?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I am always open to judeecious advice,” answered
-the unsuspecting Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, don’t think too much or you’ll hurt yourself.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M’Gourley grunted, and at that moment the Mousmé
-with the camellia in her hair entered with the announcement
-that the bath was ready in the room above, and
-Leslie departed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“When you have shown the honorable gentleman the
-bath, come down; I wish to speak to you,” said M’Gourley
-to the lady of the camellia. She obeyed the request
-and M’Gourley held her in light conversation, till he
-knew by the sounds above that his partner was in the
-tub. Then he released the handmaiden, and she departed
-upstairs.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He listened, and presently he heard Leslie’s voice.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Go away, please. Good heavens I say, I <i>wish</i> you’d
-go away! No, I don’t want soap. I say, Mac! Hi,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page43"></a>[pg 43]</span>
-McGourley!—leave my back alone—<i>M’Gourley</i>!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But M’Gourley, like an Indian Sachem, smoked on
-and answered not.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was having his revenge for the Nikko road.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page44"></a>[pg 44]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER VI</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">THE DREAMER AND THE DRAGON</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They had finished dinner; a dinner which began
-with tea and bean flour cakes, passed on to fish
-served on little mats of grass, went on to soup served
-in lacquered bowls, proceeded to prawns; halted, hesitated,
-and went back to soup, scratched its head, so to
-speak, and then, as if with an after-thought, served up a
-quail, apologized for the substantiality of the quail by
-presenting a salted plum on a little plate, and then
-harked shamelessly back to soup, ending deliriously with
-a shower of little dishes containing everything inconceivable,
-and a big bowl of rice.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This is an impressionist picture of a Japanese dinner.
-I have eaten many, but I have never carried away
-more than an impression, and whether kuchi-tori comes
-before hachiz-a-kana, I cannot say, or where the seaweed
-or salted fish come in—but come in they do, they
-and other things stranger than themselves.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page45"></a>[pg 45]</span>
-A <i>chamécen</i> was thrumming somewhere in the house
-as they dined, sitting on the soft white matting, and
-waited upon by two Mousmés crouched on the matting
-like little panthers preparing to spring.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A slid back panel of the front wall made a doorway
-through which they could see the moon wandering over
-Nikko, casting her cool white light upon the blazing
-japonica flowers, the glory of the camellias, the roofs of
-the temples, and the sad dark beauty of the cryptomeria
-trees.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Nikko by day is fair, but by night, when the moon is
-overhead, when the air is full of the sounds of wandering
-waters, and the wind is heavy with the perfume of
-the wild azaleas, Nikko is a dream.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When the tea and bean cakes had been served, the
-moon was in the act of washing weakly a house gable
-across the garden, and a pale lilac-colored flower of the
-wistaria, which projected above the extemporized doorway;
-but by the time the quail had made its appearance,
-the garden was solid in moonlight, the pond was a mirror,
-and the frog self-marooned on the little island, was
-as distinct as if seen by daylight.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I must learn Japanese,” said Leslie, taking a cigarette-case
-from his pocket and lighting a cigarette at
-the tobacco-mono that stood at his elbow. “My lines are
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page46"></a>[pg 46]</span>
-cast in Japan, that’s clear, but a man without the language
-is a helpless baby.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ay, ay,” said M’Gourley. “You can easily get
-instruction in the Japanese: take a wumman to live
-with you.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I haven’t looked at a woman for ten years, and I
-don’t want to look at one again.” Then suddenly bursting out:
-“Why, you old scamp, talking like that—you
-told me you were a member of the Free Kirk.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“The Wee Kirk,” corrected Mac, leisurely lighting
-his pipe with an ember from the hibachi.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, Free Kirk or Wee Kirk, you ought to be jolly
-well ashamed of yourself; and were you a member of the
-Wee Kirk when you were constructing idols in Birmingham
-with old What’s-his-name?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Na, na; those were my godless days. I got my
-releegion late in life, and a vara good releegion it is; a
-waurkable releegion, one that does not heat in the bearings,
-but runs smooth.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“And what is this wonderful religion, if I may ask?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It is noet so much wonderful as waurkable, and it
-may be compreezed in the sentence: ‘Do unto ithers as
-ithers would do unto you.’”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“O good Lord! and you call that a religion! Why,
-you precious old humbug, that means you can rob, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page47"></a>[pg 47]</span>
-plunder, and murder, and cheat—that is to say, you can
-act like a beast towards people who would act so to you.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Just so.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, there’s one thing I like about you, you’re
-frank, to say the least of it.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This remark seemed greatly to incense Mac, who, perhaps,
-misunderstood the meaning of the word frank.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“When y’ve been in the waurld as long as I have,
-surrounded on ivry side by scoondrels and robbers, y’ll
-maybee be as fraunk as mysel’. Fraunk.—wid ye give me
-a defineetion of the waurd—fraunk! I wid have ye to
-understand I’m an hoenest mon with hoenest men, but
-<i>I’m a scoondrel wi’ scoondrels</i>. Fraunk!” And so he
-went on, his Scotch accent deepening as deepened his
-excitement, till at last he broke down into Gaelic, and
-thundered his remarks at the hibachi, slapping his thigh
-as he did so, and wakening the echoes of the house, which
-was resonant as a fiddle. So that by the time he had got
-to the end of his exordium, Leslie saw a panel waver back
-an inch, and the lady of the camellia peeping in to see
-what the Learned One was shouting about.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Keep your hair on,” said Leslie, when Mac, with a
-final “Fraunk!” delivered in English, began to refill
-and light his pipe. “I didn’t mean to insult you; I
-only meant to say I like your open-heartedness.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page48"></a>[pg 48]</span>
-“Ay, I was ever that to those I had a liking for.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I meant more precisely your open-mindedness—but
-no matter, let’s talk of something else. I wonder where
-they’ve put the kid, and oh, by Jove! I wonder if
-they’ve got that dragon. Sing out and ask, like a good
-chap.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac clapped his hands, and “Hai tadaima!” came as
-a response.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was worth the trouble of clapping one’s hands to
-hear that sweet reply.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A moment later, a panel slid back and the camellia
-lady appeared.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula San was asleep, and at that very moment
-Wild-cherry-bud was in search of the Hon. Dragon,
-with orders to leave no confectioner’s stall unvisited till
-she had secured him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This with immovable gravity and deep, sweet earnestness
-of tone.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well,” said Leslie when she had withdrawn, “of all
-the people I have struck yet, give me the Japanese.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Wait till you’ve had beesiness transactions with
-them,” said Mac darkly. “I am no so unfreenly to the
-Japs in or’nary life, but in beesiness the Jap’s a wrugglin’
-sairpent—all but one—Danjuro—the man we’re
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page49"></a>[pg 49]</span>
-going to join in partnership; he’s as straight as a
-Chinee.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“He must be damn crooked then!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Cruik’d enough to make his way in Japan, but
-straight enough to a freend; but you’re a poet, man,
-Leslie, and no beesiness man. I kent y’ for a poet when
-you sang that bit song on the road—the song aboot the
-camellia trees.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie laughed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“That rubbish! It’s not mine; I read it in the Sydney
-<i>Bulletin</i>. Funny enough, too, it was the first thing
-that made me think of coming to Japan! Poetry! Good
-God! Put a man through the remittance mill in Sydney
-and see all the poetry that will be left in him! Put a
-butterfly through a sausage machine and then see how
-beautifully it will fly! Yes, I was once a poet; years
-and years ago I was a poet—a poet who never wrote anything,
-but a poet for all that. I could see the beauty of
-the world; and then they blinded me. Who? I don’t
-know—the world. Maybe it was myself, maybe not.
-Maybe it was my father, maybe not. I only state the
-fact that something in me is dead—the something that
-took joy in life and found beauty in innocence—or was
-dead till I came to Japan. Oh, M’Gourley, man, the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page50"></a>[pg 50]</span>
-years I’ve spent in Sydney under a cloud, mixing with
-bar loafers, cursing my father and myself; the years
-I’ve spent in Sydney have broken my soul in me!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Why did ye not waurk?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Work! I had just enough money to keep me from
-starvation and decently dressed. I might have got a
-clerkship; for what good? To make another hundred a
-year. To spend on what? Can you not understand, man,
-that my mainspring was gone, that I was put out of
-the world I knew, tied by the leg to Sydney, bound to
-appear every quarter-day at the double-damned lawyer’s
-office, or starve? Two things only kept me alive—tobacco
-and books—saved me from myself and from
-drink.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What sort of a mon was your faither?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“A hard, dour, just man—a man who could make no
-allowance for folly.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ay, ay! Had y’ any brithers and sisters?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Never a one, and my mother died when I was two;
-and he used to leather me. Well, you can fancy my joy
-when old Bloomfield, the lawyer, sent for me one day
-and said: ‘I’ve bad news for you, Mr. Leslie.’ ‘What’s
-that?’ said I. ‘Your father is dead. He died intestate,
-and you have inherited his property. I am advised it
-amounts to over twenty-one thousand pounds.’”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page51"></a>[pg 51]</span>
-“Twenty-one thousand?” said Mac in admiration.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes; and I said to Bloomfield: ‘You must be either
-a fool or a hypocrite, for that’s the best news I ever
-heard in my life, and you know it.’ Then some instinct
-took me over here to Japan. I was thinking of going to
-England, but I found all at once I had a horror of England
-and the English, so I came to Japan; and glad I
-am I came. Can you fancy what these people here are
-to me after the population of Sydney—those raucous,
-horse-racing, drink-swilling beasts? Then I fell in with
-you at Tokyo, and took a fancy to your old Scotch
-mug—and here we are.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At this moment a little figure crossed the garden,
-bearing a lantern on the end of a stick. It was Wild-cherry-bud;
-and presently she appeared with the much-sought-for
-dragon wrapped in rice paper.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was a wonderful creation with a twisted tail, rather
-stumpy wings, but with a mouth that made up for all
-defects; nothing so ferocious had ever perhaps before
-been done in sugar candy.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When the thing had been inspected and approved,
-Wild-cherry-bud led the way to where Campanula slept,
-for Leslie wished his present to be placed beside her, so
-that she might find it when she awoke.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Lost One, looking very much lost indeed on a
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page52"></a>[pg 52]</span>
-huge futon (a quilt thicker than a muffin), and covered
-by a blue mosquito-net with red bound edges, was so
-profoundly asleep that the clicking of the net being
-pulled aside and the light of the night lantern borne by
-Wild-cherry-bud did not disturb her. She was sleeping
-on her back, the top futon only drawn to her waist, and
-her little perfectly shaped white hands were crossed
-pathetically on her breast.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie knelt down, and lifting one little hand placed
-the long-sought monster beneath it. The hand clasped
-the dragon, the long-sought dragon, and across the
-sleeper’s face passed what seemed the ghost of a smile.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“A’weel!” thought Mac as he looked on, “had he a
-bairn he’d make a better faither to it than his own
-faither made to him.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the mosquito-net was drawn and they departed,
-leaving Campanula to the possession of her dreams.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Up in their room Leslie steadily refused to undress
-till the waiting Mousmé had “cleared out.” He had
-already refused to allow her to rub his back when he
-was in his tub and now this—</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Tea House of the Tortoise people, good old-fashioned,
-Japanese inn people, unused to foreign follies,
-could not make it out.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page53"></a>[pg 53]</span>
-The Areopagus convened itself again, and held
-council by the light of an andon, or night lantern.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What could it mean?” There was simply no meaning
-in it. Such a thing had never happened before, and
-the general conclusion was that Leslie had “gone gyte.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the Areopagus went to bed all together under
-the same mosquito-net, and silence reigned with the
-moon over the Tea House of the Tortoise. The moon
-wandering over Nikko touching temple and tea-house
-pointed a pallid finger between the window chinks of the
-room where the Lost One lay asleep, as if to show her
-to the night. Clasping the candy dragon whose ferocious
-eyes shone carbuncle-like in the placid moonlight she
-made a strange picture, veiled by the blue gauze of the
-mosquito-net.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page54"></a>[pg 54]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER VII</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">HOW CAMPANULA BROUGHT FORTUNE TO THE HOUSE OF THE TORTOISE—AND OTHER THINGS</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The sun rose up and struck Nikko; struck the
-sacred red lacquered bridge that crosses the foaming
-river, and the common bridge that you and I may
-use, the potter’s shop, and the golden shrine of Iyeyasu.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then temple after temple broke up from shadow as
-the sun reached for them and found them, and the hills
-took on a momentary splendor, an ethereal loveliness,
-evanescent as youth and never to be recaptured by the
-day.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In the garden of the Tea House of the Tortoise a
-bomb-shell full of bickering sparrows seemed suddenly
-to burst above the pond, the sun looked over the wall
-upon the dwarf maples in their blue porcelain flowerpots,
-a panel of the white house front slid back and a
-Mousmé appeared, her head tied up in a blue cotton
-duster; appeared another Mousmé, dragging a futon to
-air in the morning brightness, and yet another who came
-out and yawned at the sun, showing him the full extent
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page55"></a>[pg 55]</span>
-of her pink gullet, and every one of her thirty-two white
-teeth.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then Hedgehog San, a cat honored and beloved,
-came forth with tail erect, and a grasshopper hanging
-by the veranda in a tiny cage creaked forth a thin
-hymn of praise.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Thus started the day at the Tea House of the Tortoise.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When Leslie and M’Gourley came downstairs—a stair
-like a ship’s companion-way but without any balustrade—they
-found Campanula having her obi tied by
-Fir-branch (she who had yawned at the sun), and Leslie
-was informed through his partner that the dragon had
-been found and that he had grown; this statement, with
-some confidential information concerning a thunder-cat
-of which she had dreamed, Mac translated from the
-original with a serious face.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Up to this he had treated the Lost One as an adult,
-and as a most undesirable adult, with whom he wished
-to have nothing to do. But Campanula, fresh and
-spruce in the light of morning, chattering over her
-shoulder to you about thunder-cats, whilst Fir-branch
-tied her obi in a huge bow, was a person whose charm
-was not to be denied, and Mac began to thaw.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What’s a thunder-cat?” asked Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page56"></a>[pg 56]</span>
-“Lord only knows! some contraption in the shape of
-an animal that makes thunder. The Japs are full of
-supersteetions about animals. Wull we out before breakfast?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie the night before had declared his intention of
-sending for the police next morning before the police
-sent for him, and had given a message to the landlord
-accordingly. But he might have saved his breath.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Nikko was agog. Whether the tale had leaked
-through the chinks of the Tea House of the Tortoise,
-whether Wild-cherry-bud had distributed it during her
-peregrinations in search of the dragon, no one will ever
-know; the fact remains that the story of Campanula had
-gone abroad with additions—all sorts of weird and
-wonderful additions. Half Nikko had seen her borne
-aloft on the shoulders of Leslie, the other half had heard
-extraordinary statements concerning her origin; the
-result was that the whole of Nikko ached inwardly with
-a great ache of curiosity.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">By seven o’clock fifteen Mousmés or maybe twenty,
-had arrived singly and in couples, not to ask questions,
-but to borrow things, or to offer the loan of things, or to
-ask after the health of old mother Ranunculus, the
-landlady of the “Tortoise.” Incidentally they learned
-about Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page57"></a>[pg 57]</span>
-A juggler had made her on the Nikko road. Out of
-what, for goodness’ sake? Out of a wild azalea bush!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">No!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Yes, assuredly, the Learned One had said so.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And what had become of the juggler? He had vanished
-in a clap of thunder—turned into a dragon.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Surprising!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And they went off to spread the news.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At half-past eight, or thereabouts, a little man in
-white, the chief of the Nikko police, arrived. He had
-come officially, but he also was aching to get to the truth
-of this marvelous tale.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Now the Japanese police is the most perfect police
-force in the world in every respect. They are recruited
-from the Samurai or fighting-class, and they are gentlemen
-to a man.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The chief of the Nikko police made profound apologies
-for disturbing the peace of the strangers, then he
-heard the story told by M’Gourley.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He agreed that it was strange, but opined that the
-Lost One might simply be a lost child. Where exactly
-was she found? In a valley of crimson azaleas on the
-road from Kureise. Ah, yes! there was such a valley
-well known, for the azaleas were crimson, and differed
-from the wild scarlet azaleas so common hereabouts.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page58"></a>[pg 58]</span>
-There were also villages around there, and tea houses; it
-might possibly be that she belonged to one of these.
-As to the mad man they had seen running away, no
-one else had seen him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then Campanula was brought in and questioned, the
-whole of the “Tortoise” people squatting round in a
-ring, even down to Hedgehog San, who sat with judicial
-gravity, and seemed to be taking mental notes.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She told her little tale about the house with the plum
-tree in front of it, and the kite, and the sugar-candy
-dragon which she had lost and found again. How
-the said dragon had grown very much, and seemed different,
-but tasted all right. Here she hastened to explain
-that she had not eaten him, only touched him
-with her tongue.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She could not possibly say what men called her father.
-He hammered things. What sort of things? She did not
-know, but they went pong, pong, pong, when he struck
-them.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Tinsmith,” murmured M’Gourley.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She was sure of one thing, that her father’s house was
-quite close to the wood and the azalea valley.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">How old was she?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Seven times had the cherry blossoms blown since her
-humble self—</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page59"></a>[pg 59]</span>
-“Hauld there,” said M’Gourley. Then in Japanese
-he explained that yesterday she had declared that eight
-times the cherry blossoms had blown since her humble
-self, etc.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Ah, yes! but how was she to know? a lump of mud
-like her!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In conclusion, she took back her statement about the
-snow. She must have dreamt that in the wood.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the court began to consult, the “lump of mud”
-sitting in their midst pensive and rather sad, a scarlet
-flower in her black hair, and the bow of her obi looking
-very stiff and huge.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Look here,” said Leslie at last. “Tell him I’ll look
-after her, and pay all expenses till she’s found. Tell
-him to have the place searched, all that wood and
-country, and I’ll pay for it; and if they can’t find her
-people I’ll adopt her. I will, begad!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac translated.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At first the chief of police seemed to think that the
-“lump of mud” should be hauled off to the police
-office—impounded, in short; then M’Gourley intervened.
-M’Gourley was a power in Japan just then, for the
-astute Scot had made himself very useful to the government
-in past years, and the chief of police, when he
-heard what Mac had to say, agreed to leave matters
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page60"></a>[pg 60]</span>
-where they were whilst the country was being searched,
-and the chief of police at Tokyo communicated with.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he took his departure, and here began the prosperity
-of the Tea House of the Tortoise.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Three elderly gentlemen in kimonos were the first to
-arrive; after them a youth in a bowler hat, and with the
-face of an uninspired idiot. These sat round and sipped
-saki and smoked little pipes, and talked to Wild-cherry-bud
-and Fir-branch, and listened to the grasshopper
-singing in his cage, whilst more guests arrived, and still
-more. So that Fir-branch, Wild-cherry-bud, &amp; Co., were
-full of business, so full indeed that mother Ranunculus,
-driven to her wits’ end, sent out for hired help.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At eleven, when M’Gourley and his companion went
-out to inspect the golden Shrines, the Tea House of the
-Tortoise was humming like a bee-hive.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It’s a funny business,” said Leslie, as they turned
-the corner into the street.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’m thinkin’,” said Mac, “that you’ll no find it so
-funny a beesiness in the end.”</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page61"></a>[pg 61]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER VIII</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">THE SURPRISING STORY OF MOMOTARO—AKUDOGI AND SPOTTED DOG</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I don’t care a button,” said Leslie, on the third
-morning of their stay in Nikko. “Danjuro may
-go be hanged. I’m not going to leave here till I’ve
-settled about the kid.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ay, ay!” said Mac. “The man who will to Cupar
-maun to Cupar. I would only imprees upon you this,
-that time is going and time is money.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I know; but it won’t take more than a few days
-now. They say they’ve hunted the whole country round
-there, and can’t find trace of her people.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Na, and never will. If she has onny real people
-they won’t fash themselves aboot her; girls in Japan
-are as plentiful as blaeberries in Lorne—you’re sadlit
-with her.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, I want her, that’s the truth. I’ve taken a
-fancy to her; she’s not the sort of thing one picks every
-day—she and her thunder-cats and dragons.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page62"></a>[pg 62]</span>
-“I won’t say she is not an attractif wee boddie,” said
-Mac, “but think of the future, mon, when she’s graun
-up.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Bother the future! I’m rich enough to see after
-her. D’y know, Mac—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Weel?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I wonder did she come out of those azaleas?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac gave a grunt.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Curiously enough, his point of view had changed, and
-he was now convinced, or pretended to be convinced,
-that the treasure trove was a solid body and no bogle.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Because,” went on Leslie, “it may be fact or fancy,
-but when I picked her up she seemed slipping away into
-thin air till I kissed her, and then she became solid.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Imphim,” said Mac, using a variation of the sound
-that was simply stuffed with meanings all uncomplimentary
-to Leslie’s intelligence.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“They used to tell me when I was a kid that babies
-came out of parsley beds. Well, I’m half inclined to
-believe the tale has come true at last, and she came out of
-those azalea bushes. Of course,” said Leslie suddenly,
-and as if apologizing to his own common sense, “I
-don’t really believe it, but I like to fancy it; it’s so much
-nicer than thinking she came into the world the other
-way.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page63"></a>[pg 63]</span>
-The prosperity of the Tea House of the Tortoise still
-continued, people coming from far and near to get a
-glimpse of the foundling.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Every day Mac and Leslie would take her out for a
-walk, and she clopped beside them in her little clogs
-delightfully grave, and seemingly unmindful of the
-polite following of children that always tailed after
-them without appearing quite to do so. Children bouncing
-colored balls, playing hop scotch or what not, yet
-always with an eye on the child that had come out of
-the azaleas.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Shopping with Campanula Leslie found to be a new
-pleasure; a present, no matter what, was received with
-such deep thankfulness, such quaint expressions of
-gratitude.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He ordered Mother Ranunculus—requested her,
-rather—to get a complete new outfit for his charge,
-everything that money could buy, from tabi to hairpins,
-from kimonos to clogs. As for toys, she simply wallowed
-in them: bouncing balls and battledores fell round her
-as if from the sky, not to mention a doll as big as a baby
-of three, which she instantly became a mother to, carting
-it about on her back tucked under her kimono.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The one thing that disturbed Leslie was her seeming
-indifference to her own strange position. Beyond the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page64"></a>[pg 64]</span>
-bald statement that she had a father, she never referred
-to that enigmatical gentleman, nor did she grieve, outwardly
-at least, about her separation from him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">By the end of the week the two Scotchmen and their
-charge began to be welded into a corporate body—a
-little quaint family party. It was strange the influence
-of this child upon these two men whom fate had drawn
-together from the corners of the earth. Leslie, with
-newly acquired interest in life, had grown five years
-younger in mind, and as for Mac, he had grown ten
-degrees more human. His withered fatherly instincts
-were awakened—at least they opened one eye—and it
-was pretty to see him with his gnarled, horny hands
-and intent, weather-beaten face making chickens for the
-Lost One out of orange pips.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They would go out, all three, and wander about
-Nikko and its temples, and they would sit on grassy
-banks in the gardens of Dai Nichi Do, just as a father
-and an uncle and niece might sit on seats in Kensington
-Gardens, and then Leslie and his partner would discuss
-the future and trade, whilst Campanula played with her
-doll or bounced a ball.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Here one day, whilst the sun shone on the little lake
-and the pink and copper maples, the tiny islands and
-bridges and pagodas, Campanula, weary of play, told,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page65"></a>[pg 65]</span>
-in a sing-song voice and broken manner, the story of
-Momotaro, otherwise called Peachboy, and his wonderful
-deeds. She told it standing before them, and striking
-attitudes suitable to the phases of the tale.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">One day, it appears, an old woman found a huge
-peach, and she was just going to cut it in two with a
-knife when the peach broke open, and out tumbled a
-baby. This very surprising thing happened a long time
-ago, but exactly when Campanula could not possibly
-say.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then Peachboy grew up, and every day he grew
-fatter and stronger, till at last he grew so big that he
-determined to fight Akudogi, the king of the Ogres,
-who lived on an island—somewhere. And he started out,
-said Campanula, with a sword and a bag full of millet
-dumplings, each with a salted plum in the center, to
-fight the Ogres.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Here she took from her sleeve a paper of sweets, and
-gravely presented it to her companions, who each took
-one. She took one herself, consumed it, and resumed the
-narrative.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On the way he met a spotted dog, a monkey, and a
-crow, and to each he gave a dumpling, and they followed
-him to the attack on Akudogi, the king of the
-Ogres.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page66"></a>[pg 66]</span>
-The narrator’s voice became deeper in tone, and she
-spread out her fingers as if in fear.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The crow flew first to the castle of Akudogi and held
-him in talk, whilst Peachboy, spotted dog, and the
-monkey, got over the castle wall.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula was now standing before her auditors in a
-most dramatic attitude, her hands uplifted, the fallen
-back sleeves of her kimono showing her arms, and her
-brown eyes full of fear. She did not seem to see either
-Leslie or M’Gourley. Her eyes were fixed on the frightful
-Akudogi, and Peachboy, the spotted dog and the
-monkey, who were about to attack him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The crow, when he saw that his companions had
-gained an entrance to the castle, flew away with a laugh,
-and Akudogi turned and beheld Peachboy and his brave
-companions. He gnashed his teeth, pulled out his
-sword, and oh!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Frightened to death with her own imaginations, she
-rushed with a little shriek into Mac’s arms for protection.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Hauld yourself taegether; I winna let them catch
-ye! I winna let them catch ye!” cried Mac, as he
-clasped the perfumed bundle that had flung itself into
-his arms.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What’s all that she was telling?” asked Leslie, who
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page67"></a>[pg 67]</span>
-felt rather jealous that Mac should have been chosen
-as the harbor of refuge.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Only a daft tale about ogres an’ spotted dogs.
-She’s clean crackit on all sorts of queer beasties. Only
-last night she told me a tale aboot a rat that played
-the fiddle an’ a tortoise that came to listen, and she told
-what the tortoise speired an’ what the rat made answer,
-till you could have sworn you heard the rat and the
-tortoise claverin’ taegither.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, hand her over here,” said Leslie; “she’s not
-yours.” And he took Campanula from Mac and placed
-her on his knee. “She’s mine. I paid ten shillings to
-that chap with the reed-pipe to whistle her up.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’ll tell you what,” said Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’ll gi’ you ten shullin’ for a half share, and pay
-half the expeenses of her upbringing.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“No, she’s mine; you can play with her as much as
-you like, but I’m going to keep her. She’s the jolliest
-thing I ever struck, and I’m going to stick to her. I
-saw that policeman Johnnie this morning, and he’s quite
-given up hope of finding her people. They’ve hunted
-everywhere. I offered him a fiver to cover the business,
-but he would not touch the money. He says the chief
-of police at Tokyo knows you.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page68"></a>[pg 68]</span>
-“Weel does he know me, seven year and more.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“And he says there’s no objection to our taking her
-along to Nagasaki if you give your bond that she will
-be looked after, so I was thinking of starting to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Wull you take her with us?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I was thinking of leaving her with the ‘Tortoise’
-people till I settle about a place to live in at Nagasaki,
-and then coming back to fetch her. She’ll be all right
-with them, I suppose?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ay, she’ll be right enough,” said Mac, and they
-left the gardens of Dai Nichi Do, and headed for the
-hostelry.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">That night the Areopagus convened itself again, and
-M’Gourley explained matters. It was necessary that he
-and his honorable friend should go to Nagasaki, and
-they proposed that the Lost One should be left behind
-at the Tea House of the Tortoise, to be kept till called
-for, warehoused, in short, and, of course, paid for accordingly.
-Was Madame Ranunculus willing?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Most willing.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A sum of money would be placed in the landlord’s
-hands as guarantee.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Oh, that was perfectly unnecessary!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Still, the Hon. Leslie wished it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page69"></a>[pg 69]</span>
-Accordingly, a sum equivalent almost to the value of
-the Tea House of the Tortoise, was placed in the landlord’s
-hands, who placed it in numerous folds of rice
-paper, and handed it to his wife, who engulfed it in her
-kimono.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">These matters having been satisfactorily settled,
-Campanula was led off to bed and dinner was served.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Next morning at eight o’clock two rikshas arrived to
-take the travelers to the station. The whole of the
-“Tortoise” folk, Hedgehog San included, came to the
-front of the house. The cry, “Sayonara—come again
-quickly,” followed them as they swept round the pond
-and out at the gate, a cry made up of the landlord’s
-croaking basso, the sweet voices of the Mousmés, and
-Campanula’s childish treble.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“She seemed sorrier to part with old Mac than me,”
-thought Leslie as they span along. “Ugh!” He turned
-his head in disgust from an English tourist in tweeds,
-who was engaged in kodaking a temple.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In the train, with a pipe in his mouth and M’Gourley
-opposite to him, he felt as if he had just stepped out
-of a dream; a dream of sun and splendor, a dream in
-which figured camellia trees twenty feet high, and the
-form of the Lost One standing amidst the glory of
-crimson azaleas.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page70"></a>[pg 70]</span>
-But another picture obtruded itself upon this pleasant
-dream.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Away in the mountains not far from Lake Chuzenji,
-a green thing had been discovered, a thing that had
-once been a man. Mac had been to view it at the request
-of the police, but he could not identify it as the body of
-the Blind One of the Nikko Road. It was green from
-the chlorophyll of the cryptomerias. In the quaint
-language of the Japanese police, it was the body of a
-man whom “the trees had beaten to death.”</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page71"></a>[pg 71]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER IX</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">THE HOUSE OF THE CLOUDS</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Danjuro, the curio dealer of Jinrikisha Street,
-Nagasaki (no relation of Danjuro the actor),
-was a gentleman of uncertain age, with a face which
-seemed the relic of a thousand years of debauchery.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was probably only opium, but the awful weary
-look with which he swindled you, when you were once in
-the trap he called his shop, would have given Dante
-points for the construction of a new circle in his <i>Inferno</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had spent years in China, had Danjuro, hence,
-perhaps, the expression on his face; also the fact that
-he did his calculations not by aid of the so-ro-ba, or
-calculating machine used by the Japanese tradesmen. He
-did his calculations in his head, and with that far-away
-look so filled with the poetry of the horrible, he would
-calculate the difference between the price he had paid
-for the okimono he was selling you and your offer for
-it, contrasting them with your own personality, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page72"></a>[pg 72]</span>
-from these three factors calculating to a nicety how
-much money he could swindle out of you.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had a hand in the selling of the Great Tung Jade
-to the Empress of China, or rather to her ambassador
-the Mandarin Li, the shadiest transaction that ever
-emerged from darkness; and could you place end to end
-the globe trotters swindled and chiseled and fleeced by
-him, they would reach in a noxious line from London to
-Newcastle, and maybe further. He had long, polished
-finger nails that shone like plate glass, and when you
-entered his establishment he advanced, bowed, and
-hissed at you by way of welcome.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was a rogue, yet he was straight in his way. To
-be a perfect rogue, at least to succeed in the art, you
-must be straight in some ways. The bandit who betrays
-his brethren never goes far without a dagger sticking
-in his back.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M’Gourley had “discovered” Danjuro years ago.
-M’Gourley had twice come to financial smash, once
-because of an earthquake, and again in the upheaval
-caused by the breaking of the Barings. Danjuro had
-helped him twice, and he had helped Danjuro many
-times; helped him with his Western craft, Scotch cuteness,
-and knowledge of Europeans.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In every city of the East, in every city of the world,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page73"></a>[pg 73]</span>
-you will find a fixed Scot always prospering; M’Gourley
-was a floating Scot. Navigating Japan from end to
-end, now at Tokyo, now at Kioto, now at Nagasaki,
-crossing to Corea and pottering about there, meeting
-brither Scotchmen and helping them in trade
-speculations, selling, or assisting in the sale, of
-everything sellable from coals to kakemonos, went
-M’Gourley, a busy man, but somehow a rather unfortunate
-one.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Suddenly Japan rose and smashed China, Russia
-stepped in and robbed her of the pieces, and Japan sat
-down, drew her kimono round her, and began to think
-about Russia.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M’Gourley just then (it was some two years before
-he met Leslie) was on the Lao-Tung peninsula, a black
-wandering dot, innocuous to governments, one would
-imagine, as a beetle.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Suddenly M’Gourley returned to Japan, and the day
-after his return a sheaf of documents addressed by a
-gentleman named Lessar to a gentleman named Mouravieff
-was in the hands of the Japanese Council of
-Elders.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">I don’t say anything about the transaction at all; it
-is not for me to take away the characters of my characters.
-I only know this, that if the Russian Government
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page74"></a>[pg 74]</span>
-had caught Mac just then, they, laboring under,
-perhaps, a fantastically wrong impression, would have
-done something decidedly unpleasant to him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At all events, Mac bought a new suit of reach-me-down
-clothes at a native shop in the Honcho Dori at
-Yokohama, and got so drunk that three Mousmés had
-put him to bed, whilst a fourth fanned him, and a
-fifth played soothing tunes on a moon-fiddle to exorcise
-the demon; and a piece of priceless gold lacquer presented
-to Mac by a high official was sold by him to an
-American week later for five thousand dollars gold coin—gold
-coin being much more useful than gold lacquer
-to a man in Mac’s way of life.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Thus it came about that Mac was a persona grata
-with the Japanese Government, and had many little
-privileges not enjoyed by ordinary Europeans.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Danjuro’s shop was situated in Jinriksha Street, a
-street like a picture slashed out of the “Arabian
-Nights,” a picture that a child had made additions to
-with a lead pencil and half spoiled.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A bowler hat in Jinriksha Street, for instance, is a
-thing very much out of place, yet you see many of
-them, mostly potted down on the back of Japanese
-heads, and making the wearers both frightful and
-ridiculous-looking.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page75"></a>[pg 75]</span>
-Here passes a Mousmé under an umbrella, a figure
-fashioned seemingly from a rainbow, a figure to bless
-the eye and make the heart feel glad. Here stumps
-along a thing that once was a Mousmé, a thing in
-European dress—alas!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Here you turn from a shop sign in the vernacular,
-and across the way, over the booth where cakes reposing
-on myrtle branches are sold, “Englis here is spoke,”
-blasts your sight.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jinrikisha Street, and for Jinrikisha Street read
-nearly every other street in sea-board Japan, is a picture,
-as I have said, spoiled as if by a meddlesome
-English child.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Danjuro’s shop was all open in front so that you could
-come right in past the bronze stork on the tortoise, past
-the leaping dragon made of jointed steel, a dragon hard
-as adamant yet flexible as india-rubber. Then you met
-Danjuro, and he sank towards the floor and hissed at
-you by way of welcome. The chief treasures were in
-the cellar below, but here was quite enough to feast the
-eye of a not too wise amateur, and make the purse jump
-in his pocket.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Danjuro had the art of shop-dressing at his finger-ends.
-Things always looked better in his establishment
-than they did when fetched home.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page76"></a>[pg 76]</span>
-People would cry: “Is <i>that</i> the Owari vase I
-bought? Why, <i>what has happened to it</i>?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It would be the same vase, but divorced from its surroundings.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">You cannot imagine the effect of a dwarf plum tree
-in a green tile pot upon a dragon of steel until you see
-them in juxtaposition, nor the strange difference certain
-backgrounds make in an Owari vase till you try them.
-Danjuro was well up in these subtleties, and this knowledge,
-combined with his own personality, lent an added
-value to his wares—twenty per cent. at least.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Here in the shop of Danjuro, in a semi-twilight,
-glimmer demons and beasts in porcelain and bronze.
-The frightful face of Akudogi shouts at you from the
-wall, the lotus expands over pools in the silent land of
-lacquer, and the hundred guinea ivory Mousmé, ten
-inches high, trips beneath her ivory umbrella, ever on
-the way to some fanciful pageant that had once existed
-in her creator’s dreams.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Here is a Jap baby, about as big and as round as a
-tangerine orange, feeding ducks. Here a little box a
-size larger than a walnut. Open it; inside are seated a
-man and boy playing some game with dice. The man is
-holding the dice cup up preparing to cast; in it are the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page77"></a>[pg 77]</span>
-dice, every cube separate and real, and each marked with
-the proper pips.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In the shop of Danjuro you are gazing, not upon
-bronzes and lacquers, but upon the mind of Japan,
-partly made visible. There is here evidence of patience
-and labor sufficient to conquer the world, beauty enough
-to charm the world, and ferocity enough to terrify it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There is nothing so strange on earth as this art that
-reveals in glimpses the exquisite and the awful, where
-the lily blossoms and the dragon tramples it under foot.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">That baby feeding the ducks, could anything be more
-laughable or lovable? But do not open the drawers of
-the cabinet he is standing on: they are filled with ivory
-obscenities carved with just as loving care.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">No, the kakemonos and bronzes that adorn the drawing-rooms
-of Bayswater and Bedford Park do not disclose
-the whole of Japanese art. If you don’t believe me,
-then go to Japan and become a friend of Danjuro the
-curio-dealer, who lives in Jinrikisha Street, in the quaint
-city of Nagasaki.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“There’s no use talking,” said Leslie, the second day
-after his arrival at Nagasaki. “I don’t want to live in
-the European quarter. I want that white house up on
-the hill there you said was empty, and I want to buy it.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page78"></a>[pg 78]</span>
-“Weel,” said Mac—they were standing in Danjuro’s
-shop consulting—“I’m thinking you want more than
-it’s likely y’ll get. You cannot buy the house—rent it,
-maybe. Stay till I ask Dan.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Dan and he had a consultation, the upshot of which
-was that the curio-dealer, after a cynical declaration to
-the effect that anything could be obtained for money,
-offered his services as an intermediary.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A friend of his, a brother dealer, a Mr. Initogo, or
-some such name, owned the house up there on the
-heights; he would probably let it. It was named the
-House of the Clouds, warranted rainproof and free
-from ghosts.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mr. Initogo was fetched from across the way—a
-gentleman in horn spectacles, who looked as wise as
-Confucius but was a little bit deaf. After some five
-minutes’ polite bawling on the part of Mac and Danjuro,
-Mr. Initogo came to understand the matter, and
-at once declared with a thousand protestations of regret
-that the thing was impossible.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Why?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Well, he could not allege any specific reason. The
-House of the Clouds was empty, but he had not considered
-the matter of letting it. The proposition came as
-an honorable shock to him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page79"></a>[pg 79]</span>
-Then Mac and Danjuro tackled Mr. Initogo, tea was
-brought forth, and after half an hour’s wavering Mr.
-Initogo began to give in.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He sent for his son, and piloted by the son, the two
-Scotchmen went off to inspect the House of the Clouds.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They passed up a by-street and then up a steep path,
-till they came to a gate shadowed by lilac trees. The
-gate led to a tiny demesne, a long, white, two-storied
-house, before which lay a grass plot, at the far end of
-the house some cherry trees, and a space that might be
-used as a garden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">From the veranda of the House of the Clouds one
-could look down on Nagasaki and the harbor that
-pierces the land like a crooked sword. The hum of Jinrikisha
-Street came up, mixed with the eternal song of
-the cicalas.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Across the harbor, where the junks and sampans contrasted
-strangely with the foreign shipping, hills rose
-up, green near the water, brown further off; over the
-hills a few white fleecy clouds passed on the light wind.
-It was the sky of an English summer.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I like this,” said Leslie, turning from the view.
-“Now let’s look at the house.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was furnished with primrose-colored matting, nothing
-else, and it was about as substantial as a bandbox.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page80"></a>[pg 80]</span>
-There were two stories connected by a flight of steps
-without a balustrade, and you could make as many rooms
-as you liked with sliding panels.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’ll take it,” said Leslie, and they returned to the
-shop of Danjuro. Mr. Initogo was fetched, and after
-more wriggling and haggling and tea-drinking and the
-smoking of tiny pipes, he consented to let the place—the
-authorities willing.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac undertook to make everything right in that respect,
-though it would cost him a good deal of trouble,
-as the government have a holy horror of foreigners
-spreading beyond the allotted quarters; and then a Chinese
-comprador was obtained, and received orders from
-Leslie to furnish the place with the necessary futons
-(he determined to live in the native way), pots, tins, kettles,
-Mousmés, and a decent cook; also screens and mosquito-nets,
-plum trees in pots, and everything else that
-might be necessary for comfort and adornment.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Three days later the comprador appeared at the Nagasaki
-hotel, where Leslie was staying, and declared that
-everything was in order—even to the last tea-cup. He
-had hired servants, made a most advantageous bargain:
-he had hired a whole family.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“But, bless my soul! I don’t want a family,” said
-Leslie. “I only want a cook and a couple of girls.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page81"></a>[pg 81]</span>
-Just so. This family consisted of a cook—her name
-was Fir-cone—and three daughters. They would all
-come together or not at all; he had got them at a bargain.
-The names of the daughters were: Moon, Plum-blossom,
-and Snow. Sixteen shillings a month a-piece
-was the wages they were promised. There was also a cat
-belonging to this family—</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh, well, I’ll take them,” said Leslie, “and if they
-don’t suit I can get others.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">That afternoon, preceded by the comprador and followed
-by two coolies carrying his luggage he went up
-to take formal possession, and was received by his new
-servants all on their knees—the three Mousmés in front
-and mother Fir-cone in the background.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Next day he started on the long journey to Nikko
-to fetch Campanula. When he returned with his charge
-the first person to meet him on the quay was Mac. Mac
-in a stove pipe hat he had bought cheap and which did
-not fit him but of which he seemed proud. Campanula
-instantly recognized Mac with a smile and an attempt
-to kow-tow before him, which Leslie frustrated, on account
-of the dirty state of the quay. It was a pretty
-little incident, and went to the old fellow’s heart.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page82"></a>[pg 82]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER X</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">OF MOUSMÉS AND OTHER THINGS</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Plum-blossom was a Mousmé with a broad face,
-ever lit by a half smile. Moon was a girl with a
-serious expression, but gorgeous of dress as any girl of
-Kioto. Snow looked shrunk—not withered, you understand,
-fresh as a daisy, in fact; but something had
-happened in her development: she was preternaturally
-small, and looked like a Mousmé seen through a diminishing
-glass.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The three Mousmés and old mother Fir-cone took
-almost entire possession of Campanula San when she
-arrived, and Campanula San seemed quite content.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mixed with her charming childishness there was a
-philosophical calm that would have done honour to a
-sage of the Stoic school. Riding on Leslie’s shoulder
-through Nikko, under examination at the Tea House of
-the Tortoise, playing with Plum-blossom in the veranda
-of the House of the Clouds, she was just the same.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page83"></a>[pg 83]</span>
-Life was a pageant at which she was an humble spectator,
-whose duty was to be amiable and submissive, and
-accept things just as they came.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She did not say this, but she acted it, or rather expressed
-it in her actions and ways.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Down on the Bund an office had been rented by
-M’Gourley. He slept there and lived there, ascending
-occasionally at night to the House of the Clouds to
-smoke a pipe with his partner and talk business, and
-give advice on things Japanese, advice often needful
-enough to the uninitiated Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">House-keeping in Japan is full of surprises. One
-day, for instance, Leslie met a figure coming from the
-back part of the premises—a figure like a rag-doll that
-had spent its life in a coal-scuttle. Interrogated, the
-figure turned out to be the mother of Moon, and by
-profession—well, her profession was helping to coal the
-Canadian Pacific boats.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“But,” said Leslie, “it is impossible, for Moon
-already has a mother whose name is Fir-cone.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was just going to send for the police when the
-whole truth came out on the veranda, in the form of
-Moon herself.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She explained in indifferent English, kneeling as she
-spoke with the backs of her little hands held upwards
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page84"></a>[pg 84]</span>
-to her face, that the comprador had lied; that there was
-no particular connection between her and her fellow-servants;
-that the comprador had made a bunch of
-them just as he might make a bunch of weeds, picking
-one up here and the other there, and pretending they
-were all the one family. Why had he done this thing?
-Who could say? For some dark reason of his own.
-She said also that her mother was not always as dirty
-as that, but was going home now to wash. Would Leslie
-San like to see her washed so that Moon’s words might
-be proved to him true? Leslie San would not.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M’Gourley was had up, and managed to arrange matters
-without the disruption of the household, which
-seemed imminent.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M’Gourley mixed a good deal in the affairs of the
-House of the Clouds. Six months had not passed before
-the member of the Wee Kirk declared that Campanula
-should be sent to the missionary day school near the
-Bund, and brought up a Christian.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie at first demurred. The state of Campanula’s
-mind, as revealed by her in conversations mostly translated
-by Mac, but often conducted limpingly by Leslie
-himself (he was beginning to pick up the native), did
-not argue a good foundation for a structure like the
-Christian religion.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page85"></a>[pg 85]</span>
-Her mind, as far as he could get at it, was the mind
-of a sensitive and cultured lady who was slightly mad—mad
-on the subject of demons and strange beasts.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Tortoises who talked, storks whose language was the
-acme of politeness, and toads of polished speech, seemed
-as real to her as ordinary folk.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Whether the tin-smith, her supposed father, had filled
-her head with these things, no one can say, but the fact
-remained that she was a perfect Uncle Remus as far as
-animal-tale construction was concerned, and had a Mrs.
-Radcliffe touch in the weird, so that it was a not uncommon
-thing for her to be marched off to bed, the
-triumvirate of Mousmés—Moon, Plum-blossom, and
-Snow—acting as a body-guard to protect her from her
-own extraordinary fancies.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the self-abasement, the absolute self-abasement
-with which she would kow-tow with both tiny hands
-backs upward before your august self, and next minute
-she would be spinning a top on the veranda, or playing
-just like an ordinary child with Kiku San, a dot about
-her own size, and only daughter of Mr. Initogo, the
-landlord.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had a whole host of baldheaded Pagan friends,
-male and female, and Leslie, taking a siesta of an afternoon,
-would hear their clogs rattling on the veranda, or
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page86"></a>[pg 86]</span>
-their naked feet pattering in the kitchen, and half
-fancy himself the proprietor of a kindergarten.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Quaint kites were often to be seen flying above the
-House of the Clouds, kites shaped like hawks and butterflies,
-and M’Gourley down in the street below would
-sometimes glance up and see these evidences of Campanula’s
-existence, and nod his head and say, “A’weel!”
-and hurry on to Danjuro’s to meet him about some perhaps
-questionable transaction, revolving in his mind
-the while the question of Campanula’s conversion to
-Christianity.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was a strange mixture. He would spend a whole
-morning in trade. That is to say, he would get to the
-office on the Bund early, do his correspondence and
-what not with regard to the export of cheap curios, go
-to the hotel and have a cocktail, and fish round for victims;
-find some well-to-do stranger and lead him into
-Danjuro’s shop, deliver him up as a dripping roast
-into Danjuro’s hands, receive his commission, and go off
-and have tiffin. Then as likely as not he would go up
-to the House of the Clouds and fetch Campanula out
-for a walk, and buy her toys, or sweets, or flowers.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And once a week or so he would tackle Leslie about
-the Christianity business, till Leslie at last gave in.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula went to the missionary day school, the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page87"></a>[pg 87]</span>
-prettiest school child in the world under her scarlet
-umbrella pictured with flying storks.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie went away sometimes for weeks, leaving her
-in charge of the Mousmés and leaving Mac with instructions
-to keep an eye on her welfare.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">For the first eight months or so of this new life he
-was amused and interested, the beauty of the country,
-the quaintness of the people, the new conditions of life,
-kept him from thinking much about the past or troubling
-about the future.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then came reaction. A craving came on him to see
-England once again, a veritable home-sickness that was
-not to be denied.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He made a journey to London. He only spent a
-fortnight there; every one he had known in the past
-was either gone or dead. He belonged to no club. It was
-a miserable fortnight, and every day of it Japan called
-him back.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When he returned, he told himself that he had done
-with the West for ever. Just as men sometimes tell
-themselves they have done for ever with sin, folly, or
-love.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page89"></a>[pg 89]</span></p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="h2">PART TWO</p>
-
-<p class="h2">THE MASSACRE OF THE BLUE-BELLS</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page91"></a>[pg 91]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XI</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">THE DREAM</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The “Jap Rubbish trade” was prospering mildly.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">During the first two years it seemed likely to languish
-and die, but in the third year it woke up, got on
-its legs, and, to use M’Gourley’s phrase, “began to
-pick a bit.” In the fourth year it was bringing Leslie in
-some two hundred a year, a fair amount considering the
-capital originally invested in it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Not that he wanted the money, he kept his interest in
-the thing just for something to do—a toy business to
-play with when he was otherwise disengaged.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As for Mac, he was getting rich, not out of the
-Rubbish trade, but in a manner we will hint at later
-on.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The House of the Clouds remained unaltered, save
-for a tiny landscape garden not much bigger than a
-dining-table which Leslie had laid out for Campanula.
-It lay beyond the garden walk in front of the veranda,
-and it had mountains and rivers and savannas of moss,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page92"></a>[pg 92]</span>
-and old oak trees, fierce-looking, but not much bigger
-than your thumb, and twisted fir trees that reflected
-themselves gloomily in lakes the size of hand-mirrors,
-and a Shinto temple about the size of a Buszard’s Dundee
-cake; there were also bridges across the rivers.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The thing had been laid out as a New Year’s gift for
-Campanula, and it had cost Leslie about the price of a
-Steinway Grand.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Azalea bushes grew right up to it, azaleas bordered
-the house, and there was a wilderness of azaleas in the
-open space near the cherry trees.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Crimson azaleas, imported all the way from the
-azalea valley at Nikko in the very first year of Leslie’s
-residence in Nagasaki. It was a pretty thought, and it
-had cost a good penny, and caused much grumbling
-from Mac, and great admiration in Mr. Initogo, who
-had turned out the most delightful of landlords, a good
-hand at whist, and most adaptable about repairs. He
-was a modern Japanese agnostic when he was well, was
-Mr. Initogo, and a Shinto when he was ill or in trouble;
-but he was an all-round good landlord at all times.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">One bright afternoon Leslie was seated beneath the
-cherry trees in a deck chair, his hat tilted back, and the
-pipe he had just been smoking lying on the ground at
-his feet. He was asleep. Lately he had been suffering
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page93"></a>[pg 93]</span>
-from a touch of fever and chills caught on a duck-shooting
-expedition down the coast; he had been taking
-opium for it, and now as he sat beneath the cherry trees
-the opium was troubling his dreams.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Just before dropping off, his eye had fallen on a
-single azalea blossom that had burst into flame, as if
-spring had just touched off with her torch the fire
-of crimson flowers that soon would blaze round the
-house.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he fell asleep, and Opium plucked the crimson
-blossom, and followed him with it into the land of
-dreams.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was in a Hongwanji temple, and there were people
-there, Europeans seemingly, dressed in European
-clothes; but though in a specious disguise, they were
-soon perceived to be not the people of this earth. They
-had strange and distorted faces, and forms that surely
-never were made in God’s image. One man, who suddenly
-hid himself behind a screen of lacquer, Leslie could have
-sworn was made of stone.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then in great tribulation of spirit he was escaping
-from the company of these people, passing down a corridor
-where soft matting took the foot; but something
-was following him with a hissing sound, a sound such as
-Danjuro made by way of welcome when you entered
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page94"></a>[pg 94]</span>
-his shop. Of a sudden the opium spirit touched the corridor
-wall with the flower he had been patiently carrying,
-the Hongwanji temple vanished, and Leslie found
-himself on the Nikko road.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The valley of azaleas lay before him and the mournful
-cypress trees, the country where the moving clouds
-cast their shadows, and the far blue hills beyond.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There was something moving amidst the azaleas.
-He knew it was a child, but, by some curious and subtle
-freak of the opium fiend, the child was hidden from him,
-all but vague glimpses; were it to make itself half visible
-for a second a phantom azalea bush would come before
-it, but he could see a tiny white hand busy plucking
-the crimson blossoms.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then from somewhere far away through the dream
-came the mournful toot, toot, of a blind man’s reed-pipe.
-At first it seemed beyond the bend of the road,
-and then it seemed amidst the azaleas, and then in the
-wood of cypress trees. It grew more insistent and piercing,
-and changed subtly into the sound he had once
-heard on the Nikko road when, sitting with M’Gourley,
-he had listened to the tune of the blind juggler with
-the pipe.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As he listened, shuddering, he saw something which he
-at once knew to be the reason of the music and the soul
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page95"></a>[pg 95]</span>
-of the opium drama that was unfolding before him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A tiny black dot was visible in the sky away over the
-distant hills. It expanded and grew, dilated as if in response
-to the enchanted music. And then he saw that
-it was a bird; a vast bird, larger than an eagle, a ferocious
-and awful bird, a tragic apparition called up from
-the lands of night. It poised above the valley, seeming
-to float and be upborne, not on air, but on the music
-welling from the wood.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He knew that if he could get to the half-seen child
-amidst the azaleas he could save it from its fate. But
-he could make no movement nor utter a sound, but stood
-paralyzed, watching the tiny white hand plucking the
-crimson flowers and the Horror above preparing to
-strike.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The music had now turned to a drone, a sound like
-the spinning sound of a vast top. The thing in the air
-circled and span. He knew it was preparing to fall like
-a thunderbolt.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he awoke.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He saw the garden, the cherry trees, the house.
-Opium land had vanished, but the music remained, ringing
-in his ears; or was it real?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He sprang to his feet and staggered along the path
-leading to the gate looking wildly round him and listening.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page96"></a>[pg 96]</span>
-As he came, the sound died off; died and turned to
-the sound of ordinary life, the hum from the city below,
-the sound of the wind in the lilac trees, the tune of
-ceaseless cicalas.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“My God! what a dream!” he muttered as he
-grasped the gate and stared down the lilac-shadowed
-path. Then he returned slowly to the seat beneath the
-cherry trees, and lit a cigarette.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Opium had played a trick upon him like this before.
-He had taken it first months ago for fever; since then he
-had taken it occasionally for the slightest ache. He reacted
-well to it sensually speaking, and found it at once
-soothing and stimulating. Once before it had pushed
-him into dreamland, but a dreamland without plot or
-plan, and unstained by a horror such as he had just
-witnessed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was seated half drowsing, when suddenly some influence
-made him look up and he saw before him a
-lovely thing. It was Campanula. She had just come
-out of the house by way of the veranda, and was
-approaching him. Campanula, far removed from the
-child he had carried on his shoulder into Nikko five
-years ago.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The child had turned into a girl with that rapidity
-of transformation characteristic of the women of Japan.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page97"></a>[pg 97]</span>
-She was taller than the ordinary Mousmé of fourteen or
-fifteen; her face, even to Western eyes, was beautiful
-with a sad and mysterious beauty of its own, and her
-every movement was graceful as the movement of a bluebell
-when touched by the wind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had ceased to attend the mission school after
-nearly four years’ instruction, during which she had
-grasped the art of speaking and almost of thinking in
-English, and was now Leslie’s housekeeper, his adopted
-daughter, and absolute ruler of the small domain known
-as the House of the Clouds—as far, that is to say, as
-the household affairs went.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She still retained her childishness of mind, and for all
-the Christian endeavor of the missionaries, she still retained
-much of her pristine belief in “things”—things
-with wings as well as hoofs, things that lived in woods,
-birds that talked, and beasts that made answer.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Though she could speak English, she never spoke
-in long sentences, or told a connected tale in that language,
-always falling back on the vernacular when her
-imagination was roused, or a long and connected statement
-had to be made.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She was approaching Leslie now with a porcelain
-bowl figured with storks in her hand, and a smile upon
-her face. There was little mat on the ground near
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page98"></a>[pg 98]</span>
-his chair, and on this she sat down—kneeling fashion—with
-the bowl before her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“See!” said she, producing some things like small
-gun wads from the sleeve of her kimono, “I bought
-these to-day to give you pleasure. Oh, so beautiful!
-Watch!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She cast one of the ugly discs upon the surface of
-the water. It lay there for a moment unchanged, and
-then, as if by magic, began to expand as it sucked up
-the fluid, and break up, growing bigger and broader
-till at last on the surface of the water floated three pink-tinted
-lotus-flowers, a most delicate and perfect resemblance
-of the real things.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She folded her hands and looked up at him with a
-happy smile.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Where did you get them?” asked Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“M’Gourley San told me of them, he wished to buy
-them for me—but I bought them for you.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She removed the lotus-flowers and cast another disc
-on the water.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie watched her. During the last few months Campanula’s
-attitude to him had changed. From a happy,
-humble, and somewhat heedless thing—a creature that
-regarded him with affection—an affection of about the
-same strength as she exhibited for M’Gourley, Sweetbriar
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page99"></a>[pg 99]</span>
-San, the cat, and her children schoolmates; she
-had become a follower of his alone, always striving to
-please him, forestalling his wants, always happy in his
-presence, and drooping—unknown to him—when he
-was away.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The second wad under the influence of the water
-broke up and began to form the branch of a cherry
-tree covered with blossom.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Arashiyama,” murmured she, folding her small
-hands and speaking dreamily, as if communing with
-herself. Then she sat watching the branch of the cherry
-tree expanding over the surface of the water.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">From the house came a somewhat discordant voice
-singing a song about a bee and a lilac bough.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was Pine-breeze singing at her work. Moon, Plum-blossom,
-and Snow, with their fictitious mother Fir-cone,
-had vanished from the House of the Clouds two years
-and more, giving place to Pine-breeze, a miracle of
-daintiness and prettiness, and two other Mousmés, one
-“rather old,” the cook, Lotus-bud by name, and the
-other named Cherry-blossom, as pretty as Pine-breeze.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Listen!” said Campanula, suddenly looking up from
-the bowl and its contents. “There is some one at the
-gate.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie half turned.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page100"></a>[pg 100]</span>
-A man and woman had passed through the gateway
-shadowed by lilac, a short, stout man dressed in tweed
-and a tall woman in blue serge.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie could see them only indistinctly from where
-he sat, and they, not looking in his direction, failed
-to see him at all.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They were coming up to the veranda when the
-woman turned to the little picture garden, laughed, and
-pointed it out to her companion. Then she left the path,
-stepped gingerly right into the middle of the landscape
-garden country, and tried to pluck up an oak tree, a
-gnarled and ancient-looking oak tree eight inches high.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Who?” asked Campanula, turning from the sight
-of this outrage with uplifted forefinger.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“They are Foreign Devils,” said Leslie using the
-Chinese idiom. He was very pale, leaning forward in
-chair. “Look, Campanula! I verily believe she is trying
-to tear up your mountains to see how they grow. That’s
-what they call in England ‘cheek,’ Campanula.”</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page101"></a>[pg 101]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XII</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">THE FOREIGN DEVILS</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The female Foreign Devil having failed to uproot
-the oak, which clung to its native soil with a
-tenacity highly Japanese, returned to the garden path.
-And then came the voice of Pine-breeze kow-towing to
-the strangers, bidding them welcome, and imploring
-them to make the honorable entrance.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They passed from view into the house, and Leslie rose
-from his chair.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Wait here awhile, Campanula,” he said, “and then
-follow me in. I think I know them, but I will go and
-see.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes,” said Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He walked to the house and kicked his garden shoes
-off in the veranda, noting the fact that the Foreign
-Devils had committed the unspeakable outrage of entering
-with their shoes on.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“<i>Richard!</i>” cried the tall woman, advancing to him
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page102"></a>[pg 102]</span>
-with outstretched hand as he entered the room where
-they were. “Why, you’ve grown!” She spoke as
-though they had parted yesterday, but her voice had an
-hysterical quaver, then she presented her cheek to him
-for a cousinly kiss.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“This is Richard Leslie,” said the woman, turning
-to the little stout man in tweed. “We grew up together;
-that’s why I’m so tall, I suppose. Dick—my
-husband George. Gracious, Dick, where are your chairs
-and things? Have you nothing to sit down on?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Only the floor,” said Leslie, fetching some square
-cushions and placing them on the matting. “See, this
-is how it’s done,” and he sat down on one of the cushions,
-whilst his companions followed suit.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane du Telle, once Jane Deering, was, despite her
-vivacity and carelessness of manner, evidently in a state
-of high nervous tension.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie, notwithstanding the years that had passed
-since their last meeting, saw in her mentally little
-change. She was the same Jane who had once hacked
-his shins, when they were boy and girl together, up in
-Scotland, and then flung herself on his neck in a burst of
-repentance and tears. Emotional, good-hearted, selfish—giving
-herself away one moment, but always saved
-the next by a latent discretion that was to her flighty
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page103"></a>[pg 103]</span>
-nature as a gyroscope. The same Jane with whom he
-had fished for salmon and played at tennis in the past,
-seated before him now on a floor in Japan, chattering
-of everything and nothing just in the old familiar way.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“And that’s the fellow she has married!” thought
-he, as he glanced across at George du Telle, a podgy,
-red-headed little man, a globe-trotting Briton of the
-most blatant description.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“How did you know I was here?” asked he, after
-Jane had somewhat talked her hysterical feelings off.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Mr. Channing told us last night at the hotel. He’s
-a friend of yours. He told us he knew an Englishman
-named Richard Leslie living in the native fashion, and
-I asked him if he was good-looking and tall and dark,
-and he said, ‘Yes.’ He said you lived at the House of the
-Clouds—sounds like an address in a dream, doesn’t it?—so
-we took rikshas and came.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She put her hand to her back, where the “floor
-stitch” had seized her. The floor may be a convenient
-enough resting-place for a Mousmé who sinks down
-upon it quite naturally in the likeness of a compressed
-and joyously colored Z, but for an English woman of
-five feet eight or more, dressed in a tailor-made gown,
-and laced in a <i>corset parfait</i> it is at first rather difficult.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I would have got chairs,” said Leslie, “if I had
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page104"></a>[pg 104]</span>
-known you were coming; but of all the people of the
-world, you were the last I expected to see. Where did
-you come from? I mean, how did you strike Nagasaki?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“We came from Colombo.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Beastly hole,” put in her husband, who was stroking
-Sweetbriar San, the cat of the establishment, who had
-just come in to inspect the strangers. “We stayed at
-the Beach Hotel two nights, and d’you know what they
-charged us? Just think.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Don’t think,” said Jane, who had wriggled into a
-more comfortable attitude. “Give me that cat, George;
-and I wish you would try to repress your hotel bills.
-Dick, I was so sorry to hear the news about your father.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What news?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“About his death.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, you were sorrier than I was.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh, Dick! but don’t let us talk about it, it’s all so
-sad. And have you been living here in Japan ever
-since?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ever since.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Just like this on the floor?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Just like this on the floor.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“You must find it rather flat, I should think,” said
-the carroty-headed George.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Richard,” said Jane suddenly, ignoring her husband,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page105"></a>[pg 105]</span>
-“you’re not married to a Japanese—or anything—are
-you?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“No.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Do you live here alone?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, I have three servant girls, and a daughter, if
-you call that ‘alone.’”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“A daughter!” said Jane.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes; and she’s Japanese, too.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Japanese!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes; I adopted her.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">George du Telle snorted, and fortunately at that moment
-a panel slid back, and Pine-breeze appeared with
-the tea, followed by Lotus-bud with an hibachi and
-Cherry-blossom with a heap of tiny plates.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Are these your—I mean is one of these your—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Daughter? No. Turn round, and you will see her,”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane was seated with her back to the drawn-back
-panel that made a doorway on to the veranda. She
-turned, and there in the sunlit space stood Campanula
-in her blue kimono, broad scarlet obi, and with a scarlet
-flower in her hair. Behind her, as a background, lay
-the picture garden, antique hills, spun-glass torrents,
-and tiny, twisted fir trees, that looked, oh, so old, and
-tired of the world, and tormented by the wind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula went right down on her knees upon the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page106"></a>[pg 106]</span>
-matting, and murmured the usual Japanese welcome.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Now this was a practice that Leslie disliked. He had
-tried to break her of it, and in the attempt he had come
-across a strange fact.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula in her heart of hearts was a real child
-of Old Japan. She might have been a sister to the seven-and-forty
-Ronins in the time before Osaka was defiled
-by factory chimneys, and the monastery of Kotoku-in
-by the presence of Cook’s tourists.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She tried honestly to be modern, as it was the wish
-of Leslie, but in times of emotion, back her intellect
-would go to Old Japan, and she would act as her ancestors
-had acted in who knows what lotus-strewn and
-blossom-scented ages.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What does she say?” asked Jane, as George du
-Telle rose to his feet. “Tell me, and ask her to excuse
-me for not getting up, for when I get up, I’ll have
-to be <i>pulled</i> up.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“She is bidding you welcome and at the same time
-apologizing for the fact of her own miserable existence.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I accept the apology,” said Jane, as Campanula,
-her devotions over, sank down before the tea-service,
-and prepared to act as hostess. “Freely and frankly,
-Dick, I must congratulate you on your taste—she is
-lovely.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula looked up with a faint, apologetic smile.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I speak English,” she said.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page107"></a>[pg 107]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XIII</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">THE MONASTERY GARDEN</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane gazed over Nagasaki, the blue water, the
-green hills, to the blue beyond, and sighed. They
-were standing near the gate; tea was over, and they
-were waiting for Campanula, who had gone into the
-house to make some alteration in her dress before accompanying
-them “down town.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Richard,” she said, “take us somewhere where we
-can talk, you and I. I have such a heap of things to
-ask you and talk about. Twelve years—can it be twelve
-years since we last saw each other? Did you get my last
-letter?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">George du Telle was standing near smoking a cigar,
-and staring at the beautiful view with about the same
-amount of interest he would have felt had it been a
-soap advertisement, but she did not lower her voice.
-She was perfectly frank with the world and her husband.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This frankness carried her far, and enabled her sometimes
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page108"></a>[pg 108]</span>
-to skate on ice that would have given under many
-a woman of half her weight, for it was a genuine frankness,
-not a thing put on.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She was a person whom women called nice-looking on
-first acquaintance, and men mentally registered as plain.
-Tall, pale, with an excellent figure, and gray eyes. A
-man met her and spoke to her, and found her plain but
-very jolly, increased the acquaintanceship and found her
-plainness vanishing, and then, all of a sudden, his foolish
-soul was caught in a trap.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was the magic of her lips, perhaps. They formed
-the true Cupid’s bow, full, and seemingly cut by a chisel
-wielded by a master hand, sensitive and sensuous.
-Gazing at them one came to understand how in the ancient
-world tall Troy fell before a kiss.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Which letter?” asked Leslie, plucking a lilac spray
-and strewing the ground with the tiny petals.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“The one I wrote six years ago telling you I was
-married. I sent it care of your father.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“No,” said Leslie gloomily. “I have heard from
-no one for eight years and more. I cut the world, you
-know—or it cut me rather; but I’ll tell you some other
-time, here’s Campanula.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then they started, Leslie and his companion leading
-the way.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page109"></a>[pg 109]</span>
-“Where are you going to take us?” asked Jane,
-when they had reached the street.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Through the city to a place I know on a hill,” replied
-Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had called four rikshas from the stand, and he
-gave some directions to the riksha men, and they
-started.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">You cannot imagine the size of Nagasaki till you
-drive through it in a swift-running riksha, nor the
-quaintness, nor the terror that causes your heart to fly
-upwards as your riksha man shaves a baby, not with a
-razor, but with the off wheel.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Boy babies fighting tops, girls bouncing colored
-balls, flights of children whose clogs clatter like the
-dominoes in an Italian restaurant as they pursue each
-other in some mysterious game—everywhere children, a
-shifting, colored maze in which the eye gets tangled and
-lost. Babies, temples, tea-houses, streets upon streets of
-houses that look as if you could flatten them out with
-the blows of a shovel, bursts of cherry-blossoms, tripping
-Mousmés, stone monsters, awful, yet pathetic with
-the gray of lichen and the green of moss, a courtyard
-with a twisted fir tree leaning across it, laughter, and
-the tune of a <i>chamécen</i> running through it all, that is the
-impression that a riksha ride through Nagasaki in
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page110"></a>[pg 110]</span>
-spring would leave on the mind, were not the picture
-blurred by the European element.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Street after street they passed through, and still
-the mysterious city kept building up streets before them.
-Leslie had thought of taking his companions to the
-O Suwa, but he had changed his mind and given other
-directions to the riksha men.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They passed up a steep incline, dark with fir trees,
-and drew up at a great gateway consisting of two joists
-of wood supporting a vast beam, the whole making a
-figure something in the fashion of the Greek II.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Beyond the gateway lay an inclined path, bordered
-by cryptomeria trees, leading to the façade of a temple.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It’s a place I sometimes come to,” said Leslie, as
-he helped Jane to descend. “It’s quiet, and worth seeing
-in its way.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula and George du Telle led the way this
-time, Leslie and his companion leisurely following.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Come down this path,” said Jane, turning to a side
-alley. “Oh, how pretty! and how mournful too, with
-those rows of dark trees. Dick, this is not a cemetery
-you have brought us to?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“No; it’s a Shinto monastery. Few people know it,
-and it’s out of the run of the general sight-seeing
-bounders.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page111"></a>[pg 111]</span>
-“Things with kodaks?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“And without—but see here, Jane.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What’s your husband?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“George?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes, I suppose his name is George. What is he?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“He’s in the wool trade—he’s the richest man in the
-wool trade, they say. He thinks and talks of nothing
-else but wool. He got off the subject to-day with you
-for awhile; wasn’t he brilliant? But we get on all right
-together; he has his set, and I have mine.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What is his set?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“The very best—I mean the very worst; the poor old
-Smart Set that every one is always beating as if it were
-a donkey—which it is,” said Jane, taking her seat on
-the plinth supporting the prancing figure of Ama-ino,
-fronted across the walk by the equally fantastic figure
-of Koma-ino, a veritable Lion and Unicorn. “Sit down
-beside me, Dick, and tell me—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What have you been doing all these years?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I—I’ve been keeping alive—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Dick,” suddenly broke out Jane, as if she had not
-been listening, “I have often thought you must have
-thought me a heartless wretch; but I’m not.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page112"></a>[pg 112]</span>
-“There is no use in going over the past,” he said.
-“What is done is done, and never can be undone. I
-can only say that I have never in the past had a friend
-to stick to me, or a woman to love me, or a father to care
-for me.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“May it not have been your own fault, Dick?
-Think for a moment. I don’t want to reproach you, but
-you know how wild you were—you know that was one
-of the reasons we couldn’t get married. Oh, it wasn’t
-‘my heartlessness,’ as you told me in your last letter
-but one. I have heart enough—at least I hope so,”
-said Jane, looking at Koma-ino as if for confirmation,
-“and I wouldn’t have done what I did if you’d been
-different. Never mind, Dick, cheer up!—buck up! as
-they used to say in the poor old Smart Set, till the respectable
-folk took the expression away from them.
-What’ve you been doing all these long years, Dick?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh, I’ve been in Australia.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What were you doing there?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Curse Australia!” suddenly broke out Leslie, digging
-his heel in the ground. “Don’t speak to me about
-it; let’s talk of something else.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, what are you doing here? I mean, what have
-you been doing all these years—playing the guitar, or
-what?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page113"></a>[pg 113]</span>
-“I’m a shopman.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I beg your pardon?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I and a man named M’Gourley are in business.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Two Scotchmen?” sneered Jane.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Two Scotchmen.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“And what are you selling—paper umbrellas?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes; and hats and kakemonos, and every other sort
-of a mono that the European trade will swallow. We
-export them.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Then you’re a merchant, <i>not</i> a shopman,” said
-Jane in a half-angry, half-relieved voice. “I <i>wish</i> you
-would not give me these sort of horrible shocks. I
-thought at first you were serving in some place behind
-the counter—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh, I don’t want to make money in business much;
-I do it more for interest and to have an object in life.
-I’m well off; my father’s money all came to me—he
-died well off.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“And wasn’t it queer?” said Jane. “George is awfully
-rich, you know; well, directly I was married, old
-Aunt Keziah died, and every penny of her money came
-to me. Fifty thousand. No, forty-eight thousand, four
-hundred and eighty-two pounds, ten and sixpence. It
-seemed so sweet, the little sixpence following at the end.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page114"></a>[pg 114]</span>
-I sent for it, and had a hole drilled through it, and
-I always wear it on this bangle—look!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He looked; there were many things hanging on the
-bangle. He touched a tiny gold pig swinging by a
-ring.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Good heavens!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“<i>You</i> gave me that,” said Jane, “and I’ve never
-parted with it.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What’s this?” said he, fingering a cabalistic-looking
-blue stone.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“That’s an inkh, I think; I’m not sure of the name.
-It’s lucky, or supposed to be.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Who gave it to you?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“A boy at Cairo last winter.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“How old was he?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh, about twenty.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“And this?” said Leslie, picking out another charm
-in the form of a heart.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Look here,” said Jane, pulling her wrist away, “I
-don’t want to waste time like this, I want you to tell
-me more about yourself; I want you to tell me about
-that child Campanula. <i>Why</i> did you adopt her?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I found her on the road going to Nikko.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Where’s that?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It’s away up in Shimotsuke, beyond Tokyo. I and
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page115"></a>[pg 115]</span>
-M’Gourley were on the tramp. We were sitting by the
-roadside resting, when a blind man came along. He was
-half mad, and talked wild. Said he was a juggler, and
-offered to fetch devils out of a wood near by, if we
-gave him gold.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Why didn’t you try him?” said Jane in an interested
-voice.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I did try him,” said Leslie; “gave him some money.
-He made a circle in the dust, with signs round the rim
-of it, told us not to touch it or come near it, got into
-the middle of it, and fetched out a reed-pipe. Then he
-began to play a tune that would make you shiver to
-hear, and things croaked in the wood.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Go on,” said Jane shivering pleasantly.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I took my walking-stick and made a mark in the
-dust just near his foot. I touched his heel by accident,
-and—whew!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“He went off like a rocket; bounded out of the circle,
-rushed this way and that, knocking against trees
-and striking right and left with his stick, as if dogs
-were about him. He got round the bend of the road
-and vanished. We were pretty much astonished, but
-that wasn’t the end of it. In front of us was a valley
-of the most beautiful crimson azaleas.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page116"></a>[pg 116]</span>
-“Wait a moment, Dick; you’re a very bad story-teller.
-You should always stage your characters: you
-should have described the azaleas first and the scenery.
-Well, go on.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Bother the azaleas!” said Dick. They were fast
-getting into the old boy-and-girl way of talking to each
-other, a somewhat dangerous language at thirty. “It
-doesn’t matter whether they come in first or last. Where
-was I? Oh yes. Mac suddenly said: ‘Look there!’ I
-looked, and there sure enough was a child amidst the
-azaleas. She hadn’t been there a few seconds before, and
-Mac would have it that she had been ‘fetched’; it was
-a pretty wild country and no houses around, and there
-she was, just as if she had stepped out of a house,
-plucking away at the azalea blossoms for all she was
-worth, a tiny dot in a blue kimono and scarlet obi. I
-stole up behind her.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’d have caught her up and kissed her.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Just what I did, in fact; and it may have been
-fancy, but she seemed slipping through my fingers like—grease
-till I kissed her, and she became solid.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“There’s one thing, Dick, you’ll never make a poet.
-Well, go on; it’s awfully interesting.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“We carried her off to Nikko. No parents could be
-found to own her, so I adopted her.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page117"></a>[pg 117]</span>
-“What became of the juggler?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“That was a funny thing. As we turned the bend
-of the road we saw him away up in a gorge of the
-hills. He was still running for all he was worth, beating
-about him with his stick as if hitting off devils,
-and dashing himself against trees in a quite regardless
-manner.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“How awful!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, frankly, it was, and it had a sequel, for his
-dead body was found miles away some days after, and
-the Japanese police said the trees had beaten him to
-death, which they practically had.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“But, Dick, what was the meaning of it?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Who knows! When I touched him on the heel perhaps
-he may have thought it was a devil seizing him,
-and his imagination did the rest. Mac thinks, or, at
-least, he once thought—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“That there was something developing in the wood,
-something bad; that Campanula’s ghost was wandering
-in the wood; that when I made the mark I did inside
-the circle, the bad thing was flung out of the developing
-medium and Campanula’s ghost sucked into it, and
-so she became materialized.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“And the bad thing went for the juggler man?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page118"></a>[pg 118]</span>
-“It and perhaps others.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I never heard anything half so horrible, if it’s true.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It’s true enough. I was forgetting it almost, but I
-had a horrid dream to-day that brought it all back. I
-was sitting in the garden smoking and I dropped off
-to sleep; and I heard the sound of that beast’s pipe, and
-I saw the place on the Nikko road, and there was a
-child amongst the flowers. Then a frightful bird came
-along and was going to attack the child, and I awoke—it
-was just before you came.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Dick, what was the mark you made on the road?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“The sign of the cross,” said Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane was silent for a moment then—</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page119"></a>[pg 119]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XIV</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">NAGASAKI BY NIGHT</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I wish you wouldn’t tell me stories like that,”
-she suddenly broke out. “I’ll be dreaming
-about it all to-night.” She shuddered, and gazed
-at Koma-ino. “Japan seems a horribly creepy sort
-of place; I think I’ll make George come away to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“One side of it,” said Leslie, “is simply crawling;
-you have no idea, and I who have lived here five years
-have only a glimmering of the mind of the people. Do
-you know what I think?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I think that in the sleeves of their kimonos—I
-mean their frock coats, for they’ve put off their kimonos
-for a while for business purposes—they are simply
-laughing at us.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“At whom?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“At the English—at Europe.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page120"></a>[pg 120]</span>
-“Like their impudence!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Perhaps it’s impudence, perhaps not, anyhow—I
-distrust them—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Dick,” said his companion, “look! It’s getting
-dusk: let’s go and look for George and your ‘adoptive
-daughter.’ Mercy! What’s that!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A deep hum filled the air; it seemed to come at first
-from the statue of Koma-ino—a soul-disturbing hum
-that deepened and swelled and then leapt, leapt into a
-deafening roar that rushed over Nagasaki, to die on the
-distant sea.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane clung to her companion like a child, hugged him
-as a child might hug a nurse; her straw hat was pushed
-sideways, and he found his face buried in the masses
-of her perfumed hair. His arm had slipped round her
-waist, her arm was over his shoulder, and her fingers
-pressing his neck; for a moment he felt as if he were
-absorbing her being—drinking her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the sound died away.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“<i>What</i> was it?” gasped she, pushing away from
-him and gazing at him with a white, drawn face. “Why,
-you seem half dazed; you were more frightened than
-I. Dick, what was it?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’m all right,” said Leslie, in the voice of a man
-waking from the effect of an opiate. “I wasn’t frightened.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page121"></a>[pg 121]</span>
-It was only the big gong of the monastery; I’ve
-heard it lots of times.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Then why couldn’t you have told me?” cried Jane,
-flying from fright to fury. “Think what it must have
-looked like, you hugging me like that.” She sprang to
-her feet. “You bring me here and tell me ghost stories,
-and frighten me to death with gongs and things, and
-then—I believe you’re half a Japanese already, you’ve
-grown so horrid.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“There wasn’t any one to see,” said Leslie, rising to
-his feet. “And talking about hugging—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I don’t want to talk about hugging—talk about
-hugging! Do you fancy yourself on Hampstead Heath?
-Come, let us find George. I want something common-place
-after all this.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They found George and Campanula—the most
-strangely matched pair in the world—waiting for them
-at the gates.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“You’ll come and dine with us at the hotel, won’t
-you?” asked Jane as they got into the rikshas.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’ll come right enough,” said Leslie. “Wait,
-please.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He went to Campanula’s riksha and asked her, but
-she prayed to be honorably excused—she had a headache.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page122"></a>[pg 122]</span>
-She passed her hand across her forehead as if in
-confirmation of her words. Leslie tucked the riksha
-blanket round her knees, and explained to the Du
-Telles, and they started.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The quaint city they had come through had changed
-to a quainter city still. Night had blotted out the traces
-of Europe on Nagasaki—at least, in the purely native
-streets. All sorts of strange little trades that sleep in
-the daytime had awakened with the dusk. Things queer
-in the daytime were now mysterious, and things common,
-quaint. The fish shop, with its huge paper lantern,
-besides the fish and the sea-weed on its slabs, disposed
-of dreams which it flung away gratis to the passing
-traveler in the running riksha, and the booth of the
-sandal merchant, with the tiny potted rose tree in front
-of the wares, became at once an apology and atonement
-for all the commonplace villainy condensed in the word
-“shop.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mousmés passed, now half Mousmés, half glowworms,
-each bearing a colored lantern on the end of a little
-stick; and then the shadows half lit by lamp-light, where
-a cherry tree was attempting to peep into the street: the
-light of lamps glimmering through paper shutters, the
-light of lanterns swinging in the wind—red, blue, white,
-and yellow, some pictured with chrysanthemums; the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page123"></a>[pg 123]</span>
-stork that stands so boldly forth in Japanese pictures
-but is nearly gone from Japan, cherry-blossoms, and fish
-that seem swimming vigorously in a bowl of water lambent
-and green; and then the sounds, ten <i>chamécens</i> for
-one in the day. The riksha whisks by a booth, whence
-comes the squalling of cats—seemingly. It is the gaku,
-Japanese poetry set to music and flung into the lamp-lit
-street to make things stranger, and heighten, if possible,
-the charm. At the corner of the by-street leading
-to the House of the Clouds they met Pine-breeze simply
-laden with all sorts of weird and wonderful paper boxes,
-and lighting herself on her way with a lantern pictured
-with a cuttle-fish and carried on the end of a short bamboo
-rod. She had been marketing. It was a fortunate
-meeting, for she could escort Campanula home.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page124"></a>[pg 124]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XV</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">M’GOURLEY’S LOVE AFFAIR</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Following Pine-breeze, who went before her like
-a fantastically colored glowworm, Campanula ascended
-to the house.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As she stepped onto the veranda she heard the voice
-of M’Gourley San addressing Lotus-bed, and asking
-when she thought Leslie San would be back. Mac’s
-elastic-side boots were in the veranda, and his gamp was
-propped against the wall.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was sitting on the floor smoking a pipe and reading
-the <i>Japan Mail</i> through a pair of spectacles when
-Campanula entered.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac often came up of nights like this. He was a vivid
-Radical, and Leslie was a hide-bound Conservative, so
-they had a splendid time together when they got on
-politics; or they would play chess, or Mr. Initogo would
-drop in and they would have a rubber of dummy whist.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But what Mac really came for, though he scarcely
-knew it himself, was Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula was a lot to Mac; much more than one
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page125"></a>[pg 125]</span>
-can express in prose, and M’Gourley is scarcely the
-figure to make a ballad of. Yet the poem was there round
-about him, unsung, unuttered, unguessed by any one,
-least of all by himself.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When he had made chickens out of orange-pips for
-her at Nikko, she just as cunningly had made him her
-slave.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had taken this dull, hard-grained, and shady old
-business man into a byway, of life, and made him spin
-tops and fly kites. She had made him admire flowers
-and listen to fairy tales, and all as naturally and as
-peacefully as though these things had been matters of
-everyday occurrence with him the whole long length of
-his arid life.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“<i>Einst, O wunder!</i>”—that ballad might have been
-inspired by Mac—had the writer ever met him in business
-or seen him in the flesh.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Hech!” said Mac. “There you are; and where
-have you been trapsing to this hour of the evening?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula explained that Leslie had met friends, and
-that he had gone to dine with them at the hotel.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Wonder who they can be?” soliloquized Mac, as
-Campanula clapped her little hands together for Pine-breeze
-to bring refreshments. “Some people he has
-picked up at the hotel, maybe.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page126"></a>[pg 126]</span>
-They sat opposite to each other on the matting, this
-strangely assorted pair. A panel in the front was open,
-for the night was warm, and the lamplight fell on the
-veranda and the garden path beyond.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And they ate salted plums and crystallized prawns,
-soup with seaweed in it, and rice with fish sauce, whilst
-the perfume of the cherry blossoms stole in from the
-night outside, and the twang of a <i>chamécen</i> came from
-somewhere in the mysterious depths of the house.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was Lotus-bud relieving her soul with music,
-mournful as the sound of the wind blowing over the wet
-fields of millet in the rainy weather.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The things having been removed, Campanula brought
-forth a chess-board, which she laid on the matting before
-Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had taught her chess, and had found her an apt
-pupil, a veritable Zukertort, a female Nogi, who attacked
-his positions with her ivory army, stormed his
-fortifications, and put him to rout when she chose.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Yet he often won. She would make amazing blunders
-just in time to save him from defeat, and Mac would
-chuckle and say—</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“There you are, there you are—thrown a pawn away
-that might have given you back your queen in two
-more moves. Never mind, you’re getting on; I’ll noat
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page127"></a>[pg 127]</span>
-say ye aren’t im—” long pause—“proving. Check—and
-how’s that for mate?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then Campanula would throw her hands up in assumed
-horror at her own stupidity, and Mac would
-chuckle over his own supposed cleverness, and all would
-be harmony and peace.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">To-night, however, Campanula’s mind was somewhat
-astray, and the chess-player who lived in her brain took
-advantage of the fact, and beat Mac thoroughly in the
-course of a dozen moves.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’m getting auld,” said Mac testily. “Here, put
-the things away. Na, na, I’ll play no more the night.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He lit his pipe at the tobacco-mono and moodily
-smoked it. He could not bear being beaten at chess,
-and now he looked as if he would be sour for the whole
-evening.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She reached for a long-necked <i>chamécen</i> that lay near
-her on the matting, and tuned it, striking a few somber
-notes.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ay, sing us something,” said Mac, and as the night
-wind sighed and the cherry blossoms filled the room with
-their faint, faint fragrance, Campanula, her eyes fixed
-across illimitable distance, sang in a voice like the ripple
-of a mountain brook, a song telling of the Miakodori,
-and the sunlit slopes of Maruyama, where the great old
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page128"></a>[pg 128]</span>
-Gion cherry tree blooms at the foot of Yaamis lane.
-And then an old love-song strayed in from the night
-and was caught by the strings of the <i>chamécen</i> and made
-articulate by her voice.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It told the fate of a maiden named Pine-bough, who
-lived by the sea at Hamada where the foam and the sand
-are as snow.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She loved a noble, this maiden named Pine-bough—you
-can guess the rest. Mac listened, soothed; it was
-the case of David and Saul over again—a very inferior
-sort of Saul, it is true.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Now,” said the Charmed One as the rafters absorbed
-the last echoes of the fate of Pine-bough, “tell
-us a story.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula, with the <i>chamécen</i> lying across her lap,
-knitted her brows in thought. She was evidently pursuing
-strange beasts across the fields of Fancy, and undetermined
-as to which she would mark down and serve
-up to her guest. Then she solved the matter by suddenly
-clearing her brow and telling a tale without any beasts
-in it at all.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“There is a garden,” declared Campanula, “where
-every one may enter; the Mikado himself goes there,
-and the riksha man, the Mousmé and the Mousko, Bo
-Chan, and Kiku San. Even Campanula herself, lowly
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page129"></a>[pg 129]</span>
-as she is, may enter there. And there the Mousko pulls
-the beard of the Emperor unafraid, and the riksha man
-forgets his riksha and drinks tea at the tea houses, where
-no money is paid and no money is asked for.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What’s this garden you’re telling me of?” demanded
-Mac, his business instincts and common sense in
-arms at the latter statement.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It is the garden of sleep,” answered Campanula cunningly.
-She had been waiting for the question and now
-she paused, gently plucking a string of the <i>chamécen</i>,
-filling the air with a faint throbbing sound as if to
-summon around her the tale-bearers of the night.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Here in the garden of sleep,” pursued the dreamy
-voice, as the vibrations died away, “every tree bears a
-lighted lantern swinging in the wind and painting the
-grass beneath with its color—red lanterns painted with
-storks, and blue lanterns pictured with the blossoms of
-the cherry; lanterns on which dragons fly pursuing each
-other, and lanterns disported upon by my lord the Bat.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“A wanderer in the garden has but to pluck a lantern
-from a tree, and his dreams will at once turn in a happy
-direction, and by the light of the lantern he will see
-before him the object of his desire, be it what it may.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’ll remember that,” said Mac grimly, “next time
-I find myself there.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page130"></a>[pg 130]</span>
-“One has no memory there,” said Campanula, “and
-few people know of the secret of that place, else every
-one would be happy in their dreams.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“One night entered the garden Taro San, a child no
-higher than one’s knee. He was the son of a tea-house
-keeper, and he had plucked a glowworm from a bush,
-by which feeble light he was lighting himself through
-the darkness of the garden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“All at once he found himself beneath a tree, from
-the lowest branch of which swung a huge lantern of
-wistaria-blue.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It was the lantern of Spring, and the painted butterflies
-upon it, by some magic, moved their wings in
-flight, yet remained always in the same place, and the
-painted cherry-blossoms upon it waved in some magic
-wind, yet never faded or lost a petal, and the bird
-upon it pursuing the dragon fly was always gaining
-upon the dragon fly, yet the dragon fly, oh mystery! always
-outstripped the bird.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula paused in thought, and a faintly plucked
-string of the <i>chamécen</i> filled the air with the hum of the
-dragon fly’s wings as it flew by reed and iris, by mere
-and pond, by the unblown lotus and the blue of the
-river in the country of eternal spring.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“O Taro San,” continued the story-teller, “gazing
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page131"></a>[pg 131]</span>
-up and beholding this fair thing, strove to reach it, and
-failing, he began to weep.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Now, there was passing by at that moment the
-Daimiyo of his province, and the great lord walked with
-his gaze fixed upon the ground overcome as he was by
-the reverie of sleep; but hearing the sound of Taro San
-weeping, he paused and asked the child what ailed
-him, and hearing the trouble, he lifted him upon his
-shoulder; and Taro San grasped the lantern and waved
-it in the air and laughed, for its light showed him a
-pleasant path beset with roses and leading to a sea, blue
-as the sea of Harima, and in the path stood a little girl
-plucking the amber and crimson flowers.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Taro cried out to the Daimiyo to take him to the
-little girl, but the Daimiyo did not heed, for to him
-the lantern had shown Osaka Castle stormed by knights
-in armor, and the spears of the Samurai all bent towards
-its walls under a roof of flying arrows. Towards this
-sight he ran, and Taro dropping the lantern, it went
-out, and the Daimiyo awoke in his palace and Taro
-awoke in the tea house upon the futon, where he slept
-beside his father.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Another night stood Taro beneath the lantern which
-hung beyond his reach, but a beggar man who chanced
-to pass lifting him upon his shoulder, the child seized
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page132"></a>[pg 132]</span>
-the lantern and waved it in the air, and instantly before
-him appeared the flower-set path and the form of
-the Mousmé, more beautiful now and attired in a kimono
-of palest amber embroidered with silver bats.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“But the beggar man saw nothing but a purse of silver
-lying before him on the ground, and, stooping to
-pick it up, Taro fell from his shoulder, the lantern
-went out, and the beggar man awoke by the roadside
-where he had fallen asleep, and Taro on the futon beside
-his father.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Many times did Taro stand beneath the lantern of
-spring and many people raised him towards it, but
-never one of them saw what Taro saw, all their dreams
-being of things other than flowers and the time of
-spring.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“One night,” resumed Campanula after a pause,
-“Taro entered the garden, and beneath the lantern there
-stood a child, and the child implored him to lift him
-upon his shoulder, and being there the child seized the
-lantern and laughed aloud with pleasure at the vision
-of the roses, and the Mousmé, and the sea. But Taro
-saw nothing of this. He only saw a tea house where
-customers were waiting to be served, for Taro,” said
-Campanula, “Had now grown up, and was a man.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page133"></a>[pg 133]</span>
-She finished her little tale with three mournful notes
-drawn from the bass string of the <i>chamécen</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Humph!” said Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He tapped the ashes out of his pipe into the little
-receptacle of the tobacco-mono, refilled it, and lit it
-with a glowing ember.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Whilst he was thus engaged, Campanula rose and
-went to the open panel space leading on to the veranda.
-He heard her addressing some one in her low, sweet
-voice, then there was a pause, then she spoke again as
-if in answer to some remark, then she returned.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Blind man,” said Campanula, putting the <i>chamécen</i>
-away.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I heard nobody,” said Mac, looking up as he
-finished lighting his pipe. “What did you say? Blind
-man? Was it he you were speaking to?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes; he said he had come from a great way, and
-he looked oh, so ugly and tired! He has gone to the
-back entrance, and they will give him food.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It’s these blessed paper houses,” said Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“They either swallow a sound or magnify it, so’s
-you can’t hear yourself speak if a man sneezes in the
-next room.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He smoked for a while, and then rose to go.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page134"></a>[pg 134]</span>
-“There!” said Campanula, as she too rose. “He’s
-gone away again down the path towards the gate.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’ll just follow him,” said Mac, “and see what he’s
-like.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He bade Campanula good night and departed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The gate was closed, and there was no one on the
-garden path; no one on the hill path either, he found
-as he descended it slowly, peering through the gloom
-before him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It’s dom queer!” muttered Mac to himself as he
-reached the street. “I’d have staked my life she was
-talking to herself.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He felt vaguely uneasy, and thought of returning.
-Then he decided not. The path looked gloomy and mysterious
-viewed from down below, and its descent without
-meeting any one had already given him a slight
-attack of the “creeps.”</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page135"></a>[pg 135]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XVI</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">THE PHILOSOPHY OF EVIL</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Dinner was served in the Du Telles’ private
-room. Channing dined with them—the man who
-had informed Jane of Leslie’s whereabouts—a young,
-clean shaven man, member of the Shanghai Jockey Club
-and practically head of the great silk firm of Channing,
-Matheson &amp; Co.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At dessert Jane asked Leslie’s permission to tell of
-Campanula’s finding. Leslie at first demurred. No one
-knew anything about it except the far-away folk in
-Nikko and the secretive Japanese police. It seemed
-scarcely fair to Campanula to give the tale away, but
-at last he consented, for George du Telle had eaten and
-drunk himself into a state of torpor. He was staring at
-a pineapple before him with a flushed face, from which
-protruded a great cigar, and as for Channing he was
-off to Shanghai next day. So Jane told the story, and
-Channing listened.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, what do you think?” said Jane when she had
-finished her tale.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page136"></a>[pg 136]</span>
-“I never think about these matters,” said Channing,
-“I simply accept them. My dear lady, were you to live
-a long time in the East you would come to believe in
-things that Western people would rank as nursery tales.
-The Tokyo fire-walkers can walk barefoot over a bed
-of live charcoal as thick as a mattress. I have seen them.
-How do they do it? I don’t know.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It is very curious how the Western people, Christians,
-and so forth, treat the unknown. They look upon
-it as the unknowable. The Easterns don’t. I had a missionary
-man in at my office the other day over at Shanghai
-subscription hunting. I gave him what he wanted,
-and then, without scarcely saying ‘Thank you,’ he
-asked me did I believe in God. I asked him did he believe
-in the devil. He said ‘Yes.’ I asked him did
-he believe in devils, and he said ‘No.’ I asked him did he
-believe in the Bible. He said ‘Yes.’ Then I recalled to
-his mind the story of the Gadarene swine, and his reply
-was that times are changed since then. Then I suppose,
-I said, all the devils are dead? He walked away in a
-huff—with my check in his pocket, though.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Now the juggler man”—turning to Leslie—“may
-have been chivied to death by devils just as the Gadarene
-swine were chased into the sea—who knows?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Of course it may have been that his madness, if he
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page137"></a>[pg 137]</span>
-were mad, took an acute turn, who knows? But I have
-lived a good time in the East, and I am very well assured
-of this, that there are men here hand in glove with
-evil. I have seen things done in China, and for money
-too, that could not possibly have been done by trickery,
-and could not, I think, have been done by permission
-of the powers of Good. I’m not what you call a Christian,
-and what’s more, I think the Christian religion
-has done a great deal of harm—not to speak of other
-what you call ‘religions’—Am I wearying you, Mrs.
-du Telle?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Not in the least; please go on.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“In this way. It has robbed us of our terror of evil.
-It paints a vague devil that no man really believes in.
-Now take that much-read book, ‘The Sorrows of Satan,’
-where the Devil sits down and plays the piano and sings
-a song.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I thought it was a guitar he played,” said Jane.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, a guitar; it’s all the same. People read that
-with a grave face. He’s quite a good sort and so forth.”
-Channing paused for a moment and gazed reflectively
-at the wine in his glass, took a sip and went on: “Don’t
-you think the thousands of people who read that stuff,
-and admire it, must have lost all sense of the horrible
-thing that evil is? The sense that evil is a reality, a
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page138"></a>[pg 138]</span>
-thing to fill us with the wildest horror if one could only
-appreciate it, a very real thing, and a very determined
-thing, and a thing all black; yet we get people playing
-in fancy with, and even laughing about, this horror.
-And writers painting the cuttle-fish center of it as a
-semi-sentimental idiot capable of assuming evening
-clothes and talking twaddle, or criticizing plays as he
-does in Satan Montgomery’s poem. We don’t play with
-a thing we loathe even in fancy. But we—I mean Christians—play
-with the idea of the devil as if it were a
-poodle dog. The truth is that Christians don’t fear the
-Power of Evil, they fear the Power of Good. They
-praise him, propitiate and worship him in a most fulsome
-manner, and say they love him. I tell you this for a
-fact that no man can love good who does not abhor
-evil, and you can’t abhor a thing that you play with.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Do you abhor evil, Mr. Channing?” asked Jane.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Honestly, I do. Any one with eyes and the capacity
-for thought who lives in China <i>must</i>.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Then you must love good?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“One does not ‘love’ the sun, one worships it, so
-to speak—but this is all very strange my talking like
-this; my business in life is mainly silk and racehorses.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“’Scuse me,” said George du Telle, who was swaying
-slightly in his chair, the gone-out cigar still stuck
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page139"></a>[pg 139]</span>
-in the side of his mouth, his face bulged and red, and
-his eye a fixity. “’Scuse me.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“One moment, George—Well, I think, Mr. Channing,
-there are worse Christians in the world than you are.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Perhaps there are worse men, but I don’t claim to
-be a Christian. Only a man who recognizes fearfully the
-existence of evil as well as good.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“’Scuse me,” said George du Telle, speaking loudly
-now as if he were calling a servant or railway porter.
-“I’m not going to have this sort of thing at my table.
-<i>I’m</i> a Christian, brought up a Christian, die one. ’M
-not going to—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“George!” said his wife in a mild voice, but a voice
-very steady and full of command.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Christian, who had raised himself in his chair,
-subsided.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane rose from the table.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Shall we go into the drawing-room and have some
-music?” she said. “You sing, Dick—or used to.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As they passed to the drawing-room she said to Channing:
-“Did I tell you the mark my cousin Dick made—you
-know what I mean—was the Christian emblem?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“My dear lady,” said Channing, “I especially dread
-hurting another person’s religious feelings, and I, what
-am I? Just a man who thinks his own thoughts, but—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page140"></a>[pg 140]</span>
-“Well?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, if there were anything in it at all, may it not
-be that the cause of the disturbance was the fact that
-he touched him?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“How is that?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“You have never touched the wire in connection with
-a running dynamo?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“No.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“No,” said Channing, “for if you had you would
-not be here. The metaphor is a bad one. I only mean to
-say that the touch of a stick or a hand may disturb the
-play of great forces with most surprising results.”</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page141"></a>[pg 141]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XVII</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">THE HOUSE BY NIGHT</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was late when Leslie left the hotel. The moon
-was rising over Nagasaki, and he required no
-lamp to light him up the hill path leading to the
-house.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In the veranda he sat down to rest a moment and
-pull off his boots. The landscape garden, looking very
-antique in the moonlight, lay before him, the moon
-lighting its tiny hills and melancholy groves with the
-same particular care that presently he would bestow on
-the forests of Scindia and the Himalayas. On one of
-its verdurous swards lay a mark. It was the mark of
-Jane du Telle’s footstep imprinted on Campanula’s
-garden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He sat for a while in thought, then he unlatched a
-panel with a sort of gridiron-shaped key, then he
-searched in his pocket for matches, and found he had
-none.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page142"></a>[pg 142]</span>
-Determining to grope his way up and go to bed by
-moonlight, he closed and fastened the panel, leaving himself
-in darkness, caught his toe against an hibachi, left
-as if on purpose for him to tumble over, swore, knocked
-himself against a screen, which fell crash on Sweetbriar
-San, the household cat, who had once made part of the
-Fir-cone, Plum-blossom, Moon, and Snow ministry, and
-the intelligent animal, conceiving that robbers had entered,
-rushed wildly round and round in the dark till a
-panel slid back revealing Pine-breeze with a wan and
-weary smile on her face, and an andon or night lantern
-in her hand. She handed Leslie a candle and box of
-matches, and, still smiling, slid back, closing the panel
-as she went, like a figure in a trick toy, Sweetbriar San
-bristling and glowering on her shoulder like a fiend.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The upper part of the House of the Clouds was
-divided by panels into a passage and three rooms. One
-for Leslie, one for the Mousmés, and the third for
-Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Pine-breeze, with her arm full of towels, or what not,
-would often come into Leslie’s bedroom through the wall.
-He might be in his bath, he might be—anything, it was
-all the same to Pine-Breeze, she was thinking of her
-duties, not of him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">One night, long ago, he had awakened in the arms of
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page143"></a>[pg 143]</span>
-Mother Fir-cone, who was jibbering with fright. There
-was a mosquito-net between them, for she had rushed
-through the wall, and literally flung herself upon him,
-tearing the mosquito-net from its attachments. I do not
-wonder at her fright. Also San was in eruption, and
-a fearful earthquake was roaring and billowing under
-Nagasaki.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Several times had the Mousmés rushed into his room
-all clinging together, and crying “Dorobo!” (Robbers).
-Robbers had tried to burgle the house twice, in
-fact. He had shot one the second time, and they never
-came again. Yet he always slept with a Smith and Wesson
-convenient, for a Japanese robber is a business man,
-without a heart, but with a desire for plunder keen as
-the edge of a sword.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie’s bedroom was a very bare apartment, furnished
-mostly with a nothing. A futon and pile of pillows—he
-had tried the makura or Japanese pillow, but given it
-up in disgust—under a mosquito-net, a wash-stand, a
-stick-rack, and some pegs to hang clothes on, constituted
-the remainder of the furniture. The window was a wide
-open space crossed by lattice slats, through which the
-moon was now shining, her light partly intercepted by
-the dance of a cherry bough waving in the wind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie undressed and got into bed. Seen through the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page144"></a>[pg 144]</span>
-blue gauze of a mosquito-net, the room had a character
-all its own.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The House of the Clouds by night was not the place
-for a person afflicted with insomnia. There were so
-many noises only waiting to tell strange tales to the
-strained ear. Tales of mystery and exaggeration. Lying
-awake you would hear some one leaning close against
-the attenuated house wall; it was the wind. And now,
-a scratching sound as of a panther trying to commit a
-burglary; it was the wind; and now a whisper like the
-whisper of a lover to his mistress—or maybe of a robber
-to his mate; it was the wind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the owl sitting on the roof, staring with saucer
-eyes at the moon, would give one low, whistling cry,
-and his mate beyond somewhere, would make cautious
-answer.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then “tap, tap, tap.” It would be the wind—making
-the skeleton finger of a dead Samurai out of a loose
-lattice.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then a thunder of cats and a yell on the veranda
-roof, and the drowsy one, just off to goblin land with
-the dead Samurai, would be brought up all standing,
-and half rise for a boot, or a boot-jack, or anything
-hurlable, and sink back with a sigh, remembering that
-he was in Japan.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page145"></a>[pg 145]</span>
-The wind played upon the House of the Clouds just
-as a maestro plays on a fiddle, but with a more distressing
-result. Sometimes of an autumn or winter night
-you might have sworn the place was surrounded by a
-company of old Japanese ghosts escaped from the
-clutches of Emma O[1] and requestful of succor and
-safety.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">[Footnote 1: The Guardian of the Buddhistic hells.]</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie could not sleep. This eruption of his past into
-the present disturbed him deeply.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had been getting acclimatized, losing little by
-little that horrible sense of exile and home-sickness that
-had driven him once across half the world to London,
-and now it was all coming back.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And she was married to that little beast, and, worst
-of all, she seemed content.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">For eight years he had looked upon her as a thing
-dead to him, and now she had returned with sevenfold
-power, for she brought the past with her. The golden
-past, golden despite that dour father, Colonel Leslie of
-Glenbruach, that just man unacquainted with folly. She
-brought the river in spate and the leaping salmon, the
-heather-scented wind from the purple hills, Glenbruach
-in the midst of a world of snow, the ripple of the mountain
-burn and the faint reek of peat.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page146"></a>[pg 146]</span>
-Worse than all these, she brought herself. She was
-the same spiritually and mentally as the slim girl of
-long ago—a slip of a girl straight as a wand and as
-full of laughter and movement and brightness as a mountain
-brook.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But materially she had vastly altered. She was now
-a woman, divinely formed, a creature appealing to every
-sensual fiber in a man’s nature.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And George du Telle owned all this!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie, I daresay you have perceived, was a man who
-did not take what one may call a dry-light view of
-things, past or present, when they had relation to himself;
-as a matter of fact, he saw the shortcomings of
-others tremendously clearly. The shortcomings of his
-father, of Bloomfield the lawyer, of the Sydney
-bar loafers, of Danjuro the curio dealer, and of
-poor old sinful, grubbing M’Gourley—too clearly, in
-fact.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">His own shortcomings he acknowledged by word of
-mouth. He knew they were there, just as a merchant
-knows a bale of damaged and unsaleable goods is in his
-cellar, but he did not go down and rake them out and
-examine them carefully.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">No one ever had cared for him, he said, but he never
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page147"></a>[pg 147]</span>
-asked himself if he ever had permitted any one to
-care for him. With this outlook on life, a semi-poetical
-nature, and passions that slept long and deeply only to
-awake rejuvenated and with the strength of demons,
-he might before this have gone entirely to the devil,
-only for a lodger he had.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">An old Scotch ancestor lived with him. This “pairson,”
-who had once worn a long upper lip and had been
-a writer to the signet, a just, hard, God-fearing, and
-straight man, had a chamber in a convolution of Leslie’s
-brain, where he sat—he, or his attenuated personality—twiddling
-his thumbs like a night watchman and waiting
-for alarms.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was this gentleman who had saved his descendant
-from the weak man’s form of suicide—drink.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He now came out in his old carpet slippers and read his
-descendant a lecture on the text: “Thou shalt not lust
-after another man’s wife.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And he spoke hard and strong, taking almost entirely
-the “wumman’s” side of the question; pointing out that
-society, as we know it, imperfect as it may be, is ruled
-by a number of laws whose aim is the common weal and
-the individual’s comfort and happiness.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He pointed out that the life of a “wumman” is composed,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page148"></a>[pg 148]</span>
-not of grand passions and Italian opera scenes,
-but of a hundred thousand trifles, each one insignificant
-enough, yet each helping to form that grand masterpiece,
-a pure woman’s life.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">That a woman might be pure in mind, even if married
-to a “red-headed runt” like George du Telle. That
-if that was so she was a happy woman, and that if a
-man loved her, loved he never so madly, it would be a
-strange expression of that love to blast her happiness,
-and soil her soul.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It would not be love, but lust—the passion of those
-devils which Mr. Channing had hinted at that evening,
-those people of the night who slumber not nor sleep.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Having finished, he went into his chamber and shut
-the door.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And Leslie lay reflecting on his words, also on the
-words of Channing.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Evil made manifest. The face of the creature on the
-Nikko road came before his mental eye. That was evil
-made manifest. He had seen the thing. He had known
-the devil by hearsay since a child. He had heard the
-“Deevil” thundered at from Scotch pulpits, tracts
-about the devil had been put into his hand; he had heard
-people make laughing remarks about him: he was so
-familiar with the vague personality called Satan that
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page149"></a>[pg 149]</span>
-he felt no interest in him, neither interest nor aversion.
-Never a shudder.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But that thing in the sky of the opium dream, the
-music that had brought it—that, indeed, was evil painted
-by the hand of an artist; worth all the sermons ever
-thundered from pulpits, all the tracts ever printed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then his weary brain grew drowsy, and there strayed
-across it the fair figure of the Lost One, the very antithesis
-of all things evil.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Only last night before going to bed she had murmured
-a story half to herself, half to him, with her
-eyes fixed on the glowing embers of the hibachi, and he
-retold it to himself now to put himself to sleep.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was about the great battle between the beasts and
-the birds—the real reason why the owl was reduced to
-shame and forced to cover himself with night.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“And they came from the North and the South and
-the East and the West in flight, oh, many ri broad.
-The quails from the millet, the stork from the river,
-and from the pond the king-fisher, flashing like a blue
-jewel in the sunlight.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Then said the stork, who led all these people of
-the air:</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“‘Behold! we are all assembled but where tarries
-Sir Owl?’”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page150"></a>[pg 150]</span>
-“Then a sparrow made answer and said:</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“‘As I paused to rest on a cherry bough, for my
-wings be little though my heart is big, I heard Sir Owl
-in treasonable conversation with a rat. And said he,
-“Come forth from thy burrow, O Rat, that I may feast
-my eyes upon thee; and the empire of the beasts shall
-be thine, and also the empire of the birds.”’”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“And the voice of the Hidden One replied—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But what the Hidden One made answer, Leslie did
-not remember, for the artless story had lulled him to
-sleep.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page151"></a>[pg 151]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XVIII</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">MOSTLY ABOUT FLOWERS</p>
-
-<p class="indent">O Japan! Spring! Dawn! what an exquisite and
-roseate mystery surrounds the meeting of ye
-three!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Night, and the owls, and the ghosts, have vanished,
-day and the sparrows have come.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Up from Nagasaki rise the murmurs of life, mists
-are vanishing from the hills across the harbor, where
-the lateen sails of junks are rising to find the wind, and
-the sampans dart about like attenuated water-beetles.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The far, faint sound of a bugle from the man-of-war
-anchorage crosses the far, shrill crowing of a cock
-owned by Mr. Pinecape, the cobbler of Jinriksha
-Street—two rapiers of sound crossing each other in the
-now brilliant air. Then the noises of the day deepen,
-and the whirr of the cicala mixes with all sorts of faint
-domestic noises, a <i>mélange</i> from which the ear can
-pick out notes just as the eye points in an impressionist’s
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page152"></a>[pg 152]</span>
-picture: the clatter of a pair of clogs, the call
-of a watercress seller, the clash of a tin pan dropped
-somewhere, and then cock-crow after cock-crow from
-far and near, some loud and defiant, others defiant
-enough but faint, as if coming through a pin-pole
-half a mile away.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The kitchen of the House of the Clouds is a square
-apartment, with no matting on the floor, and just now
-flooded with sunshine.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie, in the early days, had caused to be constructed
-by a stranded ship’s carpenter, a solid English kitchen-table
-of white pine. He wanted to give the man a job,
-and he thought the thing would prove useful; and
-it did.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">To begin with, it smelt deliciously, and Mother Fir-cone
-amidst her avocations would take a sniff at it now
-and then, just as a snufftaker takes a pinch of snuff;
-she would also sit under it preparing sweet potatoes,
-stringing beans or what not; but as for using it as a
-table, such an idea never occurred to her. In fact, she
-had no ideas at all about a table, and was quite convinced
-that this gift of Leslie San’s was a sort of pine-wood
-temple, constructed for the purpose of being sat
-under.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was also a place of refuge in time of earthquakes,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page153"></a>[pg 153]</span>
-when the whole household, saving Leslie and Campanula,
-got under it for fear of the roof falling. It received
-the title of “Honorable,” and was altogether a thing
-very much respected, and even vaguely beloved.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Under it this morning sat Lotus-bud, preparing fish
-for breakfast; on it (these new Mousmés used it as a
-shelf) reposed various paper boxes containing eggs
-and groceries, weird-looking boxes suggesting that a
-conjurer was about to commence operations, not a cook.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The sun laid a great square of light like a burning
-mat upon the floor near the table, and on her knees in
-the center of this mat of light sat Pine-breeze cleaning
-an hibachi. Cherry-blossom, the third Mousmé, squatted
-right before Pine-breeze doing nothing.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">From under the table was escaping a faint blue haze
-of smoke. Lotus-bud had just taken a few whiffs from
-a tiny pipe.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They all smoked, these Mousmés, pinches of stuff
-like chopped hay in pipe bowls the size of a child’s
-thimble; but Campanula had never acquired the art,
-though all her friends were ardent tobacco lovers.
-Leslie San had said “No,” and that was enough.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As Pine-breeze cleaned the hibachi and made it spick
-and span, she was telling the others a yarn, mostly to
-do with her doings when down the town marketing last
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page154"></a>[pg 154]</span>
-evening. How she had bought this or that, what had
-been said to her, and so forth—a tale simple enough,
-but a miracle of genius considering the tongue in which
-it was told. For in the Japanese there are but two parts
-of speech, the noun and the verb; these, and splinters
-and scraps of broken-up nouns and verbs, which, in the
-form of particles and suffixes, help to shore up the
-meaning and pin together the common sense, have to
-do all the talking.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The learner of Japanese feels at first like a person
-condemned to eat gravy soup with chop-sticks. Oh, for
-even a pronoun! Imagine talking to a person without
-being able to use the word “You,” without being able to
-use the word “I”! Imagine the horrible tortures of a
-Japanese egoist on his death-bed making, or attempting
-to make, his dying speech!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But there are no egoists in Japan—can’t be with
-such a language—and there are no purse-proud snobs,
-or if there are, they hide themselves very closely.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">For self-depreciation is the key-note of Japanese conversation
-and manners.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">So she goes on with her story, in a voice sweet to
-listen to as the ripple of a mountain brook, and Lotus-bud
-listens under the table, fish-knife held in air, for the
-tale is reaching an interesting point.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page155"></a>[pg 155]</span>
-Then Campanula’s voice is heard speaking to Sweetbriar
-San. She is coming to the kitchen to superintend
-things and—crack! the fish’s head is cut off, and three
-Mousmés are working like one.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula San is younger than any of these
-Mousmés, and she treats them like sisters, yet strangely
-enough, they do not encroach, but treat her as their mistress—a
-condition of things impossible in Europe, and
-presently, perhaps, impossible in Japan.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The sun has leapt now over the hills, and Leslie is
-heard moving upstairs. Pine-breeze claps her hands with
-horror, and rises to her feet: she has forgotten to fill
-his bath.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She goes to do so, and Campanula wanders out the
-front way to the balcony, where she pauses to gaze at
-the azaleas, shading her eyes with her hand.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The fire is spreading; another crimson blossom is almost
-unfolded, and others are soon to be born. Every
-spring the coming of the azaleas is an event in Campanula’s
-life.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A wealth of crimson azaleas is one of her first recollections.
-Away beyond that crimson fire of flowers lies the
-land of her earliest childhood. The house with the plum
-tree, very vague indeed; the father who hit things with
-a hammer, still vaguer; the sugar-candy dragon lost,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page156"></a>[pg 156]</span>
-and so miraculously recovered; the little boy who went
-to sleep in the snow—or was it in a field of lilies?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Her real life, it seemed to her, began as she was
-reaching for a crimson blossom one day in a field of
-crimson blossoms, and was suddenly caught up sky-high
-by a thing taller than a tree, who did something
-to the side of her neck, just under her left ear, that was
-not hurtful or particularly unpleasant, but which,
-nevertheless, made her scream.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then, behold, she saw that the thing was a man,
-though in strange clothes, but he did not frighten her
-in the least, and she gave him her hand at once, and
-with confidence, whereupon he took her in his arms and
-carried her to a road where stood another man, all
-black, even to his hands, but his face was white, and
-he had a red beard.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then this man, who was also unfrightful, began to
-make her remember things that she had for the moment
-forgotten. To remember her father, and the fact that
-she had lost her way, and other things too, including
-the errant dragon. He made her remember that she
-wished to get back to her father, but she did not remember
-this so very clearly. In fact she was quite content
-to go with these two men over the hills and far
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page157"></a>[pg 157]</span>
-away, feeling sure she was safe with them, went they
-where they would.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The scenes on the road to Nikko she remembered: a
-funny man away in the distance dancing amongst trees,
-and the entry into Nikko borne sky-high above all the
-other children, the Tea House of the Tortoise, and—grandest
-remembrance of all!—the miraculous awakening
-with the long-lost dragon in her hand. He was so
-full of mystery that she never had even dreamt of eating
-him, and she still possessed him. He was upstairs in
-the drawer of a lacquered cabinet, cracked, it is true,
-by changes of temperature and warped in the back, for
-age touched all things, even sugar-candy dragons.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then there was her life at the House of the Clouds,
-the mission school; rainy days when she splashed
-through the mud under a broad paper umbrella; fine
-days when she flew kites with M’Gourley San, played
-hop-scotch with Kiku San and Kitsune Ken, with all
-sorts of other Sans, mostly with shaved heads.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This was Campanula’s childhood as she remembered
-it. But as you cannot remember your childhood till you
-have stepped over the line where the child becomes a
-boy or girl, Campanula had not begun remembering
-it till about six months ago.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page158"></a>[pg 158]</span>
-Up till then M’Gourley San, and Leslie San, and
-Sweetbriar San, and a host of other honorable people
-surrounded her, one as important as the other, Mac
-perhaps more important than any.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then all at once—in a week or so, to be more precise—a
-host of new ideas came to her, bothersome, formless
-ideas, as ungraspable yet as insistent as the great Boyg
-himself.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the ideas began to take form. It was in the
-garden one day. Her eyes fell on one of the flowerless
-azalea bushes, and she remembered how it had been
-covered with crimson flowers last year, and how beautiful
-they were, beautiful above every other flower, even
-the lordly peony, who seems to hold the whole glory
-and mystery of summer in the gloom of his splendid
-heart. And her mind wandered back from spring to
-spring, led by the crimson blossoms, till she called to
-mind the valley where Leslie had found her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was he who had found her wandering alone there,
-and he had picked her up.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had never forgotten the valley; it had lain in the
-distance in her mind, but she had no use for it till now.
-Now it came to her in all its splendor, and explained to
-her why the azalea was the flower she loved above the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page159"></a>[pg 159]</span>
-peony, the lotus, or even that glorious mystery, the
-dragon-spume chrysanthemum.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Flowers are so bound up with the lives of the children
-of Japan that they have a meaning and speak a language
-to them almost unknown to us.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">So Campanula sat immersed in her dream, and Leslie,
-who had swung a hammock between two cherry trees
-and was lying in it, little knew what was going on in
-the small head of the person seated near him on the
-square of matting. She had been doing some needlework,
-but her work had dropped in her lap, her hands
-were folded, and her eyes were fixed on the azalea bush.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Next day, or perhaps the day after, for a man’s perceptions
-in these matters are sometimes dull, he noticed
-a change in her. He could not say what it was, but the
-submissive and humble person, the very fact of whose
-existence was a theme for perpetual self-excuse, had
-somehow changed. She was just as submissive and humble,
-but there was a subdued joyousness in her manner
-when excusing her existence as though she thought
-that somehow it might not be such a frightful crime
-after all, and perhaps capable of condonation some day.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then, when he called for his cigar-case Pine-breeze
-did not appear with it, though Pine-breeze loved to be
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page160"></a>[pg 160]</span>
-the carrier of it, because it was a foreign thing, and the
-leather smelt deliciously.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula brought it <i>and</i> a match-box, a thing that
-Pine-breeze’s flighty little mind nearly always forgot.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A few days before, Leslie had possessed three servants
-and what he called an adoptive daughter. Then he suddenly
-found himself in the possession of four servants,
-one of them more attentive than the other three put
-together. He put it down to the fact that her housewifely
-instincts were awakening, and as the change in
-her wrought for his comfort and ease he did not speculate
-on the cause as he would have done had the reverse
-been the case.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Women are curious creatures, as the philosophic Mac
-once said. But on the whole, in their way, I think men
-are just as strange.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Kite-flying had now been put aside with other childish
-things, and the tiny hands that had grasped the
-sugar-candy dragon were now preparing to grasp the
-real business of life: a business whose main objective
-was the happiness and comfort of “He who is taller
-than the tallest of trees.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Pine-breeze, Lotus-bud, and Cherry-blossom. Looking
-at them in a row, you might have thought them
-pretty much alike, as far as mind and spirit were concerned,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page161"></a>[pg 161]</span>
-just as three sleek, well-groomed ponies may
-seem identical—until you try to drive them.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was not till Campanula took the reins that she
-found the three underlings were each afflicted with a
-special infirmity, or rather special infirmities.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Pine-breeze was such a scatterbrain that if you sent
-her down town in a hurry for eggs she would, as likely
-as not, dawdle home in an hour with tomatoes and some
-wild tale picked up on the way, pleasant and interesting
-enough, no doubt, but useless for the purpose of
-making an omelette. She would leave Leslie’s bath unprepared,
-and then, sitting in her own tub, would clap
-her hands with horror at the remembrance of her own
-forgetfulness, and as likely as not attempt to rectify
-her error attired in a bath towel; and she would smash
-things—crockery ware understood—with almost the
-facility of your Western parlor-maid. To make up for
-these bad points, she was literary above her class; had
-a passion for flowers above her fellows, and had composed
-a poem about a grasshopper.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Lotus-bud was the cook; her infirmity was weakness.
-She would sit and listen to Pine-breeze’s idle chatter and
-let the bread burn. Pine-breeze could work and talk,
-but Lotus-bud could not even work and listen. So she
-would sit with her hands in her lap, listening. She made
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page162"></a>[pg 162]</span>
-a splendid audience but a somewhat indifferent cook.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As for Cherry-blossom, she was purely and simply an
-idler, a lotus-eater, a hobboe in the guise of a butterfly.
-A thing so fragile and pretty, so perfectly dressed
-and so seemingly boneless, that you felt to expect work
-from her would be absurd; which, indeed, it would have
-been.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">For she never worked, she dreamed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She was enamored of a riksha man, and she would
-go out and meet him under the lilacs at the gate, and
-then vanish with him to goodness knows where for the
-evening.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was the strangest natural phenomenon, this lover
-of Cherry-blossom’s, for he was always changing in
-size, and his face was never scarcely twice alike, and
-his number—rikshas are numbered just like hansom
-cabs—was</p>
-
-<div class="poem">
-<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i2"> 255.</span><br>
-<span class="i4">66.</span><br>
-<span class="i4">7.</span><br>
-<span class="i2"> 103.</span><br>
-<span class="i0">and 42.</span><br>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="indent">At least Pine-breeze, who was an observant body, got
-that far in her notation, and then gave it up as a bad
-job.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page163"></a>[pg 163]</span>
-All these things, and more, Campanula had to cope
-with, and she did so with more or less success, gaining
-in her experience much that a girl of her age is supposed
-not to know, but losing nothing either in gentleness
-or modesty.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She brought Pine-breeze to a vague sense of the
-wrongfulness of flighty ways, and with her own little
-hands she made new bread to replace a batch of loaves
-burnt to cinders by Lotus-bud (bread that gave Leslie
-indigestion for a week).</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As for Cherry-blossom, she told her, missionary fashion,
-that she would certainly go to hell and be burnt
-like Lotus-bud’s loaves if she did not stop vanishing
-down town with riksha men; and Cherry-blossom ground
-her nose on the matting and wept, and promised reformation,
-and went out two nights afterwards with No.
-173 to a grand blaze up at the O Suwa temple, where
-she devoured candied beans and comfits, and bowed before
-graven images, and had a general good time with
-a host of “heathen” people like herself.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Cherry-blossom’s rikshas never cost her anything.
-Love lent them to her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie’s socks up to this had always been vanishing,
-and the ones that remained, were always, or generally,
-in holes. The Mousmés said it must be the mice. Campanula,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page164"></a>[pg 164]</span>
-however, found Pine-breeze one morning cleaning
-a kettle with a silk dress-sock. It seemed silk socks
-at half a guinea a pair gave a polish nothing else would
-give.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The kettles were duller after that, but the depredations
-of the mice ceased.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Having looked at the promise of the azaleas, she
-went in to see how things were getting on.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Presently she and Leslie were seated at breakfast
-opposite to one another on the floor. Leslie, attired in
-a suit of faultlessly fitting pale gray tweed, looked
-much more like an Indian cavalry officer on leave than
-an umbrella merchant, as he called himself. He had
-arranged to call for Jane du Telle at ten o’clock to take
-her out shopping; the gloomy thoughts of the night
-before, the effect of the opium, and the effect of the
-dream, had vanished.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was sipping his tea, and glancing over the <i>Japan
-Mail</i>, when Campanula interrupted him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What iss Dick?” she suddenly asked; she prolonged
-her s’s in the faintest degree, difficult to reproduce
-in print, for there is no type capable of representing
-an s and a quarter.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What is what?” asked Leslie, lowering the <i>Japan
-Mail</i>, and staring at his pretty <i>vis-â-vis</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page165"></a>[pg 165]</span>
-“Dick—she called you Dick.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Who?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“She who gave you the flower,” said Campanula,
-lowering ever so little her head.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Which flower?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“The one in your coat—yesterday.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh,” said Leslie, remembering a bluebell that Jane
-had plucked and given him as they went down hill the
-day before, and remembering also that George du Telle
-and Campanula had been walking behind and must have
-seen the transaction. “She calls me Dick because that
-is short for my name.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Dick,” murmured she, in a meditative voice.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She seemed turning the name over in her mind. Tasting
-it mentally, so to speak.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“She is an old friend of mine,” continued Leslie. “I
-knew her, Campanula, before you were born, away over
-in another part of the world, where half the year it
-snows and where the wind blows just as hard as it does
-in Nippon, but the wind never brings flowers as it does
-here.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“No flowers,” she murmured, incapable of imagining
-such a land.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Only flowers like that blue one, and wild roses and
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page166"></a>[pg 166]</span>
-a few others, but you never see camellia trees growing
-by the roads, nor lotus flowers on the ponds.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Nor azaleas?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Nor azaleas—at least, as they grow here.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A shadow crossed the open doorway.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“M’Gourley San,” said Campanula, who was seated
-facing the door.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Dinna rise,” said M’Gourley. “I’ve had ma breakfast,
-and I’ll juist tak a seat on the verandy till y’ve
-done.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’m done,” said Leslie, forgetful of grammar, and
-rising up, he came out, the <i>Japan Mail</i> under his arm,
-and a briar root in his hand.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They talked business a while, and then Leslie said:</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I say.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Weel?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“You remember that woman I told you of on the
-Nikko road?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Which wumman?” asked Mac, taking up a pebble
-from the path just by the veranda, and shying it at
-one of the hills of the landscape garden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Girl, I meant; you remember the girl I told
-you of?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh ay; the lass that flung you ower board—what
-of her?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page167"></a>[pg 167]</span>
-“She’s here with her husband.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Whaur?” said Mac, turning his head as though he
-fancied Jane and her spouse were camping out in the
-garden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“She’s staying at the Nagasaki Hotel with her husband.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Whoat’s their names?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Du Telle.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac doubled himself up for a moment, alleging for
-reason a touch of the stomach-ache, as a matter of fact
-it was a touch of internal laughter.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The day before yesterday he had found the newly-arrived
-George du Telle in the smoke-room of the Nagasaki
-Hotel, stood him drinks, and conducted him to
-Danjuro.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There they had saki and pipes, and George du Telle
-had bought a Pickford’s van-full of rubbish, and parted
-with a fat green check on Cox’s. An exceedingly fat
-check written with one eye shut, it is true, but quite
-in order.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I dined with them.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ye whoat!” cried Mac, coming back from a vision
-of the victorious Danjuro doing the cake-walk amidst
-his bronzes and lacquers, kimono pinched up on either
-side between finger and thumb, his nose in the air, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page168"></a>[pg 168]</span>
-on his face an assumption of stiff and haughty pride
-enough to kill one with laughter.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Weel! weel!” said Mac, addressing the hills of the
-landscape garden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What are you weel-weeling about?” asked Leslie
-irritably.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I am not a puncteelious man,” said Mac, still addressing
-the hills, “in the small concairns of life, but
-if a lassie had treated me same’s she you, <i>I’d a seen her
-dammit before I’d ha’ dined wi’ her</i>.” He shouted the
-last words, and brought his big fist down on his knee
-with a bang.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Don’t shout,” said Leslie, “and make an ass of
-yourself. We didn’t quarrel when we parted; we parted
-good friends. She didn’t want to marry me—well, that
-was her look-out.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I wish they hadna’ come,” said Mac gloomily.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What on earth is the matter with you <i>now</i>?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’ve seen the waurld,” said the Gloomy One, “and
-I’ve seen wummen. And I’ve seen <i>her</i>—saw her in the
-smoke-room—” He stopped.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What smoke-room?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Of the hotel. I was havin’ a crack wi’ her husband
-day-fore yesterday, and in she come to speak a word
-to him; and I know wummen—and, weel, I know, fixed
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page169"></a>[pg 169]</span>
-between that chap with a head like a blazin’ whin-bush
-and you, which way she’ll run.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I wish you wouldn’t be such a fool,” said Leslie,
-now really annoyed and therefore keeping himself in
-check; “she’s nothing to me.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac turned, and under his bushy, half-grizzled eyebrows
-stared in Leslie’s face, and Leslie did not support
-his gaze, but turned away irritably, and flung stones
-at a brown hawk that was circling in the air before them.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac got up, tapped the ashes out of his pipe, and
-made off.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“See ye the morn?” he called back as he got to the
-gate.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Maybe,” said Leslie, looking at his watch and rising
-to go into the house.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He went down at ten, and shortly after his departure,
-out came Campanula, a basket in her hand and sandals
-on her feet, for the weather was dry. She came along
-the path towards the cherry trees, examining the ground
-and the interstices of the bushes.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At last she saw what she wanted, a bluebell.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She plucked it with tender care and put it in her
-basket, then she saw another and treated it the same,
-and another; so went she on till it became perfectly
-plain that her object was not gardening, or the gathering
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page170"></a>[pg 170]</span>
-of a bunch of flowers, but the extermination of
-every bluebell on the premises.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When the place had been cleared and the basket was
-half full of victims, the question came how to dispose
-of them. Impossible to throw them away or burn them;
-she would as soon, almost, have treated children so.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She stood at the gate undecided, till suddenly there
-came the solution of the problem, and opening the
-gate she passed down the lilac-shaded path to Nagasaki.
-On the way she saw more bluebells and stopped to pluck
-them, so that when the lane at the bottom was reached
-the basket was nearly full.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In a rabbit-hutch of a house off the lane lay a
-tragedy, or the remains of one, in the form of O Toku
-San, a poor work-girl. She had loved a man, and he
-had not even betrayed her in the ordinary way. He had
-simply changed his mind, and gone off with another
-girl.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She tried to kill herself, not in the native way, but
-with some abominable sort of foreign poison—Oxalic
-acid, most likely; but they saved her life, and she lay
-in the hospital nearly a month with her hands tied,
-to prevent her trying to kill herself again.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When she came out of the hospital she made no more
-attempts to obtain peace. She was in the clutches of
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page171"></a>[pg 171]</span>
-pernicious anæmia, and she now lay dying, a despairing
-shadow, the ghost of what had once been a pretty
-and happy girl.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula turned to the tiny house, and that day
-O Toku San had a whole silver yen to give to her
-mother on her return, and a bunch of freshly-gathered
-blue flowers to charm her eye: things to the dying
-better than all music and poetry, and far above the
-greatest masterpieces of art.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page172"></a>[pg 172]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XIX</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">THE STORK AND THE TORTOISE</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They were in the street running parallel with Jinrikisha
-Street, a street truly of the old time, narrow
-with the house-tops, when the houses had upper
-stories over-leaning the way.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane seemed fascinated by the contents of the little
-shops, that sold everything from cuttle-fish to paper
-lanterns. Shops that were, most of them, simply raised
-platforms, matted and roofed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Here abounded the tortoise-shell carvers, and the men
-who can make a netsuké to charm the eye out of anything:
-a knot of wood, a shark’s tooth, a useless bit of
-ivory.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’m going to buy things,” said Jane, looking with
-a lustful eye on the cheap, or seemingly cheap, curios
-exposed for sale in some of the shops: old bronze gongs,
-kettles, sword guards, broken crockery were carefully
-mended, lamps, such as the Chinese magician might have
-hawked at the back entrance of the palace of Aladdin,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page173"></a>[pg 173]</span>
-fans, trick toys, and tiny boxes for holding rouge; tobacco-monos
-and opium pipes, broken-down English
-umbrellas, lacquer trays, and a heap of other dust-traps
-utterly useless, and some of them not very ornamental.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“If you <i>will</i> waste your money,” said Leslie, “I’d
-advise you to come to Danjuro’s. We can get to it by
-this lane, and I won’t let him swindle you beyond the
-ordinary tourist pitch.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Very well,” said Jane, turning from a booth bearing
-this cabalistic inscription on its front, “Come
-rightin!”[2] “The things look pretty dusty, and I don’t
-see anything I very much want—I’d like to buy <i>that</i>,
-though.” She pointed to a mite in the colored kimono,
-playing battledore and shuttlecock in the gutter with
-another mite of its own size. “They seem so happy and
-jolly, these Japanese children, and clean, and I read
-somewhere they never give any trouble, or break things,
-or annoy people—Bless the child!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">[Footnote 2: I presume “Come right in!” was the artist’s intention.]</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A shuttlecock hit her a slap in the face, and the
-shuttlecock hitter laughed, and trotted after it, without
-any semblance of apology to his target.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“There’s another illusion shattered,” said Jane,
-wiping her face with her handkerchief.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Have you—” began Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page174"></a>[pg 174]</span>
-“What?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Any children?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“No,” said Jane; “I have not.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The stork on the tortoise, emblem of eternal life, and a
-“supposed” masterpiece of the great Miochin family
-of metal-workers, still stood on guard in the fore-front
-of Danjuro’s wares. It was the same stork that Leslie
-had seen five years ago—at least, in appearance. In
-reality it had been sold five or six times during the last
-five years.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The selling of the thing always brought forth Danjuro’s
-latent sense of humor, and could Danjuro the
-actor have seen his namesake at these supreme moments
-of trade, he would certainly have claimed him as a
-brother in art.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It would be an American woman, perhaps, in a blue
-veil, and with a smattering of knowledge picked up from
-artistic books about Japan. Mac would be the go-between,
-translating the desires of the female into
-Japanese for the edification of Dan, who spoke
-English, by the way, as well as Mac, and even, perhaps,
-better.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Sell it!” Danjuro would cry. “I would as soon
-think of selling my own mother. Tell her Augustness to
-ask of me anything else. It is a piece of true Miochin,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page175"></a>[pg 175]</span>
-owned by my father, and his father before him. It has
-always brought my family luck, etc.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">All of which M’Gourley would faithfully translate
-with the addition:</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“He’s the greatest auld scamp in the waurld; he’s
-only puttin’ up the price. Bide a wee, and let him simmer
-doon. It is not a true Miochin, but it’s a vara excellent
-imitation, made, mayhap, by some pupil of the Miochins.
-Would y’ be wullin’ to pay twanty poonds?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Blue-veiled One assenting, Mac and Danjuro
-would go for each other in Japanese, and after five minutes’
-ferocious wrangling, and five minutes more of interpretations,
-the thing would change hands at twenty-five
-pounds, to be replaced next day, or, at least, the day
-after the departure of the Blue-veiled One from Nagasaki,
-by its twin image. A man at Osaka made them by
-the gross, and he charged two pounds ten a-piece for
-them to the trade.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Fortunately, the dead know not the doings of the
-living, else would the artistic Miochin family be turning
-eternally in their uneasy graves, with the rapidity of
-spinning bobbins.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Danjuro came out with his usual profound salute and
-low hiss.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Hiss is perhaps not the proper word, for the sound
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page176"></a>[pg 176]</span>
-is made by the intake of air between closed teeth, and is
-intended to represent delight beyond words.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And, indeed, when Danjuro beheld M’Gourley entering
-with a client ready to be shorn, the sound came from
-him as no empty compliment, but as a natural expression
-of his true feelings.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was different as regards Leslie. Danjuro looked on
-Leslie with the nervous dread with which you or I might
-look upon a mischievous lunatic.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie had once nearly spoiled a bargain—a delightful
-bargain from the dealer’s point of view, a disgraceful
-swindle viewed by the cold light of English ethics.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">An English Member of Parliament had been trepanned
-into paying two hundred pounds for a pair of vases
-worth, maybe, twenty. Mac in his jubilation boasted before
-Leslie, and Leslie had “put the stopper on,” caused
-the money to be returned, with a note to the effect that
-the jars were now discovered (from some documents
-connected with them) to be imitation, and not as represented
-when bought.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Member of Parliament, instantly concluding that
-<i>this</i> was a swindle, and that he had obtained priceless
-articles by accident, refused to accept the money, or
-return the jars.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And thus was he done brown on his own spit, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page177"></a>[pg 177]</span>
-basted by his own right hand, for in his book of travels,
-“Amongst the Japs,” he mentioned the transaction, and,
-worse still, sent a copy of the book to Danjuro, with the
-passage marked with blue pencil.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Dan read the passage with the aid of a pair of horn-rimmed
-spectacles, and with a face mirthless as a shovel.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But the soul in him bubbled. He could quite understand
-the Member of Parliament’s point of view, but
-Leslie’s was quite beyond his power to grasp.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Honesty for the sake of honesty, and without any
-ulterior reason, even Art for Art’s sake was more understandable
-than that.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">So he hissed without pleasure as he bowed before
-Leslie and Jane, imploring them to condescend to
-make the honorable entrance, and intimating that everything
-in the place was theirs.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane nodded to him, and looked round.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“There’s one of the monstrosities I told you of that
-George bought the other day,” said she, pointing to a
-bronze frog half as big as an ordinary coal-box. “Oh,
-look at <i>that</i>!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She pointed to a furious struggle in bronze between
-a man and a monster. The monster had opened its mouth
-to devour the man, and the man had caught it by the
-tongue, which he was tearing out.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page178"></a>[pg 178]</span>
-It was the climax of the fight, and the conclusion one
-could read in the triumphant ferocity of the man’s face—a
-thing to make one shudder.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Danjuro San,” said Leslie grimly, speaking in Japanese,
-whilst Jane gazed at the fighting group, “this
-is the lady whose husband you and M’Gourley San entertained
-the other day—the Red-headed One. She is a
-friend of mine, and I pray you to entertain her differently.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This is a vague interpretation of the Japanese for
-“This is the lady whose husband you swindled the other
-day, but if you play any of your tricks with <i>her</i>, I’ll
-make you sit up—see?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">To fight with a Japanese you must come to blows,
-for you can’t possibly do it in words properly. The
-old Japanese who made the language had no use
-for terms of abuse: swords were good enough for
-them.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’ll have that,” said Jane, suddenly seizing the fat
-baby, the size of a tangerine orange, done in ivory and
-engaged in feeding ivory ducks on top of a lacquer cabinet,
-“and the ducks. Tell him to send them to the
-hotel; you can fight with him about the price afterwards—and
-those two vases; and oh, that ivory Mousmé
-with the umbrella—isn’t she sweet! I don’t see anything
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page179"></a>[pg 179]</span>
-else I want. <i>You</i> have something, I want to make you
-a present.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I don’t want anything, I’m tired of curios.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, you’ll just have to want something, for I’m
-going to make you a present. I’ll give you this.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She took up a short sword in a carved ivory scabbard.
-On the ivory handle of it was figured a grimacing god,
-dancing apparently. She drew the blade, polished and
-razor-sharp, and then returned it to its sheath.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Take it; it will come in handy when those robbers
-you told us of last night at dinner come again.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I don’t want the thing; it’s unlucky to give knives.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It’s not a knife, it’s a sword!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“All right,” said Leslie, “anything for peace;” and
-he took a great sheet of rice paper from Danjuro and
-wrapped the thing carefully up.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Now,” said Jane, “I want something for langn-yappe,
-as they say in New Orleans—something thrown
-in.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Danjuro declared that the whole shop was hers to do
-what she liked with.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I don’t want the whole shop,” said Jane, “but I’ll
-have that.” She took possession of a tiny rose tree in
-the pot, a rose tree with blossoms the size of farthings.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Now come.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page180"></a>[pg 180]</span>
-“One moment,” said Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">His ear had caught a familiar sound. It came from
-the cellar where many of Danjuro’s goods were stowed;
-it was the voice of Mac, and it came up like the voice
-of the Hidden One in Campanula’s story. Mac evidently
-had a victim in the cellar. Leslie went to the cellar
-stairs and listened.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I would not let him see you’re wanting it. Juist
-assume a casual expreesion as if ye were na so vary
-carin’ whether ye got it or no’. He’ll be sure to tell ye
-it’s a piece o’ Miochin—it is <i>not</i>.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“How much do you think it’s worth?” (A burly
-English voice, suggestive of shepherd’s plaid trousers,
-a corporation, gold albert, and double chin.)</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“All of fifty pounds, but not a penny more, not a
-penny more. Show him the money; there’s not a Jap
-in Nagasaki can withstaund the sight of goud—or
-notes.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Look here, if you get it for forty, I’ll give you a
-ten per cent. commission.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Am no so very carin’ about commeesions; stull, as
-you offer it, I’ll not say ‘No.’”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The stork and tortoise were being sold again.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie turned away in disgust.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Come,” he said to Jane, “let’s go.” And they
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page181"></a>[pg 181]</span>
-passed out into the sunlit street, he carrying the
-parcel containing the sword, she the rose tree done
-up in rice paper pictured vaguely with the forms of
-storks.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“She has given him a wakizashi,” murmured Danjuro,
-and he retired into a corner to smoke a whiff or
-two of hay-colored tobacco, and think inscrutable
-thoughts, before addressing himself to the victim that
-Mac was preparing down in the cellar.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What shall we do now?” asked Jane when they were
-in the street.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie thought for a moment.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’ll tell you,” said he. “We’ll get rikshas and go to
-the cemetery—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’ll do no such thing,” said Jane promptly.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“If you will allow me one moment—I’m not proposing
-to take you to a place like Kensal Green. A
-Japanese cemetery is worth seeing, just as much worth
-seeing as a Japanese town. Then we can go and have
-luncheon.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Where?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Would you like to go to an eel-house?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Gracious, no! I hate eels. First a cemetery, and
-then an eel-house! I have half a mind to go back to the
-hotel.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page182"></a>[pg 182]</span>
-“Well, a tea house, then; we can go to the Tea House
-of a Thousand Joys.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh, that quite decides the matter,” said she, assuming
-an outraged air, and hailing one of two rikshas that
-were passing.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie hailed the other, and quietly directed the riksha
-boys to the cemetery.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page183"></a>[pg 183]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XX</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">THE SONG OF THE MUSHI</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It almost makes one wish one were dead,” sighed
-Jane. They were sitting on a moss-grown tussock
-near a grave adorned with a fresh spray of cherry-blossom,
-contained in a joint of bamboo. Beneath them
-the hill stretched downwards, terrace after terrace, casting
-before their eyes the cold color of marble, and the
-mournful green of cryptomeria trees, the delicate tracery
-of ferns, and the glory of the wild camellias. Beyond
-lay the blue of the harbor, black-blue where the wooded
-cliffs met the water; from the water the hills led the
-eye past camphor woods and the green of the young
-bamboo, up and away to where the brown of their summits
-cut the dazzling azure of the sky. “I have never
-seen anything so beautiful, so peaceful. What are you
-thinking of, Dick?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I was thinking,” said Leslie, rousing himself, “that
-we might have luncheon at my place.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“You are perfectly disgusting!” said Jane. “I’ll
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page184"></a>[pg 184]</span>
-never go to a cemetery with you again. Luncheon! Who
-wants luncheon here?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Very few,” said he grimly, gazing over the tombs.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Now you’re trying to be smart—at the expense of
-these poor things. Ah! look at that tiny grave with the
-white flower in the little vase.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Some child.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes; a thing with a great sash that was flying its
-kite or spinning its top the other day, and now it’s
-here.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Or hitting shuttlecocks about the street.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes,” wiping her cheek where the shuttlecock had
-hit her—then suddenly: “I think men are beasts,” addressing
-the distant hills.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’m with you there.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“No, you’re not; all men are just the same.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I suppose you mean to infer in a roundabout way
-that I’m a beast. Thanks.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“There’s nothing to be thankful for, only—they
-don’t understand.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He took her hand in his as if to make friends, and
-she let him hold it for a moment, then she suddenly drew
-it away.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Had not we better be going? What’s the time?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Twelve.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page185"></a>[pg 185]</span>
-“Will you come and have luncheon at the hotel?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“No, thanks; why not come and lunch at my place?
-I’ll give you all sorts of funny Japanese things to eat.
-Luncheon won’t be till half-past one, but you can have
-a talk with Campanula. It will only take us ten minutes
-or so to get there from here.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They came down to where the rikshas were waiting;
-he helped her in, tucked the linen apron round her, and
-gave the men their direction.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula San had not yet returned, declared Pine-breeze,
-as she kow-towed before them on the matting.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, she won’t be long,” said Leslie. “Shall we go
-into the house or the garden?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“The house,” replied Jane. “I’m tired of the sunlight;
-let’s go in, and sit on the floor and talk.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Right. But do you mind—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, as a matter of fact, there’s a clause in the
-lease that no one is to go in with their boots on.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Why, for goodness sake?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“They say it spoils the matting.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“All right,” said Jane, holding up a small foot, and
-trying to unbutton the shoe on it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Let me,” said Leslie, going down on his knees.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The shoe came off, and the little foot in its bronze
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page186"></a>[pg 186]</span>
-silk stocking lay in his hands for half a second—half a
-second during which he was seized with a wild desire to
-kiss it. Next moment it was out of his hands, and the
-other was presented to him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“You are all thumbs!” said Jane. “Do be quick!
-I’m not a stork to stand on one leg for an hour. There,
-you’ve burst a button off! I knew you would. Stupid!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Pine-breeze will sew it on,” said he, hunting for the
-button on his knees.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“No, she won’t. It doesn’t in the least matter. Gracious,
-Dick! when I see you just like that, crawling about
-on your knees—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I can’t help remembering—Do you remember
-the rainy day at Glenbruach, when you and I were playing
-marbles in the pistol gallery, and I said you cheated,
-and you said you didn’t, and I said you did, and you
-called me a liar?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“And you hacked my shins?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes; and old Mrs. Johnstone, the housekeeper, came
-in and saw me and said I was an ‘awfu’ lassie!’ Can it
-be that all that really happened, and that we are the
-same people? Imagine me hacking your shins now!
-Imagine us both playing marbles on the veranda!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“And we didn’t speak to each other for a day,” said
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page187"></a>[pg 187]</span>
-he, following her into the house. “And you looked so
-stiff and sour, and all of a sudden you came up from
-behind and flung your arms round my neck.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“And you shouted: ‘Oh, get away, you little
-brute!’”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes; because I thought you were making another
-attack on me, and all the time you only wanted to
-k—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I didn’t. I only wanted to apologize.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, apologize, then!” said he, arranging the
-cushions on the floor, and placing the rose tree and the
-parcel containing the sword in a corner.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It is sad to look so far away,” said she, taking as
-comfortable a position as she could upon the cushions.
-“Life was so jolly then. Oh! a good old day’s trout-fishing
-is worth all the money in the world. Money is
-no use; what’s the good of it? It just makes one not
-care for the simple pleasures of life. Do you remember
-the picnic you and I and those American children, who
-were staying at Callander, had, when the soda-water
-bottle burst, and we found we’d left everything behind
-but the jam and the eggs? Dick, I—I—want to ask
-you something.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was one of the peculiarities of Jane’s mind that a
-question formulating there would work its way along
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page188"></a>[pg 188]</span>
-like a worm, under, maybe, ten minutes of conversation,
-and then come out at the end of a paragraph, rise for
-air, so to speak, in a manner irrelevant and sometimes
-startling.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What became of you all those three years before
-you came here to Japan?—you vanished. You
-told me the other day you were in Australia; were
-you?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I was in prison.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She turned deathly pale, and stared at him as if he
-had struck her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh, you need not be so alarmed; it was not a criminal
-but a social prison. My father allowed me a hundred
-and fifty a year, paid quarterly, as long as I lived in
-Sydney, and as I had no trade and no money I lived in
-Sydney for three years—tied by the leg.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I think you take a pleasure in frightening me; first
-you told me you were a shopman, now a prisoner. Dick,
-why do you <i>always</i> make your own case out worse than
-it really is? Tell me, what was the last quarrel with your
-father about?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Debts.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“And, Dick—you know you used to—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I know I used to drink, but I don’t drink now.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page189"></a>[pg 189]</span>
-They were silent for a while, then he began to speak
-and tell her the story of his life as a remittance man, and
-he did not spare black in the composition of his picture.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She listened at first interested and amused by the
-thought of Dick tied by the leg in Sydney, hobbled, so
-to speak, and made to behave.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then her amusement gave way to compassion. She
-saw him wandering in the Domain, by the sea-shore, in
-the streets, a lonely figure, a man with no interest in life,
-an exile banned by society.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She thought of all the men she knew and the number
-of them who were just as wicked and foolish as Dick
-had ever been, yet who by keeping on the right side of
-their bank balance retained their social position and the
-respect of all men.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And thinking of all this the heart in her was moved.
-A most dangerous condition just now, for Jane, Bessemer
-steel in her everyday laughing mood, became wax
-when her compassion was aroused.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Why didn’t you write and tell me?” said she. “I’d
-have gone and seen your father. Oh, it was wicked to
-send you off like that, away from every one. <i>How</i> could
-a father treat his child so!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They were silent again for a moment.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Poor Dick!” said Jane suddenly, and she took his
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page190"></a>[pg 190]</span>
-hand in both hers and stroked it. A little shiver went
-through him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then, all at once, she felt an arm around her waist
-and his breath upon her cheek, and she did not try to
-take her hand from his or struggle, nor, after the first
-second of troubled alarm, did she feel the wish to
-struggle.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had ceased for the moment to be Jane du Telle,
-a married woman, a person with a stainless reputation.
-All these facts were swept away by nature, just as shrubs
-and fir trees are swept away by the rush of the avalanche.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A great faintness came over her. She clung to him,
-and sinking backwards, fell upon the matting; his arms
-were around her, his breath on her cheek, her lips were
-returning his kisses, yet all the time her lips were murmuring:
-“Don’t—don’t—don’t!”</p>
-
-<hr>
-
-<p class="indent">At this supreme moment came a sound strangely alien
-to the situation—the jingling of tea-cups no less—and
-through the wall, or at least the opening of a panel,
-entered Pine-breeze, followed by Cherry-blossom, with
-the luncheon.</p>
-
-<hr>
-
-<p class="indent">“Dick!” she cried, sitting up with her cheeks raging
-red, “tell them to go away.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page191"></a>[pg 191]</span>
-But Dick was not heeding her. He was sitting up
-with his hands to the side of his head, and an expression
-on his face that made her almost forget her own position
-before the Mousmés.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Do you hear it?” said he.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“That noise, my God, that noise.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A tiny cage was hanging from a hook on the wall. In
-it was a thing much beloved by Campanula—an insect
-like a grasshopper that sang a buzzing and tremulous
-sort of song. The mushi was a creature that only sang
-by night as a rule, but some spirit had moved its poetic
-soul, for it was singing now.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It’s that thing in the cage,” said Jane, pointing to
-it tremulously, thankful for any excuse to escape the
-glances of the Mousmés.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He looked up, sprang to his feet, went to the cage,
-and tore it from its hook.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Mousmés screamed out, for from his furious manner
-and the expression of his face they felt he was about
-to dash cage and mushi on the matting, and trample
-them underfoot.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And he was, for one horrible moment. Then something
-in him prevailed—the something that had made
-him pick the Lost One up and kiss her, and carry her all
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page192"></a>[pg 192]</span>
-the way to Nikko; the spirit of good that had made him
-always not so bad as he might have been.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He rehung the little cage on the hook, and the thing
-in it became dumb; the sound in his head that troubled
-him had died away, and he returned to where Jane was
-sitting, and resumed his position on the cushions near
-her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he told the Mousmés to leave what they
-had brought on the floor, and to go away till he called
-them.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh,” said Jane, when they were alone again, “to
-think they should have seen me like that. Oh, <i>Dick</i>!
-How could we—how could I—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“<i>They</i> don’t matter,” said he gloomily.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh, don’t <i>talk</i> to me!” She wrung her hands.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“For goodness sake,” said Leslie, “don’t make mountains
-out of molehills. They saw me kiss you, well, what
-of that? and they don’t talk English—at least, English
-that any one can understand.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“But like that on the floor,” murmured Jane, comforted
-somewhat by the last statement.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, what of that? We are in Japan, where people
-live on the floor. I admit if a servant in England came in
-and saw—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“<i>Don’t!</i>” screamed she; “don’t speak about it again.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page193"></a>[pg 193]</span>
-It was a moment of weakness; let us forget it.
-I mean, let us <i>remember</i> it as a warning.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Do you feel like eating luncheon?” he asked, looking
-at the pathetic little dishes and tea-cups, each on its
-sea-green mat.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“No; I feel like nothing. I only want to go and bury
-myself.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He poured her out some tea and took some himself.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“You frightened me,” she said in a tremulous voice
-after they had sat for a moment in silence. “I thought
-you were going to do something dreadful.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“When?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“When you took that cage down with the buzzing
-thing in it that annoyed you—poor atom!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It didn’t annoy me; that was not the sound I heard.
-It was the sound I heard in the dream I told you of—that
-devil—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A figure stood in the doorway: it was Campanula returned.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page194"></a>[pg 194]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XXI</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">M’GOURLEY’S LOVE AFFAIR</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac had gone down to the office that morning in a
-temper.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The staff consisted of himself and Ah Hop Sing, the
-Chinese office boy. He could not quarrel with himself,
-so he quarreled with Ah Hop Sing, using a rattan cane
-to enforce the argument, till Ah Hop Sing hopped and
-sang in a fashion that justified his title.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then Mac wrote business letters and whilst he wrote,
-the thoughts of this dusty and unlovable-looking Scot
-went far astray on pleasant and picturesque roads, under
-blue skies, by brakes all gay with the crimson japonica
-flowers and the glorious beauty of the red camellias, and
-beneath the solemn darkness of the cryptomeria woods
-of Nikko.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">That is to say, they would stray to these places, and
-then he would recall them to indite letters of advice to
-Maconochie of Glasgow, a letter of abuse to Mr. Oyama—a
-gentleman who never fulfilled his contracts when
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page195"></a>[pg 195]</span>
-they threatened loss, sheltering his business self behind
-the ample kimono of the Tokyo guild—and letters to
-divers other people in trade.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And still his thoughts would stray whilst he gummed
-and stamped the envelopes, and they would be buying
-dolls now at booths in Jinrikisha Street, or helping to
-fly kites at the House of the Clouds.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They would stand watching a small person playing
-kitsune-ken with another person of her own age; and the
-same small person laboring up the Hill to the House of
-the Clouds, burdened with a bundle of books, and
-sheltered beneath a many-ribbed crimson umbrella.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then they would glance at the same person, bigger
-grown, and suddenly become beautiful; then they would
-heave their shoulders and sigh, and all come back to help
-in the addressing of a letter to M’Clintock of Osaka, or
-some other magnate of the Jap Rubbish Trade.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac was in love, as I have before indicated: in love
-with three people. A tiny dot in a blue kimono and stiff
-sash; a person somewhat similarly dressed, whom he had
-sometimes helped of evenings with her lessons, or watched
-as she pricked her fingers over needlework; and a
-Mousmé as pretty as seven.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had been in love for years without knowing it; a
-flower had been growing in this dusty soil, where one
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page196"></a>[pg 196]</span>
-could not fancy any green thing finding nutriment,
-unless, perhaps, a weed. A white flower, pure and without
-stain.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Nothing could be more ideal than this love, nothing
-with legs and arms attached to it could be more un-ideal
-than Mac. And the strange thing was that this pure
-blossom of the soul did not improve the soul it grew from
-a bit, at least as far as human eye could see, for the man
-of the Great Tung Jade and the Lessar papers incidents
-was, morally, just the same—worse, if anything—as
-the wailing clients of Danjuro could testify.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When Campanula was alone with Leslie in these later
-days, she wore a grave and thoughtful air. Watching
-her, one could perceive that he alone possessed her mind;
-all the quaint and charming ways of her childhood, all
-things frivolous and light, she seemed to have dropped
-and left behind her with her toys.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When Campanula was quite alone with M’Gourley, a
-subtle change came over her. The child came out and
-played.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Though Leslie had adopted her as a daughter, she
-had by no means adopted him as a father.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Tod M’Gourley was her adoptive father, or, at least,
-she treated him as such. He acted also as uncle, aunt,
-grandmother, brother and general playmate all combined;
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page197"></a>[pg 197]</span>
-and any half-holiday during the last few years,
-you might have seen Campanula and her family strolling
-along Jinrikisha Street, or on the Bund: the family
-in an old top hat, black broadcloth suit, and bearing a
-gamp umbrella in its hard fist.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They would stray together through the wonders of
-the town, Mac and she, and pause and gaze in at shops
-like two children, buy sweets and eat them unashamed
-and openly. Stop to look at performing monkeys, or
-listen to street ballad-singers, or criticize passing funerals.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had never seen so much of life round town as
-Campanula showed him, clapping beside him in her little
-clogs when the streets were damp, or gliding beside him
-sandal-shod in the warm, dry days of spring.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Where Campanula was concerned, this dour and dusty
-Scot had all the delicate and instinctive feelings of a
-woman; he had noticed “fine” the change that had come
-over her of late, and the change in her manner towards
-Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The thing pleased him, yet it made him sigh—and
-frown, when he called to mind “that wumman,” the
-mental label he had attached to Jane du Telle.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When he had finished business he went to Danjuro’s
-shop, where he had an appointment, as we have seen,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page198"></a>[pg 198]</span>
-with an Englishman. The Englishman having been duly
-plundered, Mac looked at his watch, found it was nearly
-twelve, and was struck by a bright idea.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He would go to the House of the Clouds, fetch
-Campanula out, and have luncheon with her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Ten minutes later found him on the veranda.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula had just returned, having left O Toku
-San.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M’Gourley sat down on the veranda, and Campanula
-sat down beside him on a little fur rug made from the
-skin of an Ounce, or some such small animal. She looked
-sad and depressed, and her eyes wandered about the landscape
-garden as if questioning its hills, its streams, its
-old, old forests.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Campanula,” said Mac, taking her little hand
-between his great rough, red paws, “what ails you,
-child? You look sad and fashed, what’s been worrying
-you?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I have been to see O Toku San,” replied Campanula,
-speaking in Japanese. “She is dying. Her heart is
-dead,” said Campanula, putting her other little hand
-over her own heart. “I am—oh, so sad! for to-day the
-thought of death has come to me, a thought that I never
-knew before.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Child, child,” said M’Gourley, “dinna speak like
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page199"></a>[pg 199]</span>
-that. We must all die soon or later—ay, ay, we must all
-die, sure enough.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“But not so sadly as she,” replied Campanula with
-a little sob.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M’Gourley looked at her; she was in tears.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He drew her close to him just as a mother might have
-done, and held her to him whilst she rested her head
-against his old coat, and sobbed and wept like a little
-child, gazing at the landscape garden through the veil
-of her tears.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He rocked her gently to soothe her, but said nothing,
-holding her just as he had held her that day in the
-gardens of Dai Nichi Do, as if to protect her against
-Death, as he had that day protected her against the
-vision of the terrible Akudogi.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Her sobs slowly ceased, but still she kept her cheek
-rested against his coat.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What is Death?” she suddenly asked. The question
-was quite beyond M’Gourley.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Dinna ask me,” he said. “It’s what we all must
-come to some day.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“And will O Toku San see him she loved when she
-goes—there?” continued she, as if unheeding his reply.
-“Perhaps”—after a long pause—“he will know her
-love for him when he too is there, and make her happy.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page200"></a>[pg 200]</span>
-“Mayhap,” said M’Gourley, who did not know the
-facts of the case, or perhaps he would not have taken so
-cheerful a view of O Toku San’s lover’s future state.
-“Mayhap.” He looked down at her little face. Her
-eyes were dry, but a tear was still wet on her cheek. He
-took out his handkerchief and dried it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula smiled faintly, pressed her cheek ever so
-slightly against his arm as if in thanks, and drew away
-from him, resuming her position on the little rug.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M’Gourley took out his pipe, lit it, and began to
-smoke.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Now,” said he, “just put on those sandal shoes of
-yours again, for I am going to take you out with me.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Where?” asked Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“No matter where,” replied Mac, rising from the
-veranda. “A nice place where you and I’ll go—you
-and I together, as we did along the Nikko road, only not
-on my shoulder. Na, na! you’re ower big for that. Do
-you remember the sugar-candy dragon?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ah! the Hon. Dragon!” replied she in the vernacular,
-as she bent to pass the sandal-strap past the great
-toe of her white tabi. “He is upstairs with—other
-things, but the Hon. Dragon is very old now.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then she took her umbrella and opened it, and
-M’Gourley and she passed down the path to the gate.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page201"></a>[pg 201]</span>
-He held the gate open for her, and she passed through
-with a murmured word of thanks, and then she led the
-way down hill under the perfumed beauty of the lilac
-boughs.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">About half-way down, Campanula stepped aside as if
-to let some one pass. M’Gourley, close on her heels, and
-in a reverie, did the same thing unconsciously. If someone
-had passed, that someone must have effaced himself
-amidst the lilac trees on the left of the path.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Poor blind man!” said Campanula, looking back
-up the path.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Whoat?” cried Mac. “Whoat did y’ say?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Blind man,” replied Campanula; “he who came last
-night—you remember!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M’Gourley took off his old top hat, and drew his coat
-sleeve across his forehead. Beads of sweat had sprung
-there all of a sudden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He stood for a second or two looking at Campanula,
-and then for a second or two looking up the path,
-pied with sunshine and shadow, the pretty path that
-for him had suddenly been made horrible. There
-was nothing to be seen, nothing but the sunshine and
-shadow.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“My eyes are growing auld,” he said at length. “Do
-you see him still, Campanula?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page202"></a>[pg 202]</span>
-She had turned away to look at a fern that was growing
-on the bank.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I do not see him now,” she replied. “He has gone
-through the gate.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Are you sure,” said Mac, speaking in a subdued
-voice, “that he was the same man that came last
-night?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula was quite sure.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Wait for me,” said Mac, “and I’ll run up and tell
-them to give him some food.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He came hurriedly back up the path, very much
-against his will.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There was nobody in front of the house, he went
-round to the kitchen. The Mousmés were there, preparing
-luncheon—at least, preparing to prepare it in a
-leisurely way.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Had they seen anyone about the house, a blind
-man?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">No, they had seen nobody, only the poulterer, who had
-been with eggs an hour ago.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Had they seen a blind man last night—had a blind
-man called round at the kitchen to ask for food?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">No; nobody had been for food to the kitchen last
-night, least of all a blind man.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then Mac hurried off, and the Mousmés dropped
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page203"></a>[pg 203]</span>
-everything to discuss the meaning of all these questions
-asked by the Learned One; and Pine-breeze embarked on
-a story about two blind men and a frog, and the fox-faced
-representative of the rice god, a story that put
-the luncheon back half an hour.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula was plucking flowers when Mac returned.
-Just three or four with a delicate fern frond, such a
-charming little bouquet, a veritable work of art made in
-a moment with unerring taste and a few turns of her
-deft fingers. She made Mac bend, and fixed the tiny
-bouquet in his coat-lapel.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then they pursued their way, Mac vastly perturbed
-in his mind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There was just now living in the pleasant city of
-Nagasaki an inn-keeper of the name of Yamagata, who
-owned a tea house named “The Full-blown Peony
-Flower.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mr. Yamagata was a Progressive. He believed that a
-tea house where a real English luncheon or dinner could
-be obtained would, judging from his compatriots’ passion
-for things European, be a success.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And it was, till half Jinrikisha Street nearly died of
-indigestion.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">His tea house was a tiny affair situated up an entry
-near Danjuro’s shop, and surrounded by a little courtyard,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page204"></a>[pg 204]</span>
-wherein grew dyspeptic-looking plum trees in pale
-amber-colored pots.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Danjuro, who was a friend of Yamagata’s, had been
-chanting the praises of the place so long, that Mac had
-become obsessed by the idea of it; and casting about for
-somewhere new to take Campanula, the idea had turned
-up like a horrible sort of trump card.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The tea house was on its last legs, and practically deserted,
-so they had the place to themselves; and having
-ordered the meal they sat on the matting of a desolate
-room and waited for it to come.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Campanula,” said Mac, “you have never seen that
-blind man before?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She shook her head.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Never; nor one so ugly as he.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Campanula,” said Mac earnestly, “if you see him
-again dinna speak with him; he’s an ill man and bodes
-no good.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Oh, indeed, she did not wish to speak with him, but he
-was so old and poor and ugly she could not but feel sorrow
-for him; and he said last night that he had come
-such a long way off, and must soon return.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M’Gourley shuddered.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ay,” said he to himself, “a dom long way off;”
-then to Campanula: “Said he anything else?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page205"></a>[pg 205]</span>
-“No,” replied Campanula, “for I told him to go to
-the back entrance, and he went.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At this moment the soup was brought in by three
-somewhat faded-looking Mousmés, each armed with a
-plate, a real English soup plate.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The soup was thin and not exuberantly hot, but it
-seemed vastly to amuse Campanula when it was put before
-her. “A,” said she, pointing with her spoon-tip to
-something at the bottom of the plate, “B—C”—she
-was pointing to the little Italian paste letters floating, or
-rather sunk, in the mixture. “D—and look—a cow!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac looked over to admire.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ay, ay, it’s a coo, right enough, an’ there’s a cock
-and hen; but eat it up before it gets cold.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula ate her alphabet, and the next course appeared.
-A boot sole labeled a beef-steak, which vanished,
-uneaten, and was replaced by what seemed to be an old
-stone cannon-ball, such as they used to fire out of Mons
-Meg. The O.S.C.B. was labeled a pudding.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was the caricature of an ordinary English middle-class
-country luncheon.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But it was an amazingly clever caricature: a perfect
-work of art.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">After luncheon, M’Gourley returned to business, and
-Campanula to the House of the Clouds.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page206"></a>[pg 206]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XXII</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">THE COMPLETE GEOGRAPHER</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On the way, she stopped at the shop of Mr. Initogo
-to pay a visit to her friend Kiku.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula in her school-days had shown both qualities
-and defects of mind. At languages, at least in learning
-the English language, she was a success; a very
-moderate success where mathematics were concerned,
-though she knew enough to do long division, and to keep
-household accounts. They teach a lot of useful things at
-the mission schools—needlework, and so forth, and in
-some of these branches Campanula shone, but at geography
-she was a dismal failure. She had been always
-lacking in the power of location. Witness her first statements
-as to the whereabouts of the house with the plum
-tree in front of it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The long sea voyage from Tokyo, or rather from
-Yokohama, had brought into her mind the impression
-that she had traveled to the end of things, yet they told
-her there were things beyond.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page207"></a>[pg 207]</span>
-They showed her maps and globes. The maps were
-flat, and the globes were round, yet they said they were
-the same thing, or were pictures of the same thing. How
-a flat thing could be round or the converse, she could not
-say, but Howard San, the missionary, said they were.
-Was it for her to contradict him? So, instead of setting
-up her own wits against Howard San, and questioning
-him, she accepted his words just as you or I accept the
-words of mathematicians or physiologists concerning
-subjects on which we are ignorant. And thus on geography
-she got hopelessly muddled, and remained so.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This morning she was lamenting her want of geography,
-and casting about for some friend learned in the
-art. Of course she might have gone to Howard San,
-but she would have to wait till school was over, and, besides
-she felt a certain diffidence in approaching him on
-the subject, so she turned to the shop of Mr. Initogo.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mr. Initogo was sitting on his heels on the floor of
-his shop, engaged in the gentle art of making tea; it
-was one of his fads that he always made his own tea with
-his own hands. Beside him stood an hibachi, on which
-a kettle was coming to the boil; before him, a tea-cup
-without a handle on a tray, and a microscopic tea-pot.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He warmed the tea-cup with a few drops of hot water;
-then, from a cylindrical tea-canister, with a thing like
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page208"></a>[pg 208]</span>
-a snuff-scoop, he took a small quantity of green tea—tea
-of the color that an old black coat turns after years
-of sun and rain—this he popped into the tea-pot.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the honorable hot water being ready, he poured
-it into a porcelain dish to let it cool slightly, which it
-did, becoming converted during the act into the honorable
-old hot water.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The honorable old hot water being now ready, he
-poured it into the tea-pot, popped on the lid, looked up,
-and saw Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">So immersed in his darling employment had he been,
-that he had not observed her entrance.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She wished to see Kiku? She was upstairs; this with
-a thousand apologies for his own blindness, and comparisons
-of himself with worms and other sightless
-things.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula knew the way up; she had been up often
-enough before, and up she went.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Kiku San, since we hinted at her as a playmate of
-Campanula, had grown. The tumbling tot that Leslie
-had once caught by the “scruff” of her obi and held
-out at arm’s length wriggling, for the amusement of
-M’Gourley, had become a Mousmé with a face at once
-heavy and flighty-looking; a broad face, pretty enough,
-but with a maddeningly irresponsible expression.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page209"></a>[pg 209]</span>
-Pine-breeze was bad enough in the irresponsible line,
-but she could have learnt much from Kiku.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She was the dunce, or, rather, had been the dunce at
-the mission school; this is not saying very much against
-her, for Japanese girls are amazingly quick in the “uptake,”
-learning coming to them as easily as ignorance
-to English girls; all the same she had been the dunce.
-She had never been able to conquer the letter “l” in
-English; and would say “raidy” for “lady;” yet she
-had a memory of sorts, blocks of facts swam in the ocean
-of her unintelligence like those houses that float about
-after an inundation of the Mississippi.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But the place left vacant in her skull by want of
-learning was by no means devoid of a tenant; therein
-dwelt a colossal impudence, a supreme self-assurance
-that sheltered and helped to hide the nakedness
-of her mind, and even obtained for her, amongst her
-girl friends, a sort of fungoid reputation for cleverness.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">For when Kiku San said a thing, she said it with such
-assurance that it seemed true—the assurance of the absolutely
-untrustworthy intellect, which of all assurances
-is the greatest.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She was sitting now on her heels in a bare room on the
-upper floor, a tobacco-mono at her side, and in her hands
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page210"></a>[pg 210]</span>
-a round flat box with a glass lid. She was playing at
-Pigs-in-Clover.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The two Mousmés bowed to one another with great
-ceremony, enquiring after each other’s honorific health,
-and then Campanula came to rest upon the matting opposite
-to her friend.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They formed a pretty picture in the bare room with its
-chess-board matting, against the bare walls, whose only
-ornament was a kakemono representing Fuji San crested
-with snow.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Kiku was soon to be married—married to a government
-clerk to whom she had been engaged nearly since
-birth; and she entertained Campanula with long and
-uninteresting descriptions of her husband-to-be, his
-mother, his father, his grandfather, who lived at Nagoya,
-his brothers and sisters, how old they were and all about them.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Kiku was a bore, a female bore of the first water, and
-in this respect she could have given any old member
-of the Rag or Carlton points, and beaten him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She told all these things looking up from under her
-thick eyelids, and with a half-smile, and Campanula listened,
-half mesmerized, wholly weary, but with all her
-courteous soul awake to do honor to the tale.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page211"></a>[pg 211]</span>
-At last an hiatus occurred of which Campanula took
-advantage to ask the question in her mind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Did Kiku, so learned on all subjects, know of any
-land where the snow lay for half the year?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Oh, certainly Kiku did, and she told about it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Describing her future husband and his relations she
-had been vague and uninteresting, lacking, as she did,
-the gifts of perception and narration. But now, plunging
-into the empire of pure lies, she spoke with an assurance
-that made her words sound like gospel.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Such a country existed; as a matter of fact, she had
-it all in a book somewhere, but she did not need the
-book, as she never forgot anything. It lay in the sea beyond
-Nankin two hundred and sixty-seven ri beyond, and
-the snow lay there half a year, sometimes more.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Is it a country where blue flowers grow, and roses—sometimes?”
-said Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Just so, sometimes;” and Kiku, searching in the
-capacious bag of her ignorance, began to produce old
-broken-up facts that had been lying there like rubbish
-in the basket of a chiffonier.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The sea all round that place was frozen most of the
-year, and the sun shone once a month or so.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then she painted a graphic picture of this desolate
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page212"></a>[pg 212]</span>
-land which she declared to be divided into four parts,
-Unster, Munster, Rinster and Comit; and Campanula
-sat listening and receiving it all as truth.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Liars, somehow, are always sure of an audience; you
-and I, who speak the truth, the whole truth, and nothing
-but the truth, languish in conversation and are not
-heard, whilst your mendacity-monger holds the floor and
-absorbs the interest.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">So Kiku San went on spinning her tale, and Campanula
-San sat opposite to her and listened, shivering
-at the dismal pictures being raised before her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then, all at once, from below came the irate voice of
-Mr. Initogo calling Kiku the “Heedless One.” If he
-could have used a stronger expression he would have used
-it, for the dinner ought to be cooking at this moment,
-and the fish and seaweed had not arrived. The Heedless
-One had been, as a matter of fact, playing at Pigs-in-Clover
-all the morning instead of marketing.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Complete Geographer rose to her feet in a hurry,
-for filial obedience resided in her breast, not so much
-as a virtue, but rather as a sort of mainspring put in
-by nature—or rather, I should say, heredity.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They went out together, and Kiku bought the fish
-and the seaweed and a few other important items, and
-then they parted, Kiku returned home laden with marketings,
-and Campanula to the House of the Clouds.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page213"></a>[pg 213]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XXIII</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">THE STRUGGLE</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie walked back to the hotel that day with Jane.
-When he left her he was vastly troubled in his
-mind. Troubled about Jane, troubled about Campanula,
-troubled about himself, and troubled about a vast, vague,
-tragic something: a shadow stealing up from his past
-and already tingeing his future with the twilight that
-comes before eclipse.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">What demon had called Jane up from the past?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Unconsciously during the last five years he had been
-altering for the better. The friendliness and kindness
-of Japan, the frank friendliness of M’Gourley, that most
-unconscionable Scot, the beauty of the flowers and seasons,
-and Campanula—above all, Campanula—these
-things had worked upon him with slow but sure effect.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Slowly, he had learnt the great, great secret that happiness
-is to be found, not in grand palaces, not in wealth,
-not in success, but amongst the lowly and little things
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page214"></a>[pg 214]</span>
-of life, the things that no man can appreciate who has
-not a free and untroubled conscience.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The new book, the pipe of tobacco smoked beneath
-the cherry trees of a morning, the home-coming of Campanula
-from school of an evening laden with books and
-perplexities, the rubber of whist with Mr. Initogo, the
-quaint, funny things that are always happening in a
-Japanese household—these and a thousand other trifles
-had made up the sum of his life, and the addition of
-them made happiness.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And Campanula—he little knew how much she had entered
-into his being—what a multitude of impalpable
-threads bound her to him, threads that had been spinning
-from the very first day, when he found her lost
-amidst the crimson azaleas!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had eaten the lotus for nearly five years; he had
-been preparing a future of happiness and peace, and
-who knows what boundless possibilities of love?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Suddenly, Satan had appeared before him with the
-command, “Get up and fight, fight me for this future
-you have been preparing for yourself; fight me for the
-beauty of it, the happiness you will have in it, the happiness
-you will make for others in it; get it if you can, for
-my weapon is Lust.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">That night, when the moon, now waxing stronger,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page215"></a>[pg 215]</span>
-laid her patient square of pure white light on the floor
-of his room, the battle began in earnest.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had determined on going to Arita on the morrow
-to get away for a while from the woman against whom
-he felt fate was driving him with ruinous intent.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Now, as he lay alone, with the powers of good and
-evil on either side of him, he reviewed his position clearly
-for the first time.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The cold, calculating, sneaking, pickpocket form of
-adultery, which is the canker at the heart of English
-society—to put it in plain English, the bestial use of
-another man’s wife behind his back—was a form of
-crime as unthinkable to Leslie as the crime of cheating
-at cards, or forging a check.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">To obtain the woman he wanted, there was only one
-way. The open way.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">That meant the smashing up of everything around
-him. He must leave Japan, leave Campanula, for, deep
-in his heart, something told him that Campanula could
-have no place in that new life. It meant the social ruin
-of Jane du Telle.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Here, alone, away from the object of his passion, all
-this was very clear.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then that same old Scotch ancestor, with the long
-upper lip, and the crude common sense, and the rigid
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page216"></a>[pg 216]</span>
-belief in God and the law, came out of his cell and spoke
-to this effect. There is no excuse before God or man for
-adultery. Love, the child of God, has no part therein,
-but Lust, the child of the devil, and the end of Lust is
-Hell.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">All this, with the thoughts that went before it, was
-edifying and made for good, and the devil said nothing,
-for the devil, like the great Boyg, has a method with
-some natures. He does not strike, but lets the victim
-do the striking, hedging him gently, gently, letting him
-hit out widely till he is exhausted, or beats himself to
-death as the Blind One beat himself against the trees.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Early in the morning Leslie rose, white and haggard,
-and dressed, and went off to the station without waiting
-for breakfast.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Tell Campanula San I am going to Arita on business,
-but will be back to-night. Tell her I am going
-alone,” he said to Pine-breeze.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Kashko marimashta,” murmured Pine-breeze, in a
-voice of devotion, and he departed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was going to Arita to get beyond the reach of
-Jane, and lo! when he got into the railway carriage, she
-was there—not in the flesh, but in the spirit. And when
-he alighted at Arita, she was on the platform, and in the
-street she walked at his side.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page217"></a>[pg 217]</span>
-The tones of her voice thrilled him, and he smelt the
-perfume of her hair, he felt the curve of her waist,
-and his lips felt the satin of her throat, but the physical
-desire was small compared with the terrible sentiment
-that was born of it, the heart-breaking longing inspired
-by her idealized image.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Passion, when it rises to this dimension in the mind
-of a man, has beautiful attributes as well as vile, it
-holds in its hands pictures of perfect innocence, besides
-the others.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The devil takes care of that!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He saw Jane not only as she was, but as she had been,
-fair, and fresh, and innocent, against the background of
-the beeches round Glenbruach, and the sea lochs, and
-the purple hills.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">What he did with his body that day in Arita, or where
-he wandered, he could never tell, for his mind was fighting
-a battle so fierce that all intelligent perception of
-outward things was blurred.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At the end of it he found himself in a tea house sitting
-before some food which he had apparently ordered, and
-the battle was won. So he told himself.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As a matter of fact, he was worn out. Passion was
-exhausted, fighting against fate, attempting to escape
-from the pursuing devils, beating himself against the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page218"></a>[pg 218]</span>
-trees, he had fallen beneath them, telling himself that
-the battle was won, wondering at himself that he ever
-could have even dreamed of the ruinous course of action
-which lust had urged him to.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But the trees remained steadfast and unharmed, waiting
-only for the renewal of the madman’s strength and
-the inevitable end.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was dark when he reached the Nagasaki station. He
-picked a riksha from a row of them standing outside
-with hoods up, for it had been raining slightly, and
-looking absurdly like a row of tiny, unhorsed hansom
-cabs, and told the man to take him to the House of the
-Clouds.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He came up the hill-path, and as he came the wind,
-blowing against him, brought a perfume with it, the
-perfume of rain-wet azaleas. During the day and the
-previous night dozens of blossoms had broken forth,
-filling the garden with their fragrance and beauty;
-dozens more would be born ere the morrow under
-the light of the silvery moon now gliding up
-over the hill-tops behind a tracery of flying, fleecy
-clouds.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As he approached the house, he saw through the open
-panel space the silhouettes of Pine-breeze and Cherry-blossom.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page219"></a>[pg 219]</span>
-They were sitting opposite to each other on their heels
-upon the lamplit matting, and seemed at first to be engaged
-in the game of kitsune-ken, but almost instantly
-he perceived that they were playing at no game, but
-were engaged in conversation. Alarmed conversation, to
-judge by the movements of their hands, now up-flung,
-now flung out sideways. Sweetbriar San was promenading
-the matting with tail fluffed out, now rubbing against
-Pine-breeze, now against Cherry-blossom, attempting apparently
-to join in the conversation, and seeming to
-share in the excitement.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Something had happened of a tragic nature—but
-what? Two steps brought him on to the veranda two
-more into the house with his boots on, despite the clause
-in the lease.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Mousmés gave two little shrieks, wheeled round,
-and kow-towed before the August One.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What is the matter?” he asked. “Has anything
-happened? Is Campanula San safe?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula San was quite safe.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then why all this? What had they been conversing
-about with so many exclamations?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Confused replies.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Go,” he said, “and bring me some tea, and ask
-Lotus-bud to come hither.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page220"></a>[pg 220]</span>
-In a few moments Lotus-bud, wearing a very white
-face, appeared, and kow-towed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He questioned her. At first her answers were vague,
-and then it all came out.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Things had happened. Campanula San had gone into
-the town that day, and had met he whose head was like
-the rising sun (George du Telle in plain prose); and he
-with the sun-bright head had walked with her, and had
-spoken dishonorable words. Oh, shame!—he had offered
-her gold.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“God!” said Leslie, staring at the bent figure on the
-matting before him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He remained speechless for a moment, then he took
-out his watch and looked at it: it was eleven o’clock.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He turned furiously and strode out of the room: on
-the veranda he stopped like a horse suddenly reined in.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane’s image had appeared before him, turning him
-back.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Suppose he were to go to the hotel now and drag
-George du Telle out and beat him within an inch of his
-life, as was his intention a moment ago?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The idea of Jane in the midst of that scene brought
-his fury down from boiling point.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He returned to the room, where Lotus-bud was still
-on her knees, with her hands clasped.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page221"></a>[pg 221]</span>
-Where was Campanula San now?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In bed and asleep. She had returned, it seems, greatly
-troubled at noon, and had confided her trouble to Lotus-bud,
-making her promise to tell no one—Leslie San especially—and
-Lotus-bud had promised—with the result
-we have already seen.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">For a moment he thought of waking Campanula, but
-he dismissed the thought. The thing had occurred and
-was irremediable, the question now remained, what was
-he to do about George du Telle.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He went up to bed. In times past he could have obtained
-his remedy.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Where lay his remedy now? The law could do nothing;
-there remained only physical force.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A wheezy pug dog protected by a woman’s skirts, that
-is what George du Telle was. Leslie knew that if once
-he could catch the brute by the scruff of the neck, the
-only struggle would be with himself as to the limits of
-chastisement to be inflicted.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">If he could only get him away from Jane up a back
-street anywhere, just for five minutes! The thing was
-to be done. With the help of the astute M’Gourley he
-felt it was to be done, and would be done on the morrow.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He got up and went to a rack on the wall where he
-kept his sticks, and took down a whangee cane half an
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page222"></a>[pg 222]</span>
-inch thick, a most efficient instrument for the chastisement
-of a brute. He made it sing through the air, then
-he put it on the rack again and returned to bed, and
-slept soundly, far more soundly than he had slept the
-night before.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page223"></a>[pg 223]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XXIV</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">GEORGE DU TELLE</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was awakened by voices. Sunlight was streaming
-into the room, the sparrows were bickering round
-the trees, and from below came the voice of Pine-breeze
-crying, “Irashi, condescend to enter!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then Jane’s voice: “I don’t understand what you
-say. Stop rubbing the matting with your nose. I want
-your master.” Then an octave higher, “Richard!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Hullo!” cried Leslie, leaning on his elbow, and
-scarcely able to credit his ears.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh, you are there! Come down at once, I must
-speak to you. Quick!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What on earth has happened?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“All sorts of things.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’ll be down in two minutes, but for goodness sake
-tell me what <i>is</i> the matter.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Can I speak without any one understanding?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh, that’s all right.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page224"></a>[pg 224]</span>
-“Well, then, George has bolted.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“George has <i>what</i>?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Gone away.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Where has he gone to?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh! come down and I’ll tell you everything. Dick!
-Dick! is that a bath I hear you dragging over the floor?
-Dick, if you dare to have the impudence to keep me
-waiting whilst you take a bath, I’ll—I’ll come up and
-pull you out of it. Do come on!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Directly!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, don’t be long,” grumbled Jane; and she apparently
-took her seat on the cushions upon the matting,
-for he could hear her grumbling about the absence
-of chairs.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This was a new development of affairs. George bolted!
-It was just what one might have expected of the man,
-to insult a girl and then fly from the wrath to come.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was rather a relief, too, viewed by the light of morning.
-No man likes the task of thrashing a dog that has
-misbehaved: the thing has to be done, but it is unpleasant,
-and if the creature runs away and hides, so much the
-better. And the thrashing of a fat, wheezy pug without
-teeth or means of defense was what the punishment
-of George du Telle would amount to.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He dressed rapidly and came down to the room where
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page225"></a>[pg 225]</span>
-Jane was sitting on a cushion, trying to read the <i>Japan
-Mail</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh, there you are! Come and sit down. No, not
-beside me; right opposite, if you please.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Tell me all about it.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh, there’s not much to tell. I was in bed nearly
-all yesterday with a headache, and George went off for
-a walk in the afternoon; said he was going to call on
-<i>you</i>. I told him you had gone to Nagoya.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Arita.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It’s all the same—then he went out, I don’t know
-where, and that is the last I’ve seen of him. At nine
-yesterday evening they brought me a note saying he had
-gone to Osaka, and to follow with our luggage.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie whistled.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What are you whistling about?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Osaka! Why, that’s over three hundred miles
-away!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Where is it?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“On the Inland Sea.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Where’s that?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh, it runs from here up to—well, practically to
-Osaka. At least, it doesn’t exactly reach from here, you
-have to go through the Straits of Tsu-shima.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, I don’t care what Straits you have to go
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page226"></a>[pg 226]</span>
-through; he’s gone to Osaka on important business the
-note said. Now, what business can have taken him there.
-What do they do at Osaka?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Make all sorts of things, from machinery to tea-pots,
-and so on.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, he can’t have gone to buy machinery or tea-pots—what
-can it <i>mean</i>? He was so good, too, yesterday;
-brought me up some antipyrine, and wanted to
-fetch a doctor, and plumped up my pillows, and then
-went out and off to Osaka without a word, and how did
-he get there? He says follow by next boat to-morrow.
-I was going to ask the hotel people, but I didn’t like to.
-I just told them I knew he was going, and I was going to
-follow him to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“There’s no railway to Osaka,” said Leslie, “for this
-bit of Japan is an island. He must have gone by a Holt
-liner; one started last evening. The Canadian Pacific
-boats don’t stop at Osaka, they go right on to Yokohama.
-I suppose he means for you to follow by the Messagerie
-boat that leaves to-morrow evening.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’ll give him tea-pots,” said Jane gloomily, “when
-I catch him! The idea of his leaving me like that! In
-a strange country, too. I wonder <i>what</i> is the meaning
-of it all!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Perhaps he went away—because of a girl.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page227"></a>[pg 227]</span>
-“You mean he’s run away with some girl!” flashed
-Jane. “Why don’t you say so if you mean it?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Because I don’t mean it. I said ‘because of a girl,’
-not ‘with a girl.’”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Dick, you know something!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes, I do.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane turned pale, and he hated to see her like that, but
-he had suddenly made up his mind to tell her all.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“He met Campanula yesterday afternoon, and, not
-to put too fine a point upon it, insulted her.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh, Dick!” said Jane, turning, if possible, paler
-than before. She stared at him in a frightened way, then
-she recovered herself. “There must be some mistake; she
-must have misunderstood him. He couldn’t have done
-such a thing; however foolish he may be, he’s a gentleman.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes, a gentleman in England, but not a gentleman
-in Japan. He—God damn it!” blazed out Leslie suddenly,
-bringing his fist down with a bang on the matting—“he
-offered her money.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I must go to him at once,” said Jane, making as if
-to rise, “and ask him if this thing is true.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Sit down for a while; you can’t possibly get to
-Osaka to-day. Oh, it’s true enough. I was in a boiling
-rage last night when I came home and heard it all. I
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page228"></a>[pg 228]</span>
-was going down to the hotel with a stick to have it out,
-and then I thought of you, and the disgrace and uproar
-there would be, so I just bit on the bullet and went
-to bed. Honestly, I was going to have got him somewhere
-by himself to-day, and have it out with him, but
-it seems he prefers insulting women to facing men.
-Forgive me, Jane, for all this; I feel bitter about it,
-but I hate to have to say these things to you.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It was good of you to think of me last night,” said
-Jane in a broken voice, gazing at the matting as she
-spoke, then looking up full in his face, “very good of
-you.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh, I suppose it’s really nothing, after all,” he said.
-“Those confounded fools that write books about Japan
-have got it into English people’s heads that every ‘Jap-girl,’
-as they call them, is a what’s-its-name at heart.
-Let’s say no more on the matter, the affair is closed.
-Have some breakfast?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“No, thanks; I’m too much troubled and worried,”
-said Jane, sighing and folding her hands in her lap.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh, don’t trouble about it. I told you because—well,
-I thought you ought to know.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Richard,” said she, looking up, “if you meet George
-again—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Don’t be a bit alarmed. I will do nothing to him
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page229"></a>[pg 229]</span>
-except to cut him. He has run away; that closes the
-affair entirely. A man can only be really angry with
-a man.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Richard,” said she, now half tearfully, “I’m going
-to say something I want to say. Men don’t understand
-women. I’m fond of George. Men are always talking
-about love, and so are novels. I never loved George that
-way. I don’t think I ever loved any one really in that
-way, but I have an affection for George; I suppose that
-is the best name to give it. I know he’s ugly, I know
-he’s a lot of things he ought not to be, yet I feel he belongs
-to me.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It’s the sort of feeling one has for an—for an
-animal. I’m just telling you what I feel. An animal
-may be terribly ugly, yet one may love it. George has
-been very good to me, and he has grown into my life;
-that is the only way I can express it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Do you know, Dick, when you have your face very
-close to another person’s face you cannot tell what they
-are like. Well, it’s just the same with marriage. After
-people have been married some time they don’t see each
-other as they saw each other before; they have lost their
-identity—each is part of the other. And, Dick, I know
-George has been wicked, but ought we not to remember,
-the day before yesterday—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page230"></a>[pg 230]</span>
-“Yes,” he said; “the day before yesterday I kissed
-you.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It was a moment of weakness on my part,” continued
-Jane. “We are all very weak and wicked, but
-I have always been faithful to my husband—I should
-say, to myself. It is strange to talk like this.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“The whole affair is closed,” he said. “Let us wipe
-the slate clean and begin again.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Sitting opposite to her here in the morning light he
-was a very different person from the man wandering
-about Arita yesterday, pursued by her image.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The course of a great passion like his is not a high
-level line. If a man were to live through such a phase
-of existence at Italian opera heights he would be mad
-or dead in a very few days.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Its course is most like the temperature chart of a typhoid
-fever case: tremendous ups and downs, fever point
-now, a few hours later almost normal.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He clapped his hands, and Pine-breeze appeared.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Breakfast,” he said. “You’ll stay to breakfast,”
-turning to Jane. “And there is something I forgot day
-before yesterday. You have come to see Japan—well,
-look here—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He went to a big lacquer cabinet where he kept his
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page231"></a>[pg 231]</span>
-papers, and returned with a large, square, cream-colored
-card covered with Chinese ideographs.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What is it?” said Jane, turning it over.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“An invitation to a garden-party. A man named
-Kamamura is giving it to-morrow at O-Mura.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“A Japanese garden-party!” said Jane, with interest
-in her voice.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes, very Japanese. He told me to bring any of
-my friends.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“But to-morrow,” said Jane—“I am going away to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The words went through him like a pang.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Never mind,” he said. “Your boat does not start
-till evening; you will have plenty of time to get back.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’d love to go,” she said; “but—are you sure it’s
-all right for me to go without an invitation?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Perfectly, or I would not bring you.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Pine-breeze entered with a tray.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Where,” enquired Leslie, “is Campanula San?”
-Campanula San had not risen yet; she had a headache.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page232"></a>[pg 232]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XXV</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">RETROSPECTION</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’ll go up and see her,” said Jane, when they had
-finished breakfast. “May I?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes, if you like; Pine-breeze will show you the way—but,
-Jane, say nothing to her of what occurred yesterday;
-she thinks nobody knows except one of the servants
-here.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’ll say nothing,” replied Jane; “but I’ve got some
-antikamnia tabloids in my pocket, fortunately, and I’ll
-just make her take one.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“All right,” said Leslie; “but for goodness sake
-don’t poison her.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This was another point on which Jane had not altered.
-As a girl she had been possessed by a passion for drugs,
-and would swallow anything in the way of medicine she
-came across or was given. She had always been doctoring
-rabbits and other unfortunate animals, and had once
-nearly poisoned herself by taking half a bottle of pain-killer
-for a dose. And now here she was, nearly fifteen
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page233"></a>[pg 233]</span>
-years after, in Japan, going upstairs to doctor Campanula,
-with just the same manner and seriousness of
-face with which long ago, medicine bottle in hand, she
-would give the order: “Prize its mouth open, Dick;
-don’t hurt it. Steady now, I’m going to pour.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Quarter of an hour later she came down triumphant.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“She took it like a lamb. She’s the dearest child!
-Now I’m off. I have a hundred things to do. Will you
-walk down with me as far as the hotel?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He accompanied her to the hotel, and neither of them
-spoke much on the way.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I won’t ask you in,” said Jane, when they reached
-the door, “because it wouldn’t be proper. Now let me
-see. To-morrow is the garden-party; we might do something
-to-day, you and Campanula and I—might
-not we?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“We could run over to Mogi,” he said. “We can get
-rikshas, have luncheon there, and come back to tea at
-my place; and to-night there’s an affair on at the O Suwa
-temple, we might go there. Shall I call for you at
-twelve or so?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes,” said Jane, “if you’ll bring a chaperon. You
-see, now George is away I must be awfully ‘propindicular,’
-like that person in Uncle Remus—the Terrapin—wasn’t
-it?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page234"></a>[pg 234]</span>
-“I’ll bring Campanula—or one of the Mousmés, at
-a pinch.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Campanula chaperoning me!” said Jane with a
-laugh. “Well, I don’t care. It’s only for the sake of
-Mrs. Grundy.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“There is no Japanese Mrs. Grundy.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“No, but there is an English one.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They parted, and Jane entered the hotel.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She went to her bedroom, got her writing-case out
-of a portmanteau, and began to write. She was writing
-a letter to George.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The first began:</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-<p class="indent">“Your abominable conduct has been discovered. You
-have heaped shame on me, you have heaped shame on
-yourself—”
-</p>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="indent">When she got as far as this she found that it was too
-melodramatic, somehow, and the “heaped shames” did
-not ring true, so she tore it up and began again:</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-<p class="indent">“My cousin, Richard Leslie, sent for me this morning
-in great distress. <i>How</i> you could have acted as you did
-towards that sweet child surpasses me. Fortunately for
-yourself you have run away—”
-</p>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="indent">She tore this up too, flew into a temper with herself,
-and then wrote as follows:</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page235"></a>[pg 235]</span></p>
-
-<blockquote>
-<p class="indent">“<span class="smcap">George</span>,—I’ve heard everything. Dick is furious, but
-he’s not going to do anything, so just stay at Osaka till I
-come, and don’t go bolting off anywhere else. And don’t
-drink too much port, for if you get another attack of gout
-<i>I</i> won’t nurse you.—<span class="smcap">Jane.</span></p>
-
-<p class="indent">“<i>P.S.</i>—You ought to be ashamed of yourself.”</p>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="indent">She sealed this classical epistle and addressed it. Then
-she remembered that she might just as well have left it
-unwritten, for there was no communication to be had
-with Osaka till the morrow; and if she posted it, it would
-go by the same boat as herself. So she tore it up.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then she sat down on the side of her bed and bit a
-corner of her handkerchief.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She was thinking.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">To-morrow she would never see Dick again, most
-probably, after that.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had never loved Dick, that is to say in the good
-old <i>Family Herald</i> way. Their boy and girl relationship
-had been anything but sentimental.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Recalling the past she could conjure up no tender
-pictures.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She could see herself clinging to a rod bent like a
-bow, and shouting to Dick: “Now then, chucklehead,
-gaff him!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She could see herself tramping after him like a squaw
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page236"></a>[pg 236]</span>
-after a chief on rabbiting expeditions—dozens of pictures
-like this, but none of them sentimental. She had
-never thought of marriage till the day she received a
-letter from Dick, asking her to marry him; to which she
-replied by writing half a dozen letters refusing him,
-which letters she tore up one after the other, and then
-wrote a seventh accepting him, which she posted.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Now one of the worst evils in an accepted proposal
-of marriage is this. That directly they hear of it, the
-girl’s relations, male and female, take their implements—nets,
-ferrets, and so on—and go off rabbiting in your
-past.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Dick had not much of a past as far as size goes, but
-it was well stocked with game for hunters such as these.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">So well stocked that old Mr. Deering, a retired London
-wine merchant who had taken a country seat in Scotland,
-near Glenbruach, put his foot down and forbade
-Jane to have anything more to do with her cousin: an
-order which would have driven her straight into his arms,
-had not the unfortunate Dick, hearing of the inquisition
-that had been made, come North inflamed with rage and
-whisky.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Men drank harder even in the ‘eighties than they do
-now, and Scotland was never the home of abstinence;
-yet the scene Dick Leslie created in Callander went beyond
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page237"></a>[pg 237]</span>
-the bounds of even Scottish convention, and utterly
-destroyed any chance of his marriage with Jane du Telle.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Remembering his description of the affair which he
-gave to M’Gourley on the Nikko road, you will agree
-with me that he was not a man who viewed his own acts—well,
-as others viewed them.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In this, however, he was by no means singular.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane, sitting on her bed and biting the corner of her
-handkerchief, was at the same time looking back
-over the past. She was a person with an infinite capacity
-for affection, with no capacity at all for a Grand Passion.
-Her life was made up of a bundle of petty interests,
-and her history was the history of a pure and
-somewhat commonplace soul.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had loved Dick as a brother in the past, and now
-that he had come into her life again after all those years
-(even after that terrible scene long ago), bringing with
-him so much from the happy days that were for ever
-gone, her heart went out to him as it had never gone to
-human being before.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And to-morrow she must say good-bye to him, and
-never, perhaps, see him again.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They must part; there was no other thing to be done.
-She was her own mistress, with plenty of money at her
-command; she could have flown in the face of society,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page238"></a>[pg 238]</span>
-and made Dick forever her own. Such a course did not
-even occur to her, for she was a creature bound by the
-laws of convention, almost as rigidly as you or I by
-the laws of gravity.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Out of very light-heartedness she would do things and
-say things that would have been dangerous symptoms in
-a woman of a sterner mold; and men had often pursued
-her, led on by this laughing spirit that vanished behind
-a veil, which, being lifted, disclosed an adamant door.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Her great danger lay in her compassionate emotions,
-and all the womanly nature that lay behind them. Her
-great danger lay in Richard Leslie, for he was the only
-being that had ever aroused them to their full strength.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">All at once she cast herself upon the bed, and after
-the fashion of her childhood, buried her face in a pillow,
-and sobbed, and “grat.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When she had occupied herself thus for some ten
-minutes, she rose and looked at herself in the glass, and
-wondered at her own distorted image, and how she could
-possibly be such a fool. But she felt better; the pain
-of parting with Dick was not quite so bad, and she felt
-kindlier towards George.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">If his conduct had taken place in England, I doubt if
-her anger would have been so soon assuaged. But they
-were in Japan—and the Japs, you know!—</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page239"></a>[pg 239]</span></p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="h2">PART THREE</p>
-
-<p class="h2">THE BROKEN LATH</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page241"></a>[pg 241]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XXVI</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">THE BROKEN LATH</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A heat wave from the Pacific had stolen over Nagasaki,
-and the windless night was filled with
-stars and lights.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Stars in the sky, and stars in the harbor, long wavy
-reflections of light from the ships in the anchorage, and
-ten thousand lanterns spangling the mysterious city.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A spangle of colored lamps that spread away to the
-base of the O Suwa hill which they stormed, covering it
-with a thousand sparkles like phosphoric sea-spray, and
-cresting its summit with a burning zone, bright as the
-snow crest of Fuji.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was a gala night, and the O Suwa, that galaxy of
-temples, had called the true believers in love and beauty
-to worship in the name of religion.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">From the great double temple, which is the crowning
-glory of the hill, Leslie and his companions looked down
-upon shrine after shrine, broad flights of steps stained
-with the soft amber and pink of lantern light, and the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page242"></a>[pg 242]</span>
-colored crowd ever shifting, and murmurous as the sea.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The shadow spaces and the vagueness of night made
-great distances in this dim but splendid picture, till the
-moon, rising over the hill-top, chased the shadows away,
-paled the lamps, and drew the distances together.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Touched by her light the crowd below became sonorous
-as a musical glass touched by the finger; the murmur
-of voices, the ripple of laughter, the sigh of moving
-silk and the flutter of a thousand fans intensified,
-rose blended and mixed, and dwelt in the air a nimbus
-of sound. The native city beyond grew more distinct,
-yet more unreal in the moonlight, which strengthened
-the black shadows of the wooded cliffs and converted the
-harbor into a trembling mirror.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“We shall never see anything again so beautiful as
-that,” said Jane, “so mysterious, so strange.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He did not reply. A small hand had stolen into his;
-it was Campanula’s. She, too, was gazing at the scene
-around and below them, filled with who knows what
-thoughts.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They were not alone here on the utmost heights;
-women, gayly dressed, were passing into the temple behind
-them to pray and clap their hands before their
-gods. Women surrounded them, laughing, chattering,
-dispelling quaint perfumes on the air from large incessantly-waving
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page243"></a>[pg 243]</span>
-fans. From the tea houses behind the
-temple came the thready music of <i>chamécens</i> and sounds
-of unseen festivity; and from the great park beyond,
-through the hot night, the perfume of azaleas and the
-odor of the dew-wet cryptomeria trees.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Come,” said Jane, “let us go and take the picture
-with us before it gets dulled. I will never forget this
-night—there is something in the air of this place I have
-never felt before. No, thanks, I don’t want to see the
-tea houses, I am quite content with this; let us go down
-right through it, and home.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They descended the broad flights of steps through
-the murmuring, laughing, and perfumed crowd. There
-was something in the air indeed, something as intoxicating
-as wine, yet far more subtle, subtle as a poison
-or a love philter.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They found rikshas to take them back, and the whole
-party returned to the hotel, where they left Jane.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“To-morrow at noon,” she said to Leslie, as she
-turned to enter.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes, or even a little later; the train doesn’t start till
-after one.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Good-night!” She waved her hand in the lamplit
-portico and vanished.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They had no need of lanterns to show the way up
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page244"></a>[pg 244]</span>
-the hill-path to the House of the Clouds; the path was
-a tangle of moonlight and lilac-bough shadows, a tremulous
-carpet upon which above them they perceived a
-creeping and colored thing.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was Cherry-blossom. She, too, had been at the
-festival at the O Suwa, and was now returning, wearied
-out and walking like a somnambulist, a lantern painted
-with butterflies held before her nodding at the end of
-a bamboo cane.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In the house, when he had fastened the shoji and taken
-his night lantern from Pine-breeze, he turned to where
-Campanula was standing, a vague figure in the dimly-lit
-room. Yielding to a sudden impulse he picked her up
-from the ground, just as he might have picked up a
-child, and kissed her—kissed her just as he had kissed
-her when she was a child that day, years ago, in the
-valley by the Nikko road.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">That night sleep was impossible. The lights of the
-O Suwa burned before him, the perfume of the azaleas
-and cryptomerias pursued him, lighting always and
-leading him always to the same image—Jane.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He lay considering what the future would be when
-Jane was gone; the rainy season would soon be upon
-them, and then the autumn and the winter and the spring
-again after that, and the years to come.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page245"></a>[pg 245]</span>
-Whilst thus torturing his soul his mind was steadfastly
-making a resolve. A resolve that, come what
-might, Jane must not go out of his life. That to-morrow
-he must act in such a way as to make her for ever his
-own.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Come what might!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There was no time left for thought, scarcely enough
-for action.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had quite ceased to battle with himself, to say this
-is right or this is wrong. Time had cut all these arguments
-short with the command: “Act now, now, in the
-next twenty-four hours! for after that your chance is
-gone.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he began to sketch out the plan that had been
-vaguely forming in his brain all the evening—a plan
-that the villainous conduct of George du Telle made possible
-and practicable, and, to Leslie’s mind, almost
-plausible.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As he lay thus, a faint sigh came through the lattice
-of the window. The wind had risen, and was moving
-the cherry branches and the azaleas.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then came another sound—the sound of a stick tapping
-on the garden path, as if some blind person were
-cautiously feeling their way round the house.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Up along the garden path, pausing now, now advancing,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page246"></a>[pg 246]</span>
-now dying away, now returning, somebody was
-promenading in front of the house, keeping watch and
-ward like a sentry, somebody whose feet made no sound,
-somebody blind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A feeling of sick terror came over him—terror not to
-be borne.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He pulled the mosquito-net aside, and rose, shivering
-and trembling, feeling that he must look out at all hazards—even
-at the worst.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He pulled the slats aside and looked out. Nobody.
-The moonlight lay on the azaleas and the garden path,
-but of the prowler there was no sign.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he saw the cause of the sound. A lath broken
-from the house wall was hanging with tip touching the
-path, and tapping upon it as the wind shook it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He returned to bed, and tried to snatch a few hours’
-sleep, but the sound of the blind man tapping his way
-continued all night long—now faint, now loud, and insistent
-as the wind rose and fell.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page247"></a>[pg 247]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XXVII</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">THE “EMPRESS OF JAPAN”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">If Mr. Kamamura had sent a special messenger to
-Paradise to pick from the aviary there a blue-winged
-and bright-eyed day for his garden-party, he would not
-have obtained a better one than that which came by
-chance.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A haze hid its coming. Just after sunrise, looking
-from Leslie’s garden one could scarcely see Nagasaki
-down below—a toy town, seen through faint blue gauze,
-it seemed. The wind came in puffs, hot from the Pacific,
-shaking the cherry branches.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The great double cherry-blossoms were falling. The
-close, even moss under the trees was white, like ground
-after a mild snowstorm.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There was something in the atmosphere which loosened
-the petals this morning. At each puff of wind a
-fresh shower fell, sifting through the air to scatter softly
-on the ground. It was a ghostly sight in the gray and
-silent dawn; the trees seemed despoiling themselves, casting
-their blossoms from them in sorrow or fear.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page248"></a>[pg 248]</span>
-In the veranda stood the crimson garden umbrella,
-all damp with dew, and four pairs of clogs in a row.
-The house was deathly still; and one might have likened
-it to a tomb, had it not possessed so much the appearance
-of a bandbox, looped and latticed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Presently a faint sound might have been heard. A
-panel slid back, and a figure appeared, holding in its
-hand a lighted paper lantern.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was Campanula, clad in blue, her feet peeping from
-beneath her skirt like two white mice.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She put out the lantern, and hung it on a hook. Then
-she put on a pair of clogs, and clicked down the steps.
-She went down the path, through the little gate, and vanished
-from sight; and as her footsteps died away, silence
-returned to the house and the garden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then in a few minutes a glorious transformation scene
-took place. The haze turned to a golden mist; it became
-sundered by rivers of clear air, and from it leaped the
-sun, like Helios from the sea.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Instantly the silence of the orchard became broken
-by the bickering of birds; a cock crowed somewhere in
-the back premises, and he was answered by the cock that
-lived half-way down the hill at the cooper’s shop—who
-was answered, a minute later, by all the roosters in
-Nagasaki.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page249"></a>[pg 249]</span>
-The mist vanished entirely now, the sun began steadily
-to mount into the vault of perfect blue; his slanting
-rays shot through the cherry orchard, striking here the
-bole of a tree glistening with great tears of fragrant
-gum, and there on the ground besnowed with blossom,
-even the fierce old hills of the landscape garden lost
-something of their ruggedness in the warm and mellow
-light.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the house began to awaken. Pine-breeze appeared
-on the veranda, and after Pine-breeze the other
-Mousmés all busy, or appearing so, dragging out futon
-to air for a moment in the morning brightness, and
-lacquer screens to be dusted.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Summer has come in the night,” said Lotus-bud,
-pointing out the fallen cherry-blossoms.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes,” chimed in Pine-breeze, “but spring has
-gone.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I dreamt last night of frost.” This from Cherry-blossom,
-who was busily engaged watching the others
-at work.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Frost is a bad dream in Japan, and the Mousmés
-conferred in murmurs as to what it might mean.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I know,” said Lotus-bud suddenly, with an air of
-conviction.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page250"></a>[pg 250]</span>
-“The riksha man will die.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Which?” asked Pine-breeze.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the two Mousmés began to “guy” Cherry-blossom
-as to the number of the riksha man destined to
-die.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ichi-ban, Ni-ban, San-ban,”[3] murmured Lotus-bud.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">[Footnote 3: Number one, number two, number three.]</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Shi-ban, Go-ban, Roku-ban,” rippled Pine-breeze.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Hachi-ban!” suddenly cried Lotus-bud, with an air
-of inspiration.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ku-ban!” replied Pine-breeze, with the air of going
-one better.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Leslie San!” said Cherry-blossom: and Pine-breeze
-got up and scuttered into the house, where Leslie San
-was calling for his bath to be heated.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">An hour later he appeared on the veranda, fully
-dressed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He noticed the promise of heat in the air; he noted
-the great fall of cherry-blossoms that had occurred
-during the night; he noted the lantern that Campanula
-had hung on the hook.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he left the veranda, came down into the garden
-path, and through the gate.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Outside the gate there was a little by-path that led
-upwards and to the left, between a double bank of bushes
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page251"></a>[pg 251]</span>
-to an open space like a natural platform, from which a
-splendid view of the harbor and hills could be obtained,
-A great camellia tree forty feet high grew here, alone
-in its splendor, and beneath it he stood gazing at the
-harbor.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He could hear the faint monosyllabic cry of the
-brown hawks ever circling above the blue water, and
-the distant sound of a drum from the <i>Rurik</i> where she
-lay at anchor. He could see the sampans shooting hither
-and thither, carrying fruit and what not to the ships
-in the anchorage, and the Junks floating like brown
-phantoms past the shadow of the opposite cliffs.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But his eye was searching for something that was not
-there.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He looked at his watch, put it back in his pocket
-with an impatient gesture, and continued to gaze.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Suddenly—Hrr-’mph!—Haa-aar!—the blast of a
-syren came shouting up the harbor, and chasing the
-echoes through the hills. The brown hawks rose and
-circled in wild flight, and past a bend came a great,
-white, double-funneled steamer.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was the Canadian Pacific boat, the <i>Empress of
-Japan</i>, touching at Nagasaki, and due to leave the
-morning following for Yokohama and Vancouver.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He watched her for a moment as she swam to her
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page252"></a>[pg 252]</span>
-berth, beautiful and graceful as a swan. Then he turned
-to the house.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">To-morrow morning he and Jane would be on board
-that boat, bound northward up the Inland Sea, past
-Tsu-shima, past Osaka, past Yokohama, and away across
-the blue Pacific to Vancouver.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The whole plan was cut and dried. Jane had given no
-consent; that did not matter. She would consent; he felt
-the power in himself to <i>make</i> her consent.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Men of his stamp, lazy, neurotic, yet strong-willed,
-stung into action by love or hate, sometimes assume
-momentary but terrible command over events; they infect
-with their passion, infuriate with their hate, or paralyze
-with their love.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He entered the house, ordered breakfast, and enquired
-for Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had gone down at dawn, said Pine-breeze, to see
-O Toku San, the poor girl who was so ill, and was now
-dying. He was glad Campanula was out, and determined
-if possible to get his preparations over before her return.
-Jane and he would return from Mr. Kamamura’s
-about six that evening. It would be time enough then to
-tell Campanula of his journey.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As he breakfasted, he completed that part of his plans
-which had reference to Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page253"></a>[pg 253]</span>
-She would be safe and well looked after by M’Gourley,
-till—he came back. He told himself he would come back
-some day; perhaps in six months or so he would come
-back.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And why should he worry about leaving Campanula
-for a time? He had often gone away before, once as far
-as London; he had always come back.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Why should Campanula mind his going away again?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Why, indeed!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He tried to forget how her little hand had stolen into
-his on the evening before as if for protection. How,
-when he had kissed her, she had suddenly flung aside her
-timid reserve, and with her arms around his neck, but
-without a word, had told him what only a woman can
-tell without speech.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Perhaps it was because he loved her far more than he
-knew, that his mind was filled with gloom and apprehension.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But it was the time for action, not for thought; only
-a few hours lay before him in which to prepare for this
-journey—the journey from which he would return quite
-soon perhaps.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He would leave the house just as it was to Campanula
-and the Mousmés till he came back and made other arrangements.
-M’Gourley, as his agent, would supply
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page254"></a>[pg 254]</span>
-them with all the money needful just as he had done
-before.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he called Pine-breeze and told her to get his
-portmanteau up to his room, as he was going on a
-journey.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He packed hurriedly, whilst Lotus-bud handed him
-things. He wanted to get the packing over and done
-with.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The strong sunlight reflected from the matting lit up
-the room with a golden glow. Pine-breeze in the kitchen
-below was singing a song about a lilac bough—the same
-song he had heard in the orchard that day when Campanula
-had cried: “Hist, some one at the gate!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He leaned back sitting on his heels to listen. He heard
-the end of the song now. He did not hear it that day,
-for Jane, knocking at the veranda, had cut it short.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This was the gist of the last verse:</p>
-
-<div class="poem">
-<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">“<i>The bee comes no more</i></span><br>
-<span class="i0"><i>When the lilac’s white blossom is dead</i>.”</span><br>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he went on with his packing at a furious rate,
-stuffing in shirts, collars, handkerchiefs, his mind wandering
-over all sorts of subjects.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">His packing finished, he went to the window, took out
-his pocketbook, and examined its contents. Three hundred
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page255"></a>[pg 255]</span>
-and ten pounds, half in circular notes, half in notes
-of the Bank of England.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he took out a check-book and a stylograph pen,
-and wrote a check for five hundred, payable to himself.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Ten minutes later he was in a riksha making for the
-Bund, where he stopped at Holme &amp; Ringers, the shipping
-agents, bought two first-class tickets for Vancouver,
-and changed his check, receiving part in cash, and
-part in a check upon the National Specie Bank of Yokohama.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was now eleven o’clock, and he had practically completed
-his preparations. He had now to see Mac, and he
-turned his steps to the office, which was only a stone’s
-throw from the shipping agents. Mac was writing
-letters.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Morning,” said he, glancing up, and seeming surprised
-to see his partner at that hour.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What’s agate?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I am,” said Leslie, trying to assume a jovial manner.
-“I’m off for a holiday, and I want you to look
-after things same as you’ve done before.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“This is sudden,” said Mac, going on with his correspondence
-without looking up.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh, it’s never too sudden for a holiday. And see
-here, I’d better leave you some ready cash: here’s a
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page256"></a>[pg 256]</span>
-check for two fifty. I want you to look after the bairn
-whilst I’m away.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Keep the money,” said Mac, “and pay me—when
-y’ come back. Ay, ay, it’ll be soon enough then—soon
-enough then.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’d sooner leave you the money.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Weel, put it in that drawer.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, you <i>are</i> a bear this morning. See here, I’ve
-put it in the drawer, but I’ll see you again before I go:
-I’m not off till to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Imphim!” replied the Dour One, and Leslie went off.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Your true Scot has a very nasty habit of expressing
-his bad opinion of a man. He does it in a round-about
-way, using hints and innuendoes, instead of coming to
-the matter by a direct route.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">What Mac suspected or what he knew, Leslie could not
-tell; judging from his manner, however, he knew or suspected
-a lot.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">However, he had no time to trouble about Mac. He
-had one thing more to do before meeting Jane, Mr.
-Initogo the landlord had to be interviewed, and the rent
-paid.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There was a fair of a sort on in the street that
-formed the shortest cut to Mr. Initogo’s. It was filled
-with a many-colored crowd, flags were fluttering, awnings
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page257"></a>[pg 257]</span>
-flapping in the wind; every shop had some extra
-advertisement to attract customers, and during the past
-night, like mushrooms, extra booths had sprung into
-being.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A roaring trade was going forward; here, all kinds of
-fruit, there all kinds of fish, some with bunches of violets
-in their mouths; cakes reposing on branches of cherry
-or myrtle; cakes in the form of donkeys and monkeys
-and goats; cakes shaped like spinning-tops; cakes in the
-shape of suns, moons and stars; candied beans, beans
-mixed with comfits, kites, masks, and paper dragons.
-Paper fish shaped like carp for the Little-boys’ Festival
-of the 5th of May.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The noise and bustle somehow pleased Leslie, and
-soothed him; and he drifted along with the chattering
-stream of men, women, Mousmés, little boys and mere
-babies. Some of the children had long, curved trumpets
-of glass, from which they blew the most horrible of
-hobgoblin sounds. Here a man was frying pancakes,
-wrapping them in rice paper, and flinging them to unseen
-customers in the crowd, who flung him back the
-money. Here a person in spectacles, who looked like a
-professor of chemistry gone mad, was blowing from a
-glass-blower’s tube dragons and fish in sugar-candy.
-Apothecaries, with great golden eyes painted on their
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page258"></a>[pg 258]</span>
-booths, were selling little rice paper charms, one to be
-taken dissolved in water for the stomach-ache, two for
-lumbago, three for migraine. Here stood a man who
-would pull your teeth out with his fingers, three sen a
-tooth.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The cheap curio dealers were in evidence with their
-wares cheap and bad; those quaint perambulating curio
-dealers, who, as a rule, only start business at sundown,
-and whose stock-in-trade include old top hats, old boots,
-old—anything—European. “Caw—caw—caw!” You
-look up, and see a great kite straining at its strings.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And then the umbrellas! Leslie had a good view of
-them, for he was head and shoulders taller than any one
-in the crowd. Red, pink, gray, gray-green, pink-and-white,
-blossom-bestrewn, stork-bestrewn, a shifting mass
-of color reflecting the sunlight.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But though he saw all this, and though the noise and
-bustle and laughter and general atmosphere of festivity
-fell in with his humor, his thoughts were far away at
-Osaka; he was wondering what George du Telle was
-doing, and what George du Telle would say in a day or
-so, and how he would look. He had never hated George
-du Telle really till now that he had determined to rob
-him of his wife.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Now that he was about to commit, or attempt to commit,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page259"></a>[pg 259]</span>
-a vile and abominable act against George du Telle,
-that person seemed to him the acme of all things vile and
-abominable.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Suddenly, through an opening in the crowd, Leslie
-caught a glimpse of a face, the face of a blind man,
-stolid, stony, with a flattened nose and wearing an indescribable
-expression of eld, weariness, and misfortune.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was only a momentary glimpse, but revealed just
-for a moment, and contrasted with the shifting colored
-mass around him, with the noise and laughter, the sunlight
-and the movement of life, it was like a vision of
-death.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie stood for a moment startled and chilled; the
-joyous exaltation in his mind a moment ago had vanished:
-it was as if a cloud had come between him and the
-sun.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Why were these things always occurring to fret his
-soul and trouble his imagination? This blind man was
-nothing but an ordinary blind man of Japan such as one
-might see any day. The broken lath that had troubled
-him all night was but a broken lath; the song of the
-mushi that had started that infernal sound in his head
-was but the sound of an insect buzzing; the azalea that
-had caused that frightful dream was but a flower.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">These slight things, he told himself, acting on a brain
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page260"></a>[pg 260]</span>
-made over-sensitive by opium, were not warnings, but
-simple causes of complex effects. And he passed on his
-way, cursing himself for a fool, till he reached the shop
-of Mr. Initogo.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">That gentleman, for a wonder, was not making tea,
-but the sight of Leslie San instantly inspired the desire
-for his favorite beverage, caused him to clap his hands,
-and the tea-tray to appear in the hands of his wife
-almost instantly upon the sound.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He received his rent, which he put away with an appearance
-of indifference, expressed sorrow on hearing
-that Leslie was going away for even a short time, but
-joy at the thought that the journey might benefit his
-honorable health.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was really fond of Leslie, this old Japanese gentleman;
-but the worst of the flowery Japanese language is
-that it remains always, so to speak, at boiling point, and
-towards friend or perfect stranger is the same. You
-can’t cool it, and you can’t warm it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Whilst they were talking Kiku came in; her eyes were
-red and she had a snuffle in her voice.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had been, it seems, to see the poor girl who was
-dying, O Toku San; Campanula was with her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ah, yes,” said Mr. Initogo, as his daughter retired
-upstairs. “Most sad, poor girl. A man whom she loved
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page261"></a>[pg 261]</span>
-left her, and she is dying of it, just as a flower dies from
-want of water.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie looked at his watch: it was after twelve. He
-hastened from the shop of Mr. Initogo, and securing a
-riksha drove to the Nagasaki Hotel on the Bund.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page262"></a>[pg 262]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XXVIII</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">M’GOURLEY’S LOVE AFFAIR</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At about three o’clock on that eventful day M’Gourley
-met one of Holme &amp; Ringer’s clerks in the
-street.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“So your partner’s off for a holiday,” said the clerk.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“So he tells me,” replied Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“He’s going pretty far afield,” went on the clerk;
-“Vancouver isn’t—”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Where did you say?” cut in M’Gourley.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Well, he’s bought two tickets for Vancouver this
-morning, one for his cousin and one for himself. She
-is married, and they are going to pick her husband up
-at Yokohama,” he went on, smiling slightly.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Vancouver!” said Mac. He stood for a moment in
-astonishment, then hailing a passing riksha he jumped
-into it, and told the driver to take him to the House of
-the Clouds.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula had just returned, she was in the garden;
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page263"></a>[pg 263]</span>
-and when she heard his step coming up the hill path she
-came to the gate to meet him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She greeted him with a smile, but there was something
-about her that struck M’Gourley strangely.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had a far-away look in her face, and she wore an
-abstracted air. Away from the world her mind seemed
-wandering in some far, strange country, whilst her little
-body walked beside him, and her lips answered his questions,
-and told him things.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“O Toku San is dead,” said she; “I have just left
-her.” She spoke gravely, but without any sorrow in her
-voice; one might even have imagined that she was referring
-to some good fortune that had fallen on O Toku
-San; and perhaps, indeed, she was.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ay! puir thing, is she?” said Mac, whose mind was
-also astray.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He asked had Leslie returned, and Campanula told
-him that he had gone to a garden-party at Omura, and
-would not return till evening.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“He is going away,” finished Campanula, pausing
-on the veranda steps and unlatching the strap of her
-sandal.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh! so he’s told you?” said Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula said nothing; possibly she did not hear
-the question, so absorbed was she by her own ideas and
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page264"></a>[pg 264]</span>
-thoughts. Suddenly she said, turning to Mac, who was
-leaning his shoulder against the veranda post and feeling
-in his pocket for his tobacco-pouch:</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I saw the Blind One to-day as I was leaving O Toku
-San’s. I did not speak to him; he spoke to me. He said
-the master of the house on the heights is going on a
-journey from whence he will not return. Then he went
-away. A wind from the hill blew my kimono apart and
-a chill came to my breast. I do not know who the Blind
-One is—perhaps he is Death.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M’Gourley, as she spoke, noticed that she had refolded
-her kimono from right to left instead of from left to
-right.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Now in Japan, the only people who wear their
-kimonos folded from right to left are the dead.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He felt sick and shivery at the words she had just
-spoken, and he could not reply to them or ask questions;
-he was filled with a horror of the subject, a dead, blind
-terror of it. He looked down and said gruffly:</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“What way is that you’ve folded your kimono? Just
-run into the house and put it right. I’ll bide here on the
-verandy and smoke my pipe.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She vanished into the house, and Mac sat down, but he
-did not light his pipe. What could be the meaning of
-all this? Surely he was dead, and laid long ago in the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page265"></a>[pg 265]</span>
-green woods of Nikko—could it be possible that the
-dead return?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Why was it that she alone could see him, hear him,
-and speak to him?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">His eye caught the crimson azaleas as they bloomed
-in their beauty and splendor, and the Nikko road rose
-before him, the mysterious valley, peopled by the crimson
-flowers, the cypress trees, the far-off country, and
-the distant sea hills beyond Tanagura.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He heard Leslie’s voice as it denied the existence
-of God, and declared that if he had ever been given a
-creature that loved him, he would have cared for and
-loved it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he felt something touch his shoulder, and, turning
-with a start, found it was Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Come,” said she, in the manner of a person who
-would say, “I wish to show you something.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He rose and followed her into the house. She led the
-way upstairs, and down the narrow passage to Leslie’s
-room.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At the door she paused and pointed to an object on
-the floor. It was a portmanteau packed and strapped.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They both looked at it without saying a word: a
-silence, that spoke of the deep, unconscious understanding
-between them.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page266"></a>[pg 266]</span>
-“Come,” said Mac in his turn, and taking her by
-the hand he led her downstairs.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Had the portmanteau been a coffin, containing some
-being beloved by Campanula, he could not have spoken
-more gently, or led her away from it more tenderly.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Downstairs the old, rough, gruff M’Gourley seemed
-very much perturbed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Could he have found Leslie alone at that moment, a
-very regrettable scene might have ensued.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And yet at the bottom of all his anger and perturbation
-lay a golden gleam. If Leslie went off like this,
-Campanula would be all his (Mac’s) own.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had no idea of marrying her, or anything of that
-sort; but he had an immense idea of possessing her all
-for himself.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had, proposed to buy a half share in her at Nikko,
-and he would have made a bad bargain, for during the
-last five years he had possessed a full half share without
-paying a cent, unless we count the pounds and pounds
-expended on dolls, sweets, and so forth.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But this was not like having her all to himself: a creature
-to feed and clothe, to buy hairpins for and tabis,
-fans and sweets; to listen to of an evening, as her fingers
-strayed over the strings of a <i>chamécen</i>, or her tongue
-told fabulous tales of folk clad in fur or feathers.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">All at once, as he paced the room, he turned to her,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page267"></a>[pg 267]</span>
-literally picked her up, hugged her, gave her a kiss, and
-said: “He’ll come back to you. Dinna greet; I canna
-stand it. I’ll be back and see you the morrow morn before
-he goes.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He hurried out of the house, and went raging down
-the hill.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">To be in anger with one whom one loves works, indeed,
-like madness in the blood.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac, as he plunged down the hill, was lashing himself
-into a fury against Leslie. He turned into a saki shop
-and drank half a pint of that seemingly innocuous
-liquor; then he went to the office, took a whisky bottle
-from a cupboard, and poured himself out a liberal peg.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was an abstemious man as a rule, but once he took
-the bit between his teeth nothing on God’s earth except
-death would stop him, till the next morning’s headache
-came.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At five he recognized that he was hopelessly embarked
-on a grand drunk, and determined to take a riksha over
-to Mogi; there complete the business, and return in time
-next morning to see Leslie before he started.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Just before starting from the hotel a waiter brought
-him out a cablegram from Shanghai, which had come
-round from the office. It was relative to a bank disaster
-that had occurred in India. He read it, stuffed it into
-his pocket, and ordered the Djin to proceed.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page268"></a>[pg 268]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XXIX</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">THE GARDEN-PARTY</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Within an hour of the great city of Nagasaki,
-in the midst of a park that was at the same
-time half a garden, lay the country residence of Mr.
-Kamamura; once a man who carried two swords, with
-the longer of which he would have beheaded you for
-two words and have done it with neatness and despatch,
-now a gentleman in a frock-coat and tall hat, wearing
-gold-rimmed glasses and a smile.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The long, low house, white as snow and surrounded by
-a narrow veranda, faced west, and was surrounded by
-a garden recalling the gardens of Dai Nichi Do: a garden
-filled with the music of fountains and the poetry of
-birds.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Alas! on the day of his garden-party Mr. Kamamura,
-seized with the spirit of modernity and the savagery
-of civilization, not content with the music of
-heaven, and prompted, no doubt, by the devil, had hired
-a brass band and placed it in a little kiosk, with orders
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page269"></a>[pg 269]</span>
-to bray Strauss in the face of Nature from three o’clock
-till dusk.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There were many guests, and the gardens soon presented
-an animated appearance. Many of the ladles had
-retained the national dress, and marvelous were the
-fabrics to be seen in the form of the obi or flowing loose
-in the graceful kimono.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Some of the guests surrounded a pair of jugglers,
-two terrible men dressed in red, who fenced with and
-transfixed one another with long swords, swallowed fire,
-and belched it like dragons.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In another corner of the grounds fireworks were whizzing
-and cracking, filling the clear air above with a thin
-blue haze through which, just as Jane and Leslie entered
-the grounds, there rose a wonderful fire balloon made of
-colored paper and fashioned in the form of a turkey
-cock.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It’s like a party in the lunatic asylum,” whispered
-Jane, as they threaded the maze of guests in search of
-their host and hostess. “And, Dick, you <i>do</i> look perfectly
-awful in that panama amongst all these men in
-tall hats—I mean they look awful beside you, but they
-are <i>de rigueur</i>; and it’s better to be <i>de rigueur</i> and look
-frightful, than to be not <i>de rigueur</i> and look nice. How
-d’y’ do?” and Jane extended her arm, pump-handle
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page270"></a>[pg 270]</span>
-fashion, to the little gentleman with the sallow face to
-whom Leslie was introducing her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Much pleasure, much pleasure,” said Mr. Kamamura,
-whose English was mixed and limited, and who, like
-Kiku San, had not completely mastered the letter “l.”
-“Will the honorable rady so make equal health Nagysaki
-(the proper way to pronounce Nagasaki) you stay?
-So good. Over there Mrs. Kamamura; you make
-known;” and Mr. Kamamura presenting his arm Jane
-was led away through the crowd like some tall and graceful
-frigate threading a maze of painted cock-boats.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie, left to himself, turned with a gloomy expression
-of countenance to where the jugglers were dislocating
-each other’s necks. He did not see them; he was
-looking out of the side of his eyes at Jane.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had been led across one of the willow-pattern
-bridges, and he could see her now standing at one of the
-kiosks, a tea-cup in her hand. She was talking to Mr.
-Kamamura and a little lady in European dress—Mrs.
-Kamamura, probably.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">What could they be talking about? Conversation,
-probably, sufficient to dislocate the gravity of a Socrates.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He turned his head impatiently and tried to take an
-interest in the jugglers, without success. There was
-something deeply irritating about the scene of frivolity
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page271"></a>[pg 271]</span>
-in which Fate had staged the last scenes of the most important
-act in his life.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The <i>Empress of Japan</i> sailed at eight on the morrow
-morning, and as yet he had made no movement as regards
-Jane. All this trifling was but a bad prelude to
-those words so soon to be spoken.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He little knew that Tragedy stood at his elbow in the
-form of James Anderson, manager to M’Cormick, the
-great silk dealers on the Bund.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Why, Leslie, man! I thought I knew the nape of
-your neck. How are you?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Hullo, Anderson!” said Leslie, returning the other’s
-hand-grip. “What are you doing here?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’m just looking round,” said Anderson. “I’m just
-looking round, and you’ll admit it’s worth the turning of
-one’s head. I shouldn’t mind exchanging places with
-Kamamura. It’s not a bad life, his, by a long penny.
-This affair will bang a hole through a good pile of ten
-pun notes. They tell me those balloons made like dicky-birds
-cost—I forget now, but it’s a good pile of dollars
-a-piece, for every feather is painted correct, and that’s
-just like the Japs—make a pretty thing, and then stick
-it away in some hidey-hole where no one can see it, or
-burn it—What’s agate now?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The crowd was in motion, flooding towards a part of
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page272"></a>[pg 272]</span>
-the grounds where a little stage had been erected, backed
-and half surrounded by cypress trees. On the stage,
-against the dark-green background, could be seen the
-graceful figure of a girl.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She was dancing. It was a dance that at first insipid,
-became after a few moments fascinating, lulling, exquisite
-to watch as the movements of a flower blown by
-the wind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They drew close and stood to look. The girl was
-dressed in amber and scarlet, with a scarlet flower in the
-night of her hair—a <i>bijou rose et noir</i>, recalling Baudelaire’s
-Lola de Vallence.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Her supple body seemed inspired by the mysterious
-music we hear wandering through the land of spring,
-and expressing itself in the voices of the wind and the
-birds and the streams.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She seemed to have learned her art in the academy
-where the daffodils are taught to dance and the bluebells
-to make their bow.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“It’s the Geisha Kamamura has hired—paid her something
-like two hundred to dance that fan-dance, or whatever
-they call it. She was a Tokyo girl, and had left
-the business to get married, but she couldn’t withstand
-the two hundred; the best Geisha in Japan, they say.
-What’s this her name? O something San. Hoots! but
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page273"></a>[pg 273]</span>
-my memory is gone fishing to-day. Listen! she’s talking.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The dance had ceased, and the girl, in the silence that
-followed the tinkling of the three accompanying <i>chamécens</i>,
-had commenced one of those poetical recitals in
-favor with an intellectual Japanese audience.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Her recitation was sad; it bemoaned the thing we call
-change. The cherry-blossom is fair, ran this untranslatable
-poem, but it must die and give place to the lotus.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I cannot understand this depression in trade,” murmured
-the muted voice of Anderson, as he stood beside
-Leslie. “It’s been spreading and spreading, and there’s
-nothing it hasn’t spread into.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And the lotus parts with its petals to give place to the
-chrysanthemum, the Royal chrysanthemum.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“We’ve had a good year till now, ourselves, but hech!
-man, there’s a matter of fifteen thousand gone over the
-breaking of the Bombay and Benares bank—clean gone,
-never to come back—and that takes the sugar off the
-cake—ay, the devil himself won’t whistle it home again.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And the gray winter sky and the snowflakes, like
-ghosts of flowers, finished the poem of the Geisha, whilst
-Leslie stood transfixed for a second, frozen by the news
-he had just heard, and unable to turn. He turned round
-full on Anderson.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“The breaking of <i>what</i>?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page274"></a>[pg 274]</span>
-“The Bombay and Benares. Have you not heard the
-news? It came by cable to-day at one o’clock. Good
-God! man, you hadn’t much money in it, had you?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Everything—everything,” said Leslie in a stammering voice.
-“I’m smashed.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He linked his arm in Anderson’s, and dragged him
-along hurriedly. He wanted to go, nowhere in particular,
-but just get away from the spot where Anderson
-had sentenced his future to death.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Man, I’m sorry! Man, I’m sorry!” said his companion.
-“I should not have told you so sudden, but how
-was I to know?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Smashed—smashed—smashed!” said the other, talking
-as a man talks in his sleep.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He held Anderson by the arm as he spoke. All around
-spread the many-colored crowd; fans were fluttering,
-umbrellas bobbing, tongues chattering, soft women’s
-voices inlaid like music of gold on the silvery music of
-the fountains and cascades.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Anderson, man, are you sure they’ve broken—sure?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ay, ay, sure. Better to tell you straight. Sure as
-my name’s James Anderson.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Boom! Boom! Boom! the band broke into a march
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page275"></a>[pg 275]</span>
-by Gungl, and Leslie, releasing Anderson, ran after a
-figure in the crowd some twenty paces distant.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Jane! I must speak to you at once.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane looked up from the little Japanese gentleman
-who was escorting her, saw the distress in her countryman’s
-face, and dismissed Asia with a bow.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I have just had frightful news. Come with me to
-some quiet place till I tell you about it. Anywhere. No
-matter where. See! there are no people across that
-bridge where the trees are; let us go there.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane spoke not a word, but he saw that she was very
-pale and trembling. That weakness of Jane’s gave him a
-strange sensation. It said something that her lips had
-never uttered.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They passed over the little bridge. They passed over
-another bridge; there were no people here, only trees;
-they went no further.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They were in a small forest. The garden was lost to
-sight; only the music of the band, muted by distance,
-told of the festivity so near, yet apparently so far away.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The trunk of a felled tree lay in the path; they sat
-down upon it by common consent. Leslie took out his
-watch, and looked at it attentively. Then, still holding
-it open in his hand, he spoke.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page276"></a>[pg 276]</span>
-“I want you to listen to me for five minutes—only
-five minutes; you can hold the watch, and measure the
-time yourself. Jane, when a man is going to be hanged,
-they will give him a glass of brandy to help him along
-to the drop. Will you do the same by me—give me five
-minutes’ clear speech, and let me say just what I please
-without interruption; will you?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Yes,” said Jane, and she shivered as she spoke the
-word. She had maintained a strange silence; impulsive as
-she was, one might have expected her to implore him to
-tell her the worst, and have it over. Perhaps she understood
-dimly that Leslie’s disaster was personal to herself,
-a cataclysm the effect of which would reach her future
-as well as his.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“You remember,” he said, after a moment’s pause,
-“how I asked you to marry me long ago, and everything
-that happened after? Well, when I think of all that, it
-seems to me that I must have passed through life in a
-state of insanity, and only awakened to consciousness
-now. Jane, I am feeling now as a man must feel when
-he wakes in hell, and remembers—No matter, it is all
-done with now; and even if you loved me as well as
-I love you, it’s all over and done with and useless
-now.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He leaned forward with his face in his hands. Jane
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page277"></a>[pg 277]</span>
-did not speak; the music of the band had ceased, and the
-only sound to be heard was the weary sighing of the
-warm wind in the pine-tops.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’m broken utterly, I have just heard the news.
-Don’t think I brought you here to listen to me whining
-about my misfortunes. I brought you here to tell you I
-love you. I meant to have carried you off in the steamer
-that sails to-morrow morning for the north-west. With
-the money I had yesterday, I would have supported you,
-I would have torn you out of society, and made you
-love me. I would have made you a Paradise. Yes, by the
-living God, a Paradise, or there’s no such thing as love.
-But now I’m a beggar, and I love you too well to drag
-you into my ruin, and it’s Fate, Fate, Fate that has
-done it all, and cursed be its name!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Again silence, broken only by a faint, dreary sound.
-Jane was weeping.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Don’t, for the love of God!” cried Leslie. “Don’t
-cry, or you’ll make me cry too. Oh, miserable life! why
-was I ever born into it?” And he moved his hands in
-the air, as blind Samson might have done amidst the
-pillars of the temple.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A bird piped three times in the recesses of the wood,
-three flute-like notes sweet as the notes of a bell-bird.
-They were answered by its mate in the branches above.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page278"></a>[pg 278]</span>
-Leslie put his hands to his ears, as if to shut out the
-happy sounds.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane’s tears had ceased, but she did not speak, she
-did not breathe; only a deep sigh occasionally escaped
-from her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“And now, we can only say good-bye. Let us part
-here for ever. We will meet again in—Heaven,” said
-Leslie, with a horrible shuddering laugh.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He stretched out his hand and took hers. She let him
-have it without seeming to know that he had taken it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She was murmuring his name in a whisper, staring at
-him and through him, and as if her gaze was fixed on
-some terrible catastrophe beyond.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Dick! Dick! Dick!” All poetry could not express
-the helpless, hopeless sorrow she put into those three
-little whispered words.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Suddenly, filtering through the wood, came a sound,
-a voice, a spirit, that unrolled around them a panorama
-of loch, moor, and sky, hills purple with heather, lakes
-dark with shadow. “Auld Lang Syne.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The band was playing it, villainously enough, but
-the distance smoothed away the defects.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It broke Jane down. She leaned against his shoulder
-and sobbed like a child, and then, with both hands upstretched,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page279"></a>[pg 279]</span>
-she drew his face down to hers and murmured—no
-matter what.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then all at once—heedless of ruin, forgetting all
-things, carried away on the dumb tide of passion, the
-wave that had retreated before disaster, only to come
-shoreward again resistless and gigantic—all at once,
-and without a word, he took her in his arms.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was the eloquence of passion and despair, the speech
-without tongue of a soul tormented and <i>in extremis</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It broke Jane down utterly. Hopeless, haggard, and
-pale as a person in the midst of some terrible disaster,
-she clung to him, whispering in his ear words repeated
-over and over again, with that reiteration which forms
-the rhetoric of the dying and the lost.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had cast everything aside, the world, her position
-in society, her husband, her wealth. Passion and pity,
-that strange combination, had for the moment blinded
-her eyes to everything but the man beside her—but did
-she love him? Fate had not yet disclosed the answer to
-that old fatal question, that sphinx-like question whose
-answer forms the plot of each man’s story.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page280"></a>[pg 280]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XXX</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">THE FALSE REPORT</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mr. Kamamura never again saw his two tall
-English guests.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As a matter of fact, they sought for and found a
-means of leaving his garden by a back way that brought
-them to a road which in its turn brought them to the
-station.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And the native gentlefolk in the train, which brought
-them back to Nagasaki by six o’clock, could not imagine
-what great grief it was that made the tall English lady
-so pallid, and so like the very picture of woe.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At the Nagasaki station Leslie helped his companion
-into a riksha.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Don’t come back with me to the hotel,” she murmured;
-“I will drive there alone. I want to be alone,
-quite alone for a while. All our arrangements are made,
-and there is nothing more to be said. God help me!—God
-help us both! Good-bye, Dick, for the present.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page281"></a>[pg 281]</span>
-He watched her drive off. Then he took a riksha himself,
-and ordered the man to take him to the House of
-the Clouds.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Everything was arranged. Jane was to be his for
-ever. But there was no triumph in the thought. The
-battle had been won by his own weakness, not by his
-strength. Jane’s compassion for him had betrayed her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They were to sail to-morrow by the <i>Empress of
-Japan</i>. He was to stay the night at the hotel, for he
-could not possibly remain the night at the House of the
-Clouds having once bidden good-bye to Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Beyond Vancouver lay the scheme traced out by him,
-accepted by Jane. They were to buy a farm in the
-Canadian North-west, and live there for ever happily.
-He would not touch a penny of her money; he had jewelry
-worth at least four hundred pounds, which would
-be amply sufficient to start on. His share in M’Gourley’s
-business was to be left for Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It is true he knew little about farming, but—love can
-do anything.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Viewed from a natural standpoint the whole arrangement
-was not only natural but praiseworthy. That a
-woman, fond of a natural life in the open air, should
-leave a creature like George du Telle, and cast herself
-into the arms of a man like Leslie. What could be more
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page282"></a>[pg 282]</span>
-in keeping with the grand aim of Nature, the propagation
-of the fit in body?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Viewed from a social standpoint the whole arrangement
-was wickedly absurd. And from a moral standpoint
-simply wicked.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Nature stood decidedly on Leslie’s side; God (according
-to the theologians) and society stood against him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">These problems are occurring every day and every
-minute of the day, perplexing the thinker and confounding
-his belief, unless he looks upon the world as a higher
-thing than a breeding ground for animals. And it is generally
-by their side issues they are to be solved, and the
-side issue in Leslie’s case was Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was nearing Danjuro’s shop when he saw a riksha
-with a disguised figure in it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was Mac, and Mac was disguised with whisky.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was flushed, and his hat was on the back of his
-head, and he was so obviously fuddled that the gentle
-Japanese who passed smiled and passed on, without looking
-back.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Stop!” cried Leslie to his man, then jumping out
-he ran to M’Gourley’s riksha, which had also stopped.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Have you heard the news?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“News?” said Mac. “News—what news?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“The Bombay and Benares bank is broken.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page283"></a>[pg 283]</span>
-“It is not,” replied the other, fumbling in his pocket.
-“Na, na—false report. Bombay and Ta-Lien, you
-mean.” Then, drawing a paper from his pocket, and
-with ferocity: “Canna ye read?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie took the paper; it was a cablegram from
-Shanghai.</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-<p class="indent">“False report. Bombay and Ta-Lien suspended. Bombay
-and Benares safe.</p>
-
-<div class="poem">
-<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0"><span class="smcap">Jardine Matheson.</span>”</span><br>
-</div>
-</div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="indent">“Good Heavens!” said Leslie. “When did you get
-this?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Hoor ago. Drive on, you—wheel me awa’.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Where are you going?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Mogi—to forget I was ever such a fule as to go into
-partnership with a man like—<i>wheel me awa’</i>!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Steady on, steady on,” said Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I’ll be back the morrow morn and see y’ before
-you’re awa’ to Vancouver.” Then, leaning back as the
-riksha started: “I may be a fule, but I’m not a blind
-fule, and I’m not a—(<i>hic!</i>).”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The riksha joggled over a stone and he collapsed like
-a shut-down opera hat.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie continued his way.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page284"></a>[pg 284]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XXXI</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">FAREWELL</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was seven o’clock; the birds were taking their nests
-in the cherry orchard with one final burst of chattering.
-The sky in the west, wave-green melting into
-vaguest blue, held one solitary cloud floating like a rose-leaf
-beneath the evening star. Leslie stood at his gate,
-looking for the last time at the twilight stealing over
-Nagasaki. He had just arrived.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M’Gourley’s words were still ringing in his ears, and
-his mind was in a turmoil.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was in exactly the position of the man who has
-cheated unwittingly at cards, who has found out his
-mistake, and who has still time to save his honor.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">If the Bombay and Benares bank was safe, it was his
-plain duty to go at once to Jane du Telle and inform
-her of the fact. She was laboring under the impression
-that he was a ruined man. Half of her sympathy, the
-whole of the present situation, had arisen from that misconception.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page285"></a>[pg 285]</span>
-To leave her under this delusion would
-amount to fraud—the meanest of all frauds.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was feeling this keenly, but unfortunately his
-mind, instead of grappling with the situation, and forcing
-his body to act, was engaged in cursing Fate, and the
-tangled net in which he found himself taken.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Was it his fault that the false news had come just
-at the psychological moment, the news that had actually
-thrown Jane into his arms? He kept asking himself this,
-as he gazed across the dusk-eyed harbor to the hills now
-becoming dimmed by the twilight.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This last touch of Fate would, if he accepted it without
-resistance, rob him of the last remnants of honor
-and all self-respect.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">His hand was upon the stakes, he had a moment to
-decide whether to take them or leave them: to be a thief
-or an honest man.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Suddenly, as if silence had placed her finger upon
-their throats, the birds in the orchard ceased their
-chatter.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The warm day dying seemed to have called all the
-spirits of beauty from air and earth and sea, to stain the
-skies above its death-bed with the tints of the ocean and
-the dawn. Over the tomb of light Color, Light’s firstborn
-child hovered like some exquisite ephemera whose
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page286"></a>[pg 286]</span>
-wings change from beauty to beauty before dissolving
-for ever in darkness and death.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The silence that had come over the orchard was broken
-occasionally by little outbursts of squabbling from over-full
-nests, sounds like the flirting of a fan amongst the
-leaves, chirrupings that told of differences made up.
-Then final and complete silence that would last till night
-woke the owls.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie at the gate suddenly made a gesture as if he
-were flinging something away, turned on his heel, and
-came towards the house.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He entered just as Cherry-blossom, with a white
-flower in her hair, her amber sleeves fallen back and exposing
-her fore-arms, her body stretched to its fullest
-height on the tips of her tabis, was in the act of lighting
-the big hall-lamp. She looked like a little cat stretching
-herself.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A pang went through his heart. He would never see
-Cherry-blossom light the big hall-lamp again, never
-again see Pine-breeze bring in the tea-cups, nor Lotus-bud
-carrying off Sweetbriar San to his box in the
-kitchen.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">You cannot possibly live in Japan without loving your
-maid-servants. I mean by love that sort of passion which
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page287"></a>[pg 287]</span>
-was inspired in Matthew Prior by the lady of fashion
-aged five.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was a feature of the House of the Clouds that
-sometimes on the lower floor you would find a hall with
-two rooms on either side of it, and sometimes two rooms
-and no hall, and sometimes, in very hot weather, one
-huge room. The sliding paper partitions made this possible;
-nay, very easy, for Mr. Initogo had improved
-upon the ordinary Japanese method, being of an inventive
-turn of mind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He looked into the room on the right of the hall. A
-<i>chamécen</i> lay on the floor, an hibachi showed a crimson
-spark, and a dwarf maple in a pot of Arita ware displayed
-its pretty form vaguely in the twilight.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He looked into the room on the left: no one.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Where was Campanula? She must have returned by
-this, surely. Perhaps she was upstairs.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He went up, making little noise in his stocking-feet.
-At the door of his room he peeped in.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There was Campanula. Oh, desolate sight! She was
-sitting on his big portmanteau all alone in the dusk.
-Her head was bent.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She looked so forlorn and so small, and the sash of
-her obi so huge in comparison with the wearer, that he
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page288"></a>[pg 288]</span>
-could not but recall how she sat that morning in the
-Tea House of the Tortoise. That morning, when she
-had likened herself to a lump of mud; the morning he
-had proposed to adopt her, and care for her, and make
-her a chattel of his own.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A moment later, he had caught her up in his arms.
-She did not resist, but he seemed to have taken up a lifeless
-thing.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As he carried her downstairs, had he known, it might
-have seemed strange to him that so great a grief should
-be so light a burden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He brought her to the room on the right, where
-Cherry-blossom had just lit the lamp, and sat down beside
-her on the matting.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He took a cigarette from his pocket, and approached
-the tobacco-mono with it. Then, without lighting it, he
-flung the cigarette away.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Campanula, I am going on a journey. I did not
-tell you last night, for I had not made up my mind.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I have heard it,” she replied. She sat there beside
-him, a small figure with head bowed and hands folded in
-her lap; and the sadness and sorrowful sweetness of those
-four words pierced his heart.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">To get this terrible interview over, to tear himself
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page289"></a>[pg 289]</span>
-away at once, he would have sold years of his life. But
-it had to be gone through with.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Whether she loved him as a woman loves a man, or a
-child loves a father, she loved him, loved him as no person
-had ever loved him before—and he knew it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he talked to her, telling her that he would come
-back.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I have been away before, Campanula, and I have
-returned. Will you not believe me that I will return?”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Ah yes,” she answered, “but you did not go with
-her.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He said nothing for a moment. There was a sound
-outside; it was the coolie he had ordered to take his portmanteau
-to the hotel. He heard Pine-breeze accosting
-him, he heard him go upstairs and come down again,
-walking heavily. It was like the sound of a man carrying
-out a coffin.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He heard his steps on the garden walk dying towards
-the gate.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">How had she discovered with whom he was going?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">If she would only weep or cry out, or move, or break
-in some way this terrible stillness. If she would only
-reproach him. But she said nothing, nor even sighed.
-She seemed like a person stricken not by grief, but death.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page290"></a>[pg 290]</span>
-Then he began to talk again, telling her of the arrangements
-he had made. How M’Gourley San would look
-after her, just as he had done before, till he came back.
-And he would write every week—till he came back.
-And they would all be happy together again, as happy
-as ever they had been—when he came back.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">To which she replied:</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“If you are going away to find happiness, my happiness is great.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Fancy a white house, lantern-lit, and steeped in dusk,
-a tall man walking away from it rapidly, three Mousmés
-on their knees on the veranda crying after the vanishing
-form: “Come again, oh, condescend to come
-again quickly!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The sound of their voices rings in his ears as he passes
-through the little gate. He hears it pursuing him like
-the faint murmur of bees, until a puff of wind blows it
-away and replaces it by the faint sound of the city below.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Come again! He will never come again to lie in the
-hammock beneath the cherry trees. Never more shall
-Lotus-bud hand him the night lantern to light him to
-his bed, nor thy small hands, O Pine-breeze, bear him
-the brown leather cigar-case that thy small nose loved
-to smell!</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page291"></a>[pg 291]</span>
-As he came down hill towards Nagasaki he felt as
-though he were leaving spring for ever behind him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Thrice he stopped as if to return, and stood gazing
-into the darkness of the uphill path, listening to the wind
-in the branches of the lilac trees.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The last of these pauses ended more abruptly than the
-others, and he plunged on again down hill through the
-gloom.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page292"></a>[pg 292]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XXXII</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">HER HOUSE IN ORDER</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Left alone, Campanula sat, her hands folded in
-her lap—a Lost One indeed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Before her mental vision, beyond Japan, beyond that
-desolate country always surrounded with ice, the country
-where the bluebells grew—beyond all this lay the
-land where O Toku San had gone that day, the land
-where one never regrets, one never forgets, one never
-remembers.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had gone to find happiness. Not one word had
-she spoken to hold him back or keep him by her, this
-true daughter of Dai Nippon, soul sister of O Gozen
-San, daughter in spirit of the immortal Hirose.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Cleopatra with the asp and all the mouthing heroines
-of history would seem cheap indeed beside this small and
-faithful figure to whom death was nothing, passion and
-personal happiness nothing beside the happiness of the
-being she loved.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She sat for an hour scarce moving; then she rose up.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page293"></a>[pg 293]</span>
-She had no more time for personal thoughts; all things
-had to be left in order, and her trust to the least detail
-faithfully fulfilled.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She called the Mousmés to her, and told them that
-now Leslie San had left, they would be discharged until
-he came back. They could go that evening to their
-homes in the city below. She would pay them their
-wages and a month in advance, and a little present for
-each out of money of her own. And the three kow-towed,
-delighted at the prospect of change and the
-month’s money for doing nothing, and the little present
-besides. They never thought to ask her what she would
-do herself in the house alone, their butterfly brains were
-so filled with the thoughts of pleasure.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then she made Lotus-bud bring all the bills owing,
-bills yard long and extraordinarily minute in detail.
-These she discharged. There were chits out, but these
-were Leslie’s affair, and he had no doubt settled them.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She thought of Sweetbriar San the cat, and as he was
-fondest of Pine-breeze, she gave Pine-breeze a small sum
-to take him home and keep him, applying to M’Gourley
-San if more money were needful.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then she went upstairs to her own room and folded
-neatly the obis and kimonos in the drawers of the great
-lacquer cabinet. In one of these drawers were things
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page294"></a>[pg 294]</span>
-she had only, as it were, dropped from her hand; the
-toys she had played with as a child. Here was the doll
-bought in Nikko, and bouncing balls, ever so many; and
-in a piece of rice paper, still ferocious, but terribly old
-and warped, the famous dragon.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She took him out and tried to remove the paper from
-his sugar-candy sides, but it was stuck too tight. She
-put him back, and, holding the drawer with both hands,
-pressed her forehead against them.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As she stood like this, mute and utterly motionless,
-the night breeze came through the window, bearing the
-perfume of the azaleas.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was as if they were calling to her, and she closed
-the drawer gently and turned, as if to say, “I hear.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then she came down and found the three Mousmés
-waiting, each with a lighted lamp on the end of a stick,
-and her frail belongings on her back, luggage consisting
-of cardboard boxes, except in the case of Pine-breeze,
-who was also burdened with a basket containing Sweetbriar
-San.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They had received their wages, and there was nothing
-left for them now to do but go; which they did, after
-profound salaams, murmurs and declarations of personal
-unworthiness.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then Campanula found herself standing alone. The
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page295"></a>[pg 295]</span>
-only living thing beside herself in the house was the
-mushi, that musician of the night, already saluting its
-mistress with a thin stream of song. She went to the
-doorway where it hung, and unhooked the little cage.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page296"></a>[pg 296]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XXXIII</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">THE “LA FRANCE”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The fair that had been going on all day in the street
-leading to the Bund was still in full swing. A
-lurid sight the street presented, lit by lanterns of all colors,
-and flare lamps near the booths.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie was glad of the noise and bustle around him;
-one cannot think much when pressing one’s way through
-a Japanese fair, colored lamps dancing, Mousmés laughing,
-and showmen shouting, rikshas passing at a trot, or
-attempting so to do, children blowing trumpets, babies
-whirling rattles, men-of-war’s men from the ships in
-harbor walking four abreast and arm in arm, singing
-“Jean Francis de Nantes,” or “We won’t go Home
-till Morning.” <i>Chamécens</i> and moon fiddles buzzing
-and tinkling, dogs barking, and gakunin wailing.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was ten when he reached the hotel. In the entrance-hall,
-where the orange trees in tubs reflected the
-lamp-light from their glossy leaves, a Chinese hall porter
-in a blue silk blouse sat on guard. From the half-open
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page297"></a>[pg 297]</span>
-door of the <i>salle à manger</i>, where a party of Russian
-officers were at dinner, came the sound of laughter
-and the clinking of glasses.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As he entered the hotel the whole world around him
-changed. Campanula vanished from his mind. He was
-no longer in Japan. He was in the same house with
-Jane, and in a few more hours she would be his.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Chinaman rose from his seat when he saw Leslie
-enter and led him down a corridor to the door of the private
-sitting-room where he had dined with Du Telles.
-He had promised Jane to wait for her there till the
-morning.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The sphinx-like Celestial closed the door, and Leslie
-found himself alone.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The windows were open on account of the warmth,
-and they gave a view of the narrow mysterious harbor
-that seems to have been cut in the old heroic days by
-some giant who was also a poet. The high cliffs cast
-their shadows like sable robes upon the water, jeweled
-with the lights of the shipping. The sky all silence and
-stars, paling now in the moonlight, was almost the sky
-of Europe. Orion was there, and the Pleiades, and Cassiopæa
-dreaming in her diamond-studded chair.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The room itself was a strange mixture of Japan and
-Europe. The floor was the matted floor of Japan, the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page298"></a>[pg 298]</span>
-cane sofas might have been bought at Shoolbred’s. The
-walls were as plain and unadorned as the walls of a
-Japanese house are wont to be—that is to say, under
-the fans which the hotel proprietor had fastened to them—fans
-from Kioto, Tokyo, and Nara crucified against
-the white paneling and looking like great butterflies in
-some giant’s collection.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He lit a pipe. Jane was upstairs in some room, but
-there were still nine hours of waiting to be done; and he
-had promised that he would not go upstairs if permitted
-to pass the night in the hotel, but wait patiently for
-her to come to him at the hour of starting.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He felt that if he thought about her he would break
-his oath, so he drove her from his mind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He watched the twinkling lights in the harbor; those
-darting about like fire-flies were the sampans; that long
-hulk all crusted with light was the <i>La France</i>, the ship
-in which Jane had intended to sail for Osaka. It was
-after ten now, and she was overdue to leave. That sister-hulk,
-equally gemmed, was the Nord Deutscher Lloyd
-boat leaving at dawn for Colombo. Those three lights
-in a triangle were the anchor lights of the great Russian
-cruiser <i>Rurik</i>—the ill-fated <i>Rurik</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Suddenly a horn of light shot out from the bow of
-the <i>La France</i>, and she began to move like a glittering
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page299"></a>[pg 299]</span>
-town towards the sea, and the wind from the west
-brought the faint music of a band. The <i>La France</i>
-had unbuoyed and was away.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He watched her as she picked her course through the
-shipping stealthily like a robber. Now with all side
-lights showing, now with them half extinguished as she
-veered to avoid the bell-buoy of the Atraska shoal; now
-a vague phantom swallowed by the shadows of the night.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The hotel was silent now, the Russians had gone off
-to their ship. Somewhere outside, somewhere in the
-gloom of the mysterious night, a <i>chamécen</i> was tinkling
-to the muttering of a little drum. What dancing girl
-was setting her steps to that tune—and where?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He rose to his feet and began to pace the room, then
-he turned the lamp up till it smoked, and turned it down
-till it was nearly out, and cursed the burner for his own
-stupidity.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Still the distant <i>chamécen</i> kept up its buzzing to the
-devil’s tattoo of the distant drum.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He walked to the window and shut it. Result—absolute
-silence and stifling heat. No matter; anything
-was better than that infernal drum.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had shut out the drum, but he had shut in a mosquito.
-It was in the lace curtain, and its twang brought
-him again to his feet. He tried to find it in the curtain,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page300"></a>[pg 300]</span>
-failed, pulled the whole curtain down from its attachment,
-and trampled it under-foot.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Silence, this time unbroken, until one of the fans upon
-the wall rustled, and from beneath it crept a frightful-looking
-spider as brown and as broad as a penny.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He did not see it; he was sitting in the arm-chair with
-his head between his hands, breaking his promise to Jane.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When it was broken he got up, crossed the room,
-opened the door, and went into the hall.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Chinese night-porter was sitting like a figure of
-stone in a blouse of blue silk. Leslie went up to him,
-spoke some words in a low tone, and handed him some
-money.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Chinaman rose and led the way upstairs. Down
-a passage they went till the guide stopped, pointed to a
-door, turned, and vanished as silently as he had come.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie went to the door and knocked softly. No answer.
-He turned the handle, the door opened and he
-entered—an empty room.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A lamp was burning on a table in one corner, a bed
-stood close to the window: the bed was empty.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was Jane’s room, for there lay her trunks. A glove
-lay on the floor. He picked it up, looked at it, smelt it,
-and then threw it down. The dressing-table held none
-of those articles of the toilet one might have expected
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page301"></a>[pg 301]</span>
-to see. Beside the lamp on the side-table lay a letter.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had seen the letter almost on the first moment of
-his entering the room, with that vague, half-terrified
-comprehension which we may imagine in the brain of the
-bull when the sun-light flashes on the sword of the matadore.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He approached it now, and read the superscription:
-“Richard Leslie, Esq. Important.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He opened it, and a number of bank notes came out.
-These he laid on one side, took the letter that was with
-them, and began to read.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He read the letter, not as if he were reading a letter,
-but the face of some scoundrel he had dragged by the
-ears into the zone of lamplight. He envisaged it, took
-whole sentences in <i>en bloc</i>. He read first at the end, then
-in the middle, then at the beginning.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“And now good-bye for ever. Oh, Dick, don’t think
-badly of me for this; I have only done what was right.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“When you get this I shall be gone. I am leaving
-by the <i>La France</i> to meet George.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“I leave you money. Half what I have is yours; remember
-we are cousins, and ought to help one another.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">“Oh, Dick! Dick! I <i>can’t</i> do what you want. I am
-not thinking of myself but of my people. Imagine the
-disgrace and ruin it would bring them. My dear old
-father, it would kill him.”</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page302"></a>[pg 302]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XXXIV</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">AMIDST THE AZALEAS</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was very late at night; clouds from the Pacific were
-rolling over Nagasaki, and it was evident that the
-hot weather of the last two days had been the prelude of
-a storm.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The House of the Clouds, lamp-lit and deserted, cast
-from the opening in the shoji a long parallelogram of
-light that cut the darkness like a sword; a sword of light
-lying upon the veranda, the graveled walk, and the landscape
-garden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">With the darkness outside had come a great silence
-broken only by the wind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Had you been standing on the veranda you would
-have sworn that some blind person was prowling before
-the house, soundless of foot and cautiously feeling his
-way by tapping on the ground with a stick.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was only the lath shaken by the wind, the tireless
-lath that all day and all the night before had kept the
-echoes of the garden answering its summons, and still
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page303"></a>[pg 303]</span>
-kept up the unwearied sound-semblance of a blind man
-who walked without footstep, a patient sentinel, now advancing,
-now retreating, now at the garden gate, now
-near the azaleas, and ever waiting.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The garden gate clicked, and hurried footsteps came
-up the path.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was Leslie, hatless, bright and wild of eye, walking
-rapidly, but in a tottering manner. His lips were of a
-dull purple color, and he had the aspect of a man heavily
-drugged with opium.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He crossed the veranda and entered the deserted hall.
-He looked into the rooms on either side—they were
-both empty. Then he came back to the hall, and cried
-out, “Campanula!” The rafters returned the sound of
-his voice, but she did not answer.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was perfectly clear of mind, but his breathing was
-affected, and a deadly torpor hung over him which his
-will alone prevented falling.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He took in all the details around him with extraordinary
-clearness, amongst others the fact that the mushi’s
-cage had been removed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Having waited for a moment, straining his ears to
-catch the faintest sound, he seized the swinging paper
-lantern that lit the hall, and with it in his hand went into
-the kitchen. It was deserted. Then he went upstairs—every
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page304"></a>[pg 304]</span>
-room was empty. It was like a house from which
-the people had fled in terror, and he came down again,
-wild with the apprehension of some unknown tragedy.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He brought the lamp into the room on the right of
-the passage, and placed it on the floor. Something crimson
-lay on the primrose-colored matting. He picked
-it up; it was Campanula’s obi. Why had she cast it
-there?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was looking round him as if for a person to explain
-all these things, when his eye caught an open
-drawer of the great lacquer cabinet that contained his
-papers. He looked into the drawer, and it was empty.
-It was the drawer in which he had placed the waki-zashi—the
-suicide sword, given to him by Jane.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">From the open drawer his eyes turned to the obi, which
-he had dropped, and then he looked round him, as Dives
-looks round him in that picture of Teniers, where Dives
-wakes in Hell.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As he stood, the wind shook the broken lath outside,
-and played with it. “Tap! tap! tap!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He saw the sunlit Nikko road, the valley of the crimson
-azaleas, the Lost One who had loved him as no other
-being had loved him—the one he had lost for ever.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She was dead, yet it was denied to him to find her, and
-clasp her in his arms, and die with her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page305"></a>[pg 305]</span>
-Death was nothing, but never to find her again, never
-to see her again, or touch her small body, that was an
-agony far beyond death.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He left the room, feeling by the walls like a man without
-sight.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Outside, the world was in utter darkness. More clouds
-had rolled up over the sky, as if called by the Blind One,
-the tapping of whose stick betrayed him, as he walked,
-waiting for his prey.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">If he could find her, what cared he for the Blind One!
-If he could not find her he felt that he would be for ever
-lost. But he could never find her more, for the opium
-sleep was falling upon him now. He had no more
-strength to fight it, and the darkness of the pit lay
-around him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Suddenly, the night wind changed, and brought him
-the perfume of the unseen azaleas, and with the perfume
-a thin thread of song.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was the song of the mushi—the atom of life he
-had spared that day in his fury, even as God might
-now be sparing him—the mushi she had loved so well.
-Feeling by the veranda wall, he followed the song like
-a man led by a thread, and as he came he crushed something
-beneath his foot: it was the lath, whose sound
-would never trouble him again.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page306"></a>[pg 306]</span>
-He felt the azalea bushes around his knees, and advanced
-amongst them, still led by the tremulous song,
-till his foot touched something soft, and his hand a tiny
-cage, hanging to one of the crimson-flowering boughs.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a id="page307"></a>[pg 307]</span></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'><h2>CHAPTER XXXV</h2></div>
-
-<p class="h2">BON MATSURI</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was the 18th of August—the last night of Bon
-Matsuri.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Under a sky splendid with stars, the hills about Nagasaki
-were gemmed with colored lights. Ten thousand
-colored lanterns adorned the terraced cemeteries, and towards
-dawn each lantern would be fixed to a tiny boat of
-straw, freighted with a few small coins, and some small
-offering of fruit, to stay the souls of the dead on their
-long journey home.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M’Gourley had come out to see the fairy-like spectacle,
-for he knew that Mr. Initogo, that faithful old Pagan
-gentleman, was amidst the rejoicers on the hillsides, and
-had lit two lanterns, and freighted two small boats, for
-the souls of two friends he had known on earth.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Just as the morning breeze began to blow, and before
-the first star had paled in the dawn breaking over the
-Pacific, the gazers from the ships and the shore drew
-their breath, for suddenly the whole hillsides seemed in
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page308"></a>[pg 308]</span>
-motion, shifting and glittering down to the water’s edge,
-till the ripples became surrounded by a zone of rose-colored
-fire.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the water itself became dyed with the glow of
-ten thousand lanterns, each bravely upborne on its little
-ship of straw, whose sails took the Eastern breeze.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As the fairy flotilla sailed away, spreading the harbor
-with light and color, ship after ship took fire, and
-ship after ship was lost.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M’Gourley, hat in hand, stood watching till the last
-spark had vanished in the lilac of the dawn; then, with a
-sigh that spoke of things that were not, but might have
-been, he turned slowly home.</p>
-
-
-<p> </p>
-<hr class="hr2">
-
-<div class="tnote">
-<div class='chapter'><h2>Transcriber’s Note:</h2></div>
-
-<p class="indent">Throughout the dialogues, there were words used to mimic accents of
-the speakers. Those words were retained as-is.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Errors in punctuations and inconsistent hyphenation were not corrected
-unless otherwise noted.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 17, a quotation mark was removed after “Lord sakes!”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 29, a superfluous quotation mark was deleted.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 29, a quotation mark was moved one space to the correct
-position.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 47, a period was added after “as fraunk as mysel’”.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 81, “Lesile” was replaced with “Leslie”.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 120, “perfumed hair” was replaced with “perfumed hair”.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 128, “acros” was replaced with “across”.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 150, a quotation mark was added after “Lord and also the empire of the birds.”</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 243, “though” was replaced with “through”.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 264, “horor” was replaced with “horror”.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 272, “Baudelaires” was replaced with “Baudelaire’s”.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 281, “jewelery” was replaced with “jewelry”.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p> </p>
-<p> </p>
-<hr class="full">
-<div style='display:block;margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CRIMSON AZALEAS ***</div>
-<div style='display:block;margin:1em 0;'>This file should be named 55709-h.htm or 55709-h.zip</div>
-<div style='display:block;margin:1em 0;'>This and all associated files of various formats will be found in https://www.gutenberg.org/5/5/7/0/55709</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away&#8212;you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-top:1em; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE</div>
-<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE</div>
-<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by email) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
- </body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/55709-h/images/title_page.jpg b/old/55709-h/images/title_page.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 41ff729..0000000
--- a/old/55709-h/images/title_page.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/old/55709-0_2017-10-08.txt b/old/old/55709-0_2017-10-08.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 27762f6..0000000
--- a/old/old/55709-0_2017-10-08.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,8113 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook, The Crimson Azaleas, by H. De Vere (Henry De
-Vere) Stacpoole
-
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-
-
-
-Title: The Crimson Azaleas
-
-
-Author: H. De Vere (Henry De Vere) Stacpoole
-
-
-
-Release Date: October 8, 2017 [eBook #55709]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-
-***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CRIMSON AZALEAS***
-
-
-E-text prepared by Roger Frank, Ernest Schaal, and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team (http://www.pgdp.net) from page images generously made
-available by the Google Books Library Project (https://books.google.com)
-
-
-
-Note: Images of the original pages are available through
- the Google Books Library Project. See
- https://books.google.com/books?id=nxgNAAAAYAAJ&hl=en
-
-
-Transcriber's note:
-
- Text enclosed by underscores is in italics (_italics_).
-
- Small capitals were replaced with ALL CAPITALS.
-
-
-
-
-
-THE CRIMSON AZALEAS
-
-A Novel
-
-by
-
-H. DE VERE STACPOOLE
-
-Author of "The Blue Lagoon"
-
-
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-New York
-Duffield & Co.
-1910
-
-
-
-
- CONTENTS
-
-
- PART ONE
-
- THE TRAGEDY OF THE NIKKO ROAD
-
- CHAPTER PAGE
-
- I. THE ROAD TO NIKKO 5
-
- II. THE BLIND ONE 11
-
- III. THE LOST ONE 20
-
- IV. AMIDST THE HILLS 25
-
- V. THE TEA HOUSE OF THE TORTOISE 31
-
- VI. THE DREAMER AND THE DRAGON 44
-
- VII. HOW CAMPANULA BROUGHT FORTUNE TO THE
- HOUSE OF THE TORTOISE--AND OTHER
- THINGS 54
-
- VIII. THE SURPRISING STORY OF MOMOTARO--AKUDOGI
- AND SPOTTED DOG 61
-
- IX. THE HOUSE OF THE CLOUDS 71
-
- X. OF MOUSMÉS AND OTHER THINGS 82
-
-
- PART TWO
-
- THE MASSACRE OF THE BLUE-BELLS
-
- XI. THE DREAM 91
-
- XII. THE FOREIGN DEVILS 101
-
- XIII. THE MONASTERY GARDEN 107
-
- XIV. NAGASAKI BY NIGHT 119
-
- XV. M'GOURLEY'S LOVE AFFAIR 124
-
- XVI. THE PHILOSOPHY OF EVIL 135
-
- XVII. THE HOUSE BY NIGHT 141
-
- XVIII. MOSTLY ABOUT FLOWERS 151
-
- XIX. THE STORK AND THE TORTOISE 172
-
- XX. THE SONG OF THE MUSHI 183
-
- XXI. M'GOURLEY'S LOVE AFFAIR 194
-
- XXII. THE COMPLETE GEOGRAPHER 206
-
- XXIII. STRUGGLE 213
-
- XXIV. GEORGE DU TELLE 223
-
- XXV. RETROSPECTION 232
-
-
- PART THREE
-
- THE BROKEN LATH
-
- XXVI. THE BROKEN LATH 241
-
- XXVII. THE "EMPRESS OF JAPAN" 247
-
- XXVIII. M'GOURLEY'S LOVE AFFAIR 262
-
- XXIX. THE GARDEN-PARTY 268
-
- XXX. THE FALSE REPORT 280
-
- XXXI. FAREWELL 284
-
- XXXII. HER HOUSE IN ORDER 292
-
- XXXIII. THE "LA FRANCE" 296
-
- XXXIV. AMIDST THE AZALEAS 302
-
- XXXV. BON MATSURI 307
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER I
-
- THE ROAD TO NIKKO
-
- "Upon the road to Nikko,
- Where the pilgrims pray,
- Along the road to Nikko
- Either side the way,
- Thundering great camellia trees
- Decked with blossoms gay,
- Adorn the road to Nikko,
- The mountain road to Nikko,
- In the month of May."
-
-
-The singer stopped singing and began to whistle. Then he broke out into
-prose.
-
-"Damn boots! I'll be lame in another mile. Why can't we be content with
-sandals like our 'brithers' the Japs!"
-
-"Dinna damn boots, but their makers," replied his companion, a sandy
-Scot of fifty or more, dressed in broadcloth and a bowler, a figure at
-once a blot upon the lonely road and a blasphemy against Japan--a blot
-whose name was M'Gourley. "I vara well remember when I was in Gleska--"
-
-"Oh, don't!" said the poet of the Nikko road, Dick Leslie by name, a
-young man, or rather a man still young, very tall, straight, dark, and
-good-looking, and a gentleman from the crown of his close-clipped, curly
-black head to the soles of the boots that were torturing him. "Don't
-haul up your factory chimneys, your smoke and whisky bottles in this
-place of places. I believe if a Scot ever gets into heaven he'll start
-his first conversation with his first angel by making some reference to
-Gleska: Look there!"
-
-"Whaur?"
-
-"There!" cried Leslie, turning from the direction of Fubasami and the
-beginning of the great Nikko valley before them, and pointing backwards
-away towards Kureise over an expanse of distant country where the clouds
-were drawing soft shadows across the rice fields and the sinuous hills;
-over little woods of fir and cryptomeria trees, lakes where the lotus
-flowers spread in summer, and the king-fisher flashed like a jewel; over
-occasional fields of flowers, flowers that grew by the million and the
-million.
-
-Many of these details were absorbed and dulled by distance, yet still
-lent their spirit to the scene, producing a landscape most strange and
-quaint.
-
-Nearly every other country seems flung together by nature, but Japan
-seems to have been imagined by some great artist of the ancient
-days--imagined and constructed.
-
-"Look there," said Leslie, "saw you ever anything better than that in
-Clackmannan?"
-
-"Ay, have I," replied M'Gourley, contemplating the view before him,
-"many's the time. What sort of country do you call that? Man! I'd as
-soon live on a tea-tray if I had ma choice."
-
-"Well, you've lived in Japan long enough to be used to it. It's always
-the way; put a man in a paradise like this where there are all sorts of
-flowers and jolly things around him, and he starts grumbling and
-growling and pining after rain, and misery, and cold, and sleet, and
-peat smoke--if he's a Scotchman. How long have you been in Japan, Mac,
-did you say?"
-
-"Near ever since the Samurai took off their swords and turned
-policemen."
-
-"What kept you in the East so long if you don't like it?"
-
-"Trade, like the wind, blaweth where it listeth, and a man must e'en
-follow his trade," said M'Gourley; and they resumed their road.
-
-They were walking to Nikko together, this strangely assorted pair,
-strangely assorted though they were both Scotchmen. They were
-approaching the place, not by that splendid avenue of cryptomeria trees
-that leads from Utso-no-Miya, but by the wild hill road, which runs from
-Kureise, or rather by the higher hill road, for there are two, and they
-had taken the loneliest and the longest by mistake (M'Gourley's fault,
-though he swore that he knew the country like the palm of his hand).
-
-They had come twenty or twenty-five miles of the way by riksha, and were
-now hoofing the remainder, their luggage having been sent on to Nikko by
-train.
-
-"And talking of trade," said M'Gourley, "let's go back to the matter we
-were on a moment ago; there's money in it, and I know the beesiness. I
-ken it fine; never a man knows better the Jap Rubbish trade."
-
-"You were talking of starting at Nagasaki."
-
-"Ay, Nagasaki's best."
-
-"Well, I'll plank the money," said Leslie. "I'll put up a thousand
-against a thousand of yours."
-
-M'Gourley stopped and held out a hand sheathed in a mournful-looking
-black dogskin glove.
-
-"Is't a bargain?" said he.
-
-"It's a bargain. Funny that we should have only met the other day in
-Tokyo, and that you should have come along to Nikko to show me the
-sights. I believe all the time you were bent on trepanning me into this
-business."
-
-"I was that," said M'Gourley, with charming frankness; "for your own
-good. A man without a beesiness is a man astray, and when you told me in
-the hotel in Tokyo you were a boddie with money, and nothing to do with
-it, I said: 'Here's my chance.'"
-
-"If I had met you two months ago," said Leslie bitterly, "I wouldn't
-have been much use, for my father would not have been dead, and I would
-not have come into his money. Do you know what I have been?--I have been
-a remittance man."
-
-"I've met vera much worse people than some of _them_," said Mac, who if
-his newly found partner had declared himself a demon out of Hades would
-perhaps have made the same glossatory remark--the capital being assured.
-
-"I'm hanged if I have," said Leslie bitterly. "Give me a Sydney
-Larrikin, a Dago, a Chinee, before your remittance man. I know what I'm
-talking about for I have been one--see?"
-
-"What, may I ask--" began M'Gourley, then he paused.
-
-"You mean what was the reason of my being flung off by my father?
-Youthful indiscretions. Let's sit down; I want to take my boot off."
-
-The road just here took a bend, and became wilder and more lovely, a
-stream gushed from the bank on which they took their seats, and before
-them lay a little valley, a valley hedged on either side by cypress
-trees, and thronged with crimson azaleas.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II
-
- THE BLIND ONE
-
-
-Crimson azaleas in wild profusion, here struck with sun, here shadowed
-by the cypress trees--a sight to gladden the heart of a poet. Between
-the cypress trees, beyond the azaleas, beyond country broken by sunlight
-and cloud shadows, lay the sea hills of Tanagura in the dimmest bluest
-distance.
-
-"If I could get that into a gold frame," said Leslie, as he inhaled the
-delicious perfume of the azaleas and bathed his naked foot in the tiny
-cascade breaking from the bank on which they sat, "I'd take it to London
-and send it to the Academy--and they'd reject it."
-
-"Vara likely," replied Mac. "It is no fit for a peecture. Who ever saw
-the like of yon out of Japan? It's nought but a fakement."
-
-"I say," said Leslie, "talking of fakements--in this business of ours I
-hope we'll steer clear of all that."
-
-"In this beesiness of oors," said Mac, "I thought you distinctly
-understood my friend Danjuro will be the nominal head of the firrm--we
-are but the sleeping pairtners."
-
-Mac's Scotch bubbled in him when he grew excited, or when he forgot
-himself. Ordinarily he talked pretty ordinary English, but when the
-stopper was off the Scotch came out, and you could tell by the
-pronunciation of the word "money" whether he was mentioning the article
-casually or deep in a deal.
-
-"Well," said Leslie, "I don't want my dreams troubled by visions of
-Danjuro swindling unfortunate tourists; you say we're to export things,
-but I don't want to have him roping in people, selling them
-five-shilling pagodas at five pounds a-piece."
-
-Mac sighed as if with regret at the impossibility of such a delightful
-deal as that.
-
-"It's rather jolly going into business," continued Leslie, dreamily
-gazing at the azaleas. "Only crime I've never committed, except murder
-and a few others. Good God! when I started in life I never thought I'd
-end my days peddling paper lanterns, and cheating people into buying
-penny-a-dozen kakemonos for a shilling a-piece. Don't talk to me; all
-trade is cheating."
-
-"You should have known Macbean," said M'Gourley, who had also taken off
-his boots and stockings and was bathing his broad splay feet in the
-pretty little torrent.
-
-"Who was he?"
-
-"Forty year ago I was his 'prentice. Mummies, and idols, and pagods, and
-scarabeuses was the output of the firm, and Icknield Street, Birmingham,
-its habitation."
-
-"Idols?"
-
-"Ay, idols. Some the size of your thumb, and some the size of bedposts,
-which they were derived from; some with teeth, and some with hair, and
-some bald as a bannock. We stocked half West Africa with idols, and the
-South Seas absorbed the balance."
-
-"Well, you certainly take the cake," said Leslie.
-
-"I took three pun ten a week at Macbean's, and learnt more eelementary
-theology than's taught in the schules of Edinboro'. Macbean said
-artistical idols was what the savages wanted, and what they would get as
-long as old bedposteses were to be bought at knockdown prices, and sold
-for the waurth of elephants' tusks."
-
-"You disgust me," said Leslie, "upon my word you do."
-
-"That's what Macbean said one day to the boddie I had in mind when I
-began telling you of this. The boddie came in grumbling about a mummy--a
-vara fine mummy it was, too--that had been sold to him for export. The
-mummy had been stuftit with newspapers, but the _sachrum ustum_ used for
-coloring the stuffing matter being omitted, the printed matter remained
-in eevidence when the American who bought the article in Cairo opened it
-to hunt for amulets and scarabeuses. 'Newspapers!' said Macbean. 'And
-what more do you expect in a fifty-shullin' mummy? Did y' expect it
-stuffed wi' dimonds?'"
-
-"Well?" said Leslie.
-
-"That's all, and that's the whole of beesiness in a walnut shell; y'
-canna expect a fifty-shullin' mummy to be stuffed with--"
-
-"Rubbish! the whole of swindling, you mean. Anyhow, we'll keep straight,
-if you please; a fair profit I don't mind, but I object to rank
-trickery--by the way, what's the time? my watch has stopped; and how far
-is Nikko off?"
-
-"It's after two," said Mac, who had no very definite idea of how far
-Nikko might be off, having led his companion by the wrong road and
-concealed the fact. "And Nikko is maybe twarree miles, maybe a bit
-more--wull we go?"
-
-For all answer Leslie took some bar-chocolate from his pocket, gave some
-to his companion, and proceeded to lunch.
-
-"I daresay you think it funny," said he at last, "my chumming up, and in
-your heart of hearts--that is, your business heart (excuse me for being
-frank)--you must think it strange I should put up my money with a man
-whom I don't know in the least. But, man! the truth of the matter is I'm
-weary for a friend. I have money enough and to spare, but--I'm weary for
-a friend.
-
-"I'm the lonest man in the world," went on Leslie, munching his
-chocolate and gazing at the beautiful scene before him; "the lonest man
-on God's earth. What is the matter with me that I should never have
-found and kept a friend? If God had ever given me anything to love I'd
-have cherished it, but--there is no God that I can see."
-
-"Whisht, man," said Mac. "Dinna talk like that."
-
-"I know I was wild," went on Leslie, "before I left England, but other
-men have been as bad. I quarreled with my father, but other men's
-fathers are different from what mine was. He drove me beyond the sea to
-be an alien and an outcast. I've seen drunken loafers in the bars of
-Sydney, where I was stuck as a remittance man three years; they had
-friends of a sort--friends who stuck them, but friend or dog never stuck
-to me."
-
-"No wumman?" asked M'Gourley, spitting out the remains of the chocolate
-he was eating, and lighting a vile-looking Hankow cigar.
-
-"I loved a woman once," said Leslie, staring before him with eyes that
-saw not Japan or the cypress trees or the azaleas. "Her name was Jane
-Deering; we were boy and girl together, cousins, and her people lived
-quite close to mine. We got engaged, and were to have been married,
-and--she threw me over."
-
-"For why?" asked Mac.
-
-"Said she didn't want to get married."
-
-"Well, that was deefinite."
-
-"Damned definite. What's that noise?"
-
-"Tap, tap, tap." It was the tapping of a stick upon the ground, and a
-man in the dress of a coolie, with a saucer-shaped hat upon his head,
-turned the corner of the road, coming in the direction of Nikko. He was
-tapping the ground before him with a staff. He was blind.
-
-"What an awful-looking face!" said Leslie, as the figure approached.
-"Look, Mac! Did you ever see the like of that?"
-
-One sees many extraordinary and sinister faces in the East, but the face
-of the on-comer would have been hard to match, even in the stews of
-Shanghai.
-
-The nose seemed to have been smashed flat by a blow. The face was flat
-and possessed an awful stolidity, so that at a little distance one could
-have sworn that it was carved from stone. It impressed one as the
-countenance of a creature long in communion with evil.
-
-The two Scotchmen held motionless to let this undesirable pass, but he
-must have possessed some sixth sense, for instead of passing he stopped
-and begun to whine.
-
-He spoke in a light, flighty, chanting voice, like the voice of a man
-either insane or delirious.
-
-"What's he say?" asked Leslie.
-
-"He's a Chinee, and wants money."
-
-"Tell the beast to go."
-
-"Says he knows we're foreigners."
-
-"Clever that; why, even I can hear your Scotch sticking out of the
-gibberish you're talking."
-
-"Says he wants opium--hasn't had any the whole day, and if we will give
-him opium, or money to buy it, he'll show us things."
-
-"What things?"
-
-"Lord sakes! the creeture's daft; says he can make great magic--snakes
-out of mud or flowers out of nothing."
-
-"Why doesn't he make some opium if he's so clever?"
-
-"Says the woods around here are full of devils."
-
-"Tell him to show us a devil, then."
-
-Mac translated and the person so well acquainted with devils made
-answer.
-
-"For a piece of gold he will show us one. Why, Leslie, man, don't you be
-a fule."
-
-Leslie had taken half a sovereign from his pocket.
-
-"Give it him and tell him to show us a devil, and if he plays any tricks
-I'll chivy him into Nikko, and give him up to the police."
-
-"Don't be a fule," said Mac testily. "A'weel!"
-
-Leslie put the piece of gold into the creature's hand, who put it to his
-ear for a moment, and then hid it in his rags. Then he bent his head
-sideways to the road.
-
-"What's he doing now?"
-
-"He's listening if the road's clear; he says there's nothing on it for
-two ri on either side, but he hears seven rikshas coming in the
-direction of Nikko, but he'll have time to do what he wants before they
-arrive."
-
-The Blind One bent down rapidly and traced an almost perfect circle
-around himself in the dust of the road; then hurriedly outside this he
-traced what an initiate might have taken for the form of the Egg, the
-horns of Simara, and another form needless to describe. Then he said
-something to Mac.
-
-"He says, we're not to speak, or touch the circle or go near it. I have
-not paid for this entertainment, and I juist think I'll take a bit walk
-doon the road."
-
-"Sit down, you old coward," said Leslie. "I'm the one that has paid, and
-I'm the one the 'deevil' will carry off if there is a deevil. Look!"
-
-The Blind One took from his rags a cane pipe such as blind men use in
-Japan, only larger, and began to blow mournful notes out of it. It was
-as strange a sound as ever left human lips, now ear-piercing, now low,
-low and soothing; his face flushed and swelled; he seemed enraptured,
-entranced with his own music, and the searching sound of it caused
-things to move disturbedly in the trees around, and a low croaking, as
-if from some feathered creature disturbed, to come from the cypress
-wood.
-
-As he played, he turned north, south, east, and west, lingering, at
-last, with the reed pipe pointing between the cypress trees, as though
-he were calling to the blue hills in the distance.
-
-As he stood thus, Leslie, who had been looking at the mysterious symbols
-around the circle, was seized with an impish impulse, and leaning
-forward with his walking-stick, he made in the dust inside the circle,
-and just behind the Blind One's heel, the form of a cross.
-
-In doing this, the point of the stick touched the Blind One's heel.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III
-
- THE LOST ONE
-
-
-A congreve rocket incautiously touched by a match could not have given a
-more surprising result.
-
-Flinging the pipe from him with a yell, the Blind One sprang clear over
-the circle, and stood for an instant panting and blowing at the sun.
-
-He seemed blowing away things that were trying to enter his mouth; then,
-the staff attached by a thong to his wrist flying about wildly, he began
-to tear at himself all over his body and fling things away from him, as
-though he were attacked by a hundred thousand scorpions; then as if
-bitten by some more serious enemy, he seized his staff, and striking
-about him wildly, began to run. Hither and thither, hitting right and
-left, dashing against trees and seeming utterly regardless of them,
-bleeding, torn, and all the time fighting his phantom pursuers he ran
-till he vanished round the bend leading towards Nikko. The two Scotchmen
-ran to the bend of the road, and there down the road they saw him still
-running, and fighting as if for his life; striking above him as if at
-things in the air, and around him as if at things leaping at him from
-the ground. Suddenly he vanished round a further bend, and was lost to
-view.
-
-"He's gone gyte!" said Mac as they returned.
-
-"Well, I'm damned!" said Leslie.
-
-"I touched his heel, and I suppose he thought it was one of the
-devils--mad fool!"
-
-"'Tis no madness," said Mac. "If ever I saw a man chased by deevils I've
-seen one now. 'Twas that mark you made let them loose, or my name's not
-Tod M'Gourley. Did you no ken you were makin' the sign of the cross in
-yon damned circle of his? Hech, man! _Look there!_"
-
-"Where?"
-
-"My God!" said M'Gourley, "look you there, _there_! There's a bairn
-amongst the azaleas!"
-
-"So there is!" said Leslie. "By Jove, a little Jap girl come out of the
-wood."
-
-"Dom it, man," roared M'Gourley, "she wasn't there twarree seconds ago.
-She's come out of no wood; she's been _fetched_."
-
-"Well, of all the superstitious idiots!" said Leslie, gazing from the
-perspiring M'Gourley to the figure of the quaint and pretty little
-Japanese girl who was busy amidst the azaleas plucking the blossoms.
-"Why, it wouldn't take her more than 'twarree seconds' to come out of
-the wood. Anyhow, I'll go and see if she's real."
-
-"Man! man! hauld back!" cried the agonized M'Gourley as his partner
-plunged amidst the bushes. "Ye'll be had; she's a bogle. Lord's sake!
-Lord's sake! Well, gang your own gate, I'm off to Nikko."
-
-Yet he waited.
-
-The bogle was plucking blossoms as hard as she could and in the profuse
-manner of childhood. She and the azaleas made a sight for sore eyes.
-
-She might have been seven or eight, dressed in a blue kimono with a
-scarlet obi, hair black as ebony shavings, tightly drawn off the
-forehead and held up with a tortoiseshell comb--the "germ of a woman."
-
-Her back was turned to Leslie, and as he got within arm's length of the
-quaint and delicious little figure he did just what you or I might have
-done--bent down, seized her up, and kissed her.
-
-The bogle dropped her flowers and gave a shriek, a most distinctly human
-shriek.
-
-"He's kessed her!" cried M'Gourley, addressing the azaleas, the cypress
-trees, and all Japan.
-
-Then he stood in agony, held to the spot by the sight of Leslie and the
-bogle making friends.
-
-It didn't seem to take long, for presently he returned through the
-azaleas triumphant, carrying her in his arms.
-
-"Here's your bogle," said he, placing her on the dusty road where, with
-all the gravity of the Japanese child, she made a deep obeisance to
-M'Gourley. That gentleman returned the compliment with a short, sharp
-nod.
-
-"I'm awa' to Nikko," said he in the hard, irritable voice of a person
-who is desirous of avoiding an undesirable acquaintance, gazing at
-Leslie and steadily ignoring the lady in blue who was now holding on to
-Leslie's right leg, contemplating M'Gourley, and sucking the tip of a
-taper and tiny forefinger all at the same time. "I'm awa' to Nikko. 'Tis
-no place for a mon like me. Never was I used to the company of fules--"
-
-"Don't be an ass! Speak to her; you have the tongue, and I haven't."
-
-"I winna."
-
-"Well, of all the old women I ever met," said Leslie, addressing a
-"thundering great camellia tree" that stood opposite, "this partner of
-mine takes the bun!--don't he, Popsums?" bending down and looking into
-the small face, the left cheek of which was now resting against his
-knee.
-
-Popsums, in reply to the smile and interrogative tone in the question
-she did not understand, smiled gravely back and murmured something that
-sounded like "Hei."
-
-M'Gourley snorted, and Leslie broke out laughing; he had little of the
-Japanese, but he knew that "Hei" meant "Yes."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV
-
- AMIDST THE HILLS
-
-
-Just then a ripple of laughter came down the breeze, and round the
-corner of the road, heading for Nikko, came at full trot seven rikshas
-streaming out like a scarf of color; a dream of color--for each riksha
-contained a lady most beautiful to behold under the splendor of her
-umbrella.
-
-They were a party of girls returning to Nikko after some sylvan freak,
-and they drew up as if by common assent to admire the azaleas.
-
-Leslie, removing his hat and lifting his treasure trove, held her up for
-exhibition.
-
-The girls laughed and spoke to her; had they been English girls she
-would have been promptly handed round and kissed; and she, with becoming
-gravity, replied gracefully in a few half-lisped words.
-
-Then, leaving behind them on the air a cloud of dust, a perfume of
-camellia oil, and a long drawn "Sayonara," the bevy of beauties passed
-in a gorgeous flight of mixed colors round the bend of the road and were
-gone.
-
-"Ye mind he said seven rikshas were coming," cried Mac.
-
-"Bother!" answered Leslie. "He'd come the same direction and passed
-them. Do you think they'd have laughed and spoken to her if there was
-anything wrong and they're Japs, and ought to know. Come! buck up, man!
-You're not afraid to do what a girl has done?"
-
-"A'weel!" said M'Gourley, half ashamed of himself; and dour as any
-Procurator Fiscal, he set to the examination of the being who was now on
-the ground again, her hand clasped in that of Leslie.
-
-This was the result of the examination. Deponent lived with her father.
-Where? She did not know.--Just beyond there somewhere. What was the
-house like she lived in? It had a plum-tree growing before it. What did
-her father do? He hammered things with a hammer. Had she any brothers
-and sisters? No; but--sudden thought--she had a sugar-candy dragon, and
-she had lost it. (Here deponent wept slightly and with reserve.)
-
-Pause in the interrogations whilst a snub nose was wiped with Leslie's
-pocket handkerchief.
-
-And a kite, but that was at home. She had gone that day with a little
-boy--a neighbor--to hunt for the saccharine dragon, and they had lost
-themselves, then they had lost each other, then _she_ had lost herself.
-How was that possible? Well, she had gone to sleep. Where? In the wood.
-
-Here the examinate went off into a tale about an impossible tom-cat with
-wings, which she had once seen on an umbrella, and beheld once again in
-the wood, but was suppressed by the court and asked to keep to facts.
-
-Whilst asleep in the wood she was awakened, so she declared, by a sound
-like the passage of a flight of storks, and, coming out of the wood,
-fearful of meeting a dragon, she began to pick the pretty flowers; then
-she was seized by the honorable gentleman, whose height was greater than
-a poplar tree.
-
-How old was she? Eight times the cherry blossom had blown since her
-humble self had come into the world.
-
-Then she volunteered the entirely unsolicited statement that it was
-likely her little boy companion had been lost in the snow. But that was
-impossible--well, it was a field of lilies then--and he had been most
-possibly devoured by a dragon.
-
-What did she propose about going home? Did she know the way, and could
-she go alone?
-
-Here she declared herself utterly at a loss. Her home was somewhere near
-by, but where, she could not exactly say.
-
-"Well, well!" said M'Gourley, when he had finished his examination. "It
-seems to me that bogle or no bogle you've saddled yoursel' wi' a lost
-child. Whaur's your common sense now?"
-
-"Just where it always was.--Question is--what are we to do? Can _you_
-suggest anything?"
-
-"Na, na! it's not for me to say," said the other, with that vile sense
-of satisfaction a brither Scot feels when a brither Scot has made a
-cubby of himself. Then, remembering the bond of partnership, "If I were
-the party responsible, I'd just pop her back where I fund her first, and
-rin."
-
-"Well, you _are_ a beast! Why, you benighted old mummy-stuffer, I
-believe you've got a scarab in your bosom instead of a heart! I'll take
-her along to Nikko, and get the police to hunt out her home. Stay, we
-haven't asked her what's her name."
-
-M'Gourley asked the question, and the Lost One declared her name to be
-"Bell-flower."
-
-"Bell-flower!" said Leslie, who had a smattering of botany, "that's a
-campanula. We'll call her--'Campanula.'"
-
-She also made declaration that she was quite satisfied to go with the
-honorable gentleman, whose height exceeded the tallest of trees. Leslie
-lifted her up and seated her upon his shoulder, and, as they started, he
-turned and looked back at the loveliness of the perfumed azalea
-valley--a sight that was yet to haunt him in the time to come.
-
-"It's my opeenion," said M'Gourley, as they took the road, "that there
-was something forming in yon wood, something dom bad, and you flung it
-out of the forming eelement, and she was just suckid in."
-
-"What d'you mean?"
-
-"The wraith of some dead bairn was wanderin' aboot, and the forming
-eelement seized it."
-
-"What forming element? Rubbish! That chap was a lunatic; well, when he
-felt me touch him it set his lunacy off, that's all. Why, I once went to
-a big asylum in Scotland, and I saw a man cutting just the same capers,
-fighting devils. He's an opium taker, and the opium is out of his brain,
-that's all. Drink does the same thing--Hi! By Jove, look up there! He's
-at it still."
-
-Away up in the wild mountain gorge they saw a figure. It was the Blind
-One still pursued, still running, and apparently fighting for his life.
-If his actions were not the outcome of insanity they gave food to the
-mind for the most terrible suppositions.
-
-Streaming with blood from his mad dashes against the trees, he seemed
-surrounded on all sides, hemmed in, fighting furiously like a man
-surrounded by wolves. If a tree chanced to be near, an opening seemed to
-be made for him by his tormentors towards it, and he would rush at it
-and dash himself against it, falling back bleeding but fighting still,
-screaming and all the time being steadily shepherded further and further
-into the loneliness of the hills.
-
-"Sirs! Sirs!" cried Mac, throwing up his hands as the horrible spectacle
-vanished round a distant bend of the gorge. "This is no sight for a
-Christian mon!"
-
-"It's pretty rotten," said Leslie who looked rather pale and sick.
-"Fetch out that flask of yours, Mac. Thanks. Poor devil! would there be
-any use following him?"
-
-"Not for twanty thousand pounds would I follow him," said Mac, gurgling
-at the flask. "He's in ither hands than ours."
-
-And, indeed, not for a very great sum would Leslie have gone up that
-desolate gorge to see the finish of the tragedy.
-
-"Let's go on," said Leslie, "and don't let's speak of it again. I want
-to forget it--ugh!"
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V
-
- THE TEA HOUSE OF THE TORTOISE
-
-
-It was at the next turn that Nikko broke upon them, a long way off,
-lying in its valley amidst the high hills, hills fledged with greenery
-to their summit.
-
-There are sights that strike the eye and the heart at the same time, and
-the sight of Nikko where the Shoguns sleep, Nikko the beautiful in the
-silent valley, amidst the silent hills, is one of these.
-
-The delicate colors, the exquisite tracery of the temple roofs, the
-crystal clearness of the air through which the eye can pick out detail
-after detail, the atmosphere of tranquillity of the mountains, and the
-green cryptomeria trees, make up a picture, leaving little for the heart
-to desire, or the imagination to conceive.
-
-"Why," cried Leslie, turning to his companion (Campanula was seated
-aloft in solitary state upon his shoulder clutching his hair tight,
-whilst he held in one big hand her two little sandal-shod, tabi-clad
-feet), "if that's Nikko, it's ten miles off if it's a foot. What've you
-got to say for yourself, hey?"
-
-"A'weel," said M'Gourley, glowering at Nikko, "if you want my candid
-opeenion, we've juist gone astray; the country I know well, but these
-dom roads lead one like a Jack o'Lanthorn. It's my opeenion that a
-Japanese road--"
-
-"I don't want your opinion on Japanese roads, I want your concise
-opinion about yourself--ain't you a fool?"
-
-"Ay, ay," said M'Gourley, as if considering the matter, "a fule I may
-be, but it's my candit opeenion that I'm not the only fule in Japan."
-
-"Well," said Leslie, "fool or no fool, we'll have to tramp it, and
-you'll have to take your turn to carry the kid, so--_Marchons_!"
-
-Campanula, so far from being frightened at her awful elevation from the
-earth, seemed to enjoy the situation, and to find food for a sort of
-muse of her own, for she began to hum as Leslie took the road with his
-long stride, and to sing in a lisping sort of way.
-
-"What's she singing?" demanded her bearer of the sweating Scot at his
-side.
-
-"Lord knows! 'tis an eldritch chune, and I dinna like to listen to the
-words. Man, Leslie, but your legs are longer than mine, and I canna keep
-the pace."
-
-"Well, I'll go slower if you'll listen, and tell me what she's singing."
-
-"She's singing," gasped M'Gourley, "s' far as I can make out, some
-diddering noensense aboot a sugar-candy dragon that a man like a poplar
-tree is goin' to hunt, he and a man like a corbie."
-
-"That's you."
-
-"More like some bogle from the wood that's maybe after us now. I am not
-a supersteetious man--na, na! ye may laugh or not--but would y' like to
-know what in my humble opeenion you are cartin' on your shoulders?"
-
-"Yes?"
-
-"Some bairn that has been lost and dead these years, and has been
-whustled up by that blind deevil with the pipe. What did she mean by
-that reeference to the snaw--answer me that!"
-
-"When I can get into the mind of a Japanese child, and see the world as
-it sees it, I'll answer you; you know what children's minds are, how
-they mix and imagine things."
-
-"What did she mean by that reeference to the snaw?" grimly went on
-M'Gourley. "Mix or no mix, what did she mean by the other bairn being
-lost in the snaw?"
-
-"Well," said Leslie, "I don't care a button whether she's a bogle or
-not. If she is, she's the prettiest bogle that was ever bogled, and
-about the heaviest, I should think. Here, you take a turn with her, I'm
-about done."
-
-They took it turn about, M'Gourley vastly loth, to carry the Lost One;
-and the Lost One stopped them to gather flowers for her by the wayside,
-to give her drinks from rivulets, to help her admire and wonder at
-herons and other marvels of the way, so that it was after six of the
-clock when two of the most dusty and perspiring Scotchmen in the Eastern
-Hemisphere entered the happy village of Nikko from the mountain side,
-Campanula this time on Leslie's shoulder, grave, triumphant, and holding
-a huge lily in her hand.
-
-Nikko and its surroundings just now was ablaze with scarlet japonica.
-The lamps of the camellias were lit, the soaring wistaria vines had
-broken into clusters of pale lilac blossoms, the iris beautified the
-field, and the wild cherry the thicket. It was as if spring had called
-from the tomb of Iyeyasu and her faithful had come to pray.
-
-There are two hotels at Nikko known to the globe-trotter, "Kanayas" and
-the "New Nikko," but M'Gourley knew a better place than these.
-
-As they passed down the long inclined street a baby with a shaved head,
-a baby that was half a baby and half an obi, tied behind in a stiff and
-preposterous bow, spied Campanula being borne aloft, dropped his
-immediate business--the attempt to fly a kite shaped like a moth--and
-followed the newcomers with a shout.
-
-The shout, as if by magic, brought half a dozen children from nowhere in
-particular; girl children with dolls on their backs, older girl children
-with babies on their backs, boys battledore in hand, and all with clogs
-on their feet, clogs that went clipper-clapper, waking up the echoes and
-calling forth more children, so that when they had got half-way down the
-mile-long street from the upper village Campanula had a "following," the
-like of which had never been seen, perhaps, since the pied piper passed
-through Hamelin.
-
-A colored, laughing, murmuring, rippling throng following with every eye
-fixed on the Lost One borne sky-high on the shoulder of the tall
-stranger; a throng, the half of which could have walked under a
-dinner-table without much inconvenience; some empty-handed, some still
-grasping their implements of play, all agog, yet of decent and orderly
-behavior. A throng, in fact, of ladies and gentlemen in the making.
-
-Backward over the summit of Leslie gazed Campanula upon this crowd,
-whilst the stall-keepers and the stray riksha men, the pilgrims and the
-paupers, the priest and the policeman, stood by the way to watch the
-procession pass.
-
-"I say," called Leslie to his companion, who was limping behind dead
-beat, yet in an agony at the "splurge" they were making, "this is gay,
-isn't it?"
-
-"Dod rot the child!" cried M'Gourley, nearly tumbling over a fat baby
-with a tufted head, who was running in front of him and trying to look
-up in his face.
-
-"I dinna ken whoat ye mean by gay. I have no immeediate particular use
-for the waurd. Never before have I been held up to public reedicule. I'm
-a decent livin' man, ye ken, an' I ha'na any use for such gayeties. I
-leave them to ithers who care for makin' assinine eediots of
-theirselves; but, thank the Laird, we're nearly there noo."
-
-They turned a corner and entered a gate that led to a garden.
-
-At the gate M'Gourley turned and addressed the camp followers, telling
-them with forced politeness that there was nothing more to be seen; that
-the show was over, in fact, and asking them honorably to excuse him the
-pleasure of being followed any more.
-
-The crowd murmured, and dissolved, the earth seemed to take it up like
-blotting-paper, and M'Gourley, turning his back upon its remnants, led
-the way through the garden, past a tiny lake in the midst of which stood
-an island, inhabited by a huge frog, and so, by a path, to the front of
-a long, low, white-washed house.
-
-This was the Tea House of the Tortoise, a place well known to M'Gourley,
-as (to use his own abominable expression) being "cheap and clean."
-
-A panel of the front was drawn back, revealing cream-white matting and
-lamp light.
-
-M'Gourley sat down with a sigh on the side of the veranda, and began to
-pull off his elastic side boots. Leslie sat down also, with Campanula in
-his lap; he could not put her down for she had literally tumbled into
-sleep.
-
-"Pull off my boots, Mac," said he. "I can't let go of this blessed
-child."
-
-"Na!" said Mac mysteriously, and somewhat viciously, as he knelt down
-and unlaced his partner's boots, "ye cannot let her go, ye cannot let
-her go; forby, she wullna let _you_ go."
-
-"You think she's going to stick to me?"
-
-"Imphim," replied Mac.
-
-Imphim is not Japanese, it is the double Scotch grunt, which has
-twenty-two separate meanings, mostly unpleasant. Shut your mouth tight
-and try to say "Hum, hum," and you will achieve "Imphim," but never do
-it again, please.
-
-Leslie was about to answer, when a sound behind made him turn, and
-there, like a pinned-down butterfly, was a Mousmé on the mat, crying,
-"Irashi, condescend to enter."
-
-M'Gourley--a most unengaging figure in his stocking feet--rose and
-addressed the Mousmé.
-
-He told her things in language unknown to Leslie; things about the
-sleeping Campanula evidently, for he pump-handled with his arm in the
-direction where Leslie, bootless now, sat holding her.
-
-The Mousmé on her knees, a camellia blossom in her hair and her eyes
-fixed upon M'Gourley, seemed fascinated. Then she called out and....
-
-"Hai tadaima," came a soft voice from somewhere in the back premises,
-and a second Mousmé appeared, made obeisance, and listened whilst the
-tale, whatever it was, was laid before her.
-
-Deep astonishment, exclamations of wonder, a call:
-
-"Hai tadaima!" and an old lady appeared, and made obeisance, and
-listened whilst the thrice-told tale was told her by the two Mousmés and
-M'Gourley all together.
-
-Meanwhile Leslie, feeling ridiculously like a nursemaid, sat holding the
-Lost One, whose soul was wandering in the vain land of dreams.
-
-"What are you stuffing those creatures up with?" he suddenly broke out.
-"Blessed if you oughtn't to be dressed in a kimono and a petticoat;
-you're the biggest old woman of the lot. Ask one of them to take the
-kid, or I'll go off to the hotel with her."
-
-"One minit," said Mac. "They're conseedrin' the matter."
-
-Scarce had he spoken when the old lady called out, and entered on the
-scene, an old gentleman, the proprietor of the tea house, a black cat,
-and two more Mousmés.
-
-"Oh, _do_ call a few more!" said Leslie. "And call in a couple of
-musicians and make the comic opera complete."
-
-"There are no more to call," replied Mac. "They are conseedrin' the
-matter. The Japanese are a very supersteetious people, and these are
-good friends of mine, and I would not spring a pairson upon them with
-dootful anticeedents. You see, Leslie, man, the presence of the bairn
-must be explained. She is not a bale of goods we can dump in a corner.
-Bide a wee; I will talk them over yut."
-
-The Areopagus was considering the question as to whether Campanula, if
-admitted to the Tea House of the Tortoise, would bring ruin and
-destruction or a blessing on the premises, when Hedgehog San, the black
-cat, settled the matter by coming up to Leslie and rubbing against his
-leg.
-
-Then the Hon. Hedgehog--may his ashes rest in peace!--jumped on Leslie's
-knee and rubbed himself against Campanula.
-
-That clinched the business.
-
-The old lady herself advanced, and, taking the Lost One from the Weary
-One, carried her bodily into the house, whilst Leslie, yawning and
-stretching himself, followed.
-
-Inside, in the bare, clean room, the little Mousmé with the camellia in
-her hair addressed herself to Leslie in a soft and beseeching voice.
-
-"What does she want?" he asked of Mac.
-
-"She wants to know if you require anything."
-
-"A bath--that's what I want more than anything--don't you?"
-
-"I am not given to promeescuous bathing," said M'Gourley, "being greatly
-subject to the siatickee; but a bath you wull have, and I'll e'en sit
-here and smoke a pipe whilst you bathe yourself."
-
-"I want also a sugar-candy dragon for the bairn," said Leslie. "Ask 'em
-to send out and get one. I suppose you can get such things?"
-
-M'Gourley gave the message to the maid, and she departed.
-
-The travelers' luggage--a frightful-looking old mid-Victorian carpet bag
-belonging to M'Gourley, and a Gladstone of Leslie's--had already arrived
-at the tea house, having been sent on by rail _via_ Utsu-no-Miya, and
-the two sat down on small square cushions, placed on the cream-colored
-matting, to smoke a pipe, whilst dinner and the bath were preparing.
-
-"The police will be here the morn about that bairn," said Mac in his
-cheerful way, "and we'll have to acoont for her."
-
-"Of course we will."
-
-"Ay, ay," said Mac, "but have you ever acoonted for a thing to the
-Japanese police?"
-
-"Well, considering I've only been in Japan ten days, I haven't had much
-time, you see, to fall foul of the police."
-
-"I found a scairf pin once," said this comforter of Job, "on the Bund at
-Nagasaki. Twa-and-sax-pence it was worth, or maybe three shullin', and I
-took it to the police office and began to acoont for it."
-
-He stopped and sighed and sucked his pipe.
-
-"Well?"
-
-"Well, I'm acoontin' for it still, and that's three months ago; letters
-and papers, and papers and letters enough to drive a man daft! Well, I'm
-thinkin' if a twa-and-saxpenny scairf pin can cause such a wully waugh,
-what's a live bairn going to do? Now, I'm thinking--"
-
-"May I give you a piece of advice, Mac?"
-
-"I am always open to judeecious advice," answered the unsuspecting Mac.
-
-"Well, don't think too much or you'll hurt yourself."
-
-M'Gourley grunted, and at that moment the Mousmé with the camellia in
-her hair entered with the announcement that the bath was ready in the
-room above, and Leslie departed.
-
-"When you have shown the honorable gentleman the bath, come down; I wish
-to speak to you," said M'Gourley to the lady of the camellia. She obeyed
-the request and M'Gourley held her in light conversation, till he knew
-by the sounds above that his partner was in the tub. Then he released
-the handmaiden, and she departed upstairs.
-
-He listened, and presently he heard Leslie's voice.
-
-"Go away, please. Good heavens I say, I _wish_ you'd go away! No, I
-don't want soap. I say, Mac! Hi, McGourley!--leave my back
-alone--_M'Gourley_!"
-
-But M'Gourley, like an Indian Sachem, smoked on and answered not.
-
-He was having his revenge for the Nikko road.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI
-
- THE DREAMER AND THE DRAGON
-
-
-They had finished dinner; a dinner which began with tea and bean flour
-cakes, passed on to fish served on little mats of grass, went on to soup
-served in lacquered bowls, proceeded to prawns; halted, hesitated, and
-went back to soup, scratched its head, so to speak, and then, as if with
-an after-thought, served up a quail, apologized for the substantiality
-of the quail by presenting a salted plum on a little plate, and then
-harked shamelessly back to soup, ending deliriously with a shower of
-little dishes containing everything inconceivable, and a big bowl of
-rice.
-
-This is an impressionist picture of a Japanese dinner. I have eaten
-many, but I have never carried away more than an impression, and whether
-kuchi-tori comes before hachiz-a-kana, I cannot say, or where the
-seaweed or salted fish come in--but come in they do, they and other
-things stranger than themselves.
-
-A _chamécen_ was thrumming somewhere in the house as they dined, sitting
-on the soft white matting, and waited upon by two Mousmés crouched on
-the matting like little panthers preparing to spring.
-
-A slid back panel of the front wall made a doorway through which they
-could see the moon wandering over Nikko, casting her cool white light
-upon the blazing japonica flowers, the glory of the camellias, the roofs
-of the temples, and the sad dark beauty of the cryptomeria trees.
-
-Nikko by day is fair, but by night, when the moon is overhead, when the
-air is full of the sounds of wandering waters, and the wind is heavy
-with the perfume of the wild azaleas, Nikko is a dream.
-
-When the tea and bean cakes had been served, the moon was in the act of
-washing weakly a house gable across the garden, and a pale lilac-colored
-flower of the wistaria, which projected above the extemporized doorway;
-but by the time the quail had made its appearance, the garden was solid
-in moonlight, the pond was a mirror, and the frog self-marooned on the
-little island, was as distinct as if seen by daylight.
-
-"I must learn Japanese," said Leslie, taking a cigarette-case from his
-pocket and lighting a cigarette at the tobacco-mono that stood at his
-elbow. "My lines are cast in Japan, that's clear, but a man without the
-language is a helpless baby."
-
-"Ay, ay," said M'Gourley. "You can easily get instruction in the
-Japanese: take a wumman to live with you."
-
-"I haven't looked at a woman for ten years, and I don't want to look at
-one again." Then suddenly bursting out: "Why, you old scamp, talking
-like that--you told me you were a member of the Free Kirk."
-
-"The Wee Kirk," corrected Mac, leisurely lighting his pipe with an ember
-from the hibachi.
-
-"Well, Free Kirk or Wee Kirk, you ought to be jolly well ashamed of
-yourself; and were you a member of the Wee Kirk when you were
-constructing idols in Birmingham with old What's-his-name?"
-
-"Na, na; those were my godless days. I got my releegion late in life,
-and a vara good releegion it is; a waurkable releegion, one that does
-not heat in the bearings, but runs smooth."
-
-"And what is this wonderful religion, if I may ask?"
-
-"It is noet so much wonderful as waurkable, and it may be compreezed in
-the sentence: 'Do unto ithers as ithers would do unto you.'"
-
-"O good Lord! and you call that a religion! Why, you precious old
-humbug, that means you can rob, and plunder, and murder, and cheat--that
-is to say, you can act like a beast towards people who would act so to
-you."
-
-"Just so."
-
-"Well, there's one thing I like about you, you're frank, to say the
-least of it."
-
-This remark seemed greatly to incense Mac, who, perhaps, misunderstood
-the meaning of the word frank.
-
-"When y've been in the waurld as long as I have, surrounded on ivry side
-by scoondrels and robbers, y'll maybee be as fraunk as mysel'.
-Fraunk.--wid ye give me a defineetion of the waurd--fraunk! I wid have
-ye to understand I'm an hoenest mon with hoenest men, but _I'm a
-scoondrel wi' scoondrels_. Fraunk!" And so he went on, his Scotch accent
-deepening as deepened his excitement, till at last he broke down into
-Gaelic, and thundered his remarks at the hibachi, slapping his thigh as
-he did so, and wakening the echoes of the house, which was resonant as a
-fiddle. So that by the time he had got to the end of his exordium,
-Leslie saw a panel waver back an inch, and the lady of the camellia
-peeping in to see what the Learned One was shouting about.
-
-"Keep your hair on," said Leslie, when Mac, with a final "Fraunk!"
-delivered in English, began to refill and light his pipe. "I didn't mean
-to insult you; I only meant to say I like your open-heartedness."
-
-"Ay, I was ever that to those I had a liking for."
-
-"I meant more precisely your open-mindedness--but no matter, let's talk
-of something else. I wonder where they've put the kid, and oh, by Jove!
-I wonder if they've got that dragon. Sing out and ask, like a good
-chap."
-
-Mac clapped his hands, and "Hai tadaima!" came as a response.
-
-It was worth the trouble of clapping one's hands to hear that sweet
-reply.
-
-A moment later, a panel slid back and the camellia lady appeared.
-
-Campanula San was asleep, and at that very moment Wild-cherry-bud was in
-search of the Hon. Dragon, with orders to leave no confectioner's stall
-unvisited till she had secured him.
-
-This with immovable gravity and deep, sweet earnestness of tone.
-
-"Well," said Leslie when she had withdrawn, "of all the people I have
-struck yet, give me the Japanese."
-
-"Wait till you've had beesiness transactions with them," said Mac
-darkly. "I am no so unfreenly to the Japs in or'nary life, but in
-beesiness the Jap's a wrugglin' sairpent--all but one--Danjuro--the man
-we're going to join in partnership; he's as straight as a Chinee."
-
-"He must be damn crooked then!"
-
-"Cruik'd enough to make his way in Japan, but straight enough to a
-freend; but you're a poet, man, Leslie, and no beesiness man. I kent y'
-for a poet when you sang that bit song on the road--the song aboot the
-camellia trees."
-
-Leslie laughed.
-
-"That rubbish! It's not mine; I read it in the Sydney _Bulletin_. Funny
-enough, too, it was the first thing that made me think of coming to
-Japan! Poetry! Good God! Put a man through the remittance mill in Sydney
-and see all the poetry that will be left in him! Put a butterfly through
-a sausage machine and then see how beautifully it will fly! Yes, I was
-once a poet; years and years ago I was a poet--a poet who never wrote
-anything, but a poet for all that. I could see the beauty of the world;
-and then they blinded me. Who? I don't know--the world. Maybe it was
-myself, maybe not. Maybe it was my father, maybe not. I only state the
-fact that something in me is dead--the something that took joy in life
-and found beauty in innocence--or was dead till I came to Japan. Oh,
-M'Gourley, man, the years I've spent in Sydney under a cloud, mixing
-with bar loafers, cursing my father and myself; the years I've spent in
-Sydney have broken my soul in me!"
-
-"Why did ye not waurk?"
-
-"Work! I had just enough money to keep me from starvation and decently
-dressed. I might have got a clerkship; for what good? To make another
-hundred a year. To spend on what? Can you not understand, man, that my
-mainspring was gone, that I was put out of the world I knew, tied by the
-leg to Sydney, bound to appear every quarter-day at the double-damned
-lawyer's office, or starve? Two things only kept me alive--tobacco and
-books--saved me from myself and from drink."
-
-"What sort of a mon was your faither?"
-
-"A hard, dour, just man--a man who could make no allowance for folly."
-
-"Ay, ay! Had y' any brithers and sisters?"
-
-"Never a one, and my mother died when I was two; and he used to leather
-me. Well, you can fancy my joy when old Bloomfield, the lawyer, sent for
-me one day and said: 'I've bad news for you, Mr. Leslie.' 'What's that?'
-said I. 'Your father is dead. He died intestate, and you have inherited
-his property. I am advised it amounts to over twenty-one thousand
-pounds.'"
-
-"Twenty-one thousand?" said Mac in admiration.
-
-"Yes; and I said to Bloomfield: 'You must be either a fool or a
-hypocrite, for that's the best news I ever heard in my life, and you
-know it.' Then some instinct took me over here to Japan. I was thinking
-of going to England, but I found all at once I had a horror of England
-and the English, so I came to Japan; and glad I am I came. Can you fancy
-what these people here are to me after the population of Sydney--those
-raucous, horse-racing, drink-swilling beasts? Then I fell in with you at
-Tokyo, and took a fancy to your old Scotch mug--and here we are."
-
-At this moment a little figure crossed the garden, bearing a lantern on
-the end of a stick. It was Wild-cherry-bud; and presently she appeared
-with the much-sought-for dragon wrapped in rice paper.
-
-It was a wonderful creation with a twisted tail, rather stumpy wings,
-but with a mouth that made up for all defects; nothing so ferocious had
-ever perhaps before been done in sugar candy.
-
-When the thing had been inspected and approved, Wild-cherry-bud led the
-way to where Campanula slept, for Leslie wished his present to be placed
-beside her, so that she might find it when she awoke.
-
-The Lost One, looking very much lost indeed on a huge futon (a quilt
-thicker than a muffin), and covered by a blue mosquito-net with red
-bound edges, was so profoundly asleep that the clicking of the net being
-pulled aside and the light of the night lantern borne by Wild-cherry-bud
-did not disturb her. She was sleeping on her back, the top futon only
-drawn to her waist, and her little perfectly shaped white hands were
-crossed pathetically on her breast.
-
-Leslie knelt down, and lifting one little hand placed the long-sought
-monster beneath it. The hand clasped the dragon, the long-sought dragon,
-and across the sleeper's face passed what seemed the ghost of a smile.
-
-"A'weel!" thought Mac as he looked on, "had he a bairn he'd make a
-better faither to it than his own faither made to him."
-
-Then the mosquito-net was drawn and they departed, leaving Campanula to
-the possession of her dreams.
-
-Up in their room Leslie steadily refused to undress till the waiting
-Mousmé had "cleared out." He had already refused to allow her to rub his
-back when he was in his tub and now this--
-
-The Tea House of the Tortoise people, good old-fashioned, Japanese inn
-people, unused to foreign follies, could not make it out.
-
-The Areopagus convened itself again, and held council by the light of an
-andon, or night lantern.
-
-"What could it mean?" There was simply no meaning in it. Such a thing
-had never happened before, and the general conclusion was that Leslie
-had "gone gyte."
-
-Then the Areopagus went to bed all together under the same mosquito-net,
-and silence reigned with the moon over the Tea House of the Tortoise.
-The moon wandering over Nikko touching temple and tea-house pointed a
-pallid finger between the window chinks of the room where the Lost One
-lay asleep, as if to show her to the night. Clasping the candy dragon
-whose ferocious eyes shone carbuncle-like in the placid moonlight she
-made a strange picture, veiled by the blue gauze of the mosquito-net.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VII
-
- HOW CAMPANULA BROUGHT FORTUNE TO THE
- HOUSE OF THE TORTOISE--AND OTHER
- THINGS
-
-
-The sun rose up and struck Nikko; struck the sacred red lacquered bridge
-that crosses the foaming river, and the common bridge that you and I may
-use, the potter's shop, and the golden shrine of Iyeyasu.
-
-Then temple after temple broke up from shadow as the sun reached for
-them and found them, and the hills took on a momentary splendor, an
-ethereal loveliness, evanescent as youth and never to be recaptured by
-the day.
-
-In the garden of the Tea House of the Tortoise a bomb-shell full of
-bickering sparrows seemed suddenly to burst above the pond, the sun
-looked over the wall upon the dwarf maples in their blue porcelain
-flowerpots, a panel of the white house front slid back and a Mousmé
-appeared, her head tied up in a blue cotton duster; appeared another
-Mousmé, dragging a futon to air in the morning brightness, and yet
-another who came out and yawned at the sun, showing him the full extent
-of her pink gullet, and every one of her thirty-two white teeth.
-
-Then Hedgehog San, a cat honored and beloved, came forth with tail
-erect, and a grasshopper hanging by the veranda in a tiny cage creaked
-forth a thin hymn of praise.
-
-Thus started the day at the Tea House of the Tortoise.
-
-When Leslie and M'Gourley came downstairs--a stair like a ship's
-companion-way but without any balustrade--they found Campanula having
-her obi tied by Fir-branch (she who had yawned at the sun), and Leslie
-was informed through his partner that the dragon had been found and that
-he had grown; this statement, with some confidential information
-concerning a thunder-cat of which she had dreamed, Mac translated from
-the original with a serious face.
-
-Up to this he had treated the Lost One as an adult, and as a most
-undesirable adult, with whom he wished to have nothing to do. But
-Campanula, fresh and spruce in the light of morning, chattering over her
-shoulder to you about thunder-cats, whilst Fir-branch tied her obi in a
-huge bow, was a person whose charm was not to be denied, and Mac began
-to thaw.
-
-"What's a thunder-cat?" asked Leslie.
-
-"Lord only knows! some contraption in the shape of an animal that makes
-thunder. The Japs are full of supersteetions about animals. Wull we out
-before breakfast?"
-
-Leslie the night before had declared his intention of sending for the
-police next morning before the police sent for him, and had given a
-message to the landlord accordingly. But he might have saved his breath.
-
-Nikko was agog. Whether the tale had leaked through the chinks of the
-Tea House of the Tortoise, whether Wild-cherry-bud had distributed it
-during her peregrinations in search of the dragon, no one will ever
-know; the fact remains that the story of Campanula had gone abroad with
-additions--all sorts of weird and wonderful additions. Half Nikko had
-seen her borne aloft on the shoulders of Leslie, the other half had
-heard extraordinary statements concerning her origin; the result was
-that the whole of Nikko ached inwardly with a great ache of curiosity.
-
-By seven o'clock fifteen Mousmés or maybe twenty, had arrived singly and
-in couples, not to ask questions, but to borrow things, or to offer the
-loan of things, or to ask after the health of old mother Ranunculus, the
-landlady of the "Tortoise." Incidentally they learned about Campanula.
-
-A juggler had made her on the Nikko road. Out of what, for goodness'
-sake? Out of a wild azalea bush!
-
-No!
-
-Yes, assuredly, the Learned One had said so.
-
-And what had become of the juggler? He had vanished in a clap of
-thunder--turned into a dragon.
-
-Surprising!
-
-And they went off to spread the news.
-
-At half-past eight, or thereabouts, a little man in white, the chief of
-the Nikko police, arrived. He had come officially, but he also was
-aching to get to the truth of this marvelous tale.
-
-Now the Japanese police is the most perfect police force in the world in
-every respect. They are recruited from the Samurai or fighting-class,
-and they are gentlemen to a man.
-
-The chief of the Nikko police made profound apologies for disturbing the
-peace of the strangers, then he heard the story told by M'Gourley.
-
-He agreed that it was strange, but opined that the Lost One might simply
-be a lost child. Where exactly was she found? In a valley of crimson
-azaleas on the road from Kureise. Ah, yes! there was such a valley well
-known, for the azaleas were crimson, and differed from the wild scarlet
-azaleas so common hereabouts. There were also villages around there, and
-tea houses; it might possibly be that she belonged to one of these. As
-to the mad man they had seen running away, no one else had seen him.
-
-Then Campanula was brought in and questioned, the whole of the
-"Tortoise" people squatting round in a ring, even down to Hedgehog San,
-who sat with judicial gravity, and seemed to be taking mental notes.
-
-She told her little tale about the house with the plum tree in front of
-it, and the kite, and the sugar-candy dragon which she had lost and
-found again. How the said dragon had grown very much, and seemed
-different, but tasted all right. Here she hastened to explain that she
-had not eaten him, only touched him with her tongue.
-
-She could not possibly say what men called her father. He hammered
-things. What sort of things? She did not know, but they went pong, pong,
-pong, when he struck them.
-
-"Tinsmith," murmured M'Gourley.
-
-She was sure of one thing, that her father's house was quite close to
-the wood and the azalea valley.
-
-How old was she?
-
-Seven times had the cherry blossoms blown since her humble self--
-
-"Hauld there," said M'Gourley. Then in Japanese he explained that
-yesterday she had declared that eight times the cherry blossoms had
-blown since her humble self, etc.
-
-Ah, yes! but how was she to know? a lump of mud like her!
-
-In conclusion, she took back her statement about the snow. She must have
-dreamt that in the wood.
-
-Then the court began to consult, the "lump of mud" sitting in their
-midst pensive and rather sad, a scarlet flower in her black hair, and
-the bow of her obi looking very stiff and huge.
-
-"Look here," said Leslie at last. "Tell him I'll look after her, and pay
-all expenses till she's found. Tell him to have the place searched, all
-that wood and country, and I'll pay for it; and if they can't find her
-people I'll adopt her. I will, begad!"
-
-Mac translated.
-
-At first the chief of police seemed to think that the "lump of mud"
-should be hauled off to the police office--impounded, in short; then
-M'Gourley intervened. M'Gourley was a power in Japan just then, for the
-astute Scot had made himself very useful to the government in past
-years, and the chief of police, when he heard what Mac had to say,
-agreed to leave matters where they were whilst the country was being
-searched, and the chief of police at Tokyo communicated with.
-
-Then he took his departure, and here began the prosperity of the Tea
-House of the Tortoise.
-
-Three elderly gentlemen in kimonos were the first to arrive; after them
-a youth in a bowler hat, and with the face of an uninspired idiot. These
-sat round and sipped saki and smoked little pipes, and talked to
-Wild-cherry-bud and Fir-branch, and listened to the grasshopper singing
-in his cage, whilst more guests arrived, and still more. So that
-Fir-branch, Wild-cherry-bud, & Co., were full of business, so full
-indeed that mother Ranunculus, driven to her wits' end, sent out for
-hired help.
-
-At eleven, when M'Gourley and his companion went out to inspect the
-golden Shrines, the Tea House of the Tortoise was humming like a
-bee-hive.
-
-"It's a funny business," said Leslie, as they turned the corner into the
-street.
-
-"I'm thinkin'," said Mac, "that you'll no find it so funny a beesiness
-in the end."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII
-
- THE SURPRISING STORY OF MOMOTARO--AKUDOGI
- AND SPOTTED DOG
-
-
-"I don't care a button," said Leslie, on the third morning of their stay
-in Nikko. "Danjuro may go be hanged. I'm not going to leave here till
-I've settled about the kid."
-
-"Ay, ay!" said Mac. "The man who will to Cupar maun to Cupar. I would
-only imprees upon you this, that time is going and time is money."
-
-"I know; but it won't take more than a few days now. They say they've
-hunted the whole country round there, and can't find trace of her
-people."
-
-"Na, and never will. If she has onny real people they won't fash
-themselves aboot her; girls in Japan are as plentiful as blaeberries in
-Lorne--you're sadlit with her."
-
-"Well, I want her, that's the truth. I've taken a fancy to her; she's
-not the sort of thing one picks every day--she and her thunder-cats and
-dragons."
-
-"I won't say she is not an attractif wee boddie," said Mac, "but think
-of the future, mon, when she's graun up."
-
-"Bother the future! I'm rich enough to see after her. D'y know, Mac--"
-
-"Weel?"
-
-"I wonder did she come out of those azaleas?"
-
-Mac gave a grunt.
-
-Curiously enough, his point of view had changed, and he was now
-convinced, or pretended to be convinced, that the treasure trove was a
-solid body and no bogle.
-
-"Because," went on Leslie, "it may be fact or fancy, but when I picked
-her up she seemed slipping away into thin air till I kissed her, and
-then she became solid."
-
-"Imphim," said Mac, using a variation of the sound that was simply
-stuffed with meanings all uncomplimentary to Leslie's intelligence.
-
-"They used to tell me when I was a kid that babies came out of parsley
-beds. Well, I'm half inclined to believe the tale has come true at last,
-and she came out of those azalea bushes. Of course," said Leslie
-suddenly, and as if apologizing to his own common sense, "I don't really
-believe it, but I like to fancy it; it's so much nicer than thinking she
-came into the world the other way."
-
-The prosperity of the Tea House of the Tortoise still continued, people
-coming from far and near to get a glimpse of the foundling.
-
-Every day Mac and Leslie would take her out for a walk, and she clopped
-beside them in her little clogs delightfully grave, and seemingly
-unmindful of the polite following of children that always tailed after
-them without appearing quite to do so. Children bouncing colored balls,
-playing hop scotch or what not, yet always with an eye on the child that
-had come out of the azaleas.
-
-Shopping with Campanula Leslie found to be a new pleasure; a present, no
-matter what, was received with such deep thankfulness, such quaint
-expressions of gratitude.
-
-He ordered Mother Ranunculus--requested her, rather--to get a complete
-new outfit for his charge, everything that money could buy, from tabi to
-hairpins, from kimonos to clogs. As for toys, she simply wallowed in
-them: bouncing balls and battledores fell round her as if from the sky,
-not to mention a doll as big as a baby of three, which she instantly
-became a mother to, carting it about on her back tucked under her
-kimono.
-
-The one thing that disturbed Leslie was her seeming indifference to her
-own strange position. Beyond the bald statement that she had a father,
-she never referred to that enigmatical gentleman, nor did she grieve,
-outwardly at least, about her separation from him.
-
-By the end of the week the two Scotchmen and their charge began to be
-welded into a corporate body--a little quaint family party. It was
-strange the influence of this child upon these two men whom fate had
-drawn together from the corners of the earth. Leslie, with newly
-acquired interest in life, had grown five years younger in mind, and as
-for Mac, he had grown ten degrees more human. His withered fatherly
-instincts were awakened--at least they opened one eye--and it was pretty
-to see him with his gnarled, horny hands and intent, weather-beaten face
-making chickens for the Lost One out of orange pips.
-
-They would go out, all three, and wander about Nikko and its temples,
-and they would sit on grassy banks in the gardens of Dai Nichi Do, just
-as a father and an uncle and niece might sit on seats in Kensington
-Gardens, and then Leslie and his partner would discuss the future and
-trade, whilst Campanula played with her doll or bounced a ball.
-
-Here one day, whilst the sun shone on the little lake and the pink and
-copper maples, the tiny islands and bridges and pagodas, Campanula,
-weary of play, told, in a sing-song voice and broken manner, the story
-of Momotaro, otherwise called Peachboy, and his wonderful deeds. She
-told it standing before them, and striking attitudes suitable to the
-phases of the tale.
-
-One day, it appears, an old woman found a huge peach, and she was just
-going to cut it in two with a knife when the peach broke open, and out
-tumbled a baby. This very surprising thing happened a long time ago, but
-exactly when Campanula could not possibly say.
-
-Then Peachboy grew up, and every day he grew fatter and stronger, till
-at last he grew so big that he determined to fight Akudogi, the king of
-the Ogres, who lived on an island--somewhere. And he started out, said
-Campanula, with a sword and a bag full of millet dumplings, each with a
-salted plum in the center, to fight the Ogres.
-
-Here she took from her sleeve a paper of sweets, and gravely presented
-it to her companions, who each took one. She took one herself, consumed
-it, and resumed the narrative.
-
-On the way he met a spotted dog, a monkey, and a crow, and to each he
-gave a dumpling, and they followed him to the attack on Akudogi, the
-king of the Ogres.
-
-The narrator's voice became deeper in tone, and she spread out her
-fingers as if in fear.
-
-The crow flew first to the castle of Akudogi and held him in talk,
-whilst Peachboy, spotted dog, and the monkey, got over the castle wall.
-
-Campanula was now standing before her auditors in a most dramatic
-attitude, her hands uplifted, the fallen back sleeves of her kimono
-showing her arms, and her brown eyes full of fear. She did not seem to
-see either Leslie or M'Gourley. Her eyes were fixed on the frightful
-Akudogi, and Peachboy, the spotted dog and the monkey, who were about to
-attack him.
-
-The crow, when he saw that his companions had gained an entrance to the
-castle, flew away with a laugh, and Akudogi turned and beheld Peachboy
-and his brave companions. He gnashed his teeth, pulled out his sword,
-and oh!
-
-Frightened to death with her own imaginations, she rushed with a little
-shriek into Mac's arms for protection.
-
-"Hauld yourself taegether; I winna let them catch ye! I winna let them
-catch ye!" cried Mac, as he clasped the perfumed bundle that had flung
-itself into his arms.
-
-"What's all that she was telling?" asked Leslie, who felt rather jealous
-that Mac should have been chosen as the harbor of refuge.
-
-"Only a daft tale about ogres an' spotted dogs. She's clean crackit on
-all sorts of queer beasties. Only last night she told me a tale aboot a
-rat that played the fiddle an' a tortoise that came to listen, and she
-told what the tortoise speired an' what the rat made answer, till you
-could have sworn you heard the rat and the tortoise claverin'
-taegither."
-
-"Well, hand her over here," said Leslie; "she's not yours." And he took
-Campanula from Mac and placed her on his knee. "She's mine. I paid ten
-shillings to that chap with the reed-pipe to whistle her up."
-
-"I'll tell you what," said Mac.
-
-"Well?"
-
-"I'll gi' you ten shullin' for a half share, and pay half the expeenses
-of her upbringing."
-
-"No, she's mine; you can play with her as much as you like, but I'm
-going to keep her. She's the jolliest thing I ever struck, and I'm going
-to stick to her. I saw that policeman Johnnie this morning, and he's
-quite given up hope of finding her people. They've hunted everywhere. I
-offered him a fiver to cover the business, but he would not touch the
-money. He says the chief of police at Tokyo knows you."
-
-"Weel does he know me, seven year and more."
-
-"And he says there's no objection to our taking her along to Nagasaki if
-you give your bond that she will be looked after, so I was thinking of
-starting to-morrow."
-
-"Wull you take her with us?"
-
-"I was thinking of leaving her with the 'Tortoise' people till I settle
-about a place to live in at Nagasaki, and then coming back to fetch her.
-She'll be all right with them, I suppose?"
-
-"Ay, she'll be right enough," said Mac, and they left the gardens of Dai
-Nichi Do, and headed for the hostelry.
-
-That night the Areopagus convened itself again, and M'Gourley explained
-matters. It was necessary that he and his honorable friend should go to
-Nagasaki, and they proposed that the Lost One should be left behind at
-the Tea House of the Tortoise, to be kept till called for, warehoused,
-in short, and, of course, paid for accordingly. Was Madame Ranunculus
-willing?
-
-Most willing.
-
-A sum of money would be placed in the landlord's hands as guarantee.
-
-Oh, that was perfectly unnecessary!
-
-Still, the Hon. Leslie wished it.
-
-Accordingly, a sum equivalent almost to the value of the Tea House of
-the Tortoise, was placed in the landlord's hands, who placed it in
-numerous folds of rice paper, and handed it to his wife, who engulfed it
-in her kimono.
-
-These matters having been satisfactorily settled, Campanula was led off
-to bed and dinner was served.
-
-Next morning at eight o'clock two rikshas arrived to take the travelers
-to the station. The whole of the "Tortoise" folk, Hedgehog San included,
-came to the front of the house. The cry, "Sayonara--come again quickly,"
-followed them as they swept round the pond and out at the gate, a cry
-made up of the landlord's croaking basso, the sweet voices of the
-Mousmés, and Campanula's childish treble.
-
-"She seemed sorrier to part with old Mac than me," thought Leslie as
-they span along. "Ugh!" He turned his head in disgust from an English
-tourist in tweeds, who was engaged in kodaking a temple.
-
-In the train, with a pipe in his mouth and M'Gourley opposite to him, he
-felt as if he had just stepped out of a dream; a dream of sun and
-splendor, a dream in which figured camellia trees twenty feet high, and
-the form of the Lost One standing amidst the glory of crimson azaleas.
-
-But another picture obtruded itself upon this pleasant dream.
-
-Away in the mountains not far from Lake Chuzenji, a green thing had been
-discovered, a thing that had once been a man. Mac had been to view it at
-the request of the police, but he could not identify it as the body of
-the Blind One of the Nikko Road. It was green from the chlorophyll of
-the cryptomerias. In the quaint language of the Japanese police, it was
-the body of a man whom "the trees had beaten to death."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IX
-
- THE HOUSE OF THE CLOUDS
-
-
-Danjuro, the curio dealer of Jinrikisha Street, Nagasaki (no relation of
-Danjuro the actor), was a gentleman of uncertain age, with a face which
-seemed the relic of a thousand years of debauchery.
-
-It was probably only opium, but the awful weary look with which he
-swindled you, when you were once in the trap he called his shop, would
-have given Dante points for the construction of a new circle in his
-_Inferno_.
-
-He had spent years in China, had Danjuro, hence, perhaps, the expression
-on his face; also the fact that he did his calculations not by aid of
-the so-ro-ba, or calculating machine used by the Japanese tradesmen. He
-did his calculations in his head, and with that far-away look so filled
-with the poetry of the horrible, he would calculate the difference
-between the price he had paid for the okimono he was selling you and
-your offer for it, contrasting them with your own personality, and from
-these three factors calculating to a nicety how much money he could
-swindle out of you.
-
-He had a hand in the selling of the Great Tung Jade to the Empress of
-China, or rather to her ambassador the Mandarin Li, the shadiest
-transaction that ever emerged from darkness; and could you place end to
-end the globe trotters swindled and chiseled and fleeced by him, they
-would reach in a noxious line from London to Newcastle, and maybe
-further. He had long, polished finger nails that shone like plate glass,
-and when you entered his establishment he advanced, bowed, and hissed at
-you by way of welcome.
-
-He was a rogue, yet he was straight in his way. To be a perfect rogue,
-at least to succeed in the art, you must be straight in some ways. The
-bandit who betrays his brethren never goes far without a dagger sticking
-in his back.
-
-M'Gourley had "discovered" Danjuro years ago. M'Gourley had twice come
-to financial smash, once because of an earthquake, and again in the
-upheaval caused by the breaking of the Barings. Danjuro had helped him
-twice, and he had helped Danjuro many times; helped him with his Western
-craft, Scotch cuteness, and knowledge of Europeans.
-
-In every city of the East, in every city of the world, you will find a
-fixed Scot always prospering; M'Gourley was a floating Scot. Navigating
-Japan from end to end, now at Tokyo, now at Kioto, now at Nagasaki,
-crossing to Corea and pottering about there, meeting brither Scotchmen
-and helping them in trade speculations, selling, or assisting in the
-sale, of everything sellable from coals to kakemonos, went M'Gourley, a
-busy man, but somehow a rather unfortunate one.
-
-Suddenly Japan rose and smashed China, Russia stepped in and robbed her
-of the pieces, and Japan sat down, drew her kimono round her, and began
-to think about Russia.
-
-M'Gourley just then (it was some two years before he met Leslie) was on
-the Lao-Tung peninsula, a black wandering dot, innocuous to governments,
-one would imagine, as a beetle.
-
-Suddenly M'Gourley returned to Japan, and the day after his return a
-sheaf of documents addressed by a gentleman named Lessar to a gentleman
-named Mouravieff was in the hands of the Japanese Council of Elders.
-
-I don't say anything about the transaction at all; it is not for me to
-take away the characters of my characters. I only know this, that if the
-Russian Government had caught Mac just then, they, laboring under,
-perhaps, a fantastically wrong impression, would have done something
-decidedly unpleasant to him.
-
-At all events, Mac bought a new suit of reach-me-down clothes at a
-native shop in the Honcho Dori at Yokohama, and got so drunk that three
-Mousmés had put him to bed, whilst a fourth fanned him, and a fifth
-played soothing tunes on a moon-fiddle to exorcise the demon; and a
-piece of priceless gold lacquer presented to Mac by a high official was
-sold by him to an American week later for five thousand dollars gold
-coin--gold coin being much more useful than gold lacquer to a man in
-Mac's way of life.
-
-Thus it came about that Mac was a persona grata with the Japanese
-Government, and had many little privileges not enjoyed by ordinary
-Europeans.
-
-Danjuro's shop was situated in Jinriksha Street, a street like a picture
-slashed out of the "Arabian Nights," a picture that a child had made
-additions to with a lead pencil and half spoiled.
-
-A bowler hat in Jinriksha Street, for instance, is a thing very much out
-of place, yet you see many of them, mostly potted down on the back of
-Japanese heads, and making the wearers both frightful and
-ridiculous-looking.
-
-Here passes a Mousmé under an umbrella, a figure fashioned seemingly
-from a rainbow, a figure to bless the eye and make the heart feel glad.
-Here stumps along a thing that once was a Mousmé, a thing in European
-dress--alas!
-
-Here you turn from a shop sign in the vernacular, and across the way,
-over the booth where cakes reposing on myrtle branches are sold, "Englis
-here is spoke," blasts your sight.
-
-Jinrikisha Street, and for Jinrikisha Street read nearly every other
-street in sea-board Japan, is a picture, as I have said, spoiled as if
-by a meddlesome English child.
-
-Danjuro's shop was all open in front so that you could come right in
-past the bronze stork on the tortoise, past the leaping dragon made of
-jointed steel, a dragon hard as adamant yet flexible as india-rubber.
-Then you met Danjuro, and he sank towards the floor and hissed at you by
-way of welcome. The chief treasures were in the cellar below, but here
-was quite enough to feast the eye of a not too wise amateur, and make
-the purse jump in his pocket.
-
-Danjuro had the art of shop-dressing at his finger-ends. Things always
-looked better in his establishment than they did when fetched home.
-
-People would cry: "Is _that_ the Owari vase I bought? Why, _what has
-happened to it_?"
-
-It would be the same vase, but divorced from its surroundings.
-
-You cannot imagine the effect of a dwarf plum tree in a green tile pot
-upon a dragon of steel until you see them in juxtaposition, nor the
-strange difference certain backgrounds make in an Owari vase till you
-try them. Danjuro was well up in these subtleties, and this knowledge,
-combined with his own personality, lent an added value to his
-wares--twenty per cent. at least.
-
-Here in the shop of Danjuro, in a semi-twilight, glimmer demons and
-beasts in porcelain and bronze. The frightful face of Akudogi shouts at
-you from the wall, the lotus expands over pools in the silent land of
-lacquer, and the hundred guinea ivory Mousmé, ten inches high, trips
-beneath her ivory umbrella, ever on the way to some fanciful pageant
-that had once existed in her creator's dreams.
-
-Here is a Jap baby, about as big and as round as a tangerine orange,
-feeding ducks. Here a little box a size larger than a walnut. Open it;
-inside are seated a man and boy playing some game with dice. The man is
-holding the dice cup up preparing to cast; in it are the dice, every
-cube separate and real, and each marked with the proper pips.
-
-In the shop of Danjuro you are gazing, not upon bronzes and lacquers,
-but upon the mind of Japan, partly made visible. There is here evidence
-of patience and labor sufficient to conquer the world, beauty enough to
-charm the world, and ferocity enough to terrify it.
-
-There is nothing so strange on earth as this art that reveals in
-glimpses the exquisite and the awful, where the lily blossoms and the
-dragon tramples it under foot.
-
-That baby feeding the ducks, could anything be more laughable or
-lovable? But do not open the drawers of the cabinet he is standing on:
-they are filled with ivory obscenities carved with just as loving care.
-
-No, the kakemonos and bronzes that adorn the drawing-rooms of Bayswater
-and Bedford Park do not disclose the whole of Japanese art. If you don't
-believe me, then go to Japan and become a friend of Danjuro the
-curio-dealer, who lives in Jinrikisha Street, in the quaint city of
-Nagasaki.
-
-"There's no use talking," said Leslie, the second day after his arrival
-at Nagasaki. "I don't want to live in the European quarter. I want that
-white house up on the hill there you said was empty, and I want to buy
-it."
-
-"Weel," said Mac--they were standing in Danjuro's shop consulting--"I'm
-thinking you want more than it's likely y'll get. You cannot buy the
-house--rent it, maybe. Stay till I ask Dan."
-
-Dan and he had a consultation, the upshot of which was that the
-curio-dealer, after a cynical declaration to the effect that anything
-could be obtained for money, offered his services as an intermediary.
-
-A friend of his, a brother dealer, a Mr. Initogo, or some such name,
-owned the house up there on the heights; he would probably let it. It
-was named the House of the Clouds, warranted rainproof and free from
-ghosts.
-
-Mr. Initogo was fetched from across the way--a gentleman in horn
-spectacles, who looked as wise as Confucius but was a little bit deaf.
-After some five minutes' polite bawling on the part of Mac and Danjuro,
-Mr. Initogo came to understand the matter, and at once declared with a
-thousand protestations of regret that the thing was impossible.
-
-Why?
-
-Well, he could not allege any specific reason. The House of the Clouds
-was empty, but he had not considered the matter of letting it. The
-proposition came as an honorable shock to him.
-
-Then Mac and Danjuro tackled Mr. Initogo, tea was brought forth, and
-after half an hour's wavering Mr. Initogo began to give in.
-
-He sent for his son, and piloted by the son, the two Scotchmen went off
-to inspect the House of the Clouds.
-
-They passed up a by-street and then up a steep path, till they came to a
-gate shadowed by lilac trees. The gate led to a tiny demesne, a long,
-white, two-storied house, before which lay a grass plot, at the far end
-of the house some cherry trees, and a space that might be used as a
-garden.
-
-From the veranda of the House of the Clouds one could look down on
-Nagasaki and the harbor that pierces the land like a crooked sword. The
-hum of Jinrikisha Street came up, mixed with the eternal song of the
-cicalas.
-
-Across the harbor, where the junks and sampans contrasted strangely with
-the foreign shipping, hills rose up, green near the water, brown further
-off; over the hills a few white fleecy clouds passed on the light wind.
-It was the sky of an English summer.
-
-"I like this," said Leslie, turning from the view. "Now let's look at
-the house."
-
-It was furnished with primrose-colored matting, nothing else, and it was
-about as substantial as a bandbox. There were two stories connected by a
-flight of steps without a balustrade, and you could make as many rooms
-as you liked with sliding panels.
-
-"I'll take it," said Leslie, and they returned to the shop of Danjuro.
-Mr. Initogo was fetched, and after more wriggling and haggling and
-tea-drinking and the smoking of tiny pipes, he consented to let the
-place--the authorities willing.
-
-Mac undertook to make everything right in that respect, though it would
-cost him a good deal of trouble, as the government have a holy horror of
-foreigners spreading beyond the allotted quarters; and then a Chinese
-comprador was obtained, and received orders from Leslie to furnish the
-place with the necessary futons (he determined to live in the native
-way), pots, tins, kettles, Mousmés, and a decent cook; also screens and
-mosquito-nets, plum trees in pots, and everything else that might be
-necessary for comfort and adornment.
-
-Three days later the comprador appeared at the Nagasaki hotel, where
-Leslie was staying, and declared that everything was in order--even to
-the last tea-cup. He had hired servants, made a most advantageous
-bargain: he had hired a whole family.
-
-"But, bless my soul! I don't want a family," said Leslie. "I only want a
-cook and a couple of girls."
-
-Just so. This family consisted of a cook--her name was Fir-cone--and
-three daughters. They would all come together or not at all; he had got
-them at a bargain. The names of the daughters were: Moon, Plum-blossom,
-and Snow. Sixteen shillings a month a-piece was the wages they were
-promised. There was also a cat belonging to this family--
-
-"Oh, well, I'll take them," said Leslie, "and if they don't suit I can
-get others."
-
-That afternoon, preceded by the comprador and followed by two coolies
-carrying his luggage he went up to take formal possession, and was
-received by his new servants all on their knees--the three Mousmés in
-front and mother Fir-cone in the background.
-
-Next day he started on the long journey to Nikko to fetch Campanula.
-When he returned with his charge the first person to meet him on the
-quay was Mac. Mac in a stove pipe hat he had bought cheap and which did
-not fit him but of which he seemed proud. Campanula instantly recognized
-Mac with a smile and an attempt to kow-tow before him, which Leslie
-frustrated, on account of the dirty state of the quay. It was a pretty
-little incident, and went to the old fellow's heart.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER X
-
- OF MOUSMÉS AND OTHER THINGS
-
-
-Plum-blossom was a Mousmé with a broad face, ever lit by a half smile.
-Moon was a girl with a serious expression, but gorgeous of dress as any
-girl of Kioto. Snow looked shrunk--not withered, you understand, fresh
-as a daisy, in fact; but something had happened in her development: she
-was preternaturally small, and looked like a Mousmé seen through a
-diminishing glass.
-
-The three Mousmés and old mother Fir-cone took almost entire possession
-of Campanula San when she arrived, and Campanula San seemed quite
-content.
-
-Mixed with her charming childishness there was a philosophical calm that
-would have done honour to a sage of the Stoic school. Riding on
-Leslie's shoulder through Nikko, under examination at the Tea House of
-the Tortoise, playing with Plum-blossom in the veranda of the House of
-the Clouds, she was just the same. Life was a pageant at which she was
-an humble spectator, whose duty was to be amiable and submissive, and
-accept things just as they came.
-
-She did not say this, but she acted it, or rather expressed it in her
-actions and ways.
-
-Down on the Bund an office had been rented by M'Gourley. He slept there
-and lived there, ascending occasionally at night to the House of the
-Clouds to smoke a pipe with his partner and talk business, and give
-advice on things Japanese, advice often needful enough to the
-uninitiated Leslie.
-
-House-keeping in Japan is full of surprises. One day, for instance,
-Leslie met a figure coming from the back part of the premises--a figure
-like a rag-doll that had spent its life in a coal-scuttle. Interrogated,
-the figure turned out to be the mother of Moon, and by profession--well,
-her profession was helping to coal the Canadian Pacific boats.
-
-"But," said Leslie, "it is impossible, for Moon already has a mother
-whose name is Fir-cone."
-
-He was just going to send for the police when the whole truth came out
-on the veranda, in the form of Moon herself.
-
-She explained in indifferent English, kneeling as she spoke with the
-backs of her little hands held upwards to her face, that the comprador
-had lied; that there was no particular connection between her and her
-fellow-servants; that the comprador had made a bunch of them just as he
-might make a bunch of weeds, picking one up here and the other there,
-and pretending they were all the one family. Why had he done this thing?
-Who could say? For some dark reason of his own. She said also that her
-mother was not always as dirty as that, but was going home now to wash.
-Would Leslie San like to see her washed so that Moon's words might be
-proved to him true? Leslie San would not.
-
-M'Gourley was had up, and managed to arrange matters without the
-disruption of the household, which seemed imminent.
-
-M'Gourley mixed a good deal in the affairs of the House of the Clouds.
-Six months had not passed before the member of the Wee Kirk declared
-that Campanula should be sent to the missionary day school near the
-Bund, and brought up a Christian.
-
-Leslie at first demurred. The state of Campanula's mind, as revealed by
-her in conversations mostly translated by Mac, but often conducted
-limpingly by Leslie himself (he was beginning to pick up the native),
-did not argue a good foundation for a structure like the Christian
-religion.
-
-Her mind, as far as he could get at it, was the mind of a sensitive and
-cultured lady who was slightly mad--mad on the subject of demons and
-strange beasts.
-
-Tortoises who talked, storks whose language was the acme of politeness,
-and toads of polished speech, seemed as real to her as ordinary folk.
-
-Whether the tin-smith, her supposed father, had filled her head with
-these things, no one can say, but the fact remained that she was a
-perfect Uncle Remus as far as animal-tale construction was concerned,
-and had a Mrs. Radcliffe touch in the weird, so that it was a not
-uncommon thing for her to be marched off to bed, the triumvirate of
-Mousmés--Moon, Plum-blossom, and Snow--acting as a body-guard to protect
-her from her own extraordinary fancies.
-
-Then the self-abasement, the absolute self-abasement with which she
-would kow-tow with both tiny hands backs upward before your august self,
-and next minute she would be spinning a top on the veranda, or playing
-just like an ordinary child with Kiku San, a dot about her own size, and
-only daughter of Mr. Initogo, the landlord.
-
-She had a whole host of baldheaded Pagan friends, male and female, and
-Leslie, taking a siesta of an afternoon, would hear their clogs rattling
-on the veranda, or their naked feet pattering in the kitchen, and half
-fancy himself the proprietor of a kindergarten.
-
-Quaint kites were often to be seen flying above the House of the Clouds,
-kites shaped like hawks and butterflies, and M'Gourley down in the
-street below would sometimes glance up and see these evidences of
-Campanula's existence, and nod his head and say, "A'weel!" and hurry on
-to Danjuro's to meet him about some perhaps questionable transaction,
-revolving in his mind the while the question of Campanula's conversion
-to Christianity.
-
-He was a strange mixture. He would spend a whole morning in trade. That
-is to say, he would get to the office on the Bund early, do his
-correspondence and what not with regard to the export of cheap curios,
-go to the hotel and have a cocktail, and fish round for victims; find
-some well-to-do stranger and lead him into Danjuro's shop, deliver him
-up as a dripping roast into Danjuro's hands, receive his commission, and
-go off and have tiffin. Then as likely as not he would go up to the
-House of the Clouds and fetch Campanula out for a walk, and buy her
-toys, or sweets, or flowers.
-
-And once a week or so he would tackle Leslie about the Christianity
-business, till Leslie at last gave in.
-
-Campanula went to the missionary day school, the prettiest school child
-in the world under her scarlet umbrella pictured with flying storks.
-
-Leslie went away sometimes for weeks, leaving her in charge of the
-Mousmés and leaving Mac with instructions to keep an eye on her welfare.
-
-For the first eight months or so of this new life he was amused and
-interested, the beauty of the country, the quaintness of the people, the
-new conditions of life, kept him from thinking much about the past or
-troubling about the future.
-
-Then came reaction. A craving came on him to see England once again, a
-veritable home-sickness that was not to be denied.
-
-He made a journey to London. He only spent a fortnight there; every one
-he had known in the past was either gone or dead. He belonged to no
-club. It was a miserable fortnight, and every day of it Japan called him
-back.
-
-When he returned, he told himself that he had done with the West for
-ever. Just as men sometimes tell themselves they have done for ever with
-sin, folly, or love.
-
-
-
-
- PART TWO
-
- THE MASSACRE OF THE BLUE-BELLS
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XI
-
- THE DREAM
-
-
-The "Jap Rubbish trade" was prospering mildly.
-
-During the first two years it seemed likely to languish and die, but in
-the third year it woke up, got on its legs, and, to use M'Gourley's
-phrase, "began to pick a bit." In the fourth year it was bringing Leslie
-in some two hundred a year, a fair amount considering the capital
-originally invested in it.
-
-Not that he wanted the money, he kept his interest in the thing just for
-something to do--a toy business to play with when he was otherwise
-disengaged.
-
-As for Mac, he was getting rich, not out of the Rubbish trade, but in a
-manner we will hint at later on.
-
-The House of the Clouds remained unaltered, save for a tiny landscape
-garden not much bigger than a dining-table which Leslie had laid out for
-Campanula. It lay beyond the garden walk in front of the veranda, and it
-had mountains and rivers and savannas of moss, and old oak trees,
-fierce-looking, but not much bigger than your thumb, and twisted fir
-trees that reflected themselves gloomily in lakes the size of
-hand-mirrors, and a Shinto temple about the size of a Buszard's Dundee
-cake; there were also bridges across the rivers.
-
-The thing had been laid out as a New Year's gift for Campanula, and it
-had cost Leslie about the price of a Steinway Grand.
-
-Azalea bushes grew right up to it, azaleas bordered the house, and there
-was a wilderness of azaleas in the open space near the cherry trees.
-
-Crimson azaleas, imported all the way from the azalea valley at Nikko in
-the very first year of Leslie's residence in Nagasaki. It was a pretty
-thought, and it had cost a good penny, and caused much grumbling from
-Mac, and great admiration in Mr. Initogo, who had turned out the most
-delightful of landlords, a good hand at whist, and most adaptable about
-repairs. He was a modern Japanese agnostic when he was well, was Mr.
-Initogo, and a Shinto when he was ill or in trouble; but he was an
-all-round good landlord at all times.
-
-One bright afternoon Leslie was seated beneath the cherry trees in a
-deck chair, his hat tilted back, and the pipe he had just been smoking
-lying on the ground at his feet. He was asleep. Lately he had been
-suffering from a touch of fever and chills caught on a duck-shooting
-expedition down the coast; he had been taking opium for it, and now as
-he sat beneath the cherry trees the opium was troubling his dreams.
-
-Just before dropping off, his eye had fallen on a single azalea blossom
-that had burst into flame, as if spring had just touched off with her
-torch the fire of crimson flowers that soon would blaze round the house.
-
-Then he fell asleep, and Opium plucked the crimson blossom, and followed
-him with it into the land of dreams.
-
-He was in a Hongwanji temple, and there were people there, Europeans
-seemingly, dressed in European clothes; but though in a specious
-disguise, they were soon perceived to be not the people of this earth.
-They had strange and distorted faces, and forms that surely never were
-made in God's image. One man, who suddenly hid himself behind a screen
-of lacquer, Leslie could have sworn was made of stone.
-
-Then in great tribulation of spirit he was escaping from the company of
-these people, passing down a corridor where soft matting took the foot;
-but something was following him with a hissing sound, a sound such as
-Danjuro made by way of welcome when you entered his shop. Of a sudden
-the opium spirit touched the corridor wall with the flower he had been
-patiently carrying, the Hongwanji temple vanished, and Leslie found
-himself on the Nikko road.
-
-The valley of azaleas lay before him and the mournful cypress trees, the
-country where the moving clouds cast their shadows, and the far blue
-hills beyond.
-
-There was something moving amidst the azaleas. He knew it was a child,
-but, by some curious and subtle freak of the opium fiend, the child was
-hidden from him, all but vague glimpses; were it to make itself half
-visible for a second a phantom azalea bush would come before it, but he
-could see a tiny white hand busy plucking the crimson blossoms.
-
-Then from somewhere far away through the dream came the mournful toot,
-toot, of a blind man's reed-pipe. At first it seemed beyond the bend of
-the road, and then it seemed amidst the azaleas, and then in the wood of
-cypress trees. It grew more insistent and piercing, and changed subtly
-into the sound he had once heard on the Nikko road when, sitting with
-M'Gourley, he had listened to the tune of the blind juggler with the
-pipe.
-
-As he listened, shuddering, he saw something which he at once knew to be
-the reason of the music and the soul of the opium drama that was
-unfolding before him.
-
-A tiny black dot was visible in the sky away over the distant hills. It
-expanded and grew, dilated as if in response to the enchanted music. And
-then he saw that it was a bird; a vast bird, larger than an eagle, a
-ferocious and awful bird, a tragic apparition called up from the lands
-of night. It poised above the valley, seeming to float and be upborne,
-not on air, but on the music welling from the wood.
-
-He knew that if he could get to the half-seen child amidst the azaleas
-he could save it from its fate. But he could make no movement nor utter
-a sound, but stood paralyzed, watching the tiny white hand plucking the
-crimson flowers and the Horror above preparing to strike.
-
-The music had now turned to a drone, a sound like the spinning sound of
-a vast top. The thing in the air circled and span. He knew it was
-preparing to fall like a thunderbolt.
-
-Then he awoke.
-
-He saw the garden, the cherry trees, the house. Opium land had vanished,
-but the music remained, ringing in his ears; or was it real?
-
-He sprang to his feet and staggered along the path leading to the gate
-looking wildly round him and listening. As he came, the sound died off;
-died and turned to the sound of ordinary life, the hum from the city
-below, the sound of the wind in the lilac trees, the tune of ceaseless
-cicalas.
-
-"My God! what a dream!" he muttered as he grasped the gate and stared
-down the lilac-shadowed path. Then he returned slowly to the seat
-beneath the cherry trees, and lit a cigarette.
-
-Opium had played a trick upon him like this before. He had taken it
-first months ago for fever; since then he had taken it occasionally for
-the slightest ache. He reacted well to it sensually speaking, and found
-it at once soothing and stimulating. Once before it had pushed him into
-dreamland, but a dreamland without plot or plan, and unstained by a
-horror such as he had just witnessed.
-
-He was seated half drowsing, when suddenly some influence made him look
-up and he saw before him a lovely thing. It was Campanula. She had just
-come out of the house by way of the veranda, and was approaching him.
-Campanula, far removed from the child he had carried on his shoulder
-into Nikko five years ago.
-
-The child had turned into a girl with that rapidity of transformation
-characteristic of the women of Japan. She was taller than the ordinary
-Mousmé of fourteen or fifteen; her face, even to Western eyes, was
-beautiful with a sad and mysterious beauty of its own, and her every
-movement was graceful as the movement of a bluebell when touched by the
-wind.
-
-She had ceased to attend the mission school after nearly four years'
-instruction, during which she had grasped the art of speaking and almost
-of thinking in English, and was now Leslie's housekeeper, his adopted
-daughter, and absolute ruler of the small domain known as the House of
-the Clouds--as far, that is to say, as the household affairs went.
-
-She still retained her childishness of mind, and for all the Christian
-endeavor of the missionaries, she still retained much of her pristine
-belief in "things"--things with wings as well as hoofs, things that
-lived in woods, birds that talked, and beasts that made answer.
-
-Though she could speak English, she never spoke in long sentences, or
-told a connected tale in that language, always falling back on the
-vernacular when her imagination was roused, or a long and connected
-statement had to be made.
-
-She was approaching Leslie now with a porcelain bowl figured with storks
-in her hand, and a smile upon her face. There was little mat on the
-ground near his chair, and on this she sat down--kneeling fashion--with
-the bowl before her.
-
-"See!" said she, producing some things like small gun wads from the
-sleeve of her kimono, "I bought these to-day to give you pleasure. Oh,
-so beautiful! Watch!"
-
-She cast one of the ugly discs upon the surface of the water. It lay
-there for a moment unchanged, and then, as if by magic, began to expand
-as it sucked up the fluid, and break up, growing bigger and broader till
-at last on the surface of the water floated three pink-tinted
-lotus-flowers, a most delicate and perfect resemblance of the real
-things.
-
-She folded her hands and looked up at him with a happy smile.
-
-"Where did you get them?" asked Leslie.
-
-"M'Gourley San told me of them, he wished to buy them for me--but I
-bought them for you."
-
-She removed the lotus-flowers and cast another disc on the water.
-
-Leslie watched her. During the last few months Campanula's attitude to
-him had changed. From a happy, humble, and somewhat heedless thing--a
-creature that regarded him with affection--an affection of about the
-same strength as she exhibited for M'Gourley, Sweetbriar San, the cat,
-and her children schoolmates; she had become a follower of his alone,
-always striving to please him, forestalling his wants, always happy in
-his presence, and drooping--unknown to him--when he was away.
-
-The second wad under the influence of the water broke up and began to
-form the branch of a cherry tree covered with blossom.
-
-"Arashiyama," murmured she, folding her small hands and speaking
-dreamily, as if communing with herself. Then she sat watching the branch
-of the cherry tree expanding over the surface of the water.
-
-From the house came a somewhat discordant voice singing a song about a
-bee and a lilac bough.
-
-It was Pine-breeze singing at her work. Moon, Plum-blossom, and Snow,
-with their fictitious mother Fir-cone, had vanished from the House of
-the Clouds two years and more, giving place to Pine-breeze, a miracle of
-daintiness and prettiness, and two other Mousmés, one "rather old," the
-cook, Lotus-bud by name, and the other named Cherry-blossom, as pretty
-as Pine-breeze.
-
-"Listen!" said Campanula, suddenly looking up from the bowl and its
-contents. "There is some one at the gate."
-
-Leslie half turned.
-
-A man and woman had passed through the gateway shadowed by lilac, a
-short, stout man dressed in tweed and a tall woman in blue serge.
-
-Leslie could see them only indistinctly from where he sat, and they, not
-looking in his direction, failed to see him at all.
-
-They were coming up to the veranda when the woman turned to the little
-picture garden, laughed, and pointed it out to her companion. Then she
-left the path, stepped gingerly right into the middle of the landscape
-garden country, and tried to pluck up an oak tree, a gnarled and
-ancient-looking oak tree eight inches high.
-
-"Who?" asked Campanula, turning from the sight of this outrage with
-uplifted forefinger.
-
-"They are Foreign Devils," said Leslie using the Chinese idiom. He was
-very pale, leaning forward in chair. "Look, Campanula! I verily believe
-she is trying to tear up your mountains to see how they grow. That's
-what they call in England 'cheek,' Campanula."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XII
-
- THE FOREIGN DEVILS
-
-
-The female Foreign Devil having failed to uproot the oak, which clung to
-its native soil with a tenacity highly Japanese, returned to the garden
-path. And then came the voice of Pine-breeze kow-towing to the
-strangers, bidding them welcome, and imploring them to make the
-honorable entrance.
-
-They passed from view into the house, and Leslie rose from his chair.
-
-"Wait here awhile, Campanula," he said, "and then follow me in. I think
-I know them, but I will go and see."
-
-"Yes," said Campanula.
-
-He walked to the house and kicked his garden shoes off in the veranda,
-noting the fact that the Foreign Devils had committed the unspeakable
-outrage of entering with their shoes on.
-
-"_Richard!_" cried the tall woman, advancing to him with outstretched
-hand as he entered the room where they were. "Why, you've grown!" She
-spoke as though they had parted yesterday, but her voice had an
-hysterical quaver, then she presented her cheek to him for a cousinly
-kiss.
-
-"This is Richard Leslie," said the woman, turning to the little stout
-man in tweed. "We grew up together; that's why I'm so tall, I suppose.
-Dick--my husband George. Gracious, Dick, where are your chairs and
-things? Have you nothing to sit down on?"
-
-"Only the floor," said Leslie, fetching some square cushions and placing
-them on the matting. "See, this is how it's done," and he sat down on
-one of the cushions, whilst his companions followed suit.
-
-Jane du Telle, once Jane Deering, was, despite her vivacity and
-carelessness of manner, evidently in a state of high nervous tension.
-
-Leslie, notwithstanding the years that had passed since their last
-meeting, saw in her mentally little change. She was the same Jane who
-had once hacked his shins, when they were boy and girl together, up in
-Scotland, and then flung herself on his neck in a burst of repentance
-and tears. Emotional, good-hearted, selfish--giving herself away one
-moment, but always saved the next by a latent discretion that was to her
-flighty nature as a gyroscope. The same Jane with whom he had fished for
-salmon and played at tennis in the past, seated before him now on a
-floor in Japan, chattering of everything and nothing just in the old
-familiar way.
-
-"And that's the fellow she has married!" thought he, as he glanced
-across at George du Telle, a podgy, red-headed little man, a
-globe-trotting Briton of the most blatant description.
-
-"How did you know I was here?" asked he, after Jane had somewhat talked
-her hysterical feelings off.
-
-"Mr. Channing told us last night at the hotel. He's a friend of yours.
-He told us he knew an Englishman named Richard Leslie living in the
-native fashion, and I asked him if he was good-looking and tall and
-dark, and he said, 'Yes.' He said you lived at the House of the
-Clouds--sounds like an address in a dream, doesn't it?--so we took
-rikshas and came."
-
-She put her hand to her back, where the "floor stitch" had seized her.
-The floor may be a convenient enough resting-place for a Mousmé who
-sinks down upon it quite naturally in the likeness of a compressed and
-joyously colored Z, but for an English woman of five feet eight or more,
-dressed in a tailor-made gown, and laced in a _corset parfait_ it is at
-first rather difficult.
-
-"I would have got chairs," said Leslie, "if I had known you were coming;
-but of all the people of the world, you were the last I expected to see.
-Where did you come from? I mean, how did you strike Nagasaki?"
-
-"We came from Colombo."
-
-"Beastly hole," put in her husband, who was stroking Sweetbriar San, the
-cat of the establishment, who had just come in to inspect the strangers.
-"We stayed at the Beach Hotel two nights, and d'you know what they
-charged us? Just think."
-
-"Don't think," said Jane, who had wriggled into a more comfortable
-attitude. "Give me that cat, George; and I wish you would try to repress
-your hotel bills. Dick, I was so sorry to hear the news about your
-father."
-
-"What news?"
-
-"About his death."
-
-"Well, you were sorrier than I was."
-
-"Oh, Dick! but don't let us talk about it, it's all so sad. And have you
-been living here in Japan ever since?"
-
-"Ever since."
-
-"Just like this on the floor?"
-
-"Just like this on the floor."
-
-"You must find it rather flat, I should think," said the carroty-headed
-George.
-
-"Richard," said Jane suddenly, ignoring her husband, "you're not married
-to a Japanese--or anything--are you?"
-
-"No."
-
-"Do you live here alone?"
-
-"Well, I have three servant girls, and a daughter, if you call that
-'alone.'"
-
-"A daughter!" said Jane.
-
-"Yes; and she's Japanese, too."
-
-"Japanese!"
-
-"Yes; I adopted her."
-
-George du Telle snorted, and fortunately at that moment a panel slid
-back, and Pine-breeze appeared with the tea, followed by Lotus-bud with
-an hibachi and Cherry-blossom with a heap of tiny plates.
-
-"Are these your--I mean is one of these your--"
-
-"Daughter? No. Turn round, and you will see her,"
-
-Jane was seated with her back to the drawn-back panel that made a
-doorway on to the veranda. She turned, and there in the sunlit space
-stood Campanula in her blue kimono, broad scarlet obi, and with a
-scarlet flower in her hair. Behind her, as a background, lay the picture
-garden, antique hills, spun-glass torrents, and tiny, twisted fir trees,
-that looked, oh, so old, and tired of the world, and tormented by the
-wind.
-
-Campanula went right down on her knees upon the matting, and murmured
-the usual Japanese welcome.
-
-Now this was a practice that Leslie disliked. He had tried to break her
-of it, and in the attempt he had come across a strange fact.
-
-Campanula in her heart of hearts was a real child of Old Japan. She
-might have been a sister to the seven-and-forty Ronins in the time
-before Osaka was defiled by factory chimneys, and the monastery of
-Kotoku-in by the presence of Cook's tourists.
-
-She tried honestly to be modern, as it was the wish of Leslie, but in
-times of emotion, back her intellect would go to Old Japan, and she
-would act as her ancestors had acted in who knows what lotus-strewn and
-blossom-scented ages.
-
-"What does she say?" asked Jane, as George du Telle rose to his feet.
-"Tell me, and ask her to excuse me for not getting up, for when I get
-up, I'll have to be _pulled_ up."
-
-"She is bidding you welcome and at the same time apologizing for the
-fact of her own miserable existence."
-
-"I accept the apology," said Jane, as Campanula, her devotions over,
-sank down before the tea-service, and prepared to act as hostess.
-"Freely and frankly, Dick, I must congratulate you on your taste--she is
-lovely."
-
-Campanula looked up with a faint, apologetic smile.
-
-"I speak English," she said.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII
-
- THE MONASTERY GARDEN
-
-
-Jane gazed over Nagasaki, the blue water, the green hills, to the blue
-beyond, and sighed. They were standing near the gate; tea was over, and
-they were waiting for Campanula, who had gone into the house to make
-some alteration in her dress before accompanying them "down town."
-
-"Richard," she said, "take us somewhere where we can talk, you and I. I
-have such a heap of things to ask you and talk about. Twelve years--can
-it be twelve years since we last saw each other? Did you get my last
-letter?"
-
-George du Telle was standing near smoking a cigar, and staring at the
-beautiful view with about the same amount of interest he would have felt
-had it been a soap advertisement, but she did not lower her voice. She
-was perfectly frank with the world and her husband.
-
-This frankness carried her far, and enabled her sometimes to skate on
-ice that would have given under many a woman of half her weight, for it
-was a genuine frankness, not a thing put on.
-
-She was a person whom women called nice-looking on first acquaintance,
-and men mentally registered as plain. Tall, pale, with an excellent
-figure, and gray eyes. A man met her and spoke to her, and found her
-plain but very jolly, increased the acquaintanceship and found her
-plainness vanishing, and then, all of a sudden, his foolish soul was
-caught in a trap.
-
-It was the magic of her lips, perhaps. They formed the true Cupid's bow,
-full, and seemingly cut by a chisel wielded by a master hand, sensitive
-and sensuous. Gazing at them one came to understand how in the ancient
-world tall Troy fell before a kiss.
-
-"Which letter?" asked Leslie, plucking a lilac spray and strewing the
-ground with the tiny petals.
-
-"The one I wrote six years ago telling you I was married. I sent it care
-of your father."
-
-"No," said Leslie gloomily. "I have heard from no one for eight years
-and more. I cut the world, you know--or it cut me rather; but I'll tell
-you some other time, here's Campanula."
-
-Then they started, Leslie and his companion leading the way.
-
-"Where are you going to take us?" asked Jane, when they had reached the
-street.
-
-"Through the city to a place I know on a hill," replied Leslie.
-
-He had called four rikshas from the stand, and he gave some directions
-to the riksha men, and they started.
-
-You cannot imagine the size of Nagasaki till you drive through it in a
-swift-running riksha, nor the quaintness, nor the terror that causes
-your heart to fly upwards as your riksha man shaves a baby, not with a
-razor, but with the off wheel.
-
-Boy babies fighting tops, girls bouncing colored balls, flights of
-children whose clogs clatter like the dominoes in an Italian restaurant
-as they pursue each other in some mysterious game--everywhere children,
-a shifting, colored maze in which the eye gets tangled and lost. Babies,
-temples, tea-houses, streets upon streets of houses that look as if you
-could flatten them out with the blows of a shovel, bursts of
-cherry-blossoms, tripping Mousmés, stone monsters, awful, yet pathetic
-with the gray of lichen and the green of moss, a courtyard with a
-twisted fir tree leaning across it, laughter, and the tune of a
-_chamécen_ running through it all, that is the impression that a riksha
-ride through Nagasaki in spring would leave on the mind, were not the
-picture blurred by the European element.
-
-Street after street they passed through, and still the mysterious city
-kept building up streets before them. Leslie had thought of taking his
-companions to the O Suwa, but he had changed his mind and given other
-directions to the riksha men.
-
-They passed up a steep incline, dark with fir trees, and drew up at a
-great gateway consisting of two joists of wood supporting a vast beam,
-the whole making a figure something in the fashion of the Greek II.
-
-Beyond the gateway lay an inclined path, bordered by cryptomeria trees,
-leading to the façade of a temple.
-
-"It's a place I sometimes come to," said Leslie, as he helped Jane to
-descend. "It's quiet, and worth seeing in its way."
-
-Campanula and George du Telle led the way this time, Leslie and his
-companion leisurely following.
-
-"Come down this path," said Jane, turning to a side alley. "Oh, how
-pretty! and how mournful too, with those rows of dark trees. Dick, this
-is not a cemetery you have brought us to?"
-
-"No; it's a Shinto monastery. Few people know it, and it's out of the
-run of the general sight-seeing bounders."
-
-"Things with kodaks?"
-
-"And without--but see here, Jane."
-
-"Yes?"
-
-"What's your husband?"
-
-"George?"
-
-"Yes, I suppose his name is George. What is he?"
-
-"He's in the wool trade--he's the richest man in the wool trade, they
-say. He thinks and talks of nothing else but wool. He got off the
-subject to-day with you for awhile; wasn't he brilliant? But we get on
-all right together; he has his set, and I have mine."
-
-"What is his set?"
-
-"The very best--I mean the very worst; the poor old Smart Set that every
-one is always beating as if it were a donkey--which it is," said Jane,
-taking her seat on the plinth supporting the prancing figure of Ama-ino,
-fronted across the walk by the equally fantastic figure of Koma-ino, a
-veritable Lion and Unicorn. "Sit down beside me, Dick, and tell me--"
-
-"Yes?"
-
-"What have you been doing all these years?"
-
-"I--I've been keeping alive--"
-
-"Dick," suddenly broke out Jane, as if she had not been listening, "I
-have often thought you must have thought me a heartless wretch; but I'm
-not."
-
-"There is no use in going over the past," he said. "What is done is
-done, and never can be undone. I can only say that I have never in the
-past had a friend to stick to me, or a woman to love me, or a father to
-care for me."
-
-"May it not have been your own fault, Dick? Think for a moment. I don't
-want to reproach you, but you know how wild you were--you know that was
-one of the reasons we couldn't get married. Oh, it wasn't 'my
-heartlessness,' as you told me in your last letter but one. I have heart
-enough--at least I hope so," said Jane, looking at Koma-ino as if for
-confirmation, "and I wouldn't have done what I did if you'd been
-different. Never mind, Dick, cheer up!--buck up! as they used to say in
-the poor old Smart Set, till the respectable folk took the expression
-away from them. What've you been doing all these long years, Dick?"
-
-"Oh, I've been in Australia."
-
-"What were you doing there?"
-
-"Curse Australia!" suddenly broke out Leslie, digging his heel in the
-ground. "Don't speak to me about it; let's talk of something else."
-
-"Well, what are you doing here? I mean, what have you been doing all
-these years--playing the guitar, or what?"
-
-"I'm a shopman."
-
-"I beg your pardon?"
-
-"I and a man named M'Gourley are in business."
-
-"Two Scotchmen?" sneered Jane.
-
-"Two Scotchmen."
-
-"And what are you selling--paper umbrellas?"
-
-"Yes; and hats and kakemonos, and every other sort of a mono that the
-European trade will swallow. We export them."
-
-"Then you're a merchant, _not_ a shopman," said Jane in a half-angry,
-half-relieved voice. "I _wish_ you would not give me these sort of
-horrible shocks. I thought at first you were serving in some place
-behind the counter--"
-
-"Oh, I don't want to make money in business much; I do it more for
-interest and to have an object in life. I'm well off; my father's money
-all came to me--he died well off."
-
-"And wasn't it queer?" said Jane. "George is awfully rich, you know;
-well, directly I was married, old Aunt Keziah died, and every penny of
-her money came to me. Fifty thousand. No, forty-eight thousand, four
-hundred and eighty-two pounds, ten and sixpence. It seemed so sweet, the
-little sixpence following at the end. I sent for it, and had a hole
-drilled through it, and I always wear it on this bangle--look!"
-
-He looked; there were many things hanging on the bangle. He touched a
-tiny gold pig swinging by a ring.
-
-"Good heavens!"
-
-"_You_ gave me that," said Jane, "and I've never parted with it."
-
-"What's this?" said he, fingering a cabalistic-looking blue stone.
-
-"That's an inkh, I think; I'm not sure of the name. It's lucky, or
-supposed to be."
-
-"Who gave it to you?"
-
-"A boy at Cairo last winter."
-
-"How old was he?"
-
-"Oh, about twenty."
-
-"And this?" said Leslie, picking out another charm in the form of a
-heart.
-
-"Look here," said Jane, pulling her wrist away, "I don't want to waste
-time like this, I want you to tell me more about yourself; I want you to
-tell me about that child Campanula. _Why_ did you adopt her?"
-
-"I found her on the road going to Nikko."
-
-"Where's that?"
-
-"It's away up in Shimotsuke, beyond Tokyo. I and M'Gourley were on the
-tramp. We were sitting by the roadside resting, when a blind man came
-along. He was half mad, and talked wild. Said he was a juggler, and
-offered to fetch devils out of a wood near by, if we gave him gold."
-
-"Why didn't you try him?" said Jane in an interested voice.
-
-"I did try him," said Leslie; "gave him some money. He made a circle in
-the dust, with signs round the rim of it, told us not to touch it or
-come near it, got into the middle of it, and fetched out a reed-pipe.
-Then he began to play a tune that would make you shiver to hear, and
-things croaked in the wood."
-
-"Go on," said Jane shivering pleasantly.
-
-"I took my walking-stick and made a mark in the dust just near his foot.
-I touched his heel by accident, and--whew!"
-
-"Yes?"
-
-"He went off like a rocket; bounded out of the circle, rushed this way
-and that, knocking against trees and striking right and left with his
-stick, as if dogs were about him. He got round the bend of the road and
-vanished. We were pretty much astonished, but that wasn't the end of it.
-In front of us was a valley of the most beautiful crimson azaleas."
-
-"Wait a moment, Dick; you're a very bad story-teller. You should always
-stage your characters: you should have described the azaleas first and
-the scenery. Well, go on."
-
-"Bother the azaleas!" said Dick. They were fast getting into the old
-boy-and-girl way of talking to each other, a somewhat dangerous language
-at thirty. "It doesn't matter whether they come in first or last. Where
-was I? Oh yes. Mac suddenly said: 'Look there!' I looked, and there sure
-enough was a child amidst the azaleas. She hadn't been there a few
-seconds before, and Mac would have it that she had been 'fetched'; it
-was a pretty wild country and no houses around, and there she was, just
-as if she had stepped out of a house, plucking away at the azalea
-blossoms for all she was worth, a tiny dot in a blue kimono and scarlet
-obi. I stole up behind her."
-
-"I'd have caught her up and kissed her."
-
-"Just what I did, in fact; and it may have been fancy, but she seemed
-slipping through my fingers like--grease till I kissed her, and she
-became solid."
-
-"There's one thing, Dick, you'll never make a poet. Well, go on; it's
-awfully interesting."
-
-"We carried her off to Nikko. No parents could be found to own her, so I
-adopted her."
-
-"What became of the juggler?"
-
-"That was a funny thing. As we turned the bend of the road we saw him
-away up in a gorge of the hills. He was still running for all he was
-worth, beating about him with his stick as if hitting off devils, and
-dashing himself against trees in a quite regardless manner."
-
-"How awful!"
-
-"Well, frankly, it was, and it had a sequel, for his dead body was found
-miles away some days after, and the Japanese police said the trees had
-beaten him to death, which they practically had."
-
-"But, Dick, what was the meaning of it?"
-
-"Who knows! When I touched him on the heel perhaps he may have thought
-it was a devil seizing him, and his imagination did the rest. Mac
-thinks, or, at least, he once thought--"
-
-"Yes?"
-
-"That there was something developing in the wood, something bad; that
-Campanula's ghost was wandering in the wood; that when I made the mark I
-did inside the circle, the bad thing was flung out of the developing
-medium and Campanula's ghost sucked into it, and so she became
-materialized."
-
-"And the bad thing went for the juggler man?"
-
-"It and perhaps others."
-
-"I never heard anything half so horrible, if it's true."
-
-"It's true enough. I was forgetting it almost, but I had a horrid dream
-to-day that brought it all back. I was sitting in the garden smoking and
-I dropped off to sleep; and I heard the sound of that beast's pipe, and
-I saw the place on the Nikko road, and there was a child amongst the
-flowers. Then a frightful bird came along and was going to attack the
-child, and I awoke--it was just before you came."
-
-"Dick, what was the mark you made on the road?"
-
-"The sign of the cross," said Leslie.
-
-Jane was silent for a moment then--
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV
-
- NAGASAKI BY NIGHT
-
-
-"I wish you wouldn't tell me stories like that," she suddenly broke out.
-"I'll be dreaming about it all to-night." She shuddered, and gazed at
-Koma-ino. "Japan seems a horribly creepy sort of place; I think I'll
-make George come away to-morrow."
-
-"One side of it," said Leslie, "is simply crawling; you have no idea,
-and I who have lived here five years have only a glimmering of the mind
-of the people. Do you know what I think?"
-
-"Yes?"
-
-"I think that in the sleeves of their kimonos--I mean their frock coats,
-for they've put off their kimonos for a while for business
-purposes--they are simply laughing at us."
-
-"At whom?"
-
-"At the English--at Europe."
-
-"Like their impudence!"
-
-"Perhaps it's impudence, perhaps not, anyhow--I distrust them--"
-
-"Dick," said his companion, "look! It's getting dusk: let's go and look
-for George and your 'adoptive daughter.' Mercy! What's that!"
-
-A deep hum filled the air; it seemed to come at first from the statue of
-Koma-ino--a soul-disturbing hum that deepened and swelled and then
-leapt, leapt into a deafening roar that rushed over Nagasaki, to die on
-the distant sea.
-
-Jane clung to her companion like a child, hugged him as a child might
-hug a nurse; her straw hat was pushed sideways, and he found his face
-buried in the masses of her perfumed hair. His arm had slipped round her
-waist, her arm was over his shoulder, and her fingers pressing his neck;
-for a moment he felt as if he were absorbing her being--drinking her.
-
-Then the sound died away.
-
-"_What_ was it?" gasped she, pushing away from him and gazing at him
-with a white, drawn face. "Why, you seem half dazed; you were more
-frightened than I. Dick, what was it?"
-
-"I'm all right," said Leslie, in the voice of a man waking from the
-effect of an opiate. "I wasn't frightened. It was only the big gong of
-the monastery; I've heard it lots of times."
-
-"Then why couldn't you have told me?" cried Jane, flying from fright to
-fury. "Think what it must have looked like, you hugging me like that."
-She sprang to her feet. "You bring me here and tell me ghost stories,
-and frighten me to death with gongs and things, and then--I believe
-you're half a Japanese already, you've grown so horrid."
-
-"There wasn't any one to see," said Leslie, rising to his feet. "And
-talking about hugging--"
-
-"I don't want to talk about hugging--talk about hugging! Do you fancy
-yourself on Hampstead Heath? Come, let us find George. I want something
-common-place after all this."
-
-They found George and Campanula--the most strangely matched pair in the
-world--waiting for them at the gates.
-
-"You'll come and dine with us at the hotel, won't you?" asked Jane as
-they got into the rikshas.
-
-"I'll come right enough," said Leslie. "Wait, please."
-
-He went to Campanula's riksha and asked her, but she prayed to be
-honorably excused--she had a headache.
-
-She passed her hand across her forehead as if in confirmation of her
-words. Leslie tucked the riksha blanket round her knees, and explained
-to the Du Telles, and they started.
-
-The quaint city they had come through had changed to a quainter city
-still. Night had blotted out the traces of Europe on Nagasaki--at least,
-in the purely native streets. All sorts of strange little trades that
-sleep in the daytime had awakened with the dusk. Things queer in the
-daytime were now mysterious, and things common, quaint. The fish shop,
-with its huge paper lantern, besides the fish and the sea-weed on its
-slabs, disposed of dreams which it flung away gratis to the passing
-traveler in the running riksha, and the booth of the sandal merchant,
-with the tiny potted rose tree in front of the wares, became at once an
-apology and atonement for all the commonplace villainy condensed in the
-word "shop."
-
-Mousmés passed, now half Mousmés, half glowworms, each bearing a
-colored lantern on the end of a little stick; and then the shadows
-half lit by lamp-light, where a cherry tree was attempting to peep
-into the street: the light of lamps glimmering through paper shutters,
-the light of lanterns swinging in the wind--red, blue, white, and
-yellow, some pictured with chrysanthemums; the stork that stands so
-boldly forth in Japanese pictures but is nearly gone from Japan,
-cherry-blossoms, and fish that seem swimming vigorously in a bowl of
-water lambent and green; and then the sounds, ten _chamécens_ for one
-in the day. The riksha whisks by a booth, whence comes the squalling of
-cats--seemingly. It is the gaku, Japanese poetry set to music and flung
-into the lamp-lit street to make things stranger, and heighten, if
-possible, the charm. At the corner of the by-street leading to the
-House of the Clouds they met Pine-breeze simply laden with all sorts of
-weird and wonderful paper boxes, and lighting herself on her way with a
-lantern pictured with a cuttle-fish and carried on the end of a short
-bamboo rod. She had been marketing. It was a fortunate meeting, for she
-could escort Campanula home.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XV
-
- M'GOURLEY'S LOVE AFFAIR
-
-
-Following Pine-breeze, who went before her like a fantastically colored
-glowworm, Campanula ascended to the house.
-
-As she stepped onto the veranda she heard the voice of M'Gourley San
-addressing Lotus-bed, and asking when she thought Leslie San would be
-back. Mac's elastic-side boots were in the veranda, and his gamp was
-propped against the wall.
-
-He was sitting on the floor smoking a pipe and reading the _Japan Mail_
-through a pair of spectacles when Campanula entered.
-
-Mac often came up of nights like this. He was a vivid Radical, and
-Leslie was a hide-bound Conservative, so they had a splendid time
-together when they got on politics; or they would play chess, or Mr.
-Initogo would drop in and they would have a rubber of dummy whist.
-
-But what Mac really came for, though he scarcely knew it himself, was
-Campanula.
-
-Campanula was a lot to Mac; much more than one can express in prose, and
-M'Gourley is scarcely the figure to make a ballad of. Yet the poem was
-there round about him, unsung, unuttered, unguessed by any one, least of
-all by himself.
-
-When he had made chickens out of orange-pips for her at Nikko, she just
-as cunningly had made him her slave.
-
-She had taken this dull, hard-grained, and shady old business man into a
-byway, of life, and made him spin tops and fly kites. She had made him
-admire flowers and listen to fairy tales, and all as naturally and as
-peacefully as though these things had been matters of everyday
-occurrence with him the whole long length of his arid life.
-
-"_Einst, O wunder!_"--that ballad might have been inspired by Mac--had
-the writer ever met him in business or seen him in the flesh.
-
-"Hech!" said Mac. "There you are; and where have you been trapsing to
-this hour of the evening?"
-
-Campanula explained that Leslie had met friends, and that he had gone to
-dine with them at the hotel.
-
-"Wonder who they can be?" soliloquized Mac, as Campanula clapped her
-little hands together for Pine-breeze to bring refreshments. "Some
-people he has picked up at the hotel, maybe."
-
-They sat opposite to each other on the matting, this strangely assorted
-pair. A panel in the front was open, for the night was warm, and the
-lamplight fell on the veranda and the garden path beyond.
-
-And they ate salted plums and crystallized prawns, soup with seaweed in
-it, and rice with fish sauce, whilst the perfume of the cherry blossoms
-stole in from the night outside, and the twang of a _chamécen_ came from
-somewhere in the mysterious depths of the house.
-
-It was Lotus-bud relieving her soul with music, mournful as the sound of
-the wind blowing over the wet fields of millet in the rainy weather.
-
-The things having been removed, Campanula brought forth a chess-board,
-which she laid on the matting before Mac.
-
-He had taught her chess, and had found her an apt pupil, a veritable
-Zukertort, a female Nogi, who attacked his positions with her ivory
-army, stormed his fortifications, and put him to rout when she chose.
-
-Yet he often won. She would make amazing blunders just in time to save
-him from defeat, and Mac would chuckle and say--
-
-"There you are, there you are--thrown a pawn away that might have given
-you back your queen in two more moves. Never mind, you're getting on;
-I'll noat say ye aren't im--" long pause--"proving. Check--and how's
-that for mate?"
-
-Then Campanula would throw her hands up in assumed horror at her own
-stupidity, and Mac would chuckle over his own supposed cleverness, and
-all would be harmony and peace.
-
-To-night, however, Campanula's mind was somewhat astray, and the
-chess-player who lived in her brain took advantage of the fact, and beat
-Mac thoroughly in the course of a dozen moves.
-
-"I'm getting auld," said Mac testily. "Here, put the things away. Na,
-na, I'll play no more the night."
-
-He lit his pipe at the tobacco-mono and moodily smoked it. He could not
-bear being beaten at chess, and now he looked as if he would be sour for
-the whole evening.
-
-She reached for a long-necked _chamécen_ that lay near her on the
-matting, and tuned it, striking a few somber notes.
-
-"Ay, sing us something," said Mac, and as the night wind sighed and the
-cherry blossoms filled the room with their faint, faint fragrance,
-Campanula, her eyes fixed across illimitable distance, sang in a voice
-like the ripple of a mountain brook, a song telling of the Miakodori,
-and the sunlit slopes of Maruyama, where the great old Gion cherry tree
-blooms at the foot of Yaamis lane. And then an old love-song strayed in
-from the night and was caught by the strings of the _chamécen_ and made
-articulate by her voice.
-
-It told the fate of a maiden named Pine-bough, who lived by the sea at
-Hamada where the foam and the sand are as snow.
-
-She loved a noble, this maiden named Pine-bough--you can guess the rest.
-Mac listened, soothed; it was the case of David and Saul over again--a
-very inferior sort of Saul, it is true.
-
-"Now," said the Charmed One as the rafters absorbed the last echoes of
-the fate of Pine-bough, "tell us a story."
-
-Campanula, with the _chamécen_ lying across her lap, knitted her brows
-in thought. She was evidently pursuing strange beasts across the fields
-of Fancy, and undetermined as to which she would mark down and serve up
-to her guest. Then she solved the matter by suddenly clearing her brow
-and telling a tale without any beasts in it at all.
-
-"There is a garden," declared Campanula, "where every one may enter; the
-Mikado himself goes there, and the riksha man, the Mousmé and the
-Mousko, Bo Chan, and Kiku San. Even Campanula herself, lowly as she is,
-may enter there. And there the Mousko pulls the beard of the Emperor
-unafraid, and the riksha man forgets his riksha and drinks tea at the
-tea houses, where no money is paid and no money is asked for."
-
-"What's this garden you're telling me of?" demanded Mac, his business
-instincts and common sense in arms at the latter statement.
-
-"It is the garden of sleep," answered Campanula cunningly. She had been
-waiting for the question and now she paused, gently plucking a string of
-the _chamécen_, filling the air with a faint throbbing sound as if to
-summon around her the tale-bearers of the night.
-
-"Here in the garden of sleep," pursued the dreamy voice, as the
-vibrations died away, "every tree bears a lighted lantern swinging in
-the wind and painting the grass beneath with its color--red lanterns
-painted with storks, and blue lanterns pictured with the blossoms of the
-cherry; lanterns on which dragons fly pursuing each other, and lanterns
-disported upon by my lord the Bat.
-
-"A wanderer in the garden has but to pluck a lantern from a tree, and
-his dreams will at once turn in a happy direction, and by the light of
-the lantern he will see before him the object of his desire, be it what
-it may."
-
-"I'll remember that," said Mac grimly, "next time I find myself there."
-
-"One has no memory there," said Campanula, "and few people know of the
-secret of that place, else every one would be happy in their dreams.
-
-"One night entered the garden Taro San, a child no higher than one's
-knee. He was the son of a tea-house keeper, and he had plucked a
-glowworm from a bush, by which feeble light he was lighting himself
-through the darkness of the garden.
-
-"All at once he found himself beneath a tree, from the lowest branch of
-which swung a huge lantern of wistaria-blue.
-
-"It was the lantern of Spring, and the painted butterflies upon it, by
-some magic, moved their wings in flight, yet remained always in the same
-place, and the painted cherry-blossoms upon it waved in some magic wind,
-yet never faded or lost a petal, and the bird upon it pursuing the
-dragon fly was always gaining upon the dragon fly, yet the dragon fly,
-oh mystery! always outstripped the bird."
-
-Campanula paused in thought, and a faintly plucked string of the
-_chamécen_ filled the air with the hum of the dragon fly's wings as it
-flew by reed and iris, by mere and pond, by the unblown lotus and the
-blue of the river in the country of eternal spring.
-
-"O Taro San," continued the story-teller, "gazing up and beholding this
-fair thing, strove to reach it, and failing, he began to weep.
-
-"Now, there was passing by at that moment the Daimiyo of his province,
-and the great lord walked with his gaze fixed upon the ground overcome
-as he was by the reverie of sleep; but hearing the sound of Taro San
-weeping, he paused and asked the child what ailed him, and hearing the
-trouble, he lifted him upon his shoulder; and Taro San grasped the
-lantern and waved it in the air and laughed, for its light showed him a
-pleasant path beset with roses and leading to a sea, blue as the sea of
-Harima, and in the path stood a little girl plucking the amber and
-crimson flowers.
-
-"Taro cried out to the Daimiyo to take him to the little girl, but the
-Daimiyo did not heed, for to him the lantern had shown Osaka Castle
-stormed by knights in armor, and the spears of the Samurai all bent
-towards its walls under a roof of flying arrows. Towards this sight he
-ran, and Taro dropping the lantern, it went out, and the Daimiyo awoke
-in his palace and Taro awoke in the tea house upon the futon, where he
-slept beside his father.
-
-"Another night stood Taro beneath the lantern which hung beyond his
-reach, but a beggar man who chanced to pass lifting him upon his
-shoulder, the child seized the lantern and waved it in the air, and
-instantly before him appeared the flower-set path and the form of the
-Mousmé, more beautiful now and attired in a kimono of palest amber
-embroidered with silver bats.
-
-"But the beggar man saw nothing but a purse of silver lying before him
-on the ground, and, stooping to pick it up, Taro fell from his shoulder,
-the lantern went out, and the beggar man awoke by the roadside where he
-had fallen asleep, and Taro on the futon beside his father.
-
-"Many times did Taro stand beneath the lantern of spring and many people
-raised him towards it, but never one of them saw what Taro saw, all
-their dreams being of things other than flowers and the time of spring.
-
-"One night," resumed Campanula after a pause, "Taro entered the garden,
-and beneath the lantern there stood a child, and the child implored him
-to lift him upon his shoulder, and being there the child seized the
-lantern and laughed aloud with pleasure at the vision of the roses, and
-the Mousmé, and the sea. But Taro saw nothing of this. He only saw a tea
-house where customers were waiting to be served, for Taro," said
-Campanula, "Had now grown up, and was a man."
-
-She finished her little tale with three mournful notes drawn from the
-bass string of the _chamécen_.
-
-"Humph!" said Mac.
-
-He tapped the ashes out of his pipe into the little receptacle of the
-tobacco-mono, refilled it, and lit it with a glowing ember.
-
-Whilst he was thus engaged, Campanula rose and went to the open panel
-space leading on to the veranda. He heard her addressing some one in her
-low, sweet voice, then there was a pause, then she spoke again as if in
-answer to some remark, then she returned.
-
-"Blind man," said Campanula, putting the _chamécen_ away.
-
-"I heard nobody," said Mac, looking up as he finished lighting his pipe.
-"What did you say? Blind man? Was it he you were speaking to?"
-
-"Yes; he said he had come from a great way, and he looked oh, so ugly
-and tired! He has gone to the back entrance, and they will give him
-food."
-
-"It's these blessed paper houses," said Mac.
-
-"They either swallow a sound or magnify it, so's you can't hear yourself
-speak if a man sneezes in the next room."
-
-He smoked for a while, and then rose to go.
-
-"There!" said Campanula, as she too rose. "He's gone away again down the
-path towards the gate."
-
-"I'll just follow him," said Mac, "and see what he's like."
-
-He bade Campanula good night and departed.
-
-The gate was closed, and there was no one on the garden path; no one on
-the hill path either, he found as he descended it slowly, peering
-through the gloom before him.
-
-"It's dom queer!" muttered Mac to himself as he reached the street. "I'd
-have staked my life she was talking to herself."
-
-He felt vaguely uneasy, and thought of returning. Then he decided not.
-The path looked gloomy and mysterious viewed from down below, and its
-descent without meeting any one had already given him a slight attack of
-the "creeps."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVI
-
- THE PHILOSOPHY OF EVIL
-
-
-Dinner was served in the Du Telles' private room. Channing dined with
-them--the man who had informed Jane of Leslie's whereabouts--a young,
-clean shaven man, member of the Shanghai Jockey Club and practically
-head of the great silk firm of Channing, Matheson & Co.
-
-At dessert Jane asked Leslie's permission to tell of Campanula's
-finding. Leslie at first demurred. No one knew anything about it except
-the far-away folk in Nikko and the secretive Japanese police. It seemed
-scarcely fair to Campanula to give the tale away, but at last he
-consented, for George du Telle had eaten and drunk himself into a state
-of torpor. He was staring at a pineapple before him with a flushed face,
-from which protruded a great cigar, and as for Channing he was off to
-Shanghai next day. So Jane told the story, and Channing listened.
-
-"Well, what do you think?" said Jane when she had finished her tale.
-
-"I never think about these matters," said Channing, "I simply accept
-them. My dear lady, were you to live a long time in the East you would
-come to believe in things that Western people would rank as nursery
-tales. The Tokyo fire-walkers can walk barefoot over a bed of live
-charcoal as thick as a mattress. I have seen them. How do they do it? I
-don't know.
-
-"It is very curious how the Western people, Christians, and so forth,
-treat the unknown. They look upon it as the unknowable. The Easterns
-don't. I had a missionary man in at my office the other day over at
-Shanghai subscription hunting. I gave him what he wanted, and then,
-without scarcely saying 'Thank you,' he asked me did I believe in God. I
-asked him did he believe in the devil. He said 'Yes.' I asked him did he
-believe in devils, and he said 'No.' I asked him did he believe in the
-Bible. He said 'Yes.' Then I recalled to his mind the story of the
-Gadarene swine, and his reply was that times are changed since then.
-Then I suppose, I said, all the devils are dead? He walked away in a
-huff--with my check in his pocket, though.
-
-"Now the juggler man"--turning to Leslie--"may have been chivied to
-death by devils just as the Gadarene swine were chased into the sea--who
-knows?
-
-"Of course it may have been that his madness, if he were mad, took an
-acute turn, who knows? But I have lived a good time in the East, and I
-am very well assured of this, that there are men here hand in glove with
-evil. I have seen things done in China, and for money too, that could
-not possibly have been done by trickery, and could not, I think, have
-been done by permission of the powers of Good. I'm not what you call a
-Christian, and what's more, I think the Christian religion has done a
-great deal of harm--not to speak of other what you call 'religions'--Am
-I wearying you, Mrs. du Telle?"
-
-"Not in the least; please go on."
-
-"In this way. It has robbed us of our terror of evil. It paints a vague
-devil that no man really believes in. Now take that much-read book, 'The
-Sorrows of Satan,' where the Devil sits down and plays the piano and
-sings a song."
-
-"I thought it was a guitar he played," said Jane.
-
-"Well, a guitar; it's all the same. People read that with a grave face.
-He's quite a good sort and so forth." Channing paused for a moment and
-gazed reflectively at the wine in his glass, took a sip and went on:
-"Don't you think the thousands of people who read that stuff, and admire
-it, must have lost all sense of the horrible thing that evil is? The
-sense that evil is a reality, a thing to fill us with the wildest horror
-if one could only appreciate it, a very real thing, and a very
-determined thing, and a thing all black; yet we get people playing in
-fancy with, and even laughing about, this horror. And writers painting
-the cuttle-fish center of it as a semi-sentimental idiot capable of
-assuming evening clothes and talking twaddle, or criticizing plays as he
-does in Satan Montgomery's poem. We don't play with a thing we loathe
-even in fancy. But we--I mean Christians--play with the idea of the
-devil as if it were a poodle dog. The truth is that Christians don't
-fear the Power of Evil, they fear the Power of Good. They praise him,
-propitiate and worship him in a most fulsome manner, and say they love
-him. I tell you this for a fact that no man can love good who does not
-abhor evil, and you can't abhor a thing that you play with."
-
-"Do you abhor evil, Mr. Channing?" asked Jane.
-
-"Honestly, I do. Any one with eyes and the capacity for thought who
-lives in China _must_."
-
-"Then you must love good?"
-
-"One does not 'love' the sun, one worships it, so to speak--but this is
-all very strange my talking like this; my business in life is mainly
-silk and racehorses."
-
-"'Scuse me," said George du Telle, who was swaying slightly in his
-chair, the gone-out cigar still stuck in the side of his mouth, his face
-bulged and red, and his eye a fixity. "'Scuse me."
-
-"One moment, George--Well, I think, Mr. Channing, there are worse
-Christians in the world than you are."
-
-"Perhaps there are worse men, but I don't claim to be a Christian. Only
-a man who recognizes fearfully the existence of evil as well as good."
-
-"'Scuse me," said George du Telle, speaking loudly now as if he were
-calling a servant or railway porter. "I'm not going to have this sort of
-thing at my table. _I'm_ a Christian, brought up a Christian, die one.
-'M not going to--"
-
-"George!" said his wife in a mild voice, but a voice very steady and
-full of command.
-
-The Christian, who had raised himself in his chair, subsided.
-
-Jane rose from the table.
-
-"Shall we go into the drawing-room and have some music?" she said. "You
-sing, Dick--or used to."
-
-As they passed to the drawing-room she said to Channing: "Did I tell you
-the mark my cousin Dick made--you know what I mean--was the Christian
-emblem?"
-
-"My dear lady," said Channing, "I especially dread hurting another
-person's religious feelings, and I, what am I? Just a man who thinks his
-own thoughts, but--"
-
-"Well?"
-
-"Well, if there were anything in it at all, may it not be that the cause
-of the disturbance was the fact that he touched him?"
-
-"How is that?"
-
-"You have never touched the wire in connection with a running dynamo?"
-
-"No."
-
-"No," said Channing, "for if you had you would not be here. The metaphor
-is a bad one. I only mean to say that the touch of a stick or a hand may
-disturb the play of great forces with most surprising results."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVII
-
- THE HOUSE BY NIGHT
-
-
-It was late when Leslie left the hotel. The moon was rising over
-Nagasaki, and he required no lamp to light him up the hill path leading
-to the house.
-
-In the veranda he sat down to rest a moment and pull off his boots. The
-landscape garden, looking very antique in the moonlight, lay before him,
-the moon lighting its tiny hills and melancholy groves with the same
-particular care that presently he would bestow on the forests of Scindia
-and the Himalayas. On one of its verdurous swards lay a mark. It was the
-mark of Jane du Telle's footstep imprinted on Campanula's garden.
-
-He sat for a while in thought, then he unlatched a panel with a sort of
-gridiron-shaped key, then he searched in his pocket for matches, and
-found he had none.
-
-Determining to grope his way up and go to bed by moonlight, he closed
-and fastened the panel, leaving himself in darkness, caught his toe
-against an hibachi, left as if on purpose for him to tumble over, swore,
-knocked himself against a screen, which fell crash on Sweetbriar San,
-the household cat, who had once made part of the Fir-cone, Plum-blossom,
-Moon, and Snow ministry, and the intelligent animal, conceiving that
-robbers had entered, rushed wildly round and round in the dark till a
-panel slid back revealing Pine-breeze with a wan and weary smile on her
-face, and an andon or night lantern in her hand. She handed Leslie a
-candle and box of matches, and, still smiling, slid back, closing the
-panel as she went, like a figure in a trick toy, Sweetbriar San
-bristling and glowering on her shoulder like a fiend.
-
-The upper part of the House of the Clouds was divided by panels into a
-passage and three rooms. One for Leslie, one for the Mousmés, and the
-third for Campanula.
-
-Pine-breeze, with her arm full of towels, or what not, would often come
-into Leslie's bedroom through the wall. He might be in his bath, he
-might be--anything, it was all the same to Pine-Breeze, she was thinking
-of her duties, not of him.
-
-One night, long ago, he had awakened in the arms of Mother Fir-cone, who
-was jibbering with fright. There was a mosquito-net between them, for
-she had rushed through the wall, and literally flung herself upon him,
-tearing the mosquito-net from its attachments. I do not wonder at her
-fright. Also San was in eruption, and a fearful earthquake was roaring
-and billowing under Nagasaki.
-
-Several times had the Mousmés rushed into his room all clinging
-together, and crying "Dorobo!" (Robbers). Robbers had tried to burgle
-the house twice, in fact. He had shot one the second time, and they
-never came again. Yet he always slept with a Smith and Wesson
-convenient, for a Japanese robber is a business man, without a heart,
-but with a desire for plunder keen as the edge of a sword.
-
-Leslie's bedroom was a very bare apartment, furnished mostly with a
-nothing. A futon and pile of pillows--he had tried the makura or
-Japanese pillow, but given it up in disgust--under a mosquito-net, a
-wash-stand, a stick-rack, and some pegs to hang clothes on, constituted
-the remainder of the furniture. The window was a wide open space crossed
-by lattice slats, through which the moon was now shining, her light
-partly intercepted by the dance of a cherry bough waving in the wind.
-
-Leslie undressed and got into bed. Seen through the blue gauze of a
-mosquito-net, the room had a character all its own.
-
-The House of the Clouds by night was not the place for a person
-afflicted with insomnia. There were so many noises only waiting to tell
-strange tales to the strained ear. Tales of mystery and exaggeration.
-Lying awake you would hear some one leaning close against the attenuated
-house wall; it was the wind. And now, a scratching sound as of a panther
-trying to commit a burglary; it was the wind; and now a whisper like the
-whisper of a lover to his mistress--or maybe of a robber to his mate; it
-was the wind.
-
-Then the owl sitting on the roof, staring with saucer eyes at the moon,
-would give one low, whistling cry, and his mate beyond somewhere, would
-make cautious answer.
-
-Then "tap, tap, tap." It would be the wind--making the skeleton finger
-of a dead Samurai out of a loose lattice.
-
-Then a thunder of cats and a yell on the veranda roof, and the drowsy
-one, just off to goblin land with the dead Samurai, would be brought up
-all standing, and half rise for a boot, or a boot-jack, or anything
-hurlable, and sink back with a sigh, remembering that he was in Japan.
-
-The wind played upon the House of the Clouds just as a maestro plays on
-a fiddle, but with a more distressing result. Sometimes of an autumn or
-winter night you might have sworn the place was surrounded by a company
-of old Japanese ghosts escaped from the clutches of Emma O[1] and
-requestful of succor and safety.
-
- [1] The Guardian of the Buddhistic hells.
-
-Leslie could not sleep. This eruption of his past into the present
-disturbed him deeply.
-
-He had been getting acclimatized, losing little by little that horrible
-sense of exile and home-sickness that had driven him once across half
-the world to London, and now it was all coming back.
-
-And she was married to that little beast, and, worst of all, she seemed
-content.
-
-For eight years he had looked upon her as a thing dead to him, and now
-she had returned with sevenfold power, for she brought the past with
-her. The golden past, golden despite that dour father, Colonel Leslie of
-Glenbruach, that just man unacquainted with folly. She brought the river
-in spate and the leaping salmon, the heather-scented wind from the
-purple hills, Glenbruach in the midst of a world of snow, the ripple of
-the mountain burn and the faint reek of peat.
-
-Worse than all these, she brought herself. She was the same spiritually
-and mentally as the slim girl of long ago--a slip of a girl straight as
-a wand and as full of laughter and movement and brightness as a mountain
-brook.
-
-But materially she had vastly altered. She was now a woman, divinely
-formed, a creature appealing to every sensual fiber in a man's nature.
-
-And George du Telle owned all this!
-
-Leslie, I daresay you have perceived, was a man who did not take what
-one may call a dry-light view of things, past or present, when they had
-relation to himself; as a matter of fact, he saw the shortcomings of
-others tremendously clearly. The shortcomings of his father, of
-Bloomfield the lawyer, of the Sydney bar loafers, of Danjuro the curio
-dealer, and of poor old sinful, grubbing M'Gourley--too clearly, in
-fact.
-
-His own shortcomings he acknowledged by word of mouth. He knew they were
-there, just as a merchant knows a bale of damaged and unsaleable goods
-is in his cellar, but he did not go down and rake them out and examine
-them carefully.
-
-No one ever had cared for him, he said, but he never asked himself if he
-ever had permitted any one to care for him. With this outlook on life, a
-semi-poetical nature, and passions that slept long and deeply only to
-awake rejuvenated and with the strength of demons, he might before this
-have gone entirely to the devil, only for a lodger he had.
-
-An old Scotch ancestor lived with him. This "pairson," who had
-once worn a long upper lip and had been a writer to the signet, a
-just, hard, God-fearing, and straight man, had a chamber in a
-convolution of Leslie's brain, where he sat--he, or his attenuated
-personality--twiddling his thumbs like a night watchman and waiting for
-alarms.
-
-It was this gentleman who had saved his descendant from the weak man's
-form of suicide--drink.
-
-He now came out in his old carpet slippers and read his descendant a
-lecture on the text: "Thou shalt not lust after another man's wife."
-
-And he spoke hard and strong, taking almost entirely the "wumman's" side
-of the question; pointing out that society, as we know it, imperfect as
-it may be, is ruled by a number of laws whose aim is the common weal and
-the individual's comfort and happiness.
-
-He pointed out that the life of a "wumman" is composed, not of grand
-passions and Italian opera scenes, but of a hundred thousand trifles,
-each one insignificant enough, yet each helping to form that grand
-masterpiece, a pure woman's life.
-
-That a woman might be pure in mind, even if married to a "red-headed
-runt" like George du Telle. That if that was so she was a happy woman,
-and that if a man loved her, loved he never so madly, it would be a
-strange expression of that love to blast her happiness, and soil her
-soul.
-
-It would not be love, but lust--the passion of those devils which Mr.
-Channing had hinted at that evening, those people of the night who
-slumber not nor sleep.
-
-Having finished, he went into his chamber and shut the door.
-
-And Leslie lay reflecting on his words, also on the words of Channing.
-
-Evil made manifest. The face of the creature on the Nikko road came
-before his mental eye. That was evil made manifest. He had seen the
-thing. He had known the devil by hearsay since a child. He had heard the
-"Deevil" thundered at from Scotch pulpits, tracts about the devil had
-been put into his hand; he had heard people make laughing remarks about
-him: he was so familiar with the vague personality called Satan that he
-felt no interest in him, neither interest nor aversion. Never a shudder.
-
-But that thing in the sky of the opium dream, the music that had brought
-it--that, indeed, was evil painted by the hand of an artist; worth all
-the sermons ever thundered from pulpits, all the tracts ever printed.
-
-Then his weary brain grew drowsy, and there strayed across it the fair
-figure of the Lost One, the very antithesis of all things evil.
-
-Only last night before going to bed she had murmured a story half to
-herself, half to him, with her eyes fixed on the glowing embers of the
-hibachi, and he retold it to himself now to put himself to sleep.
-
-It was about the great battle between the beasts and the birds--the real
-reason why the owl was reduced to shame and forced to cover himself with
-night.
-
-"And they came from the North and the South and the East and the West in
-flight, oh, many ri broad. The quails from the millet, the stork from
-the river, and from the pond the king-fisher, flashing like a blue jewel
-in the sunlight.
-
-"Then said the stork, who led all these people of the air:
-
-"'Behold! we are all assembled but where tarries Sir Owl?'"
-
-"Then a sparrow made answer and said:
-
-"'As I paused to rest on a cherry bough, for my wings be little though
-my heart is big, I heard Sir Owl in treasonable conversation with a rat.
-And said he, "Come forth from thy burrow, O Rat, that I may feast my
-eyes upon thee; and the empire of the beasts shall be thine, and also
-the empire of the birds."'"
-
-"And the voice of the Hidden One replied--"
-
-But what the Hidden One made answer, Leslie did not remember, for the
-artless story had lulled him to sleep.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVIII
-
- MOSTLY ABOUT FLOWERS
-
-
-O Japan! Spring! Dawn! what an exquisite and roseate mystery surrounds
-the meeting of ye three!
-
-Night, and the owls, and the ghosts, have vanished, day and the sparrows
-have come.
-
-Up from Nagasaki rise the murmurs of life, mists are vanishing from the
-hills across the harbor, where the lateen sails of junks are rising to
-find the wind, and the sampans dart about like attenuated water-beetles.
-
-The far, faint sound of a bugle from the man-of-war anchorage crosses
-the far, shrill crowing of a cock owned by Mr. Pinecape, the cobbler of
-Jinriksha Street--two rapiers of sound crossing each other in the now
-brilliant air. Then the noises of the day deepen, and the whirr of the
-cicala mixes with all sorts of faint domestic noises, a _mélange_ from
-which the ear can pick out notes just as the eye points in an
-impressionist's picture: the clatter of a pair of clogs, the call of a
-watercress seller, the clash of a tin pan dropped somewhere, and then
-cock-crow after cock-crow from far and near, some loud and defiant,
-others defiant enough but faint, as if coming through a pin-pole half a
-mile away.
-
-The kitchen of the House of the Clouds is a square apartment, with no
-matting on the floor, and just now flooded with sunshine.
-
-Leslie, in the early days, had caused to be constructed by a stranded
-ship's carpenter, a solid English kitchen-table of white pine. He wanted
-to give the man a job, and he thought the thing would prove useful; and
-it did.
-
-To begin with, it smelt deliciously, and Mother Fir-cone amidst her
-avocations would take a sniff at it now and then, just as a snufftaker
-takes a pinch of snuff; she would also sit under it preparing sweet
-potatoes, stringing beans or what not; but as for using it as a table,
-such an idea never occurred to her. In fact, she had no ideas at all
-about a table, and was quite convinced that this gift of Leslie San's
-was a sort of pine-wood temple, constructed for the purpose of being sat
-under.
-
-It was also a place of refuge in time of earthquakes, when the whole
-household, saving Leslie and Campanula, got under it for fear of the
-roof falling. It received the title of "Honorable," and was altogether a
-thing very much respected, and even vaguely beloved.
-
-Under it this morning sat Lotus-bud, preparing fish for breakfast; on it
-(these new Mousmés used it as a shelf) reposed various paper boxes
-containing eggs and groceries, weird-looking boxes suggesting that a
-conjurer was about to commence operations, not a cook.
-
-The sun laid a great square of light like a burning mat upon the floor
-near the table, and on her knees in the center of this mat of light sat
-Pine-breeze cleaning an hibachi. Cherry-blossom, the third Mousmé,
-squatted right before Pine-breeze doing nothing.
-
-From under the table was escaping a faint blue haze of smoke. Lotus-bud
-had just taken a few whiffs from a tiny pipe.
-
-They all smoked, these Mousmés, pinches of stuff like chopped hay in
-pipe bowls the size of a child's thimble; but Campanula had never
-acquired the art, though all her friends were ardent tobacco lovers.
-Leslie San had said "No," and that was enough.
-
-As Pine-breeze cleaned the hibachi and made it spick and span, she was
-telling the others a yarn, mostly to do with her doings when down the
-town marketing last evening. How she had bought this or that, what had
-been said to her, and so forth--a tale simple enough, but a miracle of
-genius considering the tongue in which it was told. For in the Japanese
-there are but two parts of speech, the noun and the verb; these, and
-splinters and scraps of broken-up nouns and verbs, which, in the form of
-particles and suffixes, help to shore up the meaning and pin together
-the common sense, have to do all the talking.
-
-The learner of Japanese feels at first like a person condemned to eat
-gravy soup with chop-sticks. Oh, for even a pronoun! Imagine talking to
-a person without being able to use the word "You," without being able to
-use the word "I"! Imagine the horrible tortures of a Japanese egoist on
-his death-bed making, or attempting to make, his dying speech!
-
-But there are no egoists in Japan--can't be with such a language--and
-there are no purse-proud snobs, or if there are, they hide themselves
-very closely.
-
-For self-depreciation is the key-note of Japanese conversation and
-manners.
-
-So she goes on with her story, in a voice sweet to listen to as the
-ripple of a mountain brook, and Lotus-bud listens under the table,
-fish-knife held in air, for the tale is reaching an interesting point.
-
-Then Campanula's voice is heard speaking to Sweetbriar San. She is
-coming to the kitchen to superintend things and--crack! the fish's head
-is cut off, and three Mousmés are working like one.
-
-Campanula San is younger than any of these Mousmés, and she treats them
-like sisters, yet strangely enough, they do not encroach, but treat her
-as their mistress--a condition of things impossible in Europe, and
-presently, perhaps, impossible in Japan.
-
-The sun has leapt now over the hills, and Leslie is heard moving
-upstairs. Pine-breeze claps her hands with horror, and rises to her
-feet: she has forgotten to fill his bath.
-
-She goes to do so, and Campanula wanders out the front way to the
-balcony, where she pauses to gaze at the azaleas, shading her eyes with
-her hand.
-
-The fire is spreading; another crimson blossom is almost unfolded, and
-others are soon to be born. Every spring the coming of the azaleas is an
-event in Campanula's life.
-
-A wealth of crimson azaleas is one of her first recollections. Away
-beyond that crimson fire of flowers lies the land of her earliest
-childhood. The house with the plum tree, very vague indeed; the father
-who hit things with a hammer, still vaguer; the sugar-candy dragon lost,
-and so miraculously recovered; the little boy who went to sleep in the
-snow--or was it in a field of lilies?
-
-Her real life, it seemed to her, began as she was reaching for a crimson
-blossom one day in a field of crimson blossoms, and was suddenly caught
-up sky-high by a thing taller than a tree, who did something to the side
-of her neck, just under her left ear, that was not hurtful or
-particularly unpleasant, but which, nevertheless, made her scream.
-
-Then, behold, she saw that the thing was a man, though in strange
-clothes, but he did not frighten her in the least, and she gave him her
-hand at once, and with confidence, whereupon he took her in his arms and
-carried her to a road where stood another man, all black, even to his
-hands, but his face was white, and he had a red beard.
-
-Then this man, who was also unfrightful, began to make her remember
-things that she had for the moment forgotten. To remember her father,
-and the fact that she had lost her way, and other things too, including
-the errant dragon. He made her remember that she wished to get back to
-her father, but she did not remember this so very clearly. In fact she
-was quite content to go with these two men over the hills and far away,
-feeling sure she was safe with them, went they where they would.
-
-The scenes on the road to Nikko she remembered: a funny man away in the
-distance dancing amongst trees, and the entry into Nikko borne sky-high
-above all the other children, the Tea House of the Tortoise,
-and--grandest remembrance of all!--the miraculous awakening with the
-long-lost dragon in her hand. He was so full of mystery that she never
-had even dreamt of eating him, and she still possessed him. He was
-upstairs in the drawer of a lacquered cabinet, cracked, it is true, by
-changes of temperature and warped in the back, for age touched all
-things, even sugar-candy dragons.
-
-Then there was her life at the House of the Clouds, the mission school;
-rainy days when she splashed through the mud under a broad paper
-umbrella; fine days when she flew kites with M'Gourley San, played
-hop-scotch with Kiku San and Kitsune Ken, with all sorts of other Sans,
-mostly with shaved heads.
-
-This was Campanula's childhood as she remembered it. But as you cannot
-remember your childhood till you have stepped over the line where the
-child becomes a boy or girl, Campanula had not begun remembering it till
-about six months ago.
-
-Up till then M'Gourley San, and Leslie San, and Sweetbriar San, and a
-host of other honorable people surrounded her, one as important as the
-other, Mac perhaps more important than any.
-
-Then all at once--in a week or so, to be more precise--a host of new
-ideas came to her, bothersome, formless ideas, as ungraspable yet as
-insistent as the great Boyg himself.
-
-Then the ideas began to take form. It was in the garden one day. Her
-eyes fell on one of the flowerless azalea bushes, and she remembered how
-it had been covered with crimson flowers last year, and how beautiful
-they were, beautiful above every other flower, even the lordly peony,
-who seems to hold the whole glory and mystery of summer in the gloom of
-his splendid heart. And her mind wandered back from spring to spring,
-led by the crimson blossoms, till she called to mind the valley where
-Leslie had found her.
-
-It was he who had found her wandering alone there, and he had picked her
-up.
-
-She had never forgotten the valley; it had lain in the distance in her
-mind, but she had no use for it till now. Now it came to her in all its
-splendor, and explained to her why the azalea was the flower she loved
-above the peony, the lotus, or even that glorious mystery, the
-dragon-spume chrysanthemum.
-
-Flowers are so bound up with the lives of the children of Japan that
-they have a meaning and speak a language to them almost unknown to us.
-
-So Campanula sat immersed in her dream, and Leslie, who had swung a
-hammock between two cherry trees and was lying in it, little knew what
-was going on in the small head of the person seated near him on the
-square of matting. She had been doing some needlework, but her work had
-dropped in her lap, her hands were folded, and her eyes were fixed on
-the azalea bush.
-
-Next day, or perhaps the day after, for a man's perceptions in these
-matters are sometimes dull, he noticed a change in her. He could not say
-what it was, but the submissive and humble person, the very fact of
-whose existence was a theme for perpetual self-excuse, had somehow
-changed. She was just as submissive and humble, but there was a subdued
-joyousness in her manner when excusing her existence as though she
-thought that somehow it might not be such a frightful crime after all,
-and perhaps capable of condonation some day.
-
-Then, when he called for his cigar-case Pine-breeze did not appear with
-it, though Pine-breeze loved to be the carrier of it, because it was a
-foreign thing, and the leather smelt deliciously.
-
-Campanula brought it _and_ a match-box, a thing that Pine-breeze's
-flighty little mind nearly always forgot.
-
-A few days before, Leslie had possessed three servants and what he
-called an adoptive daughter. Then he suddenly found himself in the
-possession of four servants, one of them more attentive than the other
-three put together. He put it down to the fact that her housewifely
-instincts were awakening, and as the change in her wrought for his
-comfort and ease he did not speculate on the cause as he would have done
-had the reverse been the case.
-
-Women are curious creatures, as the philosophic Mac once said. But on
-the whole, in their way, I think men are just as strange.
-
-Kite-flying had now been put aside with other childish things, and the
-tiny hands that had grasped the sugar-candy dragon were now preparing to
-grasp the real business of life: a business whose main objective was the
-happiness and comfort of "He who is taller than the tallest of trees."
-
-Pine-breeze, Lotus-bud, and Cherry-blossom. Looking at them in a row,
-you might have thought them pretty much alike, as far as mind and spirit
-were concerned, just as three sleek, well-groomed ponies may seem
-identical--until you try to drive them.
-
-It was not till Campanula took the reins that she found the three
-underlings were each afflicted with a special infirmity, or rather
-special infirmities.
-
-Pine-breeze was such a scatterbrain that if you sent her down town in a
-hurry for eggs she would, as likely as not, dawdle home in an hour with
-tomatoes and some wild tale picked up on the way, pleasant and
-interesting enough, no doubt, but useless for the purpose of making an
-omelette. She would leave Leslie's bath unprepared, and then, sitting in
-her own tub, would clap her hands with horror at the remembrance of her
-own forgetfulness, and as likely as not attempt to rectify her error
-attired in a bath towel; and she would smash things--crockery ware
-understood--with almost the facility of your Western parlor-maid. To
-make up for these bad points, she was literary above her class; had a
-passion for flowers above her fellows, and had composed a poem about a
-grasshopper.
-
-Lotus-bud was the cook; her infirmity was weakness. She would sit and
-listen to Pine-breeze's idle chatter and let the bread burn. Pine-breeze
-could work and talk, but Lotus-bud could not even work and listen. So
-she would sit with her hands in her lap, listening. She made a splendid
-audience but a somewhat indifferent cook.
-
-As for Cherry-blossom, she was purely and simply an idler, a
-lotus-eater, a hobboe in the guise of a butterfly. A thing so fragile
-and pretty, so perfectly dressed and so seemingly boneless, that you
-felt to expect work from her would be absurd; which, indeed, it would
-have been.
-
-For she never worked, she dreamed.
-
-She was enamored of a riksha man, and she would go out and meet him
-under the lilacs at the gate, and then vanish with him to goodness knows
-where for the evening.
-
-He was the strangest natural phenomenon, this lover of Cherry-blossom's,
-for he was always changing in size, and his face was never scarcely
-twice alike, and his number--rikshas are numbered just like hansom
-cabs--was
-
-
- 255.
- 66.
- 7.
- 103.
- and 42.
-
-
-At least Pine-breeze, who was an observant body, got that far in her
-notation, and then gave it up as a bad job.
-
-All these things, and more, Campanula had to cope with, and she did so
-with more or less success, gaining in her experience much that a girl of
-her age is supposed not to know, but losing nothing either in gentleness
-or modesty.
-
-She brought Pine-breeze to a vague sense of the wrongfulness of flighty
-ways, and with her own little hands she made new bread to replace a
-batch of loaves burnt to cinders by Lotus-bud (bread that gave Leslie
-indigestion for a week).
-
-As for Cherry-blossom, she told her, missionary fashion, that she would
-certainly go to hell and be burnt like Lotus-bud's loaves if she did not
-stop vanishing down town with riksha men; and Cherry-blossom ground her
-nose on the matting and wept, and promised reformation, and went out two
-nights afterwards with No. 173 to a grand blaze up at the O Suwa temple,
-where she devoured candied beans and comfits, and bowed before graven
-images, and had a general good time with a host of "heathen" people like
-herself.
-
-Cherry-blossom's rikshas never cost her anything. Love lent them to her.
-
-Leslie's socks up to this had always been vanishing, and the ones that
-remained, were always, or generally, in holes. The Mousmés said it must
-be the mice. Campanula, however, found Pine-breeze one morning cleaning
-a kettle with a silk dress-sock. It seemed silk socks at half a guinea a
-pair gave a polish nothing else would give.
-
-The kettles were duller after that, but the depredations of the mice
-ceased.
-
-Having looked at the promise of the azaleas, she went in to see how
-things were getting on.
-
-Presently she and Leslie were seated at breakfast opposite to one
-another on the floor. Leslie, attired in a suit of faultlessly fitting
-pale gray tweed, looked much more like an Indian cavalry officer on
-leave than an umbrella merchant, as he called himself. He had arranged
-to call for Jane du Telle at ten o'clock to take her out shopping; the
-gloomy thoughts of the night before, the effect of the opium, and the
-effect of the dream, had vanished.
-
-He was sipping his tea, and glancing over the _Japan Mail_, when
-Campanula interrupted him.
-
-"What iss Dick?" she suddenly asked; she prolonged her s's in the
-faintest degree, difficult to reproduce in print, for there is no type
-capable of representing an s and a quarter.
-
-"What is what?" asked Leslie, lowering the _Japan Mail_, and staring at
-his pretty _vis-â-vis_.
-
-"Dick--she called you Dick."
-
-"Who?"
-
-"She who gave you the flower," said Campanula, lowering ever so little
-her head.
-
-"Which flower?"
-
-"The one in your coat--yesterday."
-
-"Oh," said Leslie, remembering a bluebell that Jane had plucked and
-given him as they went down hill the day before, and remembering also
-that George du Telle and Campanula had been walking behind and must have
-seen the transaction. "She calls me Dick because that is short for my
-name."
-
-"Dick," murmured she, in a meditative voice.
-
-She seemed turning the name over in her mind. Tasting it mentally, so to
-speak.
-
-"She is an old friend of mine," continued Leslie. "I knew her,
-Campanula, before you were born, away over in another part of the world,
-where half the year it snows and where the wind blows just as hard as it
-does in Nippon, but the wind never brings flowers as it does here."
-
-"No flowers," she murmured, incapable of imagining such a land.
-
-"Only flowers like that blue one, and wild roses and a few others, but
-you never see camellia trees growing by the roads, nor lotus flowers on
-the ponds."
-
-"Nor azaleas?"
-
-"Nor azaleas--at least, as they grow here."
-
-A shadow crossed the open doorway.
-
-"M'Gourley San," said Campanula, who was seated facing the door.
-
-"Dinna rise," said M'Gourley. "I've had ma breakfast, and I'll juist tak
-a seat on the verandy till y've done."
-
-"I'm done," said Leslie, forgetful of grammar, and rising up, he came
-out, the _Japan Mail_ under his arm, and a briar root in his hand.
-
-They talked business a while, and then Leslie said:
-
-"I say."
-
-"Weel?"
-
-"You remember that woman I told you of on the Nikko road?"
-
-"Which wumman?" asked Mac, taking up a pebble from the path just by the
-veranda, and shying it at one of the hills of the landscape garden.
-
-"Girl, I meant; you remember the girl I told you of?"
-
-"Oh ay; the lass that flung you ower board--what of her?"
-
-"She's here with her husband."
-
-"Whaur?" said Mac, turning his head as though he fancied Jane and her
-spouse were camping out in the garden.
-
-"She's staying at the Nagasaki Hotel with her husband."
-
-"Whoat's their names?"
-
-"Du Telle."
-
-Mac doubled himself up for a moment, alleging for reason a touch of the
-stomach-ache, as a matter of fact it was a touch of internal laughter.
-
-The day before yesterday he had found the newly-arrived George du Telle
-in the smoke-room of the Nagasaki Hotel, stood him drinks, and conducted
-him to Danjuro.
-
-There they had saki and pipes, and George du Telle had bought a
-Pickford's van-full of rubbish, and parted with a fat green check on
-Cox's. An exceedingly fat check written with one eye shut, it is true,
-but quite in order.
-
-"I dined with them."
-
-"Ye whoat!" cried Mac, coming back from a vision of the victorious
-Danjuro doing the cake-walk amidst his bronzes and lacquers, kimono
-pinched up on either side between finger and thumb, his nose in the air,
-and on his face an assumption of stiff and haughty pride enough to kill
-one with laughter.
-
-"Weel! weel!" said Mac, addressing the hills of the landscape garden.
-
-"What are you weel-weeling about?" asked Leslie irritably.
-
-"I am not a puncteelious man," said Mac, still addressing the hills, "in
-the small concairns of life, but if a lassie had treated me same's she
-you, _I'd a seen her dammit before I'd ha' dined wi' her_." He shouted
-the last words, and brought his big fist down on his knee with a bang.
-
-"Don't shout," said Leslie, "and make an ass of yourself. We didn't
-quarrel when we parted; we parted good friends. She didn't want to marry
-me--well, that was her look-out."
-
-"I wish they hadna' come," said Mac gloomily.
-
-"What on earth is the matter with you _now_?"
-
-"I've seen the waurld," said the Gloomy One, "and I've seen wummen. And
-I've seen _her_--saw her in the smoke-room--" He stopped.
-
-"What smoke-room?"
-
-"Of the hotel. I was havin' a crack wi' her husband day-fore yesterday,
-and in she come to speak a word to him; and I know wummen--and, weel, I
-know, fixed between that chap with a head like a blazin' whin-bush and
-you, which way she'll run."
-
-"I wish you wouldn't be such a fool," said Leslie, now really annoyed
-and therefore keeping himself in check; "she's nothing to me."
-
-Mac turned, and under his bushy, half-grizzled eyebrows stared in
-Leslie's face, and Leslie did not support his gaze, but turned away
-irritably, and flung stones at a brown hawk that was circling in the air
-before them.
-
-Mac got up, tapped the ashes out of his pipe, and made off.
-
-"See ye the morn?" he called back as he got to the gate.
-
-"Maybe," said Leslie, looking at his watch and rising to go into the
-house.
-
-He went down at ten, and shortly after his departure, out came
-Campanula, a basket in her hand and sandals on her feet, for the weather
-was dry. She came along the path towards the cherry trees, examining the
-ground and the interstices of the bushes.
-
-At last she saw what she wanted, a bluebell.
-
-She plucked it with tender care and put it in her basket, then she saw
-another and treated it the same, and another; so went she on till it
-became perfectly plain that her object was not gardening, or the
-gathering of a bunch of flowers, but the extermination of every bluebell
-on the premises.
-
-When the place had been cleared and the basket was half full of victims,
-the question came how to dispose of them. Impossible to throw them away
-or burn them; she would as soon, almost, have treated children so.
-
-She stood at the gate undecided, till suddenly there came the solution
-of the problem, and opening the gate she passed down the lilac-shaded
-path to Nagasaki. On the way she saw more bluebells and stopped to pluck
-them, so that when the lane at the bottom was reached the basket was
-nearly full.
-
-In a rabbit-hutch of a house off the lane lay a tragedy, or the remains
-of one, in the form of O Toku San, a poor work-girl. She had loved a
-man, and he had not even betrayed her in the ordinary way. He had simply
-changed his mind, and gone off with another girl.
-
-She tried to kill herself, not in the native way, but with some
-abominable sort of foreign poison--Oxalic acid, most likely; but they
-saved her life, and she lay in the hospital nearly a month with her
-hands tied, to prevent her trying to kill herself again.
-
-When she came out of the hospital she made no more attempts to obtain
-peace. She was in the clutches of pernicious anæmia, and she now lay
-dying, a despairing shadow, the ghost of what had once been a pretty and
-happy girl.
-
-Campanula turned to the tiny house, and that day O Toku San had a whole
-silver yen to give to her mother on her return, and a bunch of
-freshly-gathered blue flowers to charm her eye: things to the dying
-better than all music and poetry, and far above the greatest
-masterpieces of art.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIX
-
- THE STORK AND THE TORTOISE
-
-
-They were in the street running parallel with Jinrikisha Street, a
-street truly of the old time, narrow with the house-tops, when the
-houses had upper stories over-leaning the way.
-
-Jane seemed fascinated by the contents of the little shops, that sold
-everything from cuttle-fish to paper lanterns. Shops that were, most of
-them, simply raised platforms, matted and roofed.
-
-Here abounded the tortoise-shell carvers, and the men who can make a
-netsuké to charm the eye out of anything: a knot of wood, a shark's
-tooth, a useless bit of ivory.
-
-"I'm going to buy things," said Jane, looking with a lustful eye on the
-cheap, or seemingly cheap, curios exposed for sale in some of the shops:
-old bronze gongs, kettles, sword guards, broken crockery were carefully
-mended, lamps, such as the Chinese magician might have hawked at the
-back entrance of the palace of Aladdin, fans, trick toys, and tiny boxes
-for holding rouge; tobacco-monos and opium pipes, broken-down English
-umbrellas, lacquer trays, and a heap of other dust-traps utterly
-useless, and some of them not very ornamental.
-
-"If you _will_ waste your money," said Leslie, "I'd advise you to come
-to Danjuro's. We can get to it by this lane, and I won't let him swindle
-you beyond the ordinary tourist pitch."
-
-"Very well," said Jane, turning from a booth bearing this cabalistic
-inscription on its front, "Come rightin!"[2] "The things look pretty
-dusty, and I don't see anything I very much want--I'd like to buy
-_that_, though." She pointed to a mite in the colored kimono, playing
-battledore and shuttlecock in the gutter with another mite of its own
-size. "They seem so happy and jolly, these Japanese children, and clean,
-and I read somewhere they never give any trouble, or break things, or
-annoy people--Bless the child!"
-
- [2] I presume "Come right in!" was the artist's intention.
-
-A shuttlecock hit her a slap in the face, and the shuttlecock hitter
-laughed, and trotted after it, without any semblance of apology to his
-target.
-
-"There's another illusion shattered," said Jane, wiping her face with
-her handkerchief.
-
-"Have you--" began Leslie.
-
-"What?"
-
-"Any children?"
-
-"No," said Jane; "I have not."
-
-The stork on the tortoise, emblem of eternal life, and a "supposed"
-masterpiece of the great Miochin family of metal-workers, still stood on
-guard in the fore-front of Danjuro's wares. It was the same stork that
-Leslie had seen five years ago--at least, in appearance. In reality it
-had been sold five or six times during the last five years.
-
-The selling of the thing always brought forth Danjuro's latent sense of
-humor, and could Danjuro the actor have seen his namesake at these
-supreme moments of trade, he would certainly have claimed him as a
-brother in art.
-
-It would be an American woman, perhaps, in a blue veil, and with a
-smattering of knowledge picked up from artistic books about Japan. Mac
-would be the go-between, translating the desires of the female into
-Japanese for the edification of Dan, who spoke English, by the way, as
-well as Mac, and even, perhaps, better.
-
-"Sell it!" Danjuro would cry. "I would as soon think of selling my own
-mother. Tell her Augustness to ask of me anything else. It is a piece of
-true Miochin, owned by my father, and his father before him. It has
-always brought my family luck, etc."
-
-All of which M'Gourley would faithfully translate with the addition:
-
-"He's the greatest auld scamp in the waurld; he's only puttin' up the
-price. Bide a wee, and let him simmer doon. It is not a true Miochin,
-but it's a vara excellent imitation, made, mayhap, by some pupil of the
-Miochins. Would y' be wullin' to pay twanty poonds?"
-
-The Blue-veiled One assenting, Mac and Danjuro would go for each other
-in Japanese, and after five minutes' ferocious wrangling, and five
-minutes more of interpretations, the thing would change hands at
-twenty-five pounds, to be replaced next day, or, at least, the day after
-the departure of the Blue-veiled One from Nagasaki, by its twin image. A
-man at Osaka made them by the gross, and he charged two pounds ten
-a-piece for them to the trade.
-
-Fortunately, the dead know not the doings of the living, else would the
-artistic Miochin family be turning eternally in their uneasy graves,
-with the rapidity of spinning bobbins.
-
-Danjuro came out with his usual profound salute and low hiss.
-
-Hiss is perhaps not the proper word, for the sound is made by the intake
-of air between closed teeth, and is intended to represent delight beyond
-words.
-
-And, indeed, when Danjuro beheld M'Gourley entering with a client ready
-to be shorn, the sound came from him as no empty compliment, but as a
-natural expression of his true feelings.
-
-It was different as regards Leslie. Danjuro looked on Leslie with the
-nervous dread with which you or I might look upon a mischievous lunatic.
-
-Leslie had once nearly spoiled a bargain--a delightful bargain from the
-dealer's point of view, a disgraceful swindle viewed by the cold light
-of English ethics.
-
-An English Member of Parliament had been trepanned into paying two
-hundred pounds for a pair of vases worth, maybe, twenty. Mac in his
-jubilation boasted before Leslie, and Leslie had "put the stopper on,"
-caused the money to be returned, with a note to the effect that the jars
-were now discovered (from some documents connected with them) to be
-imitation, and not as represented when bought.
-
-The Member of Parliament, instantly concluding that _this_ was a
-swindle, and that he had obtained priceless articles by accident,
-refused to accept the money, or return the jars.
-
-And thus was he done brown on his own spit, and basted by his own right
-hand, for in his book of travels, "Amongst the Japs," he mentioned the
-transaction, and, worse still, sent a copy of the book to Danjuro, with
-the passage marked with blue pencil.
-
-Dan read the passage with the aid of a pair of horn-rimmed spectacles,
-and with a face mirthless as a shovel.
-
-But the soul in him bubbled. He could quite understand the Member of
-Parliament's point of view, but Leslie's was quite beyond his power to
-grasp.
-
-Honesty for the sake of honesty, and without any ulterior reason, even
-Art for Art's sake was more understandable than that.
-
-So he hissed without pleasure as he bowed before Leslie and Jane,
-imploring them to condescend to make the honorable entrance, and
-intimating that everything in the place was theirs.
-
-Jane nodded to him, and looked round.
-
-"There's one of the monstrosities I told you of that George bought the
-other day," said she, pointing to a bronze frog half as big as an
-ordinary coal-box. "Oh, look at _that_!"
-
-She pointed to a furious struggle in bronze between a man and a monster.
-The monster had opened its mouth to devour the man, and the man had
-caught it by the tongue, which he was tearing out.
-
-It was the climax of the fight, and the conclusion one could read in the
-triumphant ferocity of the man's face--a thing to make one shudder.
-
-"Danjuro San," said Leslie grimly, speaking in Japanese, whilst Jane
-gazed at the fighting group, "this is the lady whose husband you and
-M'Gourley San entertained the other day--the Red-headed One. She is a
-friend of mine, and I pray you to entertain her differently."
-
-This is a vague interpretation of the Japanese for "This is the lady
-whose husband you swindled the other day, but if you play any of your
-tricks with _her_, I'll make you sit up--see?"
-
-To fight with a Japanese you must come to blows, for you can't possibly
-do it in words properly. The old Japanese who made the language had no
-use for terms of abuse: swords were good enough for them.
-
-"I'll have that," said Jane, suddenly seizing the fat baby, the size of
-a tangerine orange, done in ivory and engaged in feeding ivory ducks on
-top of a lacquer cabinet, "and the ducks. Tell him to send them to the
-hotel; you can fight with him about the price afterwards--and those two
-vases; and oh, that ivory Mousmé with the umbrella--isn't she sweet! I
-don't see anything else I want. _You_ have something, I want to make you
-a present."
-
-"I don't want anything, I'm tired of curios."
-
-"Well, you'll just have to want something, for I'm going to make you a
-present. I'll give you this."
-
-She took up a short sword in a carved ivory scabbard. On the ivory
-handle of it was figured a grimacing god, dancing apparently. She drew
-the blade, polished and razor-sharp, and then returned it to its sheath.
-
-"Take it; it will come in handy when those robbers you told us of last
-night at dinner come again."
-
-"I don't want the thing; it's unlucky to give knives."
-
-"It's not a knife, it's a sword!"
-
-"All right," said Leslie, "anything for peace;" and he took a great
-sheet of rice paper from Danjuro and wrapped the thing carefully up.
-
-"Now," said Jane, "I want something for langn-yappe, as they say in New
-Orleans--something thrown in."
-
-Danjuro declared that the whole shop was hers to do what she liked with.
-
-"I don't want the whole shop," said Jane, "but I'll have that." She took
-possession of a tiny rose tree in the pot, a rose tree with blossoms the
-size of farthings.
-
-"Now come."
-
-"One moment," said Leslie.
-
-His ear had caught a familiar sound. It came from the cellar where many
-of Danjuro's goods were stowed; it was the voice of Mac, and it came up
-like the voice of the Hidden One in Campanula's story. Mac evidently had
-a victim in the cellar. Leslie went to the cellar stairs and listened.
-
-"I would not let him see you're wanting it. Juist assume a casual
-expreesion as if ye were na so vary carin' whether ye got it or no'.
-He'll be sure to tell ye it's a piece o' Miochin--it is _not_."
-
-"How much do you think it's worth?" (A burly English voice, suggestive
-of shepherd's plaid trousers, a corporation, gold albert, and double
-chin.)
-
-"All of fifty pounds, but not a penny more, not a penny more. Show him
-the money; there's not a Jap in Nagasaki can withstaund the sight of
-goud--or notes."
-
-"Look here, if you get it for forty, I'll give you a ten per cent.
-commission."
-
-"Am no so very carin' about commeesions; stull, as you offer it, I'll
-not say 'No.'"
-
-The stork and tortoise were being sold again.
-
-Leslie turned away in disgust.
-
-"Come," he said to Jane, "let's go." And they passed out into the sunlit
-street, he carrying the parcel containing the sword, she the rose tree
-done up in rice paper pictured vaguely with the forms of storks.
-
-"She has given him a wakizashi," murmured Danjuro, and he retired into a
-corner to smoke a whiff or two of hay-colored tobacco, and think
-inscrutable thoughts, before addressing himself to the victim that Mac
-was preparing down in the cellar.
-
-"What shall we do now?" asked Jane when they were in the street.
-
-Leslie thought for a moment.
-
-"I'll tell you," said he. "We'll get rikshas and go to the cemetery--"
-
-"I'll do no such thing," said Jane promptly.
-
-"If you will allow me one moment--I'm not proposing to take you to a
-place like Kensal Green. A Japanese cemetery is worth seeing, just as
-much worth seeing as a Japanese town. Then we can go and have luncheon."
-
-"Where?"
-
-"Would you like to go to an eel-house?"
-
-"Gracious, no! I hate eels. First a cemetery, and then an eel-house! I
-have half a mind to go back to the hotel."
-
-"Well, a tea house, then; we can go to the Tea House of a Thousand
-Joys."
-
-"Oh, that quite decides the matter," said she, assuming an outraged air,
-and hailing one of two rikshas that were passing.
-
-Leslie hailed the other, and quietly directed the riksha boys to the
-cemetery.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XX
-
- THE SONG OF THE MUSHI
-
-
-"It almost makes one wish one were dead," sighed Jane. They were sitting
-on a moss-grown tussock near a grave adorned with a fresh spray of
-cherry-blossom, contained in a joint of bamboo. Beneath them the hill
-stretched downwards, terrace after terrace, casting before their eyes
-the cold color of marble, and the mournful green of cryptomeria trees,
-the delicate tracery of ferns, and the glory of the wild camellias.
-Beyond lay the blue of the harbor, black-blue where the wooded cliffs
-met the water; from the water the hills led the eye past camphor woods
-and the green of the young bamboo, up and away to where the brown of
-their summits cut the dazzling azure of the sky. "I have never seen
-anything so beautiful, so peaceful. What are you thinking of, Dick?"
-
-"I was thinking," said Leslie, rousing himself, "that we might have
-luncheon at my place."
-
-"You are perfectly disgusting!" said Jane. "I'll never go to a cemetery
-with you again. Luncheon! Who wants luncheon here?"
-
-"Very few," said he grimly, gazing over the tombs.
-
-"Now you're trying to be smart--at the expense of these poor things. Ah!
-look at that tiny grave with the white flower in the little vase."
-
-"Some child."
-
-"Yes; a thing with a great sash that was flying its kite or spinning its
-top the other day, and now it's here."
-
-"Or hitting shuttlecocks about the street."
-
-"Yes," wiping her cheek where the shuttlecock had hit her--then
-suddenly: "I think men are beasts," addressing the distant hills.
-
-"I'm with you there."
-
-"No, you're not; all men are just the same."
-
-"I suppose you mean to infer in a roundabout way that I'm a beast.
-Thanks."
-
-"There's nothing to be thankful for, only--they don't understand."
-
-He took her hand in his as if to make friends, and she let him hold it
-for a moment, then she suddenly drew it away.
-
-"Had not we better be going? What's the time?"
-
-"Twelve."
-
-"Will you come and have luncheon at the hotel?"
-
-"No, thanks; why not come and lunch at my place? I'll give you all sorts
-of funny Japanese things to eat. Luncheon won't be till half-past one,
-but you can have a talk with Campanula. It will only take us ten minutes
-or so to get there from here."
-
-They came down to where the rikshas were waiting; he helped her in,
-tucked the linen apron round her, and gave the men their direction.
-
-Campanula San had not yet returned, declared Pine-breeze, as she
-kow-towed before them on the matting.
-
-"Well, she won't be long," said Leslie. "Shall we go into the house or
-the garden?"
-
-"The house," replied Jane. "I'm tired of the sunlight; let's go in, and
-sit on the floor and talk."
-
-"Right. But do you mind--"
-
-"What?"
-
-"Well, as a matter of fact, there's a clause in the lease that no one is
-to go in with their boots on."
-
-"Why, for goodness sake?"
-
-"They say it spoils the matting."
-
-"All right," said Jane, holding up a small foot, and trying to unbutton
-the shoe on it.
-
-"Let me," said Leslie, going down on his knees.
-
-The shoe came off, and the little foot in its bronze silk stocking lay
-in his hands for half a second--half a second during which he was seized
-with a wild desire to kiss it. Next moment it was out of his hands, and
-the other was presented to him.
-
-"You are all thumbs!" said Jane. "Do be quick! I'm not a stork to stand
-on one leg for an hour. There, you've burst a button off! I knew you
-would. Stupid!"
-
-"Pine-breeze will sew it on," said he, hunting for the button on his
-knees.
-
-"No, she won't. It doesn't in the least matter. Gracious, Dick! when I
-see you just like that, crawling about on your knees--"
-
-"What?"
-
-"I can't help remembering--Do you remember the rainy day at Glenbruach,
-when you and I were playing marbles in the pistol gallery, and I said
-you cheated, and you said you didn't, and I said you did, and you called
-me a liar?"
-
-"And you hacked my shins?"
-
-"Yes; and old Mrs. Johnstone, the housekeeper, came in and saw me and
-said I was an 'awfu' lassie!' Can it be that all that really happened,
-and that we are the same people? Imagine me hacking your shins now!
-Imagine us both playing marbles on the veranda!"
-
-"And we didn't speak to each other for a day," said he, following her
-into the house. "And you looked so stiff and sour, and all of a sudden
-you came up from behind and flung your arms round my neck."
-
-"And you shouted: 'Oh, get away, you little brute!'"
-
-"Yes; because I thought you were making another attack on me, and all
-the time you only wanted to k--"
-
-"I didn't. I only wanted to apologize."
-
-"Well, apologize, then!" said he, arranging the cushions on the floor,
-and placing the rose tree and the parcel containing the sword in a
-corner.
-
-"It is sad to look so far away," said she, taking as comfortable a
-position as she could upon the cushions. "Life was so jolly then. Oh! a
-good old day's trout-fishing is worth all the money in the world. Money
-is no use; what's the good of it? It just makes one not care for the
-simple pleasures of life. Do you remember the picnic you and I and those
-American children, who were staying at Callander, had, when the
-soda-water bottle burst, and we found we'd left everything behind but
-the jam and the eggs? Dick, I--I--want to ask you something."
-
-It was one of the peculiarities of Jane's mind that a question
-formulating there would work its way along like a worm, under, maybe,
-ten minutes of conversation, and then come out at the end of a
-paragraph, rise for air, so to speak, in a manner irrelevant and
-sometimes startling.
-
-"Yes?"
-
-"What became of you all those three years before you came here to
-Japan?--you vanished. You told me the other day you were in Australia;
-were you?"
-
-"I was in prison."
-
-She turned deathly pale, and stared at him as if he had struck her.
-
-"Oh, you need not be so alarmed; it was not a criminal but a social
-prison. My father allowed me a hundred and fifty a year, paid quarterly,
-as long as I lived in Sydney, and as I had no trade and no money I lived
-in Sydney for three years--tied by the leg."
-
-"I think you take a pleasure in frightening me; first you told me you
-were a shopman, now a prisoner. Dick, why do you _always_ make your own
-case out worse than it really is? Tell me, what was the last quarrel
-with your father about?"
-
-"Debts."
-
-"And, Dick--you know you used to--"
-
-"I know I used to drink, but I don't drink now."
-
-They were silent for a while, then he began to speak and tell her the
-story of his life as a remittance man, and he did not spare black in the
-composition of his picture.
-
-She listened at first interested and amused by the thought of Dick tied
-by the leg in Sydney, hobbled, so to speak, and made to behave.
-
-Then her amusement gave way to compassion. She saw him wandering in the
-Domain, by the sea-shore, in the streets, a lonely figure, a man with no
-interest in life, an exile banned by society.
-
-She thought of all the men she knew and the number of them who were just
-as wicked and foolish as Dick had ever been, yet who by keeping on the
-right side of their bank balance retained their social position and the
-respect of all men.
-
-And thinking of all this the heart in her was moved. A most dangerous
-condition just now, for Jane, Bessemer steel in her everyday laughing
-mood, became wax when her compassion was aroused.
-
-"Why didn't you write and tell me?" said she. "I'd have gone and seen
-your father. Oh, it was wicked to send you off like that, away from
-every one. _How_ could a father treat his child so!"
-
-They were silent again for a moment.
-
-"Poor Dick!" said Jane suddenly, and she took his hand in both hers and
-stroked it. A little shiver went through him.
-
-Then, all at once, she felt an arm around her waist and his breath upon
-her cheek, and she did not try to take her hand from his or struggle,
-nor, after the first second of troubled alarm, did she feel the wish to
-struggle.
-
-She had ceased for the moment to be Jane du Telle, a married woman, a
-person with a stainless reputation. All these facts were swept away by
-nature, just as shrubs and fir trees are swept away by the rush of the
-avalanche.
-
-A great faintness came over her. She clung to him, and sinking
-backwards, fell upon the matting; his arms were around her, his breath
-on her cheek, her lips were returning his kisses, yet all the time her
-lips were murmuring: "Don't--don't--don't!"
-
- * * * * *
-
-At this supreme moment came a sound strangely alien to the
-situation--the jingling of tea-cups no less--and through the wall, or at
-least the opening of a panel, entered Pine-breeze, followed by
-Cherry-blossom, with the luncheon.
-
- * * * * *
-
-"Dick!" she cried, sitting up with her cheeks raging red, "tell them to
-go away."
-
-But Dick was not heeding her. He was sitting up with his hands to the
-side of his head, and an expression on his face that made her almost
-forget her own position before the Mousmés.
-
-"Do you hear it?" said he.
-
-"What?"
-
-"That noise, my God, that noise."
-
-A tiny cage was hanging from a hook on the wall. In it was a thing much
-beloved by Campanula--an insect like a grasshopper that sang a buzzing
-and tremulous sort of song. The mushi was a creature that only sang by
-night as a rule, but some spirit had moved its poetic soul, for it was
-singing now.
-
-"It's that thing in the cage," said Jane, pointing to it tremulously,
-thankful for any excuse to escape the glances of the Mousmés.
-
-He looked up, sprang to his feet, went to the cage, and tore it from its
-hook.
-
-The Mousmés screamed out, for from his furious manner and the expression
-of his face they felt he was about to dash cage and mushi on the
-matting, and trample them underfoot.
-
-And he was, for one horrible moment. Then something in him
-prevailed--the something that had made him pick the Lost One up and kiss
-her, and carry her all the way to Nikko; the spirit of good that had
-made him always not so bad as he might have been.
-
-He rehung the little cage on the hook, and the thing in it became dumb;
-the sound in his head that troubled him had died away, and he returned
-to where Jane was sitting, and resumed his position on the cushions near
-her.
-
-Then he told the Mousmés to leave what they had brought on the floor,
-and to go away till he called them.
-
-"Oh," said Jane, when they were alone again, "to think they should have
-seen me like that. Oh, _Dick_! How could we--how could I--"
-
-"_They_ don't matter," said he gloomily.
-
-"Oh, don't _talk_ to me!" She wrung her hands.
-
-"For goodness sake," said Leslie, "don't make mountains out of
-molehills. They saw me kiss you, well, what of that? and they don't talk
-English--at least, English that any one can understand."
-
-"But like that on the floor," murmured Jane, comforted somewhat by the
-last statement.
-
-"Well, what of that? We are in Japan, where people live on the floor. I
-admit if a servant in England came in and saw--"
-
-"_Don't!_" screamed she; "don't speak about it again. It was a moment of
-weakness; let us forget forget it. I mean, let us _remember_ it as a
-warning."
-
-"Do you feel like eating luncheon?" he asked, looking at the pathetic
-little dishes and tea-cups, each on its sea-green mat.
-
-"No; I feel like nothing. I only want to go and bury myself."
-
-He poured her out some tea and took some himself.
-
-"You frightened me," she said in a tremulous voice after they had sat
-for a moment in silence. "I thought you were going to do something
-dreadful."
-
-"When?"
-
-"When you took that cage down with the buzzing thing in it that annoyed
-you--poor atom!"
-
-"It didn't annoy me; that was not the sound I heard. It was the sound I
-heard in the dream I told you of--that devil--"
-
-A figure stood in the doorway: it was Campanula returned.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXI
-
- M'GOURLEY'S LOVE AFFAIR
-
-
-Mac had gone down to the office that morning in a temper.
-
-The staff consisted of himself and Ah Hop Sing, the Chinese office boy.
-He could not quarrel with himself, so he quarreled with Ah Hop Sing,
-using a rattan cane to enforce the argument, till Ah Hop Sing hopped and
-sang in a fashion that justified his title.
-
-Then Mac wrote business letters and whilst he wrote, the thoughts of
-this dusty and unlovable-looking Scot went far astray on pleasant and
-picturesque roads, under blue skies, by brakes all gay with the crimson
-japonica flowers and the glorious beauty of the red camellias, and
-beneath the solemn darkness of the cryptomeria woods of Nikko.
-
-That is to say, they would stray to these places, and then he would
-recall them to indite letters of advice to Maconochie of Glasgow, a
-letter of abuse to Mr. Oyama--a gentleman who never fulfilled his
-contracts when they threatened loss, sheltering his business self behind
-the ample kimono of the Tokyo guild--and letters to divers other people
-in trade.
-
-And still his thoughts would stray whilst he gummed and stamped the
-envelopes, and they would be buying dolls now at booths in Jinrikisha
-Street, or helping to fly kites at the House of the Clouds.
-
-They would stand watching a small person playing kitsune-ken with
-another person of her own age; and the same small person laboring up the
-Hill to the House of the Clouds, burdened with a bundle of books, and
-sheltered beneath a many-ribbed crimson umbrella.
-
-Then they would glance at the same person, bigger grown, and suddenly
-become beautiful; then they would heave their shoulders and sigh, and
-all come back to help in the addressing of a letter to M'Clintock of
-Osaka, or some other magnate of the Jap Rubbish Trade.
-
-Mac was in love, as I have before indicated: in love with three people.
-A tiny dot in a blue kimono and stiff sash; a person somewhat similarly
-dressed, whom he had sometimes helped of evenings with her lessons, or
-watched as she pricked her fingers over needlework; and a Mousmé as
-pretty as seven.
-
-He had been in love for years without knowing it; a flower had been
-growing in this dusty soil, where one could not fancy any green thing
-finding nutriment, unless, perhaps, a weed. A white flower, pure and
-without stain.
-
-Nothing could be more ideal than this love, nothing with legs and arms
-attached to it could be more un-ideal than Mac. And the strange thing
-was that this pure blossom of the soul did not improve the soul it grew
-from a bit, at least as far as human eye could see, for the man of the
-Great Tung Jade and the Lessar papers incidents was, morally, just the
-same--worse, if anything--as the wailing clients of Danjuro could
-testify.
-
-When Campanula was alone with Leslie in these later days, she wore a
-grave and thoughtful air. Watching her, one could perceive that he alone
-possessed her mind; all the quaint and charming ways of her childhood,
-all things frivolous and light, she seemed to have dropped and left
-behind her with her toys.
-
-When Campanula was quite alone with M'Gourley, a subtle change came over
-her. The child came out and played.
-
-Though Leslie had adopted her as a daughter, she had by no means adopted
-him as a father.
-
-Tod M'Gourley was her adoptive father, or, at least, she treated him as
-such. He acted also as uncle, aunt, grandmother, brother and general
-playmate all combined; and any half-holiday during the last few years,
-you might have seen Campanula and her family strolling along Jinrikisha
-Street, or on the Bund: the family in an old top hat, black broadcloth
-suit, and bearing a gamp umbrella in its hard fist.
-
-They would stray together through the wonders of the town, Mac and she,
-and pause and gaze in at shops like two children, buy sweets and eat
-them unashamed and openly. Stop to look at performing monkeys, or listen
-to street ballad-singers, or criticize passing funerals.
-
-He had never seen so much of life round town as Campanula showed him,
-clapping beside him in her little clogs when the streets were damp, or
-gliding beside him sandal-shod in the warm, dry days of spring.
-
-Where Campanula was concerned, this dour and dusty Scot had all the
-delicate and instinctive feelings of a woman; he had noticed "fine" the
-change that had come over her of late, and the change in her manner
-towards Leslie.
-
-The thing pleased him, yet it made him sigh--and frown, when he called
-to mind "that wumman," the mental label he had attached to Jane du
-Telle.
-
-When he had finished business he went to Danjuro's shop, where he had an
-appointment, as we have seen, with an Englishman. The Englishman having
-been duly plundered, Mac looked at his watch, found it was nearly
-twelve, and was struck by a bright idea.
-
-He would go to the House of the Clouds, fetch Campanula out, and have
-luncheon with her.
-
-Ten minutes later found him on the veranda.
-
-Campanula had just returned, having left O Toku San.
-
-M'Gourley sat down on the veranda, and Campanula sat down beside him on
-a little fur rug made from the skin of an Ounce, or some such small
-animal. She looked sad and depressed, and her eyes wandered about the
-landscape garden as if questioning its hills, its streams, its old, old
-forests.
-
-"Campanula," said Mac, taking her little hand between his great rough,
-red paws, "what ails you, child? You look sad and fashed, what's been
-worrying you?"
-
-"I have been to see O Toku San," replied Campanula, speaking in
-Japanese. "She is dying. Her heart is dead," said Campanula, putting her
-other little hand over her own heart. "I am--oh, so sad! for to-day the
-thought of death has come to me, a thought that I never knew before."
-
-"Child, child," said M'Gourley, "dinna speak like that. We must all die
-soon or later--ay, ay, we must all die, sure enough."
-
-"But not so sadly as she," replied Campanula with a little sob.
-
-M'Gourley looked at her; she was in tears.
-
-He drew her close to him just as a mother might have done, and held her
-to him whilst she rested her head against his old coat, and sobbed and
-wept like a little child, gazing at the landscape garden through the
-veil of her tears.
-
-He rocked her gently to soothe her, but said nothing, holding her just
-as he had held her that day in the gardens of Dai Nichi Do, as if to
-protect her against Death, as he had that day protected her against the
-vision of the terrible Akudogi.
-
-Her sobs slowly ceased, but still she kept her cheek rested against his
-coat.
-
-"What is Death?" she suddenly asked. The question was quite beyond
-M'Gourley.
-
-"Dinna ask me," he said. "It's what we all must come to some day."
-
-"And will O Toku San see him she loved when she goes--there?" continued
-she, as if unheeding his reply. "Perhaps"--after a long pause--"he will
-know her love for him when he too is there, and make her happy."
-
-"Mayhap," said M'Gourley, who did not know the facts of the case, or
-perhaps he would not have taken so cheerful a view of O Toku San's
-lover's future state. "Mayhap." He looked down at her little face. Her
-eyes were dry, but a tear was still wet on her cheek. He took out his
-handkerchief and dried it.
-
-Campanula smiled faintly, pressed her cheek ever so slightly against his
-arm as if in thanks, and drew away from him, resuming her position on
-the little rug.
-
-M'Gourley took out his pipe, lit it, and began to smoke.
-
-"Now," said he, "just put on those sandal shoes of yours again, for I am
-going to take you out with me."
-
-"Where?" asked Campanula.
-
-"No matter where," replied Mac, rising from the veranda. "A nice place
-where you and I'll go--you and I together, as we did along the Nikko
-road, only not on my shoulder. Na, na! you're ower big for that. Do you
-remember the sugar-candy dragon?"
-
-"Ah! the Hon. Dragon!" replied she in the vernacular, as she bent to
-pass the sandal-strap past the great toe of her white tabi. "He is
-upstairs with--other things, but the Hon. Dragon is very old now."
-
-Then she took her umbrella and opened it, and M'Gourley and she passed
-down the path to the gate.
-
-He held the gate open for her, and she passed through with a murmured
-word of thanks, and then she led the way down hill under the perfumed
-beauty of the lilac boughs.
-
-About half-way down, Campanula stepped aside as if to let some one pass.
-M'Gourley, close on her heels, and in a reverie, did the same thing
-unconsciously. If someone had passed, that someone must have effaced
-himself amidst the lilac trees on the left of the path.
-
-"Poor blind man!" said Campanula, looking back up the path.
-
-"Whoat?" cried Mac. "Whoat did y' say?"
-
-"Blind man," replied Campanula; "he who came last night--you remember!"
-
-M'Gourley took off his old top hat, and drew his coat sleeve across his
-forehead. Beads of sweat had sprung there all of a sudden.
-
-He stood for a second or two looking at Campanula, and then for a second
-or two looking up the path, pied with sunshine and shadow, the pretty
-path that for him had suddenly been made horrible. There was nothing to
-be seen, nothing but the sunshine and shadow.
-
-"My eyes are growing auld," he said at length. "Do you see him still,
-Campanula?"
-
-She had turned away to look at a fern that was growing on the bank.
-
-"I do not see him now," she replied. "He has gone through the gate."
-
-"Are you sure," said Mac, speaking in a subdued voice, "that he was the
-same man that came last night?"
-
-Campanula was quite sure.
-
-"Wait for me," said Mac, "and I'll run up and tell them to give him some
-food."
-
-He came hurriedly back up the path, very much against his will.
-
-There was nobody in front of the house, he went round to the kitchen.
-The Mousmés were there, preparing luncheon--at least, preparing to
-prepare it in a leisurely way.
-
-Had they seen anyone about the house, a blind man?
-
-No, they had seen nobody, only the poulterer, who had been with eggs an
-hour ago.
-
-Had they seen a blind man last night--had a blind man called round at
-the kitchen to ask for food?
-
-No; nobody had been for food to the kitchen last night, least of all a
-blind man.
-
-Then Mac hurried off, and the Mousmés dropped everything to discuss the
-meaning of all these questions asked by the Learned One; and Pine-breeze
-embarked on a story about two blind men and a frog, and the fox-faced
-representative of the rice god, a story that put the luncheon back half
-an hour.
-
-Campanula was plucking flowers when Mac returned. Just three or four
-with a delicate fern frond, such a charming little bouquet, a veritable
-work of art made in a moment with unerring taste and a few turns of her
-deft fingers. She made Mac bend, and fixed the tiny bouquet in his
-coat-lapel.
-
-Then they pursued their way, Mac vastly perturbed in his mind.
-
-There was just now living in the pleasant city of Nagasaki an inn-keeper
-of the name of Yamagata, who owned a tea house named "The Full-blown
-Peony Flower."
-
-Mr. Yamagata was a Progressive. He believed that a tea house where a
-real English luncheon or dinner could be obtained would, judging from
-his compatriots' passion for things European, be a success.
-
-And it was, till half Jinrikisha Street nearly died of indigestion.
-
-His tea house was a tiny affair situated up an entry near Danjuro's
-shop, and surrounded by a little courtyard, wherein grew
-dyspeptic-looking plum trees in pale amber-colored pots.
-
-Danjuro, who was a friend of Yamagata's, had been chanting the praises
-of the place so long, that Mac had become obsessed by the idea of it;
-and casting about for somewhere new to take Campanula, the idea had
-turned up like a horrible sort of trump card.
-
-The tea house was on its last legs, and practically deserted, so they
-had the place to themselves; and having ordered the meal they sat on the
-matting of a desolate room and waited for it to come.
-
-"Campanula," said Mac, "you have never seen that blind man before?"
-
-She shook her head.
-
-"Never; nor one so ugly as he."
-
-"Campanula," said Mac earnestly, "if you see him again dinna speak with
-him; he's an ill man and bodes no good."
-
-Oh, indeed, she did not wish to speak with him, but he was so old and
-poor and ugly she could not but feel sorrow for him; and he said last
-night that he had come such a long way off, and must soon return.
-
-M'Gourley shuddered.
-
-"Ay," said he to himself, "a dom long way off;" then to Campanula: "Said
-he anything else?"
-
-"No," replied Campanula, "for I told him to go to the back entrance, and
-he went."
-
-At this moment the soup was brought in by three somewhat faded-looking
-Mousmés, each armed with a plate, a real English soup plate.
-
-The soup was thin and not exuberantly hot, but it seemed vastly to amuse
-Campanula when it was put before her. "A," said she, pointing with her
-spoon-tip to something at the bottom of the plate, "B--C"--she was
-pointing to the little Italian paste letters floating, or rather sunk,
-in the mixture. "D--and look--a cow!"
-
-Mac looked over to admire.
-
-"Ay, ay, it's a coo, right enough, an' there's a cock and hen; but eat
-it up before it gets cold."
-
-Campanula ate her alphabet, and the next course appeared. A boot sole
-labeled a beef-steak, which vanished, uneaten, and was replaced by what
-seemed to be an old stone cannon-ball, such as they used to fire out of
-Mons Meg. The O.S.C.B. was labeled a pudding.
-
-It was the caricature of an ordinary English middle-class country
-luncheon.
-
-But it was an amazingly clever caricature: a perfect work of art.
-
-After luncheon, M'Gourley returned to business, and Campanula to the
-House of the Clouds.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXII
-
- THE COMPLETE GEOGRAPHER
-
-
-On the way, she stopped at the shop of Mr. Initogo to pay a visit to her
-friend Kiku.
-
-Campanula in her school-days had shown both qualities and defects of
-mind. At languages, at least in learning the English language, she was a
-success; a very moderate success where mathematics were concerned,
-though she knew enough to do long division, and to keep household
-accounts. They teach a lot of useful things at the mission
-schools--needlework, and so forth, and in some of these branches
-Campanula shone, but at geography she was a dismal failure. She had been
-always lacking in the power of location. Witness her first statements as
-to the whereabouts of the house with the plum tree in front of it.
-
-The long sea voyage from Tokyo, or rather from Yokohama, had brought
-into her mind the impression that she had traveled to the end of things,
-yet they told her there were things beyond.
-
-They showed her maps and globes. The maps were flat, and the globes were
-round, yet they said they were the same thing, or were pictures of the
-same thing. How a flat thing could be round or the converse, she could
-not say, but Howard San, the missionary, said they were. Was it for her
-to contradict him? So, instead of setting up her own wits against Howard
-San, and questioning him, she accepted his words just as you or I accept
-the words of mathematicians or physiologists concerning subjects on
-which we are ignorant. And thus on geography she got hopelessly muddled,
-and remained so.
-
-This morning she was lamenting her want of geography, and casting about
-for some friend learned in the art. Of course she might have gone to
-Howard San, but she would have to wait till school was over, and,
-besides she felt a certain diffidence in approaching him on the subject,
-so she turned to the shop of Mr. Initogo.
-
-Mr. Initogo was sitting on his heels on the floor of his shop, engaged
-in the gentle art of making tea; it was one of his fads that he always
-made his own tea with his own hands. Beside him stood an hibachi, on
-which a kettle was coming to the boil; before him, a tea-cup without a
-handle on a tray, and a microscopic tea-pot.
-
-He warmed the tea-cup with a few drops of hot water; then, from a
-cylindrical tea-canister, with a thing like a snuff-scoop, he took a
-small quantity of green tea--tea of the color that an old black coat
-turns after years of sun and rain--this he popped into the tea-pot.
-
-Then the honorable hot water being ready, he poured it into a porcelain
-dish to let it cool slightly, which it did, becoming converted during
-the act into the honorable old hot water.
-
-The honorable old hot water being now ready, he poured it into the
-tea-pot, popped on the lid, looked up, and saw Campanula.
-
-So immersed in his darling employment had he been, that he had not
-observed her entrance.
-
-She wished to see Kiku? She was upstairs; this with a thousand apologies
-for his own blindness, and comparisons of himself with worms and other
-sightless things.
-
-Campanula knew the way up; she had been up often enough before, and up
-she went.
-
-Kiku San, since we hinted at her as a playmate of Campanula, had grown.
-The tumbling tot that Leslie had once caught by the "scruff" of her obi
-and held out at arm's length wriggling, for the amusement of M'Gourley,
-had become a Mousmé with a face at once heavy and flighty-looking; a
-broad face, pretty enough, but with a maddeningly irresponsible
-expression.
-
-Pine-breeze was bad enough in the irresponsible line, but she could have
-learnt much from Kiku.
-
-She was the dunce, or, rather, had been the dunce at the mission school;
-this is not saying very much against her, for Japanese girls are
-amazingly quick in the "uptake," learning coming to them as easily as
-ignorance to English girls; all the same she had been the dunce. She had
-never been able to conquer the letter "l" in English; and would say
-"raidy" for "lady;" yet she had a memory of sorts, blocks of facts swam
-in the ocean of her unintelligence like those houses that float about
-after an inundation of the Mississippi.
-
-But the place left vacant in her skull by want of learning was by no
-means devoid of a tenant; therein dwelt a colossal impudence, a supreme
-self-assurance that sheltered and helped to hide the nakedness of her
-mind, and even obtained for her, amongst her girl friends, a sort of
-fungoid reputation for cleverness.
-
-For when Kiku San said a thing, she said it with such assurance that it
-seemed true--the assurance of the absolutely untrustworthy intellect,
-which of all assurances is the greatest.
-
-She was sitting now on her heels in a bare room on the upper floor, a
-tobacco-mono at her side, and in her hands a round flat box with a glass
-lid. She was playing at Pigs-in-Clover.
-
-The two Mousmés bowed to one another with great ceremony, enquiring
-after each other's honorific health, and then Campanula came to rest
-upon the matting opposite to her friend.
-
-They formed a pretty picture in the bare room with its chess-board
-matting, against the bare walls, whose only ornament was a kakemono
-representing Fuji San crested with snow.
-
-Kiku was soon to be married--married to a government clerk to whom she
-had been engaged nearly since birth; and she entertained Campanula with
-long and uninteresting descriptions of her husband-to-be, his mother,
-his father, his grandfather, who lived at Nagoya, his brothers and
-sisters, how old they were and all about them.
-
-Kiku was a bore, a female bore of the first water, and in this respect
-she could have given any old member of the Rag or Carlton points, and
-beaten him.
-
-She told all these things looking up from under her thick eyelids, and
-with a half-smile, and Campanula listened, half mesmerized, wholly
-weary, but with all her courteous soul awake to do honor to the tale.
-
-At last an hiatus occurred of which Campanula took advantage to ask the
-question in her mind.
-
-Did Kiku, so learned on all subjects, know of any land where the snow
-lay for half the year?
-
-Oh, certainly Kiku did, and she told about it.
-
-Describing her future husband and his relations she had been vague and
-uninteresting, lacking, as she did, the gifts of perception and
-narration. But now, plunging into the empire of pure lies, she spoke
-with an assurance that made her words sound like gospel.
-
-Such a country existed; as a matter of fact, she had it all in a book
-somewhere, but she did not need the book, as she never forgot anything.
-It lay in the sea beyond Nankin two hundred and sixty-seven ri beyond,
-and the snow lay there half a year, sometimes more.
-
-"Is it a country where blue flowers grow, and roses--sometimes?" said
-Campanula.
-
-"Just so, sometimes;" and Kiku, searching in the capacious bag of her
-ignorance, began to produce old broken-up facts that had been lying
-there like rubbish in the basket of a chiffonier.
-
-The sea all round that place was frozen most of the year, and the sun
-shone once a month or so.
-
-Then she painted a graphic picture of this desolate land which she
-declared to be divided into four parts, Unster, Munster, Rinster and
-Comit; and Campanula sat listening and receiving it all as truth.
-
-Liars, somehow, are always sure of an audience; you and I, who speak the
-truth, the whole truth, and nothing but the truth, languish in
-conversation and are not heard, whilst your mendacity-monger holds the
-floor and absorbs the interest.
-
-So Kiku San went on spinning her tale, and Campanula San sat opposite to
-her and listened, shivering at the dismal pictures being raised before
-her.
-
-Then, all at once, from below came the irate voice of Mr. Initogo
-calling Kiku the "Heedless One." If he could have used a stronger
-expression he would have used it, for the dinner ought to be cooking at
-this moment, and the fish and seaweed had not arrived. The Heedless One
-had been, as a matter of fact, playing at Pigs-in-Clover all the morning
-instead of marketing.
-
-The Complete Geographer rose to her feet in a hurry, for filial
-obedience resided in her breast, not so much as a virtue, but rather as
-a sort of mainspring put in by nature--or rather, I should say,
-heredity.
-
-They went out together, and Kiku bought the fish and the seaweed and a
-few other important items, and then they parted, Kiku returned home
-laden with marketings, and Campanula to the House of the Clouds.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIII
-
- THE STRUGGLE
-
-
-Leslie walked back to the hotel that day with Jane. When he left her he
-was vastly troubled in his mind. Troubled about Jane, troubled about
-Campanula, troubled about himself, and troubled about a vast, vague,
-tragic something: a shadow stealing up from his past and already
-tingeing his future with the twilight that comes before eclipse.
-
-What demon had called Jane up from the past?
-
-Unconsciously during the last five years he had been altering for the
-better. The friendliness and kindness of Japan, the frank friendliness
-of M'Gourley, that most unconscionable Scot, the beauty of the flowers
-and seasons, and Campanula--above all, Campanula--these things had
-worked upon him with slow but sure effect.
-
-Slowly, he had learnt the great, great secret that happiness is to be
-found, not in grand palaces, not in wealth, not in success, but amongst
-the lowly and little things of life, the things that no man can
-appreciate who has not a free and untroubled conscience.
-
-The new book, the pipe of tobacco smoked beneath the cherry trees of a
-morning, the home-coming of Campanula from school of an evening laden
-with books and perplexities, the rubber of whist with Mr. Initogo, the
-quaint, funny things that are always happening in a Japanese
-household--these and a thousand other trifles had made up the sum of his
-life, and the addition of them made happiness.
-
-And Campanula--he little knew how much she had entered into his
-being--what a multitude of impalpable threads bound her to him, threads
-that had been spinning from the very first day, when he found her lost
-amidst the crimson azaleas!
-
-He had eaten the lotus for nearly five years; he had been preparing a
-future of happiness and peace, and who knows what boundless
-possibilities of love?
-
-Suddenly, Satan had appeared before him with the command, "Get up and
-fight, fight me for this future you have been preparing for yourself;
-fight me for the beauty of it, the happiness you will have in it, the
-happiness you will make for others in it; get it if you can, for my
-weapon is Lust."
-
-That night, when the moon, now waxing stronger, laid her patient square
-of pure white light on the floor of his room, the battle began in
-earnest.
-
-He had determined on going to Arita on the morrow to get away for a
-while from the woman against whom he felt fate was driving him with
-ruinous intent.
-
-Now, as he lay alone, with the powers of good and evil on either side of
-him, he reviewed his position clearly for the first time.
-
-The cold, calculating, sneaking, pickpocket form of adultery, which is
-the canker at the heart of English society--to put it in plain English,
-the bestial use of another man's wife behind his back--was a form of
-crime as unthinkable to Leslie as the crime of cheating at cards, or
-forging a check.
-
-To obtain the woman he wanted, there was only one way. The open way.
-
-That meant the smashing up of everything around him. He must leave
-Japan, leave Campanula, for, deep in his heart, something told him that
-Campanula could have no place in that new life. It meant the social ruin
-of Jane du Telle.
-
-Here, alone, away from the object of his passion, all this was very
-clear.
-
-Then that same old Scotch ancester, with the long upper lip, and the
-crude common sense, and the rigid belief in God and the law, came out of
-his cell and spoke to this effect. There is no excuse before God or man
-for adultery. Love, the child of God, has no part therein, but Lust, the
-child of the devil, and the end of Lust is Hell.
-
-All this, with the thoughts that went before it, was edifying and made
-for good, and the devil said nothing, for the devil, like the great
-Boyg, has a method with some natures. He does not strike, but lets the
-victim do the striking, hedging him gently, gently, letting him hit out
-widely till he is exhausted, or beats himself to death as the Blind One
-beat himself against the trees.
-
-Early in the morning Leslie rose, white and haggard, and dressed, and
-went off to the station without waiting for breakfast.
-
-"Tell Campanula San I am going to Arita on business, but will be back
-to-night. Tell her I am going alone," he said to Pine-breeze.
-
-"Kashko marimashta," murmured Pine-breeze, in a voice of devotion, and
-he departed.
-
-He was going to Arita to get beyond the reach of Jane, and lo! when he
-got into the railway carriage, she was there--not in the flesh, but in
-the spirit. And when he alighted at Arita, she was on the platform, and
-in the street she walked at his side.
-
-The tones of her voice thrilled him, and he smelt the perfume of her
-hair, he felt the curve of her waist, and his lips felt the satin of her
-throat, but the physical desire was small compared with the terrible
-sentiment that was born of it, the heart-breaking longing inspired by
-her idealized image.
-
-Passion, when it rises to this dimension in the mind of a man, has
-beautiful attributes as well as vile, it holds in its hands pictures of
-perfect innocence, besides the others.
-
-The devil takes care of that!
-
-He saw Jane not only as she was, but as she had been, fair, and fresh,
-and innocent, against the background of the beeches round Glenbruach,
-and the sea lochs, and the purple hills.
-
-What he did with his body that day in Arita, or where he wandered, he
-could never tell, for his mind was fighting a battle so fierce that all
-intelligent perception of outward things was blurred.
-
-At the end of it he found himself in a tea house sitting before some
-food which he had apparently ordered, and the battle was won. So he told
-himself.
-
-As a matter of fact, he was worn out. Passion was exhausted, fighting
-against fate, attempting to escape from the pursuing devils, beating
-himself against the trees, he had fallen beneath them, telling himself
-that the battle was won, wondering at himself that he ever could have
-even dreamed of the ruinous course of action which lust had urged him
-to.
-
-But the trees remained steadfast and unharmed, waiting only for the
-renewal of the madman's strength and the inevitable end.
-
-It was dark when he reached the Nagasaki station. He picked a riksha
-from a row of them standing outside with hoods up, for it had been
-raining slightly, and looking absurdly like a row of tiny, unhorsed
-hansom cabs, and told the man to take him to the House of the Clouds.
-
-He came up the hill-path, and as he came the wind, blowing against him,
-brought a perfume with it, the perfume of rain-wet azaleas. During the
-day and the previous night dozens of blossoms had broken forth, filling
-the garden with their fragrance and beauty; dozens more would be born
-ere the morrow under the light of the silvery moon now gliding up over
-the hill-tops behind a tracery of flying, fleecy clouds.
-
-As he approached the house, he saw through the open panel space the
-silhouettes of Pine-breeze and Cherry-blossom.
-
-They were sitting opposite to each other on their heels upon the lamplit
-matting, and seemed at first to be engaged in the game of kitsune-ken,
-but almost instantly he perceived that they were playing at no game, but
-were engaged in conversation. Alarmed conversation, to judge by the
-movements of their hands, now up-flung, now flung out sideways.
-Sweetbriar San was promenading the matting with tail fluffed out, now
-rubbing against Pine-breeze, now against Cherry-blossom, attempting
-apparently to join in the conversation, and seeming to share in the
-excitement.
-
-Something had happened of a tragic nature--but what? Two steps brought
-him on to the veranda two more into the house with his boots on, despite
-the clause in the lease.
-
-The Mousmés gave two little shrieks, wheeled round, and kow-towed before
-the August One.
-
-"What is the matter?" he asked. "Has anything happened? Is Campanula San
-safe?"
-
-Campanula San was quite safe.
-
-Then why all this? What had they been conversing about with so many
-exclamations?
-
-Confused replies.
-
-"Go," he said, "and bring me some tea, and ask Lotus-bud to come
-hither."
-
-In a few moments Lotus-bud, wearing a very white face, appeared, and
-kow-towed.
-
-He questioned her. At first her answers were vague, and then it all came
-out.
-
-Things had happened. Campanula San had gone into the town that day, and
-had met he whose head was like the rising sun (George du Telle in plain
-prose); and he with the sun-bright head had walked with her, and had
-spoken dishonorable words. Oh, shame!--he had offered her gold.
-
-"God!" said Leslie, staring at the bent figure on the matting before
-him.
-
-He remained speechless for a moment, then he took out his watch and
-looked at it: it was eleven o'clock.
-
-He turned furiously and strode out of the room: on the veranda he
-stopped like a horse suddenly reined in.
-
-Jane's image had appeared before him, turning him back.
-
-Suppose he were to go to the hotel now and drag George du Telle out and
-beat him within an inch of his life, as was his intention a moment ago?
-
-The idea of Jane in the midst of that scene brought his fury down from
-boiling point.
-
-He returned to the room, where Lotus-bud was still on her knees, with
-her hands clasped.
-
-Where was Campanula San now?
-
-In bed and asleep. She had returned, it seems, greatly troubled at noon,
-and had confided her trouble to Lotus-bud, making her promise to tell no
-one--Leslie San especially--and Lotus-bud had promised--with the result
-we have already seen.
-
-For a moment he thought of waking Campanula, but he dismissed the
-thought. The thing had occurred and was irremediable, the question now
-remained, what was he to do about George du Telle.
-
-He went up to bed. In times past he could have obtained his remedy.
-
-Where lay his remedy now? The law could do nothing; there remained only
-physical force.
-
-A wheezy pug dog protected by a woman's skirts, that is what George du
-Telle was. Leslie knew that if once he could catch the brute by the
-scruff of the neck, the only struggle would be with himself as to the
-limits of chastisement to be inflicted.
-
-If he could only get him away from Jane up a back street anywhere, just
-for five minutes! The thing was to be done. With the help of the astute
-M'Gourley he felt it was to be done, and would be done on the morrow.
-
-He got up and went to a rack on the wall where he kept his sticks, and
-took down a whangee cane half an inch thick, a most efficient instrument
-for the chastisement of a brute. He made it sing through the air, then
-he put it on the rack again and returned to bed, and slept soundly, far
-more soundly than he had slept the night before.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIV
-
- GEORGE DU TELLE
-
-
-He was awakened by voices. Sunlight was streaming into the room, the
-sparrows were bickering round the trees, and from below came the voice
-of Pine-breeze crying, "Irashi, condescend to enter!"
-
-Then Jane's voice: "I don't understand what you say. Stop rubbing the
-matting with your nose. I want your master." Then an octave higher,
-"Richard!"
-
-"Hullo!" cried Leslie, leaning on his elbow, and scarcely able to credit
-his ears.
-
-"Oh, you are there! Come down at once, I must speak to you. Quick!"
-
-"What on earth has happened?"
-
-"All sorts of things."
-
-"I'll be down in two minutes, but for goodness sake tell me what _is_
-the matter."
-
-"Can I speak without any one understanding?"
-
-"Oh, that's all right."
-
-"Well, then, George has bolted."
-
-"George has _what_?"
-
-"Gone away."
-
-"Where has he gone to?"
-
-"Oh! come down and I'll tell you everything. Dick! Dick! is that a bath
-I hear you dragging over the floor? Dick, if you dare to have the
-impudence to keep me waiting whilst you take a bath, I'll--I'll come up
-and pull you out of it. Do come on!"
-
-"Directly!"
-
-"Well, don't be long," grumbled Jane; and she apparently took her seat
-on the cushions upon the matting, for he could hear her grumbling about
-the absence of chairs.
-
-This was a new development of affairs. George bolted! It was just what
-one might have expected of the man, to insult a girl and then fly from
-the wrath to come.
-
-It was rather a relief, too, viewed by the light of morning. No man
-likes the task of thrashing a dog that has misbehaved: the thing has to
-be done, but it is unpleasant, and if the creature runs away and hides,
-so much the better. And the thrashing of a fat, wheezy pug without teeth
-or means of defense was what the punishment of George du Telle would
-amount to.
-
-He dressed rapidly and came down to the room where Jane was sitting on a
-cushion, trying to read the _Japan Mail_.
-
-"Oh, there you are! Come and sit down. No, not beside me; right
-opposite, if you please."
-
-"Tell me all about it."
-
-"Oh, there's not much to tell. I was in bed nearly all yesterday with a
-headache, and George went off for a walk in the afternoon; said he was
-going to call on _you_. I told him you had gone to Nagoya."
-
-"Arita."
-
-"It's all the same--then he went out, I don't know where, and that is
-the last I've seen of him. At nine yesterday evening they brought me a
-note saying he had gone to Osaka, and to follow with our luggage."
-
-Leslie whistled.
-
-"What are you whistling about?"
-
-"Osaka! Why, that's over three hundred miles away!"
-
-"Where is it?"
-
-"On the Inland Sea."
-
-"Where's that?"
-
-"Oh, it runs from here up to--well, practically to Osaka. At least, it
-doesn't exactly reach from here, you have to go through the Straits of
-Tsu-shima."
-
-"Well, I don't care what Straits you have to go through; he's gone to
-Osaka on important business the note said. Now, what business can have
-taken him there. What do they do at Osaka?"
-
-"Make all sorts of things, from machinery to tea-pots, and so on."
-
-"Well, he can't have gone to buy machinery or tea-pots--what can it
-_mean_? He was so good, too, yesterday; brought me up some antipyrine,
-and wanted to fetch a doctor, and plumped up my pillows, and then went
-out and off to Osaka without a word, and how did he get there? He says
-follow by next boat to-morrow. I was going to ask the hotel people, but
-I didn't like to. I just told them I knew he was going, and I was going
-to follow him to-morrow."
-
-"There's no railway to Osaka," said Leslie, "for this bit of Japan is an
-island. He must have gone by a Holt liner; one started last evening. The
-Canadian Pacific boats don't stop at Osaka, they go right on to
-Yokohama. I suppose he means for you to follow by the Messagerie boat
-that leaves to-morrow evening."
-
-"I'll give him tea-pots," said Jane gloomily, "when I catch him! The
-idea of his leaving me like that! In a strange country, too. I wonder
-_what_ is the meaning of it all!"
-
-"Perhaps he went away--because of a girl."
-
-"You mean he's run away with some girl!" flashed Jane. "Why don't you
-say so if you mean it?"
-
-"Because I don't mean it. I said 'because of a girl,' not 'with a
-girl.'"
-
-"Dick, you know something!"
-
-"Yes, I do."
-
-Jane turned pale, and he hated to see her like that, but he had suddenly
-made up his mind to tell her all.
-
-"He met Campanula yesterday afternoon, and, not to put too fine a point
-upon it, insulted her."
-
-"Oh, Dick!" said Jane, turning, if possible, paler than before. She
-stared at him in a frightened way, then she recovered herself. "There
-must be some mistake; she must have misunderstood him. He couldn't have
-done such a thing; however foolish he may be, he's a gentleman."
-
-"Yes, a gentleman in England, but not a gentleman in Japan. He--God damn
-it!" blazed out Leslie suddenly, bringing his fist down with a bang on
-the matting--"he offered her money."
-
-"I must go to him at once," said Jane, making as if to rise, "and ask
-him if this thing is true."
-
-"Sit down for a while; you can't possibly get to Osaka to-day. Oh, it's
-true enough. I was in a boiling rage last night when I came home and
-heard it all. I was going down to the hotel with a stick to have it out,
-and then I thought of you, and the disgrace and uproar there would be,
-so I just bit on the bullet and went to bed. Honestly, I was going to
-have got him somewhere by himself to-day, and have it out with him, but
-it seems he prefers insulting women to facing men. Forgive me, Jane, for
-all this; I feel bitter about it, but I hate to have to say these things
-to you."
-
-"It was good of you to think of me last night," said Jane in a broken
-voice, gazing at the matting as she spoke, then looking up full in his
-face, "very good of you."
-
-"Oh, I suppose it's really nothing, after all," he said. "Those
-confounded fools that write books about Japan have got it into English
-people's heads that every 'Jap-girl,' as they call them, is a
-what's-its-name at heart. Let's say no more on the matter, the affair is
-closed. Have some breakfast?"
-
-"No, thanks; I'm too much troubled and worried," said Jane, sighing and
-folding her hands in her lap.
-
-"Oh, don't trouble about it. I told you because--well, I thought you
-ought to know."
-
-"Richard," said she, looking up, "if you meet George again--"
-
-"Don't be a bit alarmed. I will do nothing to him except to cut him. He
-has run away; that closes the affair entirely. A man can only be really
-angry with a man."
-
-"Richard," said she, now half tearfully, "I'm going to say something I
-want to say. Men don't understand women. I'm fond of George. Men are
-always talking about love, and so are novels. I never loved George that
-way. I don't think I ever loved any one really in that way, but I have
-an affection for George; I suppose that is the best name to give it. I
-know he's ugly, I know he's a lot of things he ought not to be, yet I
-feel he belongs to me.
-
-"It's the sort of feeling one has for an--for an animal. I'm just
-telling you what I feel. An animal may be terribly ugly, yet one may
-love it. George has been very good to me, and he has grown into my life;
-that is the only way I can express it.
-
-"Do you know, Dick, when you have your face very close to another
-person's face you cannot tell what they are like. Well, it's just the
-same with marriage. After people have been married some time they don't
-see each other as they saw each other before; they have lost their
-identity--each is part of the other. And, Dick, I know George has been
-wicked, but ought we not to remember, the day before yesterday--"
-
-"Yes," he said; "the day before yesterday I kissed you."
-
-"It was a moment of weakness on my part," continued Jane. "We are all
-very weak and wicked, but I have always been faithful to my husband--I
-should say, to myself. It is strange to talk like this."
-
-"The whole affair is closed," he said. "Let us wipe the slate clean and
-begin again."
-
-Sitting opposite to her here in the morning light he was a very
-different person from the man wandering about Arita yesterday, pursued
-by her image.
-
-The course of a great passion like his is not a high level line. If a
-man were to live through such a phase of existence at Italian opera
-heights he would be mad or dead in a very few days.
-
-Its course is most like the temperature chart of a typhoid fever case:
-tremendous ups and downs, fever point now, a few hours later almost
-normal.
-
-He clapped his hands, and Pine-breeze appeared.
-
-"Breakfast," he said. "You'll stay to breakfast," turning to Jane. "And
-there is something I forgot day before yesterday. You have come to see
-Japan--well, look here--"
-
-He went to a big lacquer cabinet where he kept his papers, and returned
-with a large, square, cream-colored card covered with Chinese
-ideographs.
-
-"What is it?" said Jane, turning it over.
-
-"An invitation to a garden-party. A man named Kamamura is giving it
-to-morrow at O-Mura."
-
-"A Japanese garden-party!" said Jane, with interest in her voice.
-
-"Yes, very Japanese. He told me to bring any of my friends."
-
-"But to-morrow," said Jane--"I am going away to-morrow."
-
-The words went through him like a pang.
-
-"Never mind," he said. "Your boat does not start till evening; you will
-have plenty of time to get back."
-
-"I'd love to go," she said; "but--are you sure it's all right for me to
-go without an invitation?"
-
-"Perfectly, or I would not bring you."
-
-Pine-breeze entered with a tray.
-
-"Where," enquired Leslie, "is Campanula San?" Campanula San had not
-risen yet; she had a headache.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXV
-
- RETROSPECTION
-
-
-"I'll go up and see her," said Jane, when they had finished breakfast.
-"May I?"
-
-"Yes, if you like; Pine-breeze will show you the way--but, Jane, say
-nothing to her of what occurred yesterday; she thinks nobody knows
-except one of the servants here."
-
-"I'll say nothing," replied Jane; "but I've got some antikamnia tabloids
-in my pocket, fortunately, and I'll just make her take one."
-
-"All right," said Leslie; "but for goodness sake don't poison her."
-
-This was another point on which Jane had not altered. As a girl she had
-been possessed by a passion for drugs, and would swallow anything in the
-way of medicine she came across or was given. She had always been
-doctoring rabbits and other unfortunate animals, and had once nearly
-poisoned herself by taking half a bottle of pain-killer for a dose. And
-now here she was, nearly fifteen years after, in Japan, going upstairs
-to doctor Campanula, with just the same manner and seriousness of face
-with which long ago, medicine bottle in hand, she would give the order:
-"Prize its mouth open, Dick; don't hurt it. Steady now, I'm going to
-pour."
-
-Quarter of an hour later she came down triumphant.
-
-"She took it like a lamb. She's the dearest child! Now I'm off. I have a
-hundred things to do. Will you walk down with me as far as the hotel?"
-
-He accompanied her to the hotel, and neither of them spoke much on the
-way.
-
-"I won't ask you in," said Jane, when they reached the door, "because it
-wouldn't be proper. Now let me see. To-morrow is the garden-party; we
-might do something to-day, you and Campanula and I--might not we?"
-
-"We could run over to Mogi," he said. "We can get rikshas, have luncheon
-there, and come back to tea at my place; and to-night there's an affair
-on at the O Suwa temple, we might go there. Shall I call for you at
-twelve or so?"
-
-"Yes," said Jane, "if you'll bring a chaperon. You see, now George is
-away I must be awfully 'propindicular,' like that person in Uncle
-Remus--the Terrapin--wasn't it?"
-
-"I'll bring Campanula--or one of the Mousmés, at a pinch."
-
-"Campanula chaperoning me!" said Jane with a laugh. "Well, I don't care.
-It's only for the sake of Mrs. Grundy."
-
-"There is no Japanese Mrs. Grundy."
-
-"No, but there is an English one."
-
-They parted, and Jane entered the hotel.
-
-She went to her bedroom, got her writing-case out of a portmanteau, and
-began to write. She was writing a letter to George.
-
-The first began:
-
- "Your abominable conduct has been discovered. You have heaped
- shame on me, you have heaped shame on yourself--"
-
-When she got as far as this she found that it was too melodramatic,
-somehow, and the "heaped shames" did not ring true, so she tore it up
-and began again:
-
- "My cousin, Richard Leslie, sent for me this morning in great
- distress. _How_ you could have acted as you did towards that
- sweet child surpasses me. Fortunately for yourself you have run
- away--"
-
-She tore this up too, flew into a temper with herself, and then wrote as
-follows:
-
- "GEORGE,--I've heard everything. Dick is furious, but he's not
- going to do anything, so just stay at Osaka till I come, and
- don't go bolting off anywhere else. And don't drink too much
- port, for if you get another attack of gout _I_ won't nurse
- you.--JANE.
-
- "_P.S._--You ought to be ashamed of yourself."
-
-She sealed this classical epistle and addressed it. Then she remembered
-that she might just as well have left it unwritten, for there was no
-communication to be had with Osaka till the morrow; and if she posted
-it, it would go by the same boat as herself. So she tore it up.
-
-Then she sat down on the side of her bed and bit a corner of her
-handkerchief.
-
-She was thinking.
-
-To-morrow she would never see Dick again, most probably, after that.
-
-She had never loved Dick, that is to say in the good old _Family Herald_
-way. Their boy and girl relationship had been anything but sentimental.
-
-Recalling the past she could conjure up no tender pictures.
-
-She could see herself clinging to a rod bent like a bow, and shouting to
-Dick: "Now then, chucklehead, gaff him!"
-
-She could see herself tramping after him like a squaw after a chief on
-rabbiting expeditions--dozens of pictures like this, but none of them
-sentimental. She had never thought of marriage till the day she received
-a letter from Dick, asking her to marry him; to which she replied by
-writing half a dozen letters refusing him, which letters she tore up one
-after the other, and then wrote a seventh accepting him, which she
-posted.
-
-Now one of the worst evils in an accepted proposal of marriage is this.
-That directly they hear of it, the girl's relations, male and female,
-take their implements--nets, ferrets, and so on--and go off rabbiting in
-your past.
-
-Dick had not much of a past as far as size goes, but it was well stocked
-with game for hunters such as these.
-
-So well stocked that old Mr. Deering, a retired London wine merchant who
-had taken a country seat in Scotland, near Glenbruach, put his foot down
-and forbade Jane to have anything more to do with her cousin: an order
-which would have driven her straight into his arms, had not the
-unfortunate Dick, hearing of the inquisition that had been made, come
-North inflamed with rage and whisky.
-
-Men drank harder even in the 'eighties than they do now, and Scotland
-was never the home of abstinence; yet the scene Dick Leslie created in
-Callander went beyond the bounds of even Scottish convention, and
-utterly destroyed any chance of his marriage with Jane du Telle.
-
-Remembering his description of the affair which he gave to M'Gourley on
-the Nikko road, you will agree with me that he was not a man who viewed
-his own acts--well, as others viewed them.
-
-In this, however, he was by no means singular.
-
-Jane, sitting on her bed and biting the corner of her handkerchief, was
-at the same time looking back back over the past. She was a person with
-an infinite capacity for affection, with no capacity at all for a Grand
-Passion. Her life was made up of a bundle of petty interests, and her
-history was the history of a pure and somewhat commonplace soul.
-
-She had loved Dick as a brother in the past, and now that he had come
-into her life again after all those years (even after that terrible
-scene long ago), bringing with him so much from the happy days that were
-for ever gone, her heart went out to him as it had never gone to human
-being before.
-
-And to-morrow she must say good-bye to him, and never, perhaps, see him
-again.
-
-They must part; there was no other thing to be done. She was her own
-mistress, with plenty of money at her command; she could have flown in
-the face of society, and made Dick forever her own. Such a course did
-not even occur to her, for she was a creature bound by the laws of
-convention, almost as rigidly as you or I by the laws of gravity.
-
-Out of very light-heartedness she would do things and say things that
-would have been dangerous symptoms in a woman of a sterner mold; and men
-had often pursued her, led on by this laughing spirit that vanished
-behind a veil, which, being lifted, disclosed an adamant door.
-
-Her great danger lay in her compassionate emotions, and all the womanly
-nature that lay behind them. Her great danger lay in Richard Leslie, for
-he was the only being that had ever aroused them to their full strength.
-
-All at once she cast herself upon the bed, and after the fashion of her
-childhood, buried her face in a pillow, and sobbed, and "grat."
-
-When she had occupied herself thus for some ten minutes, she rose and
-looked at herself in the glass, and wondered at her own distorted image,
-and how she could possibly be such a fool. But she felt better; the pain
-of parting with Dick was not quite so bad, and she felt kindlier towards
-George.
-
-If his conduct had taken place in England, I doubt if her anger would
-have been so soon assuaged. But they were in Japan--and the Japs, you
-know!--
-
-
-
-
- PART THREE
-
- THE BROKEN LATH
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVI
-
- THE BROKEN LATH
-
-
-A heat wave from the Pacific had stolen over Nagasaki, and the windless
-night was filled with stars and lights.
-
-Stars in the sky, and stars in the harbor, long wavy reflections of
-light from the ships in the anchorage, and ten thousand lanterns
-spangling the mysterious city.
-
-A spangle of colored lamps that spread away to the base of the O Suwa
-hill which they stormed, covering it with a thousand sparkles like
-phosphoric sea-spray, and cresting its summit with a burning zone,
-bright as the snow crest of Fuji.
-
-It was a gala night, and the O Suwa, that galaxy of temples, had called
-the true believers in love and beauty to worship in the name of
-religion.
-
-From the great double temple, which is the crowning glory of the hill,
-Leslie and his companions looked down upon shrine after shrine, broad
-flights of steps stained with the soft amber and pink of lantern light,
-and the colored crowd ever shifting, and murmurous as the sea.
-
-The shadow spaces and the vagueness of night made great distances in
-this dim but splendid picture, till the moon, rising over the hill-top,
-chased the shadows away, paled the lamps, and drew the distances
-together.
-
-Touched by her light the crowd below became sonorous as a musical glass
-touched by the finger; the murmur of voices, the ripple of laughter, the
-sigh of moving silk and the flutter of a thousand fans intensified, rose
-blended and mixed, and dwelt in the air a nimbus of sound. The native
-city beyond grew more distinct, yet more unreal in the moonlight, which
-strengthened the black shadows of the wooded cliffs and converted the
-harbor into a trembling mirror.
-
-"We shall never see anything again so beautiful as that," said Jane, "so
-mysterious, so strange."
-
-He did not reply. A small hand had stolen into his; it was Campanula's.
-She, too, was gazing at the scene around and below them, filled with who
-knows what thoughts.
-
-They were not alone here on the utmost heights; women, gayly dressed,
-were passing into the temple behind them to pray and clap their hands
-before their gods. Women surrounded them, laughing, chattering,
-dispelling quaint perfumes on the air from large incessantly-waving
-fans. From the tea houses behind the temple came the thready music of
-_chamécens_ and sounds of unseen festivity; and from the great park
-beyond, through the hot night, the perfume of azaleas and the odor of
-the dew-wet cryptomeria trees.
-
-"Come," said Jane, "let us go and take the picture with us before it
-gets dulled. I will never forget this night--there is something in the
-air of this place I have never felt before. No, thanks, I don't want to
-see the tea houses, I am quite content with this; let us go down right
-through it, and home."
-
-They descended the broad flights of steps through the murmuring,
-laughing, and perfumed crowd. There was something in the air indeed,
-something as intoxicating as wine, yet far more subtle, subtle as a
-poison or a love philter.
-
-They found rikshas to take them back, and the whole party returned to
-the hotel, where they left Jane.
-
-"To-morrow at noon," she said to Leslie, as she turned to enter.
-
-"Yes, or even a little later; the train doesn't start till after one."
-
-"Good-night!" She waved her hand in the lamplit portico and vanished.
-
-They had no need of lanterns to show the way up the hill-path to the
-House of the Clouds; the path was a tangle of moonlight and lilac-bough
-shadows, a tremulous carpet upon which above them they perceived a
-creeping and colored thing.
-
-It was Cherry-blossom. She, too, had been at the festival at the O Suwa,
-and was now returning, wearied out and walking like a somnambulist, a
-lantern painted with butterflies held before her nodding at the end of a
-bamboo cane.
-
-In the house, when he had fastened the shoji and taken his night lantern
-from Pine-breeze, he turned to where Campanula was standing, a vague
-figure in the dimly-lit room. Yielding to a sudden impulse he picked her
-up from the ground, just as he might have picked up a child, and kissed
-her--kissed her just as he had kissed her when she was a child that day,
-years ago, in the valley by the Nikko road.
-
-That night sleep was impossible. The lights of the O Suwa burned before
-him, the perfume of the azaleas and cryptomerias pursued him, lighting
-always and leading him always to the same image--Jane.
-
-He lay considering what the future would be when Jane was gone; the
-rainy season would soon be upon them, and then the autumn and the winter
-and the spring again after that, and the years to come.
-
-Whilst thus torturing his soul his mind was steadfastly making a
-resolve. A resolve that, come what might, Jane must not go out of his
-life. That to-morrow he must act in such a way as to make her for ever
-his own.
-
-Come what might!
-
-There was no time left for thought, scarcely enough for action.
-
-He had quite ceased to battle with himself, to say this is right or this
-is wrong. Time had cut all these arguments short with the command: "Act
-now, now, in the next twenty-four hours! for after that your chance is
-gone."
-
-Then he began to sketch out the plan that had been vaguely forming in
-his brain all the evening--a plan that the villainous conduct of George
-du Telle made possible and practicable, and, to Leslie's mind, almost
-plausible.
-
-As he lay thus, a faint sigh came through the lattice of the window. The
-wind had risen, and was moving the cherry branches and the azaleas.
-
-Then came another sound--the sound of a stick tapping on the garden
-path, as if some blind person were cautiously feeling their way round
-the house.
-
-Up along the garden path, pausing now, now advancing, now dying away,
-now returning, somebody was promenading in front of the house, keeping
-watch and ward like a sentry, somebody whose feet made no sound,
-somebody blind.
-
-A feeling of sick terror came over him--terror not to be borne.
-
-He pulled the mosquito-net aside, and rose, shivering and trembling,
-feeling that he must look out at all hazards--even at the worst.
-
-He pulled the slats aside and looked out. Nobody. The moonlight lay on
-the azaleas and the garden path, but of the prowler there was no sign.
-
-Then he saw the cause of the sound. A lath broken from the house wall
-was hanging with tip touching the path, and tapping upon it as the wind
-shook it.
-
-He returned to bed, and tried to snatch a few hours' sleep, but the
-sound of the blind man tapping his way continued all night long--now
-faint, now loud, and insistent as the wind rose and fell.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVII
-
- THE "EMPRESS OF JAPAN"
-
-
-If Mr. Kamamura had sent a special messenger to Paradise to pick from
-the aviary there a blue-winged and bright-eyed day for his garden-party,
-he would not have obtained a better one than that which came by chance.
-
-A haze hid its coming. Just after sunrise, looking from Leslie's garden
-one could scarcely see Nagasaki down below--a toy town, seen through
-faint blue gauze, it seemed. The wind came in puffs, hot from the
-Pacific, shaking the cherry branches.
-
-The great double cherry-blossoms were falling. The close, even moss
-under the trees was white, like ground after a mild snowstorm.
-
-There was something in the atmosphere which loosened the petals this
-morning. At each puff of wind a fresh shower fell, sifting through the
-air to scatter softly on the ground. It was a ghostly sight in the gray
-and silent dawn; the trees seemed despoiling themselves, casting their
-blossoms from them in sorrow or fear.
-
-In the veranda stood the crimson garden umbrella, all damp with dew, and
-four pairs of dogs in a row. The house was deathly still; and one might
-have likened it to a tomb, had it not possessed so much the appearance
-of a bandbox, looped and latticed.
-
-Presently a faint sound might have been heard. A panel slid back, and a
-figure appeared, holding in its hand a lighted paper lantern.
-
-It was Campanula, clad in blue, her feet peeping from beneath her skirt
-like two white mice.
-
-She put out the lantern, and hung it on a hook. Then she put on a pair
-of clogs, and clicked down the steps. She went down the path, through
-the little gate, and vanished from sight; and as her footsteps died
-away, silence returned to the house and the garden.
-
-Then in a few minutes a glorious transformation scene took place. The
-haze turned to a golden mist; it became sundered by rivers of clear air,
-and from it leaped the sun, like Helios from the sea.
-
-Instantly the silence of the orchard became broken by the bickering of
-birds; a cock crowed somewhere in the back premises, and he was answered
-by the cock that lived half-way down the hill at the cooper's shop--who
-was answered, a minute later, by all the roosters in Nagasaki.
-
-The mist vanished entirely now, the sun began steadily to mount into the
-vault of perfect blue; his slanting rays shot through the cherry
-orchard, striking here the bole of a tree glistening with great tears of
-fragrant gum, and there on the ground besnowed with blossom, even the
-fierce old hills of the landscape garden lost something of their
-ruggedness in the warm and mellow light.
-
-Then the house began to awaken. Pine-breeze appeared on the veranda, and
-after Pine-breeze the other Mousmés all busy, or appearing so, dragging
-out futon to air for a moment in the morning brightness, and lacquer
-screens to be dusted.
-
-"Summer has come in the night," said Lotus-bud, pointing out the fallen
-cherry-blossoms.
-
-"Yes," chimed in Pine-breeze, "but spring has gone."
-
-"I dreamt last night of frost." This from Cherry-blossom, who was busily
-engaged watching the others at work.
-
-Frost is a bad dream in Japan, and the Mousmés conferred in murmurs as
-to what it might mean.
-
-"I know," said Lotus-bud suddenly, with an air of conviction.
-
-"What?"
-
-"The riksha man will die."
-
-"Which?" asked Pine-breeze.
-
-Then the two Mousmés began to "guy" Cherry-blossom as to the number of
-the riksha man destined to die.
-
-"Ichi-ban, Ni-ban, San-ban,"[3] murmured Lotus-bud.
-
- [3] Number one, number two, number three.
-
-"Shi-ban, Go-ban, Roku-ban," rippled Pine-breeze.
-
-"Hachi-ban!" suddenly cried Lotus-bud, with an air of inspiration.
-
-"Ku-ban!" replied Pine-breeze, with the air of going one better.
-
-"Leslie San!" said Cherry-blossom: and Pine-breeze got up and scuttered
-into the house, where Leslie San was calling for his bath to be heated.
-
-An hour later he appeared on the veranda, fully dressed.
-
-He noticed the promise of heat in the air; he noted the great fall of
-cherry-blossoms that had occurred during the night; he noted the lantern
-that Campanula had hung on the hook.
-
-Then he left the veranda, came down into the garden path, and through
-the gate.
-
-Outside the gate there was a little by-path that led upwards and to the
-left, between a double bank of bushes to an open space like a natural
-platform, from which a splendid view of the harbor and hills could be
-obtained, A great camellia tree forty feet high grew here, alone in its
-splendor, and beneath it he stood gazing at the harbor.
-
-He could hear the faint monosyllabic cry of the brown hawks ever
-circling above the blue water, and the distant sound of a drum from the
-_Rurik_ where she lay at anchor. He could see the sampans shooting
-hither and thither, carrying fruit and what not to the ships in the
-anchorage, and the Junks floating like brown phantoms past the shadow of
-the opposite cliffs.
-
-But his eye was searching for something that was not there.
-
-He looked at his watch, put it back in his pocket with an impatient
-gesture, and continued to gaze.
-
-Suddenly--Hrr-'mph!--Haa-aar!--the blast of a syren came shouting up the
-harbor, and chasing the echoes through the hills. The brown hawks rose
-and circled in wild flight, and past a bend came a great, white,
-double-funneled steamer.
-
-It was the Canadian Pacific boat, the _Empress of Japan_, touching at
-Nagasaki, and due to leave the morning following for Yokohama and
-Vancouver.
-
-He watched her for a moment as she swam to her berth, beautiful and
-graceful as a swan. Then he turned to the house.
-
-To-morrow morning he and Jane would be on board that boat, bound
-northward up the Inland Sea, past Tsu-shima, past Osaka, past Yokohama,
-and away across the blue Pacific to Vancouver.
-
-The whole plan was cut and dried. Jane had given no consent; that did
-not matter. She would consent; he felt the power in himself to _make_
-her consent.
-
-Men of his stamp, lazy, neurotic, yet strong-willed, stung into action
-by love or hate, sometimes assume momentary but terrible command over
-events; they infect with their passion, infuriate with their hate, or
-paralyze with their love.
-
-He entered the house, ordered breakfast, and enquired for Campanula.
-
-She had gone down at dawn, said Pine-breeze, to see O Toku San, the poor
-girl who was so ill, and was now dying. He was glad Campanula was out,
-and determined if possible to get his preparations over before her
-return. Jane and he would return from Mr. Kamamura's about six that
-evening. It would be time enough then to tell Campanula of his journey.
-
-As he breakfasted, he completed that part of his plans which had
-reference to Campanula.
-
-She would be safe and well looked after by M'Gourley, till--he came
-back. He told himself he would come back some day; perhaps in six months
-or so he would come back.
-
-And why should he worry about leaving Campanula for a time? He had often
-gone away before, once as far as London; he had always come back.
-
-Why should Campanula mind his going away again?
-
-Why, indeed!
-
-He tried to forget how her little hand had stolen into his on the
-evening before as if for protection. How, when he had kissed her, she
-had suddenly flung aside her timid reserve, and with her arms around his
-neck, but without a word, had told him what only a woman can tell
-without speech.
-
-Perhaps it was because he loved her far more than he knew, that his mind
-was filled with gloom and apprehension.
-
-But it was the time for action, not for thought; only a few hours lay
-before him in which to prepare for this journey--the journey from which
-he would return quite soon perhaps.
-
-He would leave the house just as it was to Campanula and the Mousmés
-till he came back and made other arrangements. M'Gourley, as his agent,
-would supply them with all the money needful just as he had done before.
-
-Then he called Pine-breeze and told her to get his portmanteau up to his
-room, as he was going on a journey.
-
-He packed hurriedly, whilst Lotus-bud handed him things. He wanted to
-get the packing over and done with.
-
-The strong sunlight reflected from the matting lit up the room with a
-golden glow. Pine-breeze in the kitchen below was singing a song about a
-lilac bough--the same song he had heard in the orchard that day when
-Campanula had cried: "Hist, some one at the gate!"
-
-He leaned back sitting on his heels to listen. He heard the end of the
-song now. He did not hear it that day, for Jane, knocking at the
-veranda, had cut it short.
-
-This was the gist of the last verse:
-
-
- "_The bee comes no more
- When the lilac's white blossom is dead_."
-
-Then he went on with his packing at a furious rate, stuffing in shirts,
-collars, handkerchiefs, his mind wandering over all sorts of subjects.
-
-His packing finished, he went to the window, took out his pocketbook,
-and examined its contents. Three hundred and ten pounds, half in
-circular notes, half in notes of the Bank of England.
-
-Then he took out a check-book and a stylograph pen, and wrote a check
-for five hundred, payable to himself.
-
-Ten minutes later he was in a riksha making for the Bund, where he
-stopped at Holme & Ringers, the shipping agents, bought two first-class
-tickets for Vancouver, and changed his check, receiving part in cash,
-and part in a check upon the National Specie Bank of Yokohama.
-
-It was now eleven o'clock, and he had practically completed his
-preparations. He had now to see Mac, and he turned his steps to the
-office, which was only a stone's throw from the shipping agents. Mac was
-writing letters.
-
-"Morning," said he, glancing up, and seeming surprised to see his
-partner at that hour.
-
-"What's agate?"
-
-"I am," said Leslie, trying to assume a jovial manner. "I'm off for a
-holiday, and I want you to look after things same as you've done
-before."
-
-"This is sudden," said Mac, going on with his correspondence without
-looking up.
-
-"Oh, it's never too sudden for a holiday. And see here, I'd better leave
-you some ready cash: here's a check for two fifty. I want you to look
-after the bairn whilst I'm away."
-
-"Keep the money," said Mac, "and pay me--when y' come back. Ay, ay,
-it'll be soon enough then--soon enough then."
-
-"I'd sooner leave you the money."
-
-"Weel, put it in that drawer."
-
-"Well, you _are_ a bear this morning. See here, I've put it in the
-drawer, but I'll see you again before I go: I'm not off till to-morrow."
-
-"Imphim!" replied the Dour One, and Leslie went off.
-
-Your true Scot has a very nasty habit of expressing his bad opinion of a
-man. He does it in a round-about way, using hints and innuendoes,
-instead of coming to the matter by a direct route.
-
-What Mac suspected or what he knew, Leslie could not tell; judging from
-his manner, however, he knew or suspected a lot.
-
-However, he had no time to trouble about Mac. He had one thing more to
-do before meeting Jane, Mr. Initogo the landlord had to be interviewed,
-and the rent paid.
-
-There was a fair of a sort on in the street that formed the shortest cut
-to Mr. Initogo's. It was filled with a many-colored crowd, flags were
-fluttering, awnings flapping in the wind; every shop had some extra
-advertisement to attract customers, and during the past night, like
-mushrooms, extra booths had sprung into being.
-
-A roaring trade was going forward; here, all kinds of fruit, there all
-kinds of fish, some with bunches of violets in their mouths; cakes
-reposing on branches of cherry or myrtle; cakes in the form of donkeys
-and monkeys and goats; cakes shaped like spinning-tops; cakes in the
-shape of suns, moons and stars; candied beans, beans mixed with comfits,
-kites, masks, and paper dragons. Paper fish shaped like carp for the
-Little-boys' Festival of the 5th of May.
-
-The noise and bustle somehow pleased Leslie, and soothed him; and he
-drifted along with the chattering stream of men, women, Mousmés, little
-boys and mere babies. Some of the children had long, curved trumpets of
-glass, from which they blew the most horrible of hobgoblin sounds. Here
-a man was frying pancakes, wrapping them in rice paper, and flinging
-them to unseen customers in the crowd, who flung him back the money.
-Here a person in spectacles, who looked like a professor of chemistry
-gone mad, was blowing from a glass-blower's tube dragons and fish in
-sugar-candy. Apothecaries, with great golden eyes painted on their
-booths, were selling little rice paper charms, one to be taken dissolved
-in water for the stomach-ache, two for lumbago, three for migraine. Here
-stood a man who would pull your teeth out with his fingers, three sen a
-tooth.
-
-The cheap curio dealers were in evidence with their wares cheap and bad;
-those quaint perambulating curio dealers, who, as a rule, only start
-business at sundown, and whose stock-in-trade include old top hats, old
-boots, old--anything--European. "Caw--caw--caw!" You look up, and see a
-great kite straining at its strings.
-
-And then the umbrellas! Leslie had a good view of them, for he was head
-and shoulders taller than any one in the crowd. Red, pink, gray,
-gray-green, pink-and-white, blossom-bestrewn, stork-bestrewn, a shifting
-mass of color reflecting the sunlight.
-
-But though he saw all this, and though the noise and bustle and laughter
-and general atmosphere of festivity fell in with his humor, his thoughts
-were far away at Osaka; he was wondering what George du Telle was doing,
-and what George du Telle would say in a day or so, and how he would
-look. He had never hated George du Telle really till now that he had
-determined to rob him of his wife.
-
-Now that he was about to commit, or attempt to commit, a vile and
-abominable act against George du Telle, that person seemed to him the
-acme of all things vile and abominable.
-
-Suddenly, through an opening in the crowd, Leslie caught a glimpse of a
-face, the face of a blind man, stolid, stony, with a flattened nose and
-wearing an indescribable expression of eld, weariness, and misfortune.
-
-It was only a momentary glimpse, but revealed just for a moment, and
-contrasted with the shifting colored mass around him, with the noise and
-laughter, the sunlight and the movement of life, it was like a vision of
-death.
-
-Leslie stood for a moment startled and chilled; the joyous exaltation in
-his mind a moment ago had vanished: it was as if a cloud had come
-between him and the sun.
-
-Why were these things always occurring to fret his soul and trouble his
-imagination? This blind man was nothing but an ordinary blind man of
-Japan such as one might see any day. The broken lath that had troubled
-him all night was but a broken lath; the song of the mushi that had
-started that infernal sound in his head was but the sound of an insect
-buzzing; the azalea that had caused that frightful dream was but a
-flower.
-
-These slight things, he told himself, acting on a brain made
-over-sensitive by opium, were not warnings, but simple causes of complex
-effects. And he passed on his way, cursing himself for a fool, till he
-reached the shop of Mr. Initogo.
-
-That gentleman, for a wonder, was not making tea, but the sight of
-Leslie San instantly inspired the desire for his favorite beverage,
-caused him to clap his hands, and the tea-tray to appear in the hands of
-his wife almost instantly upon the sound.
-
-He received his rent, which he put away with an appearance of
-indifference, expressed sorrow on hearing that Leslie was going away for
-even a short time, but joy at the thought that the journey might benefit
-his honorable health.
-
-He was really fond of Leslie, this old Japanese gentleman; but the worst
-of the flowery Japanese language is that it remains always, so to speak,
-at boiling point, and towards friend or perfect stranger is the same.
-You can't cool it, and you can't warm it.
-
-Whilst they were talking Kiku came in; her eyes were red and she had a
-snuffle in her voice.
-
-She had been, it seems, to see the poor girl who was dying, O Toku San;
-Campanula was with her.
-
-"Ah, yes," said Mr. Initogo, as his daughter retired upstairs. "Most
-sad, poor girl. A man whom she loved left her, and she is dying of it,
-just as a flower dies from want of water."
-
-Leslie looked at his watch: it was after twelve. He hastened from the
-shop of Mr. Initogo, and securing a riksha drove to the Nagasaki Hotel
-on the Bund.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVIII
-
- M'GOURLEY'S LOVE AFFAIR
-
-
-At about three o'clock on that eventful day M'Gourley met one of Holme &
-Ringer's clerks in the street.
-
-"So your partner's off for a holiday," said the clerk.
-
-"So he tells me," replied Mac.
-
-"He's going pretty far afield," went on the clerk; "Vancouver isn't--"
-
-"Where did you say?" cut in M'Gourley.
-
-"Well, he's bought two tickets for Vancouver this morning, one for his
-cousin and one for himself. She is married, and they are going to pick
-her husband up at Yokohama," he went on, smiling slightly.
-
-"Vancouver!" said Mac. He stood for a moment in astonishment, then
-hailing a passing riksha he jumped into it, and told the driver to take
-him to the House of the Clouds.
-
-Campanula had just returned, she was in the garden; and when she heard
-his step coming up the hill path she came to the gate to meet him.
-
-She greeted him with a smile, but there was something about her that
-struck M'Gourley strangely.
-
-She had a far-away look in her face, and she wore an abstracted air.
-Away from the world her mind seemed wandering in some far, strange
-country, whilst her little body walked beside him, and her lips answered
-his questions, and told him things.
-
-"O Toku San is dead," said she; "I have just left her." She spoke
-gravely, but without any sorrow in her voice; one might even have
-imagined that she was referring to some good fortune that had fallen on
-O Toku San; and perhaps, indeed, she was.
-
-"Ay! puir thing, is she?" said Mac, whose mind was also astray.
-
-He asked had Leslie returned, and Campanula told him that he had gone to
-a garden-party at Omura, and would not return till evening.
-
-"He is going away," finished Campanula, pausing on the veranda steps and
-unlatching the strap of her sandal.
-
-"Oh! so he's told you?" said Mac.
-
-Campanula said nothing; possibly she did not hear the question, so
-absorbed was she by her own ideas and thoughts. Suddenly she said,
-turning to Mac, who was leaning his shoulder against the veranda post
-and feeling in his pocket for his tobacco-pouch:
-
-"I saw the Blind One to-day as I was leaving O Toku San's. I did not
-speak to him; he spoke to me. He said the master of the house on the
-heights is going on a journey from whence he will not return. Then he
-went away. A wind from the hill blew my kimono apart and a chill came to
-my breast. I do not know who the Blind One is--perhaps he is Death."
-
-M'Gourley, as she spoke, noticed that she had refolded her kimono from
-right to left instead of from left to right.
-
-Now in Japan, the only people who wear their kimonos folded from right
-to left are the dead.
-
-He felt sick and shivery at the words she had just spoken, and he could
-not reply to them or ask questions; he was filled with a horror of the
-subject, a dead, blind terror of it. He looked down and said gruffly:
-
-"What way is that you've folded your kimono? Just run into the house and
-put it right. I'll bide here on the verandy and smoke my pipe."
-
-She vanished into the house, and Mac sat down, but he did not light his
-pipe. What could be the meaning of all this? Surely he was dead, and
-laid long ago in the green woods of Nikko--could it be possible that the
-dead return?
-
-Why was it that she alone could see him, hear him, and speak to him?
-
-His eye caught the crimson azaleas as they bloomed in their beauty and
-splendor, and the Nikko road rose before him, the mysterious valley,
-peopled by the crimson flowers, the cypress trees, the far-off country,
-and the distant sea hills beyond Tanagura.
-
-He heard Leslie's voice as it denied the existence of God, and declared
-that if he had ever been given a creature that loved him, he would have
-cared for and loved it.
-
-Then he felt something touch his shoulder, and, turning with a start,
-found it was Campanula.
-
-"Come," said she, in the manner of a person who would say, "I wish to
-show you something."
-
-He rose and followed her into the house. She led the way upstairs, and
-down the narrow passage to Leslie's room.
-
-At the door she paused and pointed to an object on the floor. It was a
-portmanteau packed and strapped.
-
-They both looked at it without saying a word: a silence, that spoke of
-the deep, unconscious understanding between them.
-
-"Come," said Mac in his turn, and taking her by the hand he led her
-downstairs.
-
-Had the portmanteau been a coffin, containing some being beloved by
-Campanula, he could not have spoken more gently, or led her away from it
-more tenderly.
-
-Downstairs the old, rough, gruff M'Gourley seemed very much perturbed.
-
-Could he have found Leslie alone at that moment, a very regrettable
-scene might have ensued.
-
-And yet at the bottom of all his anger and perturbation lay a golden
-gleam. If Leslie went off like this, Campanula would be all his (Mac's)
-own.
-
-He had no idea of marrying her, or anything of that sort; but he had an
-immense idea of possessing her all for himself.
-
-He had, proposed to buy a half share in her at Nikko, and he would have
-made a bad bargain, for during the last five years he had possessed a
-full half share without paying a cent, unless we count the pounds and
-pounds expended on dolls, sweets, and so forth.
-
-But this was not like having her all to himself: a creature to feed and
-clothe, to buy hairpins for and tabis, fans and sweets; to listen to of
-an evening, as her fingers strayed over the strings of a _chamécen_, or
-her tongue told fabulous tales of folk clad in fur or feathers.
-
-All at once, as he paced the room, he turned to her, literally picked
-her up, hugged her, gave her a kiss, and said: "He'll come back to you.
-Dinna greet; I canna stand it. I'll be back and see you the morrow morn
-before he goes."
-
-He hurried out of the house, and went raging down the hill.
-
-To be in anger with one whom one loves works, indeed, like madness in
-the blood.
-
-Mac, as he plunged down the hill, was lashing himself into a fury
-against Leslie. He turned into a saki shop and drank half a pint of that
-seemingly innocuous liquor; then he went to the office, took a whisky
-bottle from a cupboard, and poured himself out a liberal peg.
-
-He was an abstemious man as a rule, but once he took the bit between his
-teeth nothing on God's earth except death would stop him, till the next
-morning's headache came.
-
-At five he recognized that he was hopelessly embarked on a grand drunk,
-and determined to take a riksha over to Mogi; there complete the
-business, and return in time next morning to see Leslie before he
-started.
-
-Just before starting from the hotel a waiter brought him out a cablegram
-from Shanghai, which had come round from the office. It was relative to
-a bank disaster that had occurred in India. He read it, stuffed it into
-his pocket, and ordered the Djin to proceed.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIX
-
- THE GARDEN-PARTY
-
-
-Within an hour of the great city of Nagasaki, in the midst of a park
-that was at the same time half a garden, lay the country residence of
-Mr. Kamamura; once a man who carried two swords, with the longer of
-which he would have beheaded you for two words and have done it with
-neatness and despatch, now a gentleman in a frock-coat and tall hat,
-wearing gold-rimmed glasses and a smile.
-
-The long, low house, white as snow and surrounded by a narrow veranda,
-faced west, and was surrounded by a garden recalling the gardens of Dai
-Nichi Do: a garden filled with the music of fountains and the poetry of
-birds.
-
-Alas! on the day of his garden-party Mr. Kamamura, seized with the
-spirit of modernity and the savagery of civilization, not content with
-the music of heaven, and prompted, no doubt, by the devil, had hired a
-brass band and placed it in a little kiosk, with orders to bray Strauss
-in the face of Nature from three o'clock till dusk.
-
-There were many guests, and the gardens soon presented an animated
-appearance. Many of the ladles had retained the national dress, and
-marvelous were the fabrics to be seen in the form of the obi or flowing
-loose in the graceful kimono.
-
-Some of the guests surrounded a pair of jugglers, two terrible men
-dressed in red, who fenced with and transfixed one another with long
-swords, swallowed fire, and belched it like dragons.
-
-In another corner of the grounds fireworks were whizzing and cracking,
-filling the clear air above with a thin blue haze through which, just as
-Jane and Leslie entered the grounds, there rose a wonderful fire balloon
-made of colored paper and fashioned in the form of a turkey cock.
-
-"It's like a party in the lunatic asylum," whispered Jane, as they
-threaded the maze of guests in search of their host and hostess. "And,
-Dick, you _do_ look perfectly awful in that panama amongst all these men
-in tall hats--I mean they look awful beside you, but they are _de
-rigueur_; and it's better to be _de rigueur_ and look frightful, than to
-be not _de rigueur_ and look nice. How d'y' do?" and Jane extended her
-arm, pump-handle fashion, to the little gentleman with the sallow face
-to whom Leslie was introducing her.
-
-"Much pleasure, much pleasure," said Mr. Kamamura, whose English was
-mixed and limited, and who, like Kiku San, had not completely mastered
-the letter "l." "Will the honorable rady so make equal health Nagysaki
-(the proper way to pronounce Nagasaki) you stay? So good. Over there
-Mrs. Kamamura; you make known;" and Mr. Kamamura presenting his arm Jane
-was led away through the crowd like some tall and graceful frigate
-threading a maze of painted cock-boats.
-
-Leslie, left to himself, turned with a gloomy expression of countenance
-to where the jugglers were dislocating each other's necks. He did not
-see them; he was looking out of the side of his eyes at Jane.
-
-She had been led across one of the willow-pattern bridges, and he could
-see her now standing at one of the kiosks, a tea-cup in her hand. She
-was talking to Mr. Kamamura and a little lady in European dress--Mrs.
-Kamamura, probably.
-
-What could they be talking about? Conversation, probably, sufficient to
-dislocate the gravity of a Socrates.
-
-He turned his head impatiently and tried to take an interest in the
-jugglers, without success. There was something deeply irritating about
-the scene of frivolity in which Fate had staged the last scenes of the
-most important act in his life.
-
-The _Empress of Japan_ sailed at eight on the morrow morning, and as yet
-he had made no movement as regards Jane. All this trifling was but a bad
-prelude to those words so soon to be spoken.
-
-He little knew that Tragedy stood at his elbow in the form of James
-Anderson, manager to M'Cormick, the great silk dealers on the Bund.
-
-"Why, Leslie, man! I thought I knew the nape of your neck. How are you?"
-
-"Hullo, Anderson!" said Leslie, returning the other's hand-grip. "What
-are you doing here?"
-
-"I'm just looking round," said Anderson. "I'm just looking round, and
-you'll admit it's worth the turning of one's head. I shouldn't mind
-exchanging places with Kamamura. It's not a bad life, his, by a long
-penny. This affair will bang a hole through a good pile of ten pun
-notes. They tell me those balloons made like dicky-birds cost--I forget
-now, but it's a good pile of dollars a-piece, for every feather is
-painted correct, and that's just like the Japs--make a pretty thing, and
-then stick it away in some hidey-hole where no one can see it, or burn
-it--What's agate now?"
-
-The crowd was in motion, flooding towards a part of the grounds where a
-little stage had been erected, backed and half surrounded by cypress
-trees. On the stage, against the dark-green background, could be seen
-the graceful figure of a girl.
-
-She was dancing. It was a dance that at first insipid, became after a
-few moments fascinating, lulling, exquisite to watch as the movements of
-a flower blown by the wind.
-
-They drew close and stood to look. The girl was dressed in amber and
-scarlet, with a scarlet flower in the night of her hair--a _bijou rose
-et noir_, recalling Baudelaire's Lola de Vallence.
-
-Her supple body seemed inspired by the mysterious music we hear
-wandering through the land of spring, and expressing itself in the
-voices of the wind and the birds and the streams.
-
-She seemed to have learned her art in the academy where the daffodils
-are taught to dance and the bluebells to make their bow.
-
-"It's the Geisha Kamamura has hired--paid her something like two hundred
-to dance that fan-dance, or whatever they call it. She was a Tokyo girl,
-and had left the business to get married, but she couldn't withstand the
-two hundred; the best Geisha in Japan, they say. What's this her name? O
-something San. Hoots! but my memory is gone fishing to-day. Listen!
-she's talking."
-
-The dance had ceased, and the girl, in the silence that followed the
-tinkling of the three accompanying _chamécens_, had commenced one of
-those poetical recitals in favor with an intellectual Japanese audience.
-
-Her recitation was sad; it bemoaned the thing we call change. The
-cherry-blossom is fair, ran this untranslatable poem, but it must die
-and give place to the lotus.
-
-"I cannot understand this depression in trade," murmured the muted voice
-of Anderson, as he stood beside Leslie. "It's been spreading and
-spreading, and there's nothing it hasn't spread into."
-
-And the lotus parts with its petals to give place to the chrysanthemum,
-the Royal chrysanthemum.
-
-"We've had a good year till now, ourselves, but hech! man, there's a
-matter of fifteen thousand gone over the breaking of the Bombay and
-Benares bank--clean gone, never to come back--and that takes the sugar
-off the cake--ay, the devil himself won't whistle it home again."
-
-And the gray winter sky and the snowflakes, like ghosts of flowers,
-finished the poem of the Geisha, whilst Leslie stood transfixed for a
-second, frozen by the news he had just heard, and unable to turn. He
-turned round full on Anderson.
-
-"The breaking of _what_?"
-
-"The Bombay and Benares. Have you not heard the news? It came by cable
-to-day at one o'clock. Good God! man, you hadn't much money in it, had
-you?"
-
-"Everything--everything," said Leslie in a stammering voice. "I'm
-smashed."
-
-He linked his arm in Anderson's, and dragged him along hurriedly. He
-wanted to go, nowhere in particular, but just get away from the spot
-where Anderson had sentenced his future to death.
-
-"Man, I'm sorry! Man, I'm sorry!" said his companion. "I should not have
-told you so sudden, but how was I to know?"
-
-"Smashed--smashed--smashed!" said the other, talking as a man talks in
-his sleep.
-
-He held Anderson by the arm as he spoke. All around spread the
-many-colored crowd; fans were fluttering, umbrellas bobbing, tongues
-chattering, soft women's voices inlaid like music of gold on the silvery
-music of the fountains and cascades.
-
-"Anderson, man, are you sure they've broken--sure?"
-
-"Ay, ay, sure. Better to tell you straight. Sure as my name's James
-Anderson."
-
-Boom! Boom! Boom! the band broke into a march by Gungl, and Leslie,
-releasing Anderson, ran after a figure in the crowd some twenty paces
-distant.
-
-"Jane! I must speak to you at once."
-
-Jane looked up from the little Japanese gentleman who was escorting her,
-saw the distress in her countryman's face, and dismissed Asia with a
-bow.
-
-"I have just had frightful news. Come with me to some quiet place till I
-tell you about it. Anywhere. No matter where. See! there are no people
-across that bridge where the trees are; let us go there."
-
-Jane spoke not a word, but he saw that she was very pale and trembling.
-That weakness of Jane's gave him a strange sensation. It said something
-that her lips had never uttered.
-
-They passed over the little bridge. They passed over another bridge;
-there were no people here, only trees; they went no further.
-
-They were in a small forest. The garden was lost to sight; only the
-music of the band, muted by distance, told of the festivity so near, yet
-apparently so far away.
-
-The trunk of a felled tree lay in the path; they sat down upon it by
-common consent. Leslie took out his watch, and looked at it attentively.
-Then, still holding it open in his hand, he spoke.
-
-"I want you to listen to me for five minutes--only five minutes; you can
-hold the watch, and measure the time yourself. Jane, when a man is going
-to be hanged, they will give him a glass of brandy to help him along to
-the drop. Will you do the same by me--give me five minutes' clear
-speech, and let me say just what I please without interruption; will
-you?"
-
-"Yes," said Jane, and she shivered as she spoke the word. She had
-maintained a strange silence; impulsive as she was, one might have
-expected her to implore him to tell her the worst, and have it over.
-Perhaps she understood dimly that Leslie's disaster was personal to
-herself, a cataclysm the effect of which would reach her future as well
-as his.
-
-"You remember," he said, after a moment's pause, "how I asked you to
-marry me long ago, and everything that happened after? Well, when I
-think of all that, it seems to me that I must have passed through life
-in a state of insanity, and only awakened to consciousness now. Jane, I
-am feeling now as a man must feel when he wakes in hell, and
-remembers--No matter, it is all done with now; and even if you loved me
-as well as I love you, it's all over and done with and useless now."
-
-He leaned forward with his face in his hands. Jane did not speak; the
-music of the band had ceased, and the only sound to be heard was the
-weary sighing of the warm wind in the pine-tops.
-
-"I'm broken utterly, I have just heard the news. Don't think I brought
-you here to listen to me whining about my misfortunes. I brought you
-here to tell you I love you. I meant to have carried you off in the
-steamer that sails to-morrow morning for the north-west. With the money
-I had yesterday, I would have supported you, I would have torn you out
-of society, and made you love me. I would have made you a Paradise. Yes,
-by the living God, a Paradise, or there's no such thing as love. But now
-I'm a beggar, and I love you too well to drag you into my ruin, and it's
-Fate, Fate, Fate that has done it all, and cursed be its name!"
-
-Again silence, broken only by a faint, dreary sound. Jane was weeping.
-
-"Don't, for the love of God!" cried Leslie. "Don't cry, or you'll make
-me cry too. Oh, miserable life! why was I ever born into it?" And he
-moved his hands in the air, as blind Samson might have done amidst the
-pillars of the temple.
-
-A bird piped three times in the recesses of the wood, three flute-like
-notes sweet as the notes of a bell-bird. They were answered by its mate
-in the branches above.
-
-Leslie put his hands to his ears, as if to shut out the happy sounds.
-
-Jane's tears had ceased, but she did not speak, she did not breathe;
-only a deep sigh occasionally escaped from her.
-
-"And now, we can only say good-bye. Let us part here for ever. We will
-meet again in--Heaven," said Leslie, with a horrible shuddering laugh.
-
-He stretched out his hand and took hers. She let him have it without
-seeming to know that he had taken it.
-
-She was murmuring his name in a whisper, staring at him and through him,
-and as if her gaze was fixed on some terrible catastrophe beyond.
-
-"Dick! Dick! Dick!" All poetry could not express the helpless, hopeless
-sorrow she put into those three little whispered words.
-
-Suddenly, filtering through the wood, came a sound, a voice, a spirit,
-that unrolled around them a panorama of loch, moor, and sky, hills
-purple with heather, lakes dark with shadow. "Auld Lang Syne."
-
-The band was playing it, villainously enough, but the distance smoothed
-away the defects.
-
-It broke Jane down. She leaned against his shoulder and sobbed like a
-child, and then, with both hands upstretched, she drew his face down to
-hers and murmured--no matter what.
-
-Then all at once--heedless of ruin, forgetting all things, carried away
-on the dumb tide of passion, the wave that had retreated before
-disaster, only to come shoreward again resistless and gigantic--all at
-once, and without a word, he took her in his arms.
-
-It was the eloquence of passion and despair, the speech without tongue
-of a soul tormented and _in extremis_.
-
-It broke Jane down utterly. Hopeless, haggard, and pale as a person in
-the midst of some terrible disaster, she clung to him, whispering in his
-ear words repeated over and over again, with that reiteration which
-forms the rhetoric of the dying and the lost.
-
-She had cast everything aside, the world, her position in society, her
-husband, her wealth. Passion and pity, that strange combination, had for
-the moment blinded her eyes to everything but the man beside her--but
-did she love him? Fate had not yet disclosed the answer to that old
-fatal question, that sphinx-like question whose answer forms the plot of
-each man's story.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXX
-
- THE FALSE REPORT
-
-
-Mr. Kamamura never again saw his two tall English guests.
-
-As a matter of fact, they sought for and found a means of leaving his
-garden by a back way that brought them to a road which in its turn
-brought them to the station.
-
-And the native gentlefolk in the train, which brought them back to
-Nagasaki by six o'clock, could not imagine what great grief it was that
-made the tall English lady so pallid, and so like the very picture of
-woe.
-
-At the Nagasaki station Leslie helped his companion into a riksha.
-
-"Don't come back with me to the hotel," she murmured; "I will drive
-there alone. I want to be alone, quite alone for a while. All our
-arrangements are made, and there is nothing more to be said. God help
-me!--God help us both! Good-bye, Dick, for the present."
-
-He watched her drive off. Then he took a riksha himself, and ordered the
-man to take him to the House of the Clouds.
-
-Everything was arranged. Jane was to be his for ever. But there was no
-triumph in the thought. The battle had been won by his own weakness, not
-by his strength. Jane's compassion for him had betrayed her.
-
-They were to sail to-morrow by the _Empress of Japan_. He was to stay
-the night at the hotel, for he could not possibly remain the night at
-the House of the Clouds having once bidden good-bye to Campanula.
-
-Beyond Vancouver lay the scheme traced out by him, accepted by Jane.
-They were to buy a farm in the Canadian North-west, and live there for
-ever happily. He would not touch a penny of her money; he had jewelry
-worth at least four hundred pounds, which would be amply sufficient to
-start on. His share in M'Gourley's business was to be left for
-Campanula.
-
-It is true he knew little about farming, but--love can do anything.
-
-Viewed from a natural standpoint the whole arrangement was not only
-natural but praiseworthy. That a woman, fond of a natural life in the
-open air, should leave a creature like George du Telle, and cast herself
-into the arms of a man like Leslie. What could be more in keeping with
-the grand aim of Nature, the propagation of the fit in body?
-
-Viewed from a social standpoint the whole arrangement was wickedly
-absurd. And from a moral standpoint simply wicked.
-
-Nature stood decidedly on Leslie's side; God (according to the
-theologians) and society stood against him.
-
-These problems are occurring every day and every minute of the day,
-perplexing the thinker and confounding his belief, unless he looks upon
-the world as a higher thing than a breeding ground for animals. And it
-is generally by their side issues they are to be solved, and the side
-issue in Leslie's case was Campanula.
-
-He was nearing Danjuro's shop when he saw a riksha with a disguised
-figure in it.
-
-It was Mac, and Mac was disguised with whisky.
-
-He was flushed, and his hat was on the back of his head, and he was so
-obviously fuddled that the gentle Japanese who passed smiled and passed
-on, without looking back.
-
-"Stop!" cried Leslie to his man, then jumping out he ran to M'Gourley's
-riksha, which had also stopped.
-
-"Have you heard the news?"
-
-"News?" said Mac. "News--what news?"
-
-"The Bombay and Benares bank is broken."
-
-"It is not," replied the other, fumbling in his pocket. "Na, na--false
-report. Bombay and Ta-Lien, you mean." Then, drawing a paper from his
-pocket, and with ferocity: "Canna ye read?"
-
-Leslie took the paper; it was a cablegram from Shanghai.
-
- "False report. Bombay and Ta-Lien suspended. Bombay and Benares
- safe.
-
- JARDINE MATHESON."
-
-"Good Heavens!" said Leslie. "When did you get this?"
-
-"Hoor ago. Drive on, you--wheel me awa'."
-
-"Where are you going?"
-
-"Mogi--to forget I was ever such a fule as to go into partnership with a
-man like--_wheel me awa'_!"
-
-"Steady on, steady on," said Leslie.
-
-"I'll be back the morrow morn and see y' before you're awa' to
-Vancouver." Then, leaning back as the riksha started: "I may be a fule,
-but I'm not a blind fule, and I'm not a--(_hic!_)."
-
-The riksha joggled over a stone and he collapsed like a shut-down opera
-hat.
-
-Leslie continued his way.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXI
-
- FAREWELL
-
-
-It was seven o'clock; the birds were taking their nests in the cherry
-orchard with one final burst of chattering. The sky in the west,
-wave-green melting into vaguest blue, held one solitary cloud floating
-like a rose-leaf beneath the evening star. Leslie stood at his gate,
-looking for the last time at the twilight stealing over Nagasaki. He had
-just arrived.
-
-M'Gourley's words were still ringing in his ears, and his mind was in a
-turmoil.
-
-He was in exactly the position of the man who has cheated unwittingly at
-cards, who has found out his mistake, and who has still time to save his
-honor.
-
-If the Bombay and Benares bank was safe, it was his plain duty to go at
-once to Jane du Telle and inform her of the fact. She was laboring under
-the impression that he was a ruined man. Half of her sympathy, the whole
-of the present situation, had arisen from that misconception. To leave
-her under this delusion would amount to fraud--the meanest of all
-frauds.
-
-He was feeling this keenly, but unfortunately his mind, instead of
-grappling with the situation, and forcing his body to act, was engaged
-in cursing Fate, and the tangled net in which he found himself taken.
-
-Was it his fault that the false news had come just at the psychological
-moment, the news that had actually thrown Jane into his arms? He kept
-asking himself this, as he gazed across the dusk-eyed harbor to the
-hills now becoming dimmed by the twilight.
-
-This last touch of Fate would, if he accepted it without resistance, rob
-him of the last remnants of honor and all self-respect.
-
-His hand was upon the stakes, he had a moment to decide whether to take
-them or leave them: to be a thief or an honest man.
-
-Suddenly, as if silence had placed her finger upon their throats, the
-birds in the orchard ceased their chatter.
-
-The warm day dying seemed to have called all the spirits of beauty from
-air and earth and sea, to stain the skies above its death-bed with the
-tints of the ocean and the dawn. Over the tomb of light Color, Light's
-firstborn child hovered like some exquisite ephemera whose wings change
-from beauty to beauty before dissolving for ever in darkness and death.
-
-The silence that had come over the orchard was broken occasionally by
-little outbursts of squabbling from over-full nests, sounds like the
-flirting of a fan amongst the leaves, chirrupings that told of
-differences made up. Then final and complete silence that would last
-till night woke the owls.
-
-Leslie at the gate suddenly made a gesture as if he were flinging
-something away, turned on his heel, and came towards the house.
-
-He entered just as Cherry-blossom, with a white flower in her hair, her
-amber sleeves fallen back and exposing her fore-arms, her body stretched
-to its fullest height on the tips of her tabis, was in the act of
-lighting the big hall-lamp. She looked like a little cat stretching
-herself.
-
-A pang went through his heart. He would never see Cherry-blossom light
-the big hall-lamp again, never again see Pine-breeze bring in the
-tea-cups, nor Lotus-bud carrying off Sweetbriar San to his box in the
-kitchen.
-
-You cannot possibly live in Japan without loving your maid-servants. I
-mean by love that sort of passion which was inspired in Matthew Prior by
-the lady of fashion aged five.
-
-It was a feature of the House of the Clouds that sometimes on the lower
-floor you would find a hall with two rooms on either side of it, and
-sometimes two rooms and no hall, and sometimes, in very hot weather, one
-huge room. The sliding paper partitions made this possible; nay, very
-easy, for Mr. Initogo had improved upon the ordinary Japanese method,
-being of an inventive turn of mind.
-
-He looked into the room on the right of the hall. A _chamécen_ lay on
-the floor, an hibachi showed a crimson spark, and a dwarf maple in a pot
-of Arita ware displayed its pretty form vaguely in the twilight.
-
-He looked into the room on the left: no one.
-
-Where was Campanula? She must have returned by this, surely. Perhaps she
-was upstairs.
-
-He went up, making little noise in his stocking-feet. At the door of his
-room he peeped in.
-
-There was Campanula. Oh, desolate sight! She was sitting on his big
-portmanteau all alone in the dusk. Her head was bent.
-
-She looked so forlorn and so small, and the sash of her obi so huge in
-comparison with the wearer, that he could not but recall how she sat
-that morning in the Tea House of the Tortoise. That morning, when she
-had likened herself to a lump of mud; the morning he had proposed to
-adopt her, and care for her, and make her a chattel of his own.
-
-A moment later, he had caught her up in his arms. She did not resist,
-but he seemed to have taken up a lifeless thing.
-
-As he carried her downstairs, had he known, it might have seemed strange
-to him that so great a grief should be so light a burden.
-
-He brought her to the room on the right, where Cherry-blossom had just
-lit the lamp, and sat down beside her on the matting.
-
-He took a cigarette from his pocket, and approached the tobacco-mono
-with it. Then, without lighting it, he flung the cigarette away.
-
-"Campanula, I am going on a journey. I did not tell you last night, for
-I had not made up my mind."
-
-"I have heard it," she replied. She sat there beside him, a small figure
-with head bowed and hands folded in her lap; and the sadness and
-sorrowful sweetness of those four words pierced his heart.
-
-To get this terrible interview over, to tear himself away at once, he
-would have sold years of his life. But it had to be gone through with.
-
-Whether she loved him as a woman loves a man, or a child loves a father,
-she loved him, loved him as no person had ever loved him before--and he
-knew it.
-
-Then he talked to her, telling her that he would come back.
-
-"I have been away before, Campanula, and I have returned. Will you not
-believe me that I will return?"
-
-"Ah yes," she answered, "but you did not go with her."
-
-He said nothing for a moment. There was a sound outside; it was the
-coolie he had ordered to take his portmanteau to the hotel. He heard
-Pine-breeze accosting him, he heard him go upstairs and come down again,
-walking heavily. It was like the sound of a man carrying out a coffin.
-
-He heard his steps on the garden walk dying towards the gate.
-
-How had she discovered with whom he was going?
-
-If she would only weep or cry out, or move, or break in some way this
-terrible stillness. If she would only reproach him. But she said
-nothing, nor even sighed. She seemed like a person stricken not by
-grief, but death. Then he began to talk again, telling her of the
-arrangements he had made. How M'Gourley San would look after her, just
-as he had done before, till he came back. And he would write every
-week--till he came back. And they would all be happy together again, as
-happy as ever they had been--when he came back.
-
-To which she replied:
-
-"If you are going away to find happiness, my happiness is great."
-
-Fancy a white house, lantern-lit, and steeped in dusk, a tall man
-walking away from it rapidly, three Mousmés on their knees on the
-veranda crying after the vanishing form: "Come again, oh, condescend to
-come again quickly!"
-
-The sound of their voices rings in his ears as he passes through the
-little gate. He hears it pursuing him like the faint murmur of bees,
-until a puff of wind blows it away and replaces it by the faint sound of
-the city below.
-
-Come again! He will never come again to lie in the hammock beneath the
-cherry trees. Never more shall Lotus-bud hand him the night lantern to
-light him to his bed, nor thy small hands, O Pine-breeze, bear him the
-brown leather cigar-case that thy small nose loved to smell!
-
-As he came down hill towards Nagasaki he felt as though he were leaving
-spring for ever behind him.
-
-Thrice he stopped as if to return, and stood gazing into the darkness of
-the uphill path, listening to the wind in the branches of the lilac
-trees.
-
-The last of these pauses ended more abruptly than the others, and he
-plunged on again down hill through the gloom.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXII
-
- HER HOUSE IN ORDER
-
-
-Left alone, Campanula sat, her hands folded in her lap--a Lost One
-indeed.
-
-Before her mental vision, beyond Japan, beyond that desolate country
-always surrounded with ice, the country where the bluebells grew--beyond
-all this lay the land where O Toku San had gone that day, the land where
-one never regrets, one never forgets, one never remembers.
-
-He had gone to find happiness. Not one word had she spoken to hold him
-back or keep him by her, this true daughter of Dai Nippon, soul sister
-of O Gozen San, daughter in spirit of the immortal Hirose.
-
-Cleopatra with the asp and all the mouthing heroines of history would
-seem cheap indeed beside this small and faithful figure to whom death
-was nothing, passion and personal happiness nothing beside the happiness
-of the being she loved.
-
-She sat for an hour scarce moving; then she rose up. She had no more
-time for personal thoughts; all things had to be left in order, and her
-trust to the least detail faithfully fulfilled.
-
-She called the Mousmés to her, and told them that now Leslie San had
-left, they would be discharged until he came back. They could go that
-evening to their homes in the city below. She would pay them their wages
-and a month in advance, and a little present for each out of money of
-her own. And the three kow-towed, delighted at the prospect of change
-and the month's money for doing nothing, and the little present besides.
-They never thought to ask her what she would do herself in the house
-alone, their butterfly brains were so filled with the thoughts of
-pleasure.
-
-Then she made Lotus-bud bring all the bills owing, bills yard long and
-extraordinarily minute in detail. These she discharged. There were chits
-out, but these were Leslie's affair, and he had no doubt settled them.
-
-She thought of Sweetbriar San the cat, and as he was fondest of
-Pine-breeze, she gave Pine-breeze a small sum to take him home and keep
-him, applying to M'Gourley San if more money were needful.
-
-Then she went upstairs to her own room and folded neatly the obis and
-kimonos in the drawers of the great lacquer cabinet. In one of these
-drawers were things she had only, as it were, dropped from her hand; the
-toys she had played with as a child. Here was the doll bought in Nikko,
-and bouncing balls, ever so many; and in a piece of rice paper, still
-ferocious, but terribly old and warped, the famous dragon.
-
-She took him out and tried to remove the paper from his sugar-candy
-sides, but it was stuck too tight. She put him back, and, holding the
-drawer with both hands, pressed her forehead against them.
-
-As she stood like this, mute and utterly motionless, the night breeze
-came through the window, bearing the perfume of the azaleas.
-
-It was as if they were calling to her, and she closed the drawer gently
-and turned, as if to say, "I hear."
-
-Then she came down and found the three Mousmés waiting, each with a
-lighted lamp on the end of a stick, and her frail belongings on her
-back, luggage consisting of cardboard boxes, except in the case of
-Pine-breeze, who was also burdened with a basket containing Sweetbriar
-San.
-
-They had received their wages, and there was nothing left for them now
-to do but go; which they did, after profound salaams, murmurs and
-declarations of personal unworthiness.
-
-Then Campanula found herself standing alone. The only living thing
-beside herself in the house was the mushi, that musician of the night,
-already saluting its mistress with a thin stream of song. She went to
-the doorway where it hung, and unhooked the little cage.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXIII
-
- THE "LA FRANCE"
-
-
-The fair that had been going on all day in the street leading to the
-Bund was still in full swing. A lurid sight the street presented, lit by
-lanterns of all colors, and flare lamps near the booths.
-
-Leslie was glad of the noise and bustle around him; one cannot think
-much when pressing one's way through a Japanese fair, colored lamps
-dancing, Mousmés laughing, and showmen shouting, rikshas passing at a
-trot, or attempting so to do, children blowing trumpets, babies whirling
-rattles, men-of-war's men from the ships in harbor walking four abreast
-and arm in arm, singing "Jean Francis de Nantes," or "We won't go Home
-till Morning." _Chamécens_ and moon fiddles buzzing and tinkling, dogs
-barking, and gakunin wailing.
-
-It was ten when he reached the hotel. In the entrance-hall, where the
-orange trees in tubs reflected the lamp-light from their glossy leaves,
-a Chinese hall porter in a blue silk blouse sat on guard. From the
-half-open door of the _salle à manger_, where a party of Russian
-officers were at dinner, came the sound of laughter and the clinking of
-glasses.
-
-As he entered the hotel the whole world around him changed. Campanula
-vanished from his mind. He was no longer in Japan. He was in the same
-house with Jane, and in a few more hours she would be his.
-
-The Chinaman rose from his seat when he saw Leslie enter and led him
-down a corridor to the door of the private sitting-room where he had
-dined with Du Telles. He had promised Jane to wait for her there till
-the morning.
-
-The sphinx-like Celestial closed the door, and Leslie found himself
-alone.
-
-The windows were open on account of the warmth, and they gave a view of
-the narrow mysterious harbor that seems to have been cut in the old
-heroic days by some giant who was also a poet. The high cliffs cast
-their shadows like sable robes upon the water, jeweled with the lights
-of the shipping. The sky all silence and stars, paling now in the
-moonlight, was almost the sky of Europe. Orion was there, and the
-Pleiades, and Cassiopæa dreaming in her diamond-studded chair.
-
-The room itself was a strange mixture of Japan and Europe. The floor was
-the matted floor of Japan, the cane sofas might have been bought at
-Shoolbred's. The walls were as plain and unadorned as the walls of a
-Japanese house are wont to be--that is to say, under the fans which the
-hotel proprietor had fastened to them--fans from Kioto, Tokyo, and Nara
-crucified against the white paneling and looking like great butterflies
-in some giant's collection.
-
-He lit a pipe. Jane was upstairs in some room, but there were still nine
-hours of waiting to be done; and he had promised that he would not go
-upstairs if permitted to pass the night in the hotel, but wait patiently
-for her to come to him at the hour of starting.
-
-He felt that if he thought about her he would break his oath, so he
-drove her from his mind.
-
-He watched the twinkling lights in the harbor; those darting about like
-fire-flies were the sampans; that long hulk all crusted with light was
-the _La France_, the ship in which Jane had intended to sail for Osaka.
-It was after ten now, and she was overdue to leave. That sister-hulk,
-equally gemmed, was the Nord Deutscher Lloyd boat leaving at dawn for
-Colombo. Those three lights in a triangle were the anchor lights of the
-great Russian cruiser _Rurik_--the ill-fated _Rurik_.
-
-Suddenly a horn of light shot out from the bow of the _La France_, and
-she began to move like a glittering town towards the sea, and the wind
-from the west brought the faint music of a band. The _La France_ had
-unbuoyed and was away.
-
-He watched her as she picked her course through the shipping stealthily
-like a robber. Now with all side lights showing, now with them half
-extinguished as she veered to avoid the bell-buoy of the Atraska shoal;
-now a vague phantom swallowed by the shadows of the night.
-
-The hotel was silent now, the Russians had gone off to their ship.
-Somewhere outside, somewhere in the gloom of the mysterious night, a
-_chamécen_ was tinkling to the muttering of a little drum. What dancing
-girl was setting her steps to that tune--and where?
-
-He rose to his feet and began to pace the room, then he turned the lamp
-up till it smoked, and turned it down till it was nearly out, and cursed
-the burner for his own stupidity.
-
-Still the distant _chamécen_ kept up its buzzing to the devil's tattoo
-of the distant drum.
-
-He walked to the window and shut it. Result--absolute silence and
-stifling heat. No matter; anything was better than that infernal drum.
-
-He had shut out the drum, but he had shut in a mosquito. It was in the
-lace curtain, and its twang brought him again to his feet. He tried to
-find it in the curtain, failed, pulled the whole curtain down from its
-attachment, and trampled it under-foot.
-
-Silence, this time unbroken, until one of the fans upon the wall
-rustled, and from beneath it crept a frightful-looking spider as brown
-and as broad as a penny.
-
-He did not see it; he was sitting in the arm-chair with his head between
-his hands, breaking his promise to Jane.
-
-When it was broken he got up, crossed the room, opened the door, and
-went into the hall.
-
-The Chinese night-porter was sitting like a figure of stone in a blouse
-of blue silk. Leslie went up to him, spoke some words in a low tone, and
-handed him some money.
-
-The Chinaman rose and led the way upstairs. Down a passage they went
-till the guide stopped, pointed to a door, turned, and vanished as
-silently as he had come.
-
-Leslie went to the door and knocked softly. No answer. He turned the
-handle, the door opened and he entered--an empty room.
-
-A lamp was burning on a table in one corner, a bed stood close to the
-window: the bed was empty.
-
-It was Jane's room, for there lay her trunks. A glove lay on the floor.
-He picked it up, looked at it, smelt it, and then threw it down. The
-dressing-table held none of those articles of the toilet one might have
-expected to see. Beside the lamp on the side-table lay a letter.
-
-He had seen the letter almost on the first moment of his entering the
-room, with that vague, half-terrified comprehension which we may imagine
-in the brain of the bull when the sun-light flashes on the sword of the
-matadore.
-
-He approached it now, and read the superscription: "Richard Leslie, Esq.
-Important."
-
-He opened it, and a number of bank notes came out. These he laid on one
-side, took the letter that was with them, and began to read.
-
-He read the letter, not as if he were reading a letter, but the face of
-some scoundrel he had dragged by the ears into the zone of lamplight. He
-envisaged it, took whole sentences in _en bloc_. He read first at the
-end, then in the middle, then at the beginning.
-
-"And now good-bye for ever. Oh, Dick, don't think badly of me for this;
-I have only done what was right.
-
-"When you get this I shall be gone. I am leaving by the _La France_ to
-meet George.
-
-"I leave you money. Half what I have is yours; remember we are cousins,
-and ought to help one another.
-
-"Oh, Dick! Dick! I _can't_ do what you want. I am not thinking of myself
-but of my people. Imagine the disgrace and ruin it would bring them. My
-dear old father, it would kill him."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXIV
-
- AMIDST THE AZALEAS
-
-
-It was very late at night; clouds from the Pacific were rolling over
-Nagasaki, and it was evident that the hot weather of the last two days
-had been the prelude of a storm.
-
-The House of the Clouds, lamp-lit and deserted, cast from the opening in
-the shoji a long parallelogram of light that cut the darkness like a
-sword; a sword of light lying upon the veranda, the graveled walk, and
-the landscape garden.
-
-With the darkness outside had come a great silence broken only by the
-wind.
-
-Had you been standing on the veranda you would have sworn that some
-blind person was prowling before the house, soundless of foot and
-cautiously feeling his way by tapping on the ground with a stick.
-
-It was only the lath shaken by the wind, the tireless lath that all day
-and all the night before had kept the echoes of the garden answering its
-summons, and still kept up the unwearied sound-semblance of a blind man
-who walked without footstep, a patient sentinel, now advancing, now
-retreating, now at the garden gate, now near the azaleas, and ever
-waiting.
-
-The garden gate clicked, and hurried footsteps came up the path.
-
-It was Leslie, hatless, bright and wild of eye, walking rapidly, but in
-a tottering manner. His lips were of a dull purple color, and he had the
-aspect of a man heavily drugged with opium.
-
-He crossed the veranda and entered the deserted hall. He looked into the
-rooms on either side--they were both empty. Then he came back to the
-hall, and cried out, "Campanula!" The rafters returned the sound of his
-voice, but she did not answer.
-
-He was perfectly clear of mind, but his breathing was affected, and a
-deadly torpor hung over him which his will alone prevented falling.
-
-He took in all the details around him with extraordinary clearness,
-amongst others the fact that the mushi's cage had been removed.
-
-Having waited for a moment, straining his ears to catch the faintest
-sound, he seized the swinging paper lantern that lit the hall, and with
-it in his hand went into the kitchen. It was deserted. Then he went
-upstairs--every room was empty. It was like a house from which the
-people had fled in terror, and he came down again, wild with the
-apprehension of some unknown tragedy.
-
-He brought the lamp into the room on the right of the passage, and
-placed it on the floor. Something crimson lay on the primrose-colored
-matting. He picked it up; it was Campanula's obi. Why had she cast it
-there?
-
-He was looking round him as if for a person to explain all these things,
-when his eye caught an open drawer of the great lacquer cabinet that
-contained his papers. He looked into the drawer, and it was empty. It
-was the drawer in which he had placed the waki-zashi--the suicide sword,
-given to him by Jane.
-
-From the open drawer his eyes turned to the obi, which he had dropped,
-and then he looked round him, as Dives looks round him in that picture
-of Teniers, where Dives wakes in Hell.
-
-As he stood, the wind shook the broken lath outside, and played with it.
-"Tap! tap! tap!"
-
-He saw the sunlit Nikko road, the valley of the crimson azaleas, the
-Lost One who had loved him as no other being had loved him--the one he
-had lost for ever.
-
-She was dead, yet it was denied to him to find her, and clasp her in his
-arms, and die with her.
-
-Death was nothing, but never to find her again, never to see her again,
-or touch her small body, that was an agony far beyond death.
-
-He left the room, feeling by the walls like a man without sight.
-
-Outside, the world was in utter darkness. More clouds had rolled up over
-the sky, as if called by the Blind One, the tapping of whose stick
-betrayed him, as he walked, waiting for his prey.
-
-If he could find her, what cared he for the Blind One! If he could not
-find her he felt that he would be for ever lost. But he could never find
-her more, for the opium sleep was falling upon him now. He had no more
-strength to fight it, and the darkness of the pit lay around him.
-
-Suddenly, the night wind changed, and brought him the perfume of the
-unseen azaleas, and with the perfume a thin thread of song.
-
-It was the song of the mushi--the atom of life he had spared that day in
-his fury, even as God might now be sparing him--the mushi she had loved
-so well. Feeling by the veranda wall, he followed the song like a man
-led by a thread, and as he came he crushed something beneath his foot:
-it was the lath, whose sound would never trouble him again.
-
-He felt the azalea bushes around his knees, and advanced amongst them,
-still led by the tremulous song, till his foot touched something soft,
-and his hand a tiny cage, hanging to one of the crimson-flowering boughs.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXV
-
- BON MATSURI
-
-
-It was the 18th of August--the last night of Bon Matsuri.
-
-Under a sky splendid with stars, the hills about Nagasaki were gemmed
-with colored lights. Ten thousand colored lanterns adorned the terraced
-cemeteries, and towards dawn each lantern would be fixed to a tiny boat
-of straw, freighted with a few small coins, and some small offering of
-fruit, to stay the souls of the dead on their long journey home.
-
-M'Gourley had come out to see the fairy-like spectacle, for he knew that
-Mr. Initogo, that faithful old Pagan gentleman, was amidst the rejoicers
-on the hillsides, and had lit two lanterns, and freighted two small
-boats, for the souls of two friends he had known on earth.
-
-Just as the morning breeze began to blow, and before the first star had
-paled in the dawn breaking over the Pacific, the gazers from the ships
-and the shore drew their breath, for suddenly the whole hillsides seemed
-in motion, shifting and glittering down to the water's edge, till the
-ripples became surrounded by a zone of rose-colored fire.
-
-Then the water itself became dyed with the glow of ten thousand
-lanterns, each bravely upborne on its little ship of straw, whose sails
-took the Eastern breeze.
-
-As the fairy flotilla sailed away, spreading the harbor with light and
-color, ship after ship took fire, and ship after ship was lost.
-
-M'Gourley, hat in hand, stood watching till the last spark had vanished
-in the lilac of the dawn; then, with a sigh that spoke of things that
-were not, but might have been, he turned slowly home.
-
-
-
-
- * * * * * *
-
-
-
-
-Transcriber's note:
-
-Throughout the dialogues, there were words used to mimic accents of the
-speakers. Those words were retained as-is.
-
-Errors in punctuations and inconsistent hyphenation were not corrected
-unless otherwise noted.
-
-On page 17, a quotation mark was removed after "Lord sakes!"
-
-On page 29, a superfluous quotation mark was deleted.
-
-On page 29, a quotation mark was moved one space to the correct
-position.
-
-On page 47, a period was added after "as fraunk as mysel'".
-
-On page 81, "Lesile" was replaced with "Leslie".
-
-On page 120, "perfumed hair" was replaced with "perfumed hair".
-
-On page 128, "acros" was replaced with "across".
-
-On page 150, a quotation mark was added after "Lord and also
-the empire of the birds."
-
-On page 243, "though" was replaced with "through".
-
-On page 264, "horor" was replaced with "horror".
-
-On page 272, "Baudelaires" was replaced with "Baudelaire's".
-
-On page 281, "jewelery" was replaced with "jewelry".
-
-
-
-***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CRIMSON AZALEAS***
-
-
-******* This file should be named 55709-0.txt or 55709-0.zip *******
-
-
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
-http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/5/5/7/0/55709
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/old/55709-h_2017-10-08.htm b/old/old/55709-h_2017-10-08.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 9a6f157..0000000
--- a/old/old/55709-h_2017-10-08.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,10003 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml">
-<head>
-<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html; charset=ISO-8859-1" />
-<title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Crimson Azaleas, by H. De Vere (Henry De Vere) Stacpoole</title>
- <style type="text/css">
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
- }
-
-h1 {
- margin-top: 7%;
- text-indent: 0%;
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-h2 {
- margin-top: 4%;
- text-indent: 0%;
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-/* paragraphs */
-
-p {
- margin-top: 3%;
- margin-bottom: 3%;
- text-align: justify;
-} /* general paragraph */
-
-p.h2 {
- margin-top: 7%;
- text-indent: 0%;
- text-align: center;
- font-size: 150%;
- font-weight: bold;
-}
-
-p.indent {
- text-indent: 4%;
-} /* indented paragraph */
-
-.center
-{
- text-align: center;
-}
-
-.hr2
-{
- width: 90%;
- max-width: 90%;
- color: #CCCCCC;
- background-color: #FFFFFF;
- border: none;
- border-bottom: 6px double black;
- margin: 8% auto;
-} /* horizontal rule for chapter divisions */
-
-.pagenum {
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
-} /* page numbers */
-
-.center {
- text-indent: 0%;
- text-align: center;
-}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-/* Links attributes */
-
-a:link { color:#000000; text-decoration: none; border-bottom: 1px dashed #808080;}
-
-a:visited { color:#25383C; text-decoration: none; border-bottom: 1px dashed #808080;}
-
-a:hover { color:#008000; text-decoration: none; border-bottom: 1px dashed #808080;}
-
-a:active { color:#000000; text-decoration: none; border-bottom: 1px dashed #808080;}
-
-ins {text-decoration: none; border-bottom: 1px dashed #dcdcdc;}
-
-/* Images */
-
-img {
- padding: 6px;
-} /* without border */
-
-img.border{
- border: 1px solid black;
- padding: 6px;
-} /* with border */
-
-.image-center
-{
- text-align: center;
- margin: 1em auto;
-}
-
-/* Poetry */
-.poem {
- margin-left:10%;
- margin-right:10%;
- text-align: left;
-}
-
-.poem br {display: none;}
-
-.poem .stanza {margin: 4% 0% 4% 0%;}
-
-.poem span.i0 {
- display: block;
- margin-left: 0%;
- padding-left: 12%;
- text-indent: -12%;
-}
-
-.poem span.i2 {
- display: block;
- margin-left: 8%;
- padding-left: 12%;
- text-indent: -12%;
-}
-
-.poem span.i4 {
- display: block;
- margin-left: 16%;
- padding-left: 12%;
- text-indent: -12%;
-}
-
-/* Other */
-
-span.lalign {
- position: relative;
- margin-right: 4%;
- text-align: left;
- top: auto;
-}
-
-span.ralign {
- position: absolute;
- right: 10%;
- top: auto;
-}
-
-div.tnote {
- background-color: #CCCCCC;
- border-style: dotted;
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
- padding: 1%;
- font-style: normal;
- font-size: 90%;
- text-align: justify;
-}
-
- h1.pg { margin-top: 0em; }
- h3,h4 { text-align: center;
- clear: both; }
- hr.full { width: 100%;
- margin-top: 3em;
- margin-bottom: 0em;
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
- height: 4px;
- border-width: 4px 0 0 0; /* remove all borders except the top one */
- border-style: solid;
- border-color: #000000;
- clear: both; }
- </style>
-</head>
-<body>
-<h1 class="pg">The Project Gutenberg eBook, The Crimson Azaleas, by H. De Vere (Henry De
-Vere) Stacpoole</h1>
-<p>This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States
-and most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
-restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
-under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
-eBook or online at <a
-href="http://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you are not
-located in the United States, you'll have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this ebook.</p>
-<p>Title: The Crimson Azaleas</p>
-<p>Author: H. De Vere (Henry De Vere) Stacpoole</p>
-<p>Release Date: October 8, 2017 [eBook #55709]</p>
-<p>Language: English</p>
-<p>Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1</p>
-<p>***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CRIMSON AZALEAS***</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<h4>E-text prepared by Roger Frank, Ernest Schaal,<br />
- and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team<br />
- (<a href="http://www.pgdp.net">http://www.pgdp.net</a>)<br />
- from page images generously made available by<br />
- the Google Books Library Project<br />
- (<a href="https://books.google.com">https://books.google.com</a>)</h4>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<table border="0" style="background-color: #ccccff;margin: 0 auto;" cellpadding="10">
- <tr>
- <td valign="top">
- Note:
- </td>
- <td>
- Images of the original pages are available through
- the Google Books Library Project. See
- <a href="https://books.google.com/books?id=nxgNAAAAYAAJ&amp;hl=en">
- https://books.google.com/books?id=nxgNAAAAYAAJ&amp;hl=en</a>
- </td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<hr class="full" />
-
-<h1>THE CRIMSON AZALEAS</h1>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<div class="image-center">
-<img class="border" src="images/title_page.jpg" width="472" height="700" alt="" title=""/>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="pagev" id="pagev"></a>[pg&nbsp;v]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CONTENTS.</h2>
-
-<blockquote>
-<p class="center">PART ONE</p>
-
-<p class="center">THE TRAGEDY OF THE NIKKO ROAD</p>
-
-<p>CHAPTER <span class="ralign">PAGE</span></p>
-
-<p>I. <span class="smcap">The Road to Nikko</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page5">5</a></span></p>
-
-<p>II. <span class="smcap">The Blind One</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page11">11</a></span></p>
-
-<p>III. <span class="smcap">The Lost One</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page20">20</a></span></p>
-
-<p>IV. <span class="smcap">Amidst the Hills</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page25">25</a></span></p>
-
-<p>V. <span class="smcap">The Tea House of the Tortoise</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page31">31</a></span></p>
-
-<p>VI. <span class="smcap">The Dreamer and the Dragon</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page44">44</a></span></p>
-
-<p>VII. <span class="smcap">How Campanula Brought Fortune to the
-House of the Tortoise&mdash;and Other Things</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page54">54</a></span></p>
-
-<p>VIII. <span class="smcap">The Surprising Story of Momotaro&mdash;Akudogi
-and Spotted Dog</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page61">61</a></span></p>
-
-<p>IX. <span class="smcap">The House of the Clouds</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page71">71</a></span></p>
-
-<p>X. <span class="smcap">Of Mousm&egrave;s and Other Things</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page82">82</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="center">PART TWO</p>
-
-<p class="center">THE MASSACRE OF THE BLUE-BELLS</p>
-
-<p>XI. <span class="smcap">The Dream</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page91">91</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XII. <span class="smcap">The Foreign Devils</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page101">101</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XIII. <span class="smcap">The Monastery Garden</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page107">107</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="pagevi" id="pagevi"></a>[pg&nbsp;vi]</span></p>
-
-<p>XIV. <span class="smcap">Nagasaki by Night</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page119">119</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XV. <span class="smcap">M&#39;Gourley&#39;s Love Affair</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page124">124</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XVI. <span class="smcap">The Philosophy of Evil</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page135">135</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XVII. <span class="smcap">The House by Night</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page141">141</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XVIII. <span class="smcap">Mostly about Flowers</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page151">151</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XIX. <span class="smcap">The Stork and the Tortoise</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page172">172</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XX. <span class="smcap">The Song of the Mushi</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page183">183</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXI. <span class="smcap">M&#39;Gourley&#39;s Love Affair</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page194">194</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXII. <span class="smcap">The Complete Geographer</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page206">206</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXIII. <span class="smcap">The Struggle</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page213">213</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXIV. <span class="smcap">George Du Telle</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page223">223</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXV. <span class="smcap">Retrospection</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page232">232</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="center">PART THREE</p>
-
-<p class="center">THE BROKEN LATH</p>
-
-<p>XXVI. <span class="smcap">The Broken Lath</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page241">241</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXVII. <span class="smcap">The &quot;Empress of Japan&quot;</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page247">247</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXVIII. <span class="smcap">M&#39;Gourley&#39;s Love Affair</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page262">262</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXIX. <span class="smcap">The Garden-Party</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page268">268</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXX. <span class="smcap">The False Report</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page280">280</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXXI. <span class="smcap">Farewell</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page284">284</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXXII. <span class="smcap">Her House in Order</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page292">292</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXXIII. <span class="smcap">The &quot;La France&quot;</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page296">296</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXXIV. <span class="smcap">Amidst the Azaleas</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page302">302</a></span></p>
-
-<p>XXXV. <span class="smcap">Bon Matsuri</span>
-<span class="ralign"><a href="#page307">307</a></span></p>
-</blockquote>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page5" id="page5"></a>[pg&nbsp;5]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER I</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">THE ROAD TO NIKKO</p>
-
-<div class="poem">
-<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">&quot;Upon the road to Nikko,</span><br />
-<span class="i0">Where the pilgrims pray,</span><br />
-<span class="i0">Along the road to Nikko</span><br />
-<span class="i0">Either side the way,</span><br />
-<span class="i0">Thundering great camellia trees</span><br />
-<span class="i0">Decked with blossoms gay,</span><br />
-<span class="i0">Adorn the road to Nikko,</span><br />
-<span class="i0">The mountain road to Nikko,</span><br />
-<span class="i0">In the month of May.&quot;</span><br />
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="indent">The singer stopped singing and began to whistle.
-Then he broke out into prose.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Damn boots! I&#39;ll be lame in another mile. Why
-can&#39;t we be content with sandals like our &#39;brithers&#39; the
-Japs!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Dinna damn boots, but their makers,&quot; replied his
-companion, a sandy Scot of fifty or more, dressed in
-broadcloth and a bowler, a figure at once a blot upon
-the lonely road and a blasphemy against Japan&mdash;a blot
-whose name was M&#39;Gourley. &quot;I vara well remember
-when I was in Gleska&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page6" id="page6"></a>[pg&nbsp;6]</span>
-&quot;Oh, don&#39;t!&quot; said the poet of the Nikko road, Dick
-Leslie by name, a young man, or rather a man still
-young, very tall, straight, dark, and good-looking, and
-a gentleman from the crown of his close-clipped, curly
-black head to the soles of the boots that were torturing
-him. &quot;Don&#39;t haul up your factory chimneys, your
-smoke and whisky bottles in this place of places. I
-believe if a Scot ever gets into heaven he&#39;ll start his first
-conversation with his first angel by making some reference
-to Gleska: Look there!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Whaur?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;There!&quot; cried Leslie, turning from the direction of
-Fubasami and the beginning of the great Nikko valley
-before them, and pointing backwards away towards
-Kureise over an expanse of distant country where the
-clouds were drawing soft shadows across the rice fields
-and the sinuous hills; over little woods of fir and
-cryptomeria trees, lakes where the lotus flowers spread in
-summer, and the king-fisher flashed like a jewel; over
-occasional fields of flowers, flowers that grew by the
-million and the million.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Many of these details were absorbed and dulled by
-distance, yet still lent their spirit to the scene, producing
-a landscape most strange and quaint.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Nearly every other country seems flung together by
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page7" id="page7"></a>[pg&nbsp;7]</span>
-nature, but Japan seems to have been imagined by some
-great artist of the ancient days&mdash;imagined and constructed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Look there,&quot; said Leslie, &quot;saw you ever anything
-better than that in Clackmannan?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ay, have I,&quot; replied M&#39;Gourley, contemplating the
-view before him, &quot;many&#39;s the time. What sort of
-country do you call that? Man! I&#39;d as soon live on a
-tea-tray if I had ma choice.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, you&#39;ve lived in Japan long enough to be used
-to it. It&#39;s always the way; put a man in a paradise like
-this where there are all sorts of flowers and jolly things
-around him, and he starts grumbling and growling and
-pining after rain, and misery, and cold, and sleet, and
-peat smoke&mdash;if he&#39;s a Scotchman. How long have you
-been in Japan, Mac, did you say?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Near ever since the Samurai took off their swords
-and turned policemen.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What kept you in the East so long if you don&#39;t like
-it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Trade, like the wind, blaweth where it listeth, and a
-man must e&#39;en follow his trade,&quot; said M&#39;Gourley; and
-they resumed their road.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They were walking to Nikko together, this strangely
-assorted pair, strangely assorted though they were both
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page8" id="page8"></a>[pg&nbsp;8]</span>
-Scotchmen. They were approaching the place, not by
-that splendid avenue of cryptomeria trees that leads
-from Utso-no-Miya, but by the wild hill road, which runs
-from Kureise, or rather by the higher hill road, for there
-are two, and they had taken the loneliest and the longest
-by mistake (M&#39;Gourley&#39;s fault, though he swore that he
-knew the country like the palm of his hand).</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They had come twenty or twenty-five miles of the
-way by riksha, and were now hoofing the remainder,
-their luggage having been sent on to Nikko by train.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;And talking of trade,&quot; said M&#39;Gourley, &quot;let&#39;s go
-back to the matter we were on a moment ago; there&#39;s
-money in it, and I know the beesiness. I ken it fine;
-never a man knows better the Jap Rubbish trade.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;You were talking of starting at Nagasaki.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ay, Nagasaki&#39;s best.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, I&#39;ll plank the money,&quot; said Leslie. &quot;I&#39;ll put
-up a thousand against a thousand of yours.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M&#39;Gourley stopped and held out a hand sheathed in
-a mournful-looking black dogskin glove.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Is&#39;t a bargain?&quot; said he.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It&#39;s a bargain. Funny that we should have only met
-the other day in Tokyo, and that you should have come
-along to Nikko to show me the sights. I believe all the
-time you were bent on trepanning me into this business.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page9" id="page9"></a>[pg&nbsp;9]</span>
-&quot;I was that,&quot; said M&#39;Gourley, with charming frankness;
-&quot;for your own good. A man without a beesiness
-is a man astray, and when you told me in the hotel in
-Tokyo you were a boddie with money, and nothing to
-do with it, I said: &#39;Here&#39;s my chance.&#39;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;If I had met you two months ago,&quot; said Leslie bitterly,
-&quot;I wouldn&#39;t have been much use, for my father
-would not have been dead, and I would not have come
-into his money. Do you know what I have been?&mdash;I
-have been a remittance man.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;ve met vera much worse people than some of
-<i>them</i>,&quot; said Mac, who if his newly found partner had
-declared himself a demon out of Hades would perhaps
-have made the same glossatory remark&mdash;the capital
-being assured.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;m hanged if I have,&quot; said Leslie bitterly. &quot;Give
-me a Sydney Larrikin, a Dago, a Chinee, before your
-remittance man. I know what I&#39;m talking about for I
-have been one&mdash;see?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What, may I ask&mdash;&quot; began M&#39;Gourley, then he
-paused.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;You mean what was the reason of my being flung
-off by my father? Youthful indiscretions. Let&#39;s sit
-down; I want to take my boot off.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The road just here took a bend, and became wilder
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page10" id="page10"></a>[pg&nbsp;10]</span>
-and more lovely, a stream gushed from the bank on
-which they took their seats, and before them lay a little
-valley, a valley hedged on either side by cypress trees,
-and thronged with crimson azaleas.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page11" id="page11"></a>[pg&nbsp;11]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER II</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">THE BLIND ONE</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Crimson azaleas in wild profusion, here struck
-with sun, here shadowed by the cypress trees&mdash;a
-sight to gladden the heart of a poet. Between the cypress
-trees, beyond the azaleas, beyond country broken
-by sunlight and cloud shadows, lay the sea hills of Tanagura
-in the dimmest bluest distance.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;If I could get that into a gold frame,&quot; said Leslie,
-as he inhaled the delicious perfume of the azaleas and
-bathed his naked foot in the tiny cascade breaking from
-the bank on which they sat, &quot;I&#39;d take it to London and
-send it to the Academy&mdash;and they&#39;d reject it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Vara likely,&quot; replied Mac. &quot;It is no fit for a
-peecture. Who ever saw the like of yon out of Japan?
-It&#39;s nought but a fakement.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I say,&quot; said Leslie, &quot;talking of fakements&mdash;in this
-business of ours I hope we&#39;ll steer clear of all that.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;In this beesiness of oors,&quot; said Mac, &quot;I thought
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page12" id="page12"></a>[pg&nbsp;12]</span>
-you distinctly understood my friend Danjuro will be
-the nominal head of the firrm&mdash;we are but the sleeping
-pairtners.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac&#39;s Scotch bubbled in him when he grew excited, or
-when he forgot himself. Ordinarily he talked pretty
-ordinary English, but when the stopper was off the
-Scotch came out, and you could tell by the pronunciation
-of the word &quot;money&quot; whether he was mentioning the
-article casually or deep in a deal.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well,&quot; said Leslie, &quot;I don&#39;t want my dreams troubled
-by visions of Danjuro swindling unfortunate tourists;
-you say we&#39;re to export things, but I don&#39;t want
-to have him roping in people, selling them five-shilling
-pagodas at five pounds a-piece.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac sighed as if with regret at the impossibility of
-such a delightful deal as that.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It&#39;s rather jolly going into business,&quot; continued
-Leslie, dreamily gazing at the azaleas. &quot;Only crime
-I&#39;ve never committed, except murder and a few others.
-Good God! when I started in life I never thought I&#39;d
-end my days peddling paper lanterns, and cheating people
-into buying penny-a-dozen kakemonos for a shilling
-a-piece. Don&#39;t talk to me; all trade is cheating.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;You should have known Macbean,&quot; said M&#39;Gourley,
-who had also taken off his boots and stockings and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page13" id="page13"></a>[pg&nbsp;13]</span>
-was bathing his broad splay feet in the pretty little
-torrent.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Who was he?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Forty year ago I was his &#39;prentice. Mummies, and
-idols, and pagods, and scarabeuses was the output of the
-firm, and Icknield Street, Birmingham, its habitation.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Idols?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ay, idols. Some the size of your thumb, and some
-the size of bedposts, which they were derived from; some
-with teeth, and some with hair, and some bald as a bannock.
-We stocked half West Africa with idols, and the
-South Seas absorbed the balance.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, you certainly take the cake,&quot; said Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I took three pun ten a week at Macbean&#39;s, and
-learnt more eelementary theology than&#39;s taught in the
-schules of Edinboro&#39;. Macbean said artistical idols was
-what the savages wanted, and what they would get as
-long as old bedposteses were to be bought at knockdown
-prices, and sold for the waurth of elephants&#39; tusks.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;You disgust me,&quot; said Leslie, &quot;upon my word you
-do.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;That&#39;s what Macbean said one day to the boddie I
-had in mind when I began telling you of this. The
-boddie came in grumbling about a mummy&mdash;a vara fine
-mummy it was, too&mdash;that had been sold to him for export.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page14" id="page14"></a>[pg&nbsp;14]</span>
-The mummy had been stuftit with newspapers, but
-the <i>sachrum ustum</i> used for coloring the stuffing matter
-being omitted, the printed matter remained in eevidence
-when the American who bought the article in Cairo
-opened it to hunt for amulets and scarabeuses. &#39;Newspapers!&#39;
-said Macbean. &#39;And what more do you expect
-in a fifty-shullin&#39; mummy? Did y&#39; expect it stuffed wi&#39;
-dimonds?&#39;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well?&quot; said Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;That&#39;s all, and that&#39;s the whole of beesiness in a
-walnut shell; y&#39; canna expect a fifty-shullin&#39; mummy to
-be stuffed with&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Rubbish! the whole of swindling, you mean. Anyhow,
-we&#39;ll keep straight, if you please; a fair profit I
-don&#39;t mind, but I object to rank trickery&mdash;by the way,
-what&#39;s the time? my watch has stopped; and how far
-is Nikko off?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It&#39;s after two,&quot; said Mac, who had no very definite
-idea of how far Nikko might be off, having led his companion
-by the wrong road and concealed the fact.
-&quot;And Nikko is maybe twarree miles, maybe a bit more&mdash;wull
-we go?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">For all answer Leslie took some bar-chocolate from his
-pocket, gave some to his companion, and proceeded to
-lunch.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page15" id="page15"></a>[pg&nbsp;15]</span>
-&quot;I daresay you think it funny,&quot; said he at last, &quot;my
-chumming up, and in your heart of hearts&mdash;that is,
-your business heart (excuse me for being frank)&mdash;you
-must think it strange I should put up my money with a
-man whom I don&#39;t know in the least. But, man! the
-truth of the matter is I&#39;m weary for a friend. I have
-money enough and to spare, but&mdash;I&#39;m weary for a
-friend.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;m the lonest man in the world,&quot; went on Leslie,
-munching his chocolate and gazing at the beautiful
-scene before him; &quot;the lonest man on God&#39;s earth.
-What is the matter with me that I should never have
-found and kept a friend? If God had ever given me
-anything to love I&#39;d have cherished it, but&mdash;there is no
-God that I can see.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Whisht, man,&quot; said Mac. &quot;Dinna talk like that.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I know I was wild,&quot; went on Leslie, &quot;before I left
-England, but other men have been as bad. I quarreled
-with my father, but other men&#39;s fathers are different
-from what mine was. He drove me beyond the sea to be
-an alien and an outcast. I&#39;ve seen drunken loafers in the
-bars of Sydney, where I was stuck as a remittance man
-three years; they had friends of a sort&mdash;friends who
-stuck them, but friend or dog never stuck to me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;No wumman?&quot; asked M&#39;Gourley, spitting out the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page16" id="page16"></a>[pg&nbsp;16]</span>
-remains of the chocolate he was eating, and lighting a
-vile-looking Hankow cigar.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I loved a woman once,&quot; said Leslie, staring before
-him with eyes that saw not Japan or the cypress trees
-or the azaleas. &quot;Her name was Jane Deering; we were
-boy and girl together, cousins, and her people lived
-quite close to mine. We got engaged, and were to have
-been married, and&mdash;she threw me over.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;For why?&quot; asked Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Said she didn&#39;t want to get married.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, that was deefinite.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Damned definite. What&#39;s that noise?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Tap, tap, tap.&quot; It was the tapping of a stick upon
-the ground, and a man in the dress of a coolie, with a
-saucer-shaped hat upon his head, turned the corner of
-the road, coming in the direction of Nikko. He was
-tapping the ground before him with a staff. He was
-blind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What an awful-looking face!&quot; said Leslie, as the
-figure approached. &quot;Look, Mac! Did you ever see the
-like of that?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">One sees many extraordinary and sinister faces in the
-East, but the face of the on-comer would have been hard
-to match, even in the stews of Shanghai.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The nose seemed to have been smashed flat by a blow.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page17" id="page17"></a>[pg&nbsp;17]</span>
-The face was flat and possessed an awful stolidity, so
-that at a little distance one could have sworn that it was
-carved from stone. It impressed one as the countenance
-of a creature long in communion with evil.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The two Scotchmen held motionless to let this undesirable
-pass, but he must have possessed some sixth
-sense, for instead of passing he stopped and begun to
-whine.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He spoke in a light, flighty, chanting voice, like the
-voice of a man either insane or delirious.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What&#39;s he say?&quot; asked Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;He&#39;s a Chinee, and wants money.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Tell the beast to go.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Says he knows we&#39;re foreigners.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Clever that; why, even I can hear your Scotch sticking
-out of the gibberish you&#39;re talking.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Says he wants opium&mdash;hasn&#39;t had any the whole
-day, and if we will give him opium, or money to buy it,
-he&#39;ll show us things.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What things?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Lord sakes! the creeture&#39;s daft; says he can make
-great magic&mdash;snakes out of mud or flowers out of nothing.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Why doesn&#39;t he make some opium if he&#39;s so clever?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Says the woods around here are full of devils.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page18" id="page18"></a>[pg&nbsp;18]</span>
-&quot;Tell him to show us a devil, then.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac translated and the person so well acquainted with
-devils made answer.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;For a piece of gold he will show us one. Why, Leslie,
-man, don&#39;t you be a fule.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie had taken half a sovereign from his pocket.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Give it him and tell him to show us a devil, and if
-he plays any tricks I&#39;ll chivy him into Nikko, and give
-him up to the police.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Don&#39;t be a fule,&quot; said Mac testily. &quot;A&#39;weel!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie put the piece of gold into the creature&#39;s hand,
-who put it to his ear for a moment, and then hid it in
-his rags. Then he bent his head sideways to the road.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What&#39;s he doing now?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;He&#39;s listening if the road&#39;s clear; he says there&#39;s
-nothing on it for two ri on either side, but he hears seven
-rikshas coming in the direction of Nikko, but he&#39;ll have
-time to do what he wants before they arrive.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Blind One bent down rapidly and traced an almost
-perfect circle around himself in the dust of the
-road; then hurriedly outside this he traced what an initiate
-might have taken for the form of the Egg, the
-horns of Simara, and another form needless to describe.
-Then he said something to Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;He says, we&#39;re not to speak, or touch the circle or
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page19" id="page19"></a>[pg&nbsp;19]</span>
-go near it. I have not paid for this entertainment, and
-I juist think I&#39;ll take a bit walk doon the road.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Sit down, you old coward,&quot; said Leslie. &quot;I&#39;m the
-one that has paid, and I&#39;m the one the &#39;deevil&#39; will
-carry off if there is a deevil. Look!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Blind One took from his rags a cane pipe such
-as blind men use in Japan, only larger, and began to
-blow mournful notes out of it. It was as strange a sound
-as ever left human lips, now ear-piercing, now low, low
-and soothing; his face flushed and swelled; he seemed enraptured,
-entranced with his own music, and the searching
-sound of it caused things to move disturbedly in the
-trees around, and a low croaking, as if from some feathered
-creature disturbed, to come from the cypress wood.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As he played, he turned north, south, east, and west,
-lingering, at last, with the reed pipe pointing between
-the cypress trees, as though he were calling to the blue
-hills in the distance.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As he stood thus, Leslie, who had been looking at the
-mysterious symbols around the circle, was seized with an
-impish impulse, and leaning forward with his walking-stick,
-he made in the dust inside the circle, and just behind
-the Blind One&#39;s heel, the form of a cross.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In doing this, the point of the stick touched the Blind
-One&#39;s heel.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page20" id="page20"></a>[pg&nbsp;20]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER III</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">THE LOST ONE</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A congreve rocket incautiously touched by a
-match could not have given a more surprising result.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Flinging the pipe from him with a yell, the Blind
-One sprang clear over the circle, and stood for an instant
-panting and blowing at the sun.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He seemed blowing away things that were trying to
-enter his mouth; then, the staff attached by a thong to
-his wrist flying about wildly, he began to tear at himself
-all over his body and fling things away from him, as
-though he were attacked by a hundred thousand scorpions;
-then as if bitten by some more serious enemy, he
-seized his staff, and striking about him wildly, began to
-run. Hither and thither, hitting right and left, dashing
-against trees and seeming utterly regardless of them,
-bleeding, torn, and all the time fighting his phantom pursuers
-he ran till he vanished round the bend leading
-towards Nikko. The two Scotchmen ran to the bend of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page21" id="page21"></a>[pg&nbsp;21]</span>
-the road, and there down the road they saw him still running,
-and fighting as if for his life; striking above him
-as if at things in the air, and around him as if at things
-leaping at him from the ground. Suddenly he vanished
-round a further bend, and was lost to view.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;He&#39;s gone gyte!&quot; said Mac as they returned.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, I&#39;m damned!&quot; said Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I touched his heel, and I suppose he thought it was
-one of the devils&mdash;mad fool!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;&#39;Tis no madness,&quot; said Mac. &quot;If ever I saw a man
-chased by deevils I&#39;ve seen one now. &#39;Twas that mark
-you made let them loose, or my name&#39;s not Tod M&#39;Gourley.
-Did you no ken you were makin&#39; the sign of the
-cross in yon damned circle of his? Hech, man! <i>Look
-there!</i>&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Where?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;My God!&quot; said M&#39;Gourley, &quot;look you there, <i>there</i>!
-There&#39;s a bairn amongst the azaleas!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;So there is!&quot; said Leslie. &quot;By Jove, a little Jap
-girl come out of the wood.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Dom it, man,&quot; roared M&#39;Gourley, &quot;she wasn&#39;t there
-twarree seconds ago. She&#39;s come out of no wood; she&#39;s
-been <i>fetched</i>.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, of all the superstitious idiots!&quot; said Leslie,
-gazing from the perspiring M&#39;Gourley to the figure of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page22" id="page22"></a>[pg&nbsp;22]</span>
-the quaint and pretty little Japanese girl who was busy
-amidst the azaleas plucking the blossoms. &quot;Why,
-it wouldn&#39;t take her more than &#39;twarree seconds&#39; to
-come out of the wood. Anyhow, I&#39;ll go and see if she&#39;s
-real.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Man! man! hauld back!&quot; cried the agonized
-M&#39;Gourley as his partner plunged amidst the bushes.
-&quot;Ye&#39;ll be had; she&#39;s a bogle. Lord&#39;s sake! Lord&#39;s sake!
-Well, gang your own gate, I&#39;m off to Nikko.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Yet he waited.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The bogle was plucking blossoms as hard as she could
-and in the profuse manner of childhood. She and the
-azaleas made a sight for sore eyes.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She might have been seven or eight, dressed in a blue
-kimono with a scarlet obi, hair black as ebony shavings,
-tightly drawn off the forehead and held up with a tortoiseshell
-comb&mdash;the &quot;germ of a woman.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Her back was turned to Leslie, and as he got within
-arm&#39;s length of the quaint and delicious little figure he
-did just what you or I might have done&mdash;bent down,
-seized her up, and kissed her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The bogle dropped her flowers and gave a shriek, a
-most distinctly human shriek.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;He&#39;s kessed her!&quot; cried M&#39;Gourley, addressing the
-azaleas, the cypress trees, and all Japan.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page23" id="page23"></a>[pg&nbsp;23]</span>
-Then he stood in agony, held to the spot by the sight
-of Leslie and the bogle making friends.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It didn&#39;t seem to take long, for presently he returned
-through the azaleas triumphant, carrying her in his
-arms.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Here&#39;s your bogle,&quot; said he, placing her on the
-dusty road where, with all the gravity of the Japanese
-child, she made a deep obeisance to M&#39;Gourley. That
-gentleman returned the compliment with a short, sharp
-nod.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;m awa&#39; to Nikko,&quot; said he in the hard, irritable
-voice of a person who is desirous of avoiding an undesirable
-acquaintance, gazing at Leslie and steadily ignoring
-the lady in blue who was now holding on to
-Leslie&#39;s right leg, contemplating M&#39;Gourley, and sucking
-the tip of a taper and tiny forefinger all at the same
-time. &quot;I&#39;m awa&#39; to Nikko. &#39;Tis no place for a mon like
-me. Never was I used to the company of fules&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Don&#39;t be an ass! Speak to her; you have the tongue,
-and I haven&#39;t.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I winna.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, of all the old women I ever met,&quot; said Leslie,
-addressing a &quot;thundering great camellia tree&quot; that
-stood opposite, &quot;this partner of mine takes the bun!&mdash;don&#39;t
-he, Popsums?&quot; bending down and looking into the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page24" id="page24"></a>[pg&nbsp;24]</span>
-small face, the left cheek of which was now resting
-against his knee.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Popsums, in reply to the smile and interrogative tone
-in the question she did not understand, smiled gravely
-back and murmured something that sounded like &quot;Hei.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M&#39;Gourley snorted, and Leslie broke out laughing; he
-had little of the Japanese, but he knew that &quot;Hei&quot;
-meant &quot;Yes.&quot;</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page25" id="page25"></a>[pg&nbsp;25]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER IV</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">AMIDST THE HILLS</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Just then a ripple of laughter came down the breeze,
-and round the corner of the road, heading for
-Nikko, came at full trot seven rikshas streaming out like
-a scarf of color; a dream of color&mdash;for each riksha contained
-a lady most beautiful to behold under the splendor
-of her umbrella.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They were a party of girls returning to Nikko after
-some sylvan freak, and they drew up as if by common
-assent to admire the azaleas.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie, removing his hat and lifting his treasure trove,
-held her up for exhibition.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The girls laughed and spoke to her; had they been
-English girls she would have been promptly handed
-round and kissed; and she, with becoming gravity, replied
-gracefully in a few half-lisped words.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then, leaving behind them on the air a cloud of dust,
-a perfume of camellia oil, and a long drawn &quot;Sayonara,&quot;
-the bevy of beauties passed in a gorgeous flight of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page26" id="page26"></a>[pg&nbsp;26]</span>
-mixed colors round the bend of the road and were gone.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ye mind he said seven rikshas were coming,&quot; cried
-Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Bother!&quot; answered Leslie. &quot;He&#39;d come the same direction
-and passed them. Do you think they&#39;d have
-laughed and spoken to her if there was anything wrong
-and they&#39;re Japs, and ought to know. Come! buck up,
-man! You&#39;re not afraid to do what a girl has done?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;A&#39;weel!&quot; said M&#39;Gourley, half ashamed of himself;
-and dour as any Procurator Fiscal, he set to the examination
-of the being who was now on the ground again,
-her hand clasped in that of Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This was the result of the examination. Deponent
-lived with her father. Where? She did not know.&mdash;Just
-beyond there somewhere. What was the house like she
-lived in? It had a plum-tree growing before it. What
-did her father do? He hammered things with a hammer.
-Had she any brothers and sisters? No; but&mdash;sudden
-thought&mdash;she had a sugar-candy dragon, and she had
-lost it. (Here deponent wept slightly and with reserve.)</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Pause in the interrogations whilst a snub nose was
-wiped with Leslie&#39;s pocket handkerchief.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And a kite, but that was at home. She had gone that
-day with a little boy&mdash;a neighbor&mdash;to hunt for the saccharine
-dragon, and they had lost themselves, then they
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page27" id="page27"></a>[pg&nbsp;27]</span>
-had lost each other, then <i>she</i> had lost herself. How was
-that possible? Well, she had gone to sleep. Where? In
-the wood.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Here the examinate went off into a tale about an impossible
-tom-cat with wings, which she had once seen on
-an umbrella, and beheld once again in the wood, but was
-suppressed by the court and asked to keep to facts.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Whilst asleep in the wood she was awakened, so she
-declared, by a sound like the passage of a flight of
-storks, and, coming out of the wood, fearful of meeting
-a dragon, she began to pick the pretty flowers; then
-she was seized by the honorable gentleman, whose height
-was greater than a poplar tree.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">How old was she? Eight times the cherry blossom had
-blown since her humble self had come into the world.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then she volunteered the entirely unsolicited statement
-that it was likely her little boy companion had been
-lost in the snow. But that was impossible&mdash;well, it was
-a field of lilies then&mdash;and he had been most possibly devoured
-by a dragon.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">What did she propose about going home? Did she
-know the way, and could she go alone?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Here she declared herself utterly at a loss. Her home
-was somewhere near by, but where, she could not exactly
-say.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page28" id="page28"></a>[pg&nbsp;28]</span>
-&quot;Well, well!&quot; said M&#39;Gourley, when he had finished
-his examination. &quot;It seems to me that bogle or no bogle
-you&#39;ve saddled yoursel&#39; wi&#39; a lost child. Whaur&#39;s your
-common sense now?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Just where it always was.&mdash;Question is&mdash;what are
-we to do? Can <i>you</i> suggest anything?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Na, na! it&#39;s not for me to say,&quot; said the other, with
-that vile sense of satisfaction a brither Scot feels when a
-brither Scot has made a cubby of himself. Then, remembering
-the bond of partnership, &quot;If I were the
-party responsible, I&#39;d just pop her back where I fund
-her first, and rin.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, you <i>are</i> a beast! Why, you benighted old
-mummy-stuffer, I believe you&#39;ve got a scarab in your
-bosom instead of a heart! I&#39;ll take her along to Nikko,
-and get the police to hunt out her home. Stay, we
-haven&#39;t asked her what&#39;s her name.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M&#39;Gourley asked the question, and the Lost One declared
-her name to be &quot;Bell-flower.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Bell-flower!&quot; said Leslie, who had a smattering of
-botany, &quot;that&#39;s a campanula. We&#39;ll call her&mdash;&#39;Campanula.&#39;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She also made declaration that she was quite satisfied
-to go with the honorable gentleman, whose height exceeded
-the tallest of trees. Leslie lifted her up and seated
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page29" id="page29"></a>[pg&nbsp;29]</span>
-her upon his shoulder, and, as they started, he turned
-and looked back at the loveliness of the perfumed azalea
-valley&mdash;a sight that was yet to haunt him in the time to
-come.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It&#39;s my opeenion,&quot; said M&#39;Gourley, as they took the
-road, &quot;that there was something forming in yon wood,
-something dom bad, and you flung it out of the forming
-eelement, and she was just suckid in.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What d&#39;you mean?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;The wraith of some dead bairn was wanderin&#39; aboot,
-and the forming eelement seized it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What forming element? Rubbish! That chap was a
-lunatic; well, when he felt me touch him it set his lunacy
-off, that&#39;s all. Why, I once went to a big asylum in
-Scotland, and I saw a man cutting just the same capers,
-fighting devils. He&#39;s an opium taker, and the opium is
-out of his brain, that&#39;s all. Drink does the same thing&mdash;Hi!
-By Jove, look up there! He&#39;s at it still.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Away up in the wild mountain gorge they saw a
-figure. It was the Blind One still pursued, still running,
-and apparently fighting for his life. If his actions were
-not the outcome of insanity they gave food to the mind
-for the most terrible suppositions.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Streaming with blood from his mad dashes against the
-trees, he seemed surrounded on all sides, hemmed in,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page30" id="page30"></a>[pg&nbsp;30]</span>
-fighting furiously like a man surrounded by wolves. If
-a tree chanced to be near, an opening seemed to be made
-for him by his tormentors towards it, and he would rush
-at it and dash himself against it, falling back bleeding
-but fighting still, screaming and all the time being
-steadily shepherded further and further into the loneliness
-of the hills.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Sirs! Sirs!&quot; cried Mac, throwing up his hands as
-the horrible spectacle vanished round a distant bend of
-the gorge. &quot;This is no sight for a Christian mon!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It&#39;s pretty rotten,&quot; said Leslie who looked rather
-pale and sick. &quot;Fetch out that flask of yours, Mac.
-Thanks. Poor devil! would there be any use following
-him?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Not for twanty thousand pounds would I follow
-him,&quot; said Mac, gurgling at the flask. &quot;He&#39;s in ither
-hands than ours.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And, indeed, not for a very great sum would Leslie
-have gone up that desolate gorge to see the finish of the
-tragedy.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Let&#39;s go on,&quot; said Leslie, &quot;and don&#39;t let&#39;s speak of
-it again. I want to forget it&mdash;ugh!&quot;</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page31" id="page31"></a>[pg&nbsp;31]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER V</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">THE TEA HOUSE OF THE TORTOISE</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was at the next turn that Nikko broke upon them,
-a long way off, lying in its valley amidst the high
-hills, hills fledged with greenery to their summit.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There are sights that strike the eye and the heart at
-the same time, and the sight of Nikko where the Shoguns
-sleep, Nikko the beautiful in the silent valley, amidst
-the silent hills, is one of these.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The delicate colors, the exquisite tracery of the temple
-roofs, the crystal clearness of the air through which
-the eye can pick out detail after detail, the atmosphere
-of tranquillity of the mountains, and the green cryptomeria
-trees, make up a picture, leaving little
-for the heart to desire, or the imagination to conceive.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Why,&quot; cried Leslie, turning to his companion (Campanula
-was seated aloft in solitary state upon his shoulder
-clutching his hair tight, whilst he held in one big
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page32" id="page32"></a>[pg&nbsp;32]</span>
-hand her two little sandal-shod, tabi-clad feet), &quot;if
-that&#39;s Nikko, it&#39;s ten miles off if it&#39;s a foot. What&#39;ve
-you got to say for yourself, hey?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;A&#39;weel,&quot; said M&#39;Gourley, glowering at Nikko, &quot;if
-you want my candid opeenion, we&#39;ve juist gone astray;
-the country I know well, but these dom roads lead one
-like a Jack o&#39;Lanthorn. It&#39;s my opeenion that a Japanese
-road&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I don&#39;t want your opinion on Japanese roads, I
-want your concise opinion about yourself&mdash;ain&#39;t you
-a fool?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ay, ay,&quot; said M&#39;Gourley, as if considering the matter,
-&quot;a fule I may be, but it&#39;s my candit opeenion that
-I&#39;m not the only fule in Japan.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well,&quot; said Leslie, &quot;fool or no fool, we&#39;ll have to
-tramp it, and you&#39;ll have to take your turn to carry the
-kid, so&mdash;<i>Marchons</i>!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula, so far from being frightened at her awful
-elevation from the earth, seemed to enjoy the situation,
-and to find food for a sort of muse of her own, for
-she began to hum as Leslie took the road with his long
-stride, and to sing in a lisping sort of way.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What&#39;s she singing?&quot; demanded her bearer of the
-sweating Scot at his side.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Lord knows! &#39;tis an eldritch chune, and I dinna like
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page33" id="page33"></a>[pg&nbsp;33]</span>
-to listen to the words. Man, Leslie, but your legs are
-longer than mine, and I canna keep the pace.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, I&#39;ll go slower if you&#39;ll listen, and tell me what
-she&#39;s singing.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;She&#39;s singing,&quot; gasped M&#39;Gourley, &quot;s&#39; far as I can
-make out, some diddering noensense aboot a sugar-candy
-dragon that a man like a poplar tree is goin&#39; to hunt, he
-and a man like a corbie.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;That&#39;s you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;More like some bogle from the wood that&#39;s maybe
-after us now. I am not a supersteetious man&mdash;na, na!
-ye may laugh or not&mdash;but would y&#39; like to know what in
-my humble opeenion you are cartin&#39; on your shoulders?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Some bairn that has been lost and dead these years,
-and has been whustled up by that blind deevil with the
-pipe. What did she mean by that reeference to the snaw&mdash;answer
-me that!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;When I can get into the mind of a Japanese child,
-and see the world as it sees it, I&#39;ll answer you; you know
-what children&#39;s minds are, how they mix and imagine
-things.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What did she mean by that reeference to the snaw?&quot;
-grimly went on M&#39;Gourley. &quot;Mix or no mix, what did
-she mean by the other bairn being lost in the snaw?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page34" id="page34"></a>[pg&nbsp;34]</span>
-&quot;Well,&quot; said Leslie, &quot;I don&#39;t care a button whether
-she&#39;s a bogle or not. If she is, she&#39;s the prettiest bogle
-that was ever bogled, and about the heaviest, I should
-think. Here, you take a turn with her, I&#39;m about done.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They took it turn about, M&#39;Gourley vastly loth, to
-carry the Lost One; and the Lost One stopped them to
-gather flowers for her by the wayside, to give her drinks
-from rivulets, to help her admire and wonder at herons
-and other marvels of the way, so that it was after six of
-the clock when two of the most dusty and perspiring
-Scotchmen in the Eastern Hemisphere entered the happy
-village of Nikko from the mountain side, Campanula
-this time on Leslie&#39;s shoulder, grave, triumphant, and
-holding a huge lily in her hand.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Nikko and its surroundings just now was ablaze with
-scarlet japonica. The lamps of the camellias were lit,
-the soaring wistaria vines had broken into clusters of
-pale lilac blossoms, the iris beautified the field, and the
-wild cherry the thicket. It was as if spring had called
-from the tomb of Iyeyasu and her faithful had come to
-pray.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There are two hotels at Nikko known to the globe-trotter,
-&quot;Kanayas&quot; and the &quot;New Nikko,&quot; but M&#39;Gourley
-knew a better place than these.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As they passed down the long inclined street a baby
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page35" id="page35"></a>[pg&nbsp;35]</span>
-with a shaved head, a baby that was half a baby and
-half an obi, tied behind in a stiff and preposterous bow,
-spied Campanula being borne aloft, dropped his immediate
-business&mdash;the attempt to fly a kite shaped like a
-moth&mdash;and followed the newcomers with a shout.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The shout, as if by magic, brought half a dozen children
-from nowhere in particular; girl children with dolls
-on their backs, older girl children with babies on their
-backs, boys battledore in hand, and all with clogs on
-their feet, clogs that went clipper-clapper, waking up
-the echoes and calling forth more children, so that when
-they had got half-way down the mile-long street from
-the upper village Campanula had a &quot;following,&quot; the
-like of which had never been seen, perhaps, since the pied
-piper passed through Hamelin.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A colored, laughing, murmuring, rippling throng
-following with every eye fixed on the Lost One borne sky-high
-on the shoulder of the tall stranger; a throng, the
-half of which could have walked under a dinner-table
-without much inconvenience; some empty-handed, some
-still grasping their implements of play, all agog, yet
-of decent and orderly behavior. A throng, in fact, of
-ladies and gentlemen in the making.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Backward over the summit of Leslie gazed Campanula
-upon this crowd, whilst the stall-keepers and the stray
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page36" id="page36"></a>[pg&nbsp;36]</span>
-riksha men, the pilgrims and the paupers, the priest and
-the policeman, stood by the way to watch the procession
-pass.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I say,&quot; called Leslie to his companion, who was limping
-behind dead beat, yet in an agony at the &quot;splurge&quot;
-they were making, &quot;this is gay, isn&#39;t it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Dod rot the child!&quot; cried M&#39;Gourley, nearly tumbling
-over a fat baby with a tufted head, who was running
-in front of him and trying to look up in his face.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I dinna ken whoat ye mean by gay. I have no immeediate
-particular use for the waurd. Never before have
-I been held up to public reedicule. I&#39;m a decent livin&#39;
-man, ye ken, an&#39; I ha&#39;na any use for such gayeties. I
-leave them to ithers who care for makin&#39; assinine eediots
-of theirselves; but, thank the Laird, we&#39;re nearly there
-noo.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They turned a corner and entered a gate that led to
-a garden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At the gate M&#39;Gourley turned and addressed the camp
-followers, telling them with forced politeness that there
-was nothing more to be seen; that the show was over,
-in fact, and asking them honorably to excuse him the
-pleasure of being followed any more.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The crowd murmured, and dissolved, the earth seemed
-to take it up like blotting-paper, and M&#39;Gourley, turning
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page37" id="page37"></a>[pg&nbsp;37]</span>
-his back upon its remnants, led the way through the
-garden, past a tiny lake in the midst of which stood an
-island, inhabited by a huge frog, and so, by a path, to
-the front of a long, low, white-washed house.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This was the Tea House of the Tortoise, a place well
-known to M&#39;Gourley, as (to use his own abominable expression)
-being &quot;cheap and clean.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A panel of the front was drawn back, revealing cream-white
-matting and lamp light.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M&#39;Gourley sat down with a sigh on the side of the
-veranda, and began to pull off his elastic side boots.
-Leslie sat down also, with Campanula in his lap; he
-could not put her down for she had literally tumbled
-into sleep.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Pull off my boots, Mac,&quot; said he. &quot;I can&#39;t let go of
-this blessed child.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Na!&quot; said Mac mysteriously, and somewhat viciously,
-as he knelt down and unlaced his partner&#39;s boots,
-&quot;ye cannot let her go, ye cannot let her go; forby, she
-wullna let <i>you</i> go.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;You think she&#39;s going to stick to me?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Imphim,&quot; replied Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Imphim is not Japanese, it is the double Scotch grunt,
-which has twenty-two separate meanings, mostly unpleasant.
-Shut your mouth tight and try to say &quot;Hum,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page38" id="page38"></a>[pg&nbsp;38]</span>
-hum,&quot; and you will achieve &quot;Imphim,&quot; but never do it
-again, please.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie was about to answer, when a sound behind made
-him turn, and there, like a pinned-down butterfly, was a
-Mousm&egrave; on the mat, crying, &quot;Irashi, condescend to enter.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M&#39;Gourley&mdash;a most unengaging figure in his stocking
-feet&mdash;rose and addressed the Mousm&egrave;.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He told her things in language unknown to Leslie;
-things about the sleeping Campanula evidently, for he
-pump-handled with his arm in the direction where Leslie,
-bootless now, sat holding her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Mousm&egrave; on her knees, a camellia blossom in her
-hair and her eyes fixed upon M&#39;Gourley, seemed fascinated.
-Then she called out and....</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Hai tadaima,&quot; came a soft voice from somewhere in
-the back premises, and a second Mousm&egrave; appeared, made
-obeisance, and listened whilst the tale, whatever it was,
-was laid before her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Deep astonishment, exclamations of wonder, a call:</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Hai tadaima!&quot; and an old lady appeared, and
-made obeisance, and listened whilst the thrice-told tale
-was told her by the two Mousm&egrave;s and M&#39;Gourley all
-together.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Meanwhile Leslie, feeling ridiculously like a nursemaid,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page39" id="page39"></a>[pg&nbsp;39]</span>
-sat holding the Lost One, whose soul was wandering
-in the vain land of dreams.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What are you stuffing those creatures up with?&quot;
-he suddenly broke out. &quot;Blessed if you oughtn&#39;t to be
-dressed in a kimono and a petticoat; you&#39;re the biggest
-old woman of the lot. Ask one of them to take the kid,
-or I&#39;ll go off to the hotel with her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;One minit,&quot; said Mac. &quot;They&#39;re conseedrin&#39; the
-matter.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Scarce had he spoken when the old lady called out,
-and entered on the scene, an old gentleman, the proprietor
-of the tea house, a black cat, and two more
-Mousm&egrave;s.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh, <i>do</i> call a few more!&quot; said Leslie. &quot;And call in
-a couple of musicians and make the comic opera complete.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;There are no more to call,&quot; replied Mac. &quot;They are
-conseedrin&#39; the matter. The Japanese are a very supersteetious
-people, and these are good friends of mine, and
-I would not spring a pairson upon them with dootful
-anticeedents. You see, Leslie, man, the presence of the
-bairn must be explained. She is not a bale of goods we
-can dump in a corner. Bide a wee; I will talk them over
-yut.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Areopagus was considering the question as to
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page40" id="page40"></a>[pg&nbsp;40]</span>
-whether Campanula, if admitted to the Tea House of
-the Tortoise, would bring ruin and destruction or a blessing
-on the premises, when Hedgehog San, the black cat,
-settled the matter by coming up to Leslie and rubbing
-against his leg.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the Hon. Hedgehog&mdash;may his ashes rest in
-peace!&mdash;jumped on Leslie&#39;s knee and rubbed himself
-against Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">That clinched the business.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The old lady herself advanced, and, taking the Lost
-One from the Weary One, carried her bodily into the
-house, whilst Leslie, yawning and stretching himself,
-followed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Inside, in the bare, clean room, the little Mousm&egrave; with
-the camellia in her hair addressed herself to Leslie in a
-soft and beseeching voice.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What does she want?&quot; he asked of Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;She wants to know if you require anything.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;A bath&mdash;that&#39;s what I want more than anything&mdash;don&#39;t
-you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I am not given to promeescuous bathing,&quot; said
-M&#39;Gourley, &quot;being greatly subject to the siatickee; but
-a bath you wull have, and I&#39;ll e&#39;en sit here and smoke a
-pipe whilst you bathe yourself.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I want also a sugar-candy dragon for the bairn,&quot;
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page41" id="page41"></a>[pg&nbsp;41]</span>
-said Leslie. &quot;Ask &#39;em to send out and get one. I suppose
-you can get such things?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M&#39;Gourley gave the message to the maid, and she departed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The travelers&#39; luggage&mdash;a frightful-looking old mid-Victorian
-carpet bag belonging to M&#39;Gourley, and a
-Gladstone of Leslie&#39;s&mdash;had already arrived at the tea
-house, having been sent on by rail <i>via</i> Utsu-no-Miya,
-and the two sat down on small square cushions, placed
-on the cream-colored matting, to smoke a pipe, whilst
-dinner and the bath were preparing.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;The police will be here the morn about that bairn,&quot;
-said Mac in his cheerful way, &quot;and we&#39;ll have to acoont
-for her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Of course we will.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ay, ay,&quot; said Mac, &quot;but have you ever acoonted for
-a thing to the Japanese police?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, considering I&#39;ve only been in Japan ten days,
-I haven&#39;t had much time, you see, to fall foul of the
-police.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I found a scairf pin once,&quot; said this comforter of
-Job, &quot;on the Bund at Nagasaki. Twa-and-sax-pence it
-was worth, or maybe three shullin&#39;, and I took it to the
-police office and began to acoont for it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He stopped and sighed and sucked his pipe.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page42" id="page42"></a>[pg&nbsp;42]</span>
-&quot;Well?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, I&#39;m acoontin&#39; for it still, and that&#39;s three
-months ago; letters and papers, and papers and letters
-enough to drive a man daft! Well, I&#39;m thinkin&#39; if a
-twa-and-saxpenny scairf pin can cause such a wully
-waugh, what&#39;s a live bairn going to do? Now, I&#39;m
-thinking&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;May I give you a piece of advice, Mac?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I am always open to judeecious advice,&quot; answered
-the unsuspecting Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, don&#39;t think too much or you&#39;ll hurt yourself.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M&#39;Gourley grunted, and at that moment the Mousm&egrave;
-with the camellia in her hair entered with the announcement
-that the bath was ready in the room above, and
-Leslie departed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;When you have shown the honorable gentleman the
-bath, come down; I wish to speak to you,&quot; said M&#39;Gourley
-to the lady of the camellia. She obeyed the request
-and M&#39;Gourley held her in light conversation, till he
-knew by the sounds above that his partner was in the
-tub. Then he released the handmaiden, and she departed
-upstairs.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He listened, and presently he heard Leslie&#39;s voice.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Go away, please. Good heavens I say, I <i>wish</i> you&#39;d
-go away! No, I don&#39;t want soap. I say, Mac! Hi,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page43" id="page43"></a>[pg&nbsp;43]</span>
-McGourley!&mdash;leave my back alone&mdash;<i>M&#39;Gourley</i>!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But M&#39;Gourley, like an Indian Sachem, smoked on
-and answered not.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was having his revenge for the Nikko road.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page44" id="page44"></a>[pg&nbsp;44]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER VI</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">THE DREAMER AND THE DRAGON</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They had finished dinner; a dinner which began
-with tea and bean flour cakes, passed on to fish
-served on little mats of grass, went on to soup served
-in lacquered bowls, proceeded to prawns; halted, hesitated,
-and went back to soup, scratched its head, so to
-speak, and then, as if with an after-thought, served up a
-quail, apologized for the substantiality of the quail by
-presenting a salted plum on a little plate, and then
-harked shamelessly back to soup, ending deliriously with
-a shower of little dishes containing everything inconceivable,
-and a big bowl of rice.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This is an impressionist picture of a Japanese dinner.
-I have eaten many, but I have never carried away
-more than an impression, and whether kuchi-tori comes
-before hachiz-a-kana, I cannot say, or where the seaweed
-or salted fish come in&mdash;but come in they do, they
-and other things stranger than themselves.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page45" id="page45"></a>[pg&nbsp;45]</span>
-A <i>cham&egrave;cen</i> was thrumming somewhere in the house
-as they dined, sitting on the soft white matting, and
-waited upon by two Mousm&egrave;s crouched on the matting
-like little panthers preparing to spring.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A slid back panel of the front wall made a doorway
-through which they could see the moon wandering over
-Nikko, casting her cool white light upon the blazing
-japonica flowers, the glory of the camellias, the roofs of
-the temples, and the sad dark beauty of the cryptomeria
-trees.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Nikko by day is fair, but by night, when the moon is
-overhead, when the air is full of the sounds of wandering
-waters, and the wind is heavy with the perfume of
-the wild azaleas, Nikko is a dream.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When the tea and bean cakes had been served, the
-moon was in the act of washing weakly a house gable
-across the garden, and a pale lilac-colored flower of the
-wistaria, which projected above the extemporized doorway;
-but by the time the quail had made its appearance,
-the garden was solid in moonlight, the pond was a mirror,
-and the frog self-marooned on the little island, was
-as distinct as if seen by daylight.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I must learn Japanese,&quot; said Leslie, taking a cigarette-case
-from his pocket and lighting a cigarette at
-the tobacco-mono that stood at his elbow. &quot;My lines are
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page46" id="page46"></a>[pg&nbsp;46]</span>
-cast in Japan, that&#39;s clear, but a man without the language
-is a helpless baby.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ay, ay,&quot; said M&#39;Gourley. &quot;You can easily get
-instruction in the Japanese: take a wumman to live
-with you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I haven&#39;t looked at a woman for ten years, and I
-don&#39;t want to look at one again.&quot; Then suddenly bursting out:
-&quot;Why, you old scamp, talking like that&mdash;you
-told me you were a member of the Free Kirk.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;The Wee Kirk,&quot; corrected Mac, leisurely lighting
-his pipe with an ember from the hibachi.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, Free Kirk or Wee Kirk, you ought to be jolly
-well ashamed of yourself; and were you a member of the
-Wee Kirk when you were constructing idols in Birmingham
-with old What&#39;s-his-name?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Na, na; those were my godless days. I got my
-releegion late in life, and a vara good releegion it is; a
-waurkable releegion, one that does not heat in the bearings,
-but runs smooth.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;And what is this wonderful religion, if I may ask?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It is noet so much wonderful as waurkable, and it
-may be compreezed in the sentence: &#39;Do unto ithers as
-ithers would do unto you.&#39;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;O good Lord! and you call that a religion! Why,
-you precious old humbug, that means you can rob, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page47" id="page47"></a>[pg&nbsp;47]</span>
-plunder, and murder, and cheat&mdash;that is to say, you can
-act like a beast towards people who would act so to you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Just so.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, there&#39;s one thing I like about you, you&#39;re
-frank, to say the least of it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This remark seemed greatly to incense Mac, who, perhaps,
-misunderstood the meaning of the word frank.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;When y&#39;ve been in the waurld as long as I have,
-surrounded on ivry side by scoondrels and robbers, y&#39;ll
-maybee be as fraunk as mysel&#39;. Fraunk.&mdash;wid ye give me
-a defineetion of the waurd&mdash;fraunk! I wid have ye to
-understand I&#39;m an hoenest mon with hoenest men, but
-<i>I&#39;m a scoondrel wi&#39; scoondrels</i>. Fraunk!&quot; And so he
-went on, his Scotch accent deepening as deepened his
-excitement, till at last he broke down into Gaelic, and
-thundered his remarks at the hibachi, slapping his thigh
-as he did so, and wakening the echoes of the house, which
-was resonant as a fiddle. So that by the time he had got
-to the end of his exordium, Leslie saw a panel waver back
-an inch, and the lady of the camellia peeping in to see
-what the Learned One was shouting about.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Keep your hair on,&quot; said Leslie, when Mac, with a
-final &quot;Fraunk!&quot; delivered in English, began to refill
-and light his pipe. &quot;I didn&#39;t mean to insult you; I
-only meant to say I like your open-heartedness.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page48" id="page48"></a>[pg&nbsp;48]</span>
-&quot;Ay, I was ever that to those I had a liking for.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I meant more precisely your open-mindedness&mdash;but
-no matter, let&#39;s talk of something else. I wonder where
-they&#39;ve put the kid, and oh, by Jove! I wonder if
-they&#39;ve got that dragon. Sing out and ask, like a good
-chap.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac clapped his hands, and &quot;Hai tadaima!&quot; came as
-a response.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was worth the trouble of clapping one&#39;s hands to
-hear that sweet reply.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A moment later, a panel slid back and the camellia
-lady appeared.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula San was asleep, and at that very moment
-Wild-cherry-bud was in search of the Hon. Dragon,
-with orders to leave no confectioner&#39;s stall unvisited till
-she had secured him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This with immovable gravity and deep, sweet earnestness
-of tone.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well,&quot; said Leslie when she had withdrawn, &quot;of all
-the people I have struck yet, give me the Japanese.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Wait till you&#39;ve had beesiness transactions with
-them,&quot; said Mac darkly. &quot;I am no so unfreenly to the
-Japs in or&#39;nary life, but in beesiness the Jap&#39;s a wrugglin&#39;
-sairpent&mdash;all but one&mdash;Danjuro&mdash;the man we&#39;re
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page49" id="page49"></a>[pg&nbsp;49]</span>
-going to join in partnership; he&#39;s as straight as a
-Chinee.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;He must be damn crooked then!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Cruik&#39;d enough to make his way in Japan, but
-straight enough to a freend; but you&#39;re a poet, man,
-Leslie, and no beesiness man. I kent y&#39; for a poet when
-you sang that bit song on the road&mdash;the song aboot the
-camellia trees.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie laughed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;That rubbish! It&#39;s not mine; I read it in the Sydney
-<i>Bulletin</i>. Funny enough, too, it was the first thing
-that made me think of coming to Japan! Poetry! Good
-God! Put a man through the remittance mill in Sydney
-and see all the poetry that will be left in him! Put a
-butterfly through a sausage machine and then see how
-beautifully it will fly! Yes, I was once a poet; years
-and years ago I was a poet&mdash;a poet who never wrote anything,
-but a poet for all that. I could see the beauty of
-the world; and then they blinded me. Who? I don&#39;t
-know&mdash;the world. Maybe it was myself, maybe not.
-Maybe it was my father, maybe not. I only state the
-fact that something in me is dead&mdash;the something that
-took joy in life and found beauty in innocence&mdash;or was
-dead till I came to Japan. Oh, M&#39;Gourley, man, the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page50" id="page50"></a>[pg&nbsp;50]</span>
-years I&#39;ve spent in Sydney under a cloud, mixing with
-bar loafers, cursing my father and myself; the years
-I&#39;ve spent in Sydney have broken my soul in me!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Why did ye not waurk?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Work! I had just enough money to keep me from
-starvation and decently dressed. I might have got a
-clerkship; for what good? To make another hundred a
-year. To spend on what? Can you not understand, man,
-that my mainspring was gone, that I was put out of
-the world I knew, tied by the leg to Sydney, bound to
-appear every quarter-day at the double-damned lawyer&#39;s
-office, or starve? Two things only kept me alive&mdash;tobacco
-and books&mdash;saved me from myself and from
-drink.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What sort of a mon was your faither?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;A hard, dour, just man&mdash;a man who could make no
-allowance for folly.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ay, ay! Had y&#39; any brithers and sisters?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Never a one, and my mother died when I was two;
-and he used to leather me. Well, you can fancy my joy
-when old Bloomfield, the lawyer, sent for me one day
-and said: &#39;I&#39;ve bad news for you, Mr. Leslie.&#39; &#39;What&#39;s
-that?&#39; said I. &#39;Your father is dead. He died intestate,
-and you have inherited his property. I am advised it
-amounts to over twenty-one thousand pounds.&#39;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page51" id="page51"></a>[pg&nbsp;51]</span>
-&quot;Twenty-one thousand?&quot; said Mac in admiration.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes; and I said to Bloomfield: &#39;You must be either
-a fool or a hypocrite, for that&#39;s the best news I ever
-heard in my life, and you know it.&#39; Then some instinct
-took me over here to Japan. I was thinking of going to
-England, but I found all at once I had a horror of England
-and the English, so I came to Japan; and glad I
-am I came. Can you fancy what these people here are
-to me after the population of Sydney&mdash;those raucous,
-horse-racing, drink-swilling beasts? Then I fell in with
-you at Tokyo, and took a fancy to your old Scotch
-mug&mdash;and here we are.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At this moment a little figure crossed the garden,
-bearing a lantern on the end of a stick. It was Wild-cherry-bud;
-and presently she appeared with the much-sought-for
-dragon wrapped in rice paper.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was a wonderful creation with a twisted tail, rather
-stumpy wings, but with a mouth that made up for all
-defects; nothing so ferocious had ever perhaps before
-been done in sugar candy.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When the thing had been inspected and approved,
-Wild-cherry-bud led the way to where Campanula slept,
-for Leslie wished his present to be placed beside her, so
-that she might find it when she awoke.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Lost One, looking very much lost indeed on a
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page52" id="page52"></a>[pg&nbsp;52]</span>
-huge futon (a quilt thicker than a muffin), and covered
-by a blue mosquito-net with red bound edges, was so
-profoundly asleep that the clicking of the net being
-pulled aside and the light of the night lantern borne by
-Wild-cherry-bud did not disturb her. She was sleeping
-on her back, the top futon only drawn to her waist, and
-her little perfectly shaped white hands were crossed
-pathetically on her breast.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie knelt down, and lifting one little hand placed
-the long-sought monster beneath it. The hand clasped
-the dragon, the long-sought dragon, and across the
-sleeper&#39;s face passed what seemed the ghost of a smile.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;A&#39;weel!&quot; thought Mac as he looked on, &quot;had he a
-bairn he&#39;d make a better faither to it than his own
-faither made to him.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the mosquito-net was drawn and they departed,
-leaving Campanula to the possession of her dreams.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Up in their room Leslie steadily refused to undress
-till the waiting Mousm&egrave; had &quot;cleared out.&quot; He had
-already refused to allow her to rub his back when he
-was in his tub and now this&mdash;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Tea House of the Tortoise people, good old-fashioned,
-Japanese inn people, unused to foreign follies,
-could not make it out.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page53" id="page53"></a>[pg&nbsp;53]</span>
-The Areopagus convened itself again, and held
-council by the light of an andon, or night lantern.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What could it mean?&quot; There was simply no meaning
-in it. Such a thing had never happened before, and
-the general conclusion was that Leslie had &quot;gone gyte.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the Areopagus went to bed all together under
-the same mosquito-net, and silence reigned with the
-moon over the Tea House of the Tortoise. The moon
-wandering over Nikko touching temple and tea-house
-pointed a pallid finger between the window chinks of the
-room where the Lost One lay asleep, as if to show her
-to the night. Clasping the candy dragon whose ferocious
-eyes shone carbuncle-like in the placid moonlight she
-made a strange picture, veiled by the blue gauze of the
-mosquito-net.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page54" id="page54"></a>[pg&nbsp;54]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER VII</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">HOW CAMPANULA BROUGHT FORTUNE TO THE HOUSE OF THE TORTOISE&mdash;AND OTHER THINGS</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The sun rose up and struck Nikko; struck the
-sacred red lacquered bridge that crosses the foaming
-river, and the common bridge that you and I may
-use, the potter&#39;s shop, and the golden shrine of Iyeyasu.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then temple after temple broke up from shadow as
-the sun reached for them and found them, and the hills
-took on a momentary splendor, an ethereal loveliness,
-evanescent as youth and never to be recaptured by the
-day.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In the garden of the Tea House of the Tortoise a
-bomb-shell full of bickering sparrows seemed suddenly
-to burst above the pond, the sun looked over the wall
-upon the dwarf maples in their blue porcelain flowerpots,
-a panel of the white house front slid back and a
-Mousm&egrave; appeared, her head tied up in a blue cotton
-duster; appeared another Mousm&egrave;, dragging a futon to
-air in the morning brightness, and yet another who came
-out and yawned at the sun, showing him the full extent
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page55" id="page55"></a>[pg&nbsp;55]</span>
-of her pink gullet, and every one of her thirty-two white
-teeth.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then Hedgehog San, a cat honored and beloved,
-came forth with tail erect, and a grasshopper hanging
-by the veranda in a tiny cage creaked forth a thin
-hymn of praise.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Thus started the day at the Tea House of the Tortoise.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When Leslie and M&#39;Gourley came downstairs&mdash;a stair
-like a ship&#39;s companion-way but without any balustrade&mdash;they
-found Campanula having her obi tied by
-Fir-branch (she who had yawned at the sun), and Leslie
-was informed through his partner that the dragon had
-been found and that he had grown; this statement, with
-some confidential information concerning a thunder-cat
-of which she had dreamed, Mac translated from the
-original with a serious face.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Up to this he had treated the Lost One as an adult,
-and as a most undesirable adult, with whom he wished
-to have nothing to do. But Campanula, fresh and
-spruce in the light of morning, chattering over her
-shoulder to you about thunder-cats, whilst Fir-branch
-tied her obi in a huge bow, was a person whose charm
-was not to be denied, and Mac began to thaw.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What&#39;s a thunder-cat?&quot; asked Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page56" id="page56"></a>[pg&nbsp;56]</span>
-&quot;Lord only knows! some contraption in the shape of
-an animal that makes thunder. The Japs are full of
-supersteetions about animals. Wull we out before breakfast?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie the night before had declared his intention of
-sending for the police next morning before the police
-sent for him, and had given a message to the landlord
-accordingly. But he might have saved his breath.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Nikko was agog. Whether the tale had leaked
-through the chinks of the Tea House of the Tortoise,
-whether Wild-cherry-bud had distributed it during her
-peregrinations in search of the dragon, no one will ever
-know; the fact remains that the story of Campanula had
-gone abroad with additions&mdash;all sorts of weird and
-wonderful additions. Half Nikko had seen her borne
-aloft on the shoulders of Leslie, the other half had heard
-extraordinary statements concerning her origin; the
-result was that the whole of Nikko ached inwardly with
-a great ache of curiosity.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">By seven o&#39;clock fifteen Mousm&egrave;s or maybe twenty,
-had arrived singly and in couples, not to ask questions,
-but to borrow things, or to offer the loan of things, or to
-ask after the health of old mother Ranunculus, the
-landlady of the &quot;Tortoise.&quot; Incidentally they learned
-about Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page57" id="page57"></a>[pg&nbsp;57]</span>
-A juggler had made her on the Nikko road. Out of
-what, for goodness&#39; sake? Out of a wild azalea bush!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">No!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Yes, assuredly, the Learned One had said so.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And what had become of the juggler? He had vanished
-in a clap of thunder&mdash;turned into a dragon.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Surprising!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And they went off to spread the news.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At half-past eight, or thereabouts, a little man in
-white, the chief of the Nikko police, arrived. He had
-come officially, but he also was aching to get to the truth
-of this marvelous tale.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Now the Japanese police is the most perfect police
-force in the world in every respect. They are recruited
-from the Samurai or fighting-class, and they are gentlemen
-to a man.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The chief of the Nikko police made profound apologies
-for disturbing the peace of the strangers, then he
-heard the story told by M&#39;Gourley.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He agreed that it was strange, but opined that the
-Lost One might simply be a lost child. Where exactly
-was she found? In a valley of crimson azaleas on the
-road from Kureise. Ah, yes! there was such a valley
-well known, for the azaleas were crimson, and differed
-from the wild scarlet azaleas so common hereabouts.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page58" id="page58"></a>[pg&nbsp;58]</span>
-There were also villages around there, and tea houses; it
-might possibly be that she belonged to one of these.
-As to the mad man they had seen running away, no
-one else had seen him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then Campanula was brought in and questioned, the
-whole of the &quot;Tortoise&quot; people squatting round in a
-ring, even down to Hedgehog San, who sat with judicial
-gravity, and seemed to be taking mental notes.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She told her little tale about the house with the plum
-tree in front of it, and the kite, and the sugar-candy
-dragon which she had lost and found again. How
-the said dragon had grown very much, and seemed different,
-but tasted all right. Here she hastened to explain
-that she had not eaten him, only touched him
-with her tongue.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She could not possibly say what men called her father.
-He hammered things. What sort of things? She did not
-know, but they went pong, pong, pong, when he struck
-them.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Tinsmith,&quot; murmured M&#39;Gourley.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She was sure of one thing, that her father&#39;s house was
-quite close to the wood and the azalea valley.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">How old was she?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Seven times had the cherry blossoms blown since her
-humble self&mdash;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page59" id="page59"></a>[pg&nbsp;59]</span>
-&quot;Hauld there,&quot; said M&#39;Gourley. Then in Japanese
-he explained that yesterday she had declared that eight
-times the cherry blossoms had blown since her humble
-self, etc.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Ah, yes! but how was she to know? a lump of mud
-like her!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In conclusion, she took back her statement about the
-snow. She must have dreamt that in the wood.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the court began to consult, the &quot;lump of mud&quot;
-sitting in their midst pensive and rather sad, a scarlet
-flower in her black hair, and the bow of her obi looking
-very stiff and huge.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Look here,&quot; said Leslie at last. &quot;Tell him I&#39;ll look
-after her, and pay all expenses till she&#39;s found. Tell
-him to have the place searched, all that wood and
-country, and I&#39;ll pay for it; and if they can&#39;t find her
-people I&#39;ll adopt her. I will, begad!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac translated.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At first the chief of police seemed to think that the
-&quot;lump of mud&quot; should be hauled off to the police
-office&mdash;impounded, in short; then M&#39;Gourley intervened.
-M&#39;Gourley was a power in Japan just then, for the
-astute Scot had made himself very useful to the government
-in past years, and the chief of police, when he
-heard what Mac had to say, agreed to leave matters
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page60" id="page60"></a>[pg&nbsp;60]</span>
-where they were whilst the country was being searched,
-and the chief of police at Tokyo communicated with.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he took his departure, and here began the prosperity
-of the Tea House of the Tortoise.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Three elderly gentlemen in kimonos were the first to
-arrive; after them a youth in a bowler hat, and with the
-face of an uninspired idiot. These sat round and sipped
-saki and smoked little pipes, and talked to Wild-cherry-bud
-and Fir-branch, and listened to the grasshopper
-singing in his cage, whilst more guests arrived, and still
-more. So that Fir-branch, Wild-cherry-bud, &amp; Co., were
-full of business, so full indeed that mother Ranunculus,
-driven to her wits&#39; end, sent out for hired help.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At eleven, when M&#39;Gourley and his companion went
-out to inspect the golden Shrines, the Tea House of the
-Tortoise was humming like a bee-hive.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It&#39;s a funny business,&quot; said Leslie, as they turned
-the corner into the street.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;m thinkin&#39;,&quot; said Mac, &quot;that you&#39;ll no find it so
-funny a beesiness in the end.&quot;</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page61" id="page61"></a>[pg&nbsp;61]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER VIII</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">THE SURPRISING STORY OF MOMOTARO&mdash;AKUDOGI AND SPOTTED DOG</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I don&#39;t care a button,&quot; said Leslie, on the third
-morning of their stay in Nikko. &quot;Danjuro may
-go be hanged. I&#39;m not going to leave here till I&#39;ve
-settled about the kid.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ay, ay!&quot; said Mac. &quot;The man who will to Cupar
-maun to Cupar. I would only imprees upon you this,
-that time is going and time is money.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I know; but it won&#39;t take more than a few days
-now. They say they&#39;ve hunted the whole country round
-there, and can&#39;t find trace of her people.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Na, and never will. If she has onny real people
-they won&#39;t fash themselves aboot her; girls in Japan
-are as plentiful as blaeberries in Lorne&mdash;you&#39;re sadlit
-with her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, I want her, that&#39;s the truth. I&#39;ve taken a
-fancy to her; she&#39;s not the sort of thing one picks every
-day&mdash;she and her thunder-cats and dragons.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page62" id="page62"></a>[pg&nbsp;62]</span>
-&quot;I won&#39;t say she is not an attractif wee boddie,&quot; said
-Mac, &quot;but think of the future, mon, when she&#39;s graun
-up.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Bother the future! I&#39;m rich enough to see after
-her. D&#39;y know, Mac&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Weel?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I wonder did she come out of those azaleas?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac gave a grunt.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Curiously enough, his point of view had changed, and
-he was now convinced, or pretended to be convinced,
-that the treasure trove was a solid body and no bogle.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Because,&quot; went on Leslie, &quot;it may be fact or fancy,
-but when I picked her up she seemed slipping away into
-thin air till I kissed her, and then she became solid.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Imphim,&quot; said Mac, using a variation of the sound
-that was simply stuffed with meanings all uncomplimentary
-to Leslie&#39;s intelligence.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;They used to tell me when I was a kid that babies
-came out of parsley beds. Well, I&#39;m half inclined to
-believe the tale has come true at last, and she came out of
-those azalea bushes. Of course,&quot; said Leslie suddenly,
-and as if apologizing to his own common sense, &quot;I
-don&#39;t really believe it, but I like to fancy it; it&#39;s so much
-nicer than thinking she came into the world the other
-way.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page63" id="page63"></a>[pg&nbsp;63]</span>
-The prosperity of the Tea House of the Tortoise still
-continued, people coming from far and near to get a
-glimpse of the foundling.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Every day Mac and Leslie would take her out for a
-walk, and she clopped beside them in her little clogs
-delightfully grave, and seemingly unmindful of the
-polite following of children that always tailed after
-them without appearing quite to do so. Children bouncing
-colored balls, playing hop scotch or what not, yet
-always with an eye on the child that had come out of
-the azaleas.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Shopping with Campanula Leslie found to be a new
-pleasure; a present, no matter what, was received with
-such deep thankfulness, such quaint expressions of
-gratitude.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He ordered Mother Ranunculus&mdash;requested her,
-rather&mdash;to get a complete new outfit for his charge,
-everything that money could buy, from tabi to hairpins,
-from kimonos to clogs. As for toys, she simply wallowed
-in them: bouncing balls and battledores fell round her
-as if from the sky, not to mention a doll as big as a baby
-of three, which she instantly became a mother to, carting
-it about on her back tucked under her kimono.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The one thing that disturbed Leslie was her seeming
-indifference to her own strange position. Beyond the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page64" id="page64"></a>[pg&nbsp;64]</span>
-bald statement that she had a father, she never referred
-to that enigmatical gentleman, nor did she grieve, outwardly
-at least, about her separation from him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">By the end of the week the two Scotchmen and their
-charge began to be welded into a corporate body&mdash;a
-little quaint family party. It was strange the influence
-of this child upon these two men whom fate had drawn
-together from the corners of the earth. Leslie, with
-newly acquired interest in life, had grown five years
-younger in mind, and as for Mac, he had grown ten
-degrees more human. His withered fatherly instincts
-were awakened&mdash;at least they opened one eye&mdash;and it
-was pretty to see him with his gnarled, horny hands
-and intent, weather-beaten face making chickens for the
-Lost One out of orange pips.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They would go out, all three, and wander about
-Nikko and its temples, and they would sit on grassy
-banks in the gardens of Dai Nichi Do, just as a father
-and an uncle and niece might sit on seats in Kensington
-Gardens, and then Leslie and his partner would discuss
-the future and trade, whilst Campanula played with her
-doll or bounced a ball.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Here one day, whilst the sun shone on the little lake
-and the pink and copper maples, the tiny islands and
-bridges and pagodas, Campanula, weary of play, told,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page65" id="page65"></a>[pg&nbsp;65]</span>
-in a sing-song voice and broken manner, the story of
-Momotaro, otherwise called Peachboy, and his wonderful
-deeds. She told it standing before them, and striking
-attitudes suitable to the phases of the tale.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">One day, it appears, an old woman found a huge
-peach, and she was just going to cut it in two with a
-knife when the peach broke open, and out tumbled a
-baby. This very surprising thing happened a long time
-ago, but exactly when Campanula could not possibly
-say.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then Peachboy grew up, and every day he grew
-fatter and stronger, till at last he grew so big that he
-determined to fight Akudogi, the king of the Ogres,
-who lived on an island&mdash;somewhere. And he started out,
-said Campanula, with a sword and a bag full of millet
-dumplings, each with a salted plum in the center, to
-fight the Ogres.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Here she took from her sleeve a paper of sweets, and
-gravely presented it to her companions, who each took
-one. She took one herself, consumed it, and resumed the
-narrative.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On the way he met a spotted dog, a monkey, and a
-crow, and to each he gave a dumpling, and they followed
-him to the attack on Akudogi, the king of the
-Ogres.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page66" id="page66"></a>[pg&nbsp;66]</span>
-The narrator&#39;s voice became deeper in tone, and she
-spread out her fingers as if in fear.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The crow flew first to the castle of Akudogi and held
-him in talk, whilst Peachboy, spotted dog, and the
-monkey, got over the castle wall.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula was now standing before her auditors in a
-most dramatic attitude, her hands uplifted, the fallen
-back sleeves of her kimono showing her arms, and her
-brown eyes full of fear. She did not seem to see either
-Leslie or M&#39;Gourley. Her eyes were fixed on the frightful
-Akudogi, and Peachboy, the spotted dog and the
-monkey, who were about to attack him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The crow, when he saw that his companions had
-gained an entrance to the castle, flew away with a laugh,
-and Akudogi turned and beheld Peachboy and his brave
-companions. He gnashed his teeth, pulled out his
-sword, and oh!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Frightened to death with her own imaginations, she
-rushed with a little shriek into Mac&#39;s arms for protection.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Hauld yourself taegether; I winna let them catch
-ye! I winna let them catch ye!&quot; cried Mac, as he
-clasped the perfumed bundle that had flung itself into
-his arms.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What&#39;s all that she was telling?&quot; asked Leslie, who
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page67" id="page67"></a>[pg&nbsp;67]</span>
-felt rather jealous that Mac should have been chosen
-as the harbor of refuge.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Only a daft tale about ogres an&#39; spotted dogs.
-She&#39;s clean crackit on all sorts of queer beasties. Only
-last night she told me a tale aboot a rat that played
-the fiddle an&#39; a tortoise that came to listen, and she told
-what the tortoise speired an&#39; what the rat made answer,
-till you could have sworn you heard the rat and the
-tortoise claverin&#39; taegither.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, hand her over here,&quot; said Leslie; &quot;she&#39;s not
-yours.&quot; And he took Campanula from Mac and placed
-her on his knee. &quot;She&#39;s mine. I paid ten shillings to
-that chap with the reed-pipe to whistle her up.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;ll tell you what,&quot; said Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;ll gi&#39; you ten shullin&#39; for a half share, and pay
-half the expeenses of her upbringing.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;No, she&#39;s mine; you can play with her as much as
-you like, but I&#39;m going to keep her. She&#39;s the jolliest
-thing I ever struck, and I&#39;m going to stick to her. I
-saw that policeman Johnnie this morning, and he&#39;s quite
-given up hope of finding her people. They&#39;ve hunted
-everywhere. I offered him a fiver to cover the business,
-but he would not touch the money. He says the chief
-of police at Tokyo knows you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page68" id="page68"></a>[pg&nbsp;68]</span>
-&quot;Weel does he know me, seven year and more.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;And he says there&#39;s no objection to our taking her
-along to Nagasaki if you give your bond that she will
-be looked after, so I was thinking of starting to-morrow.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Wull you take her with us?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I was thinking of leaving her with the &#39;Tortoise&#39;
-people till I settle about a place to live in at Nagasaki,
-and then coming back to fetch her. She&#39;ll be all right
-with them, I suppose?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ay, she&#39;ll be right enough,&quot; said Mac, and they
-left the gardens of Dai Nichi Do, and headed for the
-hostelry.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">That night the Areopagus convened itself again, and
-M&#39;Gourley explained matters. It was necessary that he
-and his honorable friend should go to Nagasaki, and
-they proposed that the Lost One should be left behind
-at the Tea House of the Tortoise, to be kept till called
-for, warehoused, in short, and, of course, paid for accordingly.
-Was Madame Ranunculus willing?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Most willing.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A sum of money would be placed in the landlord&#39;s
-hands as guarantee.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Oh, that was perfectly unnecessary!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Still, the Hon. Leslie wished it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page69" id="page69"></a>[pg&nbsp;69]</span>
-Accordingly, a sum equivalent almost to the value of
-the Tea House of the Tortoise, was placed in the landlord&#39;s
-hands, who placed it in numerous folds of rice
-paper, and handed it to his wife, who engulfed it in her
-kimono.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">These matters having been satisfactorily settled,
-Campanula was led off to bed and dinner was served.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Next morning at eight o&#39;clock two rikshas arrived to
-take the travelers to the station. The whole of the
-&quot;Tortoise&quot; folk, Hedgehog San included, came to the
-front of the house. The cry, &quot;Sayonara&mdash;come again
-quickly,&quot; followed them as they swept round the pond
-and out at the gate, a cry made up of the landlord&#39;s
-croaking basso, the sweet voices of the Mousm&egrave;s, and
-Campanula&#39;s childish treble.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;She seemed sorrier to part with old Mac than me,&quot;
-thought Leslie as they span along. &quot;Ugh!&quot; He turned
-his head in disgust from an English tourist in tweeds,
-who was engaged in kodaking a temple.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In the train, with a pipe in his mouth and M&#39;Gourley
-opposite to him, he felt as if he had just stepped out
-of a dream; a dream of sun and splendor, a dream in
-which figured camellia trees twenty feet high, and the
-form of the Lost One standing amidst the glory of
-crimson azaleas.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page70" id="page70"></a>[pg&nbsp;70]</span>
-But another picture obtruded itself upon this pleasant
-dream.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Away in the mountains not far from Lake Chuzenji,
-a green thing had been discovered, a thing that had
-once been a man. Mac had been to view it at the request
-of the police, but he could not identify it as the body of
-the Blind One of the Nikko Road. It was green from
-the chlorophyll of the cryptomerias. In the quaint
-language of the Japanese police, it was the body of a
-man whom &quot;the trees had beaten to death.&quot;</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page71" id="page71"></a>[pg&nbsp;71]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER IX</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">THE HOUSE OF THE CLOUDS</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Danjuro, the curio dealer of Jinrikisha Street,
-Nagasaki (no relation of Danjuro the actor),
-was a gentleman of uncertain age, with a face which
-seemed the relic of a thousand years of debauchery.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was probably only opium, but the awful weary
-look with which he swindled you, when you were once in
-the trap he called his shop, would have given Dante
-points for the construction of a new circle in his <i>Inferno</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had spent years in China, had Danjuro, hence,
-perhaps, the expression on his face; also the fact that
-he did his calculations not by aid of the so-ro-ba, or
-calculating machine used by the Japanese tradesmen. He
-did his calculations in his head, and with that far-away
-look so filled with the poetry of the horrible, he would
-calculate the difference between the price he had paid
-for the okimono he was selling you and your offer for
-it, contrasting them with your own personality, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page72" id="page72"></a>[pg&nbsp;72]</span>
-from these three factors calculating to a nicety how
-much money he could swindle out of you.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had a hand in the selling of the Great Tung Jade
-to the Empress of China, or rather to her ambassador
-the Mandarin Li, the shadiest transaction that ever
-emerged from darkness; and could you place end to end
-the globe trotters swindled and chiseled and fleeced by
-him, they would reach in a noxious line from London to
-Newcastle, and maybe further. He had long, polished
-finger nails that shone like plate glass, and when you
-entered his establishment he advanced, bowed, and
-hissed at you by way of welcome.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was a rogue, yet he was straight in his way. To
-be a perfect rogue, at least to succeed in the art, you
-must be straight in some ways. The bandit who betrays
-his brethren never goes far without a dagger sticking
-in his back.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M&#39;Gourley had &quot;discovered&quot; Danjuro years ago.
-M&#39;Gourley had twice come to financial smash, once
-because of an earthquake, and again in the upheaval
-caused by the breaking of the Barings. Danjuro had
-helped him twice, and he had helped Danjuro many
-times; helped him with his Western craft, Scotch cuteness,
-and knowledge of Europeans.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In every city of the East, in every city of the world,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page73" id="page73"></a>[pg&nbsp;73]</span>
-you will find a fixed Scot always prospering; M&#39;Gourley
-was a floating Scot. Navigating Japan from end to
-end, now at Tokyo, now at Kioto, now at Nagasaki,
-crossing to Corea and pottering about there, meeting
-brither Scotchmen and helping them in trade
-speculations, selling, or assisting in the sale, of
-everything sellable from coals to kakemonos, went
-M&#39;Gourley, a busy man, but somehow a rather unfortunate
-one.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Suddenly Japan rose and smashed China, Russia
-stepped in and robbed her of the pieces, and Japan sat
-down, drew her kimono round her, and began to think
-about Russia.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M&#39;Gourley just then (it was some two years before
-he met Leslie) was on the Lao-Tung peninsula, a black
-wandering dot, innocuous to governments, one would
-imagine, as a beetle.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Suddenly M&#39;Gourley returned to Japan, and the day
-after his return a sheaf of documents addressed by a
-gentleman named Lessar to a gentleman named Mouravieff
-was in the hands of the Japanese Council of
-Elders.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">I don&#39;t say anything about the transaction at all; it
-is not for me to take away the characters of my characters.
-I only know this, that if the Russian Government
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page74" id="page74"></a>[pg&nbsp;74]</span>
-had caught Mac just then, they, laboring under,
-perhaps, a fantastically wrong impression, would have
-done something decidedly unpleasant to him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At all events, Mac bought a new suit of reach-me-down
-clothes at a native shop in the Honcho Dori at
-Yokohama, and got so drunk that three Mousm&egrave;s had
-put him to bed, whilst a fourth fanned him, and a
-fifth played soothing tunes on a moon-fiddle to exorcise
-the demon; and a piece of priceless gold lacquer presented
-to Mac by a high official was sold by him to an
-American week later for five thousand dollars gold coin&mdash;gold
-coin being much more useful than gold lacquer
-to a man in Mac&#39;s way of life.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Thus it came about that Mac was a persona grata
-with the Japanese Government, and had many little
-privileges not enjoyed by ordinary Europeans.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Danjuro&#39;s shop was situated in Jinriksha Street, a
-street like a picture slashed out of the &quot;Arabian
-Nights,&quot; a picture that a child had made additions to
-with a lead pencil and half spoiled.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A bowler hat in Jinriksha Street, for instance, is a
-thing very much out of place, yet you see many of
-them, mostly potted down on the back of Japanese
-heads, and making the wearers both frightful and
-ridiculous-looking.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page75" id="page75"></a>[pg&nbsp;75]</span>
-Here passes a Mousm&egrave; under an umbrella, a figure
-fashioned seemingly from a rainbow, a figure to bless
-the eye and make the heart feel glad. Here stumps
-along a thing that once was a Mousm&egrave;, a thing in
-European dress&mdash;alas!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Here you turn from a shop sign in the vernacular,
-and across the way, over the booth where cakes reposing
-on myrtle branches are sold, &quot;Englis here is spoke,&quot;
-blasts your sight.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jinrikisha Street, and for Jinrikisha Street read
-nearly every other street in sea-board Japan, is a picture,
-as I have said, spoiled as if by a meddlesome
-English child.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Danjuro&#39;s shop was all open in front so that you could
-come right in past the bronze stork on the tortoise, past
-the leaping dragon made of jointed steel, a dragon hard
-as adamant yet flexible as india-rubber. Then you met
-Danjuro, and he sank towards the floor and hissed at
-you by way of welcome. The chief treasures were in
-the cellar below, but here was quite enough to feast the
-eye of a not too wise amateur, and make the purse jump
-in his pocket.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Danjuro had the art of shop-dressing at his finger-ends.
-Things always looked better in his establishment
-than they did when fetched home.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page76" id="page76"></a>[pg&nbsp;76]</span>
-People would cry: &quot;Is <i>that</i> the Owari vase I
-bought? Why, <i>what has happened to it</i>?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It would be the same vase, but divorced from its surroundings.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">You cannot imagine the effect of a dwarf plum tree
-in a green tile pot upon a dragon of steel until you see
-them in juxtaposition, nor the strange difference certain
-backgrounds make in an Owari vase till you try them.
-Danjuro was well up in these subtleties, and this knowledge,
-combined with his own personality, lent an added
-value to his wares&mdash;twenty per cent. at least.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Here in the shop of Danjuro, in a semi-twilight,
-glimmer demons and beasts in porcelain and bronze.
-The frightful face of Akudogi shouts at you from the
-wall, the lotus expands over pools in the silent land of
-lacquer, and the hundred guinea ivory Mousm&egrave;, ten
-inches high, trips beneath her ivory umbrella, ever on
-the way to some fanciful pageant that had once existed
-in her creator&#39;s dreams.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Here is a Jap baby, about as big and as round as a
-tangerine orange, feeding ducks. Here a little box a
-size larger than a walnut. Open it; inside are seated a
-man and boy playing some game with dice. The man is
-holding the dice cup up preparing to cast; in it are the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page77" id="page77"></a>[pg&nbsp;77]</span>
-dice, every cube separate and real, and each marked with
-the proper pips.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In the shop of Danjuro you are gazing, not upon
-bronzes and lacquers, but upon the mind of Japan,
-partly made visible. There is here evidence of patience
-and labor sufficient to conquer the world, beauty enough
-to charm the world, and ferocity enough to terrify it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There is nothing so strange on earth as this art that
-reveals in glimpses the exquisite and the awful, where
-the lily blossoms and the dragon tramples it under foot.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">That baby feeding the ducks, could anything be more
-laughable or lovable? But do not open the drawers of
-the cabinet he is standing on: they are filled with ivory
-obscenities carved with just as loving care.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">No, the kakemonos and bronzes that adorn the drawing-rooms
-of Bayswater and Bedford Park do not disclose
-the whole of Japanese art. If you don&#39;t believe me,
-then go to Japan and become a friend of Danjuro the
-curio-dealer, who lives in Jinrikisha Street, in the quaint
-city of Nagasaki.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;There&#39;s no use talking,&quot; said Leslie, the second day
-after his arrival at Nagasaki. &quot;I don&#39;t want to live in
-the European quarter. I want that white house up on
-the hill there you said was empty, and I want to buy it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page78" id="page78"></a>[pg&nbsp;78]</span>
-&quot;Weel,&quot; said Mac&mdash;they were standing in Danjuro&#39;s
-shop consulting&mdash;&quot;I&#39;m thinking you want more than
-it&#39;s likely y&#39;ll get. You cannot buy the house&mdash;rent it,
-maybe. Stay till I ask Dan.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Dan and he had a consultation, the upshot of which
-was that the curio-dealer, after a cynical declaration to
-the effect that anything could be obtained for money,
-offered his services as an intermediary.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A friend of his, a brother dealer, a Mr. Initogo, or
-some such name, owned the house up there on the
-heights; he would probably let it. It was named the
-House of the Clouds, warranted rainproof and free
-from ghosts.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mr. Initogo was fetched from across the way&mdash;a
-gentleman in horn spectacles, who looked as wise as
-Confucius but was a little bit deaf. After some five
-minutes&#39; polite bawling on the part of Mac and Danjuro,
-Mr. Initogo came to understand the matter, and
-at once declared with a thousand protestations of regret
-that the thing was impossible.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Why?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Well, he could not allege any specific reason. The
-House of the Clouds was empty, but he had not considered
-the matter of letting it. The proposition came as
-an honorable shock to him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page79" id="page79"></a>[pg&nbsp;79]</span>
-Then Mac and Danjuro tackled Mr. Initogo, tea was
-brought forth, and after half an hour&#39;s wavering Mr.
-Initogo began to give in.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He sent for his son, and piloted by the son, the two
-Scotchmen went off to inspect the House of the Clouds.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They passed up a by-street and then up a steep path,
-till they came to a gate shadowed by lilac trees. The
-gate led to a tiny demesne, a long, white, two-storied
-house, before which lay a grass plot, at the far end of
-the house some cherry trees, and a space that might be
-used as a garden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">From the veranda of the House of the Clouds one
-could look down on Nagasaki and the harbor that
-pierces the land like a crooked sword. The hum of Jinrikisha
-Street came up, mixed with the eternal song of
-the cicalas.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Across the harbor, where the junks and sampans contrasted
-strangely with the foreign shipping, hills rose
-up, green near the water, brown further off; over the
-hills a few white fleecy clouds passed on the light wind.
-It was the sky of an English summer.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I like this,&quot; said Leslie, turning from the view.
-&quot;Now let&#39;s look at the house.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was furnished with primrose-colored matting, nothing
-else, and it was about as substantial as a bandbox.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page80" id="page80"></a>[pg&nbsp;80]</span>
-There were two stories connected by a flight of steps
-without a balustrade, and you could make as many rooms
-as you liked with sliding panels.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;ll take it,&quot; said Leslie, and they returned to the
-shop of Danjuro. Mr. Initogo was fetched, and after
-more wriggling and haggling and tea-drinking and the
-smoking of tiny pipes, he consented to let the place&mdash;the
-authorities willing.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac undertook to make everything right in that respect,
-though it would cost him a good deal of trouble,
-as the government have a holy horror of foreigners
-spreading beyond the allotted quarters; and then a Chinese
-comprador was obtained, and received orders from
-Leslie to furnish the place with the necessary futons
-(he determined to live in the native way), pots, tins, kettles,
-Mousm&egrave;s, and a decent cook; also screens and mosquito-nets,
-plum trees in pots, and everything else that
-might be necessary for comfort and adornment.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Three days later the comprador appeared at the Nagasaki
-hotel, where Leslie was staying, and declared that
-everything was in order&mdash;even to the last tea-cup. He
-had hired servants, made a most advantageous bargain:
-he had hired a whole family.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;But, bless my soul! I don&#39;t want a family,&quot; said
-Leslie. &quot;I only want a cook and a couple of girls.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page81" id="page81"></a>[pg&nbsp;81]</span>
-Just so. This family consisted of a cook&mdash;her name
-was Fir-cone&mdash;and three daughters. They would all
-come together or not at all; he had got them at a bargain.
-The names of the daughters were: Moon, Plum-blossom,
-and Snow. Sixteen shillings a month a-piece
-was the wages they were promised. There was also a cat
-belonging to this family&mdash;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh, well, I&#39;ll take them,&quot; said Leslie, &quot;and if they
-don&#39;t suit I can get others.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">That afternoon, preceded by the comprador and followed
-by two coolies carrying his luggage he went up
-to take formal possession, and was received by his new
-servants all on their knees&mdash;the three Mousm&egrave;s in front
-and mother Fir-cone in the background.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Next day he started on the long journey to Nikko
-to fetch Campanula. When he returned with his charge
-the first person to meet him on the quay was Mac. Mac
-in a stove pipe hat he had bought cheap and which did
-not fit him but of which he seemed proud. Campanula
-instantly recognized Mac with a smile and an attempt
-to kow-tow before him, which Leslie frustrated, on account
-of the dirty state of the quay. It was a pretty
-little incident, and went to the old fellow&#39;s heart.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page82" id="page82"></a>[pg&nbsp;82]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER X</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">OF MOUSM&Egrave;S AND OTHER THINGS</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Plum-blossom was a Mousm&egrave; with a broad face,
-ever lit by a half smile. Moon was a girl with a
-serious expression, but gorgeous of dress as any girl of
-Kioto. Snow looked shrunk&mdash;not withered, you understand,
-fresh as a daisy, in fact; but something had
-happened in her development: she was preternaturally
-small, and looked like a Mousm&egrave; seen through a diminishing
-glass.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The three Mousm&egrave;s and old mother Fir-cone took
-almost entire possession of Campanula San when she
-arrived, and Campanula San seemed quite content.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mixed with her charming childishness there was a
-philosophical calm that would have done honour to a
-sage of the Stoic school. Riding on Leslie&#39;s shoulder
-through Nikko, under examination at the Tea House of
-the Tortoise, playing with Plum-blossom in the veranda
-of the House of the Clouds, she was just the same.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page83" id="page83"></a>[pg&nbsp;83]</span>
-Life was a pageant at which she was an humble spectator,
-whose duty was to be amiable and submissive, and
-accept things just as they came.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She did not say this, but she acted it, or rather expressed
-it in her actions and ways.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Down on the Bund an office had been rented by
-M&#39;Gourley. He slept there and lived there, ascending
-occasionally at night to the House of the Clouds to
-smoke a pipe with his partner and talk business, and
-give advice on things Japanese, advice often needful
-enough to the uninitiated Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">House-keeping in Japan is full of surprises. One
-day, for instance, Leslie met a figure coming from the
-back part of the premises&mdash;a figure like a rag-doll that
-had spent its life in a coal-scuttle. Interrogated, the
-figure turned out to be the mother of Moon, and by
-profession&mdash;well, her profession was helping to coal the
-Canadian Pacific boats.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;But,&quot; said Leslie, &quot;it is impossible, for Moon
-already has a mother whose name is Fir-cone.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was just going to send for the police when the
-whole truth came out on the veranda, in the form of
-Moon herself.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She explained in indifferent English, kneeling as she
-spoke with the backs of her little hands held upwards
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page84" id="page84"></a>[pg&nbsp;84]</span>
-to her face, that the comprador had lied; that there was
-no particular connection between her and her fellow-servants;
-that the comprador had made a bunch of
-them just as he might make a bunch of weeds, picking
-one up here and the other there, and pretending they
-were all the one family. Why had he done this thing?
-Who could say? For some dark reason of his own.
-She said also that her mother was not always as dirty
-as that, but was going home now to wash. Would Leslie
-San like to see her washed so that Moon&#39;s words might
-be proved to him true? Leslie San would not.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M&#39;Gourley was had up, and managed to arrange matters
-without the disruption of the household, which
-seemed imminent.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M&#39;Gourley mixed a good deal in the affairs of the
-House of the Clouds. Six months had not passed before
-the member of the Wee Kirk declared that Campanula
-should be sent to the missionary day school near the
-Bund, and brought up a Christian.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie at first demurred. The state of Campanula&#39;s
-mind, as revealed by her in conversations mostly translated
-by Mac, but often conducted limpingly by Leslie
-himself (he was beginning to pick up the native), did
-not argue a good foundation for a structure like the
-Christian religion.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page85" id="page85"></a>[pg&nbsp;85]</span>
-Her mind, as far as he could get at it, was the mind
-of a sensitive and cultured lady who was slightly mad&mdash;mad
-on the subject of demons and strange beasts.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Tortoises who talked, storks whose language was the
-acme of politeness, and toads of polished speech, seemed
-as real to her as ordinary folk.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Whether the tin-smith, her supposed father, had filled
-her head with these things, no one can say, but the fact
-remained that she was a perfect Uncle Remus as far as
-animal-tale construction was concerned, and had a Mrs.
-Radcliffe touch in the weird, so that it was a not uncommon
-thing for her to be marched off to bed, the
-triumvirate of Mousm&egrave;s&mdash;Moon, Plum-blossom, and
-Snow&mdash;acting as a body-guard to protect her from her
-own extraordinary fancies.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the self-abasement, the absolute self-abasement
-with which she would kow-tow with both tiny hands
-backs upward before your august self, and next minute
-she would be spinning a top on the veranda, or playing
-just like an ordinary child with Kiku San, a dot about
-her own size, and only daughter of Mr. Initogo, the
-landlord.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had a whole host of baldheaded Pagan friends,
-male and female, and Leslie, taking a siesta of an afternoon,
-would hear their clogs rattling on the veranda, or
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page86" id="page86"></a>[pg&nbsp;86]</span>
-their naked feet pattering in the kitchen, and half
-fancy himself the proprietor of a kindergarten.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Quaint kites were often to be seen flying above the
-House of the Clouds, kites shaped like hawks and butterflies,
-and M&#39;Gourley down in the street below would
-sometimes glance up and see these evidences of Campanula&#39;s
-existence, and nod his head and say, &quot;A&#39;weel!&quot;
-and hurry on to Danjuro&#39;s to meet him about some perhaps
-questionable transaction, revolving in his mind
-the while the question of Campanula&#39;s conversion to
-Christianity.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was a strange mixture. He would spend a whole
-morning in trade. That is to say, he would get to the
-office on the Bund early, do his correspondence and
-what not with regard to the export of cheap curios, go
-to the hotel and have a cocktail, and fish round for victims;
-find some well-to-do stranger and lead him into
-Danjuro&#39;s shop, deliver him up as a dripping roast
-into Danjuro&#39;s hands, receive his commission, and go off
-and have tiffin. Then as likely as not he would go up
-to the House of the Clouds and fetch Campanula out
-for a walk, and buy her toys, or sweets, or flowers.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And once a week or so he would tackle Leslie about
-the Christianity business, till Leslie at last gave in.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula went to the missionary day school, the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page87" id="page87"></a>[pg&nbsp;87]</span>
-prettiest school child in the world under her scarlet
-umbrella pictured with flying storks.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie went away sometimes for weeks, leaving her
-in charge of the Mousm&egrave;s and leaving Mac with instructions
-to keep an eye on her welfare.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">For the first eight months or so of this new life he
-was amused and interested, the beauty of the country,
-the quaintness of the people, the new conditions of life,
-kept him from thinking much about the past or troubling
-about the future.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then came reaction. A craving came on him to see
-England once again, a veritable home-sickness that was
-not to be denied.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He made a journey to London. He only spent a
-fortnight there; every one he had known in the past
-was either gone or dead. He belonged to no club. It was
-a miserable fortnight, and every day of it Japan called
-him back.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When he returned, he told himself that he had done
-with the West for ever. Just as men sometimes tell
-themselves they have done for ever with sin, folly, or
-love.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page89" id="page89"></a>[pg&nbsp;89]</span></p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="h2">PART TWO</p>
-
-<p class="h2">THE MASSACRE OF THE BLUE-BELLS</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page91" id="page91"></a>[pg&nbsp;91]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XI</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">THE DREAM</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The &quot;Jap Rubbish trade&quot; was prospering mildly.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">During the first two years it seemed likely to languish
-and die, but in the third year it woke up, got on
-its legs, and, to use M&#39;Gourley&#39;s phrase, &quot;began to
-pick a bit.&quot; In the fourth year it was bringing Leslie in
-some two hundred a year, a fair amount considering the
-capital originally invested in it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Not that he wanted the money, he kept his interest in
-the thing just for something to do&mdash;a toy business to
-play with when he was otherwise disengaged.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As for Mac, he was getting rich, not out of the
-Rubbish trade, but in a manner we will hint at later
-on.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The House of the Clouds remained unaltered, save
-for a tiny landscape garden not much bigger than a
-dining-table which Leslie had laid out for Campanula.
-It lay beyond the garden walk in front of the veranda,
-and it had mountains and rivers and savannas of moss,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page92" id="page92"></a>[pg&nbsp;92]</span>
-and old oak trees, fierce-looking, but not much bigger
-than your thumb, and twisted fir trees that reflected
-themselves gloomily in lakes the size of hand-mirrors,
-and a Shinto temple about the size of a Buszard&#39;s Dundee
-cake; there were also bridges across the rivers.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The thing had been laid out as a New Year&#39;s gift for
-Campanula, and it had cost Leslie about the price of a
-Steinway Grand.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Azalea bushes grew right up to it, azaleas bordered
-the house, and there was a wilderness of azaleas in the
-open space near the cherry trees.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Crimson azaleas, imported all the way from the
-azalea valley at Nikko in the very first year of Leslie&#39;s
-residence in Nagasaki. It was a pretty thought, and it
-had cost a good penny, and caused much grumbling
-from Mac, and great admiration in Mr. Initogo, who
-had turned out the most delightful of landlords, a good
-hand at whist, and most adaptable about repairs. He
-was a modern Japanese agnostic when he was well, was
-Mr. Initogo, and a Shinto when he was ill or in trouble;
-but he was an all-round good landlord at all times.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">One bright afternoon Leslie was seated beneath the
-cherry trees in a deck chair, his hat tilted back, and the
-pipe he had just been smoking lying on the ground at
-his feet. He was asleep. Lately he had been suffering
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page93" id="page93"></a>[pg&nbsp;93]</span>
-from a touch of fever and chills caught on a duck-shooting
-expedition down the coast; he had been taking
-opium for it, and now as he sat beneath the cherry trees
-the opium was troubling his dreams.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Just before dropping off, his eye had fallen on a
-single azalea blossom that had burst into flame, as if
-spring had just touched off with her torch the fire
-of crimson flowers that soon would blaze round the
-house.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he fell asleep, and Opium plucked the crimson
-blossom, and followed him with it into the land of
-dreams.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was in a Hongwanji temple, and there were people
-there, Europeans seemingly, dressed in European
-clothes; but though in a specious disguise, they were
-soon perceived to be not the people of this earth. They
-had strange and distorted faces, and forms that surely
-never were made in God&#39;s image. One man, who suddenly
-hid himself behind a screen of lacquer, Leslie could have
-sworn was made of stone.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then in great tribulation of spirit he was escaping
-from the company of these people, passing down a corridor
-where soft matting took the foot; but something
-was following him with a hissing sound, a sound such as
-Danjuro made by way of welcome when you entered
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page94" id="page94"></a>[pg&nbsp;94]</span>
-his shop. Of a sudden the opium spirit touched the corridor
-wall with the flower he had been patiently carrying,
-the Hongwanji temple vanished, and Leslie found
-himself on the Nikko road.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The valley of azaleas lay before him and the mournful
-cypress trees, the country where the moving clouds
-cast their shadows, and the far blue hills beyond.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There was something moving amidst the azaleas.
-He knew it was a child, but, by some curious and subtle
-freak of the opium fiend, the child was hidden from him,
-all but vague glimpses; were it to make itself half visible
-for a second a phantom azalea bush would come before
-it, but he could see a tiny white hand busy plucking
-the crimson blossoms.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then from somewhere far away through the dream
-came the mournful toot, toot, of a blind man&#39;s reed-pipe.
-At first it seemed beyond the bend of the road,
-and then it seemed amidst the azaleas, and then in the
-wood of cypress trees. It grew more insistent and piercing,
-and changed subtly into the sound he had once
-heard on the Nikko road when, sitting with M&#39;Gourley,
-he had listened to the tune of the blind juggler with
-the pipe.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As he listened, shuddering, he saw something which he
-at once knew to be the reason of the music and the soul
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page95" id="page95"></a>[pg&nbsp;95]</span>
-of the opium drama that was unfolding before him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A tiny black dot was visible in the sky away over the
-distant hills. It expanded and grew, dilated as if in response
-to the enchanted music. And then he saw that
-it was a bird; a vast bird, larger than an eagle, a ferocious
-and awful bird, a tragic apparition called up from
-the lands of night. It poised above the valley, seeming
-to float and be upborne, not on air, but on the music
-welling from the wood.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He knew that if he could get to the half-seen child
-amidst the azaleas he could save it from its fate. But
-he could make no movement nor utter a sound, but stood
-paralyzed, watching the tiny white hand plucking the
-crimson flowers and the Horror above preparing to
-strike.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The music had now turned to a drone, a sound like
-the spinning sound of a vast top. The thing in the air
-circled and span. He knew it was preparing to fall like
-a thunderbolt.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he awoke.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He saw the garden, the cherry trees, the house.
-Opium land had vanished, but the music remained, ringing
-in his ears; or was it real?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He sprang to his feet and staggered along the path
-leading to the gate looking wildly round him and listening.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page96" id="page96"></a>[pg&nbsp;96]</span>
-As he came, the sound died off; died and turned to
-the sound of ordinary life, the hum from the city below,
-the sound of the wind in the lilac trees, the tune of
-ceaseless cicalas.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;My God! what a dream!&quot; he muttered as he
-grasped the gate and stared down the lilac-shadowed
-path. Then he returned slowly to the seat beneath the
-cherry trees, and lit a cigarette.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Opium had played a trick upon him like this before.
-He had taken it first months ago for fever; since then he
-had taken it occasionally for the slightest ache. He reacted
-well to it sensually speaking, and found it at once
-soothing and stimulating. Once before it had pushed
-him into dreamland, but a dreamland without plot or
-plan, and unstained by a horror such as he had just
-witnessed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was seated half drowsing, when suddenly some influence
-made him look up and he saw before him a
-lovely thing. It was Campanula. She had just come
-out of the house by way of the veranda, and was
-approaching him. Campanula, far removed from the
-child he had carried on his shoulder into Nikko five
-years ago.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The child had turned into a girl with that rapidity
-of transformation characteristic of the women of Japan.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page97" id="page97"></a>[pg&nbsp;97]</span>
-She was taller than the ordinary Mousm&egrave; of fourteen or
-fifteen; her face, even to Western eyes, was beautiful
-with a sad and mysterious beauty of its own, and her
-every movement was graceful as the movement of a bluebell
-when touched by the wind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had ceased to attend the mission school after
-nearly four years&#39; instruction, during which she had
-grasped the art of speaking and almost of thinking in
-English, and was now Leslie&#39;s housekeeper, his adopted
-daughter, and absolute ruler of the small domain known
-as the House of the Clouds&mdash;as far, that is to say, as
-the household affairs went.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She still retained her childishness of mind, and for all
-the Christian endeavor of the missionaries, she still retained
-much of her pristine belief in &quot;things&quot;&mdash;things
-with wings as well as hoofs, things that lived in woods,
-birds that talked, and beasts that made answer.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Though she could speak English, she never spoke
-in long sentences, or told a connected tale in that language,
-always falling back on the vernacular when her
-imagination was roused, or a long and connected statement
-had to be made.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She was approaching Leslie now with a porcelain
-bowl figured with storks in her hand, and a smile upon
-her face. There was little mat on the ground near
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page98" id="page98"></a>[pg&nbsp;98]</span>
-his chair, and on this she sat down&mdash;kneeling fashion&mdash;with
-the bowl before her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;See!&quot; said she, producing some things like small
-gun wads from the sleeve of her kimono, &quot;I bought
-these to-day to give you pleasure. Oh, so beautiful!
-Watch!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She cast one of the ugly discs upon the surface of
-the water. It lay there for a moment unchanged, and
-then, as if by magic, began to expand as it sucked up
-the fluid, and break up, growing bigger and broader
-till at last on the surface of the water floated three pink-tinted
-lotus-flowers, a most delicate and perfect resemblance
-of the real things.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She folded her hands and looked up at him with a
-happy smile.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Where did you get them?&quot; asked Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;M&#39;Gourley San told me of them, he wished to buy
-them for me&mdash;but I bought them for you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She removed the lotus-flowers and cast another disc
-on the water.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie watched her. During the last few months Campanula&#39;s
-attitude to him had changed. From a happy,
-humble, and somewhat heedless thing&mdash;a creature that
-regarded him with affection&mdash;an affection of about the
-same strength as she exhibited for M&#39;Gourley, Sweetbriar
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page99" id="page99"></a>[pg&nbsp;99]</span>
-San, the cat, and her children schoolmates; she
-had become a follower of his alone, always striving to
-please him, forestalling his wants, always happy in his
-presence, and drooping&mdash;unknown to him&mdash;when he
-was away.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The second wad under the influence of the water
-broke up and began to form the branch of a cherry
-tree covered with blossom.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Arashiyama,&quot; murmured she, folding her small
-hands and speaking dreamily, as if communing with
-herself. Then she sat watching the branch of the cherry
-tree expanding over the surface of the water.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">From the house came a somewhat discordant voice
-singing a song about a bee and a lilac bough.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was Pine-breeze singing at her work. Moon, Plum-blossom,
-and Snow, with their fictitious mother Fir-cone,
-had vanished from the House of the Clouds two years
-and more, giving place to Pine-breeze, a miracle of
-daintiness and prettiness, and two other Mousm&egrave;s, one
-&quot;rather old,&quot; the cook, Lotus-bud by name, and the
-other named Cherry-blossom, as pretty as Pine-breeze.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Listen!&quot; said Campanula, suddenly looking up from
-the bowl and its contents. &quot;There is some one at the
-gate.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie half turned.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page100" id="page100"></a>[pg&nbsp;100]</span>
-A man and woman had passed through the gateway
-shadowed by lilac, a short, stout man dressed in tweed
-and a tall woman in blue serge.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie could see them only indistinctly from where
-he sat, and they, not looking in his direction, failed
-to see him at all.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They were coming up to the veranda when the
-woman turned to the little picture garden, laughed, and
-pointed it out to her companion. Then she left the path,
-stepped gingerly right into the middle of the landscape
-garden country, and tried to pluck up an oak tree, a
-gnarled and ancient-looking oak tree eight inches high.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Who?&quot; asked Campanula, turning from the sight
-of this outrage with uplifted forefinger.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;They are Foreign Devils,&quot; said Leslie using the
-Chinese idiom. He was very pale, leaning forward in
-chair. &quot;Look, Campanula! I verily believe she is trying
-to tear up your mountains to see how they grow. That&#39;s
-what they call in England &#39;cheek,&#39; Campanula.&quot;</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page101" id="page101"></a>[pg&nbsp;101]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XII</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">THE FOREIGN DEVILS</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The female Foreign Devil having failed to uproot
-the oak, which clung to its native soil with a
-tenacity highly Japanese, returned to the garden path.
-And then came the voice of Pine-breeze kow-towing to
-the strangers, bidding them welcome, and imploring
-them to make the honorable entrance.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They passed from view into the house, and Leslie rose
-from his chair.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Wait here awhile, Campanula,&quot; he said, &quot;and then
-follow me in. I think I know them, but I will go and
-see.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes,&quot; said Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He walked to the house and kicked his garden shoes
-off in the veranda, noting the fact that the Foreign
-Devils had committed the unspeakable outrage of entering
-with their shoes on.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;<i>Richard!</i>&quot; cried the tall woman, advancing to him
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page102" id="page102"></a>[pg&nbsp;102]</span>
-with outstretched hand as he entered the room where
-they were. &quot;Why, you&#39;ve grown!&quot; She spoke as
-though they had parted yesterday, but her voice had an
-hysterical quaver, then she presented her cheek to him
-for a cousinly kiss.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;This is Richard Leslie,&quot; said the woman, turning
-to the little stout man in tweed. &quot;We grew up together;
-that&#39;s why I&#39;m so tall, I suppose. Dick&mdash;my
-husband George. Gracious, Dick, where are your chairs
-and things? Have you nothing to sit down on?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Only the floor,&quot; said Leslie, fetching some square
-cushions and placing them on the matting. &quot;See, this
-is how it&#39;s done,&quot; and he sat down on one of the cushions,
-whilst his companions followed suit.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane du Telle, once Jane Deering, was, despite her
-vivacity and carelessness of manner, evidently in a state
-of high nervous tension.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie, notwithstanding the years that had passed
-since their last meeting, saw in her mentally little
-change. She was the same Jane who had once hacked
-his shins, when they were boy and girl together, up in
-Scotland, and then flung herself on his neck in a burst of
-repentance and tears. Emotional, good-hearted, selfish&mdash;giving
-herself away one moment, but always saved
-the next by a latent discretion that was to her flighty
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page103" id="page103"></a>[pg&nbsp;103]</span>
-nature as a gyroscope. The same Jane with whom he
-had fished for salmon and played at tennis in the past,
-seated before him now on a floor in Japan, chattering
-of everything and nothing just in the old familiar way.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;And that&#39;s the fellow she has married!&quot; thought
-he, as he glanced across at George du Telle, a podgy,
-red-headed little man, a globe-trotting Briton of the
-most blatant description.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;How did you know I was here?&quot; asked he, after
-Jane had somewhat talked her hysterical feelings off.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Mr. Channing told us last night at the hotel. He&#39;s
-a friend of yours. He told us he knew an Englishman
-named Richard Leslie living in the native fashion, and
-I asked him if he was good-looking and tall and dark,
-and he said, &#39;Yes.&#39; He said you lived at the House of the
-Clouds&mdash;sounds like an address in a dream, doesn&#39;t it?&mdash;so
-we took rikshas and came.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She put her hand to her back, where the &quot;floor
-stitch&quot; had seized her. The floor may be a convenient
-enough resting-place for a Mousm&egrave; who sinks down
-upon it quite naturally in the likeness of a compressed
-and joyously colored Z, but for an English woman of
-five feet eight or more, dressed in a tailor-made gown,
-and laced in a <i>corset parfait</i> it is at first rather difficult.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I would have got chairs,&quot; said Leslie, &quot;if I had
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page104" id="page104"></a>[pg&nbsp;104]</span>
-known you were coming; but of all the people of the
-world, you were the last I expected to see. Where did
-you come from? I mean, how did you strike Nagasaki?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;We came from Colombo.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Beastly hole,&quot; put in her husband, who was stroking
-Sweetbriar San, the cat of the establishment, who had
-just come in to inspect the strangers. &quot;We stayed at
-the Beach Hotel two nights, and d&#39;you know what they
-charged us? Just think.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Don&#39;t think,&quot; said Jane, who had wriggled into a
-more comfortable attitude. &quot;Give me that cat, George;
-and I wish you would try to repress your hotel bills.
-Dick, I was so sorry to hear the news about your father.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What news?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;About his death.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, you were sorrier than I was.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh, Dick! but don&#39;t let us talk about it, it&#39;s all so
-sad. And have you been living here in Japan ever
-since?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ever since.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Just like this on the floor?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Just like this on the floor.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;You must find it rather flat, I should think,&quot; said
-the carroty-headed George.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Richard,&quot; said Jane suddenly, ignoring her husband,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page105" id="page105"></a>[pg&nbsp;105]</span>
-&quot;you&#39;re not married to a Japanese&mdash;or anything&mdash;are
-you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;No.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Do you live here alone?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, I have three servant girls, and a daughter, if
-you call that &#39;alone.&#39;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;A daughter!&quot; said Jane.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes; and she&#39;s Japanese, too.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Japanese!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes; I adopted her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">George du Telle snorted, and fortunately at that moment
-a panel slid back, and Pine-breeze appeared with
-the tea, followed by Lotus-bud with an hibachi and
-Cherry-blossom with a heap of tiny plates.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Are these your&mdash;I mean is one of these your&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Daughter? No. Turn round, and you will see her,&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane was seated with her back to the drawn-back
-panel that made a doorway on to the veranda. She
-turned, and there in the sunlit space stood Campanula
-in her blue kimono, broad scarlet obi, and with a scarlet
-flower in her hair. Behind her, as a background, lay
-the picture garden, antique hills, spun-glass torrents,
-and tiny, twisted fir trees, that looked, oh, so old, and
-tired of the world, and tormented by the wind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula went right down on her knees upon the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page106" id="page106"></a>[pg&nbsp;106]</span>
-matting, and murmured the usual Japanese welcome.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Now this was a practice that Leslie disliked. He had
-tried to break her of it, and in the attempt he had come
-across a strange fact.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula in her heart of hearts was a real child
-of Old Japan. She might have been a sister to the seven-and-forty
-Ronins in the time before Osaka was defiled
-by factory chimneys, and the monastery of Kotoku-in
-by the presence of Cook&#39;s tourists.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She tried honestly to be modern, as it was the wish
-of Leslie, but in times of emotion, back her intellect
-would go to Old Japan, and she would act as her ancestors
-had acted in who knows what lotus-strewn and
-blossom-scented ages.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What does she say?&quot; asked Jane, as George du
-Telle rose to his feet. &quot;Tell me, and ask her to excuse
-me for not getting up, for when I get up, I&#39;ll have
-to be <i>pulled</i> up.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;She is bidding you welcome and at the same time
-apologizing for the fact of her own miserable existence.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I accept the apology,&quot; said Jane, as Campanula,
-her devotions over, sank down before the tea-service,
-and prepared to act as hostess. &quot;Freely and frankly,
-Dick, I must congratulate you on your taste&mdash;she is
-lovely.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula looked up with a faint, apologetic smile.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I speak English,&quot; she said.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page107" id="page107"></a>[pg&nbsp;107]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XIII</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">THE MONASTERY GARDEN</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane gazed over Nagasaki, the blue water, the
-green hills, to the blue beyond, and sighed. They
-were standing near the gate; tea was over, and they
-were waiting for Campanula, who had gone into the
-house to make some alteration in her dress before accompanying
-them &quot;down town.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Richard,&quot; she said, &quot;take us somewhere where we
-can talk, you and I. I have such a heap of things to
-ask you and talk about. Twelve years&mdash;can it be twelve
-years since we last saw each other? Did you get my last
-letter?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">George du Telle was standing near smoking a cigar,
-and staring at the beautiful view with about the same
-amount of interest he would have felt had it been a
-soap advertisement, but she did not lower her voice.
-She was perfectly frank with the world and her husband.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This frankness carried her far, and enabled her sometimes
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page108" id="page108"></a>[pg&nbsp;108]</span>
-to skate on ice that would have given under many
-a woman of half her weight, for it was a genuine frankness,
-not a thing put on.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She was a person whom women called nice-looking on
-first acquaintance, and men mentally registered as plain.
-Tall, pale, with an excellent figure, and gray eyes. A
-man met her and spoke to her, and found her plain but
-very jolly, increased the acquaintanceship and found her
-plainness vanishing, and then, all of a sudden, his foolish
-soul was caught in a trap.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was the magic of her lips, perhaps. They formed
-the true Cupid&#39;s bow, full, and seemingly cut by a chisel
-wielded by a master hand, sensitive and sensuous.
-Gazing at them one came to understand how in the ancient
-world tall Troy fell before a kiss.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Which letter?&quot; asked Leslie, plucking a lilac spray
-and strewing the ground with the tiny petals.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;The one I wrote six years ago telling you I was
-married. I sent it care of your father.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;No,&quot; said Leslie gloomily. &quot;I have heard from
-no one for eight years and more. I cut the world, you
-know&mdash;or it cut me rather; but I&#39;ll tell you some other
-time, here&#39;s Campanula.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then they started, Leslie and his companion leading
-the way.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page109" id="page109"></a>[pg&nbsp;109]</span>
-&quot;Where are you going to take us?&quot; asked Jane,
-when they had reached the street.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Through the city to a place I know on a hill,&quot; replied
-Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had called four rikshas from the stand, and he
-gave some directions to the riksha men, and they
-started.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">You cannot imagine the size of Nagasaki till you
-drive through it in a swift-running riksha, nor the
-quaintness, nor the terror that causes your heart to fly
-upwards as your riksha man shaves a baby, not with a
-razor, but with the off wheel.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Boy babies fighting tops, girls bouncing colored
-balls, flights of children whose clogs clatter like the
-dominoes in an Italian restaurant as they pursue each
-other in some mysterious game&mdash;everywhere children, a
-shifting, colored maze in which the eye gets tangled and
-lost. Babies, temples, tea-houses, streets upon streets of
-houses that look as if you could flatten them out with
-the blows of a shovel, bursts of cherry-blossoms, tripping
-Mousm&egrave;s, stone monsters, awful, yet pathetic with
-the gray of lichen and the green of moss, a courtyard
-with a twisted fir tree leaning across it, laughter, and
-the tune of a <i>cham&egrave;cen</i> running through it all, that is the
-impression that a riksha ride through Nagasaki in
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page110" id="page110"></a>[pg&nbsp;110]</span>
-spring would leave on the mind, were not the picture
-blurred by the European element.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Street after street they passed through, and still
-the mysterious city kept building up streets before them.
-Leslie had thought of taking his companions to the
-O Suwa, but he had changed his mind and given other
-directions to the riksha men.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They passed up a steep incline, dark with fir trees,
-and drew up at a great gateway consisting of two joists
-of wood supporting a vast beam, the whole making a
-figure something in the fashion of the Greek II.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Beyond the gateway lay an inclined path, bordered
-by cryptomeria trees, leading to the fa&ccedil;ade of a temple.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It&#39;s a place I sometimes come to,&quot; said Leslie, as
-he helped Jane to descend. &quot;It&#39;s quiet, and worth seeing
-in its way.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula and George du Telle led the way this
-time, Leslie and his companion leisurely following.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Come down this path,&quot; said Jane, turning to a side
-alley. &quot;Oh, how pretty! and how mournful too, with
-those rows of dark trees. Dick, this is not a cemetery
-you have brought us to?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;No; it&#39;s a Shinto monastery. Few people know it,
-and it&#39;s out of the run of the general sight-seeing
-bounders.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page111" id="page111"></a>[pg&nbsp;111]</span>
-&quot;Things with kodaks?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;And without&mdash;but see here, Jane.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What&#39;s your husband?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;George?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes, I suppose his name is George. What is he?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;He&#39;s in the wool trade&mdash;he&#39;s the richest man in the
-wool trade, they say. He thinks and talks of nothing
-else but wool. He got off the subject to-day with you
-for awhile; wasn&#39;t he brilliant? But we get on all right
-together; he has his set, and I have mine.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What is his set?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;The very best&mdash;I mean the very worst; the poor old
-Smart Set that every one is always beating as if it were
-a donkey&mdash;which it is,&quot; said Jane, taking her seat on
-the plinth supporting the prancing figure of Ama-ino,
-fronted across the walk by the equally fantastic figure
-of Koma-ino, a veritable Lion and Unicorn. &quot;Sit down
-beside me, Dick, and tell me&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What have you been doing all these years?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&mdash;I&#39;ve been keeping alive&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Dick,&quot; suddenly broke out Jane, as if she had not
-been listening, &quot;I have often thought you must have
-thought me a heartless wretch; but I&#39;m not.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page112" id="page112"></a>[pg&nbsp;112]</span>
-&quot;There is no use in going over the past,&quot; he said.
-&quot;What is done is done, and never can be undone. I
-can only say that I have never in the past had a friend
-to stick to me, or a woman to love me, or a father to care
-for me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;May it not have been your own fault, Dick?
-Think for a moment. I don&#39;t want to reproach you, but
-you know how wild you were&mdash;you know that was one
-of the reasons we couldn&#39;t get married. Oh, it wasn&#39;t
-&#39;my heartlessness,&#39; as you told me in your last letter
-but one. I have heart enough&mdash;at least I hope so,&quot;
-said Jane, looking at Koma-ino as if for confirmation,
-&quot;and I wouldn&#39;t have done what I did if you&#39;d been
-different. Never mind, Dick, cheer up!&mdash;buck up! as
-they used to say in the poor old Smart Set, till the respectable
-folk took the expression away from them.
-What&#39;ve you been doing all these long years, Dick?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh, I&#39;ve been in Australia.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What were you doing there?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Curse Australia!&quot; suddenly broke out Leslie, digging
-his heel in the ground. &quot;Don&#39;t speak to me about
-it; let&#39;s talk of something else.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, what are you doing here? I mean, what have
-you been doing all these years&mdash;playing the guitar, or
-what?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page113" id="page113"></a>[pg&nbsp;113]</span>
-&quot;I&#39;m a shopman.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I beg your pardon?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I and a man named M&#39;Gourley are in business.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Two Scotchmen?&quot; sneered Jane.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Two Scotchmen.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;And what are you selling&mdash;paper umbrellas?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes; and hats and kakemonos, and every other sort
-of a mono that the European trade will swallow. We
-export them.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Then you&#39;re a merchant, <i>not</i> a shopman,&quot; said
-Jane in a half-angry, half-relieved voice. &quot;I <i>wish</i> you
-would not give me these sort of horrible shocks. I
-thought at first you were serving in some place behind
-the counter&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh, I don&#39;t want to make money in business much;
-I do it more for interest and to have an object in life.
-I&#39;m well off; my father&#39;s money all came to me&mdash;he
-died well off.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;And wasn&#39;t it queer?&quot; said Jane. &quot;George is awfully
-rich, you know; well, directly I was married, old
-Aunt Keziah died, and every penny of her money came
-to me. Fifty thousand. No, forty-eight thousand, four
-hundred and eighty-two pounds, ten and sixpence. It
-seemed so sweet, the little sixpence following at the end.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page114" id="page114"></a>[pg&nbsp;114]</span>
-I sent for it, and had a hole drilled through it, and
-I always wear it on this bangle&mdash;look!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He looked; there were many things hanging on the
-bangle. He touched a tiny gold pig swinging by a
-ring.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Good heavens!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;<i>You</i> gave me that,&quot; said Jane, &quot;and I&#39;ve never
-parted with it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What&#39;s this?&quot; said he, fingering a cabalistic-looking
-blue stone.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;That&#39;s an inkh, I think; I&#39;m not sure of the name.
-It&#39;s lucky, or supposed to be.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Who gave it to you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;A boy at Cairo last winter.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;How old was he?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh, about twenty.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;And this?&quot; said Leslie, picking out another charm
-in the form of a heart.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Look here,&quot; said Jane, pulling her wrist away, &quot;I
-don&#39;t want to waste time like this, I want you to tell
-me more about yourself; I want you to tell me about
-that child Campanula. <i>Why</i> did you adopt her?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I found her on the road going to Nikko.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Where&#39;s that?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It&#39;s away up in Shimotsuke, beyond Tokyo. I and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page115" id="page115"></a>[pg&nbsp;115]</span>
-M&#39;Gourley were on the tramp. We were sitting by the
-roadside resting, when a blind man came along. He was
-half mad, and talked wild. Said he was a juggler, and
-offered to fetch devils out of a wood near by, if we
-gave him gold.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Why didn&#39;t you try him?&quot; said Jane in an interested
-voice.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I did try him,&quot; said Leslie; &quot;gave him some money.
-He made a circle in the dust, with signs round the rim
-of it, told us not to touch it or come near it, got into
-the middle of it, and fetched out a reed-pipe. Then he
-began to play a tune that would make you shiver to
-hear, and things croaked in the wood.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Go on,&quot; said Jane shivering pleasantly.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I took my walking-stick and made a mark in the
-dust just near his foot. I touched his heel by accident,
-and&mdash;whew!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;He went off like a rocket; bounded out of the circle,
-rushed this way and that, knocking against trees
-and striking right and left with his stick, as if dogs
-were about him. He got round the bend of the road
-and vanished. We were pretty much astonished, but
-that wasn&#39;t the end of it. In front of us was a valley
-of the most beautiful crimson azaleas.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page116" id="page116"></a>[pg&nbsp;116]</span>
-&quot;Wait a moment, Dick; you&#39;re a very bad story-teller.
-You should always stage your characters: you
-should have described the azaleas first and the scenery.
-Well, go on.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Bother the azaleas!&quot; said Dick. They were fast
-getting into the old boy-and-girl way of talking to each
-other, a somewhat dangerous language at thirty. &quot;It
-doesn&#39;t matter whether they come in first or last. Where
-was I? Oh yes. Mac suddenly said: &#39;Look there!&#39; I
-looked, and there sure enough was a child amidst the
-azaleas. She hadn&#39;t been there a few seconds before, and
-Mac would have it that she had been &#39;fetched&#39;; it was
-a pretty wild country and no houses around, and there
-she was, just as if she had stepped out of a house,
-plucking away at the azalea blossoms for all she was
-worth, a tiny dot in a blue kimono and scarlet obi. I
-stole up behind her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;d have caught her up and kissed her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Just what I did, in fact; and it may have been
-fancy, but she seemed slipping through my fingers like&mdash;grease
-till I kissed her, and she became solid.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;There&#39;s one thing, Dick, you&#39;ll never make a poet.
-Well, go on; it&#39;s awfully interesting.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;We carried her off to Nikko. No parents could be
-found to own her, so I adopted her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page117" id="page117"></a>[pg&nbsp;117]</span>
-&quot;What became of the juggler?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;That was a funny thing. As we turned the bend
-of the road we saw him away up in a gorge of the
-hills. He was still running for all he was worth, beating
-about him with his stick as if hitting off devils,
-and dashing himself against trees in a quite regardless
-manner.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;How awful!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, frankly, it was, and it had a sequel, for his
-dead body was found miles away some days after, and
-the Japanese police said the trees had beaten him to
-death, which they practically had.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;But, Dick, what was the meaning of it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Who knows! When I touched him on the heel perhaps
-he may have thought it was a devil seizing him,
-and his imagination did the rest. Mac thinks, or, at
-least, he once thought&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;That there was something developing in the wood,
-something bad; that Campanula&#39;s ghost was wandering
-in the wood; that when I made the mark I did inside
-the circle, the bad thing was flung out of the developing
-medium and Campanula&#39;s ghost sucked into it, and
-so she became materialized.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;And the bad thing went for the juggler man?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page118" id="page118"></a>[pg&nbsp;118]</span>
-&quot;It and perhaps others.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I never heard anything half so horrible, if it&#39;s true.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It&#39;s true enough. I was forgetting it almost, but I
-had a horrid dream to-day that brought it all back. I
-was sitting in the garden smoking and I dropped off
-to sleep; and I heard the sound of that beast&#39;s pipe, and
-I saw the place on the Nikko road, and there was a
-child amongst the flowers. Then a frightful bird came
-along and was going to attack the child, and I awoke&mdash;it
-was just before you came.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Dick, what was the mark you made on the road?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;The sign of the cross,&quot; said Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane was silent for a moment then&mdash;</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page119" id="page119"></a>[pg&nbsp;119]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XIV</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">NAGASAKI BY NIGHT</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I wish you wouldn&#39;t tell me stories like that,&quot;
-she suddenly broke out. &quot;I&#39;ll be dreaming
-about it all to-night.&quot; She shuddered, and gazed
-at Koma-ino. &quot;Japan seems a horribly creepy sort
-of place; I think I&#39;ll make George come away to-morrow.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;One side of it,&quot; said Leslie, &quot;is simply crawling;
-you have no idea, and I who have lived here five years
-have only a glimmering of the mind of the people. Do
-you know what I think?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I think that in the sleeves of their kimonos&mdash;I
-mean their frock coats, for they&#39;ve put off their kimonos
-for a while for business purposes&mdash;they are simply
-laughing at us.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;At whom?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;At the English&mdash;at Europe.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page120" id="page120"></a>[pg&nbsp;120]</span>
-&quot;Like their impudence!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Perhaps it&#39;s impudence, perhaps not, anyhow&mdash;I
-distrust them&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Dick,&quot; said his companion, &quot;look! It&#39;s getting
-dusk: let&#39;s go and look for George and your &#39;adoptive
-daughter.&#39; Mercy! What&#39;s that!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A deep hum filled the air; it seemed to come at first
-from the statue of Koma-ino&mdash;a soul-disturbing hum
-that deepened and swelled and then leapt, leapt into a
-deafening roar that rushed over Nagasaki, to die on the
-distant sea.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane clung to her companion like a child, hugged him
-as a child might hug a nurse; her straw hat was pushed
-sideways, and he found his face buried in the masses
-of her perfumed hair. His arm had slipped round her
-waist, her arm was over his shoulder, and her fingers
-pressing his neck; for a moment he felt as if he were
-absorbing her being&mdash;drinking her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the sound died away.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;<i>What</i> was it?&quot; gasped she, pushing away from
-him and gazing at him with a white, drawn face. &quot;Why,
-you seem half dazed; you were more frightened than
-I. Dick, what was it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;m all right,&quot; said Leslie, in the voice of a man
-waking from the effect of an opiate. &quot;I wasn&#39;t frightened.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page121" id="page121"></a>[pg&nbsp;121]</span>
-It was only the big gong of the monastery; I&#39;ve
-heard it lots of times.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Then why couldn&#39;t you have told me?&quot; cried Jane,
-flying from fright to fury. &quot;Think what it must have
-looked like, you hugging me like that.&quot; She sprang to
-her feet. &quot;You bring me here and tell me ghost stories,
-and frighten me to death with gongs and things, and
-then&mdash;I believe you&#39;re half a Japanese already, you&#39;ve
-grown so horrid.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;There wasn&#39;t any one to see,&quot; said Leslie, rising to
-his feet. &quot;And talking about hugging&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I don&#39;t want to talk about hugging&mdash;talk about
-hugging! Do you fancy yourself on Hampstead Heath?
-Come, let us find George. I want something common-place
-after all this.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They found George and Campanula&mdash;the most
-strangely matched pair in the world&mdash;waiting for them
-at the gates.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;You&#39;ll come and dine with us at the hotel, won&#39;t
-you?&quot; asked Jane as they got into the rikshas.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;ll come right enough,&quot; said Leslie. &quot;Wait,
-please.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He went to Campanula&#39;s riksha and asked her, but
-she prayed to be honorably excused&mdash;she had a headache.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page122" id="page122"></a>[pg&nbsp;122]</span>
-She passed her hand across her forehead as if in
-confirmation of her words. Leslie tucked the riksha
-blanket round her knees, and explained to the Du
-Telles, and they started.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The quaint city they had come through had changed
-to a quainter city still. Night had blotted out the traces
-of Europe on Nagasaki&mdash;at least, in the purely native
-streets. All sorts of strange little trades that sleep in
-the daytime had awakened with the dusk. Things queer
-in the daytime were now mysterious, and things common,
-quaint. The fish shop, with its huge paper lantern,
-besides the fish and the sea-weed on its slabs, disposed
-of dreams which it flung away gratis to the passing
-traveler in the running riksha, and the booth of the
-sandal merchant, with the tiny potted rose tree in front
-of the wares, became at once an apology and atonement
-for all the commonplace villainy condensed in the word
-&quot;shop.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mousm&egrave;s passed, now half Mousm&egrave;s, half glowworms,
-each bearing a colored lantern on the end of a little
-stick; and then the shadows half lit by lamp-light, where
-a cherry tree was attempting to peep into the street: the
-light of lamps glimmering through paper shutters, the
-light of lanterns swinging in the wind&mdash;red, blue, white,
-and yellow, some pictured with chrysanthemums; the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page123" id="page123"></a>[pg&nbsp;123]</span>
-stork that stands so boldly forth in Japanese pictures
-but is nearly gone from Japan, cherry-blossoms, and fish
-that seem swimming vigorously in a bowl of water lambent
-and green; and then the sounds, ten <i>cham&egrave;cens</i> for
-one in the day. The riksha whisks by a booth, whence
-comes the squalling of cats&mdash;seemingly. It is the gaku,
-Japanese poetry set to music and flung into the lamp-lit
-street to make things stranger, and heighten, if possible,
-the charm. At the corner of the by-street leading
-to the House of the Clouds they met Pine-breeze simply
-laden with all sorts of weird and wonderful paper boxes,
-and lighting herself on her way with a lantern pictured
-with a cuttle-fish and carried on the end of a short bamboo
-rod. She had been marketing. It was a fortunate
-meeting, for she could escort Campanula home.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page124" id="page124"></a>[pg&nbsp;124]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XV</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">M&#39;GOURLEY&#39;S LOVE AFFAIR</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Following Pine-breeze, who went before her like
-a fantastically colored glowworm, Campanula ascended
-to the house.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As she stepped onto the veranda she heard the voice
-of M&#39;Gourley San addressing Lotus-bed, and asking
-when she thought Leslie San would be back. Mac&#39;s
-elastic-side boots were in the veranda, and his gamp was
-propped against the wall.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was sitting on the floor smoking a pipe and reading
-the <i>Japan Mail</i> through a pair of spectacles when
-Campanula entered.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac often came up of nights like this. He was a vivid
-Radical, and Leslie was a hide-bound Conservative, so
-they had a splendid time together when they got on
-politics; or they would play chess, or Mr. Initogo would
-drop in and they would have a rubber of dummy whist.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But what Mac really came for, though he scarcely
-knew it himself, was Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula was a lot to Mac; much more than one
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page125" id="page125"></a>[pg&nbsp;125]</span>
-can express in prose, and M&#39;Gourley is scarcely the
-figure to make a ballad of. Yet the poem was there round
-about him, unsung, unuttered, unguessed by any one,
-least of all by himself.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When he had made chickens out of orange-pips for
-her at Nikko, she just as cunningly had made him her
-slave.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had taken this dull, hard-grained, and shady old
-business man into a byway, of life, and made him spin
-tops and fly kites. She had made him admire flowers
-and listen to fairy tales, and all as naturally and as
-peacefully as though these things had been matters of
-everyday occurrence with him the whole long length of
-his arid life.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;<i>Einst, O wunder!</i>&quot;&mdash;that ballad might have been
-inspired by Mac&mdash;had the writer ever met him in business
-or seen him in the flesh.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Hech!&quot; said Mac. &quot;There you are; and where
-have you been trapsing to this hour of the evening?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula explained that Leslie had met friends, and
-that he had gone to dine with them at the hotel.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Wonder who they can be?&quot; soliloquized Mac, as
-Campanula clapped her little hands together for Pine-breeze
-to bring refreshments. &quot;Some people he has
-picked up at the hotel, maybe.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page126" id="page126"></a>[pg&nbsp;126]</span>
-They sat opposite to each other on the matting, this
-strangely assorted pair. A panel in the front was open,
-for the night was warm, and the lamplight fell on the
-veranda and the garden path beyond.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And they ate salted plums and crystallized prawns,
-soup with seaweed in it, and rice with fish sauce, whilst
-the perfume of the cherry blossoms stole in from the
-night outside, and the twang of a <i>cham&egrave;cen</i> came from
-somewhere in the mysterious depths of the house.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was Lotus-bud relieving her soul with music,
-mournful as the sound of the wind blowing over the wet
-fields of millet in the rainy weather.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The things having been removed, Campanula brought
-forth a chess-board, which she laid on the matting before
-Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had taught her chess, and had found her an apt
-pupil, a veritable Zukertort, a female Nogi, who attacked
-his positions with her ivory army, stormed his
-fortifications, and put him to rout when she chose.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Yet he often won. She would make amazing blunders
-just in time to save him from defeat, and Mac would
-chuckle and say&mdash;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;There you are, there you are&mdash;thrown a pawn away
-that might have given you back your queen in two
-more moves. Never mind, you&#39;re getting on; I&#39;ll noat
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page127" id="page127"></a>[pg&nbsp;127]</span>
-say ye aren&#39;t im&mdash;&quot; long pause&mdash;&quot;proving. Check&mdash;and
-how&#39;s that for mate?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then Campanula would throw her hands up in assumed
-horror at her own stupidity, and Mac would
-chuckle over his own supposed cleverness, and all would
-be harmony and peace.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">To-night, however, Campanula&#39;s mind was somewhat
-astray, and the chess-player who lived in her brain took
-advantage of the fact, and beat Mac thoroughly in the
-course of a dozen moves.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;m getting auld,&quot; said Mac testily. &quot;Here, put
-the things away. Na, na, I&#39;ll play no more the night.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He lit his pipe at the tobacco-mono and moodily
-smoked it. He could not bear being beaten at chess,
-and now he looked as if he would be sour for the whole
-evening.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She reached for a long-necked <i>cham&egrave;cen</i> that lay near
-her on the matting, and tuned it, striking a few somber
-notes.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ay, sing us something,&quot; said Mac, and as the night
-wind sighed and the cherry blossoms filled the room with
-their faint, faint fragrance, Campanula, her eyes fixed
-across illimitable distance, sang in a voice like the ripple
-of a mountain brook, a song telling of the Miakodori,
-and the sunlit slopes of Maruyama, where the great old
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page128" id="page128"></a>[pg&nbsp;128]</span>
-Gion cherry tree blooms at the foot of Yaamis lane.
-And then an old love-song strayed in from the night
-and was caught by the strings of the <i>cham&egrave;cen</i> and made
-articulate by her voice.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It told the fate of a maiden named Pine-bough, who
-lived by the sea at Hamada where the foam and the sand
-are as snow.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She loved a noble, this maiden named Pine-bough&mdash;you
-can guess the rest. Mac listened, soothed; it was
-the case of David and Saul over again&mdash;a very inferior
-sort of Saul, it is true.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Now,&quot; said the Charmed One as the rafters absorbed
-the last echoes of the fate of Pine-bough, &quot;tell
-us a story.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula, with the <i>cham&egrave;cen</i> lying across her lap,
-knitted her brows in thought. She was evidently pursuing
-strange beasts across the fields of Fancy, and undetermined
-as to which she would mark down and serve
-up to her guest. Then she solved the matter by suddenly
-clearing her brow and telling a tale without any beasts
-in it at all.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;There is a garden,&quot; declared Campanula, &quot;where
-every one may enter; the Mikado himself goes there,
-and the riksha man, the Mousm&egrave; and the Mousko, Bo
-Chan, and Kiku San. Even Campanula herself, lowly
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page129" id="page129"></a>[pg&nbsp;129]</span>
-as she is, may enter there. And there the Mousko pulls
-the beard of the Emperor unafraid, and the riksha man
-forgets his riksha and drinks tea at the tea houses, where
-no money is paid and no money is asked for.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What&#39;s this garden you&#39;re telling me of?&quot; demanded
-Mac, his business instincts and common sense in
-arms at the latter statement.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It is the garden of sleep,&quot; answered Campanula cunningly.
-She had been waiting for the question and now
-she paused, gently plucking a string of the <i>cham&egrave;cen</i>,
-filling the air with a faint throbbing sound as if to
-summon around her the tale-bearers of the night.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Here in the garden of sleep,&quot; pursued the dreamy
-voice, as the vibrations died away, &quot;every tree bears a
-lighted lantern swinging in the wind and painting the
-grass beneath with its color&mdash;red lanterns painted with
-storks, and blue lanterns pictured with the blossoms of
-the cherry; lanterns on which dragons fly pursuing each
-other, and lanterns disported upon by my lord the Bat.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;A wanderer in the garden has but to pluck a lantern
-from a tree, and his dreams will at once turn in a happy
-direction, and by the light of the lantern he will see
-before him the object of his desire, be it what it may.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;ll remember that,&quot; said Mac grimly, &quot;next time
-I find myself there.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page130" id="page130"></a>[pg&nbsp;130]</span>
-&quot;One has no memory there,&quot; said Campanula, &quot;and
-few people know of the secret of that place, else every
-one would be happy in their dreams.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;One night entered the garden Taro San, a child no
-higher than one&#39;s knee. He was the son of a tea-house
-keeper, and he had plucked a glowworm from a bush,
-by which feeble light he was lighting himself through
-the darkness of the garden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;All at once he found himself beneath a tree, from
-the lowest branch of which swung a huge lantern of
-wistaria-blue.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It was the lantern of Spring, and the painted butterflies
-upon it, by some magic, moved their wings in
-flight, yet remained always in the same place, and the
-painted cherry-blossoms upon it waved in some magic
-wind, yet never faded or lost a petal, and the bird
-upon it pursuing the dragon fly was always gaining
-upon the dragon fly, yet the dragon fly, oh mystery! always
-outstripped the bird.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula paused in thought, and a faintly plucked
-string of the <i>cham&egrave;cen</i> filled the air with the hum of the
-dragon fly&#39;s wings as it flew by reed and iris, by mere
-and pond, by the unblown lotus and the blue of the
-river in the country of eternal spring.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;O Taro San,&quot; continued the story-teller, &quot;gazing
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page131" id="page131"></a>[pg&nbsp;131]</span>
-up and beholding this fair thing, strove to reach it, and
-failing, he began to weep.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Now, there was passing by at that moment the
-Daimiyo of his province, and the great lord walked with
-his gaze fixed upon the ground overcome as he was by
-the reverie of sleep; but hearing the sound of Taro San
-weeping, he paused and asked the child what ailed
-him, and hearing the trouble, he lifted him upon his
-shoulder; and Taro San grasped the lantern and waved
-it in the air and laughed, for its light showed him a
-pleasant path beset with roses and leading to a sea, blue
-as the sea of Harima, and in the path stood a little girl
-plucking the amber and crimson flowers.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Taro cried out to the Daimiyo to take him to the
-little girl, but the Daimiyo did not heed, for to him
-the lantern had shown Osaka Castle stormed by knights
-in armor, and the spears of the Samurai all bent towards
-its walls under a roof of flying arrows. Towards this
-sight he ran, and Taro dropping the lantern, it went
-out, and the Daimiyo awoke in his palace and Taro
-awoke in the tea house upon the futon, where he slept
-beside his father.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Another night stood Taro beneath the lantern which
-hung beyond his reach, but a beggar man who chanced
-to pass lifting him upon his shoulder, the child seized
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page132" id="page132"></a>[pg&nbsp;132]</span>
-the lantern and waved it in the air, and instantly before
-him appeared the flower-set path and the form of
-the Mousm&egrave;, more beautiful now and attired in a kimono
-of palest amber embroidered with silver bats.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;But the beggar man saw nothing but a purse of silver
-lying before him on the ground, and, stooping to
-pick it up, Taro fell from his shoulder, the lantern
-went out, and the beggar man awoke by the roadside
-where he had fallen asleep, and Taro on the futon beside
-his father.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Many times did Taro stand beneath the lantern of
-spring and many people raised him towards it, but
-never one of them saw what Taro saw, all their dreams
-being of things other than flowers and the time of
-spring.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;One night,&quot; resumed Campanula after a pause,
-&quot;Taro entered the garden, and beneath the lantern there
-stood a child, and the child implored him to lift him
-upon his shoulder, and being there the child seized the
-lantern and laughed aloud with pleasure at the vision
-of the roses, and the Mousm&egrave;, and the sea. But Taro
-saw nothing of this. He only saw a tea house where
-customers were waiting to be served, for Taro,&quot; said
-Campanula, &quot;Had now grown up, and was a man.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page133" id="page133"></a>[pg&nbsp;133]</span>
-She finished her little tale with three mournful notes
-drawn from the bass string of the <i>cham&egrave;cen</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Humph!&quot; said Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He tapped the ashes out of his pipe into the little
-receptacle of the tobacco-mono, refilled it, and lit it
-with a glowing ember.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Whilst he was thus engaged, Campanula rose and
-went to the open panel space leading on to the veranda.
-He heard her addressing some one in her low, sweet
-voice, then there was a pause, then she spoke again as
-if in answer to some remark, then she returned.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Blind man,&quot; said Campanula, putting the <i>cham&egrave;cen</i>
-away.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I heard nobody,&quot; said Mac, looking up as he
-finished lighting his pipe. &quot;What did you say? Blind
-man? Was it he you were speaking to?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes; he said he had come from a great way, and
-he looked oh, so ugly and tired! He has gone to the
-back entrance, and they will give him food.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It&#39;s these blessed paper houses,&quot; said Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;They either swallow a sound or magnify it, so&#39;s
-you can&#39;t hear yourself speak if a man sneezes in the
-next room.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He smoked for a while, and then rose to go.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page134" id="page134"></a>[pg&nbsp;134]</span>
-&quot;There!&quot; said Campanula, as she too rose. &quot;He&#39;s
-gone away again down the path towards the gate.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;ll just follow him,&quot; said Mac, &quot;and see what he&#39;s
-like.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He bade Campanula good night and departed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The gate was closed, and there was no one on the
-garden path; no one on the hill path either, he found
-as he descended it slowly, peering through the gloom
-before him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It&#39;s dom queer!&quot; muttered Mac to himself as he
-reached the street. &quot;I&#39;d have staked my life she was
-talking to herself.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He felt vaguely uneasy, and thought of returning.
-Then he decided not. The path looked gloomy and mysterious
-viewed from down below, and its descent without
-meeting any one had already given him a slight
-attack of the &quot;creeps.&quot;</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page135" id="page135"></a>[pg&nbsp;135]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XVI</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">THE PHILOSOPHY OF EVIL</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Dinner was served in the Du Telles&#39; private
-room. Channing dined with them&mdash;the man who
-had informed Jane of Leslie&#39;s whereabouts&mdash;a young,
-clean shaven man, member of the Shanghai Jockey Club
-and practically head of the great silk firm of Channing,
-Matheson &amp; Co.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At dessert Jane asked Leslie&#39;s permission to tell of
-Campanula&#39;s finding. Leslie at first demurred. No one
-knew anything about it except the far-away folk in
-Nikko and the secretive Japanese police. It seemed
-scarcely fair to Campanula to give the tale away, but
-at last he consented, for George du Telle had eaten and
-drunk himself into a state of torpor. He was staring at
-a pineapple before him with a flushed face, from which
-protruded a great cigar, and as for Channing he was
-off to Shanghai next day. So Jane told the story, and
-Channing listened.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, what do you think?&quot; said Jane when she had
-finished her tale.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page136" id="page136"></a>[pg&nbsp;136]</span>
-&quot;I never think about these matters,&quot; said Channing,
-&quot;I simply accept them. My dear lady, were you to live
-a long time in the East you would come to believe in
-things that Western people would rank as nursery tales.
-The Tokyo fire-walkers can walk barefoot over a bed
-of live charcoal as thick as a mattress. I have seen them.
-How do they do it? I don&#39;t know.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It is very curious how the Western people, Christians,
-and so forth, treat the unknown. They look upon
-it as the unknowable. The Easterns don&#39;t. I had a missionary
-man in at my office the other day over at Shanghai
-subscription hunting. I gave him what he wanted,
-and then, without scarcely saying &#39;Thank you,&#39; he
-asked me did I believe in God. I asked him did he believe
-in the devil. He said &#39;Yes.&#39; I asked him did
-he believe in devils, and he said &#39;No.&#39; I asked him did he
-believe in the Bible. He said &#39;Yes.&#39; Then I recalled to
-his mind the story of the Gadarene swine, and his reply
-was that times are changed since then. Then I suppose,
-I said, all the devils are dead? He walked away in a
-huff&mdash;with my check in his pocket, though.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Now the juggler man&quot;&mdash;turning to Leslie&mdash;&quot;may
-have been chivied to death by devils just as the Gadarene
-swine were chased into the sea&mdash;who knows?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Of course it may have been that his madness, if he
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page137" id="page137"></a>[pg&nbsp;137]</span>
-were mad, took an acute turn, who knows? But I have
-lived a good time in the East, and I am very well assured
-of this, that there are men here hand in glove with
-evil. I have seen things done in China, and for money
-too, that could not possibly have been done by trickery,
-and could not, I think, have been done by permission
-of the powers of Good. I&#39;m not what you call a Christian,
-and what&#39;s more, I think the Christian religion
-has done a great deal of harm&mdash;not to speak of other
-what you call &#39;religions&#39;&mdash;Am I wearying you, Mrs.
-du Telle?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Not in the least; please go on.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;In this way. It has robbed us of our terror of evil.
-It paints a vague devil that no man really believes in.
-Now take that much-read book, &#39;The Sorrows of Satan,&#39;
-where the Devil sits down and plays the piano and sings
-a song.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I thought it was a guitar he played,&quot; said Jane.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, a guitar; it&#39;s all the same. People read that
-with a grave face. He&#39;s quite a good sort and so forth.&quot;
-Channing paused for a moment and gazed reflectively
-at the wine in his glass, took a sip and went on: &quot;Don&#39;t
-you think the thousands of people who read that stuff,
-and admire it, must have lost all sense of the horrible
-thing that evil is? The sense that evil is a reality, a
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page138" id="page138"></a>[pg&nbsp;138]</span>
-thing to fill us with the wildest horror if one could only
-appreciate it, a very real thing, and a very determined
-thing, and a thing all black; yet we get people playing
-in fancy with, and even laughing about, this horror.
-And writers painting the cuttle-fish center of it as a
-semi-sentimental idiot capable of assuming evening
-clothes and talking twaddle, or criticizing plays as he
-does in Satan Montgomery&#39;s poem. We don&#39;t play with
-a thing we loathe even in fancy. But we&mdash;I mean Christians&mdash;play
-with the idea of the devil as if it were a
-poodle dog. The truth is that Christians don&#39;t fear the
-Power of Evil, they fear the Power of Good. They
-praise him, propitiate and worship him in a most fulsome
-manner, and say they love him. I tell you this for a
-fact that no man can love good who does not abhor
-evil, and you can&#39;t abhor a thing that you play with.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Do you abhor evil, Mr. Channing?&quot; asked Jane.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Honestly, I do. Any one with eyes and the capacity
-for thought who lives in China <i>must</i>.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Then you must love good?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;One does not &#39;love&#39; the sun, one worships it, so
-to speak&mdash;but this is all very strange my talking like
-this; my business in life is mainly silk and racehorses.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;&#39;Scuse me,&quot; said George du Telle, who was swaying
-slightly in his chair, the gone-out cigar still stuck
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page139" id="page139"></a>[pg&nbsp;139]</span>
-in the side of his mouth, his face bulged and red, and
-his eye a fixity. &quot;&#39;Scuse me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;One moment, George&mdash;Well, I think, Mr. Channing,
-there are worse Christians in the world than you are.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Perhaps there are worse men, but I don&#39;t claim to
-be a Christian. Only a man who recognizes fearfully the
-existence of evil as well as good.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;&#39;Scuse me,&quot; said George du Telle, speaking loudly
-now as if he were calling a servant or railway porter.
-&quot;I&#39;m not going to have this sort of thing at my table.
-<i>I&#39;m</i> a Christian, brought up a Christian, die one. &#39;M
-not going to&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;George!&quot; said his wife in a mild voice, but a voice
-very steady and full of command.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Christian, who had raised himself in his chair,
-subsided.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane rose from the table.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Shall we go into the drawing-room and have some
-music?&quot; she said. &quot;You sing, Dick&mdash;or used to.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As they passed to the drawing-room she said to Channing:
-&quot;Did I tell you the mark my cousin Dick made&mdash;you
-know what I mean&mdash;was the Christian emblem?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;My dear lady,&quot; said Channing, &quot;I especially dread
-hurting another person&#39;s religious feelings, and I, what
-am I? Just a man who thinks his own thoughts, but&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page140" id="page140"></a>[pg&nbsp;140]</span>
-&quot;Well?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, if there were anything in it at all, may it not
-be that the cause of the disturbance was the fact that
-he touched him?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;How is that?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;You have never touched the wire in connection with
-a running dynamo?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;No.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;No,&quot; said Channing, &quot;for if you had you would
-not be here. The metaphor is a bad one. I only mean to
-say that the touch of a stick or a hand may disturb the
-play of great forces with most surprising results.&quot;</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page141" id="page141"></a>[pg&nbsp;141]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XVII</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">THE HOUSE BY NIGHT</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was late when Leslie left the hotel. The moon
-was rising over Nagasaki, and he required no
-lamp to light him up the hill path leading to the
-house.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In the veranda he sat down to rest a moment and
-pull off his boots. The landscape garden, looking very
-antique in the moonlight, lay before him, the moon
-lighting its tiny hills and melancholy groves with the
-same particular care that presently he would bestow on
-the forests of Scindia and the Himalayas. On one of
-its verdurous swards lay a mark. It was the mark of
-Jane du Telle&#39;s footstep imprinted on Campanula&#39;s
-garden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He sat for a while in thought, then he unlatched a
-panel with a sort of gridiron-shaped key, then he
-searched in his pocket for matches, and found he had
-none.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page142" id="page142"></a>[pg&nbsp;142]</span>
-Determining to grope his way up and go to bed by
-moonlight, he closed and fastened the panel, leaving himself
-in darkness, caught his toe against an hibachi, left
-as if on purpose for him to tumble over, swore, knocked
-himself against a screen, which fell crash on Sweetbriar
-San, the household cat, who had once made part of the
-Fir-cone, Plum-blossom, Moon, and Snow ministry, and
-the intelligent animal, conceiving that robbers had entered,
-rushed wildly round and round in the dark till a
-panel slid back revealing Pine-breeze with a wan and
-weary smile on her face, and an andon or night lantern
-in her hand. She handed Leslie a candle and box of
-matches, and, still smiling, slid back, closing the panel
-as she went, like a figure in a trick toy, Sweetbriar San
-bristling and glowering on her shoulder like a fiend.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The upper part of the House of the Clouds was
-divided by panels into a passage and three rooms. One
-for Leslie, one for the Mousm&egrave;s, and the third for
-Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Pine-breeze, with her arm full of towels, or what not,
-would often come into Leslie&#39;s bedroom through the wall.
-He might be in his bath, he might be&mdash;anything, it was
-all the same to Pine-Breeze, she was thinking of her
-duties, not of him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">One night, long ago, he had awakened in the arms of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page143" id="page143"></a>[pg&nbsp;143]</span>
-Mother Fir-cone, who was jibbering with fright. There
-was a mosquito-net between them, for she had rushed
-through the wall, and literally flung herself upon him,
-tearing the mosquito-net from its attachments. I do not
-wonder at her fright. Also San was in eruption, and
-a fearful earthquake was roaring and billowing under
-Nagasaki.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Several times had the Mousm&egrave;s rushed into his room
-all clinging together, and crying &quot;Dorobo!&quot; (Robbers).
-Robbers had tried to burgle the house twice, in
-fact. He had shot one the second time, and they never
-came again. Yet he always slept with a Smith and Wesson
-convenient, for a Japanese robber is a business man,
-without a heart, but with a desire for plunder keen as
-the edge of a sword.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie&#39;s bedroom was a very bare apartment, furnished
-mostly with a nothing. A futon and pile of pillows&mdash;he
-had tried the makura or Japanese pillow, but given it
-up in disgust&mdash;under a mosquito-net, a wash-stand, a
-stick-rack, and some pegs to hang clothes on, constituted
-the remainder of the furniture. The window was a wide
-open space crossed by lattice slats, through which the
-moon was now shining, her light partly intercepted by
-the dance of a cherry bough waving in the wind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie undressed and got into bed. Seen through the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page144" id="page144"></a>[pg&nbsp;144]</span>
-blue gauze of a mosquito-net, the room had a character
-all its own.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The House of the Clouds by night was not the place
-for a person afflicted with insomnia. There were so
-many noises only waiting to tell strange tales to the
-strained ear. Tales of mystery and exaggeration. Lying
-awake you would hear some one leaning close against
-the attenuated house wall; it was the wind. And now,
-a scratching sound as of a panther trying to commit a
-burglary; it was the wind; and now a whisper like the
-whisper of a lover to his mistress&mdash;or maybe of a robber
-to his mate; it was the wind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the owl sitting on the roof, staring with saucer
-eyes at the moon, would give one low, whistling cry,
-and his mate beyond somewhere, would make cautious
-answer.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then &quot;tap, tap, tap.&quot; It would be the wind&mdash;making
-the skeleton finger of a dead Samurai out of a loose
-lattice.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then a thunder of cats and a yell on the veranda
-roof, and the drowsy one, just off to goblin land with
-the dead Samurai, would be brought up all standing,
-and half rise for a boot, or a boot-jack, or anything
-hurlable, and sink back with a sigh, remembering that
-he was in Japan.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page145" id="page145"></a>[pg&nbsp;145]</span>
-The wind played upon the House of the Clouds just
-as a maestro plays on a fiddle, but with a more distressing
-result. Sometimes of an autumn or winter night
-you might have sworn the place was surrounded by a
-company of old Japanese ghosts escaped from the
-clutches of Emma O[1] and requestful of succor and
-safety.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">[Footnote 1: The Guardian of the Buddhistic hells.]</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie could not sleep. This eruption of his past into
-the present disturbed him deeply.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had been getting acclimatized, losing little by
-little that horrible sense of exile and home-sickness that
-had driven him once across half the world to London,
-and now it was all coming back.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And she was married to that little beast, and, worst
-of all, she seemed content.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">For eight years he had looked upon her as a thing
-dead to him, and now she had returned with sevenfold
-power, for she brought the past with her. The golden
-past, golden despite that dour father, Colonel Leslie of
-Glenbruach, that just man unacquainted with folly. She
-brought the river in spate and the leaping salmon, the
-heather-scented wind from the purple hills, Glenbruach
-in the midst of a world of snow, the ripple of the mountain
-burn and the faint reek of peat.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page146" id="page146"></a>[pg&nbsp;146]</span>
-Worse than all these, she brought herself. She was
-the same spiritually and mentally as the slim girl of
-long ago&mdash;a slip of a girl straight as a wand and as
-full of laughter and movement and brightness as a mountain
-brook.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But materially she had vastly altered. She was now
-a woman, divinely formed, a creature appealing to every
-sensual fiber in a man&#39;s nature.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And George du Telle owned all this!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie, I daresay you have perceived, was a man who
-did not take what one may call a dry-light view of
-things, past or present, when they had relation to himself;
-as a matter of fact, he saw the shortcomings of
-others tremendously clearly. The shortcomings of his
-father, of Bloomfield the lawyer, of the Sydney
-bar loafers, of Danjuro the curio dealer, and of
-poor old sinful, grubbing M&#39;Gourley&mdash;too clearly, in
-fact.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">His own shortcomings he acknowledged by word of
-mouth. He knew they were there, just as a merchant
-knows a bale of damaged and unsaleable goods is in his
-cellar, but he did not go down and rake them out and
-examine them carefully.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">No one ever had cared for him, he said, but he never
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page147" id="page147"></a>[pg&nbsp;147]</span>
-asked himself if he ever had permitted any one to
-care for him. With this outlook on life, a semi-poetical
-nature, and passions that slept long and deeply only to
-awake rejuvenated and with the strength of demons,
-he might before this have gone entirely to the devil,
-only for a lodger he had.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">An old Scotch ancestor lived with him. This &quot;pairson,&quot;
-who had once worn a long upper lip and had been
-a writer to the signet, a just, hard, God-fearing, and
-straight man, had a chamber in a convolution of Leslie&#39;s
-brain, where he sat&mdash;he, or his attenuated personality&mdash;twiddling
-his thumbs like a night watchman and waiting
-for alarms.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was this gentleman who had saved his descendant
-from the weak man&#39;s form of suicide&mdash;drink.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He now came out in his old carpet slippers and read his
-descendant a lecture on the text: &quot;Thou shalt not lust
-after another man&#39;s wife.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And he spoke hard and strong, taking almost entirely
-the &quot;wumman&#39;s&quot; side of the question; pointing out that
-society, as we know it, imperfect as it may be, is ruled
-by a number of laws whose aim is the common weal and
-the individual&#39;s comfort and happiness.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He pointed out that the life of a &quot;wumman&quot; is composed,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page148" id="page148"></a>[pg&nbsp;148]</span>
-not of grand passions and Italian opera scenes,
-but of a hundred thousand trifles, each one insignificant
-enough, yet each helping to form that grand masterpiece,
-a pure woman&#39;s life.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">That a woman might be pure in mind, even if married
-to a &quot;red-headed runt&quot; like George du Telle. That
-if that was so she was a happy woman, and that if a
-man loved her, loved he never so madly, it would be a
-strange expression of that love to blast her happiness,
-and soil her soul.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It would not be love, but lust&mdash;the passion of those
-devils which Mr. Channing had hinted at that evening,
-those people of the night who slumber not nor sleep.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Having finished, he went into his chamber and shut
-the door.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And Leslie lay reflecting on his words, also on the
-words of Channing.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Evil made manifest. The face of the creature on the
-Nikko road came before his mental eye. That was evil
-made manifest. He had seen the thing. He had known
-the devil by hearsay since a child. He had heard the
-&quot;Deevil&quot; thundered at from Scotch pulpits, tracts
-about the devil had been put into his hand; he had heard
-people make laughing remarks about him: he was so
-familiar with the vague personality called Satan that
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page149" id="page149"></a>[pg&nbsp;149]</span>
-he felt no interest in him, neither interest nor aversion.
-Never a shudder.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But that thing in the sky of the opium dream, the
-music that had brought it&mdash;that, indeed, was evil painted
-by the hand of an artist; worth all the sermons ever
-thundered from pulpits, all the tracts ever printed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then his weary brain grew drowsy, and there strayed
-across it the fair figure of the Lost One, the very antithesis
-of all things evil.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Only last night before going to bed she had murmured
-a story half to herself, half to him, with her
-eyes fixed on the glowing embers of the hibachi, and he
-retold it to himself now to put himself to sleep.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was about the great battle between the beasts and
-the birds&mdash;the real reason why the owl was reduced to
-shame and forced to cover himself with night.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;And they came from the North and the South and
-the East and the West in flight, oh, many ri broad.
-The quails from the millet, the stork from the river,
-and from the pond the king-fisher, flashing like a blue
-jewel in the sunlight.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Then said the stork, who led all these people of
-the air:</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;&#39;Behold! we are all assembled but where tarries
-Sir Owl?&#39;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page150" id="page150"></a>[pg&nbsp;150]</span>
-&quot;Then a sparrow made answer and said:</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;&#39;As I paused to rest on a cherry bough, for my
-wings be little though my heart is big, I heard Sir Owl
-in treasonable conversation with a rat. And said he,
-&quot;Come forth from thy burrow, O Rat, that I may feast
-my eyes upon thee; and the empire of the beasts shall
-be thine, and also the empire of the birds.&quot;&#39;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;And the voice of the Hidden One replied&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But what the Hidden One made answer, Leslie did
-not remember, for the artless story had lulled him to
-sleep.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page151" id="page151"></a>[pg&nbsp;151]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XVIII</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">MOSTLY ABOUT FLOWERS</p>
-
-<p class="indent">O Japan! Spring! Dawn! what an exquisite and
-roseate mystery surrounds the meeting of ye
-three!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Night, and the owls, and the ghosts, have vanished,
-day and the sparrows have come.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Up from Nagasaki rise the murmurs of life, mists
-are vanishing from the hills across the harbor, where
-the lateen sails of junks are rising to find the wind, and
-the sampans dart about like attenuated water-beetles.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The far, faint sound of a bugle from the man-of-war
-anchorage crosses the far, shrill crowing of a cock
-owned by Mr. Pinecape, the cobbler of Jinriksha
-Street&mdash;two rapiers of sound crossing each other in the
-now brilliant air. Then the noises of the day deepen,
-and the whirr of the cicala mixes with all sorts of faint
-domestic noises, a <i>m&egrave;lange</i> from which the ear can
-pick out notes just as the eye points in an impressionist&#39;s
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page152" id="page152"></a>[pg&nbsp;152]</span>
-picture: the clatter of a pair of clogs, the call
-of a watercress seller, the clash of a tin pan dropped
-somewhere, and then cock-crow after cock-crow from
-far and near, some loud and defiant, others defiant
-enough but faint, as if coming through a pin-pole
-half a mile away.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The kitchen of the House of the Clouds is a square
-apartment, with no matting on the floor, and just now
-flooded with sunshine.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie, in the early days, had caused to be constructed
-by a stranded ship&#39;s carpenter, a solid English kitchen-table
-of white pine. He wanted to give the man a job,
-and he thought the thing would prove useful; and
-it did.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">To begin with, it smelt deliciously, and Mother Fir-cone
-amidst her avocations would take a sniff at it now
-and then, just as a snufftaker takes a pinch of snuff;
-she would also sit under it preparing sweet potatoes,
-stringing beans or what not; but as for using it as a
-table, such an idea never occurred to her. In fact, she
-had no ideas at all about a table, and was quite convinced
-that this gift of Leslie San&#39;s was a sort of pine-wood
-temple, constructed for the purpose of being sat
-under.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was also a place of refuge in time of earthquakes,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page153" id="page153"></a>[pg&nbsp;153]</span>
-when the whole household, saving Leslie and Campanula,
-got under it for fear of the roof falling. It received
-the title of &quot;Honorable,&quot; and was altogether a thing
-very much respected, and even vaguely beloved.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Under it this morning sat Lotus-bud, preparing fish
-for breakfast; on it (these new Mousm&egrave;s used it as a
-shelf) reposed various paper boxes containing eggs
-and groceries, weird-looking boxes suggesting that a
-conjurer was about to commence operations, not a cook.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The sun laid a great square of light like a burning
-mat upon the floor near the table, and on her knees in
-the center of this mat of light sat Pine-breeze cleaning
-an hibachi. Cherry-blossom, the third Mousm&egrave;, squatted
-right before Pine-breeze doing nothing.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">From under the table was escaping a faint blue haze
-of smoke. Lotus-bud had just taken a few whiffs from
-a tiny pipe.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They all smoked, these Mousm&egrave;s, pinches of stuff
-like chopped hay in pipe bowls the size of a child&#39;s
-thimble; but Campanula had never acquired the art,
-though all her friends were ardent tobacco lovers.
-Leslie San had said &quot;No,&quot; and that was enough.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As Pine-breeze cleaned the hibachi and made it spick
-and span, she was telling the others a yarn, mostly to
-do with her doings when down the town marketing last
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page154" id="page154"></a>[pg&nbsp;154]</span>
-evening. How she had bought this or that, what had
-been said to her, and so forth&mdash;a tale simple enough,
-but a miracle of genius considering the tongue in which
-it was told. For in the Japanese there are but two parts
-of speech, the noun and the verb; these, and splinters
-and scraps of broken-up nouns and verbs, which, in the
-form of particles and suffixes, help to shore up the
-meaning and pin together the common sense, have to
-do all the talking.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The learner of Japanese feels at first like a person
-condemned to eat gravy soup with chop-sticks. Oh, for
-even a pronoun! Imagine talking to a person without
-being able to use the word &quot;You,&quot; without being able to
-use the word &quot;I&quot;! Imagine the horrible tortures of a
-Japanese egoist on his death-bed making, or attempting
-to make, his dying speech!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But there are no egoists in Japan&mdash;can&#39;t be with
-such a language&mdash;and there are no purse-proud snobs,
-or if there are, they hide themselves very closely.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">For self-depreciation is the key-note of Japanese conversation
-and manners.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">So she goes on with her story, in a voice sweet to
-listen to as the ripple of a mountain brook, and Lotus-bud
-listens under the table, fish-knife held in air, for the
-tale is reaching an interesting point.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page155" id="page155"></a>[pg&nbsp;155]</span>
-Then Campanula&#39;s voice is heard speaking to Sweetbriar
-San. She is coming to the kitchen to superintend
-things and&mdash;crack! the fish&#39;s head is cut off, and three
-Mousm&egrave;s are working like one.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula San is younger than any of these
-Mousm&egrave;s, and she treats them like sisters, yet strangely
-enough, they do not encroach, but treat her as their mistress&mdash;a
-condition of things impossible in Europe, and
-presently, perhaps, impossible in Japan.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The sun has leapt now over the hills, and Leslie is
-heard moving upstairs. Pine-breeze claps her hands with
-horror, and rises to her feet: she has forgotten to fill
-his bath.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She goes to do so, and Campanula wanders out the
-front way to the balcony, where she pauses to gaze at
-the azaleas, shading her eyes with her hand.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The fire is spreading; another crimson blossom is almost
-unfolded, and others are soon to be born. Every
-spring the coming of the azaleas is an event in Campanula&#39;s
-life.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A wealth of crimson azaleas is one of her first recollections.
-Away beyond that crimson fire of flowers lies the
-land of her earliest childhood. The house with the plum
-tree, very vague indeed; the father who hit things with
-a hammer, still vaguer; the sugar-candy dragon lost,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page156" id="page156"></a>[pg&nbsp;156]</span>
-and so miraculously recovered; the little boy who went
-to sleep in the snow&mdash;or was it in a field of lilies?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Her real life, it seemed to her, began as she was
-reaching for a crimson blossom one day in a field of
-crimson blossoms, and was suddenly caught up sky-high
-by a thing taller than a tree, who did something
-to the side of her neck, just under her left ear, that was
-not hurtful or particularly unpleasant, but which,
-nevertheless, made her scream.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then, behold, she saw that the thing was a man,
-though in strange clothes, but he did not frighten her
-in the least, and she gave him her hand at once, and
-with confidence, whereupon he took her in his arms and
-carried her to a road where stood another man, all
-black, even to his hands, but his face was white, and
-he had a red beard.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then this man, who was also unfrightful, began to
-make her remember things that she had for the moment
-forgotten. To remember her father, and the fact that
-she had lost her way, and other things too, including
-the errant dragon. He made her remember that she
-wished to get back to her father, but she did not remember
-this so very clearly. In fact she was quite content
-to go with these two men over the hills and far
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page157" id="page157"></a>[pg&nbsp;157]</span>
-away, feeling sure she was safe with them, went they
-where they would.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The scenes on the road to Nikko she remembered: a
-funny man away in the distance dancing amongst trees,
-and the entry into Nikko borne sky-high above all the
-other children, the Tea House of the Tortoise, and&mdash;grandest
-remembrance of all!&mdash;the miraculous awakening
-with the long-lost dragon in her hand. He was so
-full of mystery that she never had even dreamt of eating
-him, and she still possessed him. He was upstairs in
-the drawer of a lacquered cabinet, cracked, it is true,
-by changes of temperature and warped in the back, for
-age touched all things, even sugar-candy dragons.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then there was her life at the House of the Clouds,
-the mission school; rainy days when she splashed
-through the mud under a broad paper umbrella; fine
-days when she flew kites with M&#39;Gourley San, played
-hop-scotch with Kiku San and Kitsune Ken, with all
-sorts of other Sans, mostly with shaved heads.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This was Campanula&#39;s childhood as she remembered
-it. But as you cannot remember your childhood till you
-have stepped over the line where the child becomes a
-boy or girl, Campanula had not begun remembering
-it till about six months ago.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page158" id="page158"></a>[pg&nbsp;158]</span>
-Up till then M&#39;Gourley San, and Leslie San, and
-Sweetbriar San, and a host of other honorable people
-surrounded her, one as important as the other, Mac
-perhaps more important than any.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then all at once&mdash;in a week or so, to be more precise&mdash;a
-host of new ideas came to her, bothersome, formless
-ideas, as ungraspable yet as insistent as the great Boyg
-himself.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the ideas began to take form. It was in the
-garden one day. Her eyes fell on one of the flowerless
-azalea bushes, and she remembered how it had been
-covered with crimson flowers last year, and how beautiful
-they were, beautiful above every other flower, even
-the lordly peony, who seems to hold the whole glory
-and mystery of summer in the gloom of his splendid
-heart. And her mind wandered back from spring to
-spring, led by the crimson blossoms, till she called to
-mind the valley where Leslie had found her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was he who had found her wandering alone there,
-and he had picked her up.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had never forgotten the valley; it had lain in the
-distance in her mind, but she had no use for it till now.
-Now it came to her in all its splendor, and explained to
-her why the azalea was the flower she loved above the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page159" id="page159"></a>[pg&nbsp;159]</span>
-peony, the lotus, or even that glorious mystery, the
-dragon-spume chrysanthemum.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Flowers are so bound up with the lives of the children
-of Japan that they have a meaning and speak a language
-to them almost unknown to us.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">So Campanula sat immersed in her dream, and Leslie,
-who had swung a hammock between two cherry trees
-and was lying in it, little knew what was going on in
-the small head of the person seated near him on the
-square of matting. She had been doing some needlework,
-but her work had dropped in her lap, her hands
-were folded, and her eyes were fixed on the azalea bush.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Next day, or perhaps the day after, for a man&#39;s perceptions
-in these matters are sometimes dull, he noticed
-a change in her. He could not say what it was, but the
-submissive and humble person, the very fact of whose
-existence was a theme for perpetual self-excuse, had
-somehow changed. She was just as submissive and humble,
-but there was a subdued joyousness in her manner
-when excusing her existence as though she thought
-that somehow it might not be such a frightful crime
-after all, and perhaps capable of condonation some day.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then, when he called for his cigar-case Pine-breeze
-did not appear with it, though Pine-breeze loved to be
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page160" id="page160"></a>[pg&nbsp;160]</span>
-the carrier of it, because it was a foreign thing, and the
-leather smelt deliciously.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula brought it <i>and</i> a match-box, a thing that
-Pine-breeze&#39;s flighty little mind nearly always forgot.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A few days before, Leslie had possessed three servants
-and what he called an adoptive daughter. Then he suddenly
-found himself in the possession of four servants,
-one of them more attentive than the other three put
-together. He put it down to the fact that her housewifely
-instincts were awakening, and as the change in
-her wrought for his comfort and ease he did not speculate
-on the cause as he would have done had the reverse
-been the case.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Women are curious creatures, as the philosophic Mac
-once said. But on the whole, in their way, I think men
-are just as strange.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Kite-flying had now been put aside with other childish
-things, and the tiny hands that had grasped the
-sugar-candy dragon were now preparing to grasp the
-real business of life: a business whose main objective
-was the happiness and comfort of &quot;He who is taller
-than the tallest of trees.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Pine-breeze, Lotus-bud, and Cherry-blossom. Looking
-at them in a row, you might have thought them
-pretty much alike, as far as mind and spirit were concerned,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page161" id="page161"></a>[pg&nbsp;161]</span>
-just as three sleek, well-groomed ponies may
-seem identical&mdash;until you try to drive them.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was not till Campanula took the reins that she
-found the three underlings were each afflicted with a
-special infirmity, or rather special infirmities.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Pine-breeze was such a scatterbrain that if you sent
-her down town in a hurry for eggs she would, as likely
-as not, dawdle home in an hour with tomatoes and some
-wild tale picked up on the way, pleasant and interesting
-enough, no doubt, but useless for the purpose of
-making an omelette. She would leave Leslie&#39;s bath unprepared,
-and then, sitting in her own tub, would clap
-her hands with horror at the remembrance of her own
-forgetfulness, and as likely as not attempt to rectify
-her error attired in a bath towel; and she would smash
-things&mdash;crockery ware understood&mdash;with almost the
-facility of your Western parlor-maid. To make up for
-these bad points, she was literary above her class; had
-a passion for flowers above her fellows, and had composed
-a poem about a grasshopper.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Lotus-bud was the cook; her infirmity was weakness.
-She would sit and listen to Pine-breeze&#39;s idle chatter and
-let the bread burn. Pine-breeze could work and talk,
-but Lotus-bud could not even work and listen. So she
-would sit with her hands in her lap, listening. She made
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page162" id="page162"></a>[pg&nbsp;162]</span>
-a splendid audience but a somewhat indifferent cook.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As for Cherry-blossom, she was purely and simply an
-idler, a lotus-eater, a hobboe in the guise of a butterfly.
-A thing so fragile and pretty, so perfectly dressed
-and so seemingly boneless, that you felt to expect work
-from her would be absurd; which, indeed, it would have
-been.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">For she never worked, she dreamed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She was enamored of a riksha man, and she would
-go out and meet him under the lilacs at the gate, and
-then vanish with him to goodness knows where for the
-evening.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was the strangest natural phenomenon, this lover
-of Cherry-blossom&#39;s, for he was always changing in
-size, and his face was never scarcely twice alike, and
-his number&mdash;rikshas are numbered just like hansom
-cabs&mdash;was</p>
-
-<div class="poem">
-<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i2"> 255.</span><br />
-<span class="i4">66.</span><br />
-<span class="i4">7.</span><br />
-<span class="i2"> 103.</span><br />
-<span class="i0">and 42.</span><br />
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="indent">At least Pine-breeze, who was an observant body, got
-that far in her notation, and then gave it up as a bad
-job.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page163" id="page163"></a>[pg&nbsp;163]</span>
-All these things, and more, Campanula had to cope
-with, and she did so with more or less success, gaining
-in her experience much that a girl of her age is supposed
-not to know, but losing nothing either in gentleness
-or modesty.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She brought Pine-breeze to a vague sense of the
-wrongfulness of flighty ways, and with her own little
-hands she made new bread to replace a batch of loaves
-burnt to cinders by Lotus-bud (bread that gave Leslie
-indigestion for a week).</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As for Cherry-blossom, she told her, missionary fashion,
-that she would certainly go to hell and be burnt
-like Lotus-bud&#39;s loaves if she did not stop vanishing
-down town with riksha men; and Cherry-blossom ground
-her nose on the matting and wept, and promised reformation,
-and went out two nights afterwards with No.
-173 to a grand blaze up at the O Suwa temple, where
-she devoured candied beans and comfits, and bowed before
-graven images, and had a general good time with
-a host of &quot;heathen&quot; people like herself.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Cherry-blossom&#39;s rikshas never cost her anything.
-Love lent them to her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie&#39;s socks up to this had always been vanishing,
-and the ones that remained, were always, or generally,
-in holes. The Mousm&egrave;s said it must be the mice. Campanula,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page164" id="page164"></a>[pg&nbsp;164]</span>
-however, found Pine-breeze one morning cleaning
-a kettle with a silk dress-sock. It seemed silk socks
-at half a guinea a pair gave a polish nothing else would
-give.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The kettles were duller after that, but the depredations
-of the mice ceased.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Having looked at the promise of the azaleas, she
-went in to see how things were getting on.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Presently she and Leslie were seated at breakfast
-opposite to one another on the floor. Leslie, attired in
-a suit of faultlessly fitting pale gray tweed, looked
-much more like an Indian cavalry officer on leave than
-an umbrella merchant, as he called himself. He had
-arranged to call for Jane du Telle at ten o&#39;clock to take
-her out shopping; the gloomy thoughts of the night
-before, the effect of the opium, and the effect of the
-dream, had vanished.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was sipping his tea, and glancing over the <i>Japan
-Mail</i>, when Campanula interrupted him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What iss Dick?&quot; she suddenly asked; she prolonged
-her s&#39;s in the faintest degree, difficult to reproduce
-in print, for there is no type capable of representing
-an s and a quarter.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What is what?&quot; asked Leslie, lowering the <i>Japan
-Mail</i>, and staring at his pretty <i>vis-&acirc;-vis</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page165" id="page165"></a>[pg&nbsp;165]</span>
-&quot;Dick&mdash;she called you Dick.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Who?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;She who gave you the flower,&quot; said Campanula,
-lowering ever so little her head.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Which flower?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;The one in your coat&mdash;yesterday.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh,&quot; said Leslie, remembering a bluebell that Jane
-had plucked and given him as they went down hill the
-day before, and remembering also that George du Telle
-and Campanula had been walking behind and must have
-seen the transaction. &quot;She calls me Dick because that
-is short for my name.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Dick,&quot; murmured she, in a meditative voice.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She seemed turning the name over in her mind. Tasting
-it mentally, so to speak.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;She is an old friend of mine,&quot; continued Leslie. &quot;I
-knew her, Campanula, before you were born, away over
-in another part of the world, where half the year it
-snows and where the wind blows just as hard as it does
-in Nippon, but the wind never brings flowers as it does
-here.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;No flowers,&quot; she murmured, incapable of imagining
-such a land.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Only flowers like that blue one, and wild roses and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page166" id="page166"></a>[pg&nbsp;166]</span>
-a few others, but you never see camellia trees growing
-by the roads, nor lotus flowers on the ponds.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Nor azaleas?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Nor azaleas&mdash;at least, as they grow here.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A shadow crossed the open doorway.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;M&#39;Gourley San,&quot; said Campanula, who was seated
-facing the door.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Dinna rise,&quot; said M&#39;Gourley. &quot;I&#39;ve had ma breakfast,
-and I&#39;ll juist tak a seat on the verandy till y&#39;ve
-done.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;m done,&quot; said Leslie, forgetful of grammar, and
-rising up, he came out, the <i>Japan Mail</i> under his arm,
-and a briar root in his hand.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They talked business a while, and then Leslie said:</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I say.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Weel?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;You remember that woman I told you of on the
-Nikko road?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Which wumman?&quot; asked Mac, taking up a pebble
-from the path just by the veranda, and shying it at
-one of the hills of the landscape garden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Girl, I meant; you remember the girl I told
-you of?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh ay; the lass that flung you ower board&mdash;what
-of her?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page167" id="page167"></a>[pg&nbsp;167]</span>
-&quot;She&#39;s here with her husband.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Whaur?&quot; said Mac, turning his head as though he
-fancied Jane and her spouse were camping out in the
-garden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;She&#39;s staying at the Nagasaki Hotel with her husband.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Whoat&#39;s their names?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Du Telle.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac doubled himself up for a moment, alleging for
-reason a touch of the stomach-ache, as a matter of fact
-it was a touch of internal laughter.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The day before yesterday he had found the newly-arrived
-George du Telle in the smoke-room of the Nagasaki
-Hotel, stood him drinks, and conducted him to
-Danjuro.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There they had saki and pipes, and George du Telle
-had bought a Pickford&#39;s van-full of rubbish, and parted
-with a fat green check on Cox&#39;s. An exceedingly fat
-check written with one eye shut, it is true, but quite
-in order.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I dined with them.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ye whoat!&quot; cried Mac, coming back from a vision
-of the victorious Danjuro doing the cake-walk amidst
-his bronzes and lacquers, kimono pinched up on either
-side between finger and thumb, his nose in the air, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page168" id="page168"></a>[pg&nbsp;168]</span>
-on his face an assumption of stiff and haughty pride
-enough to kill one with laughter.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Weel! weel!&quot; said Mac, addressing the hills of the
-landscape garden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What are you weel-weeling about?&quot; asked Leslie
-irritably.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I am not a puncteelious man,&quot; said Mac, still addressing
-the hills, &quot;in the small concairns of life, but
-if a lassie had treated me same&#39;s she you, <i>I&#39;d a seen her
-dammit before I&#39;d ha&#39; dined wi&#39; her</i>.&quot; He shouted the
-last words, and brought his big fist down on his knee
-with a bang.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Don&#39;t shout,&quot; said Leslie, &quot;and make an ass of
-yourself. We didn&#39;t quarrel when we parted; we parted
-good friends. She didn&#39;t want to marry me&mdash;well, that
-was her look-out.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I wish they hadna&#39; come,&quot; said Mac gloomily.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What on earth is the matter with you <i>now</i>?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;ve seen the waurld,&quot; said the Gloomy One, &quot;and
-I&#39;ve seen wummen. And I&#39;ve seen <i>her</i>&mdash;saw her in the
-smoke-room&mdash;&quot; He stopped.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What smoke-room?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Of the hotel. I was havin&#39; a crack wi&#39; her husband
-day-fore yesterday, and in she come to speak a word
-to him; and I know wummen&mdash;and, weel, I know, fixed
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page169" id="page169"></a>[pg&nbsp;169]</span>
-between that chap with a head like a blazin&#39; whin-bush
-and you, which way she&#39;ll run.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I wish you wouldn&#39;t be such a fool,&quot; said Leslie,
-now really annoyed and therefore keeping himself in
-check; &quot;she&#39;s nothing to me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac turned, and under his bushy, half-grizzled eyebrows
-stared in Leslie&#39;s face, and Leslie did not support
-his gaze, but turned away irritably, and flung stones
-at a brown hawk that was circling in the air before them.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac got up, tapped the ashes out of his pipe, and
-made off.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;See ye the morn?&quot; he called back as he got to the
-gate.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Maybe,&quot; said Leslie, looking at his watch and rising
-to go into the house.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He went down at ten, and shortly after his departure,
-out came Campanula, a basket in her hand and sandals
-on her feet, for the weather was dry. She came along
-the path towards the cherry trees, examining the ground
-and the interstices of the bushes.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At last she saw what she wanted, a bluebell.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She plucked it with tender care and put it in her
-basket, then she saw another and treated it the same,
-and another; so went she on till it became perfectly
-plain that her object was not gardening, or the gathering
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page170" id="page170"></a>[pg&nbsp;170]</span>
-of a bunch of flowers, but the extermination of
-every bluebell on the premises.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When the place had been cleared and the basket was
-half full of victims, the question came how to dispose
-of them. Impossible to throw them away or burn them;
-she would as soon, almost, have treated children so.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She stood at the gate undecided, till suddenly there
-came the solution of the problem, and opening the
-gate she passed down the lilac-shaded path to Nagasaki.
-On the way she saw more bluebells and stopped to pluck
-them, so that when the lane at the bottom was reached
-the basket was nearly full.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In a rabbit-hutch of a house off the lane lay a
-tragedy, or the remains of one, in the form of O Toku
-San, a poor work-girl. She had loved a man, and he
-had not even betrayed her in the ordinary way. He had
-simply changed his mind, and gone off with another
-girl.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She tried to kill herself, not in the native way, but
-with some abominable sort of foreign poison&mdash;Oxalic
-acid, most likely; but they saved her life, and she lay
-in the hospital nearly a month with her hands tied,
-to prevent her trying to kill herself again.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When she came out of the hospital she made no more
-attempts to obtain peace. She was in the clutches of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page171" id="page171"></a>[pg&nbsp;171]</span>
-pernicious an&aelig;mia, and she now lay dying, a despairing
-shadow, the ghost of what had once been a pretty
-and happy girl.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula turned to the tiny house, and that day
-O Toku San had a whole silver yen to give to her
-mother on her return, and a bunch of freshly-gathered
-blue flowers to charm her eye: things to the dying
-better than all music and poetry, and far above the
-greatest masterpieces of art.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page172" id="page172"></a>[pg&nbsp;172]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XIX</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">THE STORK AND THE TORTOISE</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They were in the street running parallel with Jinrikisha
-Street, a street truly of the old time, narrow
-with the house-tops, when the houses had upper
-stories over-leaning the way.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane seemed fascinated by the contents of the little
-shops, that sold everything from cuttle-fish to paper
-lanterns. Shops that were, most of them, simply raised
-platforms, matted and roofed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Here abounded the tortoise-shell carvers, and the men
-who can make a netsuk&egrave; to charm the eye out of anything:
-a knot of wood, a shark&#39;s tooth, a useless bit of
-ivory.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;m going to buy things,&quot; said Jane, looking with
-a lustful eye on the cheap, or seemingly cheap, curios
-exposed for sale in some of the shops: old bronze gongs,
-kettles, sword guards, broken crockery were carefully
-mended, lamps, such as the Chinese magician might have
-hawked at the back entrance of the palace of Aladdin,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page173" id="page173"></a>[pg&nbsp;173]</span>
-fans, trick toys, and tiny boxes for holding rouge; tobacco-monos
-and opium pipes, broken-down English
-umbrellas, lacquer trays, and a heap of other dust-traps
-utterly useless, and some of them not very ornamental.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;If you <i>will</i> waste your money,&quot; said Leslie, &quot;I&#39;d
-advise you to come to Danjuro&#39;s. We can get to it by
-this lane, and I won&#39;t let him swindle you beyond the
-ordinary tourist pitch.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Very well,&quot; said Jane, turning from a booth bearing
-this cabalistic inscription on its front, &quot;Come
-rightin!&quot;[2] &quot;The things look pretty dusty, and I don&#39;t
-see anything I very much want&mdash;I&#39;d like to buy <i>that</i>,
-though.&quot; She pointed to a mite in the colored kimono,
-playing battledore and shuttlecock in the gutter with
-another mite of its own size. &quot;They seem so happy and
-jolly, these Japanese children, and clean, and I read
-somewhere they never give any trouble, or break things,
-or annoy people&mdash;Bless the child!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">[Footnote 2: I presume &quot;Come right in!&quot; was the artist&#39;s intention.]</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A shuttlecock hit her a slap in the face, and the
-shuttlecock hitter laughed, and trotted after it, without
-any semblance of apology to his target.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;There&#39;s another illusion shattered,&quot; said Jane,
-wiping her face with her handkerchief.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Have you&mdash;&quot; began Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page174" id="page174"></a>[pg&nbsp;174]</span>
-&quot;What?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Any children?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;No,&quot; said Jane; &quot;I have not.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The stork on the tortoise, emblem of eternal life, and a
-&quot;supposed&quot; masterpiece of the great Miochin family
-of metal-workers, still stood on guard in the fore-front
-of Danjuro&#39;s wares. It was the same stork that Leslie
-had seen five years ago&mdash;at least, in appearance. In
-reality it had been sold five or six times during the last
-five years.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The selling of the thing always brought forth Danjuro&#39;s
-latent sense of humor, and could Danjuro the
-actor have seen his namesake at these supreme moments
-of trade, he would certainly have claimed him as a
-brother in art.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It would be an American woman, perhaps, in a blue
-veil, and with a smattering of knowledge picked up from
-artistic books about Japan. Mac would be the go-between,
-translating the desires of the female into
-Japanese for the edification of Dan, who spoke
-English, by the way, as well as Mac, and even, perhaps,
-better.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Sell it!&quot; Danjuro would cry. &quot;I would as soon
-think of selling my own mother. Tell her Augustness to
-ask of me anything else. It is a piece of true Miochin,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page175" id="page175"></a>[pg&nbsp;175]</span>
-owned by my father, and his father before him. It has
-always brought my family luck, etc.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">All of which M&#39;Gourley would faithfully translate
-with the addition:</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;He&#39;s the greatest auld scamp in the waurld; he&#39;s
-only puttin&#39; up the price. Bide a wee, and let him simmer
-doon. It is not a true Miochin, but it&#39;s a vara excellent
-imitation, made, mayhap, by some pupil of the Miochins.
-Would y&#39; be wullin&#39; to pay twanty poonds?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Blue-veiled One assenting, Mac and Danjuro
-would go for each other in Japanese, and after five minutes&#39;
-ferocious wrangling, and five minutes more of interpretations,
-the thing would change hands at twenty-five
-pounds, to be replaced next day, or, at least, the day
-after the departure of the Blue-veiled One from Nagasaki,
-by its twin image. A man at Osaka made them by
-the gross, and he charged two pounds ten a-piece for
-them to the trade.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Fortunately, the dead know not the doings of the
-living, else would the artistic Miochin family be turning
-eternally in their uneasy graves, with the rapidity of
-spinning bobbins.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Danjuro came out with his usual profound salute and
-low hiss.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Hiss is perhaps not the proper word, for the sound
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page176" id="page176"></a>[pg&nbsp;176]</span>
-is made by the intake of air between closed teeth, and is
-intended to represent delight beyond words.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And, indeed, when Danjuro beheld M&#39;Gourley entering
-with a client ready to be shorn, the sound came from
-him as no empty compliment, but as a natural expression
-of his true feelings.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was different as regards Leslie. Danjuro looked on
-Leslie with the nervous dread with which you or I might
-look upon a mischievous lunatic.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie had once nearly spoiled a bargain&mdash;a delightful
-bargain from the dealer&#39;s point of view, a disgraceful
-swindle viewed by the cold light of English ethics.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">An English Member of Parliament had been trepanned
-into paying two hundred pounds for a pair of vases
-worth, maybe, twenty. Mac in his jubilation boasted before
-Leslie, and Leslie had &quot;put the stopper on,&quot; caused
-the money to be returned, with a note to the effect that
-the jars were now discovered (from some documents
-connected with them) to be imitation, and not as represented
-when bought.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Member of Parliament, instantly concluding that
-<i>this</i> was a swindle, and that he had obtained priceless
-articles by accident, refused to accept the money, or
-return the jars.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And thus was he done brown on his own spit, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page177" id="page177"></a>[pg&nbsp;177]</span>
-basted by his own right hand, for in his book of travels,
-&quot;Amongst the Japs,&quot; he mentioned the transaction, and,
-worse still, sent a copy of the book to Danjuro, with the
-passage marked with blue pencil.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Dan read the passage with the aid of a pair of horn-rimmed
-spectacles, and with a face mirthless as a shovel.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But the soul in him bubbled. He could quite understand
-the Member of Parliament&#39;s point of view, but
-Leslie&#39;s was quite beyond his power to grasp.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Honesty for the sake of honesty, and without any
-ulterior reason, even Art for Art&#39;s sake was more understandable
-than that.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">So he hissed without pleasure as he bowed before
-Leslie and Jane, imploring them to condescend to
-make the honorable entrance, and intimating that everything
-in the place was theirs.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane nodded to him, and looked round.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;There&#39;s one of the monstrosities I told you of that
-George bought the other day,&quot; said she, pointing to a
-bronze frog half as big as an ordinary coal-box. &quot;Oh,
-look at <i>that</i>!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She pointed to a furious struggle in bronze between
-a man and a monster. The monster had opened its mouth
-to devour the man, and the man had caught it by the
-tongue, which he was tearing out.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page178" id="page178"></a>[pg&nbsp;178]</span>
-It was the climax of the fight, and the conclusion one
-could read in the triumphant ferocity of the man&#39;s face&mdash;a
-thing to make one shudder.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Danjuro San,&quot; said Leslie grimly, speaking in Japanese,
-whilst Jane gazed at the fighting group, &quot;this
-is the lady whose husband you and M&#39;Gourley San entertained
-the other day&mdash;the Red-headed One. She is a
-friend of mine, and I pray you to entertain her differently.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This is a vague interpretation of the Japanese for
-&quot;This is the lady whose husband you swindled the other
-day, but if you play any of your tricks with <i>her</i>, I&#39;ll
-make you sit up&mdash;see?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">To fight with a Japanese you must come to blows,
-for you can&#39;t possibly do it in words properly. The
-old Japanese who made the language had no use
-for terms of abuse: swords were good enough for
-them.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;ll have that,&quot; said Jane, suddenly seizing the fat
-baby, the size of a tangerine orange, done in ivory and
-engaged in feeding ivory ducks on top of a lacquer cabinet,
-&quot;and the ducks. Tell him to send them to the
-hotel; you can fight with him about the price afterwards&mdash;and
-those two vases; and oh, that ivory Mousm&egrave;
-with the umbrella&mdash;isn&#39;t she sweet! I don&#39;t see anything
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page179" id="page179"></a>[pg&nbsp;179]</span>
-else I want. <i>You</i> have something, I want to make you
-a present.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I don&#39;t want anything, I&#39;m tired of curios.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, you&#39;ll just have to want something, for I&#39;m
-going to make you a present. I&#39;ll give you this.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She took up a short sword in a carved ivory scabbard.
-On the ivory handle of it was figured a grimacing god,
-dancing apparently. She drew the blade, polished and
-razor-sharp, and then returned it to its sheath.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Take it; it will come in handy when those robbers
-you told us of last night at dinner come again.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I don&#39;t want the thing; it&#39;s unlucky to give knives.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It&#39;s not a knife, it&#39;s a sword!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;All right,&quot; said Leslie, &quot;anything for peace;&quot; and
-he took a great sheet of rice paper from Danjuro and
-wrapped the thing carefully up.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Now,&quot; said Jane, &quot;I want something for langn-yappe,
-as they say in New Orleans&mdash;something thrown
-in.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Danjuro declared that the whole shop was hers to do
-what she liked with.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I don&#39;t want the whole shop,&quot; said Jane, &quot;but I&#39;ll
-have that.&quot; She took possession of a tiny rose tree in
-the pot, a rose tree with blossoms the size of farthings.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Now come.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page180" id="page180"></a>[pg&nbsp;180]</span>
-&quot;One moment,&quot; said Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">His ear had caught a familiar sound. It came from
-the cellar where many of Danjuro&#39;s goods were stowed;
-it was the voice of Mac, and it came up like the voice
-of the Hidden One in Campanula&#39;s story. Mac evidently
-had a victim in the cellar. Leslie went to the cellar
-stairs and listened.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I would not let him see you&#39;re wanting it. Juist
-assume a casual expreesion as if ye were na so vary
-carin&#39; whether ye got it or no&#39;. He&#39;ll be sure to tell ye
-it&#39;s a piece o&#39; Miochin&mdash;it is <i>not</i>.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;How much do you think it&#39;s worth?&quot; (A burly
-English voice, suggestive of shepherd&#39;s plaid trousers,
-a corporation, gold albert, and double chin.)</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;All of fifty pounds, but not a penny more, not a
-penny more. Show him the money; there&#39;s not a Jap
-in Nagasaki can withstaund the sight of goud&mdash;or
-notes.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Look here, if you get it for forty, I&#39;ll give you a
-ten per cent. commission.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Am no so very carin&#39; about commeesions; stull, as
-you offer it, I&#39;ll not say &#39;No.&#39;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The stork and tortoise were being sold again.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie turned away in disgust.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Come,&quot; he said to Jane, &quot;let&#39;s go.&quot; And they
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page181" id="page181"></a>[pg&nbsp;181]</span>
-passed out into the sunlit street, he carrying the
-parcel containing the sword, she the rose tree done
-up in rice paper pictured vaguely with the forms of
-storks.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;She has given him a wakizashi,&quot; murmured Danjuro,
-and he retired into a corner to smoke a whiff or
-two of hay-colored tobacco, and think inscrutable
-thoughts, before addressing himself to the victim that
-Mac was preparing down in the cellar.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What shall we do now?&quot; asked Jane when they were
-in the street.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie thought for a moment.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;ll tell you,&quot; said he. &quot;We&#39;ll get rikshas and go to
-the cemetery&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;ll do no such thing,&quot; said Jane promptly.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;If you will allow me one moment&mdash;I&#39;m not proposing
-to take you to a place like Kensal Green. A
-Japanese cemetery is worth seeing, just as much worth
-seeing as a Japanese town. Then we can go and have
-luncheon.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Where?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Would you like to go to an eel-house?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Gracious, no! I hate eels. First a cemetery, and
-then an eel-house! I have half a mind to go back to the
-hotel.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page182" id="page182"></a>[pg&nbsp;182]</span>
-&quot;Well, a tea house, then; we can go to the Tea House
-of a Thousand Joys.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh, that quite decides the matter,&quot; said she, assuming
-an outraged air, and hailing one of two rikshas that
-were passing.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie hailed the other, and quietly directed the riksha
-boys to the cemetery.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page183" id="page183"></a>[pg&nbsp;183]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XX</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">THE SONG OF THE MUSHI</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It almost makes one wish one were dead,&quot; sighed
-Jane. They were sitting on a moss-grown tussock
-near a grave adorned with a fresh spray of cherry-blossom,
-contained in a joint of bamboo. Beneath them
-the hill stretched downwards, terrace after terrace, casting
-before their eyes the cold color of marble, and the
-mournful green of cryptomeria trees, the delicate tracery
-of ferns, and the glory of the wild camellias. Beyond
-lay the blue of the harbor, black-blue where the wooded
-cliffs met the water; from the water the hills led the
-eye past camphor woods and the green of the young
-bamboo, up and away to where the brown of their summits
-cut the dazzling azure of the sky. &quot;I have never
-seen anything so beautiful, so peaceful. What are you
-thinking of, Dick?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I was thinking,&quot; said Leslie, rousing himself, &quot;that
-we might have luncheon at my place.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;You are perfectly disgusting!&quot; said Jane. &quot;I&#39;ll
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page184" id="page184"></a>[pg&nbsp;184]</span>
-never go to a cemetery with you again. Luncheon! Who
-wants luncheon here?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Very few,&quot; said he grimly, gazing over the tombs.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Now you&#39;re trying to be smart&mdash;at the expense of
-these poor things. Ah! look at that tiny grave with the
-white flower in the little vase.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Some child.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes; a thing with a great sash that was flying its
-kite or spinning its top the other day, and now it&#39;s
-here.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Or hitting shuttlecocks about the street.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes,&quot; wiping her cheek where the shuttlecock had
-hit her&mdash;then suddenly: &quot;I think men are beasts,&quot; addressing
-the distant hills.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;m with you there.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;No, you&#39;re not; all men are just the same.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I suppose you mean to infer in a roundabout way
-that I&#39;m a beast. Thanks.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;There&#39;s nothing to be thankful for, only&mdash;they
-don&#39;t understand.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He took her hand in his as if to make friends, and
-she let him hold it for a moment, then she suddenly drew
-it away.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Had not we better be going? What&#39;s the time?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Twelve.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page185" id="page185"></a>[pg&nbsp;185]</span>
-&quot;Will you come and have luncheon at the hotel?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;No, thanks; why not come and lunch at my place?
-I&#39;ll give you all sorts of funny Japanese things to eat.
-Luncheon won&#39;t be till half-past one, but you can have
-a talk with Campanula. It will only take us ten minutes
-or so to get there from here.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They came down to where the rikshas were waiting;
-he helped her in, tucked the linen apron round her, and
-gave the men their direction.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula San had not yet returned, declared Pine-breeze,
-as she kow-towed before them on the matting.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, she won&#39;t be long,&quot; said Leslie. &quot;Shall we go
-into the house or the garden?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;The house,&quot; replied Jane. &quot;I&#39;m tired of the sunlight;
-let&#39;s go in, and sit on the floor and talk.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Right. But do you mind&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, as a matter of fact, there&#39;s a clause in the
-lease that no one is to go in with their boots on.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Why, for goodness sake?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;They say it spoils the matting.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;All right,&quot; said Jane, holding up a small foot, and
-trying to unbutton the shoe on it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Let me,&quot; said Leslie, going down on his knees.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The shoe came off, and the little foot in its bronze
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page186" id="page186"></a>[pg&nbsp;186]</span>
-silk stocking lay in his hands for half a second&mdash;half a
-second during which he was seized with a wild desire to
-kiss it. Next moment it was out of his hands, and the
-other was presented to him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;You are all thumbs!&quot; said Jane. &quot;Do be quick!
-I&#39;m not a stork to stand on one leg for an hour. There,
-you&#39;ve burst a button off! I knew you would. Stupid!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Pine-breeze will sew it on,&quot; said he, hunting for the
-button on his knees.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;No, she won&#39;t. It doesn&#39;t in the least matter. Gracious,
-Dick! when I see you just like that, crawling about
-on your knees&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I can&#39;t help remembering&mdash;Do you remember
-the rainy day at Glenbruach, when you and I were playing
-marbles in the pistol gallery, and I said you cheated,
-and you said you didn&#39;t, and I said you did, and you
-called me a liar?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;And you hacked my shins?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes; and old Mrs. Johnstone, the housekeeper, came
-in and saw me and said I was an &#39;awfu&#39; lassie!&#39; Can it
-be that all that really happened, and that we are the
-same people? Imagine me hacking your shins now!
-Imagine us both playing marbles on the veranda!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;And we didn&#39;t speak to each other for a day,&quot; said
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page187" id="page187"></a>[pg&nbsp;187]</span>
-he, following her into the house. &quot;And you looked so
-stiff and sour, and all of a sudden you came up from
-behind and flung your arms round my neck.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;And you shouted: &#39;Oh, get away, you little
-brute!&#39;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes; because I thought you were making another
-attack on me, and all the time you only wanted to
-k&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I didn&#39;t. I only wanted to apologize.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, apologize, then!&quot; said he, arranging the
-cushions on the floor, and placing the rose tree and the
-parcel containing the sword in a corner.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It is sad to look so far away,&quot; said she, taking as
-comfortable a position as she could upon the cushions.
-&quot;Life was so jolly then. Oh! a good old day&#39;s trout-fishing
-is worth all the money in the world. Money is
-no use; what&#39;s the good of it? It just makes one not
-care for the simple pleasures of life. Do you remember
-the picnic you and I and those American children, who
-were staying at Callander, had, when the soda-water
-bottle burst, and we found we&#39;d left everything behind
-but the jam and the eggs? Dick, I&mdash;I&mdash;want to ask
-you something.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was one of the peculiarities of Jane&#39;s mind that a
-question formulating there would work its way along
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page188" id="page188"></a>[pg&nbsp;188]</span>
-like a worm, under, maybe, ten minutes of conversation,
-and then come out at the end of a paragraph, rise for
-air, so to speak, in a manner irrelevant and sometimes
-startling.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What became of you all those three years before
-you came here to Japan?&mdash;you vanished. You
-told me the other day you were in Australia; were
-you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I was in prison.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She turned deathly pale, and stared at him as if he
-had struck her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh, you need not be so alarmed; it was not a criminal
-but a social prison. My father allowed me a hundred
-and fifty a year, paid quarterly, as long as I lived in
-Sydney, and as I had no trade and no money I lived in
-Sydney for three years&mdash;tied by the leg.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I think you take a pleasure in frightening me; first
-you told me you were a shopman, now a prisoner. Dick,
-why do you <i>always</i> make your own case out worse than
-it really is? Tell me, what was the last quarrel with your
-father about?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Debts.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;And, Dick&mdash;you know you used to&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I know I used to drink, but I don&#39;t drink now.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page189" id="page189"></a>[pg&nbsp;189]</span>
-They were silent for a while, then he began to speak
-and tell her the story of his life as a remittance man, and
-he did not spare black in the composition of his picture.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She listened at first interested and amused by the
-thought of Dick tied by the leg in Sydney, hobbled, so
-to speak, and made to behave.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then her amusement gave way to compassion. She
-saw him wandering in the Domain, by the sea-shore, in
-the streets, a lonely figure, a man with no interest in life,
-an exile banned by society.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She thought of all the men she knew and the number
-of them who were just as wicked and foolish as Dick
-had ever been, yet who by keeping on the right side of
-their bank balance retained their social position and the
-respect of all men.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And thinking of all this the heart in her was moved.
-A most dangerous condition just now, for Jane, Bessemer
-steel in her everyday laughing mood, became wax
-when her compassion was aroused.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Why didn&#39;t you write and tell me?&quot; said she. &quot;I&#39;d
-have gone and seen your father. Oh, it was wicked to
-send you off like that, away from every one. <i>How</i> could
-a father treat his child so!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They were silent again for a moment.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Poor Dick!&quot; said Jane suddenly, and she took his
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page190" id="page190"></a>[pg&nbsp;190]</span>
-hand in both hers and stroked it. A little shiver went
-through him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then, all at once, she felt an arm around her waist
-and his breath upon her cheek, and she did not try to
-take her hand from his or struggle, nor, after the first
-second of troubled alarm, did she feel the wish to
-struggle.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had ceased for the moment to be Jane du Telle,
-a married woman, a person with a stainless reputation.
-All these facts were swept away by nature, just as shrubs
-and fir trees are swept away by the rush of the avalanche.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A great faintness came over her. She clung to him,
-and sinking backwards, fell upon the matting; his arms
-were around her, his breath on her cheek, her lips were
-returning his kisses, yet all the time her lips were murmuring:
-&quot;Don&#39;t&mdash;don&#39;t&mdash;don&#39;t!&quot;</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p class="indent">At this supreme moment came a sound strangely alien
-to the situation&mdash;the jingling of tea-cups no less&mdash;and
-through the wall, or at least the opening of a panel,
-entered Pine-breeze, followed by Cherry-blossom, with
-the luncheon.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Dick!&quot; she cried, sitting up with her cheeks raging
-red, &quot;tell them to go away.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page191" id="page191"></a>[pg&nbsp;191]</span>
-But Dick was not heeding her. He was sitting up
-with his hands to the side of his head, and an expression
-on his face that made her almost forget her own position
-before the Mousm&egrave;s.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Do you hear it?&quot; said he.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;That noise, my God, that noise.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A tiny cage was hanging from a hook on the wall. In
-it was a thing much beloved by Campanula&mdash;an insect
-like a grasshopper that sang a buzzing and tremulous
-sort of song. The mushi was a creature that only sang
-by night as a rule, but some spirit had moved its poetic
-soul, for it was singing now.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It&#39;s that thing in the cage,&quot; said Jane, pointing to
-it tremulously, thankful for any excuse to escape the
-glances of the Mousm&egrave;s.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He looked up, sprang to his feet, went to the cage,
-and tore it from its hook.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Mousm&egrave;s screamed out, for from his furious manner
-and the expression of his face they felt he was about
-to dash cage and mushi on the matting, and trample
-them underfoot.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And he was, for one horrible moment. Then something
-in him prevailed&mdash;the something that had made
-him pick the Lost One up and kiss her, and carry her all
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page192" id="page192"></a>[pg&nbsp;192]</span>
-the way to Nikko; the spirit of good that had made him
-always not so bad as he might have been.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He rehung the little cage on the hook, and the thing
-in it became dumb; the sound in his head that troubled
-him had died away, and he returned to where Jane was
-sitting, and resumed his position on the cushions near
-her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he told the Mousm&egrave;s to leave what they
-had brought on the floor, and to go away till he called
-them.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh,&quot; said Jane, when they were alone again, &quot;to
-think they should have seen me like that. Oh, <i>Dick</i>!
-How could we&mdash;how could I&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;<i>They</i> don&#39;t matter,&quot; said he gloomily.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh, don&#39;t <i>talk</i> to me!&quot; She wrung her hands.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;For goodness sake,&quot; said Leslie, &quot;don&#39;t make mountains
-out of molehills. They saw me kiss you, well, what
-of that? and they don&#39;t talk English&mdash;at least, English
-that any one can understand.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;But like that on the floor,&quot; murmured Jane, comforted
-somewhat by the last statement.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, what of that? We are in Japan, where people
-live on the floor. I admit if a servant in England came in
-and saw&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;<i>Don&#39;t!</i>&quot; screamed she; &quot;don&#39;t speak about it again.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page193" id="page193"></a>[pg&nbsp;193]</span>
-It was a moment of weakness; let us forget forget it.
-I mean, let us <i>remember</i> it as a warning.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Do you feel like eating luncheon?&quot; he asked, looking
-at the pathetic little dishes and tea-cups, each on its
-sea-green mat.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;No; I feel like nothing. I only want to go and bury
-myself.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He poured her out some tea and took some himself.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;You frightened me,&quot; she said in a tremulous voice
-after they had sat for a moment in silence. &quot;I thought
-you were going to do something dreadful.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;When?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;When you took that cage down with the buzzing
-thing in it that annoyed you&mdash;poor atom!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It didn&#39;t annoy me; that was not the sound I heard.
-It was the sound I heard in the dream I told you of&mdash;that
-devil&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A figure stood in the doorway: it was Campanula returned.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page194" id="page194"></a>[pg&nbsp;194]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XXI</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">M&#39;GOURLEY&#39;S LOVE AFFAIR</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac had gone down to the office that morning in a
-temper.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The staff consisted of himself and Ah Hop Sing, the
-Chinese office boy. He could not quarrel with himself,
-so he quarreled with Ah Hop Sing, using a rattan cane
-to enforce the argument, till Ah Hop Sing hopped and
-sang in a fashion that justified his title.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then Mac wrote business letters and whilst he wrote,
-the thoughts of this dusty and unlovable-looking Scot
-went far astray on pleasant and picturesque roads, under
-blue skies, by brakes all gay with the crimson japonica
-flowers and the glorious beauty of the red camellias, and
-beneath the solemn darkness of the cryptomeria woods
-of Nikko.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">That is to say, they would stray to these places, and
-then he would recall them to indite letters of advice to
-Maconochie of Glasgow, a letter of abuse to Mr. Oyama&mdash;a
-gentleman who never fulfilled his contracts when
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page195" id="page195"></a>[pg&nbsp;195]</span>
-they threatened loss, sheltering his business self behind
-the ample kimono of the Tokyo guild&mdash;and letters to
-divers other people in trade.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And still his thoughts would stray whilst he gummed
-and stamped the envelopes, and they would be buying
-dolls now at booths in Jinrikisha Street, or helping to
-fly kites at the House of the Clouds.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They would stand watching a small person playing
-kitsune-ken with another person of her own age; and the
-same small person laboring up the Hill to the House of
-the Clouds, burdened with a bundle of books, and
-sheltered beneath a many-ribbed crimson umbrella.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then they would glance at the same person, bigger
-grown, and suddenly become beautiful; then they would
-heave their shoulders and sigh, and all come back to help
-in the addressing of a letter to M&#39;Clintock of Osaka, or
-some other magnate of the Jap Rubbish Trade.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac was in love, as I have before indicated: in love
-with three people. A tiny dot in a blue kimono and stiff
-sash; a person somewhat similarly dressed, whom he had
-sometimes helped of evenings with her lessons, or watched
-as she pricked her fingers over needlework; and a
-Mousm&egrave; as pretty as seven.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had been in love for years without knowing it; a
-flower had been growing in this dusty soil, where one
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page196" id="page196"></a>[pg&nbsp;196]</span>
-could not fancy any green thing finding nutriment,
-unless, perhaps, a weed. A white flower, pure and without
-stain.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Nothing could be more ideal than this love, nothing
-with legs and arms attached to it could be more un-ideal
-than Mac. And the strange thing was that this pure
-blossom of the soul did not improve the soul it grew from
-a bit, at least as far as human eye could see, for the man
-of the Great Tung Jade and the Lessar papers incidents
-was, morally, just the same&mdash;worse, if anything&mdash;as
-the wailing clients of Danjuro could testify.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When Campanula was alone with Leslie in these later
-days, she wore a grave and thoughtful air. Watching
-her, one could perceive that he alone possessed her mind;
-all the quaint and charming ways of her childhood, all
-things frivolous and light, she seemed to have dropped
-and left behind her with her toys.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When Campanula was quite alone with M&#39;Gourley, a
-subtle change came over her. The child came out and
-played.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Though Leslie had adopted her as a daughter, she
-had by no means adopted him as a father.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Tod M&#39;Gourley was her adoptive father, or, at least,
-she treated him as such. He acted also as uncle, aunt,
-grandmother, brother and general playmate all combined;
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page197" id="page197"></a>[pg&nbsp;197]</span>
-and any half-holiday during the last few years,
-you might have seen Campanula and her family strolling
-along Jinrikisha Street, or on the Bund: the family
-in an old top hat, black broadcloth suit, and bearing a
-gamp umbrella in its hard fist.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They would stray together through the wonders of
-the town, Mac and she, and pause and gaze in at shops
-like two children, buy sweets and eat them unashamed
-and openly. Stop to look at performing monkeys, or
-listen to street ballad-singers, or criticize passing funerals.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had never seen so much of life round town as
-Campanula showed him, clapping beside him in her little
-clogs when the streets were damp, or gliding beside him
-sandal-shod in the warm, dry days of spring.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Where Campanula was concerned, this dour and dusty
-Scot had all the delicate and instinctive feelings of a
-woman; he had noticed &quot;fine&quot; the change that had come
-over her of late, and the change in her manner towards
-Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The thing pleased him, yet it made him sigh&mdash;and
-frown, when he called to mind &quot;that wumman,&quot; the
-mental label he had attached to Jane du Telle.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When he had finished business he went to Danjuro&#39;s
-shop, where he had an appointment, as we have seen,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page198" id="page198"></a>[pg&nbsp;198]</span>
-with an Englishman. The Englishman having been duly
-plundered, Mac looked at his watch, found it was nearly
-twelve, and was struck by a bright idea.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He would go to the House of the Clouds, fetch
-Campanula out, and have luncheon with her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Ten minutes later found him on the veranda.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula had just returned, having left O Toku
-San.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M&#39;Gourley sat down on the veranda, and Campanula
-sat down beside him on a little fur rug made from the
-skin of an Ounce, or some such small animal. She looked
-sad and depressed, and her eyes wandered about the landscape
-garden as if questioning its hills, its streams, its
-old, old forests.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Campanula,&quot; said Mac, taking her little hand
-between his great rough, red paws, &quot;what ails you,
-child? You look sad and fashed, what&#39;s been worrying
-you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I have been to see O Toku San,&quot; replied Campanula,
-speaking in Japanese. &quot;She is dying. Her heart is
-dead,&quot; said Campanula, putting her other little hand
-over her own heart. &quot;I am&mdash;oh, so sad! for to-day the
-thought of death has come to me, a thought that I never
-knew before.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Child, child,&quot; said M&#39;Gourley, &quot;dinna speak like
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page199" id="page199"></a>[pg&nbsp;199]</span>
-that. We must all die soon or later&mdash;ay, ay, we must all
-die, sure enough.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;But not so sadly as she,&quot; replied Campanula with
-a little sob.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M&#39;Gourley looked at her; she was in tears.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He drew her close to him just as a mother might have
-done, and held her to him whilst she rested her head
-against his old coat, and sobbed and wept like a little
-child, gazing at the landscape garden through the veil
-of her tears.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He rocked her gently to soothe her, but said nothing,
-holding her just as he had held her that day in the
-gardens of Dai Nichi Do, as if to protect her against
-Death, as he had that day protected her against the
-vision of the terrible Akudogi.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Her sobs slowly ceased, but still she kept her cheek
-rested against his coat.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What is Death?&quot; she suddenly asked. The question
-was quite beyond M&#39;Gourley.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Dinna ask me,&quot; he said. &quot;It&#39;s what we all must
-come to some day.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;And will O Toku San see him she loved when she
-goes&mdash;there?&quot; continued she, as if unheeding his reply.
-&quot;Perhaps&quot;&mdash;after a long pause&mdash;&quot;he will know her
-love for him when he too is there, and make her happy.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page200" id="page200"></a>[pg&nbsp;200]</span>
-&quot;Mayhap,&quot; said M&#39;Gourley, who did not know the
-facts of the case, or perhaps he would not have taken so
-cheerful a view of O Toku San&#39;s lover&#39;s future state.
-&quot;Mayhap.&quot; He looked down at her little face. Her
-eyes were dry, but a tear was still wet on her cheek. He
-took out his handkerchief and dried it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula smiled faintly, pressed her cheek ever so
-slightly against his arm as if in thanks, and drew away
-from him, resuming her position on the little rug.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M&#39;Gourley took out his pipe, lit it, and began to
-smoke.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Now,&quot; said he, &quot;just put on those sandal shoes of
-yours again, for I am going to take you out with me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Where?&quot; asked Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;No matter where,&quot; replied Mac, rising from the
-veranda. &quot;A nice place where you and I&#39;ll go&mdash;you
-and I together, as we did along the Nikko road, only not
-on my shoulder. Na, na! you&#39;re ower big for that. Do
-you remember the sugar-candy dragon?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ah! the Hon. Dragon!&quot; replied she in the vernacular,
-as she bent to pass the sandal-strap past the great
-toe of her white tabi. &quot;He is upstairs with&mdash;other
-things, but the Hon. Dragon is very old now.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then she took her umbrella and opened it, and
-M&#39;Gourley and she passed down the path to the gate.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page201" id="page201"></a>[pg&nbsp;201]</span>
-He held the gate open for her, and she passed through
-with a murmured word of thanks, and then she led the
-way down hill under the perfumed beauty of the lilac
-boughs.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">About half-way down, Campanula stepped aside as if
-to let some one pass. M&#39;Gourley, close on her heels, and
-in a reverie, did the same thing unconsciously. If someone
-had passed, that someone must have effaced himself
-amidst the lilac trees on the left of the path.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Poor blind man!&quot; said Campanula, looking back
-up the path.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Whoat?&quot; cried Mac. &quot;Whoat did y&#39; say?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Blind man,&quot; replied Campanula; &quot;he who came last
-night&mdash;you remember!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M&#39;Gourley took off his old top hat, and drew his coat
-sleeve across his forehead. Beads of sweat had sprung
-there all of a sudden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He stood for a second or two looking at Campanula,
-and then for a second or two looking up the path,
-pied with sunshine and shadow, the pretty path that
-for him had suddenly been made horrible. There
-was nothing to be seen, nothing but the sunshine and
-shadow.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;My eyes are growing auld,&quot; he said at length. &quot;Do
-you see him still, Campanula?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page202" id="page202"></a>[pg&nbsp;202]</span>
-She had turned away to look at a fern that was growing
-on the bank.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I do not see him now,&quot; she replied. &quot;He has gone
-through the gate.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Are you sure,&quot; said Mac, speaking in a subdued
-voice, &quot;that he was the same man that came last
-night?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula was quite sure.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Wait for me,&quot; said Mac, &quot;and I&#39;ll run up and tell
-them to give him some food.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He came hurriedly back up the path, very much
-against his will.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There was nobody in front of the house, he went
-round to the kitchen. The Mousm&egrave;s were there, preparing
-luncheon&mdash;at least, preparing to prepare it in a
-leisurely way.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Had they seen anyone about the house, a blind
-man?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">No, they had seen nobody, only the poulterer, who had
-been with eggs an hour ago.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Had they seen a blind man last night&mdash;had a blind
-man called round at the kitchen to ask for food?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">No; nobody had been for food to the kitchen last
-night, least of all a blind man.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then Mac hurried off, and the Mousm&egrave;s dropped
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page203" id="page203"></a>[pg&nbsp;203]</span>
-everything to discuss the meaning of all these questions
-asked by the Learned One; and Pine-breeze embarked on
-a story about two blind men and a frog, and the fox-faced
-representative of the rice god, a story that put
-the luncheon back half an hour.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula was plucking flowers when Mac returned.
-Just three or four with a delicate fern frond, such a
-charming little bouquet, a veritable work of art made in
-a moment with unerring taste and a few turns of her
-deft fingers. She made Mac bend, and fixed the tiny
-bouquet in his coat-lapel.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then they pursued their way, Mac vastly perturbed
-in his mind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There was just now living in the pleasant city of
-Nagasaki an inn-keeper of the name of Yamagata, who
-owned a tea house named &quot;The Full-blown Peony
-Flower.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mr. Yamagata was a Progressive. He believed that a
-tea house where a real English luncheon or dinner could
-be obtained would, judging from his compatriots&#39; passion
-for things European, be a success.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And it was, till half Jinrikisha Street nearly died of
-indigestion.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">His tea house was a tiny affair situated up an entry
-near Danjuro&#39;s shop, and surrounded by a little courtyard,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page204" id="page204"></a>[pg&nbsp;204]</span>
-wherein grew dyspeptic-looking plum trees in pale
-amber-colored pots.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Danjuro, who was a friend of Yamagata&#39;s, had been
-chanting the praises of the place so long, that Mac had
-become obsessed by the idea of it; and casting about for
-somewhere new to take Campanula, the idea had turned
-up like a horrible sort of trump card.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The tea house was on its last legs, and practically deserted,
-so they had the place to themselves; and having
-ordered the meal they sat on the matting of a desolate
-room and waited for it to come.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Campanula,&quot; said Mac, &quot;you have never seen that
-blind man before?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She shook her head.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Never; nor one so ugly as he.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Campanula,&quot; said Mac earnestly, &quot;if you see him
-again dinna speak with him; he&#39;s an ill man and bodes
-no good.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Oh, indeed, she did not wish to speak with him, but he
-was so old and poor and ugly she could not but feel sorrow
-for him; and he said last night that he had come
-such a long way off, and must soon return.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M&#39;Gourley shuddered.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ay,&quot; said he to himself, &quot;a dom long way off;&quot;
-then to Campanula: &quot;Said he anything else?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page205" id="page205"></a>[pg&nbsp;205]</span>
-&quot;No,&quot; replied Campanula, &quot;for I told him to go to
-the back entrance, and he went.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At this moment the soup was brought in by three
-somewhat faded-looking Mousm&egrave;s, each armed with a
-plate, a real English soup plate.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The soup was thin and not exuberantly hot, but it
-seemed vastly to amuse Campanula when it was put before
-her. &quot;A,&quot; said she, pointing with her spoon-tip to
-something at the bottom of the plate, &quot;B&mdash;C&quot;&mdash;she
-was pointing to the little Italian paste letters floating, or
-rather sunk, in the mixture. &quot;D&mdash;and look&mdash;a cow!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac looked over to admire.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ay, ay, it&#39;s a coo, right enough, an&#39; there&#39;s a cock
-and hen; but eat it up before it gets cold.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula ate her alphabet, and the next course appeared.
-A boot sole labeled a beef-steak, which vanished,
-uneaten, and was replaced by what seemed to be an old
-stone cannon-ball, such as they used to fire out of Mons
-Meg. The O.S.C.B. was labeled a pudding.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was the caricature of an ordinary English middle-class
-country luncheon.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But it was an amazingly clever caricature: a perfect
-work of art.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">After luncheon, M&#39;Gourley returned to business, and
-Campanula to the House of the Clouds.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page206" id="page206"></a>[pg&nbsp;206]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XXII</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">THE COMPLETE GEOGRAPHER</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On the way, she stopped at the shop of Mr. Initogo
-to pay a visit to her friend Kiku.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula in her school-days had shown both qualities
-and defects of mind. At languages, at least in learning
-the English language, she was a success; a very
-moderate success where mathematics were concerned,
-though she knew enough to do long division, and to keep
-household accounts. They teach a lot of useful things at
-the mission schools&mdash;needlework, and so forth, and in
-some of these branches Campanula shone, but at geography
-she was a dismal failure. She had been always
-lacking in the power of location. Witness her first statements
-as to the whereabouts of the house with the plum
-tree in front of it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The long sea voyage from Tokyo, or rather from
-Yokohama, had brought into her mind the impression
-that she had traveled to the end of things, yet they told
-her there were things beyond.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page207" id="page207"></a>[pg&nbsp;207]</span>
-They showed her maps and globes. The maps were
-flat, and the globes were round, yet they said they were
-the same thing, or were pictures of the same thing. How
-a flat thing could be round or the converse, she could not
-say, but Howard San, the missionary, said they were.
-Was it for her to contradict him? So, instead of setting
-up her own wits against Howard San, and questioning
-him, she accepted his words just as you or I accept the
-words of mathematicians or physiologists concerning
-subjects on which we are ignorant. And thus on geography
-she got hopelessly muddled, and remained so.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This morning she was lamenting her want of geography,
-and casting about for some friend learned in the
-art. Of course she might have gone to Howard San,
-but she would have to wait till school was over, and, besides
-she felt a certain diffidence in approaching him on
-the subject, so she turned to the shop of Mr. Initogo.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mr. Initogo was sitting on his heels on the floor of
-his shop, engaged in the gentle art of making tea; it
-was one of his fads that he always made his own tea with
-his own hands. Beside him stood an hibachi, on which
-a kettle was coming to the boil; before him, a tea-cup
-without a handle on a tray, and a microscopic tea-pot.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He warmed the tea-cup with a few drops of hot water;
-then, from a cylindrical tea-canister, with a thing like
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page208" id="page208"></a>[pg&nbsp;208]</span>
-a snuff-scoop, he took a small quantity of green tea&mdash;tea
-of the color that an old black coat turns after years
-of sun and rain&mdash;this he popped into the tea-pot.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the honorable hot water being ready, he poured
-it into a porcelain dish to let it cool slightly, which it
-did, becoming converted during the act into the honorable
-old hot water.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The honorable old hot water being now ready, he
-poured it into the tea-pot, popped on the lid, looked up,
-and saw Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">So immersed in his darling employment had he been,
-that he had not observed her entrance.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She wished to see Kiku? She was upstairs; this with
-a thousand apologies for his own blindness, and comparisons
-of himself with worms and other sightless
-things.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula knew the way up; she had been up often
-enough before, and up she went.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Kiku San, since we hinted at her as a playmate of
-Campanula, had grown. The tumbling tot that Leslie
-had once caught by the &quot;scruff&quot; of her obi and held
-out at arm&#39;s length wriggling, for the amusement of
-M&#39;Gourley, had become a Mousm&egrave; with a face at once
-heavy and flighty-looking; a broad face, pretty enough,
-but with a maddeningly irresponsible expression.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page209" id="page209"></a>[pg&nbsp;209]</span>
-Pine-breeze was bad enough in the irresponsible line,
-but she could have learnt much from Kiku.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She was the dunce, or, rather, had been the dunce at
-the mission school; this is not saying very much against
-her, for Japanese girls are amazingly quick in the &quot;uptake,&quot;
-learning coming to them as easily as ignorance
-to English girls; all the same she had been the dunce.
-She had never been able to conquer the letter &quot;l&quot; in
-English; and would say &quot;raidy&quot; for &quot;lady;&quot; yet she
-had a memory of sorts, blocks of facts swam in the ocean
-of her unintelligence like those houses that float about
-after an inundation of the Mississippi.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But the place left vacant in her skull by want of
-learning was by no means devoid of a tenant; therein
-dwelt a colossal impudence, a supreme self-assurance
-that sheltered and helped to hide the nakedness
-of her mind, and even obtained for her, amongst her
-girl friends, a sort of fungoid reputation for cleverness.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">For when Kiku San said a thing, she said it with such
-assurance that it seemed true&mdash;the assurance of the absolutely
-untrustworthy intellect, which of all assurances
-is the greatest.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She was sitting now on her heels in a bare room on the
-upper floor, a tobacco-mono at her side, and in her hands
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page210" id="page210"></a>[pg&nbsp;210]</span>
-a round flat box with a glass lid. She was playing at
-Pigs-in-Clover.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The two Mousm&egrave;s bowed to one another with great
-ceremony, enquiring after each other&#39;s honorific health,
-and then Campanula came to rest upon the matting opposite
-to her friend.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They formed a pretty picture in the bare room with its
-chess-board matting, against the bare walls, whose only
-ornament was a kakemono representing Fuji San crested
-with snow.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Kiku was soon to be married&mdash;married to a government
-clerk to whom she had been engaged nearly since
-birth; and she entertained Campanula with long and
-uninteresting descriptions of her husband-to-be, his
-mother, his father, his grandfather, who lived at Nagoya,
-his brothers and sisters, how old they were and all about them.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Kiku was a bore, a female bore of the first water, and
-in this respect she could have given any old member
-of the Rag or Carlton points, and beaten him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She told all these things looking up from under her
-thick eyelids, and with a half-smile, and Campanula listened,
-half mesmerized, wholly weary, but with all her
-courteous soul awake to do honor to the tale.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page211" id="page211"></a>[pg&nbsp;211]</span>
-At last an hiatus occurred of which Campanula took
-advantage to ask the question in her mind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Did Kiku, so learned on all subjects, know of any
-land where the snow lay for half the year?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Oh, certainly Kiku did, and she told about it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Describing her future husband and his relations she
-had been vague and uninteresting, lacking, as she did,
-the gifts of perception and narration. But now, plunging
-into the empire of pure lies, she spoke with an assurance
-that made her words sound like gospel.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Such a country existed; as a matter of fact, she had
-it all in a book somewhere, but she did not need the
-book, as she never forgot anything. It lay in the sea beyond
-Nankin two hundred and sixty-seven ri beyond, and
-the snow lay there half a year, sometimes more.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Is it a country where blue flowers grow, and roses&mdash;sometimes?&quot;
-said Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Just so, sometimes;&quot; and Kiku, searching in the
-capacious bag of her ignorance, began to produce old
-broken-up facts that had been lying there like rubbish
-in the basket of a chiffonier.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The sea all round that place was frozen most of the
-year, and the sun shone once a month or so.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then she painted a graphic picture of this desolate
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page212" id="page212"></a>[pg&nbsp;212]</span>
-land which she declared to be divided into four parts,
-Unster, Munster, Rinster and Comit; and Campanula
-sat listening and receiving it all as truth.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Liars, somehow, are always sure of an audience; you
-and I, who speak the truth, the whole truth, and nothing
-but the truth, languish in conversation and are not
-heard, whilst your mendacity-monger holds the floor and
-absorbs the interest.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">So Kiku San went on spinning her tale, and Campanula
-San sat opposite to her and listened, shivering
-at the dismal pictures being raised before her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then, all at once, from below came the irate voice of
-Mr. Initogo calling Kiku the &quot;Heedless One.&quot; If he
-could have used a stronger expression he would have used
-it, for the dinner ought to be cooking at this moment,
-and the fish and seaweed had not arrived. The Heedless
-One had been, as a matter of fact, playing at Pigs-in-Clover
-all the morning instead of marketing.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Complete Geographer rose to her feet in a hurry,
-for filial obedience resided in her breast, not so much
-as a virtue, but rather as a sort of mainspring put in
-by nature&mdash;or rather, I should say, heredity.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They went out together, and Kiku bought the fish
-and the seaweed and a few other important items, and
-then they parted, Kiku returned home laden with marketings,
-and Campanula to the House of the Clouds.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page213" id="page213"></a>[pg&nbsp;213]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XXIII</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">THE STRUGGLE</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie walked back to the hotel that day with Jane.
-When he left her he was vastly troubled in his
-mind. Troubled about Jane, troubled about Campanula,
-troubled about himself, and troubled about a vast, vague,
-tragic something: a shadow stealing up from his past
-and already tingeing his future with the twilight that
-comes before eclipse.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">What demon had called Jane up from the past?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Unconsciously during the last five years he had been
-altering for the better. The friendliness and kindness
-of Japan, the frank friendliness of M&#39;Gourley, that most
-unconscionable Scot, the beauty of the flowers and seasons,
-and Campanula&mdash;above all, Campanula&mdash;these
-things had worked upon him with slow but sure effect.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Slowly, he had learnt the great, great secret that happiness
-is to be found, not in grand palaces, not in wealth,
-not in success, but amongst the lowly and little things
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page214" id="page214"></a>[pg&nbsp;214]</span>
-of life, the things that no man can appreciate who has
-not a free and untroubled conscience.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The new book, the pipe of tobacco smoked beneath
-the cherry trees of a morning, the home-coming of Campanula
-from school of an evening laden with books and
-perplexities, the rubber of whist with Mr. Initogo, the
-quaint, funny things that are always happening in a
-Japanese household&mdash;these and a thousand other trifles
-had made up the sum of his life, and the addition of
-them made happiness.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And Campanula&mdash;he little knew how much she had entered
-into his being&mdash;what a multitude of impalpable
-threads bound her to him, threads that had been spinning
-from the very first day, when he found her lost
-amidst the crimson azaleas!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had eaten the lotus for nearly five years; he had
-been preparing a future of happiness and peace, and
-who knows what boundless possibilities of love?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Suddenly, Satan had appeared before him with the
-command, &quot;Get up and fight, fight me for this future
-you have been preparing for yourself; fight me for the
-beauty of it, the happiness you will have in it, the happiness
-you will make for others in it; get it if you can, for
-my weapon is Lust.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">That night, when the moon, now waxing stronger,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page215" id="page215"></a>[pg&nbsp;215]</span>
-laid her patient square of pure white light on the floor
-of his room, the battle began in earnest.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had determined on going to Arita on the morrow
-to get away for a while from the woman against whom
-he felt fate was driving him with ruinous intent.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Now, as he lay alone, with the powers of good and
-evil on either side of him, he reviewed his position clearly
-for the first time.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The cold, calculating, sneaking, pickpocket form of
-adultery, which is the canker at the heart of English
-society&mdash;to put it in plain English, the bestial use of
-another man&#39;s wife behind his back&mdash;was a form of
-crime as unthinkable to Leslie as the crime of cheating
-at cards, or forging a check.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">To obtain the woman he wanted, there was only one
-way. The open way.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">That meant the smashing up of everything around
-him. He must leave Japan, leave Campanula, for, deep
-in his heart, something told him that Campanula could
-have no place in that new life. It meant the social ruin
-of Jane du Telle.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Here, alone, away from the object of his passion, all
-this was very clear.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then that same old Scotch ancester, with the long
-upper lip, and the crude common sense, and the rigid
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page216" id="page216"></a>[pg&nbsp;216]</span>
-belief in God and the law, came out of his cell and spoke
-to this effect. There is no excuse before God or man for
-adultery. Love, the child of God, has no part therein,
-but Lust, the child of the devil, and the end of Lust is
-Hell.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">All this, with the thoughts that went before it, was
-edifying and made for good, and the devil said nothing,
-for the devil, like the great Boyg, has a method with
-some natures. He does not strike, but lets the victim
-do the striking, hedging him gently, gently, letting him
-hit out widely till he is exhausted, or beats himself to
-death as the Blind One beat himself against the trees.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Early in the morning Leslie rose, white and haggard,
-and dressed, and went off to the station without waiting
-for breakfast.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Tell Campanula San I am going to Arita on business,
-but will be back to-night. Tell her I am going
-alone,&quot; he said to Pine-breeze.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Kashko marimashta,&quot; murmured Pine-breeze, in a
-voice of devotion, and he departed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was going to Arita to get beyond the reach of
-Jane, and lo! when he got into the railway carriage, she
-was there&mdash;not in the flesh, but in the spirit. And when
-he alighted at Arita, she was on the platform, and in the
-street she walked at his side.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page217" id="page217"></a>[pg&nbsp;217]</span>
-The tones of her voice thrilled him, and he smelt the
-perfume of her hair, he felt the curve of her waist,
-and his lips felt the satin of her throat, but the physical
-desire was small compared with the terrible sentiment
-that was born of it, the heart-breaking longing inspired
-by her idealized image.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Passion, when it rises to this dimension in the mind
-of a man, has beautiful attributes as well as vile, it
-holds in its hands pictures of perfect innocence, besides
-the others.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The devil takes care of that!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He saw Jane not only as she was, but as she had been,
-fair, and fresh, and innocent, against the background of
-the beeches round Glenbruach, and the sea lochs, and
-the purple hills.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">What he did with his body that day in Arita, or where
-he wandered, he could never tell, for his mind was fighting
-a battle so fierce that all intelligent perception of
-outward things was blurred.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At the end of it he found himself in a tea house sitting
-before some food which he had apparently ordered, and
-the battle was won. So he told himself.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As a matter of fact, he was worn out. Passion was
-exhausted, fighting against fate, attempting to escape
-from the pursuing devils, beating himself against the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page218" id="page218"></a>[pg&nbsp;218]</span>
-trees, he had fallen beneath them, telling himself that
-the battle was won, wondering at himself that he ever
-could have even dreamed of the ruinous course of action
-which lust had urged him to.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But the trees remained steadfast and unharmed, waiting
-only for the renewal of the madman&#39;s strength and
-the inevitable end.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was dark when he reached the Nagasaki station. He
-picked a riksha from a row of them standing outside
-with hoods up, for it had been raining slightly, and
-looking absurdly like a row of tiny, unhorsed hansom
-cabs, and told the man to take him to the House of the
-Clouds.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He came up the hill-path, and as he came the wind,
-blowing against him, brought a perfume with it, the
-perfume of rain-wet azaleas. During the day and the
-previous night dozens of blossoms had broken forth,
-filling the garden with their fragrance and beauty;
-dozens more would be born ere the morrow under
-the light of the silvery moon now gliding up
-over the hill-tops behind a tracery of flying, fleecy
-clouds.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As he approached the house, he saw through the open
-panel space the silhouettes of Pine-breeze and Cherry-blossom.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page219" id="page219"></a>[pg&nbsp;219]</span>
-They were sitting opposite to each other on their heels
-upon the lamplit matting, and seemed at first to be engaged
-in the game of kitsune-ken, but almost instantly
-he perceived that they were playing at no game, but
-were engaged in conversation. Alarmed conversation, to
-judge by the movements of their hands, now up-flung,
-now flung out sideways. Sweetbriar San was promenading
-the matting with tail fluffed out, now rubbing against
-Pine-breeze, now against Cherry-blossom, attempting apparently
-to join in the conversation, and seeming to
-share in the excitement.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Something had happened of a tragic nature&mdash;but
-what? Two steps brought him on to the veranda two
-more into the house with his boots on, despite the clause
-in the lease.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Mousm&egrave;s gave two little shrieks, wheeled round,
-and kow-towed before the August One.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What is the matter?&quot; he asked. &quot;Has anything
-happened? Is Campanula San safe?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula San was quite safe.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then why all this? What had they been conversing
-about with so many exclamations?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Confused replies.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Go,&quot; he said, &quot;and bring me some tea, and ask
-Lotus-bud to come hither.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page220" id="page220"></a>[pg&nbsp;220]</span>
-In a few moments Lotus-bud, wearing a very white
-face, appeared, and kow-towed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He questioned her. At first her answers were vague,
-and then it all came out.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Things had happened. Campanula San had gone into
-the town that day, and had met he whose head was like
-the rising sun (George du Telle in plain prose); and he
-with the sun-bright head had walked with her, and had
-spoken dishonorable words. Oh, shame!&mdash;he had offered
-her gold.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;God!&quot; said Leslie, staring at the bent figure on the
-matting before him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He remained speechless for a moment, then he took
-out his watch and looked at it: it was eleven o&#39;clock.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He turned furiously and strode out of the room: on
-the veranda he stopped like a horse suddenly reined in.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane&#39;s image had appeared before him, turning him
-back.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Suppose he were to go to the hotel now and drag
-George du Telle out and beat him within an inch of his
-life, as was his intention a moment ago?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The idea of Jane in the midst of that scene brought
-his fury down from boiling point.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He returned to the room, where Lotus-bud was still
-on her knees, with her hands clasped.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page221" id="page221"></a>[pg&nbsp;221]</span>
-Where was Campanula San now?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In bed and asleep. She had returned, it seems, greatly
-troubled at noon, and had confided her trouble to Lotus-bud,
-making her promise to tell no one&mdash;Leslie San especially&mdash;and
-Lotus-bud had promised&mdash;with the result
-we have already seen.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">For a moment he thought of waking Campanula, but
-he dismissed the thought. The thing had occurred and
-was irremediable, the question now remained, what was
-he to do about George du Telle.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He went up to bed. In times past he could have obtained
-his remedy.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Where lay his remedy now? The law could do nothing;
-there remained only physical force.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A wheezy pug dog protected by a woman&#39;s skirts, that
-is what George du Telle was. Leslie knew that if once
-he could catch the brute by the scruff of the neck, the
-only struggle would be with himself as to the limits of
-chastisement to be inflicted.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">If he could only get him away from Jane up a back
-street anywhere, just for five minutes! The thing was
-to be done. With the help of the astute M&#39;Gourley he
-felt it was to be done, and would be done on the morrow.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He got up and went to a rack on the wall where he
-kept his sticks, and took down a whangee cane half an
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page222" id="page222"></a>[pg&nbsp;222]</span>
-inch thick, a most efficient instrument for the chastisement
-of a brute. He made it sing through the air, then
-he put it on the rack again and returned to bed, and
-slept soundly, far more soundly than he had slept the
-night before.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page223" id="page223"></a>[pg&nbsp;223]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XXIV</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">GEORGE DU TELLE</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was awakened by voices. Sunlight was streaming
-into the room, the sparrows were bickering round
-the trees, and from below came the voice of Pine-breeze
-crying, &quot;Irashi, condescend to enter!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then Jane&#39;s voice: &quot;I don&#39;t understand what you
-say. Stop rubbing the matting with your nose. I want
-your master.&quot; Then an octave higher, &quot;Richard!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Hullo!&quot; cried Leslie, leaning on his elbow, and
-scarcely able to credit his ears.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh, you are there! Come down at once, I must
-speak to you. Quick!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What on earth has happened?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;All sorts of things.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;ll be down in two minutes, but for goodness sake
-tell me what <i>is</i> the matter.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Can I speak without any one understanding?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh, that&#39;s all right.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page224" id="page224"></a>[pg&nbsp;224]</span>
-&quot;Well, then, George has bolted.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;George has <i>what</i>?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Gone away.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Where has he gone to?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh! come down and I&#39;ll tell you everything. Dick!
-Dick! is that a bath I hear you dragging over the floor?
-Dick, if you dare to have the impudence to keep me
-waiting whilst you take a bath, I&#39;ll&mdash;I&#39;ll come up and
-pull you out of it. Do come on!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Directly!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, don&#39;t be long,&quot; grumbled Jane; and she apparently
-took her seat on the cushions upon the matting,
-for he could hear her grumbling about the absence
-of chairs.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This was a new development of affairs. George bolted!
-It was just what one might have expected of the man,
-to insult a girl and then fly from the wrath to come.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was rather a relief, too, viewed by the light of morning.
-No man likes the task of thrashing a dog that has
-misbehaved: the thing has to be done, but it is unpleasant,
-and if the creature runs away and hides, so much the
-better. And the thrashing of a fat, wheezy pug without
-teeth or means of defense was what the punishment
-of George du Telle would amount to.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He dressed rapidly and came down to the room where
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page225" id="page225"></a>[pg&nbsp;225]</span>
-Jane was sitting on a cushion, trying to read the <i>Japan
-Mail</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh, there you are! Come and sit down. No, not
-beside me; right opposite, if you please.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Tell me all about it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh, there&#39;s not much to tell. I was in bed nearly
-all yesterday with a headache, and George went off for
-a walk in the afternoon; said he was going to call on
-<i>you</i>. I told him you had gone to Nagoya.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Arita.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It&#39;s all the same&mdash;then he went out, I don&#39;t know
-where, and that is the last I&#39;ve seen of him. At nine
-yesterday evening they brought me a note saying he had
-gone to Osaka, and to follow with our luggage.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie whistled.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What are you whistling about?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Osaka! Why, that&#39;s over three hundred miles
-away!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Where is it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;On the Inland Sea.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Where&#39;s that?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh, it runs from here up to&mdash;well, practically to
-Osaka. At least, it doesn&#39;t exactly reach from here, you
-have to go through the Straits of Tsu-shima.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, I don&#39;t care what Straits you have to go
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page226" id="page226"></a>[pg&nbsp;226]</span>
-through; he&#39;s gone to Osaka on important business the
-note said. Now, what business can have taken him there.
-What do they do at Osaka?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Make all sorts of things, from machinery to tea-pots,
-and so on.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, he can&#39;t have gone to buy machinery or tea-pots&mdash;what
-can it <i>mean</i>? He was so good, too, yesterday;
-brought me up some antipyrine, and wanted to
-fetch a doctor, and plumped up my pillows, and then
-went out and off to Osaka without a word, and how did
-he get there? He says follow by next boat to-morrow.
-I was going to ask the hotel people, but I didn&#39;t like to.
-I just told them I knew he was going, and I was going to
-follow him to-morrow.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;There&#39;s no railway to Osaka,&quot; said Leslie, &quot;for this
-bit of Japan is an island. He must have gone by a Holt
-liner; one started last evening. The Canadian Pacific
-boats don&#39;t stop at Osaka, they go right on to Yokohama.
-I suppose he means for you to follow by the Messagerie
-boat that leaves to-morrow evening.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;ll give him tea-pots,&quot; said Jane gloomily, &quot;when
-I catch him! The idea of his leaving me like that! In
-a strange country, too. I wonder <i>what</i> is the meaning
-of it all!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Perhaps he went away&mdash;because of a girl.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page227" id="page227"></a>[pg&nbsp;227]</span>
-&quot;You mean he&#39;s run away with some girl!&quot; flashed
-Jane. &quot;Why don&#39;t you say so if you mean it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Because I don&#39;t mean it. I said &#39;because of a girl,&#39;
-not &#39;with a girl.&#39;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Dick, you know something!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes, I do.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane turned pale, and he hated to see her like that, but
-he had suddenly made up his mind to tell her all.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;He met Campanula yesterday afternoon, and, not
-to put too fine a point upon it, insulted her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh, Dick!&quot; said Jane, turning, if possible, paler
-than before. She stared at him in a frightened way, then
-she recovered herself. &quot;There must be some mistake; she
-must have misunderstood him. He couldn&#39;t have done
-such a thing; however foolish he may be, he&#39;s a gentleman.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes, a gentleman in England, but not a gentleman
-in Japan. He&mdash;God damn it!&quot; blazed out Leslie suddenly,
-bringing his fist down with a bang on the matting&mdash;&quot;he
-offered her money.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I must go to him at once,&quot; said Jane, making as if
-to rise, &quot;and ask him if this thing is true.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Sit down for a while; you can&#39;t possibly get to
-Osaka to-day. Oh, it&#39;s true enough. I was in a boiling
-rage last night when I came home and heard it all. I
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page228" id="page228"></a>[pg&nbsp;228]</span>
-was going down to the hotel with a stick to have it out,
-and then I thought of you, and the disgrace and uproar
-there would be, so I just bit on the bullet and went
-to bed. Honestly, I was going to have got him somewhere
-by himself to-day, and have it out with him, but
-it seems he prefers insulting women to facing men.
-Forgive me, Jane, for all this; I feel bitter about it,
-but I hate to have to say these things to you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It was good of you to think of me last night,&quot; said
-Jane in a broken voice, gazing at the matting as she
-spoke, then looking up full in his face, &quot;very good of
-you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh, I suppose it&#39;s really nothing, after all,&quot; he said.
-&quot;Those confounded fools that write books about Japan
-have got it into English people&#39;s heads that every &#39;Jap-girl,&#39;
-as they call them, is a what&#39;s-its-name at heart.
-Let&#39;s say no more on the matter, the affair is closed.
-Have some breakfast?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;No, thanks; I&#39;m too much troubled and worried,&quot;
-said Jane, sighing and folding her hands in her lap.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh, don&#39;t trouble about it. I told you because&mdash;well,
-I thought you ought to know.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Richard,&quot; said she, looking up, &quot;if you meet George
-again&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Don&#39;t be a bit alarmed. I will do nothing to him
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page229" id="page229"></a>[pg&nbsp;229]</span>
-except to cut him. He has run away; that closes the
-affair entirely. A man can only be really angry with
-a man.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Richard,&quot; said she, now half tearfully, &quot;I&#39;m going
-to say something I want to say. Men don&#39;t understand
-women. I&#39;m fond of George. Men are always talking
-about love, and so are novels. I never loved George that
-way. I don&#39;t think I ever loved any one really in that
-way, but I have an affection for George; I suppose that
-is the best name to give it. I know he&#39;s ugly, I know
-he&#39;s a lot of things he ought not to be, yet I feel he belongs
-to me.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It&#39;s the sort of feeling one has for an&mdash;for an
-animal. I&#39;m just telling you what I feel. An animal
-may be terribly ugly, yet one may love it. George has
-been very good to me, and he has grown into my life;
-that is the only way I can express it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Do you know, Dick, when you have your face very
-close to another person&#39;s face you cannot tell what they
-are like. Well, it&#39;s just the same with marriage. After
-people have been married some time they don&#39;t see each
-other as they saw each other before; they have lost their
-identity&mdash;each is part of the other. And, Dick, I know
-George has been wicked, but ought we not to remember,
-the day before yesterday&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page230" id="page230"></a>[pg&nbsp;230]</span>
-&quot;Yes,&quot; he said; &quot;the day before yesterday I kissed
-you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It was a moment of weakness on my part,&quot; continued
-Jane. &quot;We are all very weak and wicked, but
-I have always been faithful to my husband&mdash;I should
-say, to myself. It is strange to talk like this.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;The whole affair is closed,&quot; he said. &quot;Let us wipe
-the slate clean and begin again.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Sitting opposite to her here in the morning light he
-was a very different person from the man wandering
-about Arita yesterday, pursued by her image.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The course of a great passion like his is not a high
-level line. If a man were to live through such a phase
-of existence at Italian opera heights he would be mad
-or dead in a very few days.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Its course is most like the temperature chart of a typhoid
-fever case: tremendous ups and downs, fever point
-now, a few hours later almost normal.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He clapped his hands, and Pine-breeze appeared.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Breakfast,&quot; he said. &quot;You&#39;ll stay to breakfast,&quot;
-turning to Jane. &quot;And there is something I forgot day
-before yesterday. You have come to see Japan&mdash;well,
-look here&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He went to a big lacquer cabinet where he kept his
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page231" id="page231"></a>[pg&nbsp;231]</span>
-papers, and returned with a large, square, cream-colored
-card covered with Chinese ideographs.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What is it?&quot; said Jane, turning it over.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;An invitation to a garden-party. A man named
-Kamamura is giving it to-morrow at O-Mura.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;A Japanese garden-party!&quot; said Jane, with interest
-in her voice.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes, very Japanese. He told me to bring any of
-my friends.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;But to-morrow,&quot; said Jane&mdash;&quot;I am going away to-morrow.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The words went through him like a pang.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Never mind,&quot; he said. &quot;Your boat does not start
-till evening; you will have plenty of time to get back.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;d love to go,&quot; she said; &quot;but&mdash;are you sure it&#39;s
-all right for me to go without an invitation?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Perfectly, or I would not bring you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Pine-breeze entered with a tray.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Where,&quot; enquired Leslie, &quot;is Campanula San?&quot;
-Campanula San had not risen yet; she had a headache.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page232" id="page232"></a>[pg&nbsp;232]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XXV</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">RETROSPECTION</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;ll go up and see her,&quot; said Jane, when they had
-finished breakfast. &quot;May I?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes, if you like; Pine-breeze will show you the way&mdash;but,
-Jane, say nothing to her of what occurred yesterday;
-she thinks nobody knows except one of the servants
-here.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;ll say nothing,&quot; replied Jane; &quot;but I&#39;ve got some
-antikamnia tabloids in my pocket, fortunately, and I&#39;ll
-just make her take one.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;All right,&quot; said Leslie; &quot;but for goodness sake
-don&#39;t poison her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This was another point on which Jane had not altered.
-As a girl she had been possessed by a passion for drugs,
-and would swallow anything in the way of medicine she
-came across or was given. She had always been doctoring
-rabbits and other unfortunate animals, and had once
-nearly poisoned herself by taking half a bottle of pain-killer
-for a dose. And now here she was, nearly fifteen
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page233" id="page233"></a>[pg&nbsp;233]</span>
-years after, in Japan, going upstairs to doctor Campanula,
-with just the same manner and seriousness of
-face with which long ago, medicine bottle in hand, she
-would give the order: &quot;Prize its mouth open, Dick;
-don&#39;t hurt it. Steady now, I&#39;m going to pour.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Quarter of an hour later she came down triumphant.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;She took it like a lamb. She&#39;s the dearest child!
-Now I&#39;m off. I have a hundred things to do. Will you
-walk down with me as far as the hotel?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He accompanied her to the hotel, and neither of them
-spoke much on the way.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I won&#39;t ask you in,&quot; said Jane, when they reached
-the door, &quot;because it wouldn&#39;t be proper. Now let me
-see. To-morrow is the garden-party; we might do something
-to-day, you and Campanula and I&mdash;might
-not we?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;We could run over to Mogi,&quot; he said. &quot;We can get
-rikshas, have luncheon there, and come back to tea at
-my place; and to-night there&#39;s an affair on at the O Suwa
-temple, we might go there. Shall I call for you at
-twelve or so?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes,&quot; said Jane, &quot;if you&#39;ll bring a chaperon. You
-see, now George is away I must be awfully &#39;propindicular,&#39;
-like that person in Uncle Remus&mdash;the Terrapin&mdash;wasn&#39;t
-it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page234" id="page234"></a>[pg&nbsp;234]</span>
-&quot;I&#39;ll bring Campanula&mdash;or one of the Mousm&egrave;s, at
-a pinch.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Campanula chaperoning me!&quot; said Jane with a
-laugh. &quot;Well, I don&#39;t care. It&#39;s only for the sake of
-Mrs. Grundy.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;There is no Japanese Mrs. Grundy.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;No, but there is an English one.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They parted, and Jane entered the hotel.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She went to her bedroom, got her writing-case out
-of a portmanteau, and began to write. She was writing
-a letter to George.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The first began:</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-<p class="indent">&quot;Your abominable conduct has been discovered. You
-have heaped shame on me, you have heaped shame on
-yourself&mdash;&quot;
-</p> </blockquote>
-
-<p class="indent">When she got as far as this she found that it was too
-melodramatic, somehow, and the &quot;heaped shames&quot; did
-not ring true, so she tore it up and began again:</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-<p class="indent">&quot;My cousin, Richard Leslie, sent for me this morning
-in great distress. <i>How</i> you could have acted as you did
-towards that sweet child surpasses me. Fortunately for
-yourself you have run away&mdash;&quot;
-</p> </blockquote>
-
-<p class="indent">She tore this up too, flew into a temper with herself,
-and then wrote as follows:</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page235" id="page235"></a>[pg&nbsp;235]</span></p>
-
-<blockquote>
-<p class="indent">&quot;<span class="smcap">George</span>,&mdash;I&#39;ve heard everything. Dick is furious, but
-he&#39;s not going to do anything, so just stay at Osaka till I
-come, and don&#39;t go bolting off anywhere else. And don&#39;t
-drink too much port, for if you get another attack of gout
-<i>I</i> won&#39;t nurse you.&mdash;<span class="smcap">Jane.</span></p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;<i>P.S.</i>&mdash;You ought to be ashamed of yourself.&quot;</p>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="indent">She sealed this classical epistle and addressed it. Then
-she remembered that she might just as well have left it
-unwritten, for there was no communication to be had
-with Osaka till the morrow; and if she posted it, it would
-go by the same boat as herself. So she tore it up.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then she sat down on the side of her bed and bit a
-corner of her handkerchief.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She was thinking.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">To-morrow she would never see Dick again, most
-probably, after that.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had never loved Dick, that is to say in the good
-old <i>Family Herald</i> way. Their boy and girl relationship
-had been anything but sentimental.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Recalling the past she could conjure up no tender
-pictures.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She could see herself clinging to a rod bent like a
-bow, and shouting to Dick: &quot;Now then, chucklehead,
-gaff him!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She could see herself tramping after him like a squaw
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page236" id="page236"></a>[pg&nbsp;236]</span>
-after a chief on rabbiting expeditions&mdash;dozens of pictures
-like this, but none of them sentimental. She had
-never thought of marriage till the day she received a
-letter from Dick, asking her to marry him; to which she
-replied by writing half a dozen letters refusing him,
-which letters she tore up one after the other, and then
-wrote a seventh accepting him, which she posted.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Now one of the worst evils in an accepted proposal
-of marriage is this. That directly they hear of it, the
-girl&#39;s relations, male and female, take their implements&mdash;nets,
-ferrets, and so on&mdash;and go off rabbiting in your
-past.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Dick had not much of a past as far as size goes, but
-it was well stocked with game for hunters such as these.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">So well stocked that old Mr. Deering, a retired London
-wine merchant who had taken a country seat in Scotland,
-near Glenbruach, put his foot down and forbade
-Jane to have anything more to do with her cousin: an
-order which would have driven her straight into his arms,
-had not the unfortunate Dick, hearing of the inquisition
-that had been made, come North inflamed with rage and
-whisky.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Men drank harder even in the &#39;eighties than they do
-now, and Scotland was never the home of abstinence;
-yet the scene Dick Leslie created in Callander went beyond
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page237" id="page237"></a>[pg&nbsp;237]</span>
-the bounds of even Scottish convention, and utterly
-destroyed any chance of his marriage with Jane du Telle.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Remembering his description of the affair which he
-gave to M&#39;Gourley on the Nikko road, you will agree
-with me that he was not a man who viewed his own acts&mdash;well,
-as others viewed them.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In this, however, he was by no means singular.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane, sitting on her bed and biting the corner of her
-handkerchief, was at the same time looking back back
-over the past. She was a person with an infinite capacity
-for affection, with no capacity at all for a Grand Passion.
-Her life was made up of a bundle of petty interests,
-and her history was the history of a pure and
-somewhat commonplace soul.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had loved Dick as a brother in the past, and now
-that he had come into her life again after all those years
-(even after that terrible scene long ago), bringing with
-him so much from the happy days that were for ever
-gone, her heart went out to him as it had never gone to
-human being before.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And to-morrow she must say good-bye to him, and
-never, perhaps, see him again.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They must part; there was no other thing to be done.
-She was her own mistress, with plenty of money at her
-command; she could have flown in the face of society,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page238" id="page238"></a>[pg&nbsp;238]</span>
-and made Dick forever her own. Such a course did not
-even occur to her, for she was a creature bound by the
-laws of convention, almost as rigidly as you or I by
-the laws of gravity.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Out of very light-heartedness she would do things and
-say things that would have been dangerous symptoms in
-a woman of a sterner mold; and men had often pursued
-her, led on by this laughing spirit that vanished behind
-a veil, which, being lifted, disclosed an adamant door.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Her great danger lay in her compassionate emotions,
-and all the womanly nature that lay behind them. Her
-great danger lay in Richard Leslie, for he was the only
-being that had ever aroused them to their full strength.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">All at once she cast herself upon the bed, and after
-the fashion of her childhood, buried her face in a pillow,
-and sobbed, and &quot;grat.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When she had occupied herself thus for some ten
-minutes, she rose and looked at herself in the glass, and
-wondered at her own distorted image, and how she could
-possibly be such a fool. But she felt better; the pain
-of parting with Dick was not quite so bad, and she felt
-kindlier towards George.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">If his conduct had taken place in England, I doubt if
-her anger would have been so soon assuaged. But they
-were in Japan&mdash;and the Japs, you know!&mdash;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page239" id="page239"></a>[pg&nbsp;239]</span></p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="h2">PART THREE</p>
-
-<p class="h2">THE BROKEN LATH</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page241" id="page241"></a>[pg&nbsp;241]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XXVI</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">THE BROKEN LATH</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A heat wave from the Pacific had stolen over Nagasaki,
-and the windless night was filled with
-stars and lights.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Stars in the sky, and stars in the harbor, long wavy
-reflections of light from the ships in the anchorage, and
-ten thousand lanterns spangling the mysterious city.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A spangle of colored lamps that spread away to the
-base of the O Suwa hill which they stormed, covering it
-with a thousand sparkles like phosphoric sea-spray, and
-cresting its summit with a burning zone, bright as the
-snow crest of Fuji.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was a gala night, and the O Suwa, that galaxy of
-temples, had called the true believers in love and beauty
-to worship in the name of religion.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">From the great double temple, which is the crowning
-glory of the hill, Leslie and his companions looked down
-upon shrine after shrine, broad flights of steps stained
-with the soft amber and pink of lantern light, and the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page242" id="page242"></a>[pg&nbsp;242]</span>
-colored crowd ever shifting, and murmurous as the sea.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The shadow spaces and the vagueness of night made
-great distances in this dim but splendid picture, till the
-moon, rising over the hill-top, chased the shadows away,
-paled the lamps, and drew the distances together.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Touched by her light the crowd below became sonorous
-as a musical glass touched by the finger; the murmur
-of voices, the ripple of laughter, the sigh of moving
-silk and the flutter of a thousand fans intensified,
-rose blended and mixed, and dwelt in the air a nimbus
-of sound. The native city beyond grew more distinct,
-yet more unreal in the moonlight, which strengthened
-the black shadows of the wooded cliffs and converted the
-harbor into a trembling mirror.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;We shall never see anything again so beautiful as
-that,&quot; said Jane, &quot;so mysterious, so strange.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He did not reply. A small hand had stolen into his;
-it was Campanula&#39;s. She, too, was gazing at the scene
-around and below them, filled with who knows what
-thoughts.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They were not alone here on the utmost heights;
-women, gayly dressed, were passing into the temple behind
-them to pray and clap their hands before their
-gods. Women surrounded them, laughing, chattering,
-dispelling quaint perfumes on the air from large incessantly-waving
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page243" id="page243"></a>[pg&nbsp;243]</span>
-fans. From the tea houses behind the
-temple came the thready music of <i>cham&egrave;cens</i> and sounds
-of unseen festivity; and from the great park beyond,
-through the hot night, the perfume of azaleas and the
-odor of the dew-wet cryptomeria trees.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Come,&quot; said Jane, &quot;let us go and take the picture
-with us before it gets dulled. I will never forget this
-night&mdash;there is something in the air of this place I have
-never felt before. No, thanks, I don&#39;t want to see the
-tea houses, I am quite content with this; let us go down
-right through it, and home.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They descended the broad flights of steps through
-the murmuring, laughing, and perfumed crowd. There
-was something in the air indeed, something as intoxicating
-as wine, yet far more subtle, subtle as a poison
-or a love philter.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They found rikshas to take them back, and the whole
-party returned to the hotel, where they left Jane.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;To-morrow at noon,&quot; she said to Leslie, as she
-turned to enter.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes, or even a little later; the train doesn&#39;t start till
-after one.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Good-night!&quot; She waved her hand in the lamplit
-portico and vanished.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They had no need of lanterns to show the way up
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page244" id="page244"></a>[pg&nbsp;244]</span>
-the hill-path to the House of the Clouds; the path was
-a tangle of moonlight and lilac-bough shadows, a tremulous
-carpet upon which above them they perceived a
-creeping and colored thing.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was Cherry-blossom. She, too, had been at the
-festival at the O Suwa, and was now returning, wearied
-out and walking like a somnambulist, a lantern painted
-with butterflies held before her nodding at the end of
-a bamboo cane.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In the house, when he had fastened the shoji and taken
-his night lantern from Pine-breeze, he turned to where
-Campanula was standing, a vague figure in the dimly-lit
-room. Yielding to a sudden impulse he picked her up
-from the ground, just as he might have picked up a
-child, and kissed her&mdash;kissed her just as he had kissed
-her when she was a child that day, years ago, in the
-valley by the Nikko road.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">That night sleep was impossible. The lights of the
-O Suwa burned before him, the perfume of the azaleas
-and cryptomerias pursued him, lighting always and
-leading him always to the same image&mdash;Jane.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He lay considering what the future would be when
-Jane was gone; the rainy season would soon be upon
-them, and then the autumn and the winter and the spring
-again after that, and the years to come.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page245" id="page245"></a>[pg&nbsp;245]</span>
-Whilst thus torturing his soul his mind was steadfastly
-making a resolve. A resolve that, come what
-might, Jane must not go out of his life. That to-morrow
-he must act in such a way as to make her for ever his
-own.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Come what might!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There was no time left for thought, scarcely enough
-for action.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had quite ceased to battle with himself, to say this
-is right or this is wrong. Time had cut all these arguments
-short with the command: &quot;Act now, now, in the
-next twenty-four hours! for after that your chance is
-gone.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he began to sketch out the plan that had been
-vaguely forming in his brain all the evening&mdash;a plan
-that the villainous conduct of George du Telle made possible
-and practicable, and, to Leslie&#39;s mind, almost
-plausible.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As he lay thus, a faint sigh came through the lattice
-of the window. The wind had risen, and was moving
-the cherry branches and the azaleas.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then came another sound&mdash;the sound of a stick tapping
-on the garden path, as if some blind person were
-cautiously feeling their way round the house.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Up along the garden path, pausing now, now advancing,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page246" id="page246"></a>[pg&nbsp;246]</span>
-now dying away, now returning, somebody was
-promenading in front of the house, keeping watch and
-ward like a sentry, somebody whose feet made no sound,
-somebody blind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A feeling of sick terror came over him&mdash;terror not to
-be borne.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He pulled the mosquito-net aside, and rose, shivering
-and trembling, feeling that he must look out at all hazards&mdash;even
-at the worst.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He pulled the slats aside and looked out. Nobody.
-The moonlight lay on the azaleas and the garden path,
-but of the prowler there was no sign.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he saw the cause of the sound. A lath broken
-from the house wall was hanging with tip touching the
-path, and tapping upon it as the wind shook it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He returned to bed, and tried to snatch a few hours&#39;
-sleep, but the sound of the blind man tapping his way
-continued all night long&mdash;now faint, now loud, and insistent
-as the wind rose and fell.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page247" id="page247"></a>[pg&nbsp;247]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XXVII</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">THE &quot;EMPRESS OF JAPAN&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">If Mr. Kamamura had sent a special messenger to
-Paradise to pick from the aviary there a blue-winged
-and bright-eyed day for his garden-party, he would not
-have obtained a better one than that which came by
-chance.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A haze hid its coming. Just after sunrise, looking
-from Leslie&#39;s garden one could scarcely see Nagasaki
-down below&mdash;a toy town, seen through faint blue gauze,
-it seemed. The wind came in puffs, hot from the Pacific,
-shaking the cherry branches.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The great double cherry-blossoms were falling. The
-close, even moss under the trees was white, like ground
-after a mild snowstorm.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There was something in the atmosphere which loosened
-the petals this morning. At each puff of wind a
-fresh shower fell, sifting through the air to scatter softly
-on the ground. It was a ghostly sight in the gray and
-silent dawn; the trees seemed despoiling themselves, casting
-their blossoms from them in sorrow or fear.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page248" id="page248"></a>[pg&nbsp;248]</span>
-In the veranda stood the crimson garden umbrella,
-all damp with dew, and four pairs of dogs in a row.
-The house was deathly still; and one might have likened
-it to a tomb, had it not possessed so much the appearance
-of a bandbox, looped and latticed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Presently a faint sound might have been heard. A
-panel slid back, and a figure appeared, holding in its
-hand a lighted paper lantern.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was Campanula, clad in blue, her feet peeping from
-beneath her skirt like two white mice.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She put out the lantern, and hung it on a hook. Then
-she put on a pair of clogs, and clicked down the steps.
-She went down the path, through the little gate, and vanished
-from sight; and as her footsteps died away, silence
-returned to the house and the garden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then in a few minutes a glorious transformation scene
-took place. The haze turned to a golden mist; it became
-sundered by rivers of clear air, and from it leaped the
-sun, like Helios from the sea.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Instantly the silence of the orchard became broken
-by the bickering of birds; a cock crowed somewhere in
-the back premises, and he was answered by the cock that
-lived half-way down the hill at the cooper&#39;s shop&mdash;who
-was answered, a minute later, by all the roosters in
-Nagasaki.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page249" id="page249"></a>[pg&nbsp;249]</span>
-The mist vanished entirely now, the sun began steadily
-to mount into the vault of perfect blue; his slanting
-rays shot through the cherry orchard, striking here the
-bole of a tree glistening with great tears of fragrant
-gum, and there on the ground besnowed with blossom,
-even the fierce old hills of the landscape garden lost
-something of their ruggedness in the warm and mellow
-light.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the house began to awaken. Pine-breeze appeared
-on the veranda, and after Pine-breeze the other
-Mousm&egrave;s all busy, or appearing so, dragging out futon
-to air for a moment in the morning brightness, and
-lacquer screens to be dusted.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Summer has come in the night,&quot; said Lotus-bud,
-pointing out the fallen cherry-blossoms.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes,&quot; chimed in Pine-breeze, &quot;but spring has
-gone.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I dreamt last night of frost.&quot; This from Cherry-blossom,
-who was busily engaged watching the others
-at work.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Frost is a bad dream in Japan, and the Mousm&egrave;s
-conferred in murmurs as to what it might mean.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I know,&quot; said Lotus-bud suddenly, with an air of
-conviction.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page250" id="page250"></a>[pg&nbsp;250]</span>
-&quot;The riksha man will die.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Which?&quot; asked Pine-breeze.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the two Mousm&egrave;s began to &quot;guy&quot; Cherry-blossom
-as to the number of the riksha man destined to
-die.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ichi-ban, Ni-ban, San-ban,&quot;[3] murmured Lotus-bud.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">[Footnote 3: Number one, number two, number three.]</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Shi-ban, Go-ban, Roku-ban,&quot; rippled Pine-breeze.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Hachi-ban!&quot; suddenly cried Lotus-bud, with an air
-of inspiration.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ku-ban!&quot; replied Pine-breeze, with the air of going
-one better.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Leslie San!&quot; said Cherry-blossom: and Pine-breeze
-got up and scuttered into the house, where Leslie San
-was calling for his bath to be heated.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">An hour later he appeared on the veranda, fully
-dressed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He noticed the promise of heat in the air; he noted
-the great fall of cherry-blossoms that had occurred
-during the night; he noted the lantern that Campanula
-had hung on the hook.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he left the veranda, came down into the garden
-path, and through the gate.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Outside the gate there was a little by-path that led
-upwards and to the left, between a double bank of bushes
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page251" id="page251"></a>[pg&nbsp;251]</span>
-to an open space like a natural platform, from which a
-splendid view of the harbor and hills could be obtained,
-A great camellia tree forty feet high grew here, alone
-in its splendor, and beneath it he stood gazing at the
-harbor.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He could hear the faint monosyllabic cry of the
-brown hawks ever circling above the blue water, and
-the distant sound of a drum from the <i>Rurik</i> where she
-lay at anchor. He could see the sampans shooting hither
-and thither, carrying fruit and what not to the ships
-in the anchorage, and the Junks floating like brown
-phantoms past the shadow of the opposite cliffs.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But his eye was searching for something that was not
-there.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He looked at his watch, put it back in his pocket
-with an impatient gesture, and continued to gaze.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Suddenly&mdash;Hrr-&#39;mph!&mdash;Haa-aar!&mdash;the blast of a
-syren came shouting up the harbor, and chasing the
-echoes through the hills. The brown hawks rose and
-circled in wild flight, and past a bend came a great,
-white, double-funneled steamer.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was the Canadian Pacific boat, the <i>Empress of
-Japan</i>, touching at Nagasaki, and due to leave the
-morning following for Yokohama and Vancouver.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He watched her for a moment as she swam to her
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page252" id="page252"></a>[pg&nbsp;252]</span>
-berth, beautiful and graceful as a swan. Then he turned
-to the house.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">To-morrow morning he and Jane would be on board
-that boat, bound northward up the Inland Sea, past
-Tsu-shima, past Osaka, past Yokohama, and away across
-the blue Pacific to Vancouver.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The whole plan was cut and dried. Jane had given no
-consent; that did not matter. She would consent; he felt
-the power in himself to <i>make</i> her consent.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Men of his stamp, lazy, neurotic, yet strong-willed,
-stung into action by love or hate, sometimes assume
-momentary but terrible command over events; they infect
-with their passion, infuriate with their hate, or paralyze
-with their love.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He entered the house, ordered breakfast, and enquired
-for Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had gone down at dawn, said Pine-breeze, to see
-O Toku San, the poor girl who was so ill, and was now
-dying. He was glad Campanula was out, and determined
-if possible to get his preparations over before her return.
-Jane and he would return from Mr. Kamamura&#39;s
-about six that evening. It would be time enough then to
-tell Campanula of his journey.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As he breakfasted, he completed that part of his plans
-which had reference to Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page253" id="page253"></a>[pg&nbsp;253]</span>
-She would be safe and well looked after by M&#39;Gourley,
-till&mdash;he came back. He told himself he would come back
-some day; perhaps in six months or so he would come
-back.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And why should he worry about leaving Campanula
-for a time? He had often gone away before, once as far
-as London; he had always come back.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Why should Campanula mind his going away again?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Why, indeed!</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He tried to forget how her little hand had stolen into
-his on the evening before as if for protection. How,
-when he had kissed her, she had suddenly flung aside her
-timid reserve, and with her arms around his neck, but
-without a word, had told him what only a woman can
-tell without speech.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Perhaps it was because he loved her far more than he
-knew, that his mind was filled with gloom and apprehension.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But it was the time for action, not for thought; only
-a few hours lay before him in which to prepare for this
-journey&mdash;the journey from which he would return quite
-soon perhaps.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He would leave the house just as it was to Campanula
-and the Mousm&egrave;s till he came back and made other arrangements.
-M&#39;Gourley, as his agent, would supply
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page254" id="page254"></a>[pg&nbsp;254]</span>
-them with all the money needful just as he had done
-before.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he called Pine-breeze and told her to get his
-portmanteau up to his room, as he was going on a
-journey.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He packed hurriedly, whilst Lotus-bud handed him
-things. He wanted to get the packing over and done
-with.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The strong sunlight reflected from the matting lit up
-the room with a golden glow. Pine-breeze in the kitchen
-below was singing a song about a lilac bough&mdash;the same
-song he had heard in the orchard that day when Campanula
-had cried: &quot;Hist, some one at the gate!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He leaned back sitting on his heels to listen. He heard
-the end of the song now. He did not hear it that day,
-for Jane, knocking at the veranda, had cut it short.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This was the gist of the last verse:</p>
-
-<div class="poem">
-<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">&quot;<i>The bee comes no more</i></span><br />
-<span class="i0"><i>When the lilac&#39;s white blossom is dead</i>.&quot;</span><br />
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he went on with his packing at a furious rate,
-stuffing in shirts, collars, handkerchiefs, his mind wandering
-over all sorts of subjects.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">His packing finished, he went to the window, took out
-his pocketbook, and examined its contents. Three hundred
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page255" id="page255"></a>[pg&nbsp;255]</span>
-and ten pounds, half in circular notes, half in notes
-of the Bank of England.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he took out a check-book and a stylograph pen,
-and wrote a check for five hundred, payable to himself.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Ten minutes later he was in a riksha making for the
-Bund, where he stopped at Holme &amp; Ringers, the shipping
-agents, bought two first-class tickets for Vancouver,
-and changed his check, receiving part in cash, and
-part in a check upon the National Specie Bank of Yokohama.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was now eleven o&#39;clock, and he had practically completed
-his preparations. He had now to see Mac, and he
-turned his steps to the office, which was only a stone&#39;s
-throw from the shipping agents. Mac was writing
-letters.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Morning,&quot; said he, glancing up, and seeming surprised
-to see his partner at that hour.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What&#39;s agate?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I am,&quot; said Leslie, trying to assume a jovial manner.
-&quot;I&#39;m off for a holiday, and I want you to look
-after things same as you&#39;ve done before.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;This is sudden,&quot; said Mac, going on with his correspondence
-without looking up.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh, it&#39;s never too sudden for a holiday. And see
-here, I&#39;d better leave you some ready cash: here&#39;s a
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page256" id="page256"></a>[pg&nbsp;256]</span>
-check for two fifty. I want you to look after the bairn
-whilst I&#39;m away.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Keep the money,&quot; said Mac, &quot;and pay me&mdash;when
-y&#39; come back. Ay, ay, it&#39;ll be soon enough then&mdash;soon
-enough then.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;d sooner leave you the money.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Weel, put it in that drawer.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, you <i>are</i> a bear this morning. See here, I&#39;ve
-put it in the drawer, but I&#39;ll see you again before I go:
-I&#39;m not off till to-morrow.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Imphim!&quot; replied the Dour One, and Leslie went off.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Your true Scot has a very nasty habit of expressing
-his bad opinion of a man. He does it in a round-about
-way, using hints and innuendoes, instead of coming to
-the matter by a direct route.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">What Mac suspected or what he knew, Leslie could not
-tell; judging from his manner, however, he knew or suspected
-a lot.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">However, he had no time to trouble about Mac. He
-had one thing more to do before meeting Jane, Mr.
-Initogo the landlord had to be interviewed, and the rent
-paid.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There was a fair of a sort on in the street that
-formed the shortest cut to Mr. Initogo&#39;s. It was filled
-with a many-colored crowd, flags were fluttering, awnings
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page257" id="page257"></a>[pg&nbsp;257]</span>
-flapping in the wind; every shop had some extra
-advertisement to attract customers, and during the past
-night, like mushrooms, extra booths had sprung into
-being.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A roaring trade was going forward; here, all kinds of
-fruit, there all kinds of fish, some with bunches of violets
-in their mouths; cakes reposing on branches of cherry
-or myrtle; cakes in the form of donkeys and monkeys
-and goats; cakes shaped like spinning-tops; cakes in the
-shape of suns, moons and stars; candied beans, beans
-mixed with comfits, kites, masks, and paper dragons.
-Paper fish shaped like carp for the Little-boys&#39; Festival
-of the 5th of May.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The noise and bustle somehow pleased Leslie, and
-soothed him; and he drifted along with the chattering
-stream of men, women, Mousm&egrave;s, little boys and mere
-babies. Some of the children had long, curved trumpets
-of glass, from which they blew the most horrible of
-hobgoblin sounds. Here a man was frying pancakes,
-wrapping them in rice paper, and flinging them to unseen
-customers in the crowd, who flung him back the
-money. Here a person in spectacles, who looked like a
-professor of chemistry gone mad, was blowing from a
-glass-blower&#39;s tube dragons and fish in sugar-candy.
-Apothecaries, with great golden eyes painted on their
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page258" id="page258"></a>[pg&nbsp;258]</span>
-booths, were selling little rice paper charms, one to be
-taken dissolved in water for the stomach-ache, two for
-lumbago, three for migraine. Here stood a man who
-would pull your teeth out with his fingers, three sen a
-tooth.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The cheap curio dealers were in evidence with their
-wares cheap and bad; those quaint perambulating curio
-dealers, who, as a rule, only start business at sundown,
-and whose stock-in-trade include old top hats, old boots,
-old&mdash;anything&mdash;European. &quot;Caw&mdash;caw&mdash;caw!&quot; You
-look up, and see a great kite straining at its strings.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And then the umbrellas! Leslie had a good view of
-them, for he was head and shoulders taller than any one
-in the crowd. Red, pink, gray, gray-green, pink-and-white,
-blossom-bestrewn, stork-bestrewn, a shifting mass
-of color reflecting the sunlight.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But though he saw all this, and though the noise and
-bustle and laughter and general atmosphere of festivity
-fell in with his humor, his thoughts were far away at
-Osaka; he was wondering what George du Telle was
-doing, and what George du Telle would say in a day or
-so, and how he would look. He had never hated George
-du Telle really till now that he had determined to rob
-him of his wife.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Now that he was about to commit, or attempt to commit,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page259" id="page259"></a>[pg&nbsp;259]</span>
-a vile and abominable act against George du Telle,
-that person seemed to him the acme of all things vile and
-abominable.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Suddenly, through an opening in the crowd, Leslie
-caught a glimpse of a face, the face of a blind man,
-stolid, stony, with a flattened nose and wearing an indescribable
-expression of eld, weariness, and misfortune.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was only a momentary glimpse, but revealed just
-for a moment, and contrasted with the shifting colored
-mass around him, with the noise and laughter, the sunlight
-and the movement of life, it was like a vision of
-death.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie stood for a moment startled and chilled; the
-joyous exaltation in his mind a moment ago had vanished:
-it was as if a cloud had come between him and the
-sun.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Why were these things always occurring to fret his
-soul and trouble his imagination? This blind man was
-nothing but an ordinary blind man of Japan such as one
-might see any day. The broken lath that had troubled
-him all night was but a broken lath; the song of the
-mushi that had started that infernal sound in his head
-was but the sound of an insect buzzing; the azalea that
-had caused that frightful dream was but a flower.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">These slight things, he told himself, acting on a brain
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page260" id="page260"></a>[pg&nbsp;260]</span>
-made over-sensitive by opium, were not warnings, but
-simple causes of complex effects. And he passed on his
-way, cursing himself for a fool, till he reached the shop
-of Mr. Initogo.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">That gentleman, for a wonder, was not making tea,
-but the sight of Leslie San instantly inspired the desire
-for his favorite beverage, caused him to clap his hands,
-and the tea-tray to appear in the hands of his wife
-almost instantly upon the sound.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He received his rent, which he put away with an appearance
-of indifference, expressed sorrow on hearing
-that Leslie was going away for even a short time, but
-joy at the thought that the journey might benefit his
-honorable health.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was really fond of Leslie, this old Japanese gentleman;
-but the worst of the flowery Japanese language is
-that it remains always, so to speak, at boiling point, and
-towards friend or perfect stranger is the same. You
-can&#39;t cool it, and you can&#39;t warm it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Whilst they were talking Kiku came in; her eyes were
-red and she had a snuffle in her voice.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had been, it seems, to see the poor girl who was
-dying, O Toku San; Campanula was with her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ah, yes,&quot; said Mr. Initogo, as his daughter retired
-upstairs. &quot;Most sad, poor girl. A man whom she loved
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page261" id="page261"></a>[pg&nbsp;261]</span>
-left her, and she is dying of it, just as a flower dies from
-want of water.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie looked at his watch: it was after twelve. He
-hastened from the shop of Mr. Initogo, and securing a
-riksha drove to the Nagasaki Hotel on the Bund.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page262" id="page262"></a>[pg&nbsp;262]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XXVIII</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">M&#39;GOURLEY&#39;S LOVE AFFAIR</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At about three o&#39;clock on that eventful day M&#39;Gourley
-met one of Holme &amp; Ringer&#39;s clerks in the
-street.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;So your partner&#39;s off for a holiday,&quot; said the clerk.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;So he tells me,&quot; replied Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;He&#39;s going pretty far afield,&quot; went on the clerk;
-&quot;Vancouver isn&#39;t&mdash;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Where did you say?&quot; cut in M&#39;Gourley.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Well, he&#39;s bought two tickets for Vancouver this
-morning, one for his cousin and one for himself. She
-is married, and they are going to pick her husband up
-at Yokohama,&quot; he went on, smiling slightly.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Vancouver!&quot; said Mac. He stood for a moment in
-astonishment, then hailing a passing riksha he jumped
-into it, and told the driver to take him to the House of
-the Clouds.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula had just returned, she was in the garden;
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page263" id="page263"></a>[pg&nbsp;263]</span>
-and when she heard his step coming up the hill path she
-came to the gate to meet him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She greeted him with a smile, but there was something
-about her that struck M&#39;Gourley strangely.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had a far-away look in her face, and she wore an
-abstracted air. Away from the world her mind seemed
-wandering in some far, strange country, whilst her little
-body walked beside him, and her lips answered his questions,
-and told him things.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;O Toku San is dead,&quot; said she; &quot;I have just left
-her.&quot; She spoke gravely, but without any sorrow in her
-voice; one might even have imagined that she was referring
-to some good fortune that had fallen on O Toku
-San; and perhaps, indeed, she was.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ay! puir thing, is she?&quot; said Mac, whose mind was
-also astray.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He asked had Leslie returned, and Campanula told
-him that he had gone to a garden-party at Omura, and
-would not return till evening.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;He is going away,&quot; finished Campanula, pausing
-on the veranda steps and unlatching the strap of her
-sandal.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh! so he&#39;s told you?&quot; said Mac.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Campanula said nothing; possibly she did not hear
-the question, so absorbed was she by her own ideas and
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page264" id="page264"></a>[pg&nbsp;264]</span>
-thoughts. Suddenly she said, turning to Mac, who was
-leaning his shoulder against the veranda post and feeling
-in his pocket for his tobacco-pouch:</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I saw the Blind One to-day as I was leaving O Toku
-San&#39;s. I did not speak to him; he spoke to me. He said
-the master of the house on the heights is going on a
-journey from whence he will not return. Then he went
-away. A wind from the hill blew my kimono apart and
-a chill came to my breast. I do not know who the Blind
-One is&mdash;perhaps he is Death.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M&#39;Gourley, as she spoke, noticed that she had refolded
-her kimono from right to left instead of from left to
-right.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Now in Japan, the only people who wear their
-kimonos folded from right to left are the dead.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He felt sick and shivery at the words she had just
-spoken, and he could not reply to them or ask questions;
-he was filled with a horror of the subject, a dead, blind
-terror of it. He looked down and said gruffly:</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;What way is that you&#39;ve folded your kimono? Just
-run into the house and put it right. I&#39;ll bide here on the
-verandy and smoke my pipe.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She vanished into the house, and Mac sat down, but he
-did not light his pipe. What could be the meaning of
-all this? Surely he was dead, and laid long ago in the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page265" id="page265"></a>[pg&nbsp;265]</span>
-green woods of Nikko&mdash;could it be possible that the
-dead return?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Why was it that she alone could see him, hear him,
-and speak to him?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">His eye caught the crimson azaleas as they bloomed
-in their beauty and splendor, and the Nikko road rose
-before him, the mysterious valley, peopled by the crimson
-flowers, the cypress trees, the far-off country, and
-the distant sea hills beyond Tanagura.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He heard Leslie&#39;s voice as it denied the existence
-of God, and declared that if he had ever been given a
-creature that loved him, he would have cared for and
-loved it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he felt something touch his shoulder, and, turning
-with a start, found it was Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Come,&quot; said she, in the manner of a person who
-would say, &quot;I wish to show you something.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He rose and followed her into the house. She led the
-way upstairs, and down the narrow passage to Leslie&#39;s
-room.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At the door she paused and pointed to an object on
-the floor. It was a portmanteau packed and strapped.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They both looked at it without saying a word: a
-silence, that spoke of the deep, unconscious understanding
-between them.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page266" id="page266"></a>[pg&nbsp;266]</span>
-&quot;Come,&quot; said Mac in his turn, and taking her by
-the hand he led her downstairs.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Had the portmanteau been a coffin, containing some
-being beloved by Campanula, he could not have spoken
-more gently, or led her away from it more tenderly.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Downstairs the old, rough, gruff M&#39;Gourley seemed
-very much perturbed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Could he have found Leslie alone at that moment, a
-very regrettable scene might have ensued.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And yet at the bottom of all his anger and perturbation
-lay a golden gleam. If Leslie went off like this,
-Campanula would be all his (Mac&#39;s) own.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had no idea of marrying her, or anything of that
-sort; but he had an immense idea of possessing her all
-for himself.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had, proposed to buy a half share in her at Nikko,
-and he would have made a bad bargain, for during the
-last five years he had possessed a full half share without
-paying a cent, unless we count the pounds and pounds
-expended on dolls, sweets, and so forth.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">But this was not like having her all to himself: a creature
-to feed and clothe, to buy hairpins for and tabis,
-fans and sweets; to listen to of an evening, as her fingers
-strayed over the strings of a <i>cham&egrave;cen</i>, or her tongue
-told fabulous tales of folk clad in fur or feathers.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">All at once, as he paced the room, he turned to her,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page267" id="page267"></a>[pg&nbsp;267]</span>
-literally picked her up, hugged her, gave her a kiss, and
-said: &quot;He&#39;ll come back to you. Dinna greet; I canna
-stand it. I&#39;ll be back and see you the morrow morn before
-he goes.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He hurried out of the house, and went raging down
-the hill.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">To be in anger with one whom one loves works, indeed,
-like madness in the blood.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mac, as he plunged down the hill, was lashing himself
-into a fury against Leslie. He turned into a saki shop
-and drank half a pint of that seemingly innocuous
-liquor; then he went to the office, took a whisky bottle
-from a cupboard, and poured himself out a liberal peg.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was an abstemious man as a rule, but once he took
-the bit between his teeth nothing on God&#39;s earth except
-death would stop him, till the next morning&#39;s headache
-came.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At five he recognized that he was hopelessly embarked
-on a grand drunk, and determined to take a riksha over
-to Mogi; there complete the business, and return in time
-next morning to see Leslie before he started.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Just before starting from the hotel a waiter brought
-him out a cablegram from Shanghai, which had come
-round from the office. It was relative to a bank disaster
-that had occurred in India. He read it, stuffed it into
-his pocket, and ordered the Djin to proceed.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page268" id="page268"></a>[pg&nbsp;268]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XXIX</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">THE GARDEN-PARTY</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Within an hour of the great city of Nagasaki,
-in the midst of a park that was at the same
-time half a garden, lay the country residence of Mr.
-Kamamura; once a man who carried two swords, with
-the longer of which he would have beheaded you for
-two words and have done it with neatness and despatch,
-now a gentleman in a frock-coat and tall hat, wearing
-gold-rimmed glasses and a smile.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The long, low house, white as snow and surrounded by
-a narrow veranda, faced west, and was surrounded by
-a garden recalling the gardens of Dai Nichi Do: a garden
-filled with the music of fountains and the poetry of
-birds.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Alas! on the day of his garden-party Mr. Kamamura,
-seized with the spirit of modernity and the savagery
-of civilization, not content with the music of
-heaven, and prompted, no doubt, by the devil, had hired
-a brass band and placed it in a little kiosk, with orders
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page269" id="page269"></a>[pg&nbsp;269]</span>
-to bray Strauss in the face of Nature from three o&#39;clock
-till dusk.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There were many guests, and the gardens soon presented
-an animated appearance. Many of the ladles had
-retained the national dress, and marvelous were the
-fabrics to be seen in the form of the obi or flowing loose
-in the graceful kimono.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Some of the guests surrounded a pair of jugglers,
-two terrible men dressed in red, who fenced with and
-transfixed one another with long swords, swallowed fire,
-and belched it like dragons.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">In another corner of the grounds fireworks were whizzing
-and cracking, filling the clear air above with a thin
-blue haze through which, just as Jane and Leslie entered
-the grounds, there rose a wonderful fire balloon made of
-colored paper and fashioned in the form of a turkey
-cock.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It&#39;s like a party in the lunatic asylum,&quot; whispered
-Jane, as they threaded the maze of guests in search of
-their host and hostess. &quot;And, Dick, you <i>do</i> look perfectly
-awful in that panama amongst all these men in
-tall hats&mdash;I mean they look awful beside you, but they
-are <i>de rigueur</i>; and it&#39;s better to be <i>de rigueur</i> and look
-frightful, than to be not <i>de rigueur</i> and look nice. How
-d&#39;y&#39; do?&quot; and Jane extended her arm, pump-handle
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page270" id="page270"></a>[pg&nbsp;270]</span>
-fashion, to the little gentleman with the sallow face to
-whom Leslie was introducing her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Much pleasure, much pleasure,&quot; said Mr. Kamamura,
-whose English was mixed and limited, and who, like
-Kiku San, had not completely mastered the letter &quot;l.&quot;
-&quot;Will the honorable rady so make equal health Nagysaki
-(the proper way to pronounce Nagasaki) you stay?
-So good. Over there Mrs. Kamamura; you make
-known;&quot; and Mr. Kamamura presenting his arm Jane
-was led away through the crowd like some tall and graceful
-frigate threading a maze of painted cock-boats.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie, left to himself, turned with a gloomy expression
-of countenance to where the jugglers were dislocating
-each other&#39;s necks. He did not see them; he was
-looking out of the side of his eyes at Jane.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had been led across one of the willow-pattern
-bridges, and he could see her now standing at one of the
-kiosks, a tea-cup in her hand. She was talking to Mr.
-Kamamura and a little lady in European dress&mdash;Mrs.
-Kamamura, probably.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">What could they be talking about? Conversation,
-probably, sufficient to dislocate the gravity of a Socrates.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He turned his head impatiently and tried to take an
-interest in the jugglers, without success. There was
-something deeply irritating about the scene of frivolity
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page271" id="page271"></a>[pg&nbsp;271]</span>
-in which Fate had staged the last scenes of the most important
-act in his life.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The <i>Empress of Japan</i> sailed at eight on the morrow
-morning, and as yet he had made no movement as regards
-Jane. All this trifling was but a bad prelude to
-those words so soon to be spoken.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He little knew that Tragedy stood at his elbow in the
-form of James Anderson, manager to M&#39;Cormick, the
-great silk dealers on the Bund.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Why, Leslie, man! I thought I knew the nape of
-your neck. How are you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Hullo, Anderson!&quot; said Leslie, returning the other&#39;s
-hand-grip. &quot;What are you doing here?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;m just looking round,&quot; said Anderson. &quot;I&#39;m just
-looking round, and you&#39;ll admit it&#39;s worth the turning of
-one&#39;s head. I shouldn&#39;t mind exchanging places with
-Kamamura. It&#39;s not a bad life, his, by a long penny.
-This affair will bang a hole through a good pile of ten
-pun notes. They tell me those balloons made like dicky-birds
-cost&mdash;I forget now, but it&#39;s a good pile of dollars
-a-piece, for every feather is painted correct, and that&#39;s
-just like the Japs&mdash;make a pretty thing, and then stick
-it away in some hidey-hole where no one can see it, or
-burn it&mdash;What&#39;s agate now?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The crowd was in motion, flooding towards a part of
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page272" id="page272"></a>[pg&nbsp;272]</span>
-the grounds where a little stage had been erected, backed
-and half surrounded by cypress trees. On the stage,
-against the dark-green background, could be seen the
-graceful figure of a girl.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She was dancing. It was a dance that at first insipid,
-became after a few moments fascinating, lulling, exquisite
-to watch as the movements of a flower blown by
-the wind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They drew close and stood to look. The girl was
-dressed in amber and scarlet, with a scarlet flower in the
-night of her hair&mdash;a <i>bijou rose et noir</i>, recalling Baudelaire&#39;s
-Lola de Vallence.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Her supple body seemed inspired by the mysterious
-music we hear wandering through the land of spring,
-and expressing itself in the voices of the wind and the
-birds and the streams.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She seemed to have learned her art in the academy
-where the daffodils are taught to dance and the bluebells
-to make their bow.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;It&#39;s the Geisha Kamamura has hired&mdash;paid her something
-like two hundred to dance that fan-dance, or whatever
-they call it. She was a Tokyo girl, and had left
-the business to get married, but she couldn&#39;t withstand
-the two hundred; the best Geisha in Japan, they say.
-What&#39;s this her name? O something San. Hoots! but
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page273" id="page273"></a>[pg&nbsp;273]</span>
-my memory is gone fishing to-day. Listen! she&#39;s talking.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The dance had ceased, and the girl, in the silence that
-followed the tinkling of the three accompanying <i>cham&egrave;cens</i>,
-had commenced one of those poetical recitals in
-favor with an intellectual Japanese audience.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Her recitation was sad; it bemoaned the thing we call
-change. The cherry-blossom is fair, ran this untranslatable
-poem, but it must die and give place to the lotus.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I cannot understand this depression in trade,&quot; murmured
-the muted voice of Anderson, as he stood beside
-Leslie. &quot;It&#39;s been spreading and spreading, and there&#39;s
-nothing it hasn&#39;t spread into.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And the lotus parts with its petals to give place to the
-chrysanthemum, the Royal chrysanthemum.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;We&#39;ve had a good year till now, ourselves, but hech!
-man, there&#39;s a matter of fifteen thousand gone over the
-breaking of the Bombay and Benares bank&mdash;clean gone,
-never to come back&mdash;and that takes the sugar off the
-cake&mdash;ay, the devil himself won&#39;t whistle it home again.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And the gray winter sky and the snowflakes, like
-ghosts of flowers, finished the poem of the Geisha, whilst
-Leslie stood transfixed for a second, frozen by the news
-he had just heard, and unable to turn. He turned round
-full on Anderson.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;The breaking of <i>what</i>?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page274" id="page274"></a>[pg&nbsp;274]</span>
-&quot;The Bombay and Benares. Have you not heard the
-news? It came by cable to-day at one o&#39;clock. Good
-God! man, you hadn&#39;t much money in it, had you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Everything&mdash;everything,&quot; said Leslie in a stammering voice.
-&quot;I&#39;m smashed.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He linked his arm in Anderson&#39;s, and dragged him
-along hurriedly. He wanted to go, nowhere in particular,
-but just get away from the spot where Anderson
-had sentenced his future to death.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Man, I&#39;m sorry! Man, I&#39;m sorry!&quot; said his companion.
-&quot;I should not have told you so sudden, but how
-was I to know?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Smashed&mdash;smashed&mdash;smashed!&quot; said the other, talking
-as a man talks in his sleep.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He held Anderson by the arm as he spoke. All around
-spread the many-colored crowd; fans were fluttering,
-umbrellas bobbing, tongues chattering, soft women&#39;s
-voices inlaid like music of gold on the silvery music of
-the fountains and cascades.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Anderson, man, are you sure they&#39;ve broken&mdash;sure?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ay, ay, sure. Better to tell you straight. Sure as
-my name&#39;s James Anderson.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Boom! Boom! Boom! the band broke into a march
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page275" id="page275"></a>[pg&nbsp;275]</span>
-by Gungl, and Leslie, releasing Anderson, ran after a
-figure in the crowd some twenty paces distant.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Jane! I must speak to you at once.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane looked up from the little Japanese gentleman
-who was escorting her, saw the distress in her countryman&#39;s
-face, and dismissed Asia with a bow.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I have just had frightful news. Come with me to
-some quiet place till I tell you about it. Anywhere. No
-matter where. See! there are no people across that
-bridge where the trees are; let us go there.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane spoke not a word, but he saw that she was very
-pale and trembling. That weakness of Jane&#39;s gave him a
-strange sensation. It said something that her lips had
-never uttered.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They passed over the little bridge. They passed over
-another bridge; there were no people here, only trees;
-they went no further.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They were in a small forest. The garden was lost to
-sight; only the music of the band, muted by distance,
-told of the festivity so near, yet apparently so far away.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The trunk of a felled tree lay in the path; they sat
-down upon it by common consent. Leslie took out his
-watch, and looked at it attentively. Then, still holding
-it open in his hand, he spoke.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page276" id="page276"></a>[pg&nbsp;276]</span>
-&quot;I want you to listen to me for five minutes&mdash;only
-five minutes; you can hold the watch, and measure the
-time yourself. Jane, when a man is going to be hanged,
-they will give him a glass of brandy to help him along
-to the drop. Will you do the same by me&mdash;give me five
-minutes&#39; clear speech, and let me say just what I please
-without interruption; will you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Yes,&quot; said Jane, and she shivered as she spoke the
-word. She had maintained a strange silence; impulsive as
-she was, one might have expected her to implore him to
-tell her the worst, and have it over. Perhaps she understood
-dimly that Leslie&#39;s disaster was personal to herself,
-a cataclysm the effect of which would reach her future
-as well as his.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;You remember,&quot; he said, after a moment&#39;s pause,
-&quot;how I asked you to marry me long ago, and everything
-that happened after? Well, when I think of all that, it
-seems to me that I must have passed through life in a
-state of insanity, and only awakened to consciousness
-now. Jane, I am feeling now as a man must feel when
-he wakes in hell, and remembers&mdash;No matter, it is all
-done with now; and even if you loved me as well as
-I love you, it&#39;s all over and done with and useless
-now.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He leaned forward with his face in his hands. Jane
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page277" id="page277"></a>[pg&nbsp;277]</span>
-did not speak; the music of the band had ceased, and the
-only sound to be heard was the weary sighing of the
-warm wind in the pine-tops.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;m broken utterly, I have just heard the news.
-Don&#39;t think I brought you here to listen to me whining
-about my misfortunes. I brought you here to tell you I
-love you. I meant to have carried you off in the steamer
-that sails to-morrow morning for the north-west. With
-the money I had yesterday, I would have supported you,
-I would have torn you out of society, and made you
-love me. I would have made you a Paradise. Yes, by the
-living God, a Paradise, or there&#39;s no such thing as love.
-But now I&#39;m a beggar, and I love you too well to drag
-you into my ruin, and it&#39;s Fate, Fate, Fate that has
-done it all, and cursed be its name!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Again silence, broken only by a faint, dreary sound.
-Jane was weeping.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Don&#39;t, for the love of God!&quot; cried Leslie. &quot;Don&#39;t
-cry, or you&#39;ll make me cry too. Oh, miserable life! why
-was I ever born into it?&quot; And he moved his hands in
-the air, as blind Samson might have done amidst the
-pillars of the temple.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A bird piped three times in the recesses of the wood,
-three flute-like notes sweet as the notes of a bell-bird.
-They were answered by its mate in the branches above.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page278" id="page278"></a>[pg&nbsp;278]</span>
-Leslie put his hands to his ears, as if to shut out the
-happy sounds.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Jane&#39;s tears had ceased, but she did not speak, she
-did not breathe; only a deep sigh occasionally escaped
-from her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;And now, we can only say good-bye. Let us part
-here for ever. We will meet again in&mdash;Heaven,&quot; said
-Leslie, with a horrible shuddering laugh.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He stretched out his hand and took hers. She let him
-have it without seeming to know that he had taken it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She was murmuring his name in a whisper, staring at
-him and through him, and as if her gaze was fixed on
-some terrible catastrophe beyond.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Dick! Dick! Dick!&quot; All poetry could not express
-the helpless, hopeless sorrow she put into those three
-little whispered words.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Suddenly, filtering through the wood, came a sound,
-a voice, a spirit, that unrolled around them a panorama
-of loch, moor, and sky, hills purple with heather, lakes
-dark with shadow. &quot;Auld Lang Syne.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The band was playing it, villainously enough, but
-the distance smoothed away the defects.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It broke Jane down. She leaned against his shoulder
-and sobbed like a child, and then, with both hands upstretched,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page279" id="page279"></a>[pg&nbsp;279]</span>
-she drew his face down to hers and murmured&mdash;no
-matter what.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then all at once&mdash;heedless of ruin, forgetting all
-things, carried away on the dumb tide of passion, the
-wave that had retreated before disaster, only to come
-shoreward again resistless and gigantic&mdash;all at once,
-and without a word, he took her in his arms.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was the eloquence of passion and despair, the speech
-without tongue of a soul tormented and <i>in extremis</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It broke Jane down utterly. Hopeless, haggard, and
-pale as a person in the midst of some terrible disaster,
-she clung to him, whispering in his ear words repeated
-over and over again, with that reiteration which forms
-the rhetoric of the dying and the lost.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She had cast everything aside, the world, her position
-in society, her husband, her wealth. Passion and pity,
-that strange combination, had for the moment blinded
-her eyes to everything but the man beside her&mdash;but did
-she love him? Fate had not yet disclosed the answer to
-that old fatal question, that sphinx-like question whose
-answer forms the plot of each man&#39;s story.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page280" id="page280"></a>[pg&nbsp;280]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XXX</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">THE FALSE REPORT</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Mr. Kamamura never again saw his two tall
-English guests.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As a matter of fact, they sought for and found a
-means of leaving his garden by a back way that brought
-them to a road which in its turn brought them to the
-station.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">And the native gentlefolk in the train, which brought
-them back to Nagasaki by six o&#39;clock, could not imagine
-what great grief it was that made the tall English lady
-so pallid, and so like the very picture of woe.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">At the Nagasaki station Leslie helped his companion
-into a riksha.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Don&#39;t come back with me to the hotel,&quot; she murmured;
-&quot;I will drive there alone. I want to be alone,
-quite alone for a while. All our arrangements are made,
-and there is nothing more to be said. God help me!&mdash;God
-help us both! Good-bye, Dick, for the present.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page281" id="page281"></a>[pg&nbsp;281]</span>
-He watched her drive off. Then he took a riksha himself,
-and ordered the man to take him to the House of
-the Clouds.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Everything was arranged. Jane was to be his for
-ever. But there was no triumph in the thought. The
-battle had been won by his own weakness, not by his
-strength. Jane&#39;s compassion for him had betrayed her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They were to sail to-morrow by the <i>Empress of
-Japan</i>. He was to stay the night at the hotel, for he
-could not possibly remain the night at the House of the
-Clouds having once bidden good-bye to Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Beyond Vancouver lay the scheme traced out by him,
-accepted by Jane. They were to buy a farm in the
-Canadian North-west, and live there for ever happily.
-He would not touch a penny of her money; he had jewelry
-worth at least four hundred pounds, which would
-be amply sufficient to start on. His share in M&#39;Gourley&#39;s
-business was to be left for Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It is true he knew little about farming, but&mdash;love can
-do anything.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Viewed from a natural standpoint the whole arrangement
-was not only natural but praiseworthy. That a
-woman, fond of a natural life in the open air, should
-leave a creature like George du Telle, and cast herself
-into the arms of a man like Leslie. What could be more
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page282" id="page282"></a>[pg&nbsp;282]</span>
-in keeping with the grand aim of Nature, the propagation
-of the fit in body?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Viewed from a social standpoint the whole arrangement
-was wickedly absurd. And from a moral standpoint
-simply wicked.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Nature stood decidedly on Leslie&#39;s side; God (according
-to the theologians) and society stood against him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">These problems are occurring every day and every
-minute of the day, perplexing the thinker and confounding
-his belief, unless he looks upon the world as a higher
-thing than a breeding ground for animals. And it is generally
-by their side issues they are to be solved, and the
-side issue in Leslie&#39;s case was Campanula.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was nearing Danjuro&#39;s shop when he saw a riksha
-with a disguised figure in it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was Mac, and Mac was disguised with whisky.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was flushed, and his hat was on the back of his
-head, and he was so obviously fuddled that the gentle
-Japanese who passed smiled and passed on, without looking
-back.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Stop!&quot; cried Leslie to his man, then jumping out
-he ran to M&#39;Gourley&#39;s riksha, which had also stopped.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Have you heard the news?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;News?&quot; said Mac. &quot;News&mdash;what news?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;The Bombay and Benares bank is broken.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page283" id="page283"></a>[pg&nbsp;283]</span>
-&quot;It is not,&quot; replied the other, fumbling in his pocket.
-&quot;Na, na&mdash;false report. Bombay and Ta-Lien, you
-mean.&quot; Then, drawing a paper from his pocket, and
-with ferocity: &quot;Canna ye read?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie took the paper; it was a cablegram from
-Shanghai.</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-<p class="indent">&quot;False report. Bombay and Ta-Lien suspended. Bombay
-and Benares safe.</p>
-
-<div class="poem">
-<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0"><span class="smcap">Jardine Matheson.</span>&quot;</span><br />
-</div>
-</div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Good Heavens!&quot; said Leslie. &quot;When did you get
-this?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Hoor ago. Drive on, you&mdash;wheel me awa&#39;.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Where are you going?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Mogi&mdash;to forget I was ever such a fule as to go into
-partnership with a man like&mdash;<i>wheel me awa&#39;</i>!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Steady on, steady on,&quot; said Leslie.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I&#39;ll be back the morrow morn and see y&#39; before
-you&#39;re awa&#39; to Vancouver.&quot; Then, leaning back as the
-riksha started: &quot;I may be a fule, but I&#39;m not a blind
-fule, and I&#39;m not a&mdash;(<i>hic!</i>).&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The riksha joggled over a stone and he collapsed like
-a shut-down opera hat.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie continued his way.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page284" id="page284"></a>[pg&nbsp;284]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XXXI</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">FAREWELL</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was seven o&#39;clock; the birds were taking their nests
-in the cherry orchard with one final burst of chattering.
-The sky in the west, wave-green melting into
-vaguest blue, held one solitary cloud floating like a rose-leaf
-beneath the evening star. Leslie stood at his gate,
-looking for the last time at the twilight stealing over
-Nagasaki. He had just arrived.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M&#39;Gourley&#39;s words were still ringing in his ears, and
-his mind was in a turmoil.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was in exactly the position of the man who has
-cheated unwittingly at cards, who has found out his
-mistake, and who has still time to save his honor.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">If the Bombay and Benares bank was safe, it was his
-plain duty to go at once to Jane du Telle and inform
-her of the fact. She was laboring under the impression
-that he was a ruined man. Half of her sympathy, the
-whole of the present situation, had arisen from that misconception.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page285" id="page285"></a>[pg&nbsp;285]</span>
-To leave her under this delusion would
-amount to fraud&mdash;the meanest of all frauds.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was feeling this keenly, but unfortunately his
-mind, instead of grappling with the situation, and forcing
-his body to act, was engaged in cursing Fate, and the
-tangled net in which he found himself taken.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Was it his fault that the false news had come just
-at the psychological moment, the news that had actually
-thrown Jane into his arms? He kept asking himself this,
-as he gazed across the dusk-eyed harbor to the hills now
-becoming dimmed by the twilight.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">This last touch of Fate would, if he accepted it without
-resistance, rob him of the last remnants of honor
-and all self-respect.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">His hand was upon the stakes, he had a moment to
-decide whether to take them or leave them: to be a thief
-or an honest man.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Suddenly, as if silence had placed her finger upon
-their throats, the birds in the orchard ceased their
-chatter.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The warm day dying seemed to have called all the
-spirits of beauty from air and earth and sea, to stain the
-skies above its death-bed with the tints of the ocean and
-the dawn. Over the tomb of light Color, Light&#39;s firstborn
-child hovered like some exquisite ephemera whose
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page286" id="page286"></a>[pg&nbsp;286]</span>
-wings change from beauty to beauty before dissolving
-for ever in darkness and death.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The silence that had come over the orchard was broken
-occasionally by little outbursts of squabbling from over-full
-nests, sounds like the flirting of a fan amongst the
-leaves, chirrupings that told of differences made up.
-Then final and complete silence that would last till night
-woke the owls.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie at the gate suddenly made a gesture as if he
-were flinging something away, turned on his heel, and
-came towards the house.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He entered just as Cherry-blossom, with a white
-flower in her hair, her amber sleeves fallen back and exposing
-her fore-arms, her body stretched to its fullest
-height on the tips of her tabis, was in the act of lighting
-the big hall-lamp. She looked like a little cat stretching
-herself.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A pang went through his heart. He would never see
-Cherry-blossom light the big hall-lamp again, never
-again see Pine-breeze bring in the tea-cups, nor Lotus-bud
-carrying off Sweetbriar San to his box in the
-kitchen.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">You cannot possibly live in Japan without loving your
-maid-servants. I mean by love that sort of passion which
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page287" id="page287"></a>[pg&nbsp;287]</span>
-was inspired in Matthew Prior by the lady of fashion
-aged five.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was a feature of the House of the Clouds that
-sometimes on the lower floor you would find a hall with
-two rooms on either side of it, and sometimes two rooms
-and no hall, and sometimes, in very hot weather, one
-huge room. The sliding paper partitions made this possible;
-nay, very easy, for Mr. Initogo had improved
-upon the ordinary Japanese method, being of an inventive
-turn of mind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He looked into the room on the right of the hall. A
-<i>cham&egrave;cen</i> lay on the floor, an hibachi showed a crimson
-spark, and a dwarf maple in a pot of Arita ware displayed
-its pretty form vaguely in the twilight.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He looked into the room on the left: no one.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Where was Campanula? She must have returned by
-this, surely. Perhaps she was upstairs.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He went up, making little noise in his stocking-feet.
-At the door of his room he peeped in.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">There was Campanula. Oh, desolate sight! She was
-sitting on his big portmanteau all alone in the dusk.
-Her head was bent.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She looked so forlorn and so small, and the sash of
-her obi so huge in comparison with the wearer, that he
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page288" id="page288"></a>[pg&nbsp;288]</span>
-could not but recall how she sat that morning in the
-Tea House of the Tortoise. That morning, when she
-had likened herself to a lump of mud; the morning he
-had proposed to adopt her, and care for her, and make
-her a chattel of his own.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A moment later, he had caught her up in his arms.
-She did not resist, but he seemed to have taken up a lifeless
-thing.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As he carried her downstairs, had he known, it might
-have seemed strange to him that so great a grief should
-be so light a burden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He brought her to the room on the right, where
-Cherry-blossom had just lit the lamp, and sat down beside
-her on the matting.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He took a cigarette from his pocket, and approached
-the tobacco-mono with it. Then, without lighting it, he
-flung the cigarette away.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Campanula, I am going on a journey. I did not
-tell you last night, for I had not made up my mind.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I have heard it,&quot; she replied. She sat there beside
-him, a small figure with head bowed and hands folded in
-her lap; and the sadness and sorrowful sweetness of those
-four words pierced his heart.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">To get this terrible interview over, to tear himself
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page289" id="page289"></a>[pg&nbsp;289]</span>
-away at once, he would have sold years of his life. But
-it had to be gone through with.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Whether she loved him as a woman loves a man, or a
-child loves a father, she loved him, loved him as no person
-had ever loved him before&mdash;and he knew it.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then he talked to her, telling her that he would come
-back.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I have been away before, Campanula, and I have
-returned. Will you not believe me that I will return?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Ah yes,&quot; she answered, &quot;but you did not go with
-her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He said nothing for a moment. There was a sound
-outside; it was the coolie he had ordered to take his portmanteau
-to the hotel. He heard Pine-breeze accosting
-him, he heard him go upstairs and come down again,
-walking heavily. It was like the sound of a man carrying
-out a coffin.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He heard his steps on the garden walk dying towards
-the gate.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">How had she discovered with whom he was going?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">If she would only weep or cry out, or move, or break
-in some way this terrible stillness. If she would only
-reproach him. But she said nothing, nor even sighed.
-She seemed like a person stricken not by grief, but death.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page290" id="page290"></a>[pg&nbsp;290]</span>
-Then he began to talk again, telling her of the arrangements
-he had made. How M&#39;Gourley San would look
-after her, just as he had done before, till he came back.
-And he would write every week&mdash;till he came back.
-And they would all be happy together again, as happy
-as ever they had been&mdash;when he came back.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">To which she replied:</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;If you are going away to find happiness, my happiness is great.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Fancy a white house, lantern-lit, and steeped in dusk,
-a tall man walking away from it rapidly, three Mousm&egrave;s
-on their knees on the veranda crying after the vanishing
-form: &quot;Come again, oh, condescend to come
-again quickly!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The sound of their voices rings in his ears as he passes
-through the little gate. He hears it pursuing him like
-the faint murmur of bees, until a puff of wind blows it
-away and replaces it by the faint sound of the city below.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Come again! He will never come again to lie in the
-hammock beneath the cherry trees. Never more shall
-Lotus-bud hand him the night lantern to light him to
-his bed, nor thy small hands, O Pine-breeze, bear him
-the brown leather cigar-case that thy small nose loved
-to smell!</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page291" id="page291"></a>[pg&nbsp;291]</span>
-As he came down hill towards Nagasaki he felt as
-though he were leaving spring for ever behind him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Thrice he stopped as if to return, and stood gazing
-into the darkness of the uphill path, listening to the wind
-in the branches of the lilac trees.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The last of these pauses ended more abruptly than the
-others, and he plunged on again down hill through the
-gloom.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page292" id="page292"></a>[pg&nbsp;292]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XXXII</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">HER HOUSE IN ORDER</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Left alone, Campanula sat, her hands folded in
-her lap&mdash;a Lost One indeed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Before her mental vision, beyond Japan, beyond that
-desolate country always surrounded with ice, the country
-where the bluebells grew&mdash;beyond all this lay the
-land where O Toku San had gone that day, the land
-where one never regrets, one never forgets, one never
-remembers.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had gone to find happiness. Not one word had
-she spoken to hold him back or keep him by her, this
-true daughter of Dai Nippon, soul sister of O Gozen
-San, daughter in spirit of the immortal Hirose.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Cleopatra with the asp and all the mouthing heroines
-of history would seem cheap indeed beside this small and
-faithful figure to whom death was nothing, passion and
-personal happiness nothing beside the happiness of the
-being she loved.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She sat for an hour scarce moving; then she rose up.
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page293" id="page293"></a>[pg&nbsp;293]</span>
-She had no more time for personal thoughts; all things
-had to be left in order, and her trust to the least detail
-faithfully fulfilled.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She called the Mousm&egrave;s to her, and told them that
-now Leslie San had left, they would be discharged until
-he came back. They could go that evening to their
-homes in the city below. She would pay them their
-wages and a month in advance, and a little present for
-each out of money of her own. And the three kow-towed,
-delighted at the prospect of change and the
-month&#39;s money for doing nothing, and the little present
-besides. They never thought to ask her what she would
-do herself in the house alone, their butterfly brains were
-so filled with the thoughts of pleasure.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then she made Lotus-bud bring all the bills owing,
-bills yard long and extraordinarily minute in detail.
-These she discharged. There were chits out, but these
-were Leslie&#39;s affair, and he had no doubt settled them.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She thought of Sweetbriar San the cat, and as he was
-fondest of Pine-breeze, she gave Pine-breeze a small sum
-to take him home and keep him, applying to M&#39;Gourley
-San if more money were needful.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then she went upstairs to her own room and folded
-neatly the obis and kimonos in the drawers of the great
-lacquer cabinet. In one of these drawers were things
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page294" id="page294"></a>[pg&nbsp;294]</span>
-she had only, as it were, dropped from her hand; the
-toys she had played with as a child. Here was the doll
-bought in Nikko, and bouncing balls, ever so many; and
-in a piece of rice paper, still ferocious, but terribly old
-and warped, the famous dragon.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She took him out and tried to remove the paper from
-his sugar-candy sides, but it was stuck too tight. She
-put him back, and, holding the drawer with both hands,
-pressed her forehead against them.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As she stood like this, mute and utterly motionless,
-the night breeze came through the window, bearing the
-perfume of the azaleas.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was as if they were calling to her, and she closed
-the drawer gently and turned, as if to say, &quot;I hear.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then she came down and found the three Mousm&egrave;s
-waiting, each with a lighted lamp on the end of a stick,
-and her frail belongings on her back, luggage consisting
-of cardboard boxes, except in the case of Pine-breeze,
-who was also burdened with a basket containing Sweetbriar
-San.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">They had received their wages, and there was nothing
-left for them now to do but go; which they did, after
-profound salaams, murmurs and declarations of personal
-unworthiness.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then Campanula found herself standing alone. The
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page295" id="page295"></a>[pg&nbsp;295]</span>
-only living thing beside herself in the house was the
-mushi, that musician of the night, already saluting its
-mistress with a thin stream of song. She went to the
-doorway where it hung, and unhooked the little cage.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page296" id="page296"></a>[pg&nbsp;296]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XXXIII</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">THE &quot;LA FRANCE&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The fair that had been going on all day in the street
-leading to the Bund was still in full swing. A
-lurid sight the street presented, lit by lanterns of all colors,
-and flare lamps near the booths.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie was glad of the noise and bustle around him;
-one cannot think much when pressing one&#39;s way through
-a Japanese fair, colored lamps dancing, Mousm&egrave;s laughing,
-and showmen shouting, rikshas passing at a trot, or
-attempting so to do, children blowing trumpets, babies
-whirling rattles, men-of-war&#39;s men from the ships in
-harbor walking four abreast and arm in arm, singing
-&quot;Jean Francis de Nantes,&quot; or &quot;We won&#39;t go Home
-till Morning.&quot; <i>Cham&egrave;cens</i> and moon fiddles buzzing
-and tinkling, dogs barking, and gakunin wailing.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was ten when he reached the hotel. In the entrance-hall,
-where the orange trees in tubs reflected the
-lamp-light from their glossy leaves, a Chinese hall porter
-in a blue silk blouse sat on guard. From the half-open
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page297" id="page297"></a>[pg&nbsp;297]</span>
-door of the <i>salle &agrave; manger</i>, where a party of Russian
-officers were at dinner, came the sound of laughter
-and the clinking of glasses.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As he entered the hotel the whole world around him
-changed. Campanula vanished from his mind. He was
-no longer in Japan. He was in the same house with
-Jane, and in a few more hours she would be his.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Chinaman rose from his seat when he saw Leslie
-enter and led him down a corridor to the door of the private
-sitting-room where he had dined with Du Telles.
-He had promised Jane to wait for her there till the
-morning.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The sphinx-like Celestial closed the door, and Leslie
-found himself alone.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The windows were open on account of the warmth,
-and they gave a view of the narrow mysterious harbor
-that seems to have been cut in the old heroic days by
-some giant who was also a poet. The high cliffs cast
-their shadows like sable robes upon the water, jeweled
-with the lights of the shipping. The sky all silence and
-stars, paling now in the moonlight, was almost the sky
-of Europe. Orion was there, and the Pleiades, and Cassiop&aelig;a
-dreaming in her diamond-studded chair.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The room itself was a strange mixture of Japan and
-Europe. The floor was the matted floor of Japan, the
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page298" id="page298"></a>[pg&nbsp;298]</span>
-cane sofas might have been bought at Shoolbred&#39;s. The
-walls were as plain and unadorned as the walls of a
-Japanese house are wont to be&mdash;that is to say, under
-the fans which the hotel proprietor had fastened to them&mdash;fans
-from Kioto, Tokyo, and Nara crucified against
-the white paneling and looking like great butterflies in
-some giant&#39;s collection.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He lit a pipe. Jane was upstairs in some room, but
-there were still nine hours of waiting to be done; and he
-had promised that he would not go upstairs if permitted
-to pass the night in the hotel, but wait patiently for
-her to come to him at the hour of starting.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He felt that if he thought about her he would break
-his oath, so he drove her from his mind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He watched the twinkling lights in the harbor; those
-darting about like fire-flies were the sampans; that long
-hulk all crusted with light was the <i>La France</i>, the ship
-in which Jane had intended to sail for Osaka. It was
-after ten now, and she was overdue to leave. That sister-hulk,
-equally gemmed, was the Nord Deutscher Lloyd
-boat leaving at dawn for Colombo. Those three lights
-in a triangle were the anchor lights of the great Russian
-cruiser <i>Rurik</i>&mdash;the ill-fated <i>Rurik</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Suddenly a horn of light shot out from the bow of
-the <i>La France</i>, and she began to move like a glittering
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page299" id="page299"></a>[pg&nbsp;299]</span>
-town towards the sea, and the wind from the west
-brought the faint music of a band. The <i>La France</i>
-had unbuoyed and was away.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He watched her as she picked her course through the
-shipping stealthily like a robber. Now with all side
-lights showing, now with them half extinguished as she
-veered to avoid the bell-buoy of the Atraska shoal; now
-a vague phantom swallowed by the shadows of the night.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The hotel was silent now, the Russians had gone off
-to their ship. Somewhere outside, somewhere in the
-gloom of the mysterious night, a <i>cham&egrave;cen</i> was tinkling
-to the muttering of a little drum. What dancing girl
-was setting her steps to that tune&mdash;and where?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He rose to his feet and began to pace the room, then
-he turned the lamp up till it smoked, and turned it down
-till it was nearly out, and cursed the burner for his own
-stupidity.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Still the distant <i>cham&egrave;cen</i> kept up its buzzing to the
-devil&#39;s tattoo of the distant drum.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He walked to the window and shut it. Result&mdash;absolute
-silence and stifling heat. No matter; anything
-was better than that infernal drum.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had shut out the drum, but he had shut in a mosquito.
-It was in the lace curtain, and its twang brought
-him again to his feet. He tried to find it in the curtain,
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page300" id="page300"></a>[pg&nbsp;300]</span>
-failed, pulled the whole curtain down from its attachment,
-and trampled it under-foot.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Silence, this time unbroken, until one of the fans upon
-the wall rustled, and from beneath it crept a frightful-looking
-spider as brown and as broad as a penny.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He did not see it; he was sitting in the arm-chair with
-his head between his hands, breaking his promise to Jane.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">When it was broken he got up, crossed the room,
-opened the door, and went into the hall.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Chinese night-porter was sitting like a figure of
-stone in a blouse of blue silk. Leslie went up to him,
-spoke some words in a low tone, and handed him some
-money.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The Chinaman rose and led the way upstairs. Down
-a passage they went till the guide stopped, pointed to a
-door, turned, and vanished as silently as he had come.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Leslie went to the door and knocked softly. No answer.
-He turned the handle, the door opened and he
-entered&mdash;an empty room.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">A lamp was burning on a table in one corner, a bed
-stood close to the window: the bed was empty.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was Jane&#39;s room, for there lay her trunks. A glove
-lay on the floor. He picked it up, looked at it, smelt it,
-and then threw it down. The dressing-table held none
-of those articles of the toilet one might have expected
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page301" id="page301"></a>[pg&nbsp;301]</span>
-to see. Beside the lamp on the side-table lay a letter.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He had seen the letter almost on the first moment of
-his entering the room, with that vague, half-terrified
-comprehension which we may imagine in the brain of the
-bull when the sun-light flashes on the sword of the matadore.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He approached it now, and read the superscription:
-&quot;Richard Leslie, Esq. Important.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He opened it, and a number of bank notes came out.
-These he laid on one side, took the letter that was with
-them, and began to read.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He read the letter, not as if he were reading a letter,
-but the face of some scoundrel he had dragged by the
-ears into the zone of lamplight. He envisaged it, took
-whole sentences in <i>en bloc</i>. He read first at the end, then
-in the middle, then at the beginning.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;And now good-bye for ever. Oh, Dick, don&#39;t think
-badly of me for this; I have only done what was right.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;When you get this I shall be gone. I am leaving
-by the <i>La France</i> to meet George.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;I leave you money. Half what I have is yours; remember
-we are cousins, and ought to help one another.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">&quot;Oh, Dick! Dick! I <i>can&#39;t</i> do what you want. I am
-not thinking of myself but of my people. Imagine the
-disgrace and ruin it would bring them. My dear old
-father, it would kill him.&quot;</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page302" id="page302"></a>[pg&nbsp;302]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XXXIV</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">AMIDST THE AZALEAS</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was very late at night; clouds from the Pacific were
-rolling over Nagasaki, and it was evident that the
-hot weather of the last two days had been the prelude of
-a storm.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The House of the Clouds, lamp-lit and deserted, cast
-from the opening in the shoji a long parallelogram of
-light that cut the darkness like a sword; a sword of light
-lying upon the veranda, the graveled walk, and the landscape
-garden.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">With the darkness outside had come a great silence
-broken only by the wind.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Had you been standing on the veranda you would
-have sworn that some blind person was prowling before
-the house, soundless of foot and cautiously feeling his
-way by tapping on the ground with a stick.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was only the lath shaken by the wind, the tireless
-lath that all day and all the night before had kept the
-echoes of the garden answering its summons, and still
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page303" id="page303"></a>[pg&nbsp;303]</span>
-kept up the unwearied sound-semblance of a blind man
-who walked without footstep, a patient sentinel, now advancing,
-now retreating, now at the garden gate, now
-near the azaleas, and ever waiting.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">The garden gate clicked, and hurried footsteps came
-up the path.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was Leslie, hatless, bright and wild of eye, walking
-rapidly, but in a tottering manner. His lips were of a
-dull purple color, and he had the aspect of a man heavily
-drugged with opium.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He crossed the veranda and entered the deserted hall.
-He looked into the rooms on either side&mdash;they were
-both empty. Then he came back to the hall, and cried
-out, &quot;Campanula!&quot; The rafters returned the sound of
-his voice, but she did not answer.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was perfectly clear of mind, but his breathing was
-affected, and a deadly torpor hung over him which his
-will alone prevented falling.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He took in all the details around him with extraordinary
-clearness, amongst others the fact that the mushi&#39;s
-cage had been removed.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Having waited for a moment, straining his ears to
-catch the faintest sound, he seized the swinging paper
-lantern that lit the hall, and with it in his hand went into
-the kitchen. It was deserted. Then he went upstairs&mdash;every
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page304" id="page304"></a>[pg&nbsp;304]</span>
-room was empty. It was like a house from which
-the people had fled in terror, and he came down again,
-wild with the apprehension of some unknown tragedy.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He brought the lamp into the room on the right of
-the passage, and placed it on the floor. Something crimson
-lay on the primrose-colored matting. He picked
-it up; it was Campanula&#39;s obi. Why had she cast it
-there?</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He was looking round him as if for a person to explain
-all these things, when his eye caught an open
-drawer of the great lacquer cabinet that contained his
-papers. He looked into the drawer, and it was empty.
-It was the drawer in which he had placed the waki-zashi&mdash;the
-suicide sword, given to him by Jane.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">From the open drawer his eyes turned to the obi, which
-he had dropped, and then he looked round him, as Dives
-looks round him in that picture of Teniers, where Dives
-wakes in Hell.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As he stood, the wind shook the broken lath outside,
-and played with it. &quot;Tap! tap! tap!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He saw the sunlit Nikko road, the valley of the crimson
-azaleas, the Lost One who had loved him as no other
-being had loved him&mdash;the one he had lost for ever.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">She was dead, yet it was denied to him to find her, and
-clasp her in his arms, and die with her.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page305" id="page305"></a>[pg&nbsp;305]</span>
-Death was nothing, but never to find her again, never
-to see her again, or touch her small body, that was an
-agony far beyond death.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">He left the room, feeling by the walls like a man without
-sight.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Outside, the world was in utter darkness. More clouds
-had rolled up over the sky, as if called by the Blind One,
-the tapping of whose stick betrayed him, as he walked,
-waiting for his prey.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">If he could find her, what cared he for the Blind One!
-If he could not find her he felt that he would be for ever
-lost. But he could never find her more, for the opium
-sleep was falling upon him now. He had no more
-strength to fight it, and the darkness of the pit lay
-around him.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Suddenly, the night wind changed, and brought him
-the perfume of the unseen azaleas, and with the perfume
-a thin thread of song.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was the song of the mushi&mdash;the atom of life he
-had spared that day in his fury, even as God might
-now be sparing him&mdash;the mushi she had loved so well.
-Feeling by the veranda wall, he followed the song like
-a man led by a thread, and as he came he crushed something
-beneath his foot: it was the lath, whose sound
-would never trouble him again.</p>
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page306" id="page306"></a>[pg&nbsp;306]</span>
-He felt the azalea bushes around his knees, and advanced
-amongst them, still led by the tremulous song,
-till his foot touched something soft, and his hand a tiny
-cage, hanging to one of the crimson-flowering boughs.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<p class="indent"><span class="pagenum"><a name="page307" id="page307"></a>[pg&nbsp;307]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XXXV</h2>
-
-<p class="h2">BON MATSURI</p>
-
-<p class="indent">It was the 18th of August&mdash;the last night of Bon
-Matsuri.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Under a sky splendid with stars, the hills about Nagasaki
-were gemmed with colored lights. Ten thousand
-colored lanterns adorned the terraced cemeteries, and towards
-dawn each lantern would be fixed to a tiny boat of
-straw, freighted with a few small coins, and some small
-offering of fruit, to stay the souls of the dead on their
-long journey home.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M&#39;Gourley had come out to see the fairy-like spectacle,
-for he knew that Mr. Initogo, that faithful old Pagan
-gentleman, was amidst the rejoicers on the hillsides, and
-had lit two lanterns, and freighted two small boats, for
-the souls of two friends he had known on earth.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Just as the morning breeze began to blow, and before
-the first star had paled in the dawn breaking over the
-Pacific, the gazers from the ships and the shore drew
-their breath, for suddenly the whole hillsides seemed in
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page308" id="page308"></a>[pg&nbsp;308]</span>
-motion, shifting and glittering down to the water&#39;s edge,
-till the ripples became surrounded by a zone of rose-colored
-fire.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Then the water itself became dyed with the glow of
-ten thousand lanterns, each bravely upborne on its little
-ship of straw, whose sails took the Eastern breeze.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">As the fairy flotilla sailed away, spreading the harbor
-with light and color, ship after ship took fire, and
-ship after ship was lost.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">M&#39;Gourley, hat in hand, stood watching till the last
-spark had vanished in the lilac of the dawn; then, with a
-sigh that spoke of things that were not, but might have
-been, he turned slowly home.</p>
-
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<hr class="hr2" />
-
-<div class="tnote">
-<h2>Transcriber's Note:</h2>
-
-<p class="indent">Throughout the dialogues, there were words used to mimic accents of
-the speakers. Those words were retained as-is.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">Errors in punctuations and inconsistent hyphenation were not corrected
-unless otherwise noted.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 17, a quotation mark was removed after ;&quot;Lord sakes!;&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 29, a superfluous quotation mark was deleted.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 29, a quotation mark was moved one space to the correct
-position.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 47, a period was added after &quot;as fraunk as mysel&#39;&quot;.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 81, &quot;Lesile&quot; was replaced with &quot;Leslie&quot;.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 120, &quot;perfumed hair&quot; was replaced with &quot;perfumed hair&quot;.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 128, &quot;acros&quot; was replaced with &quot;across&quot;.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 150, a quotation mark was added after &quot;Lord and also the empire of the birds.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 243, &quot;though&quot; was replaced with &quot;through&quot;.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 264, &quot;horor&quot; was replaced with &quot;horror&quot;.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 272, &quot;Baudelaires&quot; was replaced with &quot;Baudelaire&#39;s&quot;.</p>
-
-<p class="indent">On page 281, &quot;jewelery&quot; was replaced with &quot;jewelry&quot;.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<hr class="full" />
-<p>***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CRIMSON AZALEAS***</p>
-<p>******* This file should be named 55709-h.htm or 55709-h.zip *******</p>
-<p>This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:<br />
-<a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/5/5/7/0/55709">http://www.gutenberg.org/5/5/7/0/55709</a></p>
-<p>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.</p>
-
-<p>Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</p>
-
-<h2>START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<br />
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</h2>
-
-<p>To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.</p>
-
-<h3>Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works</h3>
-
-<p>1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.</p>
-
-<p>1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.</p>
-
-<p>1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.</p>
-
-<p>1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.</p>
-
-<p>1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:</p>
-
-<p>1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:</p>
-
-<blockquote><p>This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United
- States and most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost
- no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use
- it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with
- this eBook or online
- at <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you'll have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this
- ebook.</p></blockquote>
-
-<p>1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.</p>
-
-<p>1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that</p>
-
-<ul>
-<li>You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."</li>
-
-<li>You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.</li>
-
-<li>You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.</li>
-
-<li>You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p>1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.</p>
-
-<p>1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause. </p>
-
-<h3>Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm</h3>
-
-<p>Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.</p>
-
-<p>Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org.</p>
-
-<h3>Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation</h3>
-
-<p>The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.</p>
-
-<p>The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact</p>
-
-<p>For additional contact information:</p>
-
-<p> Dr. Gregory B. Newby<br />
- Chief Executive and Director<br />
- gbnewby@pglaf.org</p>
-
-<h3>Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation</h3>
-
-<p>Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.</p>
-
-<p>The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/donate">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.</p>
-
-<p>While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.</p>
-
-<p>International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.</p>
-
-<p>Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate</p>
-
-<h3>Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.</h3>
-
-<p>Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.</p>
-
-<p>Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.</p>
-
-<p>Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org</p>
-
-<p>This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.</p>
-
-</body>
-</html>
-